《Chasing the Unexpected》
CHAPTER 1
Chapter 1
N Jayston was in her third month of trying to conceive when she saw a message on her husband rk Sumner¡¯s phone from a contact named ¡°Jordyn Cheatham¡±.
Jordyn: [I think my new nightgown is a bit tight. Why don¡¯t youe over and check if it fits?]
Attached was a selfie of a woman in a deep V-neck red slip dress, her cleavage partly exposed, exuding seduction.
N¡¯s grip on the phone tightened. She scrolled up and found rk and Jordyn¡¯s previous exchanges to be strictly work-rted, which made her frown.
¡®Was the text sent by mistake? Or¡¡¯
A hand wrapped around N¡¯s waist from behind, breaking her thoughts.
rk pressed his warm body against hers and gently nibbled her earlobe. ¡°Honey, I¡¯m all cleaned up. Do you want to do it on the couch or the bed?¡±
Before N could respond, rk picked her up andid her on the couch, his tall frame looming over her.
¡°Since you¡¯re not saying anything, I¡¯ll choose. Let¡¯s do it on the couch,¡± rk said, his voice husky and his eyes filled with a flicker of fire that made N blush instantly.
N was already beautiful, and the slight flush on her cheeks made her look like a tempting, ripe, juicy peach under the light.
rk¡¯s gaze grew darker. He leaned in to kiss N, but she suddenly turned her head away.
Sensing her resistance, he looked at her with confusion. ¡°Honey, what¡¯s wrong?¡±
rk, usually assertive at work, now looked at N with a mix of confusion and hurt, which softened her heart momentarily. Despite that, she hadn¡¯t forgotten the explicit selfie she had just seen.
She stopped him with one hand on his chest and held up his phone with the other, showing him the screen. ¡°Exin this first.¡±
rk nced at the screen and immediately frowned, grabbing the phone to make a call. It was quickly answered.
¡°Mr. Sumner, what can I do for you?¡±
rk glowered, and his voice turned icy. ¡°I didn¡¯t know my secretary started soliciting clients.¡±
There was a moment of silence before Jordyn¡¯s panicked voice came through. ¡°M-Mr. Sumner, I¡¯m sorry. That message was meant for my boyfriend. I must have sent it to you by mistake¡¡±
¡°Next time it happens, pack your things and leave!¡± rk hung up and looked back at N, his expression softening, even showing a hint of grievance. ¡°Honey, she sent it by mistake. If you¡¯re still upset, I¡¯ll fire her tomorrow. It¡¯ste now, so let¡¯s not waste time on someone unworthy. We haven¡¯t seen each other in a week. You need to make it up to me tonight.¡±
rk pulled N in for a kiss, but her mood was ruined despite the issue being cleared up. She wasn¡¯t in the mood anymore and pushed him away. ¡°I¡¯m tired tonight. Let¡¯s continue tomorrow.¡±
A sh of disappointment crossed rk¡¯s eyes, but he didn¡¯t pressure her. ¡°Alright, you sleep first. I¡¯m not tired yet, so I¡¯ll go to the study to handle some work.¡±
¡°Okay.¡±
¡
It started raining heavily in the middle of the night.
The sound woke N, and she reached out only to feel the cold space beside her. She nced at the clock¡ª3:16 a.m.
N wondered whether rk was still working.
She got up, put on a robe, and went to the study, but it was dark and empty. Her grip on the doorknob tightened, and her heart sank.
N¡¯s phone suddenly chimed, startling her in the quiet night. Seeing that it was a text from a stranger, she had a gut feeling that reading it would mean no turning back for her and rk.
A thunderp boomed outside, startling her into identally pressing it.
[Still awake? Because your husband isn¡¯t with you?]
[I was scared because of the thunder and power outage, and he came tofort me.]
[Don¡¯t you want to know where your husband is?]
As N read the messages and the boastful tone, her hands trembled uncontrobly. After a long while, another text came in with an address and a series of digits.
N bit her lip, grabbed her car keys, and drove straight there.
By the time she reached the vi, it was past 4:00 a.m.
She entered the code, and the door unlocked.
The living room lights were on. From the entrance to the bedroom door, a man¡¯s suit and a woman¡¯s lingerie were strewn about, revealing the urgency of their actions.
Seeing the torn red nightgown at the bedroom door, N felt a sense of absurdity.
Although the distance from the entrance to the bedroom was only a few meters, it felt like an eternity to N. Standing at the bedroom door, she felt light-headed and dizzy.
She reached out, trembling, and slowly pushed the slightly open door.
The sight of the messy bed and the naked couple entwined¡ªtheir heavy breathing filling the room¡ªpierced N¡¯s heart. The couple was so engrossed that they didn¡¯t notice her standing there.
N¡¯s hand on the door frame turned white from gripping it too hard, leaving red marks on her palm. She had been with rk for eight years, from school days to marriage, envied by everyone around them. Until today, she had never imagined betrayal between them.
Now, reality dealt her a cruel blow. Even the most sincere wedding vows couldn¡¯t withstand a fickle heart.
Unable to bear the sight, N turned and stumbled out, driving away. She stopped by a bar on the way and decided to go in.
¡
By the time Vrie Weir arrived, N had already downed two bottles of whiskey, her gaze slightly unfocused. ¡°Vrie, you¡¯re here¡¡±
Seeing N surrounded by several men, Vrie frowned. ¡°All of you, leave!¡±
¡°No, they¡¯re fine here¡ª¡±Original from N?velDrama.Org.
¡°I said, leave!¡± After driving the men away, Vrie sat next to N. ¡°What happened? Did rk really cheat on you?¡±
Vrie was N¡¯s university roommate and had witnessed N and rk¡¯s journey from school to marriage. She had seen rk treat N well all these years, so she couldn¡¯t believe he would cheat.
Upon hearing rk¡¯s name, N¡¯s gaze dimmed, and the heart-wrenching pain came rushing back. ¡°I don¡¯t want to hear that name right now.¡±
CHAPTER 2
Chapter 2
N downed her drink in one gulp. She had never imagined rk would betray her. Seeing him in bed with another woman felt like a dagger through her heart.
¡°I just can¡¯t believe it. He loved you so much. He didn¡¯t seem like the type to cheat. Maybe there¡¯s a misunderstanding,¡± Vrie suggested.
N let out a coldugh. ¡°I saw it with my own eyes. How could that be a misunderstanding?¡±
The room fell silent.
Watching N drink like there was no tomorrow, Vrie grabbed the ss from her hand. ¡°Even if he cheated, you shouldn¡¯t punish yourself by getting drunk. What are you going to do now?¡±N?velDrama.Org owns this.
¡°I¡¯m getting a divorce. Just thinking about him with that woman makes me sick.¡±
Upon seeing the defiance in N¡¯s red eyes, Vrie¡¯s heart ached. ¡°Don¡¯t think about it now. You need to rest. Decide what to do next once you¡¯re calm. I¡¯ll take you home.¡±
N shook her head. ¡°No¡ I don¡¯t want to go back.¡±
Returning to that house would only bring back the sickening images of rk¡¯s betrayal. Each recollection made her feel nauseous.
Seeing N¡¯s reluctance, Vrie didn¡¯t insist. ¡°I¡¯ll book you a hotel room then.¡±
¡
After booking a room, Vrie took N to the hotel entrance. ¡°Are you sure you don¡¯t want me to take you up?¡±
N shook her head. ¡°No, you go rest. I¡¯ll be fine.¡±
She waved with the room card and walked into the hotel.
Seeing N walk steadily, Vrie finally breathed a sigh of relief and drove away once N was inside the hotel. What she didn¡¯t know was that N, when drunk, appeared sober but was actually a mess inside.
N entered the elevator, scanned her card, and the elevator began to ascend.
Soon, the doors opened with a ding.
As N stepped out onto the carpet, her legs almost gave out. She steadied herself against the wall, massaging her aching temples while searching for her room number.
The alcohol was taking its toll, and her vision blurred.
She found Room 8919 and tried the card on the door. Hearing no beep, she frowned and was about to push the door when it suddenly opened.
N froze. Before she could react, arge hand yanked her into the dark room.
The door mmed shut, cutting off the light from the hallway. She was pressed against the door, a man¡¯s breath hot against her ear, making her shiver. The familiar scent of pine filled her senses, but before she could ce it, she felt the warmth of his lips on hers.
¡°Mmph!¡± Realizing what was happening, N struggled.
Damon was strong, and with the alcohol dulling her strength, her hands felt weak, almost inviting as she pushed against his chest. Damon¡¯s hands roamed her body, leaving a trail of fire, and her body grew more responsive under his touch.
N tried to push him away, but he easily caught her wrists and pinned them above her head.
¡°Let¡ª Mmph! Let me go¡¡±
He stopped kissing her and chuckled. ¡°No need to y hard to get.¡±
His fingers traced her cor, the cool touch making her shudder. His body heat seemed to melt her, and her legs grew weak.
In the dark, N¡¯s senses heightened. She felt Damon unbuttoning her clothes, her mouth dry, herst bit of rationality warning her that this was going too far.
¡°Let me go!¡± She mustered all her strength to push him, but he simply picked her up and threw her onto the bed.
The bed was soft, so N didn¡¯t feel pain, but the impact made her head spin. She tried to get up, but Damon pinned her down. Soon, her clothes were gone, and they were both nearly naked.
He pressed against her, ready. His dominating presence made her tremble. She pushed against his chest, biting her lip to stay calm and clear-headed.
¡°Mister, I think I entered the wrong room. Please let me go¡¡± N¡¯s voice shook with tension.
¡°Tsk!¡± Damon¡¯s voice was impatient, his tone cold. ¡°Still ying?¡±
He was about to get up and kick N out when the room light suddenly came on. N had identally hit the light switch in her struggle.
The sudden light made Damon squint. He was shocked when he saw the terrified woman beneath him.
N, recognizing Damon, felt the blood drain from her face. The fear sobered her instantly. She couldn¡¯t believe it¡ªthe man who almost vited her was rk¡¯s uncle, Damon Summer!
¡°Uncle Damon¡¡±
N had always been wary of Damon. He was the youngest son of Richard Sumner and Marie Thorne, doted on by them and known for his unpredictable, cold nature. Even outsiders avoided crossing him. When she married rk, he had warned her to steer clear of Damon.
¡°Shut up!¡± Damon¡¯s face was dark, his gaze icy, as he contemted whether to silence her for good.
Then, his eyes shifted to her bare chest, darkening further. He turned away, getting off the bed. ¡°Get dressed and get out!¡±
As Damon moved, N caught a glimpse of him where she shouldn¡¯t, and her face turned red with embarrassment.
Upon seeing her flushed face, Damon¡¯s expression soured even more. ¡°Still not leaving?¡±
N could not care less about her embarrassment as she hastily dressed and left without looking back.
Once outside, she checked the room number and realized her mistake¡ªit wasn¡¯t Room 8919, but Room 8916!
She had entered the wrong room and almost slept with her husband¡¯s uncle. The thought made her headache worse. She should have let Vrie take her up. Unfortunately, it was toote for regrets now.
After N left, Damon dialed a number with a glower on his face. ¡°Delete all surveince footage from the Empire Skyview Hotel tonight!¡±
Upon hanging up, he looked at the messy bed and sheets and lit a cigarette, his irritation growing.
He had almost slept with his nephew¡¯s wife¡ What a mess!
CHAPTER 3
Chapter 3
On N¡¯s way back, she hesitated for a long time before finally messaging Damon, someone whose contact she had had for three years but had never contacted.
N: [Uncle Damon¡ Can we pretend tonight never happened? I was really drunk and went to the wrong room.]This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?.
She waited for a long time, but there was no response from Damon. Frowning, she sent another message.
N: [?]
As soon as she sent it, a red exmation mark appeared: [You are no longer friends with this user. Please send a friend request to continue chatting.]
N bit her lip. Damon had deleted her. He must not want to bring this up again. Relieved, she finally felt a bit of peace.
¡
When N got home, it was already past 6:00 a.m.
As soon as she opened the door, she saw rk sitting on the sofa. He turned sharply at the sound of the door, his eyes bloodshot from a sleepless night.
¡°Where were youst night? I called you dozens of times. Why didn¡¯t you answer?¡±
rk stood up and walked quickly toward her, reaching out to grab her hand, but she pulled away.
He froze, about to speak, but she spoke first, her tone icy. ¡°You can stay out all night, but I can¡¯t?¡±
N had always been gentle. In their eight years together, they had hardly ever argued. This was the first time she had spoken to him so coldly.
rk sensed something was wrong and noticed her red, swollen eyes. His expression changed, and his hand clenched at his side. ¡°You know, don¡¯t you?¡±
His voice was calm, without a trace of guilt or panic, as if he had expected this day toe.
Upon seeing his unapologetic demeanor, N¡¯s long-suppressed emotions finally exploded. She swung her bag at him, her eyes red with fury, like a madwoman.
All the good times they had shared, all the happy moments, were shattered the moment she saw him in bed with another woman. They could never be pieced together again.
¡°rk Sumner, how could you do something so disgusting?! If you didn¡¯t love me anymore, you could have divorced me. Why did you have to hurt me like this?¡±
N had assumed that no third party could evere between them. Unfortunately, reality gave her a harsh p, waking her from the lies he had woven and turning her love for him into a joke.
Seeing her red, tear-filled eyes, rk felt a pang in his chest. He grabbed her hand and pulled her into his arms. ¡°N, I¡¯m sorry¡¡±
N shoved him away, wanting tough but only tears came. ¡°Don¡¯t touch me with your filthy hands!
¡°Is it that hard to stay faithful?
¡°Since we got married, I¡¯ve met many excellent men, and some have shown interest in me. But I¡¯ve never crossed the line. If I can do it, why can¡¯t you?!¡±
rk clenched his fists when he saw the disappointment and anger in her eyes.
¡°N, you¡¯re the only one I love¡ It was just an ident with her¡¡±
His exnation sounded so weak that N found it bothughable and nauseating.
¡°So you¡¯re saying I could sleep with another man and then tell you it was an ident? That I may have betrayed you physically, but my heart still belongs to you?¡±
A sh of ruthlessness crossed rk¡¯s eyes. ¡°If you dare, I¡¯ll kill you and that man together in bed.¡±
Seeing his icy gaze, N felt a chill in her heart. If he knew betrayal was unforgivable, why would he still betray her?
She took a deep breath and spoke slowly. ¡°Do you remember what I told you when you proposed?¡±
She had said that if he ever betrayed her, she would not forgive him but leave him.
rk¡¯s expression changed. ¡°I will not let you leave!¡±
N wiped her tears, her expression a mixture of ridicule and hatred. ¡°Whether you agree or not, I¡¯ve made up my mind. I¡¯m divorcing you. You don¡¯t deserve my forgiveness.¡±
With that, she ignored his reaction and went upstairs.
rk stared at her back, his gaze dark.
¡
Back in the bedroom, N went straight to the bathroom to shower, unable to stand the smell of alcohol on herself. While applying body wash, she noticed red marks on her chest and paused.
The image of Damon¡¯s hands roaming her body shed through her mind, making her frown. She scrubbed the marks hard until the skin around them turned red, trying to erase his touch.
After her shower, she saw rk sitting on the bed with his head down, lost in thought. She frowned and decided to ignore him. They would be divorced soon anyway.
rk looked up and saw Ning out in just a towel. Her damp hair dripped water, her freshly washed face flushed like a blooming rose with an enticing fragrance. The towel barely covered her hips, revealing her long, fair legs. His breath hitched, his gaze glued on her.
N didn¡¯t notice rk¡¯s reaction. She walked to the wardrobe to grab her pajamas when a pair of arms suddenly wrapped around her from behind.
¡°N¡¡± rk¡¯s voice was husky, filled with undisguised desire.
rk had been thinking about how to win her back downstairs after she left. The only way he could think of was to have a child with her. He hade upstairs to discuss this with her, nning to take it slow. However, he lost control upon seeing her just out of the shower.
In the past, such behavior would have stirred N¡¯s feelings, but all she felt now was disgust. She turned and pushed him away, her gaze full of revulsion. ¡°Don¡¯t touch me. I feel dirty.¡±
Hurt shed in rk¡¯s eyes. He grabbed her hands, his expression earnest. ¡°Didn¡¯t you always want a child? Let¡¯s have one now, okay?¡±
N shook him off at his matter-of-fact attitude. ¡°That was before. I might have a child in the future, but it won¡¯t be yours.¡±
Her words enraged rk. He grabbed her and threw her onto the bed, pinning her down. ¡°Say that again!¡±
His eyes were full of anger, but N didn¡¯t care. ¡°It doesn¡¯t matter how many times I say it. I¡¯m disgusted by you. I¡¯d rather die than have your child.¡±
As soon as she finished speaking, rk kissed her fiercely.
CHAPTER 4
Chapter 4
N froze for a moment, then struggled desperately. Just the thought of rk kissing another woman the night before filled her with disgust and rage.
¡°Let go!¡±
Her struggles were futile against rk, who only tightened his grip around her waist.
As she fought, her towel loosened, revealing her body. His gaze darkened, and he felt a rush of desire.
Their bodies were pressed tightly together, and N quickly noticed the change in rk. Furious, she bit him hard, tasting blood in their mouths.
Instead of letting go, rk¡¯s other hand slipped under N¡¯s towel. She had nothing on underneath, having juste out of the shower. She stiffened and struggled even more fiercely.
¡°rk, get off me!¡±
rk ignored N, his fingers teasing her sensitive spots. ¡°N, you need me too, don¡¯t you?¡±
N¡¯s struggles were in vain, and she grew increasingly desperate. As rk positioned himself, she closed her eyes in despair. ¡°rk, don¡¯t make me hate you.¡±
rk halted abruptly. Seeing N filled with despair and pain, like a fragile porcin doll about to shatter, made him pause. He wanted her desperately, but a voice in his head warned that if he took her now, it would be the end of them.
He stared at her, his hand tightening around her waist. After several tense seconds, he suddenly let go and got off the bed, leaving the room quickly.
The door mmed shut with a loud bang, making N flinch. She clutched the nket tightly.
¡
For the next few days, rk didn¡¯te home.
N called him several times to discuss the divorce, but he didn¡¯t respond.
¡
The weekend arrived.
N was in the living room, sending out job applications when she heard the front door open. rk walked in, looking haggard.
They stared at each other in silence until N broke it, closing herptop and standing up calmly. ¡°Since you¡¯re back, let¡¯s talk about the divorce.¡±
rk frowned. ¡°I told you, I won¡¯t divorce you. I¡¯m here to remind you that we have to go to the family dinner tonight.¡±
The Sumners held a monthly dinner, and ever since their wedding, rk and N had attended together. The family wasn¡¯t kind to N, often treating her poorly. She endured it because she believed rk loved her.
After seeing him with another woman, however, she couldn¡¯t lie to herself anymore.Text content ? N?velDrama.Org.
¡°I don¡¯t want to go. Go by yourself.¡±
rk¡¯s expression turned impatient. ¡°N, how long are you going to keep this up?¡±
He had ignored her calls and messages, hoping she would calm down, but she was still the same.
¡°I¡¯m not keeping anything up. I just want a divorce.¡±
Upon hearing the word ¡°divorce¡±, rk¡¯s patience wore thin. He looked at N as if she were unreasonable.
¡°Divorce? You haven¡¯t worked since we got married. How will you support yourself? Whichpany would hire you? And what about your father¡¯s exorbitant medical bills? Can you afford those?
¡°N, you¡¯re not a teenager anymore. You¡¯re 28. It¡¯s time to grow up.
¡°I¡¯m the CEO of the Sumner Group. I face temptations all the time. Sometimes, it¡¯s hard to resist, but those women will never take your ce as my wife. What more do you want?¡±
rk couldn¡¯t understand why N didn¡¯t see that he still loved her, even if he couldn¡¯tmit to being with her forever.
Seeing rk¡¯s arrogant demeanor, N couldn¡¯t reconcile this man with the shy boy who had once blushed while confessing his love and promising never to hurt her.
Maybe this was his true self¡ªselfish, proud, and condescending.
¡°If being mature means tolerating your infidelity, then I¡¯m sorry, I can¡¯t do that. Find someone else. Here are the divorce papers I¡¯ve had drafted. Sign them when you have time.¡±
rk nced at the documents, sneering when he saw the section on asset division. ¡°Quite the appetite you have, asking for half my assets. Do you really think that¡¯s possible?¡±
¡°I deserve it. Why not?¡±
rk chuckled, his tone mocking. ¡°Look around this house. Did you buy anything here? I¡¯ve been covering your father¡¯s medical expenses for years. If we tally things up, you should be paying me. Should I have mywyer do the math?¡±
As N watched his bitter expression, she couldn¡¯t believe she had once loved this man. He had hidden his true self so well that, until she caught him cheating, she had thought he was a great guy.
¡°Don¡¯t forget, if it weren¡¯t for me giving you that patent, you wouldn¡¯t be the Sumner Group¡¯s CEO. And you were the one who told me to stay home after we got married. If I had continued my research, I would have earned far more than what you¡¯ve given me.¡±
Unfazed, rk replied, ¡°Who would believe you about the patent now?
¡°I don¡¯t want to argue about money, but if you insist on a divorce, we¡¯ll have to settle ounts. N, as long as you drop the divorce idea, my money is still yours to use.¡±
¡°rk, you¡¯re despicable!¡±
Since he refused to divorce, she¡¯d have to sue. She turned to leave, but he blocked her. ¡°Change your clothes. We¡¯re going to the family dinner.¡±
¡°I said I¡¯m not going. Tell them I¡¯m not feeling well.¡±
rk grabbed her wrist. ¡°N, I¡¯m running out of patience. Don¡¯t force me to cut off your father¡¯s medical expenses.¡±
¡°You wouldn¡¯t dare!¡±
rk took out his phone and called his secretary. ¡°Cancel my father-inw¡¯s medical payment for next month¡ª¡±
Furious, N grabbed his phone and ended the call. ¡°You¡¯re crossing a line, rk.¡±
¡°Crossing a line?¡± rk¡¯s gaze was full of contempt as he yanked her closer. ¡°Everything you have is because of me. Don¡¯t you think you¡¯re the one crossing the line? Change your clothes, or I have numerous ways to make youply.¡±
CHAPTER 5
Chapter 5
Seeing the coldness in rk¡¯s eyes, N realized how blind she had been to fall in love with such a man.
Her eyes stung with unshed tears, but she refused to show any vulnerability in front of him. She yanked her hand away, took a deep breath, and headed upstairs. The only thought in her mind was to find a job quickly so she could move out and divorce rk.
She grabbed a random outfit, tied her hair up with a hairpin, and went back downstairs. She was never one to fuss over her appearance. In the past, she had dressed up for the Sumners¡¯ gatherings to make a good impression. Now, she couldn¡¯t care less.
Hearing her footsteps, rk looked up.
N wore a fitted white dress, her waist so slender it seemed it could be encircled with one hand. Her hair was secured with a jade hairpin, revealing her delicate neck. She was breathtakingly beautiful. The grace she exuded was just like when they first met. However, the look in her eyes now was devoid of any warmth.
¡°Let¡¯s go,¡± she said.
They drove to the Sumner residence in silence.
As they arrived and were about to get out of the car, a ck Range Rover sped up and stopped abruptly in front of them.Text content ? N?velDrama.Org.
Upon recognizing the car, rk¡¯s expression darkened. It was Damon¡¯s car, someone he both feared and disliked.
Damon was known for his reckless and unpredictable behavior. He had refused to take over the Sumner Group when Richard wanted him to run thepany, choosing to start his own business instead.
Everyone had expected him to fail, but within five years, hispany had grown to be worth several times more than the Sumner Group.
rk couldn¡¯t stand Damon, partly out of jealousy. Once, ament rk made about Damon reached Damon¡¯s ears, and in retaliation, Damon refused to coborate with the Sumner Group, costing them millions.
Damon rarely attended family dinners, and rk had hoped to avoid him.
Luck wasn¡¯t on his side today¡ªthey met at the door.
He didn¡¯t notice N¡¯s stiffened expression when she saw Damon get out of his car.
rk opened the car door and greeted, ¡°Uncle Damon.¡±
Damon nced at him indifferently, his gaze brieflynding on the passenger seat before he nodded and walked into the house.
N let out a deep breath. When Damon looked her way, she had forgotten to breathe, fearing he might say something outrageous. He was known for his unpredictable nature, always doing whatever he pleased. Fortunately, he said nothing.
She decided she needed to talk to him privatelyter.
As rk and N walked into the living room, they saw it was already filled with people. Richard and Marie, the family heads, were chatting with Damon. He was the kind of person who naturally stood out in a crowd.
Noticing N¡¯s gaze on Damon, rk frowned. ¡°Why are you staring at my uncle?¡±
N withdrew her gaze and replied coolly, ¡°None of your business.¡±
Her coldness irritated rk. ¡°N, you know I don¡¯t like you paying attention to other men.¡±
Ever since they got together, rk had been extremely controlling, not allowing N to interact with other men. She used to think this was a sign of his love, but now it seemedughable.
She sneered. ¡°And I don¡¯t like you sleeping with other women, but you seem to enjoy it just fine.¡±
rk said through gritted teeth, ¡°This is a family dinner. We¡¯ll deal with thister.¡±
¡°If you don¡¯t want me to bring it up, then stay out of my business,¡± she retorted.
rk didn¡¯t want to cause a scene now because it might affect the Sumner Group and his standing with Richard, who still held all thepany¡¯s shares.
As they talked, Marie called out, ¡°N, rk, you¡¯re here! Come sit down!¡±
N took a deep breath, forcing a smile as she approached. She might not like the Sumners, but she maintained basic manners.
¡°Hello, Grandpa, Grandma,¡± she greeted with a smile.
Marie, who had been urging Damon to settle down and get married, looked pleased to see the couple. ¡°Come, sit down.¡±
She turned to Damon with a hint of dissatisfaction. ¡°Look at rk. He manages thepany well and has a beautiful wife. They might have children soon. And you? Almost 30 and still single. If you don¡¯t bring a girlfriend next time, don¡¯t bothering!¡±
Damon nced at the couple with a smirk. ¡°She is indeed beautiful.¡±
He just wondered how that petite frame would suffer if she were to have children.
N frowned, feeling ufortable with Damon¡¯s gaze.
rk also noticed the inappropriate way Damon looked at N. It wasn¡¯t the look of an elder but more like a man admiring a woman. His hand clenched into a fist, and his body tensed.
Marie sighed. ¡°My point is, when will you bring me a daughter-inw?¡±
¡°Depends. If I meet someone I like, maybe I¡¯ll bring her back tomorrow,¡± Damon replied nonchntly.
¡°You¡¯re too picky! I¡¯ve arranged a good match for you. Date¡¯s tomorrow, don¡¯t ruin it.¡±
¡°Then you¡¯ll probably have to apologize to another old friend tomorrow.¡±
Frustrated, Marie snapped, ¡°You¡¯re going to drive me crazy!¡±
Damon nced at rk. ¡°rk¡¯s been married for years. Instead of pushing me, why don¡¯t you encourage him to have kids?¡±
Marie nodded, realizing Damon wouldn¡¯t listen to her. She turned to N and rk, her expression softening. ¡°N, you and rk have been married for a few years now. When are you nning to have children?¡±
CHAPTER 6
Chapter 6
N lifted her head to speak, but rk grabbed her hand and smiled. ¡°Grandma, we¡¯re working on it!¡±
N tried to pull her hand away, but rk¡¯s grip was too tight.
If he wouldn¡¯t let her be, she wouldn¡¯t make it easy for him either. She turned to Marie. ¡°Grandma, I¡¯m looking for a job right now, so having children might have to wait.¡±
The room fell silent.
rk¡¯s grip on N¡¯s hand tightened painfully, and she winced.
Damon nced at rk¡¯s hand on N, noticing the bulging veins, then looked away indifferently.
rk¡¯s aunt, Anne Sumner, sneered. ¡°N, don¡¯t me me for being blunt. You¡¯ve been married for years. How can you not have a child yet? If it weren¡¯t for rk insisting on marrying you, do you think your family could have ever married into the Sumners?
¡°You should be grateful. If you don¡¯t want to have rk¡¯s child, there are plenty of women who do. If someone else steps in, you¡¯ll be the one looking foolish.¡±N?velDrama.Org owns this.
Besides, Anne thought, ¡°Who knows if N is fertile?¡±
She sounded like she meant well, but her gaze at N was filled with an air of superiority.
Marie frowned at Anne, disapproving. ¡°Anne, enough.¡±
Anne pursed her lips but stayed silent.
Marie turned back to N with a kind smile. ¡°N, you and rk are still young. If you don¡¯t want children yet, that¡¯s fine. Just don¡¯t overwork yourself. Our family isn¡¯t short on money. You can work if you want, but take it easy.¡±
N nodded. ¡°I understand, Grandma.¡±
With that, the awkward moment passed, and the room returned to its previous warmth.
Seeing the attention shift away, rk pulled N out of the living room. Once they reached the gazebo in the backyard, he released her. ¡°N, have you lost your mind? Do you want everyone to know about our fight?¡±
N rubbed her sore hand and said, ¡°I was just being honest.¡±
¡°Honest?¡± rk scowled. ¡°Should I call your father then?¡±
Harrison Jayston was ill and couldn¡¯t handle stress. N nned to divorce rk before breaking the news to him gently.
She red at rk. ¡°You wouldn¡¯t dare! You were the one who cheated. What right do you have to be so self-righteous?¡±
rk clenched his hands, a flicker of guilt crossing his face before it was reced by impatience. ¡°I promised it wouldn¡¯t happen again. If you don¡¯t want to see Jordyn, I¡¯ll fire her. What more do you want?¡±
N felt like there was amunication breakdown between them and turned away. ¡°I don¡¯t want to argue with you here.¡±
When rk saw her red-rimmed eyes, he softened. ¡°N, I truly know I was wrong. Just don¡¯t mention divorce, and I¡¯ll make it up to you. I love you. I can¡¯t let you go.¡±
N found itughable. How could he im to love her while being with another woman? Just thinking about him with someone else made her sick.
¡°I will never forgive you.¡±
Betrayal was her bottom line. She couldn¡¯t pretend nothing had happened or reconcile with him.
rk knew N well enough to understand that he had to be patient. He believed she still had feelings for him. Otherwise, she would have made a bigger scene when she found out. As long as he refused to divorce her, she would eventually forgive him.
¡°Fine, we won¡¯t talk about it now. If you don¡¯t want kids yet, we¡¯ll postpone it to two yearster. Since you want to work, I¡¯ll have my secretary find you a position at the Sumner Group.¡±
Nughed at his arrangement, a mocking look in her eyes. ¡°rk, do you see me as a puppet you can control?¡±
Hurt by her gaze, rk frowned. ¡°How am I controlling you? You don¡¯t want kids now, so I agreed to wait two years. You want to work, so I¡¯ll arrange it. What more do you want?¡±
¡°Stop pretending. I don¡¯t want kids because I want a divorce. I want to work to sever ties with you.¡±
rk looked at N¡¯s stubborn face, displeased. Since their wedding, she had been like a canary in his cage. He couldn¡¯t let her go.
¡°As long as I don¡¯t agree, this marriage won¡¯t end. Even if you tell awyer I cheated, do you have proof?¡±
rk¡¯s confident tone and controlling demeanor made N step back, trembling with anger. She finally saw how selfish and disgusting he was. She had wasted eight years¡ªthe best years of her life, from 18 to 26¡ªloving this man.
¡°You make me sick, rk!¡±
Seeing the undisguised disgust in N¡¯s eyes, rk grabbed her chin to force her to look at him. ¡°N, I understand you¡¯re angry, but I don¡¯t want to hear those words again.¡±
His N should love him forever. He couldn¡¯t stand her looking at him with such contempt.
N pped his hand away. ¡°Don¡¯t touch me! You¡¯re filthy.¡±
¡°Filthy?¡± rk snickered, stepping closer and pinning her against the gazebo¡¯s pir, kissing her forcefully. If she didn¡¯t stop saying things he didn¡¯t like, he would shut her up another way.
N turned her head away. rk¡¯s warm lipsnded on her cheek, making her skin crawl. ¡°Let me go, rk!¡±
¡°Fine, as long as you stop saying things that hurt me.¡±
¡°Never!¡±
¡°Then, I¡¯ll have to silence you my way.¡±
He grabbed her chin, kissing her fiercely. Just as his lips were about to meet hers, a soft cough interrupted from behind them.
¡°rk, am I interrupting something?¡±
CHAPTER 7
Chapter 7
rk stiffened abruptly, his expression darkening instantly. He tightened his grip on N¡¯s chin before slowly releasing her and turning to face Damon.
Meeting Damon¡¯s amused gaze, rk forced a smile. ¡°No. Uncle Damon, did you need something?¡±
Damon smiled. ¡°Your grandma sent me to call you both for dinner.¡±
¡°Thank you, Uncle Damon.¡±
¡°No trouble at all. But remember, this is the family home. Be mindful of your actions.¡± As Damon spoke, he briefly nced at the red mark on N¡¯s chin, mockery evident in his gaze.
Seeing Damon¡¯s eyes linger on N, rk frowned and stepped in front of her. ¡°I understand, Uncle Damon.¡±
His tone and expression were not pleasant, and his gaze toward Damon betrayed a hint of wariness.
Damon smirked and casually looked away. ¡°Alright, let¡¯s go eat.¡±
After Damon left, rk reached out for N¡¯s hand, but she dodged him, walking away without a backward nce.
rk quickly caught up, gripping her hand firmly. ¡°Behave, or I¡¯ll talk to your father!¡±
N¡¯s attempt to pull away halted, a wave of helplessness and anger washing over her. If she hadn¡¯t agreed to be a housewife back then, she wouldn¡¯t be under his control and threats now.
She needed to find a job quickly, earn enough to pay her father¡¯s medical bills, and free herself from rk. Until then, arguing about divorce was pointless.
Having made up her mind, N stopped struggling and let rk lead her to the dining room.
¡
After dinner, everyone went home.
As rk and N arrived at their vi, rk locked the car doors, making no move to get out.
N frowned. ¡°What are you doing?¡±
¡°We need to talk.¡±
¡°If it¡¯s about the divorce, there¡¯s no need. I won¡¯t bring it up for now.¡±
rk¡¯s eyes narrowed dangerously. ¡°For now?¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
Seeing N¡¯s indifferent expression, rk pressed his lips into a thin line, his displeasure evident. He knew it would take time for her to ept his infidelity. As long as she didn¡¯t mention divorce, he believed he had a chance to win her back.
After a moment, he nodded. ¡°N, I¡¯m d you¡¯re giving me another chance.¡±
N ignored his words, staring at him nkly. ¡°Can you unlock the car now? I¡¯m tired and want to rest.¡±
With a click, the doors unlocked.
N immediately got out, heading into the vi without looking back.
By the time rk reached the bedroom door, he found it locked from the inside. He sighed, a smile tugging at his lips.
In the early days of their marriage, she¡¯d lock the door to show she was angry when he had been too rough in bed. She¡¯d let him in after a few days.
His smile deepened. ¡°Never mind,¡± he thought, ¡°I¡¯ll win her over slowly.¡±
They had a lifetime together. As long as she stayed by his side and had feelings for him, she¡¯d eventually forgive him.
Inside the bedroom, N was choosing an outfit for her interview the next day. After picking a few options, she sent photos to Vrie, asking for her opinion.
Vrie called immediately. ¡°Why are you suddenly job hunting? Have you sorted things out with rk?¡±
N¡¯s voice was calm. ¡°Not yet. I need a job first. I have no ie. Once I have enough money for my dad¡¯s medical bills and my living expenses, I¡¯ll discuss divorce.¡±
¡°So you¡¯re going to live with him like nothing happened?¡±
¡°Of course not. I have some money saved. I¡¯ll find a ce to move out after the interview tomorrow.¡±
N realized that divorce couldn¡¯t be rushed. Without a job or money, she couldn¡¯t afford awyer, let alone face the Sumner Group¡¯s legal team. She needed the best divorcewyer she could find.
She had no intention of leaving with nothing. rk was the one who betrayed their marriage. Why should she leave empty-handed? If she had the means, she¡¯d make him leave with nothing instead.
As for her father¡¯s medical bills, she felt no guilt using rk¡¯s money. Her research back then had earned rk millions. Her father¡¯s medical expenses were a drop in the bucket.
¡°Whichpany are you interviewing with?¡±
¡°Park Pharmaceuticals.¡±
¡°You¡¯re going back to drug research?¡±
¡°Yes. I¡¯ve kept up with the field even though I haven¡¯t been working. It¡¯s what I know best.¡±This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?.
¡°Why didn¡¯t you tell me sooner? Come work at my ce. I can rmend you.¡±
Nughed. ¡°You alwaysin about your boss. You¡¯ve painted him as a tyrant. Are you sure you want me to join you?¡±
There was a brief silence on the other end of the line before a male voice chimed in. ¡°Vrie, since when am I a tyrant?¡±
The voice was distant butced with a dangerous edge.
Vrieughed nervously. ¡°N, uh¡ I¡¯ve got to go. Let me know how the interview goes. We¡¯ll have lunch.¡±
Before N could respond, Vrie hung up.
Noting thete hour, N raised an eyebrow. Vrie was usually disciplined in her routine. Having someone over, especially her boss, at this hour was unusual. She¡¯d have to dig for details the next day.
N set her phone down and chose a modest light green dress, appropriate for the interview. She then put the other clothes away, grabbed her pajamas, and headed to the bathroom.
After the shower, she dried her hair,pleted her skincare routine, and went to bed.
¡
Meanwhile, in the study.
rk hesitated before anonymously posting online, asking for advice on winning back his wife after cheating. The responses urging him to divorce and let her go infuriated him, so he deleted the post.
As he was about to head to bed, his phone rang. It was a message from Jordyn.
CHAPTER 8
¡°A friend of yours?¡±
A sh of disgust crossed Lucia¡¯s eyes. ¡°No, someone | dislike.¡±
¡°Anyone you dislike must not be a good person,¡± the colleague said, trying to tter her.
Lucia appreciated it. ¡°Let¡¯s not talk about it. It¡¯s a mood killer.¡±
When N arrived at the restaurant, Vrie was just getting there too.
Linking arms, they walked in together.
¡°How did the interview go?¡±
¡°It went alright, but I¡¯m not sure if I¡¯ll get the job.¡±
¡°If you don¡¯t, just try anotherpany. There are plenty of pharmaceuticalpanies in the city. Anypany would be lucky to have you.¡±
¡°Thanks for the confidence, but I haven¡¯t worked in ab for years.¡±
Drug research required a lot of experience, and aside from the three years N had spent in theb during her graduate studies, she didn¡¯t have much professional experience.
¡°Don¡¯t
worry. Once you start working, you¡¯ll catch up quickly,¡± Vrie said.
She knew that N had always been dedicated, often working tirelessly for results and data. ¡°Enough about that. Last night on the phone, I heard a man¡¯s voice. What¡¯s going on?¡±
Vrie blushed, avoiding N¡¯s gaze. ¡°Did you? Are you sure?¡±
N stared at her. ¡°Vrie, I¡¯m not hard of hearing. I clearly heard a man at your cest night.
Vrie¡¯s cheeks reddened further. She knew she couldn¡¯t avoid it. ¡°Alright, alright. It was my boss¡ We¡¯re dating.¡±
N didn¡¯t respond, her eyes fixed on a spot in the restaurant, growing red.
Vrie¡¯s heart sank. Following N¡¯s gaze, Vrie saw rk sitting with a woman who was crying and asionally giving him a longing look.
Chapter B
Vrie couldn¡¯t believe rk would be so brazen, openly bringing his mistress to a public ce. ¡°Is that the woman he¡¯s seeing?¡±
¡°Yes.¡± N tried not to care, but seeing them together felt like a hand tightening around her heart. It made it hard to breathe.
¡°I¡¯m going to confront her! How dare she unt her affair in public!¡±
N quickly grabbed Vrie¡¯s arm. ¡°Don¡¯t.¡±
Confronting them would only humiliate herself further.
¡°How can you stand this¡¡± Before Vrie could finish, she saw N¡¯s near¨Ctearful expression and felt a pang in her heart. ¡°Don¡¯t cry. He¡¯s not worth it!¡±
N rubbed her eyes and took a deep breath. ¡°I know.¡±
The moment rk cheated, he stopped being worth any of her feelings. However, after loving him for eight years, it was impossible for her to simply switch off her emotions. Eventually, she would distance herself from him until he was nothing but a stranger.
Without looking back, N turned and walked away.
rk sensed someone staring at him, but when he looked up, he saw no one.
Next to him, Jordyn continued to sob softly, further irritating him.
He lit a cigarette and said coldly, ¡°If you won¡¯t get rid of it, I have ways to make sure you don¡¯t carry it to
term.¡±
rk grabbed his phone, ring at the message with a dark expression. He and Jordyn had always used protection, so either she was lying, or she had tampered with the condoms. Either way, it crossed a line
for rk.
He called her directly. ¡°Where are you right now?¡±
Jordyn felt a pang of bitterness when she heard the anger in his voice. ¡°rk, I¡¯m pregnant. Aren¡¯t you happy at all?¡±
rk let out a cold you know better if it¡¯s yours or not?¡±
Her tone was usatory, with a hint of grievance, but rk just felt annoyed.
¡°Get rid of it.¡±
The only woman he wanted to have children with was N. Women like Jordyn, who threw themselves at him, were just for fun. He never took them seriously.
¡°No, this is our child. I¡¯m keeping it.¡±
rk frowned in irritation. If he had known she was so troublesome, he wouldn¡¯t have touched her. ¡°I¡¯m asking onest time, where are you?¡±
There was a brief silence before Jordyn¡¯s tearful voice came through. ¡°Are you nning to force me to. have an abortion?¡±
rk didn¡¯t reply, his silence answering her.
¡°If you don¡¯t want this child, I¡¯ll raise it on my own. I won¡¯t let it know who its father is¡¡±
Before she could finish, rk hung up and instructed his secretary to find out where she was.
When N discovered his affair, he quickly learned that Jordyn was behind it and kicked her out of thepany. He didn¡¯t expect her to have a backup n.
That child couldn¡¯t be born. If it was, his rtionship with N would be truly over.
Late that night, N, half awake, heard the car engine start but didn¡¯t think much of it.
The following morning.
During breakfast, the housekeeper mentioned that rk had left in a hurry during the night, possibly due to an issue at work.
N didn¡¯t respond, sipping her milk with a hint of mockery in her eyes.
An issue at work? It was more likely he was rushing to see that other woman.
?
A1
O
As she left, she messaged Vrie to ask where they should meet for lunch.
Vrie replied with a restaurant address.
N put away her phone, got in her car, and set the GPS Text content ? N?velDrama.Org.
What she didn¡¯t notice was a woman in ab coat with delicate makeup staring in her direction with at slight frown.
The woman¡¯s colleague, also in ab coat, nced where she was looking but only saw N¡¯s car disappearing around the corner. ¡°Lucia, what are you looking at?¡±
Lucia Pord shook her head. ¡°Nothing¡ I thought I saw someone I knew. Must have been mistaken.¡±
CHAPTER 9
Jordyn¡¯s sobs stopped abruptly, her eyes filled with grievance. ¡°rk, my feelings for you are genuine.¡±
The thought of her scheming made rk feel a surge of disgust. ¡°What¡¯s your ¡®genuine feelings¡® worth?¡±
He pulled out a bank card and tossed it on the table, his expression cold. ¡°There¡¯s 300,000 dors on this card. Take the money and get an abortion. Otherwise, I¡¯ll have my bodyguards drag you to the hospital. You know what to choose.¡±
Jordyn hesitated for a moment, then grabbed the card with trembling hands and ran out of the restaurant
in tears.
rk called his bodyguards to make sure they followed her to the hospital, then hung up in frustration. Upon seeing the photo of N on his screen saver, his expression softened. Without much hesitation, he called her.This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?.
It rang for a long time before she answered.
¡°What do you want?¡±
N¡¯s cold tone was like a bucket of ice water, instantly cooling rk¡¯s previously warm heart from thinking of her. He clenched his phone tightly, trying to hide his disappointment. ¡°Nothing, just wanted to hear your voice. Have you eaten?¡±
N¡¯s eyes shed with sarcasm, rk was with Jordyn and still had time to think about her¨Che really was a multitasking master.
¡°I¡¯m eating now. If there¡¯s nothing else, I¡¯m hanging up.
There was a brief silence on the other end before rk¡¯s deep voice came through. ¡°Okay. I won¡¯t workte tonight. Let¡¯s have dinner together when I get home.¡±
The only response rk got was the sound of the call ending
In the private room.
Vrie spoke angrily after N put down her phone, ¡°He¡¯s such a scumbag! Eating with his mistress while calling to ask about you!¡±
She used to think rk was one of a kind and believed he would make N happy.
N picked up the menu, her eyes downcast. ¡°Let¡¯s not talk about him. It¡¯ll ruin my appetite. Let¡¯s order,¡±
Seeing N try to stayposed, Vrie felt a pang of sympathy. She knew that when it came to matters of the heart, only time could heal. No amount of words from others would help.
Luckily, N was clear¨Cheaded and had no ns to forgive rk.
After ordering, they chatted casually.
Suddenly, Vrie remembered something. ¡°By the way, I heard Prospectus Technology is nning to invest in Park Pharmaceuticals. If I remember correctly, Prospectus Technology¡¯s CEO, Damon Summer, is rk¡¯s uncle, right?¡±
10
N paused at Damon¡¯s name, gripping her ss a bit tighter as she recalled the heat of his breath on her ear that night. The invasive feeling still made her shudder. She forced the memory away and replied with
a hum.
¡°Do you want to consider applying to a differentpany? It¡¯d be awkward to see the Summers if you divorce rk.¡±
N shook her head, setting down her ss. ¡°Even if I join Park Pharmaceuticals, I¡¯ll just be a regr pharmacist. He wouldn¡¯t notice me. Besides, rk and his uncle aren¡¯t close.¡±
Moreover, rk was the one who had cheated. If anyone should avoid awkwardness, it should be the
Sumners, not her.
¡°Since they aren¡¯t close, can you ask his uncle for help with the divorce?¡±
¡°Even if they don¡¯t get along, they¡¯re still both Sumners. Do you think he¡¯d help me?¡±
¡°Good point¡¡± Vrie sighed, looking disappointed.
N couldn¡¯t help but chuckle. ¡°Divorce isn¡¯t something that can be rushed. Right now, my priority is finding a job and moving out. The rest will follow.¡±
¡°Alright, I¡¯ll take the afternoon off to help you look for a ce.¡±
¡°No need. I can handle it.¡±
Vrie nodded reluctantly. ¡°Fine, but call me if you need anything. Move on a weekend, and I¡¯lle help
¡°Don¡¯t worry. I won¡¯t hesitate to ask when I need you.¡±
After lunch, they parted ways at the restaurant entrance.
N contacted several agents and looked at a few ces, preferring a one¨Cbedroom apartment that was over 60 square meters. She liked the decor and location, but the rent was steep.
Considering her dwindling bank bnce, she decided on a cheaper apartment farther from downtown. Despite that, she chose to wait for the interview results from Park Pharmaceuticals before signing the
lease.
It was past 6:00 p.m. when N returned to the vi.
rk was sitting in the living room. Hearing the door, he looked up and was momentarily stunned.
4
N wore a light green dress with her hair in a high ponytail, revealing her slender, fair neck. She looked put together and lively with a hint of yfulness.
Since their wedding, she had to attend events with him and adhere to the standards of a wealthy wife even at home. Once, rk¡¯s mother visited and criticized her for wearing casual clothes and a bun at home, and she never tied her hair up like that again.
rk had to admit that this lively version of N was far more attractive and captivating than the version restrained by the Sumners¡® rules. Yet, alongside his attraction, a sense of unease crept in, as if she could
leave him at any moment.
¡°Where did you go today? Patricia said you left right after breakfast.¡±
N changed her shoes as she responded. ¡°I went job hunting¡±
¡°Whichpany? Do you need me to make a call for you?¡±
N f
frowned at him. ¡°This is nty business. I don¡¯t want you involved.¡±
If he intervened, it would be no different from being under his watchful eye at the Sumner Group.
Seeing the resistance in her eyes, rk felt hurt. ¡°N, I just want to help.¡±
¡°Thanks, but no thanks.¡± She walked past him, heading upstairs.
As she passed the sofa, rk grabbed her wrist.
her
In the next second, a bouquet appeared in front of her. It was the same Juliet roses he had given when he confessed his love. The flower symbolized a protective, pure, sincere, selfless, and evesting love. Since then, she had only bought these flowers from the florist..
Now, seeing the fresh roses, N felt nothing but irony. Her marriage with rk, tainted by his infidelity. no longer deserved words like ¡°sincere¡± and ¡°evesting¡°.
Upon seeing her silence, rk¡¯s voice softened. ¡°I passed by a florist today and thought of getting you some flowers.¡±
N pulled her hand away, looking him in the eye. Her gaze held nothing but disgust, impatience, and coldness¨Cno trace of love remained. ¡°No need. I never liked these flowers,¡±
CHAPTER 10
rk froze for a moment and instinctively said, ¡°But you always buy these flowers when you go to the florist.¡±
N looked away, rk had probably forgotten that he had given her Jullet roses the day he confessed. It didn¡¯t matter anymore. If he could betray their rtionship, it was no surprise that he couldn¡¯t remember such a small detail.
¡°That was in the past.¡±
She walked past him directly to the bedroom. She could feel his gaze on her, but she no longer cared if her words hurt him.
After changing clothes anding downstairs, the housekeeper had already set dinner on the table. ¡°Mr. and Mrs. Sumner, dinner is ready.¡±
N nodded and went straight to the table, starting to eat without even ncing at rk.
rk frowned but said nothing, silently sitting across from her.
The housekeeper, Patricia Bambra, noticed the tension between them and guessed they had argued. She picked up the flowers from the coffee table, smiling at N. ¡°Mrs. Sumner, should I arrange these flowers in your room as usual?¡±
¡°No, just throw them away.¡±
In the past, even when they argued, N had never been this cold. Patricia was momentarily at a loss and looked toward rk.
Without lifting his head, rk said indifferently, ¡°Do as she says. Throw them away.¡±
Patricia regretted her words, realizing she had said the wrong thing. She quickly put the flowers down and retreated to the kitchen. After a moment¡¯s hesitation, she sent a message to rk¡¯s mother, feeling that this argument was different from the ones before.
After dinner, N got up and headed back to the bedroom. Just as she was about to close the door, a hand stopped it.
¡°N, are you nning to stay this cold to me forever? We¡¯re supposed to spend our lives together¨CId rather you hit or scold me than give me the silent treatment.¡±
N remained expressionless as she looked up at rk, noting his helpless expression, just like after their past arguments when he would try to coax her.
He always tried to downy his behavior, exploiting her soft heart to gain¡® forgiveness.
After eight years together, she knew him too well. Forgiving him this time would only lead to countless future betrayals. Once someone crossed the line, they¡¯d only bring deeper hurt each time.
¡°If it were me who cheated, could you remain calm and even forgive me so quickly?¡±
rk¡¯s grip tightened on the door handle, his veins bulging. His eyes were filled with anger and at dangerous intent. If he ever saw N with another man, he knew he wouldn¡¯t be able to stop himself from killing that man.
N found his sudden cold demeanor amusing. ¡°See? You can¡¯t do it yourself, so don¡¯t force it on others.¡±
rk looked at her and said deliberately, ¡°N, I will give you time to ept this, but you need to understand that I will never let you go.¡±
He knew N was job hunting to prepare for leaving him, but he was determined to show her that all her efforts were in vain.
rk¡¯s eyes, filled with possessiveness and obsession, made N¡¯s heart lurch, and a chill ran down her spine. She knew that beneath his gentle facade, he could be uncontroble. If she insisted on a divorce, things would not end well between them.
When rk saw the fear in N¡¯s eyes, he realized he had scared her and softened his expression. ¡°Don¡¯t be afraid. As long as you stay by my side, I won¡¯t hurt you.¡±
He reached out to tuck a stray hair behind her ear, but she instinctively stepped back, leaving his hand hanging in the air.
The tension hung for a few seconds before rk casually retracted his hand.
*I¡¯m going on a business trip tomorrow for half a month. When Ie back, I¡¯ll move back into the bedroom. Be ready for it.¡±
N closed the door, her back already damp with sweat. She understood his message¨Che was giving her two weeks to ept and forgive his infidelity.
She needed to move out as soon as possible.
Her phone chimed with a message from Park Pharmaceuticals¡® HR department. She had been hired, though the sry was lower than she had hoped.
With no better options, she confirmed her start date for the following Monday and immediately contacted the real estate agent.
The next day, N signed a one¨Cyear lease for an apartment, paying three months¡® rent upfront. After paying, she had only a few hundred left in her ount.
She didn¡¯t rush back home but instead bought cleaning supplies and thoroughly cleaned the new By noon, she was exhausted but felt aplished seeing the tidy apartment.
Over the next few days, N packed her belongings at the vi.
On Saturday, Vrie came to help her move.
Patricia was puzzled when she saw N with a suitcase. ¡°Mrs. Sumner¡ are you going on a trip?¡± N shook her head, smiling. ¡°I¡¯m moving out. Thank you for taking care of me all these years.¡± Patricia was taken aback. She had sensed something was wrong between N and rk. They used to spend so much time together, but recently they barely interacted. Besides, N hadn¡¯t called rk once while he was away on business, unlike before when she would call him every night.
¡°Mrs. Sumner¡ did you and Mr. Sumner have a fight?¡±
N¡¯s hand tightened on the suitcase handle. After a few seconds, she replied softly, ¡°Not really. I found a job, and living outside will be more convenient.¡±
With that, she nodded politely to Patricia and walked out without looking back.
Watching her leave, Patricia felt a growing sense of unease and quickly called rk.
¡°Mr. Sumner, Mrs, Sumner just left with a suitcase!¡±
rk was escorting a business partner to the elevator when he received the call. The words made his smile freeze, and his mood darkened instantly. He hadn¡¯t expected N to leave while he was away!
¡°Got it.¡± Ending the call, rk quickly called N.
N wasn¡¯t surprised to see rk¡¯s name on the screen. She knew he¡¯d be informed the moment she left
the vi.Text content ? N?velDrama.Org.
Pressing her lips together, she answered the call.
As soon as it connected, rk¡¯s angry voice came through. ¡°N, I don¡¯t agree with you moving out. Go home immediately!¡±
CHAPTER 11
rk¡¯smanding tone made N Instinctively frown. ¡°Whether you agree or not, I¡¯m moving out.¡±
N¡¯s indifferent tone fueled rk¡¯s anger even more. His voice rose. ¡°Don¡¯t forget, your father¡¯s medical expenses-¡±
Before he could finish, N coldly interrupted, ¡°rk, ifI remember correctly, your Uncle Elijah¡¯s son is returning from studying abroad soon: You wouldn¡¯t want your affair to be known to the Summers at this time, would you?¡±
Elijah Sumner, rk¡¯s second uncle, wasn¡¯t very capable, so Richard had invested a lot in Elijah¡¯s son. After all, the Sumner Group was so big that they couldn¡¯t give everything to rk.
Over the years, rk had always performed well in front of Richard. Now was a crucial time. He couldn¡¯t let N tell Richard about his affair.
N had also considered this point in her choice to move out at this time.
There was silence on the other end of the phone. After a while, there was a lowugh. ¡°N, I never realized before that you were a rabbit that would bite.¡±
rk¡¯s voice was chilly, clearly filled with anger.
before but now they were
N lowered her gaze, suddenly feeling a bit sad. They had been so in love before, but now threatening and disgusted with each other. ¡°You taught me this.¡±
rk didn¡¯t respond. After a coldugh, he hung up.
N put down her phone, suppressing the bitterness in her heart, and forced herself not to think about rk anymore.
Vrie saw the vulnerability sh in N¡¯s eyes as she turned around and sighed inwardly. N had truly loved rk. It would probably take a long time for her to let go of the pain and disappointment of his betrayal
Once they finished moving and unpacking. N nned to treat Vrie to dinner, but Vrie refused. ¡°I have a date with my boyfriend tonight. Besides, you¡¯ve just moved out, and everything costs money. It¡¯s better to save for now. Let¡¯s wait until you get paid, then you can treat me. It¡¯s almost time for my date, so I¡¯ll leave first. Bye!¡±
Before N could say anything. Vrie hurriedly left. Knowing that Vrie cared about her, N fel wave of warmth in her heart
Although she had lost love, she still had friendship and family love, which was enough to make her hopeful about life again.
After Vrie left, N didn¡¯t n to eat out. She decided to go to the grocery store to buy some Seasonings and groceries to cook at home.
With her keys in hand, she walked to the nearest store,
Having bought what she needed and leaving the grocery store, she realized it had started raining heavily
outside. It urred to her that the weather forecast had indeed mentioned rain In Saintornia recently.
N stood at the entrance, deciding to wait until the rain eased before heading back.
In a ck Maybach on the roadside, Spencer Hogg saw N standing at the grocery store entrance and felt a sense of familiarity. He looked a few times before saying, ¡°Mr. Sumner, Isn¡¯t that Ms. Jayston standing at the grocery store entrance?¡±
Spencer had met N a few times when he apanied Damon to banquets. However, if he
remembered correctly, rk and N lived in the southern part of the city. Why would she be there at this hour, without any service staff or drivers?
Damon, who was looking at the documents in the back seat, turned his head to look at the somewhat distressed woman holding a bunch of things and standing awkwardly at the grocery store entrance. He withdrew his gaze and hummed.
¡°Ms. Jayston seems to be trapped by the rain. Should we give her a ride? Just as Spencer finished speaking¨Che realized that the temperature in the car had dropped a few degrees.
¡°Do you have nothing to do?¡±
Realizing Damon¡¯s displeasure, Spencer quickly exined, ¡°Ms. Jayston is your niece¨Cinw, isn¡¯t she? If it were another woman, I wouldn¡¯t dare to speak out.
¡°Besides, we don¡¯t know when this rain will stop. It¡¯s quite dangerous for Ms. Jayston to be outside alone at thiste hour.¡±N?velDrama.Org owns this.
Damon scoffed lightly as he recalled how N had gotten the room wrong that night. It had been quite dangerous. Such a foolish woman was rare. If she had encountered another man that night, she might have been taken advantage of.
When Damon didn¡¯t speak, Spencer hesitated and asked, ¡°Mr. Sumner, should we go or¡
¡°You just said she¡¯s my niece¨Cinw. If I turn a blind eye now, won¡¯t others say Ick empathy?¡±
Spencer was rendered speechless, thinking that Damon usuallycked empathy anyway.
N waited for a while. Seeing that the rain was not only continuing but seemed to be getting heavier, she hesitated about hailing a cab.
Just then, a ck Maybach stopped right in front of her.
The rear window lowered, revealing Damon¡¯s cool face,
N was taken aback, clearly not expecting to meet him here.
¡°Get in. I¡¯ll take you back,¡± he said coldly, his face devoid of expression, giving off an intimidating vibe. N took a step back and shook her head. ¡°Uncle Damon, it¡¯s okay. The rain will stop in a while.¡± Damon frowned seeing how N seemed to be avoiding him. His voice deepened. ¡°Get in the car. Don¡¯t make me say it a third time.¡±
His imposing presence almost took N¡¯s breath away She involuntarily tightened her grip on the bag she was carrying.
Before she could refuse, the front passenger door suddenly opened, and Spencer got out to take the things from her hands. ¡°Ms. Jayston, get in the car. This rain willst at least another hour, and it¡¯s windy here. You are dressed lightly and might catch a cold.¡±
N couldn¡¯t refuse any longer as Spencer had already put her things in the trunk. She bit her lip and opened the car door to get in. As soon as she sat down, the faint woody fragrance on Damon Invaded her senses, causing her to involuntarily stiffen.
Her hands, hanging by her side, subconsciously clenched the hem of her shirt.
The memory of that night when she almost went too far with Damon was too vivid, making her feel awkward just being with him.
Damon seemed not to notice N¡¯s difort. He put down the documents in his hand and looked at her. ¡°Why did youe so far to get groceries?¡±
¡°I moved here recently. Uncle Damon, you can drop me off at the entrance of The Fleur.¡±
¡°Did you have a fight with rk?¡±
¡°No, I found a job recently, and living here is closer to thepany.¡±
Damon didn¡¯t speak again, and the car fell silent.
Soon, the car stopped at the entrance of The Fleur, and N silently breathed a sigh of relief.
¡°Thank you for sending me back, Uncle Damon.¡±
She was about to push the door and get out when suddenly an umbre was handed to her.
N immediately noticed Damon¡¯s hand, as she was someone who appreciated hands. She had even developed a liking for rk starting from when she saw his hands.
The joints of the hand holding the umbre were distinct, fair, making it hard for her to look away.
¡°Take it.¡±
She instinctively refused. ¡®No need, I can run back-
Before she finished speaking, Damon¡¯s somewhat impatient voice sounded. ¡°Do you want to get soaked like a drowned rat?¡±
N went silent. After hesitating for a moment, she still took the umbre from Damon. ¡°Thank you¡.¡±
Damon didn¡¯t say anything, his expression somewhat indifferent.
As N got out, Spencer had already taken the things from the trunk. ¡°Ms: Jayston, should I send you upstairs?¡±
No need. I don¡¯t have much stuff. I can manage on my own.¡±
Spencer didn¡¯t insist either. After all, Damon had a meetingter.
After handing N¡¯s things to her, he got back in the car and left.
Watching the ck Maybach¡¯s tail lights disappear from sight, N turned and walked toward her rented apartment.
#
In the car, Damon picked up the documents and said with a nk face, ¡°Find out what¡¯s going on between N and rk.¡±
CHAPTER 12
Chapter 12
On Monday morning at eight sharp, N arrived punctually at Park Pharmaceuticals.
The HRpleted her onboarding and showed her around thepany, familiarizing her with the departments¡® locations. Afterward, she was escorted to the office of the R&D department manager.
The R&D manager, Genevieve Reeve, was a woman in her 40s with a neat short haircut. She was not one to smile easily, giving off a serious vibe.
¡°Have a seat,¡± she said after N sat down. ¡°I¡¯ve reviewed your resume. You achieved quite a bit during your school days, but you haven¡¯t been in theb for the past few years. You¡¯ll start as an assistant.¡±
¡°Okay.¡±
Genevieve approved of N¡¯s calmposure without any hint of dissatisfaction. She liked subordinates who were down¨Cto¨Cearth. So far, N seemed reliable.
Genevieve stood up and addressed N. ¡°Let me introduce you to your colleagues.¡±
She led N into the R&D department and raised her voice. ¡°Everyone, hold on a moment. We have a new member in our department today. N, please introduce yourself.¡±
N stepped forward with a smile. ¡°Hello, everyone. I¡¯m N Jayston, your new recruit in the R&D department. There¡¯s a lot I may not be familiar with initially, so please guide me along the way.¡±
As soon as she finished speaking, a sudden exmation came from her left. ¡®Lucia! You added the wrong reagent!¡±
N turned toward the voice and recognized the frantic woman tidying up the reagents. She was surprised to see Lucia there.
Lucia¡¯s father, Clement Pord, was the procurement manager at Harris Pharmaceuticals, where he and Harrison had developed a close friendship from their university days. As a result, the Jayston and Pord families were quite close, and N grew up alongside Lucia
However, after the Jaystons went bankrupt, the Pords quickly distanced themselves, and Lucia even blocked N.
Later, N learned from Vrie that at a high school reunion, Lucia had imed she never considered N a friend and had only been nice to her because of her father¡¯s job at Harris Pharmaceuticals
This revtion had made N realize that not everyone who smiled at her genuinely liked her¨Csome simply found her useful.
Genevieve looked at Lucia, frowning. ¡°What¡¯s going on? Aren¡¯t you usually the most careful?¡±
Pouring out the reaction sk with the wrong reagent in a hurry, Lucia looked guilty as she nced at Genevieve. ¡°I got distracted for a moment. I¡¯m sorry.¡±
Lucia usually did her work meticulously, so Genevieve didn¡¯t continue to chastise her, just reminding her to be more careful next time.
¡°Since you have more experience in experiments, N will assist you for now. Brief her on theb protocols and get her up to speed.¡±
1,3
Lucia lowered her head, concealing her underlying disdain. ¡°Okay.¡±
After giving a few more instructions, Genevieve left.
Lucia looked at N with a fake smile. ¡°N, I didn¡¯t expect you to work at Park Pharmaceuticals. I saw you from a distance at thepany gate a few days ago. I couldn¡¯t believe it was really you.¡±
N didn¡¯t miss the hint of disdain in Lucia¡¯s eyes. She looked at Lucia Indifferently without responding to herment. ¡°What do I need to do today?¡±
Lucia¡¯s smile froze. She bit her lip, looking somewhat aggrieved. ¡°N, are you still ming me for what happened before? When your father¡¯s pharmaceutical factory had that incident¡ My family would have been affected too if I hadn¡¯t distanced myself from you. You understand my situation, right?¡±
Although the others appeared to be focused on their work, they were all actually listening attentively. Given Lucia¡¯s words and N¡¯s reaction, it seemed there was some past conflict between the two, and it was likely juicy gossip.
N didn¡¯t want to engage in reminiscing with her.
She said expressionlessly, ¡°Ms. Pord, I¡¯m here to work, not to dwell on the past. Besides, you just added the wrong reagent, and the experiment needs to start over from scratch. If you don¡¯t get a move on, the entireb will have to work overtime because of your mistake.¡±
Lucia gritted her teeth inwardly upon seeing the unfriendly looks from her colleagues. She hadn¡¯t. expected N to be so sharp¨Ctongued after all these years.
Still smiling and intentionally softening her voice, Lucia said, ¡°You just started today, and there isn¡¯t any specific work for you to do yet. You can start by washing those reagent bottles over there.¡±
N nced over where Lucia pointed, a corner where there were 70-80 reagent bottles needing cleaning. It seemed like she had been assigned all the umted reagent bottles in the entireb.
Lucia¡¯s smile grew a bit smug as she watched N look at those bottles without saying a word. Once N refused, she would go straight to Genevieve to tell on her.
Genevieve detested people who were both arrogant and ipetent, so she would surely start to dislike N. This meant Lucia could easily manipte her in the future.
However, N didn¡¯t say anything and simply walked toward the corner where the reagent bottles were piled up.
Watching N¡¯s back, Lucia smirked. Now that N was in her hands, she could do whatever she wanted. She would make N regret evering to work at Park Pharmaceuticals!
N worked straight through until 9.00 p.m., cleaning all the reagent bottles.
When she finally put down the brush, she felt like her back wasn¡¯t her own anymore.
She got home after 10:00 p.m. and took a shower before preparing to sleep. Just as she set down her phone, it pinged.
N frowned slightly when she took a look. She recognized the profile picture¨Cit was rk¡¯s secretary.
The day after she found out about rk¡¯s affair, she had deleted Jordyn from her contacts. She couldn¡¯t believe Jordyn had the nerve to add her again.
N ignored it, but Jordyn clearly wasn¡¯t giving up. She sent a message.
Jordyn: [Ms. Jayston, I¡¯m pregnant.]
N froze, her fingers gripping the phone until they turned white.
After a pause of more than ten seconds, she calmed down. She took a screenshot and sent it to rk, then promptly blocked Jordyn to avoid being revolted by her again.
rk¡¯s response came quickly.
rk: [N, this is an ident. I will handle it properly promise she won¡¯t appear in front of you again.]Text content ? N?velDrama.Org.
N felt his promise was insincere. He had made simr promises before, and what had happened then?
She didn¡¯t reply and simply deleted their chat history.
Over the next few days, whenever N arrived at theb, Lucia assigned her a bunch of menial tasks. As forb protocols and how to conduct experiments, Lucia didn¡¯t say a word.
Soon, a week passed.
On Friday evening, Genevieve came to theb to check on N¡¯s progress.
Seeing her cleaning theb, Genevieve frowned and asked Lucia, ¡°What¡¯s going on? I didn¡¯t hire her to do menial tasks.¡±
Lucia put on an innocent look, somewhat helpless as she said, ¡°It¡¯s not that I don¡¯t want to assign her work. She hasn¡¯t done experiments in years, so she can only start with the basics. That¡¯s why she¡¯s only doing these tasks for now.¡±
CHAPTER 13
Genevieve looked at N. ¡°Have you gained anything in theb these days?¡±
*I¡¯ve observed that the current focus in theb is on developing drugs for cardiovascr diseases. The progress of drug development is about 50%plete, and we¡¯re preparing for the experimental stage using mice.¡±
Upon hearing that, Genevieve¡¯s expression brightened slightly, and her gaze toward N carried a hint of approval. ¡°Well done. How about your learning progress with theb equipment?¡±
¡°It¡¯sing along.¡±
On the side, Lucia frowned at N. ¡°N, I know you¡¯re eager to conduct experiments, but experiments are serious business. There are several instruments we haven¡¯t used recently. How can you say you¡¯ve almost learned them?¡±
Nmented tly, ¡°I¡¯ve used these instruments during my university years.¡±
¡°You said it yourself, that was years ago. You haven¡¯t been in ab for quite some time. You need to learn everything again from scratch. We¡¯re dealing with drug development here. There¡¯s no room for any carelessness.¡±
¡°How do you know I haven¡¯t learned from scratch?¡±
Lucia bit her lip, disappointment evident as she looked at N. ¡°You¡¯ve been doing menial tasks in theb these days. How could you find time to learn? Don¡¯t lie just to impress Genevieve.¡±
N smiled. ¡°So you know too. With all the odd jobs assigned to me these days, I haven¡¯t had the chance to learn how to use theb equipment.¡±
Lucia froze, subconsciously digging her nails into her palms. She had underestimated N!
¡°N¡ Are you implying that I deliberately prevented you from learning how to use the equipment?¡±
¡°Why would I? I appreciate your ¡®care¡® for me.¡±
Lucia wanted to say more, but Genevieve interrupted her, ¡°Alright, since you say you¡¯ve almost learned everything, there¡¯s an extraction involved in today¡¯s experiment. You¡¯ll be handling this step.¡±
N nodded and went to operate the equipment.
Initially, Lucia had nned to wait for N to make a mistake so she could seize the opportunity to make Genevieve dislike her. Unexpectedly, every step N took was precise and wless.
It wasn¡¯t until Genevieve praised N that Lucia snapped out of her reverie, a long¨Cforgotten panic rising in her heart.
Before N¡¯s family went bankrupt, people only saw N and ignored Lucia whenever they were together. Now, she felt like she was going back to living in N¡¯s shadow.
Was she destined to live under N¡¯s shadow forever? She refused to ept that!
After praising N, Genevieve called her into her office and handed her a document. ¡°Thepany is preparing to develop a drug for treating asthma. Other researchers are currently upied, so I intend to
assign this project to you. Do you feel confident about it?¡±
N was astonished. She hadn¡¯t expected Genevieve to entrust her with such an important task so quickly.
After reviewing the materials, she looked at Genevieve, ¡°I can¡¯t handle this project independently.¡±
¡°I know. Lucia¡¯s current project will wrap up in another month or two. By then, I¡¯ll have her teame over to assist you.¡±
Upon hearing Lucia¡¯s name, N couldn¡¯t help but frown. Given Lucia¡¯s dislike toward her, she doubted Lucia would cooperate well. In fact, she might even scheme behind her back.
Although they were in the sameb, there would be no escape if Lucia decided to target her.
With that in mind, N nodded. ¡°Alright, I understand.¡±
¡°Good. Work hard on this. Come to me with progress reports every week from now on. You can start preparing.
As N left Genevieve¡¯s office, Lucia stopped her when she reached the entrance of theb.
¡°N, you did this on purpose, didn¡¯t you?¡±
N remained unfazed by Lucia¡¯s furious expression. ¡°What are you talking about? I don¡¯t understand.¡°.
Lucia sneered. ¡°I¡¯ve assigned you those¡¯menial tasks these days, and you didn¡¯t say a word. Wasn¡¯t it your n to wait until Genevieve came around and make her think I was targeting you?¡±
N hadn¡¯t intended to waste time arguing with Lucia, However, seeing Lucia so confidently usatory, she looked at her with a hint of seriousness. ¡°Are you saying you haven¡¯t targeted me?¡®
¡°Even if I did, so what? Every new persones in like you did. Do you still think you¡¯re the Ms. N Jayston, expecting the whole world to revolve around you?¡±
As N observed Lucia¡¯s sardonic demeanor, she realized how blinded she had been before, actually believing that Lucia was genuinely treating her as a friend.
¡°I¡¯m not the type of neer to swallow grievances. Don¡¯t mistake me for a pushover. Let bygones be bygones. If you continue with your petty schemes against me in the future, I won¡¯t hold back because of our past.¡±
Lucia initially wanted to retort, but an involuntary sense of guilt rose within her upon meeting N¡¯s icy gaze. It left her momentarily speechless and mentally nk.
N ignored her and walked away.
After work, N returned home, cooked, ate quickly, and then began researching materials for drug development. As she delved deeper into her research, drowsiness crept over her, and she fell asleep on herputer.
In a daze, she felt someone lifting her and cing her gently on her bed. Turning over, she prepared to go
back to sleep but suddenly remembered she lived alone, which startled her awake.
23
She abruptly opened her eyes, only to see rk¡¯s handsome profile, which simultaneously relieved and infuriated her.
She sat up, ring at rk with a cold expression. ¡°How did you get in?!¡±
¡°N, I haven¡¯t slept for three days so I could rush back. Let me rest for a while, okay?¡± rk¡¯s voice was hoarse andden with exhaustion.
N noticed that his usually impably styled short hair was slightly messy, his eyes were bloodshot, and a shadow of stubble covered his chin. He looked somewhat disheveled.
In the past, she would have felt sorry for him, but now, she only felt annoyed.
rk had not rushed back because he wanted to see her sooner. He was afraid she would expose Jordyn¡¯s pregnancy scandal to the Sumners, affecting his position in the Sumner Group.
¡°Leave my house right now, or I will call the police.¡± As N spoke, she reached for her phone on the bedside table.
Before she could dial, rk snatched the phone away. He looked at her with a pained expression, as if she hadmitted an unforgivable offense. ¡°N, do you really despise me this much now?¡±
N took a deep breath to calm herself. ¡°This question is meaningless. Leave. I don¡¯t want to see you.¡±
¡°I won¡¯t leave. You¡¯re my wife, and wherever you are, I¡¯ll be there.¡±Text content ? N?velDrama.Org.
N frowned. She was about to speak, when her phone, gripped tightly in rk¡¯s hand, suddenly rang.
ac
Seeing it was a call from the hospital, rk answered without hesitation.
¡°Ms. Jayston, pleasee to the hospital immediately. Your father has suddenly copsed!¡±
CHAPTER 14
apter 14
N¡¯s face turned pale as she snatched the phone back from rk¡¯s hand. ¡°I¡¯ll head there right away!¡±
rk grabbed her hand. ¡°I¡¯ll go with you.¡±
Without giving N a chance to refuse, he pulled her along toward the door.
N tried to shake off his grip but failed, frowning in frustration. ¡°Let go of me. I can go by myself.¡±
rk looked back at her with a hint of helplessness. ¡°N, your father¡¯s health is at stake right now. Let¡¯s put aside our argument forter, okay?¡±
N had wanted to point out that their situation wasn¡¯t just a simple argument, but her father¡¯s condition was more pressing. She didn¡¯t have the energy to argue with him either.
They rushed to the emergency room, where they saw Wren Hackett anxiously waiting on a bench in the corridor, her eyes red.
N hurried over. ¡°Wren, what happened? Wasn¡¯t Dad¡¯s condition stable all this time? Why did he suddenly copse?¡±
The doctors had previously assured them that as long as Harrison avoided stress, his condition would remain stable.
Wren couldn¡¯t hold back her tears once she saw N. It took her a while before she could speak. ¡°I don¡¯t know¡ Clement and his daughter came to visit your father this evening.
¡°After they left, your father remained silent. When I asked if something had happened, he didn¡¯t respond. Then suddenly he started coughing up blood and passed out¡¡±
N¡¯s expression turned icy cold.
The Pords had quickly distanced themselves from the Jaystons after the bankruptcy of Harris Pharmaceuticals. They hadn¡¯t visited Harrison in years, so their sudden appearance today clearly wasn¡¯t for good intentions.
Afterforting Wren and seeing her calm down, N stood up and went to the stairwell, calling Lucia directly. ¡°Lucia, what did your father and you say to my father today at the hospital?¡±
There was a chuckle on the other end of the phone, followed by Lucia¡¯s nonchnt voice. ¡°N, my father and I visited your father and reminisced about the past. What¡¯s the matter?¡±
Her casual tone sparked anger in N. ¡°What did my father do to wrong your family? Do you and your father have any conscience?¡±
If it weren¡¯t for Harrison, Clement wouldn¡¯t have secured the position of procurement manager at Harris
Pharmaceuticals, nor would he be where he is today.
Instead of showing any gratitude, they repaid kindness with malice, rushing to the hospital to provoke him. It was like nurturing an ungrateful viper.
¡°N, I wasn¡¯t nning to visit your father, but you insisted oning to Park Pharmaceuticals, which
left me feeling unsettled. Thus, I had to make you feel the same way.¡±
¡°So that¡¯s how it is¡¡± N lowered her gaze, her grip on her phone tightening slowly.
She hadn¡¯t wanted to deal with Lucia, but thetter had harmed her family. She wouldn¡¯t endure it any
longer.
¡°You will pay for your actions today.¡±
Lucia scoffed. ¡°Sure, I¡¯ll wait and see.¡±
She had heard that rk was having a passionate affair with his secretary. Soon, N would probably be kicked out. Without the Sumners¡¯s protection, getting rid of N would be as easy as squashing an ant
N didn¡¯t waste any more words with Lucia. She hung up and anonymously sent the files she had prepared earlier to Genevieve¡¯s email.
When she returned to the emergency room, the surgery light had just gone out.
Wren quickly stood up and walked to the operating room door, waiting. Seeing her trembling. N walked up and supported her.
The door to the operation room swung open, and a doctor emerged.
¡°Doctor, how is my husband?¡± Wren asked anxiously.
¡°He¡¯s temporarily out of danger, but from now on, he must avoid any stress. Otherwise, his body might not hold out until the day of the kidney transnt.¡±
Wren let out a heavy sigh of relief, wiping tears from her eyes and nodding repeatedly. ¡°Okay¡ Okay, 1
understand.¡±
¡°Well monitor his heart rate tonight. You can take turns staying with him. If you have any questions, please press the call button.¡±
Shortly after the doctor left, Harrison was wheeled out by the nurses.
Still under the effects of anesthesia, hey unconscious, his eyes closed tightly. His face, gaunt from illness, highlighted his prominent cheekbones, and hisplexioncked any color.
N couldn¡¯t help but burst into tears at the sight.
Since the bankruptcy of Harris Pharmaceuticals, Harrison had fallen ill and spent most of the past few years in the hospital, growing increasingly frail.
rk wrapped his arm around her shoulders and pulled her close. ¡°N, don¡¯t worry. Dad will get better.¡±
N wiped away her tears and discreetly pushed him away. ¡°Mm.¡±
Her indifference made rk feel a stab of disappointment. It seemed she still wasn¡¯t willing to forgive
him.
Back in the hospital room, rk asked Wren to go home and rest first. He would stay with N there for the night
After Wren left, he sat down beside N and gently took her hand. ¡°N, it¡¯ste now. Why don¡¯t you go get some rest?¡±
23
N shrugged off his hand, her gaze devoid of warmth ¡°rk, there¡¯s no need for you to pretend to be a good husband or son¨Cinw here. Ever since you cheated on me, we could never be together again. Leave. I don¡¯t want to argue with you in the hospital.¡±
Knowing she was upset, rk didn¡¯t argue with her. He crouched down in front of her, looking at her tenderly. ¡°N, I¡¯m not pretending. Whether it¡¯s caring for you or Dad, it¡¯s all from my heart. Why do you always twist my good Intentions?¡±
N stared coldly at him. ¡°Because all your good intentions have a purpose. You¡¯re humbling yourself now just to make me forgive your affair, aren¡¯t you?¡±
¡°Whether you forgive me or not, I can make sure you can¡¯t leave me. I don¡¯t want to see you sad, so I¡¯m willing to coax you. Do you really not understand, or are you pretending not to?¡±
rk¡¯s presumptuous demeanor disgusted N to the core. He had betrayed her, yet he had the audacity to say such shameless words.
N turned away, refusing to engage with him further. Whatever he said, she would never forgive him.
In the middle of the night, Harrison finally woke up.
¡°Dad, you¡¯re awake? Are you feeling ufortable anywhere?¡±
¡°No¡ Where¡¯s Wren?¡±
Wren and Harrison were both in their second marriages, each bringing a child into the family.
When they nned to marry, N was already 18 and had no objections. After their marriage, treated N well, and they lived harmoniously as a family.
- e. Wren
During the downfall of Harris Pharmaceuticals and Harrison¡¯s illness, Wren remained faithfully by his side. It was then that N truly understood their genuine love for each other.
¡°She¡¯ll be here tomorrow to take care of you. She went home to rest for now.¡±
Harrison nodded. ¡°I¡¯m fine. It¡¯ste now, You and rk should go back and rest.¡±
With the Jaystons¡® decline and N¡¯s marriage into the Sumners, it was a significant social climb. He didn¡¯t want his daughter to face difficulties because of him. Visiting him in the hospital once or twice might not incur rk¡¯s resentment, but over time, he would inevitably harbor some grievances.Text content ? N?velDrama.Org.
N knew Harrison didn¡¯t want to affect her rtionship with rk, and it filled her with bitter sorrow.¡± Dad, it¡¯s okay. I¡¯ll stay here tonight with you.¡±
rk chimed in. ¡°Yeah, Dad. N and I are here for you. It¡¯s only right.¡±
Harrison sighed. ¡°With Wren taking care of me, you two don¡¯t need toe here all the time. Just live your lives well. That¡¯s more than enough.¡±
CHAPTER 15
rk hurried forward and squatted beside Harrison. ¡°Dad, rest assured. I¡¯ll always treat N well,¡±
¡°Mm. As long as you treat her well, that¡¯s all I ask for.¡±
Seeing Harrison¡¯s eyelids droop from the lingering anesthesia, N quickly called out to him. ¡°Dad, the anesthesia hasn¡¯tpletely worn off yet. You can¡¯t sleep.¡±
Throughout the night, N and rk took turns watching over Harrison. As dawn approached, the effects of the anesthesia began to fade, allowing Harrison to finally rest.
Shortly after dawn, Wren arrived with freshly made soup. ¡°N, rk, you two stayed up all night. You should go home now. I¡¯ll take care of things here.¡±
After a night of vigil, N could barely keep her eyes open. She nodded. ¡°Okay, Wren. If there¡¯s anything. call me. I¡¯ll be resting at home on Saturday and Sunday
Wren unintentionally frowned as she thought, ¡°Hasn¡¯t N been unemployed? Why would she mention resting on weekends?¡±
Before she could ask, nurses entered to conduct examinations on Harrison. She pushed aside her doubts and decided to ask Nter.
As N and rk exited the hospital, N nned to hall a taxi, but rk stood in her way. ¡°N, I¡¯ll drive you home.¡±
N considered for a moment. There were things she needed to discuss with him as well, ¡°Alright.¡±
Inside the car, N turned to face rk calmly. ¡°rk, you don¡¯t need toe to the hospital anymore. I¡¯m not ready to tell Dad about our divorce yet, and I don¡¯t want us to pretend everything is fine in front of
him.¡±
rk paused before starting the car, then looked at N after a long silence. ¡°N, I¡¯ve said that divorce is not an option. But you¡¯ve tested my limits repeatedly so I have to teach you a lesson.¡±
¡°What do you mean?¡± N asked.Original from N?velDrama.Org.
The moment she finished speaking, the car door locked, and the ck Cayenne shot forward like an
arrow.
Since N hadn¡¯t worn her seatbelt, her head mmed hard against the seatback, causing her to scrunch her face up in pain.
rk remained silent, his cold gaze fixed ahead. Veins popped on his hands as he gripped the steering wheel, and the car kept elerating.
N paled in fear and dared not speak further. A sense of dread washed over her. She shouldn¡¯t have gotten into rk¡¯s car. This man was clearly insane!
Soon, rk¡¯s car stopped at the entrance of the vi. He got out and opened the passeriger door. ¡°N, get out.¡±
¡°Take me back to my rental.¡±
Chapter 15
Seeing N unmoving, rk simply carried her.
As N was lifted into the air, she instinctively clutched rk¡¯s neck, her expression filled with anger. rk, what are you doing? Let me go!¡±
rk said nothing, carrying her into the vi. It wasn¡¯t until they reached the bedroom that he finally ced her on the bed.
¡°You¡¯ll stay in the vi these next few days. Once you¡¯ve thought things through, I¡¯ll let you leave. If by Monday you still haven¡¯t figured it out, I¡¯ll help you resign from Park Pharmaceuticals.¡±
N snapped her head up to re at him. ¡°Who do you think you
are?¡±
rk chuckled, his expression still gentle. ¡°N, I¡¯ve spoiled you too much these past few years that you speak of divorce at every turn now. It¡¯s okay. In these next few days, I¡¯ll show you that you can¡¯t leave me.¡±
Sensing the danger emanating from him, N tried to retreat, but he grabbed her ankle. The next moment, he pulled her forcefully toward him.
¡°Ah!¡± N eximed as rk sealed her lips with his.
Realizing his intentions, she tried to push him away, fear and disgust shing in her eyes. He pinned her hands down on the bed, hisrger build pressed down on hers.
¡°Move away! Don¡¯t make me hate you!¡±
Seeing the hatred in N¡¯s eyes, rk gripped her chin. ¡°N, this won¡¯t work anymore. Even if you hate me, I¡¯ll make you carry my child. Only like this will you stop thinking about leaving me.¡±
¡°Do you
think I¡¯ll give birth to the child with our current circumstances? Even if I get pregnant, I won¡¯t let the child see this world.¡±
¡°That¡¯s fine. If you abort it, we¡¯ll keep trying¨Cuntil you¡¯re willing to give birth to it.¡±
rk¡¯s eyes, filled with recklessness, made N understand that he meant every word. She was overwhelmed with fear.
¡°You¡¯re insane, just insane.¡±
¡°Even if I¡¯m crazy, it¡¯s all for you.¡±
N¡¯s clothes were ripped, revealing her bra and fair skin.
CHAPTER 16
A chill swept over N, causing her to tremble uncontrobly.
rk¡¯s gaze darkened as he noticed the faint curves on her chest, and he leaned down to kiss her corbone.
¡°Don¡¯t touch me!¡± N struggled desperately, but she was pinned by rk.
The inherent power disparity between a man and a woman left her with no chance of escape. Her face contorted with disgust and anger. Even the slightest touch from him made her feel nauseous to the
extreme.
¡°N, your refusal won¡¯t work this time.¡±
Only by getting her pregnant would she stay by his side
rk ignored N¡¯s disgusted gaze and lowered his head to kiss her lips.
The next moment, N bit down hard on rk¡¯s lips, the taste of blood spreading in their mouths.
rk released N, wiped the blood from his mouth with a sneer, and gripped her chin to force her to look at him. ¡°N, you can¡¯t escape today.¡±
Just as he leaned down to kiss her corbone again, a series of knocks suddenly sounded at the door.
Mr. rk, Mr. Damon is here.¡±
rk frowned in confusion. Damon had never visited before, so why was he suddenly there?
After a moment¡¯s thought, he replied, ¡°Understood. Tell him I¡¯ll be down shortly.¡±
After the maid left, rk looked at N. ¡°Wait here for me.¡±
N turned her head away without saying a word.
rk didn¡¯t force her to respond. Instead, he straightened his clothes and left the bedroom.Original from N?velDrama.Org.
Once the door closed, N heaved a sigh of relief, feeling like she had narrowly escaped a disaster. She quickly got up, walked to the window, scanned the turf below, hesitated for a moment, then closed her eyes and jumped down.
rk found Damon sitting on the sofa with a cold expression when he came downstairs, Damon¡¯s serious demeanor made him uneasy.
¡°Uncle Damon, what brings you here today?¡±
¡°What¡¯s going on between you and that secretary of yours?¡±
¡°What?¡± rk¡¯s eyes widened in disbelief.
How did Damon know about this?
¡°I won¡¯t repeat myself. I heard you and that woman have a baby. You know what happens to the men of the Sumners when they cheat, right?¡±
rk turned pale, his gaze filled with panic. ¡°Uncle Damon, I promise to handle this. Please don¡¯t tell Dad and Grandpa.¡±
Damon stared at him coldly, devoid of any warmth. ¡°If you¡¯re afraid now, why did you cheat in the first ce?¡±
Richard and his younger brother, Simon Sumner, founded the Sumner Group together. When they achieved sess, Simon grew disdainful toward his wife, who had stayed by his side faithfully. He Indulged himself, and his infidelity nearly bankrupted thepany after a deceitful woman stole and leaked confidential information.
This led to Simon¡¯s expulsion by the shareholders. Within a month, he spiraled into decline and a rule in the Sumner family: any betrayal of a partner, regardless of capability, disqualified one from taking over thepany.
If Damon hadn¡¯t found out that N was renting outside and found it strange enough to let his secretary investigate, he wouldn¡¯t have learned that his usually mature and steady nephew would do such a thing
¡°Uncle Damon, I failed to resist temptation at first, but I regret it now. Please give me another chance.¡±
Damon stood up, radiating a terrifying aura. ¡°You shouldn¡¯t be pleading with me. You should be pleading with your wife. If you can¡¯t even control your own desires, how can you handle the Sumner Group?¡±
With that, he didn¡¯t wait for rk¡¯s reply and left.
Once Damon¡¯s figure disappearedpletely from the doorway, rk felt the pressure on him disappear. In just two minutes, he had broken out in a cold sweat!
But why would Damon suddenly be concerned about his affairs?
Before rk could make sense of it, his phone in his pocket suddenly rang. Seeing his mother¡¯s name, he
blinked.
As soon as he answered, an angry voice echoed. ¡°rk,e to my ce right now!¡±
There was a pause before she added, ¡°Don¡¯t bring N. Your secretary is here with me.¡±
At these words, rk instantly understood. Jordyn must have told his mother, Cindy Sharrock, about the pregnancy. Otherwise, Cindy wouldn¡¯t be this angry.
¡°I¡¯ming over immediately.¡± His voice was cold and subdued, struggling to suppress the anger he felt.
CHAPTER 17
If rk had known Jordyn would be so troublesome, he would never have let himself get involved with her in the first ce. Hanging up, he nced upstairs and took a deep breath before briskly walking toward the garage.
As Damon approached his car at the vi entrance, he noticed Spencer standing nearby with an odd expression.
¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡±
Spencer hesitated for a moment before replying, ¡°Mr. Sumner, you better see for yourself¡¡±
Damon opened the car door with a slight frown. Inside, he found N looking disheveled and staring at him nervously. Anyone seeing this scene without knowing the context would likely assume he had done something reprehensible to her.
Damon mmed the car door shut and demanded coldly, ¡°What¡¯s going on?¡±
¡°L¡ I don¡¯t know. Ms. Jayston just limped out of the vi and said she wanted you to give her a ride¡¡±
¡°And you let her get in?¡±
Damon¡¯s irritation was palpable. He hade here today to warn rk aspensation for the night he almosty his hand on N. From the moment he stepped out of the vi, he wanted nothing more to do with her.
Sensing Damon¡¯s displeasure, Spencer involuntarily shrank back and lowered his head. ¡°Mr. Sumner, I¡¯m sorry. It won¡¯t happen again.¡±
If it weren¡¯t for the fact that N was Damon¡¯s niece¨Cinw, he wouldn¡¯t have dared to let her into the car.
¡°If there¡¯s a next time, you¡¯ll be mining in the desert.¡±
¡°What should we do now? Should I ask Ms. Jayston to get out?¡±
Damon sneered. ¡°If someone sees hering out of my car in disarray, I won¡¯t be able to exin myself.¡±
Spencer hung his head even lower. He should have locked the car when he saw N.
¡°Alright, get in the car first.¡±
Damon took off his suit jacket and threw it onto N.
Initially, N feared that Damon would kick her out of the car. They had only met a few times, and she didn¡¯t know his temper.
As she pondered how she would escape if Damon intended to kick her out, the car door suddenly swung open, and a coat flew toward her.
In an instant, it blocked out all light, but Damon¡¯s voice echoed clearly.
¡°Put it on.¡±
The scent of pine mingled with a hint of tobo drifted to her nose. She bit her lip, reached up to take the coat off her head, and put it on. Damon¡¯s warmth still lingered in the coat.
N lowered her gaze, subconsciously gripping the hom of the suit jacket. Besides rk, this was the first time she had worn another ihan¡¯s clothes, especially in such an awkward and disheveled state.
The next moment, Damon got into the car, calmly instructing the driver to start driving
As the car pulled away, N caught sight of rk¡¯s car passing by, causing her heart to skip a beat. It wasn¡¯t until rk¡¯s car disappeared from view that she breathed a sigh of relief.
Regaining herposure, she turned to Damon. ¡°Uncle Damon, thank you for today. Please drop me off at where one can find a taxi.¡±
Damon turned to look at her indifferently. ¡°What do you think the taxi drivers will make of you in your current state?¡±N?velDrama.Org owns this.
N turned extremely embarrassed. She had been so anxious to escape that she had forgotten to change her clothes. It was true¨Cshe wasn¡¯t presentable for hailing a taxi now.
*Then please just drop me off at the entrance of my building.¡±
¡°Mm.¡±
Damon watched her, his brows suddenly furrowing. His piercing gaze made N¡¯s palms sweat nervously. She kept feeling that he was displeased.
¡°Uncle Damon¡ what¡¯s wrong?¡±
¡°You¡¯re sitting on my documents.¡±
Realization finally struck N. When she had gotten into the car earlier, she felt something underneath her. However, she had been so afraid that rk woulde and drag her back that she ignored it.
¡°I¡¯m sorry¡¡±
She quickly picked up the documents, hesitating about whether to hand them to Damon
Spencer, in the passenger seat, reached out and took the documents from her when he sensed her embarrassment. ¡°Ms. Jayston, give them to me.¡±
N knew that Damon probably wouldn¡¯t touch those documents again.
The car fell into silence, and no one spoke.
It wasn¡¯t until the Maybach stopped at the entrance of The Fleur that N breathed a sigh of relief. Being in a confined space with Damon was too overwhelming. It had kept her tense involuntarily.
She pushed open the door and got out of the car. ¡°Uncle Damon, thank you for today. I¡¯ll wash the jacket and send it to yourpany¡¯s reception.¡±
¡°No need, just throw it away.¡±
CHAPTER 18
N¡¯s grip on the car door tightened, her fingertips turning white. She bit her lip and lowered her gaze, speaking softly. ¡°Okay, sorry for the trouble, Uncle Damon.¡±
As soon as she closed the door, the ck Maybach began to drive away. Based on Damon¡¯s earlier attitude, she guessed he didn¡¯t like her.
Damon was naturally aloof, and their few encounters had been far from pleasant. It was only natural he disliked her.
N turned and slowly walked toward her apartmentplex, soon disappearing into the stairwell.
Inside the ck Maybach, Spencer kept his head down and stayed silent, sensing Damon¡¯s icy aura. had thought Damon might show some leniency since N was his niece¨Cinw.
He
Given that Damon had dismissed the coat N tried to return, it was clear he was cold toward all women except Marie. Spencer made a mental note never to act on his own again.
Damon closed his eyes to rest, but he could still smell the faint scent of gardenias from N¡¯s presence in the car, making him inexplicably irritable. ¡°Open the windows.¡±
The rear windows rolled down halfway, letting in a cold breeze that dispersed the lingering gardenia scent.
Damon finally felt his irritation ease.
Suddenly, Spencer¡¯s phone buzzed. He opened the message, frowning as he read it.
¡°Mr. Damon, Mr. rk has gone to see your sister¨Cinw¡ Jordyn is there too. It seems she has been staying at the vi for a few days. Your sister¨Cinw ns to have her keep the baby.¡±
Damon sneered. ¡°Cindy¡¯s getting more foolish by the day.¡±
¡°Should we inform the family?¡±
¡°No need. Pull our men back.¡±
Damon had already warned rk out of kindness. If rk and Cindy couldn¡¯t see reason, they would have no business thinking about taking over the Sumner Group.
When rk arrived at his parents¡® house and saw Jordyn and Cindy chatting andughing together, a cold glint shed in his eyes.N?velDrama.Org owns this.
He was utterly sick of Jordyn. After taking his money, she had disappeared from the hospital and then from his life. She had only resurfaced to inform N of her pregnancy while he was on a business trip, further estranging him from N.
Now, she had cozied up to his mother, clearly winning her over.
¡°Mom, what is the meaning of this?¡±
Cindy noticed his scowl and calmly sipped her coffee before replying, ¡°Sit down. Let¡¯s talk about Jordyn¡¯s pregnancy.¡±
rk nced at Jordyn, his voice dripping with sarcasm. ¡°There¡¯s nothing to discuss. This child is not to
be born.¡±
He had made one mistake and wouldn¡¯t repeat it. If this child were born, his rtionship with N would be beyond repair.
Cindy mmed her cup down in anger. ¡°That¡¯s your child and my grandchild. How can you dismiss it so easily?¡±
¡°It¡¯s just an ident. If you want a grandchild, N and I will work on it.¡±
¡°Work on it? How many years have you been married? Every time we visit the family, do you know what your aunts say? If she can¡¯t have children, maybe she should step aside.¡±
rk turned icy. He stared at Cindy, enunciating each word clearly. ¡°Mom, I will not divorce N, and I will not marry this woman. If you keep talking like this, I won¡¯te around anymore. As for her pregnancy, the child must be aborted.¡±
As he finished speaking, six burly bodyguards entered the room, moving to grab Jordyn and take her away.
Cindy mmed the table. ¡°I dare you to touch her!¡±
The bodyguards paused, recognizing Cindy¡¯s authority as rk¡¯s mother. She wouldn¡¯t harm her son but could make life difficult for them. They feared the repercussions of her retribution.
CHAPTER 19
Chapter 19
¡°Take her to the hospital.¡± rk was cold, his gaze devoid of any warmth as he looked at Jordyn.
Under his gaze, Jordyn felt despair and sadness, tears streaming down her cheeks. ¡°rk, I truly love you Can¡¯t Mrs. Summer ept me and the baby I¡¯m carrying?¡±
rk was full of disgust. ¡°You¡¯re just a mistress. What right do you have topare yourself to her?¡±
Jordyn felt humiliated, choking back sobs. ¡°During the time we were together, did you ever love me, even a little?¡±
rk sneered. ¡°Do you know any man who falls for an escort?¡±
He had entertained Jordyn only because she pursued him aggressively and was willing to do anything in bed. Love and sex were clearly distinct in his mind.Original from N?velDrama.Org.
The color drained from Jordyn¡¯s face¨Cshe looked as if she might copse.
She couldn¡¯t believe rk saw her as nothing more than a disposable ything. She refused to ept this. After all her efforts to get pregnant, she couldn¡¯t stand being discarded like trash.
¡°Please, Ms. Cindy, save my baby. I don¡¯t want to lose him. He¡¯s your grandson too.¡±
When she came to Cindy, she brought along the report for her baby¡¯s gender identification. Cindy had shown her kindness only because the child she carried was a boy.
Cindy immediately went to Jordyn¡¯s side, taking her hand and ring at rk. ¡°If you dare take her away today, I will die right here in front of you!¡±
Cindy never thought N was good enough for rk, believing someone from a fallen family had no ce by his side. She intended to use Jordyn to force a divorce between them. Jordyn herself would never be epted into the Sumners either. She was merely a means to an end.
rk frowned. ¡°Mom, have you forgotten the family rules set by Grandpa? If you let Jordyn have this child, I will have nothing to do with the Sumner Group.
Cindy was appalled, then she gritted her teeth. ¡°You don¡¯t need to worry about that. I can ensure they won¡¯t find out.¡±
¡°Uncle Damon already knows. Do you think you can keep it a secret?¡±
Cindy was shocked. ¡°How does Damon know?¡±
¡°That¡¯s irrelevant. What matters now is getting rid of this baby.¡±
Seeing Cindy hesitate, Jordyn felt a surge of fear. ¡°Ms. Cindy, this is your grandson. How can you be so cruel?¡±
Jordyn looked pitiful as she cried, but Cindy didn¡¯t spare her a nce. Compared to an unborn child, rk was far more important. Children couldeter, but if rk fell out of favor with Richard, he would never inherit the Sumner Group.
With a hardened heart, Cindy ordered, ¡°Take her to the hospital.¡±
Jordyn was dragged away, wailing. She was soon thrown into a car and driven to the hospital.
12
Cindy red at rk, her face twisted with anger. ¡°Are you satisfied now?¡±
¡°Mom, please stay out of my affairs with N. Whether you like her or not, she¡¯s my wife, and it¡¯s not your ce to discipline her.¡±
Seeing rk defend N only fueled Cindy¡¯s anger. ¡°Am I wrong? She¡¯s not worthy of you. Married for three years and not a single child. She just freeloads off you. What¡¯s the point of keeping a woman like that?¡±
rk frowned, about to speak, when his phone rang. Seeing it was a call from the vi, he answered.
¡°Mr. Sumner, I went to call Mrs. Sumner for dinner, but she wasn¡¯t in her room. The security footage shows she got into Mr. Damon¡¯s car¡
CHAPTER 20
¡°Send me the surveince footage.¡±
After the call ended, the maid quickly sent the video.
As rk watched N jump from the second floor, disheveled, into Damon¡¯s car, his expression grew darker. When he drove past earlier, Damon didn¡¯t even call out to him.
Damon never meddled in others¡® business¨Cwhy was he helping N?
The thought of N being seen in such a state by another man ignited rk¡¯s fury. He didn¡¯t need to guess. She had likely returned to her rented apartment.
Cindy, having seen the footage too, gritted her teeth. ¡°I told you she¡¯s not good enough for you. Look at what she¡¯s wearing! She¡¯s brought shame to the Summers!¡±
rk¡¯s expression was one of frustration as he red at Cindy. ¡°Mom, this is my fault. You judge N without even knowing the whole story. Isn¡¯t that unfair?
¡°What do you mean? I¡¯m standing up for you, and you¡¯re defending her? I¡¯m your mother! Don¡¯t you want what¡¯s best for you?¡±
think I
Seeing Cindy¡¯s pained expression, rk felt a wave of irritation. ¡°This is between N and me. You don¡¯t need to help me. Just stop belittling my wife in front of me.¡±
Without waiting for her response, he turned and left quickly. He didn¡¯t go back to the vi but headed to N¡¯s apartment.
N had ordered takeout and was in the shower back at her apartment. Just as she finished drying her hair, she got a call from Wren.
¡°Wren, what¡¯s up?¡±
Wren¡¯s gentle voice came through. ¡°N, I just wanted to ask if you¡¯ve started working recently.¡±
N hadn¡¯t nned to hide this from them, and with Lucia¡¯s hospital visit, it wouldn¡¯t stay a secret for long, ¡°Yes, I have.¡±
There was a long silence on the other end before Wren spoke again. ¡°Are you and rk fighting?¡±
N had been preparing for pregnancy recently, so this sudden decision to work suggested something had happened.
¡°It¡¯s not exactly a fight.¡± N lowered her gaze, absentmindedly twirling a strand of her hair. ¡°Wren, it¡¯s a long story. I¡¯ll exin when we have time.¡±
Wren sighed. ¡°I don¡¯t understand young people¡¯s issues, but rk seems like a good kid. Every couple has arguments. You need to understand and support each other to make it work.¡±
N bit her lip, saying nothing. rk had been good at pretending. If she hadn¡¯t discovered his affair, she might still be fooled into thinking he was a good husband.
A sudden knock at the door startled her. She walked toward it, saying into the phone, ¡°Wren, my takeout
T
is here. I¡¯ll talk to youter. If
ole anything about my dad, please let me know
After hanging up, she called out, ¡°Just leave the takeout at the door.¡±
Without a peephole or installed surveince, she couldn¡¯t see who was outside. She waited by the door, estimating when the person would leave, before opening it.
When she saw rk outside, her first instinct was to shut the door, but rk¡¯s hand blocked it. ¡°N, I¡¯m sorry about today¡ I was too impulsive¡¡±
N felt nothing seeing the guilt on his face. ¡°I don¡¯t want to see you right now.¡±
¡°N, I promise I won¡¯t force myself on you again. Can you give me another chance? I will make it up toText content ? N?velDrama.Org.
you.¡±
rk spoke earnestly, but N only felt likeughing. There would be no such thing as just one affair- there would always be more. She would never forgive him.
However, if she said something to provoke him, he definitely wouldn¡¯t leave tonight.
CHAPTER 21
¡°Got it, but I need some time to process this. Please leave now.¡±
rk frowned, noticing N¡¯s indifference. ¡°N, I said I¡¯d give you time, but can you stop pushing me
away?¡±
Frustrated by his persistence, N looked him in the eye. ¡°You say you¡¯ll give me time, but have your really? The day after I found out about your affair, you tried to force yourself on me, and today you did it
again.
¡°From the start, I haven¡¯t seen any real remorse from you. You¡¯re just trying to smooth things over quic
quickly, but I can¡¯t move on that fast. At least not right now. Do you understand?¡±
Seeing the redness in N¡¯s eyes, rk felt a pang of guilt and regret. He reached out to hold her, but she stepped back and avoided his touch, leaving his hand suspended awkwardly in the air.
¡°rk, in all these years of marriage, I¡¯ve never wronged you. We¡¯ve been together for eight years, not eight months or eight days.
¡°You betrayed me and expect me to ept it quickly. Do you think that¡¯s possible? Unless my feelings for you were fake, no normal person could adjust that quickly.
¡°I can¡¯t calmly ept your infidelity so soon. I¡¯m begging you, please stop pushing me.¡±
Initially, N just wanted rk to leave, but as she spoke, she couldn¡¯t help but choke up.
Ever since discovering rk¡¯s affair, she had been trying not to think about him. She would keep herself busy enough to fall asleep the moment she hit the bed, hoping time would dull the pain of betrayal. However, rk¡¯s relentless pressure left her no time to heal.
rk¡¯s heart ached at the sight of her tear¨Cfilled eyes. ¡°N¡ I¡¯m sorry¡¡±
Ever since N mentioned divorce, he had apologized many times, but this was the first time it felt
sincere.
N wiped her tears, gradually regaining herposure. ¡°Just go. I don¡¯t want to see you right now.¡±
rk pressed his lips together, wanting to stay but knowing she wouldn¡¯t agree. He nodded reluctantly. You¡¯re living alone outside, so be careful. If anything happens, call me.¡±
N didn¡¯t respond, her expression cold.
As he turned to leave, he caught a glimpse of a ck suit jacket draped over the sofa. He paused, recognizing it as the one Damon had worn during his visit.
Damon, who never meddled in others¡® affairs, not only helped N leave the vi today but also gave her his jacket. Thest time they went to the family home, rk noticed Damon¡¯s subtle nces at N.
Despite this, Damon was his uncle, and he had no interest in women. It must be a coincidence.
Not wanting to dwell on it, rk quickly left.
Downstairs, he received a call from his subordinate.
¡°Mr. Sumner, the doctor refuses to perform the abortion on Ms. Cheatham. Her uterine lining is too thin,
Chagar 21
and there¡¯s a high risk of severe bleeding
Clerk¡¯s expression darkened instantly ¡°Find another doctor. There must be someone willing to do it.¡±
He hung up abruptly.
The subordinate, fearing the consequences, hesitated before calling CindyN?velDrama.Org owns this.
After hearing the situation Cindy hesitated for a long time before making a decision. ¡°Bring her back!¡±
rk didn¡¯t visit N for the rest of the weekend and the enjoyed a rare period of calm
On Monday morning, N had just awed at the R&D department when Genevieve stormed in, furious, She confronted Lucia in front of everyone tua,e to my office right now!¡±
CHAPTER 22
Instantly, everyone in the R&D department turned their eyes to Lucia.
Genevieve had never spoken to Lucia in such a harsh tone before, leaving Lucia more surprised than embarrassed. ¡°Genevieve¡ what¡¯s wrong?¡±
Genevieve didn¡¯t respond and simply turned to walk back to her office.
As Lucia felt the curious gazes of her colleagues, her face turned red with embarrassment. When her eyes met N¡¯s, her anger red even more. She was certain N was waiting to see her make a fool of herself.
Suppressing her rage, she bit her lip and followed Genevieve into the office.
As soon as the door closed, Genevieve threw a document onto the desk in front of her. Take a look!¡±
Her tone was full of disappointment, and her gaze on Lucia was disapproving.
Confused, Lucia picked up the document and began to browse. Her face grew paler with each page, and her hands started to shake. How could this have happened?
Upon seeing Lucia¡¯s guilty expression, Genevieve¡¯s voice grew colder. ¡°I used to think you were meticulous in your work. Do you even realize what you¡¯ve done? Tampering with experimental data? Do you know how many lives are at stake if your drug goes to market?!¡±
¡°Genevieve¡ I know I was wrong. I just wanted to make our data look better¡¡±
Genevieve let out a bitterugh. ¡°Are you sure you only wanted the data to look better? The first batch ofb mice showed variousplications, yet you didn¡¯t record any of it. You falsified the records, saying everything was normal. If your drug hit the market, it would be tantamount to murder!¡±N?velDrama.Org owns this.
Lu panicked under Genevieve¡¯s icy stare. She had been so careful¨Chow had she gotten caught?
Suddenly, she thought of N. The details in the report matched the timeline since N joined thepany. It had to be herl
N had been there only a week and had already noticed the falsified data.
Lucia bit her lip hard, seething with anger and hatred. She wished she could storm back to the department and p N, that wretched woman!
¡°Genevieve¡ I¡¯m so sorry. We¡¯ve been developing this drug for over a year with no progress. I got desperate and made a terrible mistake. Please, forgive me this one time. I swear it won¡¯t happen again!¡±
Genevieve stared at Lucia coldly, scrutinizing her.
Lucia couldn¡¯t meet her eyes and looked down, feeling even guiltier.
After a few long minutes of silence, Genevieve finally spoke. ¡°I¡¯ve already reported this to the headquarters. I¡¯ll try to speak on your behalf, but the final decision is out of my hands.¡±
For years, Genevieve had believed Lucia to be diligent and conscientious. But after seeing the report exposing her data falsification, she lost all respect for Lucia and had no intention of covering for her.
Lucia looked up in disbelief. ¡°Genevieve¡ you could have covered this up for me. Why did you report it to
the headquarters? Does one mistake erase all the hard work I¡¯ve done?¡±
She had spent countless nights working on experiments, sometimes even sleeping in theb. Why was Genevieve focusing only on her mistake and not acknowledging her efforts?
When Genevieve saw that Lucia showed no real remorse, her voice hardened. ¡°The hard work you¡¯ve
done is what you¡¯re paid for, especially when ites to developing life¨Csaving drugs. I can ept failure in experiments, but I will not tolerate fraud. No excuses.¡±
Chapter 23
CHAPTER 23
It was clear to Lucia that Genevieve wasn¡¯t going to let her off the hook. She took a deep breath and said slowly, ¡°I understand. Whatever decision thepany makes, I will ept it.¡±
With that, she turned and left.
As soon as she exited Genevieve¡¯s office, she could no longer contain her anger. She stormed back to the R&D department.
N was engrossed in her work, looking through some documents, when she heard the sound of hurried. footsteps approaching from behind. As soon as she turned around, a pnded hard across her face. The sharp sound of the p silenced the entire room, drawing everyone¡¯s attention to the two women. Lucia had used all her strength, causing N¡¯s head to snap to the side. A red handprint quickly appeared on her pale cheek, and it swelled rapidly.
N looked up, her gaze cold as she stared at Lucia.
Despite herself, Lucia felt a flicker of fear under N¡¯s clear, unyielding gaze and instinctively wanted to step back. But once she remembered the report N had filed against her, her confidence returned, and she looked at N defiantly.
¡°This p is just a lesson for scheming against me behind my back. If you dare-
Before Lucia could finish her sentence, N grabbed her hair and pped her back just as hard.
Lucia was stunned¨Cshe never expected the usually gentle N to retaliate. By the time she regained her, senses, her face was flushed with rage.
¡°How dare you hit me?!¡± she yelled, raising her hand to strike N again, but her wrist was caught mid¨Cair She leered at N, her eyes zing.
N leaned in, her voice low enough for only the two of them to hear. ¡°Are you sure you want to make a scene and let everyone know you tampered with the data? The R&D department has more than just your team. Your team always gets the best projects and resources. Do you think the others will stay quiet if they find out?¡±
Lucia¡¯s expression changed. The final decision from the headquarters hadn¡¯te through yet. If she caused amotion now, it could make things worse for her.
Gritting her teeth, she spat, ¡°You just wait!¡±
She wrenched her hand free and stormed off, thinking about how her father had connections with some higher¨Cups who might be able to help her.
After Lucia left, a female colleague who was on good terms with N approached her. ¡°N, your face is swollen. There are some ice packs in the fridge. Let me get one for you to reduce the swelling.¡±
N nodded. ¡°Thank you, but I¡¯ll go get it myself. Don¡¯t let me disrupt your work.¡±This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?.
She quickly walked to the break room, found a clean towel, and wrapped an ice pack in it, pressing it gently against her swollen cheek. The pain made her wince slightly.
She wondered how long it would take for the swelling to go down. She cherished her appearance¨Cwhat
woman didn¡¯t?
In hindsight, she thought she should have hit Lucia even harder.
Near the railing on the second floor of the department, Spencer, who had watched the whole scene unfold, couldn¡¯t help but remark, ¡°I didn¡¯t expect Ms. Jayston to be so tough despite her gentle appearance.¡±
Damon remained expressionless, but a hint of interest appeared in his eyes. It seemed his niece-inw wasn¡¯t the meek and docile person he had thought. Confronting enemies head¨Con like that might not always be beneficial in the workce, but it wasn¡¯t his concern.
¡°Let¡¯s go,¡± he said.
They hade to check on the progress of an experiment but ended up witnessing an unexpected drama instead.
Spencer hurried to catch up with him. ¡°Mr. Sumner, should we investigate what happened?¡±
CHAPTER 24
Damon gave him a cool nce. ¡°It seems like you have a lot of free timetely.
¡°No, no, not at all. I still have plenty of files to sort through this afternoon¡ Spencer quickly ducked hist head, silently vowing to rein in his curiosity next time.
After N iced her cheek for about ten minutes, the buming pain subsided, so she returned to her desk.
As soon as she sat down, her colleague, Sasha Yates, rolled her chair over and whispered, ¡°N, everyone is talking about what happened between you and Lucia. What happened? Why did she suddenly hit you?¡±
N didn¡¯t want to blow things out of proportion. If she made a big deal out of it, Lucia might lose her job Considering she had just joined thepany, forcing Lucia out would make her colleagues think she was scheming, which would make her work life difficult.
Besides, despite Lucia¡¯s recent data tampering, she had produced some valuable research in the p and thepany would likely handle the matter privately.
past,
N shook her head. ¡°It¡¯s nothing, just some personal issues.¡±
Seeing that N didn¡¯t want to borate, Sasha didn¡¯t press further. ¡°Okay, but be careful. Lucia may seem understanding and easygoing, but she holds grudges. After this, she will certainly to target you.¡±
¡°I understand.¡±
N knew Lucia would hold a grudge but wasn¡¯t worried. As long as she acted with integrity, she had nothing to fear from Lucia¡¯s schemes.
Meanwhile, Lucia called her father. After exining the situation, Clement replied, ¡°Got it. I¡¯ll make a call.¡± Lucia waited anxiously. Even if she had to leave Park Pharmaceuticals, it couldn¡¯t be because of data tampering no other pharmaceuticalpany would hire her in that case.
Thankfully, Clement acted quickly. He called back shortly, reassuring her that everything was handled.
Since Lucia¡¯s actions hadn¡¯t caused significant damage, thepany intended only a minor punishment- docking her one month¡¯s sry and giving her a verbal warning.
Near the end of the workday, Genevieve called Lucia to her office to discuss the resolution from the headquarters.
Despite Lucia¡¯s frustration at Genevieve for reporting the incident, Lucia knew it was unwise to confront her superior. ¡°I understand, I will take this as a lesson and ensure it never happens again.¡±
Genevieve remained indiffefent. ¡°Good. This matter is being handled privately by thepany. Don¡¯t spread the word about your sry deduction, or thepany will have to take more serious action.¡±
¡°I understand¡ But what about the person who reported me? What does thepany n to do aboutThis belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?.
them?¡± Losing a month¡¯s sry wasn¡¯t a big deal, but Lucia couldn¡¯t let this go unchallenged. If she had to suffer, so should N.
¡°The report was anonymous. There¡¯s no way to find out who did it, so this matter is closed. Don¡¯t dwell on it.¡±
Lucia bit her lip. ¡°It had to be N. The reported experiments match the ones we¡¯ve been conducting since she joined. The data and timeline fit perfectly.¡±
Genevieve frowned, clearly displeased. ¡°You have evidence to support that im?¡±
¡°The timing of the experiments listed in the report is evidence.¡±
Genevieve¡¯s gaze hardened. ¡°You never considered that someone from your own team might have framed N? They¡¯ve been working with you all along and are fully aware of your data tampering. It wouldn¡¯t be difficult for them topile a report based on any timeframe.¡±
CHAPTER 25
¡°No way! They wouldn¡¯t betray me!¡±
¡°If you think it¡¯s N, then show me evidence. If you don¡¯t have any, keep your mouth shut. Thepany is already being lenient with you, so don¡¯t push your luck.¡±
Facing Genevieve¡¯s prating gaze, Lucia felt like all her schemes wereid bare. She lowered her head, feeling a bit guilty. ¡°I understand. I¡¯ll go back to work now.¡±
Genevieve didn¡¯t respond and picked up a file to read.
Lucia knew that G
Genevieve was clearly angry, so she didn¡¯t dare say more and left the office quietly.
Back in the R&D department, the first thing she did was walk over to N¡¯s desk.Original from N?velDrama.Org.
¡°N, ying dirty tricks behind someone¡¯s back isn¡¯t a real skill. I suggest you focus on your work. After all, you¡¯ve got a three¨Cmonth probation period. If anything goes wrong, you won¡¯t get the permanent position. Don¡¯t you agree?
N remained expressionless at Lucia¡¯s smug expression, lowering her gaze to continue reading her documents.
Before Lucia could say more, the woman next to her snapped, ¡°Hey, are you deaf or mute? Didn¡¯t you hear Lucia talking to you?¡±
¡°Oh, Mabel, don¡¯t be so harsh. I just wanted to warn someone who only dares to y tricks behind others backs,¡± Lucia interjected.
Mabel O¡¯Neill snorted. ¡°If anyone dares to mess with you again, I¡¯ll make sure they can¡¯t stay in the R&D department!¡±
N frowned. Lucia and Mabel¡¯s constant chatter was so annoying she couldn¡¯t focus on her work. Her expression turned cold. ¡°Lucia, thatment about ying dirty tricks fits you better. If you¡¯re really that free, why not read some more research papers to fill in your knowledge gaps? That way, your next set of experiment data won¡¯t look so bad.¡±
Lucia was taken aback before she red at N with a gaze full of venom. ¡°Very well. We¡¯ll see about that.¡±
ANE
She then dragged Mabel away.
Finally, it was quiet again.
N thought she could finally concentrate on her research. Immersed in several papers, she took notes as she went. Before she knew it, it was well past working hours.
The ringing of her phone snapped her back to reality, and she saw it was already past 6:00 p.m.
Seeing rk¡¯s name on the caller ID, she hesitated. If she didn¡¯t answer, he might just show up at her apartment. With a sigh, she answered the call. She didn¡¯t want to confront him until she had the means to handle him.
¡°What¡¯s up?¡±
Her voice must have sounded too cold because there was a brief silence on the other end.
¡°N, the weather is getting cooler. Patricia told me you didn¡¯t bring your fall clothes. I¡¯ve brought some for you.¡±
N lowered her gaze. ¡°Where are you now?¡±
¡°Downstairs at your office.¡±
¡°Give me five minutes.¡±
She hung up, quickly shut down herputer, packed up, and left.
As she stepped out of the building, she spotted the ck Cayenne parked by the curb.
rk, dressed in a gray suit, leaned against it. His tall frame and handsome features drew many admiring nces.
N walked up to him quickly, her expression indifferent. ¡°Where are the clothes?¡±
rk¡¯s eyes lit up with joy upon seeing her, but his expression quickly shifted. He reached out to touch
her cheek, catching her off guard. She didn¡¯t pull back until his warm palm cupped her face.
rk¡¯s gaze turned dark and cold, and he exuded a menacing aura. ¡°Who did this?¡±
CHAPTER 26
+25
Chapter 26
N indifferently looked away from the anger practically pouring from rk¡¯s eyes. ¡°No one. I tripped and fell.¡±
¡°You fell and managed to p yourself on the face?¡±
N lowered her gaze and spoke softly. ¡°This is my business. Can you just leave it alone?¡±
rk grabbed her hand firmly, his voice serious. ¡°You are my wife. Someone hit my wife, and you think I can just ignore that?¡±
¡°I told you it¡¯s my business, and I¡¯ve already handled it. Just give me the clothes.¡±
After a moment of tense silence, rk relented, seeing N wasn¡¯t going to say more.
¡°Let me drive you home.¡±
¡°No need. The subway takes just ten minutes.¡±Text content ? N?velDrama.Org.
rk frowned at the resistance and cold distance in N¡¯s eyes.
¡°N, I¡¯m not asking you to forgive me right now. But I hope you won¡¯t reject my kindness. Otherwise, can¡¯t guarantee what I might do.¡±
A flicker of sarcasm crossed N¡¯s eyes as she caught the threat in hisst words.
¡°rk, is this what you mean by not forcing me anymore?¡±
¡°I just want to drive you home. How is that forcing you?¡±
Seeing his self¨Crighteousness, N pressed her lips together, too tired to argue. She knew he would only stick to his point.
She quickly thought it through. She might as well use a free driver and avoid the crowded subway, so she replied,¡°Fine, then. Thanks.¡±
Seeing her agree, rk finally smiled.
rk left after dropping her off at home and helping carry the clothes upstairs.
Back in his car, he didn¡¯t start the engine but called his secretary instead.
¡°I want to know who hit my wife today at Park Pharmaceuticals within half an hour.¡±
After rk left, N dragged the suitcase to her bedroom and started unpacking. It was mostly long sleeves and autumn coats and pants¨Cclothes she often wore.
The way they were folded suggested rk had packed them himself. For a moment, she felt a twinge of softness, but remembering his betrayal quickly erased it.
Once she was done organizing her clothes, she headed to the kitchen to make dinner.
Her current life, though much busier than being a housewife, felt fulfilling. She had no desire to return to waiting at home for rk every day. Besides, they could never go back.
+25
At 10:00 p.m. in a VIP room of a bar in Saintornia.
rk sat on the sofa, his expression icy as he looked at the woman kneeling on the floor in disarray. His gaze was cold and unforgiving.
Feeling rk¡¯s oppressive aura, Lucia couldn¡¯t stop trembling, her heart full of fear.
¡°Ms. Pord¡¡±
At the sound of rk¡¯s voice, Lucia shuddered violently.
Tonight, she hade to the bar with Mabel to celebrate not being fired. However, after a few drinks and some dancing, several men in ck had suddenly dragged her out and brought her there.
The moment she saw rk, she immediately knew he was there about her hitting N earlier that day.
¡°Mr. Sumner, I was wrong¡ Please, let me go¡¡±
Her terror and desperation satisfied rk. He raised an eyebrow. ¡°How did you p my wife today? p yourself the same way now. When I¡¯m satisfied, I¡¯ll let you go. How about that?¡±
Lucia bit her lip, trying to suppress her fear.
Just as she was about to speak, rk seemed to read her mind and added, ¡°Ms. Pord, if you¡¯re reluctant to, that¡¯s fine. Just know that the Pords won¡¯t be able to survive in Saintornia anymore.¡±
X
CHAPTER 27
Chapter 27
rk¡¯s nonchnt words made Lucia feel like she had fallen into an icy abyss. She knew all too well that he had the power to follow through, and the Pordscked the means to resist.
She raised her hand and pped herself hard across the face.
¡°Keep going.¡±
At first, Lucia felt the sting on her face, but after a while, her cheeks went numb, and she was simply repeating the action mechanically. She didn¡¯t know how long it had been or how many ps she had dealt herself.
Just as Lucia felt she might pass out, rk finally got up and walked over to her. He looked down at her as if she were an insignificant insect. ¡°Ms. Pord, I hope you remember this lesson. Avoid my wife in the future. Next time, I won¡¯t be so lenient.¡±
With that, he walked past her without waiting for a reaction, followed by his bodyguards who had been there to prevent her escape.
The room was soon empty except for Lucia.
Her tightly wound emotions finally unraveled, and she covered her face, sobbing uncontrobly. She had never suffered such humiliation in her life.
¡°N! I swear I won¡¯t let you off so easily!¡± Lucia thought resentfully.
When Lucia got home and saw her swollen face in the mirror, her hatred for N intensified. It had to be N whoined to rk, which was why he came to find fault with her tonight.
The thought filled Lucia with anger and jealousy. The Jaystons had gone bankrupt and were now beneath the Pords. So why did N get to marry rk while she couldn¡¯t even secure a wealthy heir as her
husband?
She resolved to find a man of higher status than rk and crush N under her feet!
As rk exited the bar, he received a call from his subordinate. Whatever was said made his expression darken considerably, and he hung up before driving straight to Cindy¡¯s ce.
Cindy was waiting in the living room, not surprised at all by the anger on rk¡¯s face. ¡°There¡¯s no need for you to be angry. I¡¯ve decided to keep the child.¡±
rk¡¯s face turned ashen. ¡°Mom, are you out of your mind? If the others find out, you know the
consequences.¡±
¡°The doctor said that an abortion could be fatal for both mother and child. Besides, if you hadn¡¯t been reckless, this child wouldn¡¯t exist. Let her have the baby, and I¡¯ll handle everything.¡±
¡°How exactly do you n to handle it?¡±
¡°We¡¯ll take it one step at a time. Besides, you and N have been married for years, and she still isn¡¯tThis belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?.
pregnant. Who knows if she can even have children? If she can¡¯t, then Jordyn¡¯s child can be raised by her.¡±
rk fell silent. He and N had been intimate often, and they hadn¡¯t deliberately used protection. Yet, even after trying for several months, they still had no children. Cindy¡¯s suggestion made him question whether N was indeed infertile.
Seeing his silence, Cindy continued. ¡°This is decided. Your father and Elijah can¡¯t take over the Sumner Group. The old man won¡¯t kick you out over a woman.¡±
rk frowned. ¡°Mom, have you forgotten about Uncle Damon?¡±
If Damon wanted toe back and inherit the Sumner Group, all of rk¡¯s efforts over the years would
be in vain.
Cindy sneered. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. He doesn¡¯t stand a chance against you.¡±
CHAPTER 28
Chapter 28
+25
rk sensed there was more to Cindy¡¯s words. He was about to inquire further when a maid assisted the semi¨Cdrunk Cyrus Sumner into the living room.
rk frowned upon seeing Cyrus and simply said, ¡°Mom, I¡¯m heading back now.¡±
With that, he turned and walked past Cyrus to leave.
Cyrus frowned but said nothing.
Back at the vi, rk called his secretary, Michael Parkin, instructing him to purchase a mansion in Jordyn¡¯s name.
Michael sounded surprised. ¡°Mr. Sumner, if Mrs. Sumner finds out¡¡±
¡°Be discreet. Don¡¯t let anyone know, especially N.¡±
If N found out Jordyn was keeping the baby, she would be more determined to divorce him. Thinking about it made rk feel troubled.
¡°Alright, I understand.¡±
Ending the call, Michael sighed softly..
This was no different from pushing N away. rk¡¯s affair was already unforgivable¨Cnow, keeping a woman outside was like digging their marriage¡¯s grave.
Michael knew he was just a secretary and had to do as rk ordered.
Over the next few days, Lucia took leave and did note to work.
N officially entered theb to start developing drugs. She thought life would continue quietly, but Cindy came to her on Friday night.
They met at a restaurant near N¡¯spany.
Just as they sat down, Cindy said, ¡°I heard you moved out because rk has another woman outside.¡±
N paused flipping through the menu and looked up at Cindy.
Seeing Cindy¡¯s displeasure, N closed the menu and said calmly, ¡°It seems like in your eyes, this is just a trivial matter.¡±
¡°Of course. If rk didn¡¯t like you, do you think you could marry into the Sumners with your background? As the wife of the future decision¨Cmaker of the Sumner Group, you¡¯ll only hold rk back if you can¡¯t even tolerate this.¡±
N chuckled at Cindy¡¯s self¨Crighteousness.
When N and rk were fine, she wouldn¡¯t argue with Cindy, even if the said things she didn¡¯t like, out of respect for Cindy being rk¡¯s mother. But she didn¡¯t intend to endure it anymore.
¡°It seems you must have had a lot of experience when you were young, given your tolerance.¡±
It was said that when Cyrus was young, he had many admirers, and his womanizer reputation spread throughout the upper ss in Saintornia. Because of this reputation, Richard removed him from the candidate list of sessors to the Sumner Group and began to train rk.
Cindy scowled, her eyes betraying her revulsion. ¡°Is this your attitude when you talk to your elders? Your upbringing is truly exceptional!¡±
N stood up nonchntly. ¡°I don¡¯t need you to worry about my upbringing. If you have time, it would be best to keep an eye on your son because I really can¡¯t understand what kind of family would raise a married man who has an affair.¡±
The mockery in her tone infuriated Cindy. She took the water in front of N and sshed it on her face.
N wanted to avoid it, but it was toote. The water sshed onto her face, and the side of her hair and coat were immediately soaked. She frowned, about to speak when suddenly a few tissues were handed to her.
¡°Here, wipe yourself.¡±
N was surprised to see Damon handing her the tissues. She took them and murmured a thank you. Cindy hadn¡¯t expected to run into Damon there, especially not while he witnessed her sshing water at her daughter¨Cinw. She felt a momentary flush of embarrassment.
¡°Damon¡ What are you doing here?¡±
¡°I just came for a meal with a client. I didn¡¯t expect to witness such a spectacle.¡±This belongs to N?velDrama.Org - ?.
Cindy¡¯s expression darkened. ¡°I¡¯m just teaching this inexperienced daughter¨Cinw of mine a lesson. I am sorry you had to see this.¡±
Damon smirked, but his eyes held no warmth.
¡°My subordinates informed me earlier that you intend to keep the child that rk h they had it wrong. I didn¡¯t think you¡¯d be so foolish.¡±
outside. I thought
CHAPTER 29
Chapter 29
+25
¡°It seems I¡¯ve overestimated your kindness. After all, your son cheated first, yet you ssh water on your daughter¨Cinw. Such a bizarre mother¨Cinw is indeed rare.¡±
With each word Damon uttered, Cindy¡¯s expression darkened further. In the end, it turned icy.
¡°Damon, this is a family matter. As an outsider, it¡¯s best you not interfere.¡±
Damon arched an eyebrow. ¡°I wasn¡¯t nning to interfere, but don¡¯t you think it¡¯s too much to bully a young girl like this?¡±
Cindy only dared to be so audacious because she knew the Jaystons were bankrupt. Even if she treated N harshly, they couldn¡¯t do much to her.
Cindy gritted her teeth in anger. ¡°Too much? Just because rk has a woman on the side, she throws a fit, moves out, and even talks about divorce. Who¡¯s really being too much?¡±
¡°Isn¡¯t rk at fault for the affair in the first ce? It¡¯s the Sumners who wronged N, not the other way around. If you can¡¯t see this, I don¡¯t think rk should continue working at the Sumner Group.¡±
Cindy paled, trembling uncontrobly. ¡°Damon, whose side are you on?¡±
¡°I¡¯m on neither side. I¡¯m just advising you to be a kinder person if you want your son to inherit the Sumner Group.¡±
Under Damon¡¯s icy gaze, Cindy took a deep breath, picked up her bag, and left.
¡°Uncle Damon, thank you¡ for today¡¡±
Damon turned to look at N. He briefly nced at her wet clothes stuck to her chest, then casually averted his gaze.
¡°You don¡¯t call me Uncle Damon for nothing. It¡¯s the least I should do. Let me take you home. You¡¯re in no condition to catch a cab right now.¡±
With that, he turned and headed toward the door,
N followed his gaze and nced down. Her soaked white shirt had be nearly transparent, revealing a tantalizing hint of cleavage. She bit her lip and subconsciously covered herself, feeling her cheeks flush.
In the car, N sat pressed against the door, trying to minimize her presence.
Thankfully, Damon remained engrossed in his documents, not sparing even a nce her way, which put her at ease.
When the car stopped at the entrance of The Fleur, N prepared to get out when Damon suddenly spoke. ¡°If you want to divorce rk, I can introduce you to divorcewyers.¡±
Although rk was Damon¡¯s nephew, cheating was something Damon found unforgivable. Moreover, the way Cindy had publicly treated N today showed she had little regard for her daughter¨Cinw.
N paused, her fingertips gripping the handle turning white.
The inside of the car fell quiet for several seconds before N spoke softly. ¡°Thank you, Uncle Damon.
When I need it, I will to you for help.¡±Text content ? N?velDrama.Org.
Damon furrowed his brows but didn¡¯t press further. ¡°Okay.¡±
+25
As N got out of the car and watched it disappear from view, she turned to head into her building.
Unexpectedly, she saw rk standing at the entrance, ring at her with a dark expression.
N¡¯s gaze hardened as she pretended not to see him and walked past.
As she passed by rk, he grabbed her wrist. ¡°N, was it Uncle Damon who just dropped you off?¡±
His questioning tone made N ufortable. She shook off his hand coldly. ¡°It¡¯s none of your business.
rk blocked her path, about to speak, when he noticed her partially damp shirt. His expression darkened further. ¡°What happened to your shirt?¡±
Once rk thought of N being in the same car as Damon in her current state, his eyes shed with unsettling hostility. She belonged to him alone, and he would never allow another man toy a finger on
her.
Ny?a scoffed. ¡°You should ask your mother about that.
CHAPTER 30
rk paused, frowning. ¡°What do you mean?¡±
¡°Ask her, and you¡¯ll know,¡± N replied curtly, then walked past him without another word.
rk immediately called Cindy. ¡°Mom, did you go see N today?¡±
Cindy, still smarting from her confrontation with Damon at the restaurant, sneered at his question. ¡°She went toin to you? Truly shameless!¡±
rk¡¯s eyes shed with anger. ¡°Mom, I told you not to interfere in my matters with N. Why didn¡¯t you
listen?¡±
¡°If I didn¡¯t do it for you, do you think I¡¯d willingly go to see her? She¡¯s making a fuss about you having a woman on the side. Can¡¯t even manage a woman¡ Others would see you as a joke if they knew!¡±
¡°This is our business. If you keep going to N in secret, I won¡¯t care about Dad¡¯s affairs anymore.¡±
¡°You-¡±
rk didn¡¯t give her a chance to speak and hung up abruptly. He pocketed his phone, visibly frustrated.N?velDrama.Org (C) content.
He hadn¡¯t settled his affair, and now Cindy was causing trouble for N. If he were N, he wouldn¡¯t forgive him either.
After standing downstairs for a while, rk finally went upstairs. He took a deep breath before he knocked on the door of N¡¯s apartment.
Soon, N¡¯s indifferent voice came from inside. ¡°I don¡¯t want to see you today. Please leave.¡±
A bitter feeling surged in rk¡¯s heart. ¡°N, I didn¡¯t know about my mom seeing you. I just told her not to
interfere in our affairs.
¡°I just want to see you. Once I see you, I¡¯ll leave. Okay?¡±
He waited for a long time without hearing any response from inside. His heart sank. He knew very well that N wouldn¡¯t open the door for him tonight.
After lingering outside the door for a while, he turned and left.
In the car, rk immediately called Michael. ¡°Find out what my mom said to my wife today.¡±
Just as he was about to hang up, he suddenly remembered that Damon had brought N back earlier.¡± Also, find out how Damon knows my wife.¡±
Damon had a rebellious personality and did things ording to his own wishes. When he was in a bad mood, he wouldn¡¯t even do Richard and Marie favors, let alone send someone unfamiliar home.
rk absentmindedly tapped his fingers on the steering wheel after he set his phone down.
If once was a coincidence for Damon, twice in a row couldn¡¯t be idental.
Thinking of this, rk glowered.
He had been with N for eight years and knew very well that she was the type of woman men loved the
most¨Cpure yet seductive, irresistible to men,
Even though he had strayed with Jordyn, it was only a momentary novelty, not genuine affection.
If Damon dared to covet his woman, he wouldn¡¯t let it go easily¨Ceven if Damon was his uncle.
Michael acted swiftly.
As soon as rk returned home, a video was sent over. He clicked on it, and it showed surveince footage of Cindy and N at the restaurant earlier in the evening.
When rk saw Cindy¡¯s assertive demeanor and the derogatory remarks she made to N, his gaze turned icy.
It seemed he had been too lenient in what he had said to Cindy over the phone earlier. He knew Cindy didn¡¯t approve of N. Still, he had always assumed that even if she wasn¡¯t satisfied, she would treat N politely for his sake.
CHAPTER 31
Chapter 31
rk realized how badly Cindy had been treating N in private. Had she been speaking to N this way for the entire three years of their marriage whenever he wasn¡¯t around?
When rk saw Damon in the surveince footage, his grip on his phone tightened, his knuckles turningText content ? N?velDrama.Org.
white.
Watching Damon stand up for N made rk feel a mix of anger and helplessness. He was N¡¯s husband. He should have been the one standing by her side, but he hadn¡¯t been there. If N hadn¡¯t told him to ask Cindy, he wouldn¡¯t have known what happened today.
The more rk thought about it, the more guilt he felt. He had failed N and their eight years of love.
He turned off the video and sent a message to his secretary.
rk: [If my mother asks you to handle my father¡¯s matters in the future, ignore her.]
Michael: [Understood. Do you still want me to investigate your uncle?]
rk: [Go on.]
N had expected rk to stay away for a few days after what happenedst night. To her surprise, she opened the door the next morning to find him standing there with a bouquet.
rk¡¯s eyes lit up with hope when he saw her. ¡°N-¡±
¡°What do you want?¡± she interrupted, sounding impatient. It was a weekend, and she didn¡¯t want rk to ruin it.
¡°N, I know what happenedst night. I promise it won¡¯t happen again. Has my mom always been like this to you? Why didn¡¯t you ever tell me?¡±
N could onlyugh. ¡°Did you ever care? You¡¯ve known your mother for years. Don¡¯t you know what kind of person she is?¡±
Under N¡¯s piercing gaze, rk averted his eyes, unable to meet hers.
Nughed mockingly. ¡°rk, in the past three years, you¡¯ve had plenty of chances to find out how your mother treated me in private, but you never wanted to. Isn¡¯t that right?¡±
rk opened his mouth to defend himself, but no words came out. What was there to say?
Since their wedding, he hadn¡¯t cared about her feelings as much as he used to. When sheined,
he¡¯d dismiss her and use work as an excuse, expecting her to handle her emotions alone. Cindy dared to treat N that way because of his inaction.
¡°Haven¡¯t I hinted at it before? You always pretended not to understand because, in your eyes, my suffering didn¡¯t matter.
¡°If it weren¡¯t for your affair and my decision to divorce you, you might never have realized how your mother treats me.¡±
¡°N, I am sorry¡¡±
rk¡¯s face was pale. Besides those four words, he didn¡¯t know what else to say. Anything he said now would be too little, toote. Any excuse would be meaningless.
¡°Ever since I found out about your affair, you¡¯ve been apologizing. But bted apologies can¡¯t undo the pain I¡¯ve endured.¡±
N had once had faith in their love, so she endured Cindy¡¯s hostility. She didn¡¯t care if others thought she was unworthy of rk. As long as the two of them were happy together, it was enough.
However, the moment she discovered his infidelity, her years of patience became a cruel joke.
Now, she was done enduring.
CHAPTER 32
Chapter 32
Seeing the disappointment in N¡¯s eyes, rk felt as if a hand was squeezing his heart, making it hard to breathe.
¡°N, I know that no matter what promises I make now, you won¡¯t believe me. But I will prove it with my actions. I will keep my word.¡±
N had no intention of listening to his promises. She brushed past him and walked away.
Just as rk was about to follow her, his phone in his pocket rang. He answered, and his secretary¡¯s serious voice came through. ¡°Mr. Sumner, there¡¯s a problem with one of our deals.¡±
rk¡¯s expression darkened. ¡°I¡¯ll be there right away.¡±
By the time he ran to the exit of theplex, all he saw was N getting into a taxi and leaving. He pursed his lips, turned around, got into his car, and drove to thepany. Once he dealt with work, he woulde back to sort things out with N.
When N arrived at the restaurant, Vrie was already there.
¡°N, you¡¯re finally here! I¡¯ve got some gossip to share with you.¡±
N sat down across from Vrie, ced her bag on the chair next to her, and raised an eyebrow. ¡°What gossip?¡±
¡°I heard that Lucia somehow pissed off rk a week ago and got pped in a private room. Her face was so swollen she looked like a pig.¡±
N paused as she was about to pour herself some water. She looked up at Vrie. ¡°Who told you that?¡±
¡°A girl I¡¯m friends with. She was at the bar that night and saw the whole thing.¡±N?velDrama.Org (C) content.
N looked down, saying nothing, but she understood. rk must have investigated the incident and punished Lucia for hitting her. However, his actions would only make Lucia hate her more and make her life at thepany even harder.
¡°N¡ N?¡±
N snapped out of her thoughts and looked at Vrie. ¡°What is it, Vrie?¡±
Vrie looked exasperated. ¡°That¡¯s what I wanted to ask you. I¡¯ve called your name several times, and you were daydreaming. What were you thinking about?¡±
¡°Nothing much¡¡± N shook her head. ¡°I probably didn¡¯t sleep wellst night. By the way, why did you suddenly ask me out to go shopping today?¡±
Vrie, who usually preferred staying in bed over the weekend, had unexpectedly asked her out.
A blush crept up Vrie¡¯s cheeks. ¡°His birthday ising up, and I want to pick out a gift for him. I thought you could help me choose.¡±
Seeing Vrie¡¯s shy and expectant look, N couldn¡¯t help but tease her. ¡°Who was it that swore off rtionships and called them foolish?¡±
+25
Vrie fested her chin in her hands, her gaze full of tenderness. ¡°That was before I met him. After I met him, I realized I¡¯m filled with anticipation before I sleep every night because I get to say good morning to him the next day the moment I open my eyes.¡±
N pretended to be grossed out. ¡°Alright, enough with the mushy stuff. If you keep being this lovey- dovey, I¡¯m going home.¡±
¡°Okay, okay, I¡¯ll stop.¡±
Vrie noticed N was smiling, but there was a sadness in her eyes that she couldn¡¯t hide. She sighed inwardly. She had invited N out because she didn¡¯t want her to stay cooped up at home.
It had only been a short time since N found out about rk¡¯s affair. When N was alone, she would likely be lost in thought or even cry in secret, but she always put on a facade of calm in front of others.
Vrie didn¡¯t want to bring up rk and reopen her wounds. She just hoped N could move on soon and start a new chapter in her life.
After lunch, they headed to the mall.
As soon as they walked into a men¡¯s clothing store, Vrie¡¯s eyesnded on a ck suit disyed in the center of the store.
¡°Could you take that suit down for me to see?¡±
¡°I¡¯d like that suit, please!¡±
CHAPTER 33
Chapter 33
Two very different voices spoke at the same time.
Vrie turned around and saw a tall woman not far behind her. The woman, Jacqueline Rainford, had fair skin and wavy hair, and wore a red strap dress. Jacqueline¡¯s hand was pointing at the suit Vrie had her
eye on.
Noticing Vrie¡¯s gaze, Jacqueline smiled and said, ¡°Miss, I n to buy this suit as a gift for my boyfriend. We¡¯re meeting soon. Could you let me have it?¡±
Vrie really liked the suit and didn¡¯t want to give it up, but Jacqueline¡¯s polite request made her hesitate.
The sales associate next to her spoke up. ¡°Ms. Weir, this suit is the only one in our store. As a VIP customer, you have priority purchasing rights.¡±
Upon hearing this, Jacqueline¡¯s expression immediately turned sour. There was just one suit¨Cshe must
have it.N?velDrama.Org (C) content.
¡°What do you mean by this? Are you showing favoritism?¡±
Despite Jacqueline¡¯s aggressive tone, the sales associate remained calm, maintaining a professional smile. ¡°Miss, our VIP customers do have priority purchasing rights. Perhaps you could take a look at our other suits. We have many other excellent options-¡±
Before she could finish, Jacqueline cut her off, ¡°All the other suits in your store are too low¨Css. I wouldn¡¯t even use them as rags. This is the only one worth my time. How can I be a VIP customer?¡±
¡°If you purchase suits from our store more than 12 times in a year, you can be a VIP customer.¡±
Jacqueline scowled. ¡°Are you deliberately making things difficult for me?¡±
¡°Not at all. If you don¡¯t believe me, you can check the conditions for bing a VIP at our store.¡±
Jacqueline snorted. ¡°Wait, I¡¯m going to make a call. I must get this suit today.¡±
She dialed a number and, with a coquettish tone, said, Tom, I found a suit that I want to buy for your birthday, but they¡¯re making it difficult for me because I¡¯m not a VIP.¡±
The person on the other end probably asked for the location. Jacqueline provided the address and hung up, then looked at the sales associate with a haughty expression.
¡°Wait, my boyfriend will be here soon.¡±
Seeing Jacqueline¡¯s arrogant demeanor, Vrie couldn¡¯t help but roll her eyes. Why were there always people who thought they were superior to others?
Initially, she had considered letting Jacqueline have the suit, but now she had changed her mind. Turning to the sales associate, Vrie smiled. ¡°Please pack up the suit for me and charge my card.¡±
She handed her card to the sales associate, who took it and was about to retrieve the suit when Jacqueline blocked her way.
¡°My boyfriend will be here soon. I won¡¯t let anyone touch this suit before he arrives.¡±
Vrie had never encountered such an audacious person before. Raising an eyebrow, she said, ¡°There¡¯s a firste, first served rule for everything. Do you expect us to waste our time waiting here with you? Please move aside.¡±
Jacqueline red at her with disdain. ¡°Do you know who my boyfriend is? He¡¯s Tom Genge, the CEO of Gen Pharma. If you know what¡¯s good for you, you¡¯ll let me have this suit. Otherwise, I¡¯ll make sure you regret it.¡±
As soon as Jacqueline finished speaking, N snapped her head to look at Vrie. If she remembered correctly, Vrie worked at Gen Pharma¨Cand her boyfriend was Tom, the CEO.
As expected, Vrie¡¯s face turned pale, and she trembled slightly. Biting her lip, she said slowly and clearly, ¡°Fine, I¡¯d like to see how you n to make me regret it.¡±
CHAPTER 34
hapter 34
N walked over and took Vrie¡¯s cold hand, whispering, ¡°Vrie, maybe there¡¯s some misunderstanding. Don¡¯t be too upset.¡±
Vrie nodded. ¡°Mm, I know.¡±
She wouldn¡¯t believe Jacqueline¡¯s words until Tom himself confirmed them in person.
Soon, Tom¡¯s secretary, Fred Sailor, arrived.
He hurried over to Jacqueline,pletely unaware of Vrie and N standing nearby. ¡°Ms. Rainford, Mr. Genge is in a meeting, so he sent me.¡±
Jacqueline pointed her chin in the direction of Vrie and N. ¡°There, they¡¯re the ones trying to take the suit from me.¡±
Fred turned to speak but froze when he saw Vrie and N. His face paled.
¡°Ms. Weir¡¡±
At that moment, Fred had only three words in his mind: ¡°It is over.¡±N?velDrama.Org owns this.
Vrie was Tom¡¯s current girlfriend, while Jacqueline was Tom¡¯s childhood friend. Fred hadn¡¯t expected Jacqueline to run into Vrie on her first day back in the country, let alone in such an unpleasant situation.
Noticing Fred¡¯s unusual reaction, Jacqueline frowned. ¡°You know her?¡±
Fred had no time to answer Jacqueline¡¯s question because Vrie was now looking at him with a half- smile. ¡°I just heard Ms. Rainford say her boyfriend is Tom Genge. Is that correct?¡±
¡°Ms. Weir, there must be some misunderstanding. Why don¡¯t we wait until-¡±
Before Fred could finish, Jacqueline cut him off coldly, ¡°Mr. Sailor, what could be misunderstood? It¡¯s only a matter of time before Tom and I are together. So, saying he¡¯s my boyfriend isn¡¯t wrong.¡±
Jacqueline¡¯s eyes were filled with determination and confidence. She had grown up with Tom, and the families had always intended to match them.
When she was in high school, she had avoided settling down too soon by studying abroad. After experiencing life overseas, she realized Tom was the best match for her. She returned this time with the intention of marrying him.
Fred just wanted Jacqueline to stop talking. If she continued, Tom would likely be in big trouble tonight. ¡°Ms. Weir, Ms. Rainford and Mr. Genge have known each other since childhood, so they are quite close.¡± Before Vrie could respond, Jacqueline frowned and said, ¡°Why are you exining to her? What does my rtionship with Tom have to do with her¡¡±
Suddenly, Jacqueline seemed to realize something and looked at Vrie with a sharp, cold gaze. After scrutinizing Vrie for a few seconds, she sneered and raised an eyebrow. ¡°You do have some looks. Tell me, how much does Tom pay you per month? I¡¯ll give you ten times that amount. Just stay out of our way.¡±
Her words were filled with contempt, and she looked at Vrie with scorn, clearly mistaking her for
someone who sold her body.
However, Vrie wasn¡¯t angry at Jacqueline¡¯s insulting words. It wasn¡¯t worth arguing with someone like her. She smiled faintly and said, ¡°A dirty mind sees everything as dirty. I¡¯m afraid you¡¯ll be disappointed. I am currently Tom¡¯s legitimate girlfriend.¡±
Jacqueline¡¯s face darkened, and disbelief filled her eyes. When she left, Tom had liked her. How could he possibly be with another woman?
¡°Ms. Rainford, you said you and Tom¡¯will be together sooner orter. Are you that eager to be the third party?¡±
¡°Shut up!¡± Jacqueline gritted her teeth and red at Vrie. ¡°Tom is just ying with you. With our 20- plus years of rtionship, you should know what really matters.¡±
¡°20¨Cplus years, and you still aren¡¯t together. Is that something to be proud of?¡±
¡°That¡¯s because I went abroad, giving you the chance to swoop in. Now that I¡¯m back, do you think I can¡¯t make him break up with you within a month?¡±
Vrie smiled, but there was no warmth in her gaze.
CHAPTER 35
Chapter 35
¡°No need, you can have him,¡± Vrie said tly.
A man entangled with other women wasn¡¯t worth keeping¨Cit would only cause her grief.
Jacqueline was stunned and couldn¡¯t respond before Vrie turned and walked away.
Fred paled and hurried after Vrie. ¡°Ms. Weir, this is a misunderstanding. At least give Mr. Genge a chance to exin.¡±
Vrie stopped and looked at him coldly. ¡°Three months ago, he went to Meristate, and I couldn¡¯t reach him for three days. Later, he exined he was busy with work. Was he really busy with work?¡±
Seeing Fred¡¯s momentary panic, Vrie smirked mockingly. ¡°Now, can you still confidently say this is a misunderstanding?¡±N?velDrama.Org (C) content.
She did like Tom, but she wasn¡¯t a fool. She had chosen not to pursue the matter then, hoping to give him a chance, but he had let her down.
¡°Mr. Genge and Ms. Rainford didn¡¯t do anything. Ms. Rainford¡¯s pet dog died, and she was in a bad state, so Mr. Genge-¡±
¡°No need to exin. It¡¯s unnecessary.¡±
Jacqueline¡¯s confidence in iming Tom as her boyfriend stemmed from his usual interactions with her. He was so attentive that even a phone call from her could make him send his secretary to assist her, no
matter how busy he was.
Vrie suddenly recalled a time when she sprained her ankle while hiking. Using thest bit of her phone¡¯s battery, she called Tom, who didn¡¯t answer but texted back, saying he was in a meeting without even asking why she had called. When she tried to call someone else for help, her phone died. If not for a kind couple she encountered, she might have spent the night on the mountain.
It was today that she realized Tom wasn¡¯t incapable of caring for someone else¡¯s feelings. It was just that, in his eyes, she wasn¡¯t important enough.
As Vrie left the mall, she sent Tom a message.
Vrie: [Let¡¯s break up.]
She then blocked him.
Seeing Vrie¡¯s red eyes, N said softly, ¡°Vrie, if you want to cry, just cry.¡±
She didn¡¯t intend to console Vrie excessively. After all, only the person involved truly understood the rtionship. From today¡¯s events, it was clear that Tom hadn¡¯t maintained appropriate boundaries with other women, allowing Jacqueline to act so arrogantly.
Vrie wasn¡¯t one to act impulsively. It was best to support her decision silently.
Vrie wiped away her tears and tried to sound upbeat. ¡°Out with the old, in with the new. Plenty of young guys are after me, and younger ones have simpler histories¨Cno messy childhood sweethearts or female confidantes.
¡°But seriously, what bad luck do we have? One husband cheats, and one boyfriend is involved with another woman.¡±
Seeing Vrie act tough, N felt a pang of sympathy. ¡°Why don¡¯t you stay at my ce tonight?¡±
Being together was better than overthinking alone.
Vrie shook her head. ¡°No. I¡¯ll get a hotel room and think about what to do next.¡±
¡°Are you sure you don¡¯t need me with you?¡±
¡°I¡¯m sure. You know me¨Cif I need you, I won¡¯t be shy about it.¡±
¡°Alright.¡±
N didn¡¯t insist and went home after dropping Vrie off at a hotel.
As she stepped out of the elevator, she saw rk standing at her door with a glower. She frowned, but he suddenly grabbed her wrist before she could speak and asked icily, ¡°Where did you go the night you didn¡¯te home?!¡±
CHAPTER 36
N widened her eyes sharply, shaking off rk¡¯s hand as she took a step back. ¡°What does it have to do with you?¡±
¡°You and Uncle Damon stayed at the same hotel that night,¡± rk said coldly. ¡°Not long after you left, he left too. And the hotel¡¯s surveince footage from that lime was deliberately deleted.¡±
If it weren¡¯t for a streetlight camera across from the hotel, rk wouldn¡¯t have known any of this. The hotel¡¯s surveince footage of N¡¯sings and goings was deleted. If nothing shady happened, why delete the footage?
The more rk thought about it, the angrier he became His eyes turned even redder. What he found unusual about Damon¡¯s behavior finally had an exnation.
Seeing rk¡¯s disappointed look, Nughed coldly. ¡°rk, do you think I cheated on you just like you did, and with your uncle no less?¡±
rk didn¡¯t speak, but his bloodshot eyes were fixed on her, clearly confirming her suspicion.
¡°So,v
what now? You think I cheated on you. What are you going to do about it?¡±
rk slowly clenched his hands at his sides. One was his wife, the other his uncle. Could he expose them to the world? If it had been anyone else, he would have made them suffer. But it was Damon. He couldn¡¯t do anything to him and had to swallow this humiliation, If he offended Damon, he might not be able to stay in the Sumner Group.
¡°N¡¡± His voice was hoarse as if he¡¯d made a tough decision. ¡°We both betrayed each other. Why don¡¯t we just forgive and forget, and start over?¡±
¡°You think that¡¯s possible?¡±
¡°You also betrayed me. Let¡¯s call it even. Let¡¯s forgive each other and go back to how things were. Isn¡¯t that good?¡±
N smirked. ¡°I¡¯m afraid you¡¯ll be disappointed. I never betrayed you, and I don¡¯t intend to forgive you.¡±
rk frowned, doubt shing in his eyes. If she really had nothing with Damon, why would Damon help
her so often?
Seeing rk¡¯s disbelief, N didn¡¯t bother to exin further. After all, it would be him who would suffer. He should have a taste of what he had put her through¨Che deserved it.
¡°Did you really¡ never betray me?¡±
¡°If you like being a cuckold, think I betrayed you. Fine by me.¡± N pushed past him, opened the door, andText content ? N?velDrama.Org.
went inside.
After resting on the couch for a bit, she opened herptop to organizest week¡¯s experimental data when her phone buzzed with a message from an unknown number.
I¡¯m not giving up. I will make rk divorce you!]
N read it with a nk face and then deleted it. This woman truly loved rk, or she wouldn¡¯t keeping back to provoke her like an annoying cockroach. Despite that, N was curious about what the
woman would do next.
If rk were to cheat on her again when she was ¡°prepared to forgive him, he would probably feel guilty, leading to a better settlement in the divorce. Even if he weren¡¯t filled with guilt, N would ensure he gave her what she deserved.
After organizing her data, N closed herptop, grabbed some ingredients from the fridge, and started making lunch. In less than half an hour, she had two dishes and a soup on the table.
She removed her apron, served the meal, and grabbed her tablet from the sofa to the dining table. She turned on a variety show and watched it while eating, feeling she hadn¡¯t had such a rxing meal in ages.
She was naturallyid¨Cback, but many of her habits had been forced to change by Cindy after marrying rk.
CHAPTER 37
For three years of marriage, N endured constant restrictions, only to be repaid with rk¡¯s infidelity. Now, she was donepromising her happiness. She would livefortably on her own terms.
After finishing her meal, N washed the dishes, brewed a pot of tea, and settled on the balcony with a book, basking in the sunlight. As she read, drowsiness overcame her, and she fell asleep on the lounge chair. When she woke up, dusk had already settled.N?velDrama.Org owns this.
She washed her face in the bathroom and decided not to make dinner. Grabbing her keys, she headed out to eat. When she opened the door, she was startled to find rk standing in the shadows and
instinctively took a step back.
¡°N, it¡¯s me.¡± rk¡¯s voice was dry, indicating he had been standing there all afternoon.
N frowned. ¡°What are you doing here?¡±
¡°N, can you really not forgive me?¡±
After a moment of silence, N looked at him calmly. ¡°rk, when you cheated with your secretary, you must have spent a lot of money and effort on her, right?¡±
¡°What do you mean?¡±
Seeing the confusion in rk¡¯s eyes, N found it somewhat amusing. Was he pretending to be oblivious?
¡°You were willing to spend money and effort on a mistress, taking her out and showing her a good time. But when ites to me, all you do ise here to beg for forgiveness without offering anything else?¡±
rk frowned, his expression shifting from confusion to disbelief. ¡°N, as long as you forgive me, you can use my money for anything you want. Isn¡¯t my love more important than material things?¡±
N couldn¡¯t help butugh. ¡°I used to care about your love, but in the end, you betrayed me. And you weren¡¯t even willing to spend money or effort on me. How can I believe you love me?¡±
As the saying went, ¡°Where a man¡¯s money goes, his love follows.¡±
It was just that N didn¡¯t care about rk¡¯s love anymore. Since she had decided to divorce, she would take as much as she could from him, Jewelry and such personal items wouldn¡¯t be divided in the divorce
anyway.
Seeing the ridicule in N¡¯s gaze, rk pursed his lips with a dark expression as he pondered.
N didn¡¯t waste any more words and pressed the elevator button to leave. Given rk¡¯s character, he would soon figure things out. Regardless of his feelings, they couldn¡¯t divorce now. His reputation would plummet, and Richard would be disappointed in him.
After eating at a restaurant near her apartment, N returned to find that rk had left. She didn¡¯t pay it much mind, watched some variety shows, and then went to bed.
The weekend flew by, and soon it was Monday.
As N stepped into the R&D department, she saw a bouquet of fiery red roses on her desk, next to a
+25
luxury branded jewelry box. She picked up the card on the roses and opened it.
[N, from the moment I first saw you, I felt you were like a zing rose, setting my heart on fire. I thought about it all night and decided to pursue you again. I hope you¡¯ll give me a chance.]
It was signed ¡°Yours forever, rk¡± with a heart pierced by an arrow drawn at the end.
N put the card in her bag and opened the jewelry box, revealing a sparkling diamond bracelet.
Her colleague, Sasha, couldn¡¯t help bute over, her expression envious. ¡°N, who sent this? Is it from. a suitor? I saw that bracelet on TV. It¡¯s worth thousands!¡±
? +25
CHAPTER 38
N nodded. ¡°Yeah.¡±
¡°Your suitor must be quite wealthy. I remember that bracelet symbolizes a lifetime of love for only one person. He must really like you.¡±
A discreet sh of sarcasm crossed N¡¯s eyes as she ced the bracelet back in its box. ¡°Maybe.¡±
Seeing N¡¯sck of enthusiasm, Sasha felt a bit uneasy but didn¡¯t press further. Over time, she had learned that although N appeared gentle and approachable, she was very private about certain matters. Besides, they weren¡¯t close enough for such intimate discussions.
As N closed the jewelry box, Lucia happened to pass by. She caught a glimpse of the diamond bracelet inside and felt a surge of jealousy. After her previous experience at the bar, she decided not to confront N and walked away.
In the evening, as N exited thepany, she saw rk standing a short distance away. She paused and looked at him.
Upon seeing her, rk quickly approached. ¡°N, let¡¯s have dinner together tonight.¡±
N lowered her gaze, her hands slightly clenched. After a moment, she looked up at him, her expression calm. ¡°Alright.¡±
Relieved by her affirmative response, rk smiled. ¡°I booked a reservation at your favorite restaurant, but/ if you prefer something else tonight, we can switch.¡±
N shook her head. ¡°No need. That¡¯s fine.¡±This content belongs to N?/velDra/ma.Org .
As they approached the car, rk hurried ahead to open the passenger door for N. Since their wedding. rk had been so busy with work that they rarely had the chance to dine out together. Ironically, he seemed to find the time after she discovered his affair.
With that thought, a trace of mockery crossed N¡¯s eyes.
Once N was seated, rk closed the door and walked around to the driver¡¯s side. As he started the car, he asked casually, ¡°You didn¡¯t like the bracelet I sent you? Why aren¡¯t you wearing it?¡±
¡°I like it, but it¡¯s not practical to wear while doing experiments.¡±
rk fell silent for a moment before speaking again. ¡°N, I don¡¯t oppose you working, but doing experiments is exhausting. You used to stay up all night for it in university. I don¡¯t want you to be so tired. Let me have my secretary arrange something else for you, okay?¡±
His primary concern was that he had discovered Damon¡¯spany had invested in Park Pharmaceuticals and was now one of its shareholders.
Although N imed there was nothing between her and Damon, rk instinctively wanted to minimize their interaction. His affair with Jordyn had started simrly¨Ctoo much time spent together leading to apse in judgment. He didn¡¯t want to make the same mistake again.
N frowned at him. ¡°This is the work I love. No matter how tiring or hard it is, I find joy in it. I hope you
can respe
my choice.¡±
rk¡¯s grip on the steering wheel tightened, his knuckles turning white.
Sensing that their rtionship was finally beginning to thaw, he didn¡¯t want to risk another argument that could bring them back to square one. Reluctantly, he decided to let it go for now, nning to address it again once they had fully reconciled.
¡°Alright, I¡¯ll respect your decision. But if you ever want to quit, just do it. I can support you.¡±
N smiled, saying nothing. rk could more than support her¨Che was already supporting a mistress. Ten more wouldn¡¯t be an issue for him, apparently. He seemed to forget that the money he was spending was their marital assets.
CHAPTER 39
N ensured she ounted for everything and reimed every penny.
When they arrived at the restaurant, N was surprised to find it empty except for them.
¡°You booked the whole ce?¡± Nyka a
asked.
¡°Yes, I know you don¡¯t like crowded ces,¡± rk replied.N?velDrama.Org (C) content.
Tmuss
used to it now. You don¡¯t have to go through so much trouble.¡±
rk looked at N sincerely. ¡°N, we missed out on a lot because I was so busy before. From now on, I¡¯ll make sure to give you all the special moments you deserve.
His gaze was filled with the same love and tenderness as when they were first in love.
N¡¯s heart ached, and she turned away, holding back her tears.
If he had said this before he cheated, she might have been moved, but it only felt bitter now. From the moment he cheated, there was no going back.
Seeing N¡¯s silence, rk reached out to hold her hand, but she pulled away. Disappointment shed in his eyes, but he quickly regained hisposure.
¡°N, we¡¯ll take it slow until the day you can forgive me.¡±
N looked at him. ¡°We¡¯ll see.¡±
She knew that day would nevere.
During dinner, rk tried to make conversation, but N¡¯s responses were indifferent. Noticing herck of interest, he felt a pang of sadness but knew he had no right to expect her to treat him as she used to.
N, however, wasn¡¯t going to let rk ruin her meal. The steak at this restaurant was excellent, and she didn¡¯t want to waste such good food because of him.
After dinner, rk drove her home. When they arrived, he called out to her just as she was about to get out of the car.
¡°What¡¯s up?¡±
¡°I have a gift for you.¡±
He handed her a property deed.
I
¡°The apartment you¡¯re renting is in an old neighborhood and not very safe. I bought you a ce near your office. You can move in whenever you like. It¡¯ll be more convenient for work.¡±
N looked at the property deed, surprised. ¡°I¡¯m fine where I am.¡±
¡°No problem. I bought it for you, and you can move in whenever you want.¡±
N nodded and took the deed. ¡°Okay, thank you.¡±
rk looked at her with a hint of helplessness. ¡°N, we¡¯re married. This is what I should do.¡±
N didn¡¯t respond to that. Instead, she told him, ¡°It¡¯s gettingte. I have some experimental data to upload. Take care on your way back.¡±
¡°Sure. Don¡¯t overwork yourself.¡±
¡°Got it.¡±
After getting out of the car, N walked toward the building.
rk kept his car parked by the roadside, hoping she would look back. She didn¡¯t, even as her figure disappeared from sight.
rk remembered their university days when they were dating. He would walk N to her dorm every night, and they would linger downstairs, reluctant to part until it was close to curfew. After they got married, N used to get up early every morning to make him breakfast and see him off to work. He wondered when those warm scenes would return.
However, she was giving him a chance now, and he believed they would eventually reconcile.
Back home, N ced the diamond bracelet next to the property deed and pulled out her phone to make a call.
CHAPTER 40
+25
The real estate agent was stunned when he heard N¡¯smission offer to sell a house. ¡°Ms. Jayston, are you sure the house is in Karlinan?¡±
He was puzzled. If N had a property in Karlinan, why did she need the one¨Cbedroom apartment he had found for her in the old neighborhood?
¡°Yes,¡± she replied. ¡°I¡¯ll give you the address and the code. Bring potential buyers to see it, and I¡¯ll give you 3- % of the sale price asmission.¡±This content belongs to N?/velDra/ma.Org .
N knew that real estate agents typically took 1-3% of a property¡¯s sale price asmission. Given that the fully renovated house in Karlinan could fetch around 1.1-1.2 million dors, the agent stood to make a decent sum.
¡°Ms. Jayston, I have a question. If you already have a ce, why did you choose to live in the old neighborhood instead of Karlinan?¡±
N didn¡¯t want toplicate matters, so she replied tly, ¡°It¡¯s not mine. It belongs to a friend.¡±
¡°Oh, got it. Send me the address and code, and I¡¯ll take some photos to list the property tomorrow.
¡°Thanks.¡±
After hanging up, N found the property deed and sent the unit number and code to the agent, who responded with an ¡°OK¡± emoji. N then closed the chat.
Noticing that Vrie had updated her social media, N clicked on it. It was a simple post with a ck image and a caption: [Started with love, ended with heartbreak].
N pursed her lips. After a few moments of thought, she called Vrie. After several attempts with no answer, she started to worry. She then remembered that they had previously shared their locations via phone, so she quickly opened the location¨Csharing app and saw that Vrie was at her family home. Relieved, she decided to change and go check on her.
Just as she stood up, Vrie called back.
nak up with Tom?
N answered quickly. ¡°Vrie, are you okay? Did you really break up with Tom?¡±
¡°Yes,¡± Vrie replied, her voice thick with tears.
¡°Don¡¯t be sad. You always said that when the old goes, the new wille. It¡¯s not worth it to be upset over a jerk.¡±
Vrie sniffled but sounded determined. ¡°You¡¯re right. Being single again is great. Tomorrow, I¡¯m going to the university to find a younger boyfriend.¡±
¡°I support you.¡±
Vrie couldn¡¯t help butugh at how serious N sounded. ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll bring him to meet you once I find
one.
They chatted for a while longer before hanging up.
N put down her phone and sighed, feeling a mix of emotions. She and Vrie seemed to have a knack
for meeting jerks. She just hoped Vrie would move on quickly.
N nced at the property deed and the sparkling bracelet on her desk, then simply put them in a drawer and got ready for bed.
Thanks to the property¡¯s prime location in Karlinan, N¡¯s house quickly attracted interest. It was sold for 70,000 dors below market value. Once the contract was signed, the buyer promptly transferred the entire payment to N.
N transferred the agreedmission to the agent, who was all smiles. ¡°Ms. Jayston, if you or any of your friends ever need to sell another property, please let me know.¡±
Seeing his cheerful expression, N couldn¡¯t help but smile back. ¡°Sure.¡±
Back home, the first thing N did was take out 10,000 dors to hire a private detective to follow Jordyn.
CHAPTER 41
When N caught rk cheating with Jordyn, it had such a profound impact on her that her mind had gone nk, and she had even forgotten to record video evidence.
However, knowing Jordyn¡¯s persistence, she would definitely continu¨¦ pursuing rk. Once they rekindled their rtionship, N could obtain evidence to force rk to agree to a divorce.
N and rk had been together for eight years, and she didn¡¯t want to resort to plotting against him. But he refused to divide their assets and wouldn¡¯t agree to a divorce, so she felt she had no other choice.
After N exined her requirements to the private detective, their conversation ended. She opened her banking app and stared at the remaining bnce of close to 1,000,000 dors, lost in thought. She needed to find a way to make this money her personal asset.
As she was contemting, her phone suddenly rang. She was surprised to see it was Genevieve.
¡°Genevieve, what¡¯s up?¡±
¡°N, Mr. Sumner, the CEO of Prospectus Technology, will be at theb tomorrow to check on the progress of the experiments. Come to work early and get prepared.¡±
Prospectus Technology¡¯s CEO¡ N was rather certain it was Damon.
She recalled her previous encounters with Damon, which had left her feeling embarrassed each time, and unconsciously pursed her lips. Would she sh with Damon again?
Not hearing N¡¯s response, Genevieve thought she was nervous and added, ¡°Don¡¯t worry too much. Just follow your usual routine tomorrow.¡±
¡°I understand,¡± N snapped back to reality and replied softly.
After hanging up, she opened herputer to review the experiments she needed to prepare for tomorrow. Satisfied with the n, she washed up and went to bed.N?velDrama.Org (C) content.
Whether it was psychological or not, N had several nightmares throughout the night, all involving Damon. She didn¡¯t sleep well at all.
Upon waking, she had almost forgotten those dreams, only recalling the feeling of falling in each one.
When she arrived at thepany just after 7:00 a.m., she found that most of her colleagues in the R&D department hadn¡¯t arrived yet.
After preparing the instruments and chemicals needed for today¡¯s experiment, she began her work. If she progressed quickly today, she might be able to move some of tomorrow¡¯s tasks up.
As it approached the start of the workday, the other colleagues finally entered the yawn, noticed N grinding drugs in a mortar¨Cwith several more already ground beside her¨Cand widened her eyes in surprise.
¡°N, why are you here so early today?¡±
1/2
N nodded investors areing to check on the experiment progrem today, so came in early to
crepare
¡°Oh, I see
Visits from superiors or investors to theb weremenzurenols, Sasha was red dom yawning again she walked over to her own desk.
Despite that, words socken unwittingly could sometimes have unintended consequence
Mabel heart Nvia¡¯s words just as she entered. There was a glimt in her eves before she turned offto find
Upon hearing what Maicel had to say, Lucia¡¯s was narrowed coldly it seemed like she could settle the score today for what happened lust time. She leaned incline to Mabel¡¯s ear and whispered a tow words. Mabel caied as she hesitated. Luca, isn¡¯t this tee much? And it¡¯s too dangerous¡
Lucia snickered ¡°Have you forgotten how sweilen my face was that day? This is just traching her a lesson. If you don¡¯t do as i say, my Tamily might not be able to help with your father¡¯s ob
CHAPTER 42
As soon as Mabel heard that, her face paled further. Her mother had been in a car ident half a month ago, and the surgeries and hospitalization had already cost 7,000-8,000 dors. Her savings were nearly depleted. If her father couldn¡¯t find a job soon, they wouldn¡¯t be able to afford the medical expenses next
month.
Lucia¡¯s father was an executive at a subsidiary of Prospectus Technology, so pleasing Lucia could easily secure her father a job. This was why Mabel was willing to be Lucia¡¯sckey.
Her hesitant gaze hardened as she looked at Lucia and sald, ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll do as you say.¡±
Lucia showed no surprise at this. She raised an eyebrow with a smile. ¡°Good. As long as you handle this well, I¡¯ll have my dad arrange a job for your father tomorrow.¡±
After Mabel left, Lucia nced toward theb with a smirk.N?velDrama.Org (C) content.
Meanwhile, N ground the drugs and sequentially added them into a beaker along with the solvent, using a ss rod to initiate dissolution. Once the reaction was nearlyplete, she filtered out the residue and transferred the solution into a sk for distition, meticulously recording each step and
time in herb notebook.
This process was repeated five or six times until all the previously ground powder was dissolved.
During the distition process, N stepped away briefly to retrieve 20 milliliters of dilute sulfuric acid from the adjacent reagent storage room, intending to add it to the reaction mixtureter.
Shortly after N left the storage room, a furtive figure sneaked in and switched thebels on the bottles of concentrated and dilute sulfuric acid.
While Mabel did this, her hands trembled. After all, this was her first time plotting against someone like this. After switching thebels back, she hurriedly left.
Back in theb, N finished distilling the reaction mixture, dismantled the sk and condenser, and began setting up a new reaction apparatus. Just as she was about to ignite the alcoholmp, footsteps and voices approached the door.
Everyone in theb turned to see Genevieve entering with a smile on her face, Behind her were over a dozen well¨Cdressed people, led by Damon.
By chance, Damon¡¯s eyes met N¡¯s, but he quickly looked away as if they were strangers.
Genevieve spotted N and quickly said, ¡°N,e over here! Let me introduce you. This is Mr. Sumner, CEO of Prospectus Technology. He¡¯s the one investing in the asthma treatment drug you¡¯re Currently researching.¡±
N walked up to Damon and greeted him, ¡°Hello, Mr. Sumner. I¡¯m N Jayston, responsible for the -development of the asthma treatment drug.¡±
¡°Hello. We¡¯re just here to observe today. No need to be nervous. Just proceed with your experiments as usual,¡±
¡°Understood.¡±
Genevieve smiled at N. ¡°N, continue with your experiment.¡±
N nodded, then turned and resumed her work at theb bench. She was dressed in a white coat, with her long hair tied back, focused and drawing the attention of others without realizing it.
Damon raised an eyebrow, a hint of surprise shing in his
s eyes.
This N waspletely different from the one who had married rk and be a full¨Ctime housewife. Apart from her attractive appearance, she now exuded a lively energy that was a stark contrast to her previous reserved and uninteresting demeanor.
After N lit the alcoholmp, she tilted her head slightly as she jotted down in her notebook: [8:37 a.m., began heating.]
When the thermometer in the triangle sk showed a temperature of 75¡ãC, she began pouring the dilute sulfuric acid into the sk. After pouring in just a few milliliters, the solution in the sk suddenly boiled rapidly.
Realizing something was wrong, N quickly stopped, but it was already toote.
The sk suddenly exploded, sending shards and solution sttering everywhere.
Everyone in theb was startled and instinctively moved back.
Genevieve was appalled. She was about to urge Damon to hurry out of theb, but he swiftly moved toward N instead.
CHAPTER 43
¡°Mr. Sumner!¡±
Genevieve stared in panic at Damon¡¯s back. If anything happened to him in theb, her position as the head of the R&D department would be in jeopardy.
N quickly backed away, raising her hand to shield her face. Some of the liquid sprayed directly onto her hands, causing quick burns that left ck scars, the pain almost making her cry out.
Suddenly, a suit jacket covered her head, and her wrist was firmly grasped. Through the gap in the clothing, she saw the distinct knuckles of the hand holding hers, dry and warm against her skin.
In a daze, before N could react, the person had already pulled her to the nearby sink, turning on the faucet and rinsing the areas of her hands burned by the concentrated sulfuric acid-
It wasn¡¯t until the water flowed over the back of her hands that she snapped back to reality, quickly pulling the suit jacket off her head and withdrawing her hands from Damon¡¯s grasp.
¡°Mr. Sumner¡ I can handle this myself¡¡± She lowered her gaze, ignoring the strange emotions that had just surged within her. Damon was rk¡¯s uncle, so his help earlier was likely due to his rtionship with rk.
After N rinsed her hands for a while, the burning sensation finally subsided. She turned off the water and nced around the messyb, subconsciously biting her lip.
¡°Mr. Sumner, let¡¯s go out first.¡±
The two walked out of theb, and N was about to return the jacket to Damon when she met his icy gaze. She tightened her grip on the jacket, feeling that Damon was furious¨Cand the object of his anger.. was her¡
She understood it. No investor would be pleased to see their investment project encounter such difficulties.
Genevieve hurried over, relieved that Damon was unharmed, then turned to N with a frown. ¡°N, what exactly happened? How did the explosion happen suddenly?¡±
N was about to speak when Damon interrupted in a deep voice. ¡°Let¡¯s go to the hospital first.¡±
Genevieve widened her eyes in panic. She quickly looked at Damon. ¡°Mr. Sumner, are you injured?!¡±
¡°Not me, her.¡±
¡°I¡¯m fine. I can go to the hospitalter. Genevieve, I added the dilute sulfuric acid required for today¡¯s experiment earlier, When I added it, I felt something was wrong. Someone must have switched it with.
concentrated sulfuric acid.¡±
Genevieve¡¯s expression immediately turned serious. If someone had deliberately tampered with it, that person was beyond reprehensible.
The failure of this experiment today wouldn¡¯t only offend Damon, but N would also face consequences for her work mistake, possibly even losing her job.
Lucia was both angry and resentful as she took in Genevieve¡¯s changing expression, evident that sheThis content belongs to N?/velDra/ma.Org .
believed N¡¯s words. Lucia remembered clearly that Genevieve not only didn¡¯t believe her when she imed that N was the one behind the anonymous report, but Genevieve also rebuked her.
Why was Genevieve not doubting N¡¯s truthfulness this time?
Lucia looked at N. ¡°N, we haven¡¯t figured out what happened yet. Both concentrated and dilute sulfuric acids are stored in the storage room. It¡¯s possible you misread thebels when you fetched them. How can you be so sure someone switched them?¡±
Genevieve nced at Lucia coldly before saying in a stern tone, ¡°Mr. Sumner, I will investigate this matter thoroughly and provide you with an exnation.¡±
Damon¡¯s eyes narrowed. ¡°I¡¯ll be waiting.¡±
Genevieve nodded and looked at N, her tone not particrly friendly. ¡°Go to the hospital to treat your Injuries first. You don¡¯t have toe to work for the next few days. We¡¯ll wait for the investigation results.¡±
If N had indeed mistakenly taken the wrong reagent, she might not be allowed to independently conduct drug research anymore.
¡°Okay, understood.¡±
N turned to leave, but Damon suddenly spoke up. ¡°I¡¯ll take you
there.¡±
CHAPTER 44
Genevieve paused, looking at Damon in disbelief. From her limited interactions with him, she knew he wasn¡¯t the type to go out of his way to help others. He certainly wouldn¡¯t personally escort an employee from apany he had invested into the hospital.
Lucia knew Damon was rk¡¯s uncle, but hearing him offer to take N to the hospital sparked a wave of jealousy. She had seen Damon on TV, when he founded Prospectus Technology, and admired him greatly. Meeting him in person, she found him even more handsome than on screen and was instantly smitten.
Moreover, while Damon and rk were uncle and nephew, their positions in the business world differed vastly. If Lucia could be with Damon, she could easily overshadow N in the future.
Thinking this, she quickly said, ¡°N, I¡¯ll apany you. It¡¯s inconvenient for you to go alone and handle. registration and such.¡±
N nced at Lucia. Initially surprised by Lucia¡¯s sudden kindness, she understood when she noticed Lucia¡¯s lingering gaze on Damon. Did Lucia have a crush on Damon now? Being able to momentarily forget their previous disagreements showed Lucia¡¯s adaptability.Text content ? N?velDrama.Org.
¡°No need. I can manage on my own.¡±
That statement was directed at both Damon and Lucia, N briskly walked toward the elevator, and just as she reached it, another figure appeared beside her.
¡°It¡¯s not convenient to hail a cab right now. I¡¯ll take you. Damon¡¯s cold voice came from above N¡¯s
head.
She looked up to meet his unwavering gaze and frowned. ¡°Mr. Sumner, thank you for your kindness, but there¡¯s no need to trouble yourself.¡±
As soon as she finished speaking, the elevator arrived. She entered first, and Damon followed.
¡°I don¡¯t like repeating myself, I also need to go to the hospital, so sending you is just along the way.¡±
Upon hearing this, N turned to him abruptly. ¡°Did the concentrated sulfuric acid ssh onto you too?!¡±
N¡¯s widened eyes, as she stared at Damon like a startled rabbit, made him itch to pat her head. However, considering her status, he refrained and averted his gaze, responding with a cool hum.
¡°Where are you injured?¡±
N¡¯s eyes filled with guilt. Someone had clearly tried to harm her by switching the dilute sulfuric acid with the concentrated one, and Damon ended up getting involved because of her.
¡°On my back.¡±
N reached out to grab his shirt to turn him around and inspect his injuries, but she hesitated halfway, realizing it wasn¡¯t appropriate.
Damon looked at her fair hand by his side, a dark glint crossing his eyes. ¡°What¡¯s wrong?
N withdrew her hand and lowered her gaze. ¡°Mr. Sumner, could you turn around so I can see where exactly you¡¯re injured and how serious it is?¡±
¡°Okay.¡±
Seeing several ck burns from the concentrated sulfuric acid on the back of Damon¡¯s white shirt, N couldn¡¯t help but bite her lip.
¡°Mr. Sumner, I¡¯m sorry for implicating you today. I¡¯ll cover all your medical expenses,¡± she said in a guilty
tone.
Damon turned back around. ¡°No need. It won¡¯t cost much.¡±
Compared to himself, he was more concerned about the injuries on N¡¯s hands. After all, girls cared more about their appearance in his impression. If scars marred her originally wless hands, she would likely be upset.
¡°It¡¯s not about the money. Today¡¯s incident was my fault, so covering your medical expenses is the least I can do¡ I¡¯m really grateful that you¡¯re holding me responsible.¡±
CHAPTER 45
¡°Who said I¡¯m not pursuing it?¡±
¡°How do you n to pursue it?¡± N looked at Damon, somewhat unsure. If he wanted money, she had just sold that house in Karlinan, so she should be able to afford it. She just hoped he wouldn¡¯t ask for too much.
Her demeanor, in Damon¡¯s eyes, resembled that of a startled rabbit, evoking a sense of pity. He involuntarily frowned. ¡°Do you always stare at men like that?¡±
N lowered her gaze. Weren¡¯t they talking about his injury? What did her gaze have to do with anything?
Before she coulde up with a response, Damon continued. ¡°You said someone switched your reagents today? If someone really targeted you, I¡¯ll hold the mastermind responsible when Genevieve finds out the truth.¡±
As soon as he finished speaking, the elevator reached the first floor.
¡°Let¡¯s go. We need to treat the injuries first.¡±
What, Damon walked out.
Since he was going to the hospital for treatment as well. N didn¡¯t dwell on it. Besides, it wasn¡¯t convenient to hail a cab right now.
N benefitted from Damon¡¯s presence. Several doctors were already waiting at the hospital entrance, ready to escort them to treat their injuries.
Jordyn happened toe out of the hospital and saw N and Damon getting out of the car together. She immediately took out her phone and snapped a photo.
She had been blocked by rk before, so she sent the photo to rk¡¯s most trusted secretary, Michael.
Jordyn: [Michael, if I¡¯m not mistaken, this is Mrs. Sumner, right? Why is she at the hospital with rk¡¯s uncle?]
Michael didn¡¯t reply to her, but he did inform rk about the incident.
After all, after he reported that N and Damon had stayed at the same hotel on the same night, rk had thrown his phone on the spot. Now the two were together in the hospital again.
As expected, when rk saw the photo on Michael¡¯s phone, he glowered instantly. He immediately called N
The call was about to hang up automatically before the other party answered.This belongs ? N?velDra/ma.Org.
¡°Yes?¡± N¡¯s cold voice came through, and rk¡¯s hand holding the phone kept tightening. He took a deep breath before asking. ¡°Where are you?¡±
There was silence on the other end for a few seconds before N spoke. ¡°At work. If you have something to say, say it. If not, I¡¯ll hang up.¡±
¡°Nothing.¡±
As soon as rk said that, N hung up directly.
rk smirked icily. He had finally persuaded himself to believe that there was nothing between N and Damon, but what did she do? Going to the hospital with Damon and lying to him!
*Prepare the car. We¡¯re going to the hospital.¡±
The nurse spoke after N put down her phone, ¡°Ms. Jayston, treating the wound might be a bit painfulter. Please bear with it.¡±
¡°Mm. will this scar?¡± N asked.
¡°This wound isn¡¯t too deep. If you take good care of itter, it should recoverpletely.¡±
With that assurance, N finally felt relieved.
On the other side, Damon had his wounds treated and left the treatment room first.
His wounds were on his back. They were just minor burns, requiring only a few days of medication.
As soon as he walked out of the treatment room, he saw rk approaching with an icy expression, his face filled with anger.
from!
rk only spoke when he stood in front of Damon. ¡°Uncle Damon, I hope you¡¯ll stay away wife in
the future.¡±
Damon raised an eyebrow, sensing the guard and hostility in rk¡¯s gaze. He chuckled, and the temperature around him dropped sharply. ¡°What do you mean by that? Do you think I have ulterior motives toward N?¡±
+25
CHAPTER 46
rk stared expressionlessly at Damon, a hint of mockery flickering in his eyes. ¡°What do I mean? I think you understand very well, Uncle Damon. Besides the one overseas, you¡¯ve never shown any interest in women before. Now you¡¯re making exceptions multiple times for Nyl?, Don¡¯t tell me it¡¯s out of respect for
me.¡±
¡°As her husband, you¡¯re never around when she¡¯s wronged. Instead of reflecting on yourself, you¡¯re lecturing me.¡± Damon¡¯s expression darkened, and he exuded an oppressive aura that sent shivers down one¡¯s spine.This belongs ? N?velDra/ma.Org.
rk¡¯s confidence visibly wavered. ¡°Next time something like this happens, please Inform me in advance, Uncle Damon. I don¡¯t want any other men near my wife I hope you understand.¡±
Damon sneered lightly. ¡°I¡¯m not that free. If you need others to inform you about her situation, maybe your marriage doesn¡¯t need to continue.¡±
With that, he walked away. He didn¡¯t even nce at rk¡¯s displeased face.
Only after Damon disappeared at the end of the hallway did rk take a deep breath, push open the door, and walk in.
N had just finished having her wounds treated and was preparing to leave when she saw rk walking in through the door. She frowned. ¡°Why are you here?¡±
Seeing her openly distant and indifferent expression, rk felt a wave of helplessness. On his way there. he had already had Michael investigate. N¡¯s experiment had suddenly exploded today, and Damon had happened to be on the scene, so he had sent her over on the way.
Despite that, rk still felt uneasy. He wished he had been there instead so that he could have protected her and prevented any harm froming to her.
¡°I heard you were injured, so I came to see you.¡± His gaze fell on N¡¯s freshly bandaged hand. ¡°What did the doctor say?¡±
N lowered her gaze, calmly saying, ¡°It¡¯s nothing serious. You don¡¯t need toe over specifically next time.¡±
rk¡¯s expression immediately turned cold. ¡°N, I¡¯m your husband. Are you really going to let me pretend I don¡¯t know when I¡¯m clearly aware that you¡¯re hurt?¡±
¡°That¡¯s not what I meant. I just think you¡¯re busy, anding over for such a small matter not only wastes time but also serves no purpose.
¡°Do you think your injury is a small matter?¡±
Under rk¡¯s probing gaze, N pursed her lips and remained silent.
*Do you remember when you used to tell me even if you just slipped and almost fell by ident?¡±
¡°You said it¨Cthat was before. People mature over time.
rk walked up to N, staring at her calm face, and said slowly, ¡°N, it¡¯s not that you¡¯ve matured. It¡¯s that you no longer want me to be a part of your life. You want to gradually distance us in this way and eventually kick me out of your life altogether.¡±
#25
N¡¯s hands trembled slightly at her side as she looked up at him.
¡°You¡¯re overthinking it. I really just think this is a small matter and not worth telling you to worry about.¡±
¡°Then why can Uncle Damon?¡±
N furrowed her brow. What did Damon have to do with this?
¡°When the experiment went wrong earlier, your uncle happened to be in theb. He was also injured and needed toe to the hospital for treatment. Thus, he brought me along.¡±
Seeing N mention Damon without any change in expression, rk¡¯s heart, which had been hanging. finally settled back into ce.
¡°Well, even though he¡¯s my uncle, he¡¯s still another man. If you encounter any problems in the future, just call me directly.¡±
N didn¡¯t n to seek rk¡¯s help, but she also didn¡¯t want to continue dwelling on this matter with him. As such, she nodded perfunctorily.
¡°Got it. I¡¯m going back now. You should head back to thepany too.¡±
CHAPTER 47
+25 BOHUS
¡°I¡¯ll take you cook. You should move back to the
back. With your hand injured, It¡¯s inconvenient for you to vi for now. Once your injury heals, you can go back to your rental ce.¡±
There was a sh of dissatisfaction in N¡¯s eyes as she looked at rk in displeasure. ¡°I¡¯m just injured, not paralyzed. I can take care of myself.¡±
They locked eyes for a moment, and rk eventually relented. ¡°Fine. Then I¡¯ll have the maid prepare meals and deliver them to you every day.¡±
Seeing N still wanting to refuse, he added in a low voice, ¡°Choose betweening back to the vi with me or having the maid send you meals.¡±
Having been with rk for eight years, N knew his personality well. He was never easy to persuade. If she refused again, he might actually go as far as forcing her back to the vi and keeping her there. ¡°I¡¯ll choose the second option.¡±
The tension in rk¡¯s lips finally rxed at her words, and his gaze softened as he looked at her. ¡°I¡¯ll send you back.¡±
When he found out that N hadn¡¯t moved to Karlinan, he frowned. ¡°Why didn¡¯t you move there?¡±
¡°I¡¯m used to living there. That can wait.¡±
Seeing her reluctance to discuss further, rk felt a twinge of difort but restrained himself from saying more.
On the way back to N¡¯s rental house, he had intended to chat with her, but as soon as he got in the car, he received a call from a business partner. The call didn¡¯t end until they were near N¡¯s apartmentplex.
Turning to look at her delicate but nk face, rk felt a bitter pang in his heart.
Previously, when they were alone together, N would always talk animatedly with a smile on her face, as if she would never tire of it. Now, she seemed indifferent, and they sat in rtive silence.
¡°N, be careful not to get your wound wet these days. If there¡¯s anything inconvenient in your daily life, just give me a call.¡±
N nodded with a straight face. ¡°Got it.¡±
rk could see that she didn¡¯t seem to take his words to heart, and his expression turned deste. Sensing the change in rk¡¯s mood, N remained unresponsive.
In the past, she used to be concerned about his busy work schedule, always attentive to his moods, wanting their time together to be rxing¨Cit had be a habit. It seemed she should get rid of this habit for good.
Soon, the car stopped at the entrance of the apartmentplex.
rk wanted to apany N upstairs, but she refused. ¡°I had a failed experiment today, plus my hand injury. I¡¯m not in a good mood right now. I want to be alone. You should go back to thepany.¡±
Without giving rk a chance to speak, she closed the car door and walked away.
The temperature inside the car instantly dropped.This content belongs to N?/velDra/ma.Org .
Michael, in the passenger seat, hesitated for a moment before asking in a low voice, ¡°Mr. Sumner, I heard. that when a woman is upset, giving her a handbag can usually cheer her up. Should we get one for Mrs. Sumner?¡±
rk furrowed his brow. ¡°Arrange it.¡±
¡°Alright.¡±
Sensing the atmosphere in the car lightening up a bit, Michael instructed the driver to head back to the
rk¡¯s expression still bore a trace of gloominess. After all, he had clearly seen N¡¯s attitude toward him today, which was no different from rejecting him outright.
No matter what, he had been the one to cheat first. N¡¯s current demeanor toward him was something he deserved. He just didn¡¯t know how long it would take for her to forgive him and for them to reconcile.
Genevieve sat behind her desk in the R&D Department Manager¡¯s office at Park Pharmaceuticals, reviewing theb¡¯s surveince footage from this morning.
There were no cameras in theb or the reagent storage room, so she could only watch the footage from the corner cameras.
After watching it repeatedly, Genevieve¡¯s gaze finally settled on Mabel.
CHAPTER 48
In just over an hour, Mabel appeared several times on the surveince footage. By the third time, she seemed visibly flustered. If thebels of dilute sulfuric acid and concentrated sulfuric acid had indeed. been swapped, Mabel was undoubtedly the prime suspect.
Genevieve stopped the surveince footage and instructed her assistant to notify Mabel toe to her office.
Upon hearing that Genevieve wanted to see her, Mabel immediately became nervous, ncing involuntarily at Lucia, who was sitting diagonally across from her.
However, Lucia didn¡¯t even look her way, appearing calm and nonchnt as if nothing was amiss. Left with no choice, Mabel reluctantly followed Genevieve¡¯s assistant to the office.
Just as she arrived at the door, her phone vibrated¨Cit was a message from Lucia.
Lucia: [No matter what Genevieve asks, insist that you have nothing to do with it. You don¡¯t know anything. If you dare to drag me into this, you know the consequences.]
Mabel replied with an ¡°Okay¡°, and Lucia quickly unsent the message.
Mabel put her phone away and pushed open the door to the office.
Genevieve looked at her without much of an expression. ¡°Have a seat.¡±
As Mabel sat down across from Genevieve, she feigned confusion. ¡°Genevieve, what can I do for you?¡±
¡°This morning, you were in and out of theb and R&D department several times. What was the reason for that?¡±
Mabel subconsciously balled her hands on her knees while she answered in a calm demeanor, ¡°I went to theb this morning to prepare for an experiment and realized I had forgotten to record some data from yesterday, so I went back to my desk to update it.¡±
¡°During this time, did you visit the reagent storage room?¡±
¡°No.¡± Mabel shook her head, then looked at Genevieve with disbelief. ¡°Genevieve, are you suspecting me? I have no grudge against N. How could I possibly harm her?¡±
Seeing the hurt in Mabel¡¯s eyes, Genevieve calmly said, ¡°I¡¯m not suspecting you. I¡¯m just nning to question everyone who was in theb this morning. Since there¡¯s no surveince in the reagent storage room, we can¡¯t be certain if someone swapped thebels.¡±
Upon hearing this, Mabel breathed a sigh of relief. She had taken a gamble, banking on the absence of surveince in that area. She was confident that any suspicions would not stick to her.
Naturally, Genevieve didn¡¯t miss the change in Mabel¡¯s expression and continued calmly. ¡°Although there¡¯s no surveince, Mr. Sumner¡¯s team has arrived. They extracted several fingerprints from thebels of concentrated sulfuric acid and dilute sulfuric acid. They n topare them with the fingerprints of everyone in the R&D department.
¡°If no one¡¯s fingerprints match, we can basically rule out the possibility of someone swapping thebels.
The smile on Mabel¡¯s face gradually stiffened. She had been too panicked at the time and hadn¡¯t even
remembered to wear gloves. If they checked fingerprints, she would be done for!This content belongs to N?/velDra/ma.Org .
¡°When will Mr. Sumner¡¯s peoplee to collect our fingerprints?¡±
¡°They¡¯ll probablye this afternoon, but don¡¯t worry. Collecting fingerprints won¡¯t take long. It won¡¯t dy your experiments.¡±
¡°¡ I see¡¡±
have a
¡°Well, I don¡¯t else here. You can go back to work.¡±
Mabel didn¡¯t know how she made it back to her desk. The thought of Damon¡¯s teaming in the afternoon to collect her fingerprints and discovering she had swapped thebels of dilute and concentrated sulfuric acid filled her with panic.
She looked up at Lucia, her gaze pleading for help.
Lucia frowned, then got up and walked toward the restroom.
Mabel quickly followed.
Entering the restroom, Lucia made sure the stalls were empty before locking the door. Her voice was cold as she questioned, ¡°What¡¯s with that mournful expression?!¡±
CHAPTER 49
Mabel¡¯s hands trembled with fear as she spoke in a shaky voice. ¡°Just now, Genevieve told me that a team from Prospectus Technology came over. They collected several fingerprints from thebels of dilute and concentrated sulfuric acid. They¡¯re going to collect our fingerprints this afternoon topare.¡±
Lucia¡¯s gaze darkened as she gritted her teeth, staring at Mabel. ¡°You fool! Didn¡¯t you know you should wear gloves when you swapped thebels?¡±
¡°I¡ I was too panicked. I just forgot¡ and by the time I remembered, it was toote¡¡± Mabel was on the verge of tears. ¡°Lucia, what do I do¡ You have to help me¡¡±
Lucia looked impatient. ¡°How can I help you? Can I magically change another person¡¯s fingerprints?¡±
When N¡¯s sk exploded during the experiment, Damon¡¯s secretary immediately ordered theb and adjacent reagent storage room to be sealed off. They never had a chance to wipe the fingerprints off thebels. Moreover, Lucia hadn¡¯t expected Mabel to be so foolish as to leave such a ring loophole.
¡°But I can¡¯t lose this job. Otherwise, I won¡¯t be able to afford my mom¡¯s medical bills¡¡±
Mabel was willing to do anything for Lucia to secure a job for her father so they could earn money for her mother¡¯s medical expenses. If she lost the job, what would be the point of it all?
Seeing Mabel¡¯s unstable emotions, Lucia knew she had to find a way to cate Mabel, or she would also be implicated.
¡°Don¡¯t worry for now. I heard there¡¯s a localpany researching simtion gloves that replicate even fingerprints. I¡¯ll figure out a way to get you a set. You should be able to get through this afternoon.¡±
¡°Really?¡± A glimmer of hope shed in Mabel¡¯s eyes as she looked excitedly at Lucia.
¡°Yeah. Go back to work for now. I¡¯ll make a call to my dad.¡±
¡°Okay.¡±N?velDrama.Org (C) content.
After Mabel left, Lucia called Clement. ¡°Dad, I need your help with something.¡±
Meanwhile, Genevieve was on the phone with Spencer
After listening to Genevieve¡¯s exnation, Spencer chuckled. ¡°Ms. Reeve, I¡¯ll need to consult with Mr. Sumner about this.¡±
After hanging up, Spencer walked into Damon¡¯s office and knocked.
¡°Mr. Sumner, Ms. Reeve from Park Pharmaceuticals needs our help. She wants us to send a team over to collect fingerprints from everyone in their R&D department.¡±
Damon frowned, looking up at him. ¡°Reason?¡±
¡°She said it¡¯s to determine if anyone tampered with thebels on the reagents used by Ms. Jayston during -her experiment.¡±
¡°Understood. You handle this matter.¡±
+25
After Spencer left, Damon returned to the documents, but he found it hard to focus.
Earlier, when N¡¯s wounds were being tended to, he noticed seven to eight wounds of varying sizes on her hands. She had endured quite a lot, not making a sound when the wounds were being treated.
Thinking about it, Damon furrowed his brow involuntarily. Why did he bare whether she was in pain or not? She wasn¡¯t his wife.
Irritated, he opened a drawer, took out a lighter, and lit a cigarette, trying to suppress his restless emotions.
Back at home, N didn¡¯t have to wait long before the doorbell rang
Checking the monitor, she saw it was Michael and went to open the door.
¡°Mr. Parkin, what¡¯s the matter?¡±
¡°Mrs. Sumner, Mr. Sumner sent you this purse.¡±
CHAPTER 50
Surprise flickered in N¡¯s eyes when she saw thetest luxury bag of the season in Michael¡¯s hands..
¡°Why would he suddenly send me a purse?¡±
¡°Mr. Sumner said you weren¡¯t in a good mood, so he wanted to send you a gift to cheer you up.¡±
N didn¡¯t particrly desire luxury bags, but since rk sent it, she had no reason to refuse. She nodded and took the purse from Michael.
¡°Alright. Please thank him for me.¡±
Seeing that N didn¡¯t seem particrly thrilled, Michael tentatively asked, ¡°Mrs. Sumner, you don¡¯t like the bag?¡±
¡°It¡¯s fine. I prefer gold over bags, though.¡±This content belongs to N?/velDra/ma.Org .
After all, gold had better liquidity and could also be crafted into beautiful jewelry.
Michael was stunned, not expecting N¡¯s preferences to be so in and blunt,
¡°Alright, understood. I¡¯ll let Mr. Sumner know, I¡¯ll head back to work now.¡±
After seeing Michael off, N returned to the living room, ced the bag on the table, and took a few photos to send to Vrie.
Vrie: [?]
N: [Help me check how much this bag can sell for.]
Vrie: [rk¡¯s gift?]
N: [Yeah.]
Vrie immediately called N.
¡°That bag is thetestunch. Conservatively, it could sell for over 300,000 dors. There are only two in Saintornia right now. It¡¯s not easy to find. rk went through quite some trouble to please you.¡±
N lowered her gaze, her face devoid of any emotion
¡°See if anyone is interested in buying this bag. I want to sell it.¡±
Vrie was somewhat surprised, but considering N¡¯s character, she found it reasonable and said, ¡°If you don¡¯t want it, sell it to me. I¡¯ve been looking for this bagtely, but couldn¡¯t find one.¡±
¡°Come over to pick it up give it to you.
I¡¯ll
¡°Really? Giving me a 300,000¨Cdor bag just like that, can you bear it?¡±
¡°I don¡¯t have any attachment to it. Besides, it¡¯s rk¡¯s money anyway.¡±
Compared to the money rk spent on Jordyn, this bag was like a drop in the ocean.
¡°Never mind. If you don¡¯t want money, I won¡¯t take it.¡±
¡°Then buy it from me at the original price.¡±
13
¡°Okay, I¡¯ll have someonee over to pick it upter. I have a social engagement tonight.¡±
+25
In the evening, rk finished work and returned to the vi.
The service staff had already packed up the meal and were ready to deliver it to N when he told them, Pack a bit more. I¡¯ll have dinner with her.¡±
¡°Yes, Mr. Sumner.¡±
The servants repackaged the meal, and rk took it and drove to find N.
When the doorbell rang. N was binge¨Cwatching a TV series. Seeing rk on the monitor with two food containers, N frowned.
She opened the door but didn¡¯t intend to let him in.
¡°Give it to me.¡±
rk understood her meaning but didn¡¯t move. There was a hint of grievance in his charming eyes as he
looked at her.
¡°N, I was busy at noon and didn¡¯t eat lunch. I came straight here after work just to have dinner with you.
N wanted to say he didn¡¯t have toe and she hadn¡¯t asked him to, but considering her n, she stepped aside to let him in after a moment of hesitation.
rk¡¯s tall figure made the already small living room seem somewhat cramped as he entered. He ced the food containers on the dining table, opened them, and then called N over to eat.
¡°Your birthday is in half a month. What do you want for your birthday this year?¡±
CHAPTER 51
N paused as she was about to pick up some food, then looked down. ¡°There¡¯s nothing I want.¡±
Earlier this year, rk had promised to take time off to celebrate her birthday with an ind vacation, something she had always wanted to do. Only a few monthster, it seemed he hadpletely forgotten about it. This was just as well¨Cit would make it easier for her to deal with him without any unnecessary feelings of sympathy.
¡°Then I¡¯ll have to think carefully about what to get you. If there¡¯s anything you want, you can always tell me.
¡°Sure.¡±
After dinner, rk told N to watch TV on the sofa while he cleaned up the dishes. Previously, when they wanted some alone time, they would give the service staff a few days off, and N would cook herself.This content belongs to N?/velDra/ma.Org .
N nodded and left. In the past, she would have taken pity on him for being tired after a day¡¯s work and cleaned up herself. Now, she no longer felt that way.
After cleaning up and wiping down the table, rk washed his hands in the kitchen before sitting down
next to N.
She scooted over a bit to create some distance between them and turned to him. ¡°Now that we¡¯ve had dinner, when are you nning to leave?¡±
rk looked at her helplessly. ¡°N, I just sat down. Since the night you didn¡¯te home, we haven¡¯t had a proper conversation. If this continues, the problems between us will only grow bigger.¡±
There was a sh of sarcasm in N¡¯s eyes at rk¡¯s emotional plea. The only solution to their problems,
from the moment he cheated, was divorce.
¡°What do you want to talk about?¡±
¡°My cheating was definitely my fault. How long do you n to punish me?¡±
The uncertainty of not knowing when N might forgive him was too torturous for rk. He wanted a
timeline.
N¡¯s hands tightened slightly at her side, and she looked down. ¡°I said I don¡¯t know. Maybe when I no longer love you, I won¡¯t care about this anymore.¡±
A wave of bitterness washed over rk. He would rather she hate him forever than stop loving him. At least if she hated him, it would mean she still thought about him.
After a long silence, he stood up and left quietly.
it was only when N heard the door close that she rubbed her teary eyes. Why did he have to act so affectionate now, after cheating on her? No matter what he did, they could never go back to how things
were.
Suddenly, her phone rang, interrupting her thoughts. Seeing it was Genevieve, she quickly answered.
¡°Genevieve, is there any news about what happened this morning?¡±
#
¡°Yes, it¡¯s basically clear. Someone did switch thebels of the dilute sulfuric acid and concentrated sulfuric acid.¡±
N bit her lip. ¡°Who was it?¡±
¡°Mabel.¡±
¡°As expected.¡±
After the explosion this morning, N¡¯s first suspect had been Lu. However, Lucia wouldn¡¯t be foolish enough to do it herself, so it had to be herckey.
¡°I called to ask how you want to handle this. Do you want to call the police or settle it privately?¡±
N raised an eyebrow. It seemed Genevieve preferred to settle it privately. Otherwise, she would have just called the police without asking her opinion. It was just that N hadn¡¯t done anything to Mabel, yet thetter had tried to ruin her face¡.
Thinking about this, N said coldly, ¡°Call the police.¡±
CHAPTER 52
Chapter 52
There was a moment of silence on the other end of the phone before Genevieve¡¯s voice came through.
¡°Alright, the police might call you to the station tomorrow to take your statement. Make sure your phone is avable.¡±
¡°Okay. Thank you for handling this, Genevieve,¡±
Genevieve sighed and said earnestly, ¡°N, you¡¯re still young. Unlike me, you don¡¯t think about the long- term consequences when making decisions. But sometimes, giving others a chance is also giving yourself a chance.¡±
¡°I understand. But I can¡¯t be lenient with everyone. If Mr. Sumner hadn¡¯t been there today, I might have been disfigured.¡±
Moreover, this issue could affect her job. If she got fired from Park Pharmaceuticals because of this, what pharmaceuticalpany would hire her in the future? It was not that she wasn¡¯t willing to let Mabel off, but thetter wasn¡¯t willing to let her off.
Genevieve realized she couldn¡¯t persuade N, so she said nothing more and hung up.
N put down her phone, thinking about how Damon had used his suit to protect her from the concentrated sulfuric acid this morning. She frowned. This was the second suit she had ruined for Damon. Should she¡ buy him two new ones aspensation?
N had always disliked owing people anything. After a few moments of hesitation, she went onto a bespoke clothing website, estimated Damon¡¯s size, and ordered two suits, sending them directly to Prospectus Technology¡¯s CEO¡¯s office.
In Genevieve¡¯s office.
Genevieve looked at Spencer, who was sitting opposite her, and said tiredly, ¡°Mr. Hogg, Ms. Jayston wants to call the police.¡±
If Spencer hadn¡¯t personallye to oversee this, she might have tried to persuade N further, considering this could affect Mabel¡¯s future. Then again, if they hadn¡¯t found out it was Mabel, N would have taken the fall, and she had almost gotten disfigured. This incident could also change N¡¯s future.
Spencer nodded. ¡°Alright, I understand. I¡¯ll handle this personally. Mr. Sumner said that such an incident also indicates ack of oversight at Park Pharmaceuticals. He hopes you¡¯ll strengthen employee management in the future.¡±
¡°I understand. Thank you, Mr. Hogg.¡±
After Spencer left, Genevieve picked up the fingerprintparison report on her desk and sighed. They hadn¡¯t actually found any fingerprints on thebels. They had spread this false information to see if anyone would panic and make a mistake.
The fingerprints collected that afternoon had beenpared with those taken when the employees were hired. Everyone else¡¯s matched, except for Mabel¡¯s, which didn¡¯t match at all. If she hadn¡¯t tried to deceive them, they wouldn¡¯t have had any evidence against her. Mabel was indeed too clever for her own
good.
Mabel met Lucia for dinner at an upscale restaurant, having safely navigated the fingerprint collectionText content ? N?velDrama.Org.
that afternoon.
*Lucia, your dad is amazing! He actually got those realistic gloves. When I wore them this afternoon, it felt a bit weird at first, but then it felt just like my own skin,
Lucia¡¯s eyes gleamed with pride. ¡°Of course. This kind of thing is a piece of cake.¡±
¡°Now that the issue with N is over, she¡¯ll probably be fired tomorrow morning and won¡¯t appear in front of us again. About my dad¡¯s job¡
¡°Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ll talk to my dad tonight. It¡¯ll be settled by tomorrow.¡±
As they were talking, two police officers entered the restaurant and walked straight toward their table. At first, they thought there might be a fugitive in the restaurant. However, when the officers stopped at their table, they turned pale.
CHAPTER 53
¡°Ms. O¡¯Neill, we need your assistance regarding today¡¯sb explosion at Park Pharmaceuticals. Pleasee with us.¡±
Mabel was panicking, her body trembling uncontrobly
¡°What do you mean¡ What does the explosion have to do with me? Why do you need my help?¡±
¡°You¡¯ll find out the details at the police station, Ms. O¡¯Neill.¡±
¡°I¡¯m not going! I didn¡¯t do anything wrong. Ask me whatever you need to here!¡±
Seeing Mabel¡¯s agitation, the two police officers exchanged a look. One of them spoke sternly. ¡°Ms. O¡¯Neill, if you refuse to cooperate, we will have to use force.¡±
The officers¡® solemn expressions made Mabel uneasy.
While she hesitated, Lucia spoke up from across the room. ¡°Mabel, it¡¯s just a routine investigation. Go with them. It won¡¯t be a big deal. I¡¯ll go with you.¡±
Seeing Lucia¡¯s cold expression, Mabel reluctantly nodded. ¡°Alright.¡±
the polic
At the police station.
Mabel was taken to give a statement, and the officers asked Lucia to wait outside.
Unable to sit still, Lucia quickly walked out of the station to call Clement.
¡°Dad, the police just took Mabel to the station for questioning. Don¡¯t you know some high¨Cranking officers? Can you-
Before she could finish, Clement angrily interrupted her, ¡°Shut up!¡±
Startled by his outburst, Lucia was momentarily speechless.
Clement¡¯s angry voice came through the phone again. ¡°Do you know how much trouble you¡¯ve caused me? Just getting that glove for you almost cost me my job because I offended Damon! Don¡¯t drag me into your mess anymore!¡±
With that, he hung up, not caring about Lucia¡¯s reaction.
The police interrogation was effective, and Mabel, feeling guilty, quickly confessed. However, she was careful not to mention Lucia.
After an hour, it was announced that Mabel was being detained.
Lucia was now in a panic, fearing that Mabel might eventually implicate her. As she stood there, unsure of what to do, N walked into the police station.
Seeing her, Lucia struggled to contain her anger and frustration. She nearly confronted N about whether this was her doing. She restrained herself, watching coldly as N entered the interrogation
room.
After giving her statement, N stepped out of the station and was immediately confronted by Lucia.This belongs ? N?velDra/ma.Org.
¡°Did you do this to Mabel?¡±
N found it amusing and raised an eyebrow. ¡°You orchestrated for Mabel to harm me, and now that your n backfired, you have the nerve to use me? You really are shameless.¡±
Lucia didn¡¯t deny it but merely sneered. ¡°N, you got lucky this time. But I don¡¯t believe you¡¯ll always be this lucky.*
With that, she turned and left.
N was about to hail a cab when a ck Cayenne pulled up in front of her. rk got out of the driver¡¯s seat and sighed in relief when he saw that N was safe.
¡°N, my friend told me you were at the police station giving a statement, so I rushed over. I¡¯m d you¡¯re alright.¡±
Seeing the worry and concern on rk¡¯s face, N was initially moved¨Conly to notice a bright red lipstick stain on the cor of his white shirt.
CHAPTER 54
N¡¯s eyes lingered on the stain, her gaze betraying a hint of mockery. ¡°It must be tough for you, finding time to flirt with other women and still managing to drop by the police station to see me.¡±
rk was taken aback and frowned. ¡°What do you mean?¡±
N¡¯s expression remained indifferent. ¡°Next time you want to act all caring, at least wipe off the lipstick on your cor first. Otherwise, it just looks ridiculous.¡±
Without waiting for rk¡¯s reaction, she hailed a cab and left.
rk nced down at his cor, his expression darkening when he saw the lipstick stain. He tried calling N to exin. After several unanswered calls, her lind eventually went straight to voicemail. Clearly, she
had blocked him.
His gaze grew cold upon realizing their rtionship, which had just started to improve, had once again hit rock bottom. He sped off toward N¡¯s apartmentplex but was interrupted by a phone call halfway there. Whatever was said on the other end made his grip on the steering wheel tighten, veins bulging, and he reluctantly turned the car around and left.
N had just gotten home when her phone buzzed with messages from the private investigator she had hired previously. She took a deep breath and opened the messages. Despite bracing herself, the photos of rk embracing Jordyn still made her heart clench
There were four or five photos, all showing rk and Jordyn together.
N smiled bitterly, and her eyes involuntarily reddened. She had been right not to trust rk. Otherwise, she would have been a fool.
Suppressing her sorrow, she transferred money to the private investigator and asked him to continue monitoring rk and Jordyn before closing the chat app.
The next morning, N received a call from Damon shortly after getting up.
¡°Did you buy those suits?¡± His cool voice, tinged with a hint ofziness, came through the phone.
¡°Yes, I damaged two of your suits. It wouldn¡¯t sit well with me if I didn¡¯t rece them.¡±
¡°You owe me much more than just those two suits. If you really want to repay me, shouldn¡¯t you do more?¡±N?velDrama.Org (C) content.
N sensed Damon¡¯s displeasure and bit her lip, feeling confused. She had expected him to ept the suits, and that would be the end of it. Why was he angry?
Despite her confusion, she didn¡¯t dare voice her thoughts. Based on their interactions, she knew Damon wasn¡¯t someone who easily listened to others.
¡°Uncle Damon, how would you like me to repay you?¡± she asked.
There was a pause on the other end, then the call abruptly ended.
N frowned, hesitating for a moment before deciding not to call back. Damon seemed off today, and she didn¡¯t want to risk catching him in a bad mood.
Thinking he might be upset about something else, N put down her phone and went to freshen up.
#
In the CEO¡¯s office at Prospectus Technology.
Damon put down his phone while Spencer, standing nearby, asked cautiously, ¡°Mr. Sumner, what should I do with these suits?¡±
away.¡± Damon frowned at the two suits Spencer was holding and said coldly, ¡°Throw them Sensing Damon¡¯s foul mood, Spencer quickly turned to leave but was stopped by Damon¡¯s voice.
¡°Wait.¡±
Spencer turned back and saw Damon¡¯s stern expression. Hesitantly, he suggested, ¡°Mr. Sumner, maybe ! should send these suits to your vi. Ms. Jayston probably spent a lot of money, and they are your size.¡± Damon¡¯s expression softened slightly at that. He nodded. ¡°Since you put it that way, send them to the vi.
CHAPTER 55
¡°Okay.¡±
As Spencer r walked out of the office, he couldn¡¯t help but frown, pondering Damon¡¯s attitude toward N.
Earlier today, Damon had immediately called N to question her about the sults, clearly Irritated by her attempt to distance herself from him. Considering N was Damon¡¯s niece¨Cinw, Spencer hoped he had overthought the matter.
After breakfast, N headed straight to Park Pharmaceuticals.
After giving her statementst night, Genevieve had messaged her, saying she could return to work today. and that thepany would handle the situation with Mabel.
To her surprise, a middle¨Caged man stopped her at the entrance of Park Pharmaceuticals. His face was dark and lined with exhaustion, his eyes bloodshot, and his hair disheveled. He looked at her pleadingly.
¡°Ms. Jayston, please, I¡¯m begging you to let my daughter go. My wife was in a car ident and is the hospital. I haven¡¯t found a job yet, and if my daughter stays in jail, our family will fall apart.¡±
N instinctively took a few steps back, frowning.
still in
This man resembled Mabel, indicating he was likely her father. However, there was no way Mabel could have described her appearance to him since she was detained. As such, this had to be another of Lucia¡¯s schemes.
¡°Your wife¡¯s car ident has nothing to do with me. I haven¡¯t done anything to Mabel, yet she tried to ruin my face and my career. I have no obligation to forgive her.¡±
N tried to leave, but the man, Keh O¡¯Neill, blocked her path again.
¡®Ms. Jayston, I¡¯m desperate. What will it take for you to let Mabel go? I¡¯ll kneel if I have to.¡±
Keh dropped to his knees in front of N.
N¡¯s eyes shed with disgust. She detested being emotionally ckmailed into forgiving someone who had wronged her. Just because their family was suffering didn¡¯t mean Mabel could harm others without facing consequences.
¡°Kneeling won¡¯t change anything. I¡¯m not giving a letter of forgiveness. The court will decide her punishment, not me.¡±
N walked past Keh and quickly disappeared from sight.
Across the street, Lucia smirked as she recorded the scene on her phone. She thought N would be trashed byizens once this video hit the Inte. With N¡¯s reputation in tatters, Park Pharmaceuticals would surely drop her.
Keh stood up and approached Lucia, his demeanor submissive. ¡°Ms. Pord, I did as you asked¡ About my wife¡¯s medical bills¡¡±
¡°Don¡¯t worry. I just had 15,000 dors transferred. It shouldst until Mabel is out.¡±
+25
hank you so much, Ms. Pord. Meeting you has been a blessing for our family.¡±
Lucia¡¯s eyes flickered with disdain. She sent Keh away with a few words and then forwarded the video to a social media influencer, instructing them to embellish the story and make it go viral.
Due to N¡¯s injured hands, she couldn¡¯t conduct experiments for a while. She had to stay at her desk, reviewing literature and researching experiment directions.
As soon as she sat down, Sasha approached her. ¡°N, how¡¯s your hand?¡±
¡°Much better. The doctor said I shouldn¡¯t get them wet for a while, but they should heal in about two weeks.¡±
Sasha nodded. ¡°That¡¯s good to hear.
After a moment of hesitation, she locked eyes with N and asked, ¡°By the way, when the sk exploded yesterday, everyone ran out, but Mr. Sumner took off his jacket and rushed straight to you. Do you think he might have feelings for you?¡±This belongs ? N?velDra/ma.Org.
¡°Thank you so much, Ms. Pord. Meeting you has been a blessing for our family.¡±
Lucia¡¯s eyes flickered with disdain. She sent Keh away with a few words and then forwarded the video to a social media influencer, instructing them to embellish the story and make it go viral.
Due to N¡¯s injured hands, she couldn¡¯t conduct experiments for a while. She had to stay at her desk, reviewing literature and researching experiment directions.
As soon as she sat down, Sasha approached her. ¡°N, how¡¯s your hand?¡±
¡°Much better. The doctor said I shouldn¡¯t get them wet for a while, but they should heal in about two weeks.¡±
Sasha nodded. ¡°That¡¯s good to hear.¡±
After a moment of hesitation, she locked eyes with N and asked, ¡°By the way, when the sk exploded yesterday, everyone ran out, but Mr. Sumner took off his jacket and rushed straight to you. Do you think he might have feelings for you?¡±
CHAPTER 56
Sasha couldn¡¯t help but specte. Normal people would run from danger, but Damon had run toward it to protect N.This content belongs to N?/velDra/ma.Org .
N was taken aback, then frowned. ¡°You¡¯re overthinking it. He¡¯s my uncle.¡±
¡°What?!¡± Sasha¡¯s voice shot up, drawing the attention of everyone in the R&D department. Her face turned red, and she quickly lowered her head.
She whispered, ¡°Are you serious? You don¡¯t even share the samest name. Are you lying to me?¡±
¡°Why would I lie? I can¡¯t go into details, but nothing could happen between us. He doesn¡¯t like me that way.
Despite Sasha¡¯s lingering doubts, she could only nod at N¡¯s confident assurance. ¡°Alright then.¡±
¡°Stop gossiping and get to work,¡± N said as she turned on herputer to read some research papers.
The morning passed quickly. Just before noon, N received a call from Wren.
¡°Wren, what¡¯s up? Is there something wrong with my dad?¡±
Wren¡¯s gentle voice came through the line. ¡°No, he¡¯s stable. Do you have time for lunch today? Let¡¯s meet up.¡±
¡°My office is quite far from the hospital, How about dinner instead?¡±
¡°Sure, you decide.¡±
After hanging up, N felt a bit puzzled about Wren¡¯s sudden invitation.
That evening, N arrived at the restaurant. As she waited for Wren, she noticed a familiar car pull up to the entrance. The back door opened, and a woman stepped out.
In an instant, N recognized Jordyn.
Jordyn wore a red strapless gown, her long wavy hair cascading down her back, and her makeup was impable. She exuded a charm that could captivate any man.
Soon, rk stepped out of the car, and Jordyn naturally took his arm as they walked fnside. If N weren¡¯t his wife, she might have thought they made a perfect couple.
When N and rk got married, he had promised to walk through life with her hand in hand. That promise seemed to belong to another woman now.
rk and Jordyn didn¡¯t notice her and went straight into a private room.
N turned her attention back to her surroundings just as Wren arrived.
After ordering, N looked at Wren and asked, ¡°Wren, is there something you want to talk about?¡±
Wren nodded, her expression gentle. ¡°I heard you and rk had a fight. I haven¡¯t had a chance to ask you because of your father¡¯s situation. How are things between you two now?¡±
N pressed her lips together, her knuckles turning white from gripping the cup. ¡°Why are you asking about this all of a sudden?¡±
Wren sighed. ¡°I saw rk with another woman at the hospital a few days ago. Is he¡ having an affair?¡±
N¡¯s hand trembled, spilling some tea. Despite knowing her father was hospitalized at the same hospital, rk still dared to take his mistress there. It was as if he didn¡¯t care if his infidelity was exposed.
After a moment of silence, N nodded. ¡°Yes.¡±
¡°As I expected.¡± Wren looked angry. ¡°What do you n to do about it?¡±
She had initially thought rk would be a good partner for N, but now she realized she was wrong.
¡°I n to divorce him, but he refuses to split the assets. I¡¯m trying to gather evidence of his affair now.¡± N knew that just having evidence of infidelity wouldn¡¯t be enough to get half of the assets. She needed something more incriminating against rk.
Wren frowned. ¡°Given his family¡¯s status, they won¡¯t willingly give you half the assets. And with your father in the hospital waiting for a kidney transnt, our options are limited in helping you.¡±
HAPTER 57
+25
If Harris Pharmaceuticals hadn¡¯t gone bankrupt, rk wouldn¡¯t have dared to unt his affair so brazenly.
Wren looked at N with guilt. ¡°Your father and I owe you an apology. You¡¯ve been through so much, bearing this burden alone. It must have been really tough.¡±
N shook her head. She wasn¡¯t as upset now as she had been when she first discovered rk¡¯s Infidelity. ¡°I¡¯m fine. I took a chance, hoping he wouldn¡¯t betray our rtionship. I just lost the gamble.¡±
She had no regrets about her choice because she had chosen the rk who once loved her, not the deceitful man he had be.
¡°It¡¯s okay. You¡¯ll find someone better in the future.¡±
N smiled faintly. Whether she found someone else or not didn¡¯t matter. She just wanted to get the divorce and im her fair share of the assets. ¡°Wren, please don¡¯t tell my dad about the affair. His health isn¡¯t good, and I¡¯m afraid he won¡¯t be able to handle it.This content belongs to N?/velDra/ma.Org .
Wren nodded. ¡°I understand. Don¡¯t worry.¡±
After N and Wren finished their meal, they were about to pay the bill when people came out of the private room where rk and Jordyn were.
N quickly noticed rk and Jordyn walking in the center of the group and turned to block Wren¡¯s view.
¡°Wren, I just remembered I have something to do. Let me take you back to the hospital.¡±
After selling her house, N had bought herself a small car.
¡°If you¡¯re busy, I can take the subway back.¡±
¡°It¡¯s fine. I have something I need to tell you.¡±
Hurriedly, N guided Wren out, managing to avoid running into rk and his group. Given Wren¡¯s temper, a confrontation would be inevitable.
Someone at the front of the group from the private room noticed N¡¯s silhouette. He raised an eyebrow in surprise. If he wasn¡¯t mistaken, that should be N. He nced at rk, who was whispering to Jordyn, but decided not to mention his suspicion.
Outside, Wren saw N¡¯s cute pink car and couldn¡¯t help but smile. ¡°This car suits you well.¡±
N smiled back. ¡°I thought so too. I fell in love with it at first sight.¡±
Once inside the car, N handed Wren a sealed bag from the back seat. ¡°Wren, here¡¯s 30,000 dors in cash. Use half for my dad¡¯s medical bills and keep the rest for your expenses.¡±
Wren was taken aback. ¡°Where did you get so much money?¡±
¡°rk gave me a bag, which I sold to a friend for 300,000 dors. I thought it would be too risky to give you the entire amount at once, so I¡¯m giving it to you in Installments.¡±
Seeing N¡¯s calm demeanor, Wren felt a pang of sadness. ¡°Your father and I have failed you¡¡±
¡°Wren, this has nothing to do with you or my dad. I used to think rk¡¯s and my money were shared, but
+26
after he cheated, I realized I was too nalve.¡±
N had given up her patent for a heart disease medication worth billions to be with rk, allowing him to take the credit while she became a housewife. She had forgotten that without her own career and financial independence, she was nothing more than a caged bird to rk.
Fortunately, it wasn¡¯t toote. She still had a chance to start over.
After dropping Wren off at the hospital, N stayed for a while to talk with Harrison before heading home. As she stepped out of the elevator, she saw rk standing by her door.
He was leaning against the wall, a cigarette in hand. When the light came on, he squinted slightly. Seeing N, he extinguished the cigarette and walked straight toward her.
¡°I heard
you went to Round Roof today. Who did you eat with?¡±
CHAPTER 58
N frowned and looked at rk with displeasure. ¡°Who I ate with is none of your business, is it?¡±
A dark gleam passed through rk¡¯s eyes as he lowered his voice. ¡°N, I¡¯m not trying to monitor you. I just want to be part of your life.¡±
¡°Are you really trying to be part of my life, or are you feeling guilty about taking Jordyn to that dinner today?¡±
rk widened his eyes, his heart sinking. N had seen them.
¡°Today was about meeting a client. She handled this client before she left thepany, so she knows the situation better. That¡¯s why I brought her along. I didn¡¯t tell you because I didn¡¯t want you to misunderstand.¡±
N smiled. ¡°Do I really need to misunderstand your rtionship with her?¡±
¡°N, I can assure you that there¡¯s nothing between us now. The only person I love is you.¡±
N wanted to ask him why Jordyn had to dress so seductively and hold his arm like a date since it was just a business meeting. Anyone who saw them would think Jordyn was rk¡¯s girlfriend, not his secretary.
Despite that, she didn¡¯t ask. It no longer mattered
¡°rk, one lie often requires many more to cover it up.
¡°N, you don¡¯t believe me?¡±
rk stared at N intently, his gaze filled with hurt and sadness.
N found itughable. She wanted to believe him, but shouldn¡¯t he give her a reason to?
¡°I had a long day at work. I don¡¯t want to talk about this. Please leave.¡±
Upon seeing N¡¯s cold expression, rk¡¯s hands clenched at his sides. His initial guilt and unease slowly turned into frustration. He had humbled himself, yet she still treated him with disdain. He could have chosen someone better but married her anyway. Her constantck of understanding was wearing him down,
Sometimes, being with her was lessfortable than being with Jordyn. At least Jordyn wouldn¡¯t give him a hard time.
With that, he said nothing more. When N walked past him without a word, he didn¡¯t stop her or try to -exin further.This content belongs to N?/velDra/ma.Org .
At home, N grabbed some clothes and headed for the shower. When she came out, she saw that she had over ten missed calls from Vrie. Since Vrie had called her so many times in such a short period, it must be urgent.
She quickly called back, and Vrie picked up after just two rings. ¡°N, check the Inte! You¡¯re trending!
N was surprised. She went online and saw that she was the top trending topic.
Chapter 58
[Park Pharmaceuticals¡® Employee Forces Colleague¡¯s Father To Kneel]
After clicking on the trending post, she saw a video of Mabel¡¯s father kneeling before her. The camera angle was perfect, capturing Keh¡¯s helpless expression.
Meanwhile, thements were filled with insults directed at her.
[How can someone be so disgusting? I heard her colleague¡¯s father is just an honest farm worker, and she made him kneel! Bullying the honest folks!]
[This woman is too much. Park Pharmaceuticals should consider firing her!]
[I hope one day her parents have to kneel to someone too. Maybe then she¡¯ll understand how it feels.]
As N read the hatefulments, her eyes turned cold.
After not hearing N speak for a while, Vrie anxiously asked, ¡°N, what¡¯s going on?
Vrie had known N for years and knew she wasn¡¯t the type to make someone kneel in public. There had to be a misunderstanding, but she couldn¡¯t defend N online without knowing the full story
CHAPTER 59
¡°It¡¯s a long story. Just let me handle it,¡± N said and hung up.
As she watched the number of hatefulments against her skyrocket, her expression grew colder.
On the other side, rk had just returned to his vi when he received a call from Michael. ¡°Mr. Sumner,
with someone posted a video of Mabel¡¯s father kneeling to Mrs. Sumner. The Inte is blowing up people cursing her. Should we take the video down?¡±
rk¡¯s gaze darkened. After a moment, he replied, ¡°No leave it up. I¡¯ll deal with it when shees to me.¡±
He thought he had been too lenient with N recently, which was why she had been so cold toward him. This incident would remind her of her ce.
Damon also heard about the online attack on N and immediately contacted her, asking if she needed help removing the video.
N felt a pang of bitterness hearing Damon¡¯s calm voice over the phone. The video had been circting for over an hour, so there was no way rk didn¡¯t know about it. Yet, the one person who should care the most hadn¡¯t reached out to her. Instead, it was Damon who called to offer help.
¡°Uncle Damon, no need. I can handle this myself.
¡°Are you sure?¡± Damon asked, his doubt evident.
N couldn¡¯t help but smile. ¡°Yes, I was cautious enough to record our conversation whe me outside the office the other day. I¡¯ll upload the recording online.¡±
he confronted
Damon was surprised but impressed by her foresight. ¡°Good. If you need anything, you can always contact Spencer.¡±
¡°Thank you, Uncle Damon.¡±
After hanging up, N uploaded the recording with a scheduled release and set her phone aside to apply a face mask. Lucia had gone to such lengths, so N decided to let her bask in her fleeting triumph.
As the online vitriol against N intensified, Lucia grew more pleased with herself. At first, she feared rk might intervene on N¡¯s behalf, but seeing no signs of it, she concluded he had no intention of helping
With the current trajectory, Park Pharmaceuticals would likely buckle under public pressure and fire N
by tomorrow.
The thought of never seeing N again filled Lucia with satisfaction. Using a fake ount, she added a few more hatefulments against N before preparing to go to bed,
Suddenly, a notification popped up on her phone. Taken aback, she quickly went back online. N¡¯s post had shot to the top of the trending list.
Lucia hurriedly clicked on it and found the audio recording of the conversation between N and
Keh.
12
Lucia gritted her teeth as she read through thements. The tide had turnedpletely.
[Oh my god! The reason he knelt was that his daughter almost disfigured N! And N didn¡¯t even ask him to kneel. The influencer who posted is so shameless!]
[Apologizing to N. My dad is a farm worker too, so I was quick to judge without knowing the full story. Sorry, sorry, sorry.]T¨ºxt belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
[It¡¯s not just the influencer. The me¡¯s on the colleague who tried to disfigure N and the person who filmed this video. They clearly had malicious intent. It must be someone close to N, probably a coworker.]
[Goodness, working with someone who¡¯s constantly watching you from the shadows is terrifying. It¡¯s disgusting, like a rat in the gutter.]
CHAPTER 60
Seeing the hatefulments directed at her, Lucia was so furious she nearly crushed her phone. She hadn¡¯t expected N to be prepared for Keh¡¯s confrontation from the start. Now, not only had N managed to clear her name, but Lucia might also get implicated.
Panicking, Lucia contacted the influencer who had posted the video and asked them to delete it. However, she was told that the ount had been locked and couldn¡¯t be essed.
Lucia¡¯s heart sank. How could this happen right after N released the recording? Could it be rk¡¯s doing?
The more she thought about it, the more anxious she became. If they traced this back to her, she¡¯d be
finished.
Desperate, she rushed to Clement, who was in his study.
After listening to Lucia¡¯s exnation, Clement pped her hard across the face. ¡°You idiot! Are you trying to get us all killed?¡±
He had warned her before not to go against N, but she hadn¡¯t listened and had gone behind his back to create this mess.
Lucia¡¯s cheek stung, but she ignored the pain and knelt in front of his desk. ¡°Dad, you¡¯re the only one who can help me now. I know I was wrong. I promise I won¡¯t go against N again. Please help me one more
time.¡±
Clement felt nothing but annoyance when he saw Lucia cry. If she weren¡¯t his only child, he wouldn¡¯t bother with her. ¡°Get out!¡±
¡°Dad¡¡±
¡°If you don¡¯t leave now, you can handle this yourself!¡±
Relieved by Clement¡¯s promise, Lucia quickly got up and left the study. Instead of returning to her room, she went to the kitchen. Knowing Clement was still angry, she decided to make some soup and use delivering it as an excuse to see if he had resolved the issue.
Less than half an hourter, Lucia brought a bowl of soup to the study. The door was slightly ajar. As she was about to knock, she heard Clement¡¯s deep voice from inside.
¡°Cyrus, don¡¯t forget that without my help all those years ago, your Sumner family wouldn¡¯t be wre it is today.¡±
Lucia paused, a look of confusion crossing her face. All those years ago? Instinctively, she thought of the ident six years ago at Harris Pharmaceuticals. Thepany copsed within a month of the incident, and Harrison ended up in the hospital with a stroke. Meanwhile, Clement had moved to anotherpany and climbed the ranks.
Cyrus was rk¡¯s father. Lucia had never seen any interaction between Clement and Cyrus, so they shouldn¡¯t know each other by right.
Lucia¡¯s hands gripping the tray turned pale, and her heart raced. Could there be more to that ident than she knew?
She leaned closer to the door, trying to listen more intently, but she pushed too hard and the door swungT¨ºxt belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
open.
Startled by the noise, Clement quickly ended his call.
As the door opened, Lucia met Clement¡¯s murderous gaze. She shivered. ¡°Dad¡¡±
Realizing it was Lucia, he softened his expression but still looked displeased. ¡°When did you get here?¡±
Under his scrutinizing stare, Lucia steadied her nerves and said softly, ¡°I just got here. I brought you some chicken soup.
As she approached Clement¡¯s desk, trying to hide her fear, he watched her coldly without speaking. She set the soup down, and only then did she feel a bit relieved when he didn¡¯t do anything else.
¡°Dad, did you handle my issue?¡± she asked nervously.
CHAPTER 61
¡°I¡¯m looking into it. It should be resolved in the next couple of days.¡±
A flicker of joy shed in Lucia¡¯s eyes. ¡°Thanks, Dad!¡±
¡°Don¡¯t celebrate too soon. If there¡¯s a next time, I won¡¯t intervene,¡± Clement warned sternly.
¡°Got it. I¡¯ll go back to my room and sleep now. You should get some rest too,¡± Lucia replied, turning to leave.
Just as she turned, Clement spoke again in an ominous voice. ¡°Lucia, you better not have overheard something you shouldn¡¯t have. Don¡¯t expect me to overlook family ties if you did.¡±
Lucia could hear the warning in Clement¡¯s tone and bit her lip. When she turned back to him, her expression was filled with confusion. ¡°Dad, what shouldn¡¯t I have heard? I don¡¯t understand.¡±
Clement looked at her coldly. Seeing her puzzled expression, as if she truly hadn¡¯t heard anything, he suppressed his suspicions. ¡°It¡¯s better if you don¡¯t understand. Go rest now.¡±
It wasn¡¯t until Lucia locked the door behind her when she returned to her bedroom that she realized she was drenched in cold sweat. She had sensed Clement¡¯s hostility earlier¨Cit was the first time he had ever looked at her with such icy eyes. But it only confirmed her suspicions that whatever Clement had mentioned was definitely rted to the Harris Pharmaceuticals incident years ago.
Despite that, she dared not investigate further. If Clement found out, she couldn¡¯t bear the consequences. Taking a deep breath, she decided to bury this matter deep inside her heart¨Cshe wouldn¡¯t utter a word about it.
rk had waited for over an hour, but N still hadn¡¯t called him. Growing impatient, he called Michael. Has N contacted you to help remove the video?¡±
There was a moment of silence before Michael responded. ¡°Mr. Sumner, half an hour ago, Mrs. Sumner turned the tide with a recording of her conversation with Keh. She probably¡ doesn¡¯t need our help anymore¡
Thinking about how rk had said he would wait for N toe to him for help, Michael wondered if rk felt mocked. Nheless, he wouldn¡¯t dare tell rk this.
rk questioned, ¡°Why didn¡¯t you report this to me?¡±
¡°Mr. Sumner, I¡¯m sorry, it¡¯s my negligence,¡± Michael answered.
The key was that he also did not expect that rk hadn¡¯t paid attention to the change in public opinion online.
Your full attendance bonus this month is docked. It¡¯ll be a week¡¯s sry if there¡¯s a next time.¡± With that, rk hung up.
Thinking about how N would rather solve things herself than call him for help, rk felt a surge of frustration and immediately called her.
The phone rang for a long time before N answered. Before he could say anything, her irritated voice
came through. ¡°Do you realize what time it is?¡±
She had finally fallen asleep only to be woken up by rk¡¯s call, leaving her in a foul mood.
¡°Why didn¡¯t you call me to help with what happened tonight?¡±
rk¡¯s usatory tone made Nugh. Did he expect her to beg for his help?
¡°Why would I call you?¡±
¡°I¡¯m your husband. If you had just told me, I would have had Michael take down the video. But you didn¡¯t even send me a message. You don¡¯t regard me at all.¡±
Every word rk spoke was filled with anger, and his tone was colder than ever.
N didn¡¯t know how to describe what she felt at that moment. It was as if the man who once loved her had vanished before her eyes, and she could only watch helplessly. All her emotions drained away. leaving only a sense of helplessness.This belongs ? N?velDra/ma.Org.
She turned on her bedsidemp, sat up, and spoke calmly. ¡°You are my husband, but only in name. If you truly cared about me, you wouldn¡¯t wait for me to beg for your help knowing I was being wronged. You would have acted on your own.
¡°rk, you don¡¯t care about me. You just want to win.¡±
CHAPTER 62
rk believed he was in control of the marriage. So, when he discovered that N had handled the incident on her own without asking for his help, he angrily called to question her.
If it had been the rk from eight years ago, he wouldn¡¯t have waited for her to surrender¨Che would have protected her at all costs. The 28¨Cyear¨Cold rk was no longer the same as his 20¨Cyear¨Cold self.
N lowered her gaze, her eyes involuntarily reddening
The silence on both ends of the line was deafening, with only their breaths audible. After over a minute of this, rk still hadn¡¯t spoken.
Not willing to wait any longer, N ended the call. She rubbed her tear¨Cstained eyes and couldn¡¯t help but chuckle bitterly.
She felt useless. Despite vowing not to let him affect her anymore, she still felt hurt. rk had upied eight years of her life. Perhaps she needed another eight years to slowly move on.
In the living room of the vi, rk didn¡¯t have the courage to call back after N hung up. When she used him of wanting to win rather than caring for her, it felt like a punch to his heart, rendering him speechless.
He couldn¡¯t understand why things hade to this between them. He should have feltpassion for her, but instead, he wanted to use this situation to make her submit, to be like the gentle andpliant Jordyn. Maybe N hadn¡¯t changed at all. Maybe it was him who had changed.This content belongs to N?/velDra/ma.Org .
At that thought, he messaged Michael, instructing him to investigate the video incident thoroughly.
Michael worked quickly and had everything figured out by the next morning.
¡°Mr. Sumner, it was Mrs. Sumner¡¯s colleague, Lucia Pord. She¡¯s likely also involved in theb explosion incident.¡±
rk¡¯s expression turned icy. ¡°Then teach her a lesson
¡°I looked into it. Lucia¡¯s father, Clement Pord, used to be the purchasing manager at Harris Pharmaceuticals. After Harris Pharmaceuticals went bankrupt, he joined a subsidiary of the Sumner Group and is now an executive there.¡±
rk sneered. Then let¡¯s start with Clement.¡±
¡°Understood.¡±
Not long after Michael left, Cyrus showed up, surprising rk.
Since being ousted from the list of heirs, Cyrus had been given a subsidiarypany to manage by Richard. Most expected it to fail under Cyrus¡® yboy ways, but he had surprisingly made it thrive. Though ¡°not on par with the Sumner Group, it still raked in tens of millions annually.
Cyrus¡® phndering ways meant he rarely came home, resulting in a distant father¨Cson rtionship with
+25
Chapter 62
rk, with their meetings limited to holidays and special asions.
¡°Dad, what brings you here?¡±
¡°I heard you¡¯re nning to fire Clement?¡±
rk frowned. ¡°How did you find out?¡±
¡°Never mind how I know. You absolutely cannot fire him.¡±
Seeing Cyrus¡® stern and serious demeanor, rk pressed his lips together. ¡°Give me a reason.¡±
¡°You¡¯ll understandter. If you don¡¯t want this matter reaching your grandfather and him knowing you fired a subsidiary executive over a woman, then do nothing.
rk scoffed. ¡°Are you threatening me?¡±
¡°Yes. You have one minute to decide. If you can¡¯t make up your mind, I¡¯ll call your grandfather immediately.¡±
They stared at each other, icy determination in their eyes. As the seconds ticked by, Cyrus¡® expression grew colder with each passing moment.
CHAPTER 63
rk¡¯s expression was tense, filled with anger. He knew Cyrus could definitely follow through on his threats. After all, Cyrus had never cared about him.
Finally, he called Michael, his voice cold. ¡°Don¡¯t take any action against Clement for now.¡±
Hanging up, he red at Cyrus. ¡°You can leave now.¡±
Cyrus¡® gaze darkened. ¡°One day, you will understand that everything I do is for your own good.¡±
rk didn¡¯t reply. Instead, he picked up a file, pretending he hadn¡¯t heard anything.
There was a sh of coldness in Cyrus¡® eyes at rk¡¯s indifferent face before he turned and quickly left.
Michael was already on his way to the subsidiarypany when rk¡¯s call came. Finding the situation inexplicable, he turned back. Just as he entered the office, a chill ran down his spine, as if he had stepped into an icy wastnd. ¡°Mr. Sumner, regarding Clement-¡±
¡°Don¡¯t worry about it. Just spread the news that it was Lucia who filmed the video.¡±
Seeing rk¡¯s cold expression, Michael dared not ask further questions. He nodded before leaving.
When Lucia arrived at work in the morning, she immediately felt the odd nces from others. Especially in the R&D department, none of her colleagues struck up a conversation with her. Every time she tried to speak, they either seemed too busy or intentionally ignored her, clearly isting her.
It wasn¡¯t until she went to the restroom that she heard voices inside discussing her.
¡°Lucia usually acts nice and innocent, but who knew she was so malicious behind our backs? She actually filmed that video to nder N. From now on, who would dare to associate with her?¡±
¡°Heh, no wonder N was at odds with her from day one at work. Looks like she knew her true colors.¡±
¡°Better keep our distance from her in the future. Who knows? She might snap a video of us and post it online just because she doesn¡¯t like us.¡±
Listening to the gossip, Lucia was furious beyond measure. Didn¡¯t Clement promise he would handle this? Why did everyone in thepany know it was her doing?
Right, it must be N!
She for
found N and dragged her to the stairwell.
¡°N, are you spreading rumors in thepany that I filmed the video of forcing Keh to kneel?¡±
Seeing Lucia¡¯s agitated state, N remainedposed. ¡°You did something shameful. Shouldn¡¯t you feel guilty after it¡¯s exposed? How are you still boldly using me like this?¡±
¡°So it¡¯s really you!¡±
N raised an eyebrow, thinking that Lucia¡¯sprehension skills were seriouslycking. When did she
ever admit to anything? N was also puzzled about who might be secretly helping her.N?velDrama.Org (C) content.
Upon arriving at thepany in the morning and learning about the situation, her first thoughts were of Vrie and Damon. However, both denied any involvement when she asked them.
¡°Believe what you want,¡± N said dismissively. She turned to leave, done wasting time with Lucia.
However, Lucia stepped forward and blocked her path, her gaze filled with anger and resentment.
¡°You need to exin right now that this has nothing to do with me!¡±
N found it amusing how confidently Lucia wasmanding her even after doing something wrong.
¡°Dream on,¡± N replied and turned to walk away, but Lucia grabbed her.
As they struggled, neither noticed how close they were getting to the stairs.
Suddenly, Lucia stepped into empty space, pulling N along as they tumbled down the stairs together¡
CHAPTER 64
When rk arrived, N had only just woken up. Due to a mild concussion, she felt dizzy and nauseous as soon as she opened her eyes, so she kept them shut while lying down.
Sensing someone sitting beside her hospital bed, she thought it was Vrie returning with medicine.
¡°Vrie, I feel awful. I think I¡¯m going to be sick¡¡±
Seeing N¡¯s furrowed brows and her pale face covered in cold sweat, rk was heartbroken. He quickly grabbed a tissue from the nearby table and wiped the sweat from her forehead.
As rk came closer, N caught a whiff of his cologne and suddenly opened her eyes wide. When she saw that it was indeed rk, she turned her head away and said with disgust, ¡°Don¡¯t touch me.¡±
Her resistance was clear in her eyes. rk¡¯s hand froze in midair before he withdrew it and sat down. ¡°Fine, I won¡¯t touch you. Just let me know if you need anything.¡±
N was feeling so ufortable at the moment that she didn¡¯t bother trying to get rk to leave. She simply closed her eyes as if he didn¡¯t exist.
Vrie then returned with the medicine. Upon seeing rk, she raised an eyebrow before she smirked. Mr. Sumner, you came to see N. Aren¡¯t you afraid your lover will get jealous?¡±
Ever since N had told Vrie about rk¡¯s affair, Vrie had seen him attending numerous business events with Jordyn, who always posed as his secretary. A few times, unable to stand Jordyn¡¯s hypocrisy, Vrie had taunted her, only to be warned by rk not to provoke Jordyn.
Thinking of how N had loved such a scoundrel for eight years made Vrie furious.
rk¡¯s displeasure shed in his eyes. His voice was deep as he said, ¡°I am N¡¯s husband. It¡¯s only right, for me to take care of her. As for you, Ms. Weir, if you have nothing else to do, you may l J.¡±
Vrie¡¯s expression turned mocking. ¡°You don¡¯t seem to have the authority tomand me, and I¡¯m notfortable leaving N with you.¡±
The two locked eyes, a cold tension filling the air, almost like an electric current passing between them.
Their
staring contest was interrupted by N¡¯s cough, prompting Vrie to quickly walk to the bedside. and speak gently. ¡°N, are you still feeling ufortable?¡±N?velDrama.Org (C) content.
¡°Yeah, I want some water.¡±
Upon hearing this, rk quickly poured a ss of water and handed it over. Vrie frowned but took the ss of water and helped N take a few sips
After just a couple of sips, N felt too ufortable to drink more.
Vrie¡¯s heart ached upon seeing N in such distress and her hatred for Lucia intensified.
Although Lucia was in worse condition, suffering from multiple fractures and a concussion, it was entirely her own fault.
Once Lucia recovered, Vrie wouldn¡¯t let her off so easily!
Suddenly, N¡¯s phone on the table rang.
rk noticed the caller ID as ¡°Uncle Damon¡± and squinted. Before he could react, Vrie answered the call. rk¡¯s gaze turned Icy when he heard Damon wasing to see N, and his presence seemed to weigh heavily in the room.
Vrie noticed his unpleasant expression but ignored it, dismissing it as his usual moodiness.
Soon, Damon arrived, apanied by Spencer holding flowers and fruits.
Vrie stood up with a smile. ¡°Mr. Sumner, you came in person!¡±
Earlier, she had thought Damon was being courteous on the phone and would perhaps send a secretary
over at most.
Compared to rk, Vrie had a much better impression of Damon. At least he didn¡¯t engage in affairs.
¡°I happened to be nearby,¡± Damon said as his gaze fell on N lying pale on the hospital bed. His brows furrowed involuntarily. ¡°What did the doctor say? Is it serious?¡±
¡°Mild concussion, some minor scrapes. She should be fine in a few days,¡± Vrie answered.
Damon nodded, about to say something when a cold voice cut in.
CHAPTER 65
+25
Uncle Damon, thank you foring to see N, but you¡¯re usually busy, so there¡¯s no need for you toe in the future.¡± rk¡¯s tonecked politeness, and his gaze toward Damon was filled with hostility, practically spelling out ¡°keep your distance from N¡±
Damon looked at him calmly, showing no sign of being provoked.
rk felt frustrated and ground his teeth in anger. Damon¡¯s attitude made him feel like his punch hadnded nowhere.
Damon ignored rk¡¯s remark, turned to Vrie, and said, ¡°Ms. Weir, I have another meeting shortly. I¡¯ll take my leave now.¡±
Vrie nodded. ¡°Alright, I¡¯ll see you out.¡±
¡°No need,¡± Damon replied.
As Damon turned to leave, rk followed and intercepted him in front of the elevator, staring at him with a stern expression. ¡°Uncle Damon, I hope you understand that N is my wife and your niece¨Cinw, not just some random woman. I hope you don¡¯t have any inappropriate thoughts.¡±
Damon nced at rk, his gaze devoid of warmth. ¡°If I were you, I¡¯d be more concerned about my wife¡¯s condition right now, not other trivial matters.¡±
Under Damon¡¯s icy gaze, rk¡¯s hands clenched into fists by his side. ¡°Of course. I care about N¡¯s condition, but that doesn¡¯t mean I can neglect other things.¡±
Damon chuckled, a hint of mockery shing in his eyes. ¡°If I recall correctly, just a few days ago you were gallivanting around with your secretary. Instead of warning me, you might want to figure out how to keep it hidden from your grandfather.¡±
Before rk could respond, the elevator doors opened, and Damon walked straight in without ncing back at him.
Even as the elevator descended, rk¡¯s face remained grim.
He returned to the hospital room over ten minutester.
N had already fallen asleep, but her sleep seemed restless, her brows still furrowed.
rk sat down across from Vrie and noticed the bouquet on the table, which seemed ring. Suddenly, he stood up, grabbed the flowers, and walked out.
Seeing his actions, Vrie couldn¡¯t help but frown. Just as she was about to speak up, she thought about how¨CN had finally managed to fall asleep and reluctantly followed rk out.
When she saw him tossing Damon¡¯s flowers into the trash at the end of the hallway, she hurried over. rk, are you insane? These are flowers from N¡¯s visitor. Who are you to throw them away?¡±
rk¡¯s expression remained indifferent. ¡°I¡¯m her husband. I have the right to handle things for her.¡±
Vrie was almost amused by rk¡¯s audacity. She used to think he had a good personality and truly loved N. Today, she realized she had been blind.
¡°Never mind that Damon is your uncle. Even if a friend had sent those flowers to N, you have no right to dispose of them.¡±
rk looked coldly at Vrie. ¡°Ms. Weir, considering you¡¯re N¡¯s close friend, I don¡¯t want to argue with you. But I have a bad temper. If you continue to meddle in our affairs, the Weirs might not fare well.¡±
Vrie sneered. ¡°Are you threatening me?¡±
¡°Not a threat, just a reminder.¡±
¡°Thanks for the reminder, Mr. Sumner. But since you know I¡¯m N¡¯s friend, I won¡¯t stand by and watch her be mistreated.¡±This belongs ? N?velDra/ma.Org.
rk¡¯s eyes grew cold as he was about to speak when his phone rang. Seeing Jordyn¡¯s name on the screen, he frowned.
Vrie also noticed the name, and a hint of disgust shed in her eyes.
He went.
disgusting, juggling between his mistress and begging N for forgiveness.
CHAPTER 66
¡°Mr. Sumner, if you no longer love N, please let her go, considering the eight years of your rtionship.
¡°Don¡¯t continue clinging to a mistress while refusing to divorce her, draining whatever little love is left between you.¡±
With that, Vrie turned and left without caring how unpleasant rk¡¯s expression became.
rk¡¯s fingers holding the phone turned faintly white, his gaze heavy and cold. His phone kept ringing. and he walked to the stairwell to answer.
¡°What is it?¡±
Jordyn¡¯s voice sounded grave from the phone. ¡°rk, I have something important to tell you.¡±
¡°I¡¯m busy right now.¡± Just as rk was about to hang up, something said on the other end froze him in ce. After several seconds, he spoke in a low voice. ¡°I¡¯lle see you shortly.¡±
Back in the hospital room, Vrie saw that N had woken up and quickly approached her bedside.¡± N, I¡¯ve already asked for soup to be prepared for you. It should arrive soon. Just rest a little longer.¡±
¡°Okay.¡±
Not long after, rk pushed open the door and entered the room.
Seeing his grim expression, Vrie sneered. ¡°Mr. Sumner, finished chatting with your mistress?¡±
rk frowned at her, clearly displeased. If Vrie hadn¡¯t been N¡¯s friend, he would have dealt with the Weirs long ago for speaking to him like that.
¡°N, there¡¯s a contract issue at thepany. I need to go back to handle it. I¡¯lle back after it¡¯s resolved,¡± rk told N.
Ny with closed eyes, not responding, clearly uninterested in engaging with him.
Beside her, Vrie mocked, ¡°Is it really apany issue, or is it something with Jordyn? Mr. Sumner, you should know in your heart.¡±
rk looked coldly at her. ¡°Vrie, because you¡¯re N¡¯s friend, I¡¯ve been tolerant of you. If you don¡¯t want the Weirs to suffer bankruptcy, stop challenging my limits again and again.¡±
Maybe Vrie had been working behind the scenes to incite N¡¯s resistance to him. Upon thinking that, rk¡¯s anger red, his gaze darkening even more.
Hearing him threaten Vrie, N frowned and opened her eyes to look at him. ¡°If you¡¯re leaving, just go. Don¡¯t bothering tonight. Vrie is here.¡±
Her detachment pierced rk. ¡°N, it really is apany matter that¡¯s forcing me to leave.¡±
His exnation didn¡¯t seem to matter to N anymore
¡°It¡¯s fine. Just go,¡± she said.
Seeing N close her eyes again, rk pursed his lips and turned to leave.
As the hospital room door opened and then closed, the room fell silent.
Vrie held N¡¯s hand, gritting her teeth. ¡°N, ignore him. Once you¡¯re better, I¡¯ll arrange for male escorts at the club for you¨Cone each day. Since this scumbag won¡¯t divorce, let¡¯s give him a heap of cuckoldry!¡±
N couldn¡¯t help but smile, suppressing the bitterness in her heart. ¡°No need. He¡¯s not worth me ruining myself.¡±
¡°How is this ruining yourself? It¡¯s called enjoying life! When I move out from home in a while, I¡¯ll get myself a male escort.¡±
N was rendered speechless.
After leaving the hospital, rk drove straight to find Jordyn. As he opened the door, he asked coldly,¡± What¡¯s the report?¡±N?velDrama.Org (C) content.
Jordyn stepped aside to let him in, handing him a medical report from the table.
¡°rk, I didn¡¯t mean to look¡ When you and Ms. Jayston were having your checkup, I hadn¡¯t left the Sumner Group yet, so I used my number. That¡¯s why when the report came out, the clinic called me to pick it up¡¡±
When Jordyn was rk¡¯s secretary, she managed his daily life, including tasks like picking up reports. rk ignored her exnation and opened the medical report.
When rk saw that N had been diagnosed with infertility, he suddenly tightened his grip on the report, his fingertips turning faintly white. He hadn¡¯t expected that after three years of trying, it was N who couldn¡¯t conceive!
and Ms.
Noticing his unpleasant expression, Jordyn spoke cautiously, ¡°rk, previously, when you Jayston weren¡¯t nning for children, you only did routine checkups. If it weren¡¯t for this preconception check, maybe you-
¡°That¡¯s enough!¡± rk coldly interrupted her, his gaze intense as if he could devour her.
Jordyn couldn¡¯t help but tremble, not daring to speak again.
¡°Has anyone else seen this medical report besides you?¡± rk asked.
Jordyn shook her head, cautiously replying, ¡°No¡ rk are you nning to keep this matter a secret?¡±
¡°It¡¯s none of your concern. Pretend you know nothing about it. If a single word leaks out, I¡¯ll make sure you suffer, he warned.
Hurt flickered in Jordyn¡¯s eyes. ¡°Don¡¯t you trust me? And¡ even now that you know Ms. Jayston can¡¯t bear children, you don¡¯t n to divorce her?¡±
CHAPTER 67
+25
¡°I won¡¯t divorce her. Even if I did, I¡¯d never marry you. Just carry the child to term, and that¡¯s all you need to worry about. The rest isn¡¯t your concern!¡± With that, rk stormed out, medical report in hand.
After the door mmed shut, Jordyn wiped a tear from her eye with a smirk.
rk didn¡¯t return to the hospital that night.
N had sensed it long before, so she couldn¡¯t say she was disappointed.
After a few days of recuperation in the hospital, N had recovered about 70-80%. Aside from asional dizziness, she was mostly fine. The doctor said she could be discharged that afternoon.
¡°N, I have something to do this afternoon. I¡¯ll send my driver to take you home,¡± Vrie offered.
¡°No need. I don¡¯t have much stuff. I¡¯ll just take a taxi,¡± N replied.
During N¡¯s hospital stay, rk hadn¡¯t visited after the initial appearance. It had been Vrie taking care of N, causing Vrie to miss out on a lot, which made N feel quite guilty.
¡°I¡¯ll still have the drivere. He¡¯s free this afternoon anyway. I have to go now. Let me know when you get home.¡± Vrie hurriedly left.
N continued organizing her clothes and personal items. Hearing the hospital room door open behind her, she thought it might be Vrie returning for something, so she turned with a smile.
Seeing it was Jordyn, she frowned. She hadn¡¯t expected to see this woman again, but evidently, she had underestimated her shamelessness. ¡°You¡¯re not wee here. Please leave.¡±
Seeing N¡¯s cold gaze, Jordyn smirked. She moved to sit down by the bedside uninvited, provocation.
gaze full of
¡°I heard you were hospitalized, so I came to see you. I¡¯ve been feeling under the weather these days, and rk has been with me, so I didn¡¯t have time toe see you,¡± Jordyn said, her tone devoid of any true apology.
N looked indifferent. ¡°He was busy, so he sent a mistress to visit me?¡±
Jordyn was annoyed but quickly reverted to her previous smug smile, standing up and approaching N.
¡°Ms. Jayston, I don¡¯t know if you¡¯ve heard, but love doesn¡¯t have a sequence. The one who isn¡¯t loved back is the mistress. Now that rk refuses to divorce you, it¡¯s only because he¡¯s worried about his position at the Sumner Group. He hasn¡¯t loved you for a long time.¡±
Finally, N stopped what she was doing. Looking at Jordyn¡¯s smug expression, she spoke calmly ¡°Love may not have a sequence, but shouldn¡¯t there be some sense of propriety?
¡°Calling yourself a mistress with such superiority, it¡¯s a first for me. Even if rk doesn¡¯t.love me anymore, as long as we¡¯re not divorced, you two can only skulk around like rats in the gutter.
¡°You say he loves you, then why hasn¡¯t he loved you enough to divorce me? Don¡¯t overestimate your importance. He may have many mistresses, but there seems to be only one Mrs. Sumner.¡±N?velDrama.Org (C) content.
Jordyn¡¯s face paled slightly, her hands by her side subconsciously clenched. She hadn¡¯t expected N to be so sharp¨Ctongued.
However, it seemed N wouldn¡¯t be able to exin herselfter even if she had a hundred chances.
N kept her head down as she continued packing her things when suddenly, Jordyn grabbed her wrist. She instinctively pulled away and caused Jordyn to stagger back, bumping into the cab next to the bed with a loud bang.
¡°Ouch!¡±
¡°N, what are you doing?!¡±
N turned around to see rk walking into the hospital room with a dark expression.
So this was what had been in store for her.
¡°You saw¨Ceverything, didn¡¯t you? Do you still need to ask me?¡± N retorted.
Jordyn sat on the floor, her face pale with pain, but she managed to force a smile. ¡°rk, don¡¯t me Ms. Jayston. It¡¯s my fault for wronging her. It¡¯s only right for her to get angry at me.¡±
rk quickly walked over to help her up, his gaze at N now cold. ¡°She¡¯s weak. Even if you¡¯re angry, you shouldn¡¯ty hands on a pregnant woman!¡±
ley as well.
N¡¯s grip on her clothes tightened involuntarily, her gaze meeting rk¡¯s, now icy
Was he blind?
Jordyn was pregnant, but wasn¡¯t N a patient too?
Clearly, it was Jordyn who hade to her hospital room looking for trouble, yet rk immediately assumed it was N¡¯s fault without asking for the cause and effect.
Their eight years of rtionship seemed to count for less than a secretary who had been with him for only
a year.
¡°If you
don¡¯t want me toy hands on her, then don¡¯t let her swagger in front of me.¡± N¡¯s indifferent expression made rk even more displeased.
At that moment, rk didn¡¯t know if he was angrier that N hadn¡¯t exined herself or that she seemed indifferent to him. ¡°Apologize!¡±
CHAPTER 68
N felt like she was listening to a joke. She had never seen a husband embrace his mistress and order his wife to apologize to the mistress.
¡°Do you think she deserves it?¡± she asked incredulously
Tears welled up in Jordyn¡¯s eyes as she clutched rk¡¯s sleeve, choking out, ¡°rk, please don¡¯t make things difficult for Ms. Jayston. It¡¯s my fault. As long as it calms her down, she can treat me however she
wants.¡±
rk gave Jordyn a cold nce. ¡°Shut up.¡±
Sensing rk¡¯s anger, Jordyn trembled uncontrobly, lowered her gaze, and said nothing more.
Watching them embrace, N felt only mockery. Was this what rk had meant by having nothing to do with Jordyn? Was he taking N for a fool?T¨ºxt belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
Unable to bear watching further, N hastily stuffed her belongings into her bag and turned to leave.
¡°Stop!¡± rk yelled.
Footsteps echoed behind her, and the next moment, arge hand grabbed her wrist.
Before N could react, rk pulled her forcefully toward the exit.,
His grip was strong, causing N to stumble, nearly falling.
When she tried to shake him off, his grasp on her wrist was like a vice, leaving her no chance to break free.
It wasn¡¯t until he dragged her into the stairwell and backed her against the wall that he forced her to look up at him from below, his eyes burning red.
¡°N, do you still have any feelings for me?¡®
When rk had embraced Jordyn, he had hoped to see signs of anger or sadness on N¡¯s face, even the slightest hint. Unfortunately, the result disappointed him. She showed neither anger nor sadness, only Indifference.
At that moment, his heart felt like it was being squeezed, the unbearable pain spreading through every fiber of his being.
More than N¡¯sck of exnation, what he found even harder to ept was her indifference toward him now.
Upon seeing rk¡¯s red eyes, N¡¯s expression shed with scorn. ¡°What do you think?¡±
rk pinched her chin, forcing her to look up at him. ¡°If you don¡¯t have any feelings left, it¡¯s okay. We still have a lifetime ahead, and there wille a day when you¡¯ll care about me again.¡±
N pped his hand away, trembling with anger. How could he expect her to love him as before while he tangled with Jordyn? Didn¡¯t he think it was unfair to her?
¡°rk, must you disgust me?¡±
She had only wanted a divorce, to get what rightfully belonged to her, and then draw a clear line between
them. But he had gone too far.
rk¡¯s gaze darkened. ¡°Even if I disgust you, I won¡¯t let you leave. N, we¡¯re destined to be entangled for a lifetime.¡±
A lifetime¡ Once such a beautiful term for them, now felt like a shackle.
¡°rk¡ My stomach hurts so much¡¡± Jordyn¡¯s voice suddenly came from behind him. He turned around, about to tell her to leave, but he abruptly noticed her pale face, and his gaze darkened,
He looked back at N. ¡°Wait for me. I¡¯ll take you home.¡±
N looked away without saying a word.
rk¡¯s eyes shed with helplessness upon seeing her stubborn demeanor. He let go of her and turned to walk toward Jordyn, his gaze turning icy. ¡°I¡¯ll take you back to the ward.¡±
After they disappeared from view, N turned and left directly.
While rk sent Jordyn back to her ward, he remained silent, his face stern.
Sensing the heavy atmosphere around him, Jordyn wanted to speak several times, but each time she hesitated and remained silent.
When they reached the door of the ward, rk was about to turn and leave. Jordyn¡¯s face paled in panic, and she quickly reached out to grab him.
¡°rk¡¡±
rk¡¯s icy gaze fell on Jordyn¡¯s hand, which was pulling at his sleeve. ¡°Let go.¡±
Intimidated by his cold stare, Jordyn instinctively released her grip.
¡°rk, I just heard that Ms. Jayston was also in this hospital today, so I went to see her.¡±
rk smirked mockingly. ¡°You know very well if you were there to see her or to provoke her. Do you think just because she can¡¯t have a child, you can marry me with this child?¡±
CHAPTER 69
After all, before knowing that N couldn¡¯t have children, Jordyn wouldn¡¯t have dared to provoke N while pregnant. rk hadn¡¯t exposed Jordyn¡¯s clumsy acting in front of N just now simply because she was carrying his child. That didn¡¯t mean he was a fool.
Jordyn¡¯s fingers trembled as she bit her lip, tearfully looking at him. ¡°rk, I didn¡¯t mean that¡¡±
Impatience shed in rk¡¯s eyes. ¡°You better really didn¡¯t.¡±
Jordyn bit her lip, sounding disappointed. ¡°Were you¡ Using me to test Ms. Jayston just now?¡±
rk knew she had plotted against N but hadn¡¯t exposed her. She had thought he had feelings for her, but it turned out she had deceived herself.
rk pinched Jordyn¡¯s chin, his gaze full of disdain. ¡°You¡¯d better straighten yourself out. I like smart women, but being too clever is just stupid.¡±
As Jordyn froze, rk released her and walked away.
Tears fell from Jordyn¡¯s eyes as she watched him leave. Subconsciously, she touched her abdomen. Although she knew she could not beat N now, she had a trump card with this baby.
One day, she and the child would weigh more than N in rk¡¯s heart. He hadn¡¯t paid any attention to N while they were hospitalized together because she was feeling unwell from the pregnancy.
As Jordyn thought about it, determination shed in her eyes.
In another VIP ward on the same hospital floor, Lucia was infuriated upon hearing that N had been discharged. They had both fallen down the stairs, but why had she ended up with multiple fractures, bruises all over, and a moderate concussion, while N only had minor scratches and a mild concussion¡±
Lucia had initially thought about using N as a shield when they fell, but instead, she had ended up being the one sacrificed for N. The more she dwelled on it, the angrier she became..
A series of knocks sounded on the door. Irritated, Lucia asked, ¡°Who is it?¡±
The door opened, and Keh walked in with a fruit basket and an ingratiating look. ¡°Ms. Pord, I heard you were hospitalized, so I came to see you.¡±
Lucia was already annoyed, so her mood worsened at the sight of Keh, ¡°What are you doing here?¡±
Even her service staff wouldn¡¯t ept such a shabby fruit basket, let alone her.
Keh ced the fruit basket down and sat beside the hospital bed. ¡°Ms. Pord, the money you gave mest time is almost gone¡ My wife¡¯s medical bills¡I can¡¯t keep up with them¡¡±
Lucia frowned coldly. ¡°I gave you 15,000 dors, and you¡¯re telling me you¡¯re out of money in just a few days? Do you think I¡¯m an ATM?¡±
Keh, feeling guilty, awkwardly replied, ¡°I thought I shouldn¡¯t always bother you¡ so I took some to the casino to try my luck. If I had won, I wouldn¡¯t have toe to you again. I didn¡¯t expect my luck to be so bad¡¡±
Lucia snickered. ¡°What does that have to do with me? Given my rtionship with Mabel, giving you 15,000 dors was already more than generous.¡±
Keh scowled as Lucia refused to give him more money. ¡°Ms. Pord, are you nning to cut us off? Don¡¯t forget, Mabel went to jail for helping you. If she hadn¡¯t done so, I wouldn¡¯t have needed toe to you for money.
¡°If you cut us off, I¡¯m afraid I won¡¯t be able to keep quiet about what Mabel and I did for you.¡±
Lucia¡¯s expression grew cold, and a murderous intent surged in her eyes. A middle¨Caged man with no background dared to threaten her now.
Keeping her head down, she suddenly devised a n. If executed correctly, she could deal with both N and Keh.
She looked up at Keh with a smile.
¡°How could I cut you off? It¡¯s just that I don¡¯t have much money myself. But if you¡¯re willing to listen to me, I¡¯ll make sure you get more money than you could ever spend in a lifetime.¡±
This belongs ? N?velDra/ma.Org.
CHAPTER 70
When Keh heard that, greed filled his eyes. ¡°Never be able to finish spending in my lifetime? So we¡¯re talking hundreds of thousands?¡±
A hint of mockery shed in Lucia¡¯s eyes. What a country bumpkin¨Che couldn¡¯t even conceive of anything beyond hundreds of thousands.
¡°If this n seeds, we¡¯re not talking hundreds of thousands¨Cwe¡¯re talking millions!¡±
¡°Really?¡± Keh¡¯s cheeks flushed red from excitement as if he could already see millions beckoning to
him.
¡°Of course. Come closer, and I¡¯ll exin carefully to you.¡± Lucia lowered her voice, and Keh nodded eagerly, excitement evident in his eyes.
In the end, he looked at Lucia earnestly and said, ¡°Ms. Pord, I¡¯ll do whatever you say as long as it gets me the money.¡±
After Keh left, Lucia sneered. Before long, all the people she detested would disappear from this world.
N had not been home for long when rk came knocking.
N could see from the surveince monitor that he looked angry. She pretended not to notice and went straight to her bedroom
She had originally thought that he would leave if she didn¡¯t open the door for him and made him wait outside for a while. She hadn¡¯t expected him to call a locksmith right away.T¨ºxt belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
Upon hearing the door open, N initially thought she had misheard. It wasn¡¯t until the footsteps approached closer to the bedroom that she quickly got up to lock the bedroom door.
rk twisted the doorknob but couldn¡¯t open it and looked somewhat helpless. ¡°N,e out. Let¡¯s talk, okay?¡±
N didn¡¯t say anything but called the police.
Soon, the police arrived.
It wasn¡¯t until the police knocked on the bedroom door and exined their purpose that N opened it.
rk was subdued by two police officers, his hands cuffed behind his back, looking
He frowned at N. ¡°N, exin to the police that we¡¯re husband and wife.¡±
remely disheveled.
N looked at him coldly and then told the police officers, ¡°Officers, he and I are indeed married, but we are currently separated. He suddenly hired a locksmith to break into my home today, and who knows what more frightening things he might do tomorrow? Could you please take him away?¡°.
It would be best if they could detain him for a few days to teach him a lesson.
The police officers nodded and looked at rk. ¡°Come with us to the station.¡±
¡°N, I hired the locksmith because you didn¡¯t open the door for me, and I was worried about you,¡± rk said earnestly, but N found itughable.
She was certain that not only would they have argued, but her safety might have been threatened if she had opened the door when rk was fuming earlier.
¡°You can save these exnations for when you¡¯re making your statement to the police. If you ever try to enter my home again without my consent, I¡¯ll have no choice but to take legal action against you.¡± rk was furious. He had always had an easy life, and in no way had he ever suffered such indignity.
At the police station, he refused to speak until hiswyer arrived and negotiated directly through thewyer.
Under thewyer¡¯s mediation, coupled with rk and N¡¯s marriage certificate, the police released him but still issued a verbal warning. ¡°Even if you¡¯re married, you can¡¯t break and enter like that.¡±
Thewyer nodded repeatedly and had to listen to the police for a while before leading rk away. As soon as they left the police station, rk ordered coldly, ¡°Take me to N.¡±
Thewyer looked at him, somewhat helpless. ¡°Mr. Sumner, I suggest you calm down before seeing Ms. Jayston. Otherwise, if she applies for a restraining order from the court, it will negatively impact thepany¡¯s image.¡±
CHAPTER 71
Upon hearing that, rk¡¯s expression darkened, and the atmosphere in the room seemed to plummet,
After a long silence, he finally spoke. To the office.¡±
For the next few days, rk did not bother N again, and she enjoyed the peace.
When Vrie finished her tasks, she went straight to N, urging her to apany her to the hospital.
¡°Why are we going to the hospital? It¡¯s not time for a check¨Cup yet,¡± N asked.
Seeing N¡¯s confusion, Vrie rolled her eyes. ¡°Have you forgotten who caused you to fall down the stairs?¡±
¡°I remember, but so what?¡±
¡°Since you remember, let¡¯s go. We¡¯re going to demandpensation for your medical expenses and emotional distress, Vrie said.
When they arrived at the hospital, Lucia was having lunch with her parents.
Seeing N, Clement was momentarily taken aback but then gave a friendly smile. ¡°N, are you here to visit Lucia?¡±
Vrie sneered and sat down on the sofa, raising an eyebrow at Clement.
¡°Mr. Pord, your daughter not only fell down the stairs herself but also caused N to fall, resulting in a mild concussion and asional dizziness.
¡°Don¡¯t you think the Pords shouldpensate her for lost wages, medical expenses, and emotional distress? Vrie questioned.
Upon hearing this, Lucia turned livid and red at Vtie.N?velDrama.Org (C) content.
¡°Vrie, don¡¯t use me. Which eye of yours saw me causing her to fall? I was the one who got hurt more severely, so she should be the onepensating me!¡± Lucia snapped.
Having dealt with Lucia¡¯s maniptive behavior before Vrie had always kept her at arm¡¯s length.
It was N¨Cunder the impression that she and Lucia had grown up together and were best friends¨Cwho failed to see through Lucia¡¯s facade.
The Jaystons¡® bankruptcy ultimately revealed Lucia¡¯s true colors, leading to their fallout.
Reflecting on this, Vrie looked at Lucia with disdain. ¡°You got hurt worse because you fell first and tried to drag N down with you, but you failed.¡±
¡°You!¡± Lucia was furious. She wanted to retort, but Vrie cut her off coldly.
¡°If you don¡¯t want the story about you staging a scene to kneel in front of N and hit the Inte, ruining your reputation, then stop arguing with me,¡± Vrie threatened.
Clement, seemingly oblivious to the tense atmosphere, smiled and said, ¡°Ms. Weir, there¡¯s no need to be angry. Regardless of whether Lucia is at fault or not, I¡¯ve watched N grow up. I¡¯m willing to cover her medical expenses for falling down the stairs.¡±
Vrie raised an eyebrow, her gaze icy.
¡°Mr. Pord, you certainly know how to say the right things, but let¡¯s be clear¨CN isn¡¯t so down and out that she needs charity from the Pords. What we¡¯re asking for ispensation, not a handout,¡± Vrie rified.
Clement¡¯s smile faltered for a moment before he turned to N. ¡°What kind ofpensation are you looking for, N?¡±
Meeting Clement¡¯s seemingly gentle gaze, N found it hypocritical.
When the Jaystons went bankrupt and her father was hospitalized from the shock, Clement hadn¡¯t even. bothered to visit, not even for appearances. Now, he was pretending nothing had happened, speaking to her as if everything was the same.
Seeing N remain silent, Vrie assumed she was about to ask for an apology from Lucia and quickly interjected, ¡°We want 150,000 dors inpensation and an apology from Lucia.¡±
CHAPTER 72
¡°Impossible! I won¡¯t apologize to her!¡± Lucia growled.
Vrie smirked as she observed. Lucia, who was visibly agitated, brimming with resistance and anger.
¡°Ms. Pord, if you refuse to apologize, we¡¯ll see you in court. If I¡¯m not mistaken, spreading false rumors can lead to a prison sentence if the post receives more than 5,000 shares, correct?¡± Vrie said.
Lucia¡¯s previously arrogant demeanor was suddenly dampened as if doused with a bucket of cold water. Her face turned pale at the thought of imprisonment and the potential ruination of her life.
Clement¡¯s face darkened but quickly resumed its previous gentle expression.
¡°Lucia, just apologize to N. As the older person, you should be the bigger person,¡± he advised.
Vrie frowned at Clement¡¯s words, sensing an implication that they were being unreasonable today.
Before she could respond, N spoke up. ¡°Mr. Pord, It¡¯s not about her age or any obligation to give in. It¡¯s about her wrongdoing and the need for her to apologize. Please don¡¯t act as if she¡¯s being unjustly
treated.¡±
Clement was taken aback. He hadn¡¯t expected the usually gentle N to be so direct.
¡°You¡¯re right, N. It¡¯s my oversight,¡± he said.
N remained indifferent. It wasn¡¯t an oversight¨Che was clearly downying the situation.
Lucia bit her lip, reluctantly turning to N. ¡°I was wrong before, N. I¡¯m sorry.¡±
Seeing Lucia¡¯s unwilling expression, N ignored her and turned to Vrie. ¡°Val, did you hear anyone speaking just now?¡±
Vrie caught on quickly and shook her head. ¡°Nope, but I think I heard a mosquito buzzing.¡±
Lucia was so furious she wanted to tear the room apart. Unfortunately, under Clement¡¯s cold gaze, she had no choice but to raise her voice and apologize again.
¡°N, I¡¯m sorry. I was wrong before. I hope you can forgive me!¡±
Finally, N turned to her with a smile.
The smile felt mocking to Lucia.
¡°Ms. Pord, what exactly did you do wrong? If you don¡¯t exin, how will I know?¡± N asked.
¡°You!¡± Lucia pointed a finger at N, about to curse her out, but Clement interrupted coldly, ¡°Lucia!¡±
Under his icy gaze, Lucia reluctantly said, ¡°I shouldn¡¯t have had Keh kneel and apologize to you on purpose. I shouldn¡¯t have recorded the video and posted it online to ruin your reputation. And I shouldn¡¯t have grabbed you when I fell down the stairs. Satisfied now?!¡±
She said it loudly, her voice cracking with frustration and tears by the end.
N remained calm, nodding only after Lucia finished speaking. ¡°Alright. I ept your apology.¡±
Back in the car, Vrie couldn¡¯t help butugh. ¡°Lucia¡¯s face when she apologized was priceless. I wish I could¡¯ve recorded it and watched it over and over.¡±
N smiled at her. ¡°Alright, enough about that. Did you record the audio?¡±
¡°I did. I¡¯ll send it to you now,¡± Vrie replied.
Once N received the recording, she saved it to her cloud storage. If Lucia dared to bother her again, she would release the recording and let everyone know what kind of person she really was.
After N and Vrie left, the atmosphere in the hospital room turned icy.N?velDrama.Org (C) content.
Clement¡¯s earlier smile had vanished, reced by a re as he stared at Lucia.
¡°Dad-¡±
Before Lucia could finish, Clement pped her. ¡°Idiot!¡±
He thought Lucia was absolutely useless since she couldn¡¯t even handle N and had gotten caught in her own schemes.
Lucia clutched her face, filled with fear and dread..
CHAPTER 73
¡°I am sorry, Dad,¡± said Lucia.
¡°If you can¡¯t scheme properly, just stay out of trouble. Don¡¯t make me cut ties with you.¡±
With that, Clement stormed out.
The next two days were the weekend, so N rested at home before returning to work on Monday. Her hands had mostly healed, and she was ready to continue her experiments in theb.
As soon as she arrived at thepany, Genevieve hurried over to her.
¡°N, get ready. You¡¯re going on a business trip to Rontana with Mr. Sumner,¡± Genevieve said.
N was taken aback, looking a bit puzzled. ¡°Mr. Sumner? Damon Sumner?¡±
Genevieve nodded. ¡°Yes. Mr. Sumner found apany in Rontana that produces the ingredients you need for your asthma medication research. You¡¯ll be going there with him to conduct an on¨Csite inspection and determine the medicinal ingredients¡® efficacy.¡±
N frowned. ¡°Doesn¡¯t Prospectus Technology have a dedicated evaluation team for this?¡±
Genevieve replied, ¡°The evaluation team is currently on a business trip to another city. Since this is your area of expertise, thepany decided to send you instead. Prepare tonight. Mr. Sumner will pick you up from your ce at seven tomorrow morning.¡±
Genevieve seemed very busy and quickly left after giving the instructions, heading to the meeting room
with her files.
The next morning arrived quickly.
N got up and washed up.
Seeing it was almost time, she grabbed her suitcase and headed downstairs.
As she opened the door, she saw rk standing there, holding breakfast in one hand and about to knock on the door with the other.
N frowned, her gaze showing impatience.
¡°N, where are you going?¡± rk wondered if she was nning to move to avoid him.
¡°None of your business. Move,¡± she said.
rk didn¡¯t budge, his eyes locked on N¡¯s cold face. ¡°N, no matter where you move within the city. I¡¯ll find you. Moving is pointless.¡±
N sneered. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯m not nning to avoid you.¡±
rk was the one who had cheated. He should be the one feeling guilty, not her.
¡°If you¡¯re not moving, then why are you dragging a suitcase?¡± he asked.
Chapter 73
N checked the time, unwilling to waste any more on him. ¡°I¡¯m going on a business trip. Now move.¡±
Upon hearing her exnation, rk breathed a slight sigh of relief. ¡°Where are you going on a business trip? For how long?¡±
N shoved past him, exasperated. ¡°If you have time to bother me, why not spend it with your lover? Keep her busy so she doesn¡¯te and cause trouble for me.¡±
rk was caught off guard by her push, almost dropping the breakfast. ¡°N, I brought you your favorite from university¡¡±
N didn¡¯t even turn around, hurrying toward the elevator.
rk looked at the breakfast in his hand with a bitter smile. Back in university, he used to wait for her outside her dorm with these. Every time, her eyes would light up at the sight of them. Eventually, he got jealous and hid them behind his back, leading her to hug him to grab them.
Now, she wouldn¡¯t even spare him a nce.
rk walked up to N, still offering the breakfast. ¡°N, take these for the road.¡±This belongs ? N?velDra/ma.Org.
N ignored him, treating him like he was invisible.
Bitterness filled rk¡¯s gaze, but he said nothing, silently following her into the elevator.
When they reached the ground floor, he frowned as the doors opened.
¡°Spencer, what are you doing here?¡± he asked.
CHAPTER 74
Seeing the clear displeasure in rk¡¯s eyes, Spencer spoke up. ¡°Mr. rk, Ms. Jayston is going on a business trip with Mr. Damon. I¡¯m here to help her with her luggage.¡±
As he reached out to take N¡¯s suitcase, a hand blocked his way.
¡°If I remember correctly, she works for Park Pharmaceuticals. Why should she go on a trip with my uncle?
rk questioned.
The thought of N spending time with Damon made rk¡¯s eyes sh with anger. As a man, he knew that Damon¡¯s gaze on N wasn¡¯t purely familial.
¡°Prospectus Technology¡¯s evaluation team is out of town, and the factory Mr. Damon is inspecting produces the exact ingredients Ms. Jayston needs for her research. So, she¡¯s been arranged to apany him,¡± Spencer exined.
rk sneered. ¡°If my uncle needs someone, I can pull a few people from the Sumner Group
N frowned. ¡°rk, this is my job. Can you not cause trouble?¡±
Seeing her cold expression, rk felt his heart sink. Did she not realize Damon had other intentions toward her?N?velDrama.Org (C) content.
¡°You¡¯re not going on this trip. If needed, I¡¯ll find you another job,¡± rk said, his tone domineering.
N felt a surge of anger and scoffed. ¡°Not going? Are you my boss or the owner of Park Pharmaceuticals? What right do you have to stop me?
With that, she pushed past him, dragging her suitcase toward the door.
rk quickly followed but stopped short when he saw Damon standing by the car, his expression turning grim.
He walked up to Damon. ¡°Uncle Damon, did you deliberately arrange for N to go on this trip with you?¡±
Damon¡¯s gaze turned icy. ¡°If you¡¯re not thinking straight, see a psychiatrist. Stop being paranoid and assuming everyone is as twisted as you.¡±
¡°I can get you evaluators from the Sumner Group if you need them,¡± rk insisted.
Damon¡¯s eyes were cold, his presence intimidating. ¡°You think just because you¡¯re the CEO of the Sumner Group, you can do whatever you want?¡±
If rk weren¡¯t his nephew, he would have had someone check if his brain was filled with mush.
Under Damon¡¯s intense gaze, rk felt a flicker of guilt but remained resolute for N¡¯s sake.
¡°I just don¡¯t think it¡¯s appropriate for you to be too close to N. After all, she¡¯s your niece¨Cinw. It would be best to avoid scandals,¡± rk said.
Seeing rk¡¯s wary expression, Damon sneered. ¡°It seems you have too much free time. I¡¯ll speak with your grandfather about having your cousin join the Sumner Group to learn about management.¡±
rk¡¯s face turned ashen at the threat. Before he could respond, Damon got into the car.
rk understood this was a warning and clenched his hands. If he kept interfering with N¡¯s business trip, his position as CEO might be at risk.
Did this mean he had to watch N spend time alone with Damon?
While he was lost in thought, Spencer loaded N¡¯s suitcase into the trunk. He could only watch as N got into the car silently, his face dark with anger and frustration.
As he stared after the ck Maybach driving away, resentment and unwillingness churned inside him. Once he officially took over the Sumner Group, he wouldn¡¯t have to fear Damon anymore.
CHAPTER 75
rk vowed to repay this humiliation one day.
Inside the car, N could feel the tension radiating from Damon, who was clearly in a bad mood. Although he was reading through some documents, his stern profile and the cold aura around him were unmistakable.
¡°Mr. Sumner, I¡¯m sorry about what happened this morning.¡± N said, breaking the silence.
Damon turned to her and frowned slightly, noticing her guilty expression. ¡°Why are you apologizing?¡±
¡°I didn¡¯t handle my personal matters well and ended up troubling you¡
Damon¡¯s gaze darkened, and his tone betrayed his displeasure. ¡°That¡¯s rk¡¯s fault, not yours. Don¡¯t worry
about it.¡±This belongs ? N?velDra/ma.Org.
He couldn¡¯t understand how the Sumners produced such a jerk. Not only had rk cheated, but he also had the audacity to keep pestering N.
N was surprised by Damon¡¯s response. After recalling how he had previously offered to introduce her to ¨¢ divorce , it made sense. It seemed that he wasn¡¯t as unreasonable as rk had made him out
to be.
They arrived in Rontana around 4:00p.m.
The deputy general manager of Skyray Medical, Bill Jenkinson, personally came to pick them up, demonstrating thepany¡¯s sincerity in wanting to coborate with Prospectus Technology.
Bill was in his 40s, plump, with a kind smile,
¡°Mr. Sumner, wee! Our CEO had an important meeting this afternoon and couldn¡¯t make it, s sent me to pick you up. You must be tired after the flight. I¡¯ll take you to your hotel first. This evening, our CEO will host a wee dinner at Greenfair Hotel,¡± Bill said.
Damon wore a rxed smile. ¡°Thank you for the hospitality, Mr. Jenkinson.¡±
¡°You¡¯re too kind, Mr. Sumner. This way to the parking lot.¡±
On the way to the hotel, Damon introduced N and Spencer to Bill.
When Bill learned that N was the evaluation specialist, he looked at her with renewed interest.
¡°I didn¡¯t expect someone so young to be dedicated to testing. It¡¯s true that you can¡¯t judge a book by its cover,¡± Billmented.
Earlier, upon noticing how attractive N was, Bill had assumed she was Damon¡¯s secretary and felt somewhat disdainful. He had encountered many beautiful women apanying business partners who were essentially mistresses posing as secretaries.
-Anyone could perform a secretary¡¯s job, but an evaluation specialist required expertise. This included recognizing all the equipment and ing effectiveponents from the medicinal ingredients.
The coboration with Prospectus Technology relied heavily on the evaluation specialist, so Bill¡¯s gaze at
N was now more respectful.
N smiled graciously. ¡°You¡¯re too kind, Mr. Jenkinson
Noticing Bill¡¯s gaze lingering on N, Damon furrowed his brow imperceptibly.
Upon sensing Damon¡¯s displeasure, Spencer quickly interjected, ¡°Mr. Jenkinson, Mr. Sumner is very interested in the cultivation of your medicinal herbs. Could you tell us more about it?¡±
This sessfully diverted Bill¡¯s attention, and he turned to discuss it with Damon.
Spencer secretly breathed a sigh of relief as the cold atmosphere seemed to lighten. His intuition had been right¡
But was Damon¡¯s focus on N purely because she was his niece¨Cinw, or was there another reason? Spencer didn¡¯t dare to delve too deeply into it.
Upon reaching the hotel, Bill escorted them to their rooms and then left.
Since there were only three of them on this trip and N was the only woman, they had booked three separate rooms.
N unpacked her luggage and was about to sit down when her phone rang.
CHAPTER 76
N¡¯s eyes shed with annoyance when she saw rk¡¯s name on the caller ID, and she hung up Immediately. He called several more times but finally gave up when she didn¡¯t answer.
On the other end, rk threw his phone on the floor in anger, his expression dark and menacing. Michael, send someone to Rontana to keep an eye on things. I want to know immediately if anything goes
wrong.¡±
He didn¡¯t want to be kept in the dark if he was being cheated on.
Michael thought about advising against it but didn¡¯t dare after seeing rk¡¯s gloomy face. ¡°Alright, I¡¯ll handle it.¡±
After Michael left, rk stared at the documents on his desk, his brows knitted in frustration.
He couldn¡¯t focus on a single word. The thought of N potentially spending time alone with Damon made him feel like a swarm of ants was crawling all over his heart.
However, given his current position, he couldn¡¯t afford to go against Damon.
A knock on the door interrupted his thoughts. The office door opened, revealing Jordyn, impably dressed and wearing a ck deep V¨Cneck dress.
rk¡¯s frown deepened when he saw it was her.
¡°What are you doing here?¡± he asked.
His gaze was filled with disdain and coldness, piercing Jordyn¡¯s heart and causing her smile to falter for aThis content belongs to N?/velDra/ma.Org .
moment.
She quickly regained herposure and walked over with a medical report in hand, handing it to rk. rk, I had a checkup today. The doctor said the baby is very healthy.¡±
rk nced at the report with an indifferent expression. ¡°Got it. There¡¯s no need toe here specifically to tell me this. And stop showing up in front of my wife.¡±
Jordyn¡¯s knuckles turned white, as she gripped the report, her eyes welling up with tears. She lowered her gaze and said softly, ¡°I understand¡¡±
Seeing her downcast and trying hard to hide her sadness, rk couldn¡¯t help but feel a pang of sympathy. He was reminded of his own cautious behavior around N, and his tone softened slightly.
¡°Your main priority now is to have a healthy baby. I won¡¯t let you down, he said.
Initially, he hadn¡¯t wanted to keep the baby when he found out Jordyn was pregnant. However, the doctor refused to perform an abortion, citing that her uterine lining was too thin and an abortion could cause severe bleeding. Therefore, the child had to be born.
Moreover, whenever he faced rejection from N, it was Jordyn whoforted him.
Gradually, rk¡¯s attitude toward Jordyn and the baby had softened considerably.
Jordyn looked up, her eyes still wet with tears, looking pitifully vulnerable. She smiled through her tears and said, ¡°I know. I just couldn¡¯t help but share the joy with you¡¡±
Seeing how easily she was appeased by a few words, rk felt his heart soften even more. ¡°Come here.¡±
Jordyn walked over, and rk pulled her into hisp.
¡°Ah¡¡± She gasped, instinctively wrapping her arms around his neck.
The slit in her dress revealed her long, fair legs, stirring rk¡¯s long¨Csuppressed desires. Ever since N discovered his infidelity, he had been holding back his urges.
His breathing grew heavier at the sight.
When rk thought about N going on a business trip with Damon and what might happen, his gaze darkened. His hand moved up Jordyn¡¯s dress.
Sensing his actions, Jordyn melted.
¡°rk¡¡± Her hands pressed against his chest in a pretense of resistance that felt more like an invitation.
¡°Call me rko.¡±
¡°rko¡
¡°Again.¡±
The office soon filled with the sounds of heavy breathing.
Jordyn¡¯s upper body was pressed against the desk, her dress hiked up around her waist as she writhed and moaned.
CHAPTER 77
Chapter 77
rk held Jordyn¡¯s waist tightly, losing himself in his frenzied release, his eyes dark and brooding.
After what felt like an eternity, just when Jordyn thought she might pass out, rk finally pressed into her onest time as they both reached their climax.
When it was over, Jordyn was about to pick up her underwear when a sharp pain shot through her abdomen. Her face, which had been flushed moments ago, turned pale.
¡°rk¡ my stomach hurts¡¡±
rk¡¯s expression changed as he remembered that Jordyn was still in the early stages of pregnancy and that he hadn¡¯t held back at all. He quickly scooped her up and rushed out of the office.
That evening, N received a message from Spencer and was about to head out when her phone buzzed with an alert from the private investigator.
After reading the message, her face turned ashen.
rk had been calling her earlier, and now he was in the hospital after having sex with his mistress.
The sheer disgust she felt was overwhelming. Fortunately, she never intended to forgive him. Otherwise, she didn¡¯t know how she could have coped with this.
Taking a deep breath, she messaged the private investigator to continue monitoring the situation, then put her phone away and headed out.
Despite her efforts to stayposed, the news affected her mood. She barely ate anything at dinner and was unusually quiet.
Several times, Skyray Medical¡¯s representatives spoke to her, but she failed to respond promptly. If it weren¡¯t for Spencer stepping in to smooth things over, their hosts might have been quite displeased.
As the dinner concluded, Spencer finally let out a sigh of relief.
On the way back to the hotel, Damon frowned as he looked at N. ¡°I don¡¯t appreciate employees who bring their personal feelings into their work.¡±
Although N wasn¡¯t an employee of Prospectus Technology, her actions represented thepany when she was with Damon.
Understanding her poor performance that night, N lowered her head. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Mr. Sumner.¡±
I¡¯m not looking for apologies. If you bring this attitude into your experiments, I can¡¯t trust that you won¡¯t make mistakes, Damon said.
¡°Mr. Sumner, I promise it won¡¯t happen again,¡± she assured him.
Damon¡¯s intense gaze bore into N, the pressure emanating from him causing her to clench her fists and bite her lip until it turned white.
¡°You better mean it,¡± he warned.
Had she been a Prospectus Technology employee, she would have been fired by the end of the dinner.
Damon wasn¡¯t one to give second chances.
Spencer, sitting in the front, noticed N¡¯s lowered head and didn¡¯t dare to speak up for her. After all, challenging Damon¡¯s anger was asking for trouble.
Back at the hotel, they retired to their rooms.
N closed the door and sat on the couch, carefully saving each photo the private investigator had sent.
Despite having the evidence she needed, she didn¡¯t feel any joy. She couldn¡¯tprehend how rk could promise to stay faithful while simultaneously cheating with Jordyn.
Didn¡¯t he realize that his actions were eroding thest remnants of their good memories together?
N couldn¡¯t wrap her mind around it and decided not to dwell on it.
Taking a deep breath, she ced her phone face down on the table and got up to prepare for bed. Just then, her phone vibrated.
Seeing that it was someone from Skyray Medical, N was filled with confusion. She answered, and a gentle female voice came through.
¡°Ms. Jayston, this is Zoe Quinn. You left your scarf at the restaurant. I¡¯m on my way to return it to you. Which room are you in?¡± Zoe asked.
Scarf? N recalled that she had worn a dress and hadn¡¯t brought a scarf.
¡°Ms. Quinn, I wasn¡¯t wearing a scarf tonight. You must be mistaken,¡± N said.
¡°No mistake, Ms. Jayston. You¡¯ll understand once you see it,¡± Zoe insisted.
Upon hearing this, N realized what was happening. The scarf was just an excuse. Zoe was looking for an opportunity to build a connection.This belongs ? N?velDra/ma.Org.
CHAPTER 78
Chapter 78
It seemed there might be some issues with Skyray Medical¡¯s goods.
N lowered her gaze, thought for a few seconds, and then said, ¡°Okay, I¡¯m in Room 802. Ms. Quinn, your cane directly.¡±
Soon, Zoe arrived. N opened the door and stepped aside to let her in.
After they sat down, Zoe handed her a bag with a smile. ¡°Ms. Jayston, this is your scarf. Please check if everything is in order.¡±
The moment N took the bag, she knew it weighed more than just a scarf. She picked up the scarf and saw several stacks of cash underneath, roughly estimating around 30,000 dors.
N put the scarf back and pushed the bag toward Zoe. ¡°Ms. Quinn, this scarf is too valuable. I can¡¯t ept it.¡±
Zoe¡¯s smile didn¡¯t waver, her voice gentle. ¡°Ms. Jayston, it¡¯s not valuable at all. We might have many more opportunities to meet in the future.¡±
N pressed her lips together, her expression calm as she looked at Zoe. ¡°Ms. Quinn, what do you want me to do?¡±
¡°Ms. Jayston, you¡¯re an evaluation specialist, so you should understand. It¡¯ste, so I¡¯ll leave you to rest,¡± Zoe remarked.
As Zoe turned to leave, N handed the bag back to her. ¡°Ms. Quinn, please take the scarf back. As long as yourpany¡¯s products meet the quality standards, I¡¯ll approve them.¡±
Zoe¡¯s smile stiffened for a moment.
Seeing that N was genuinely refusing and not just being polite, she reluctantly took the bag. ¡°Ms. Jayston, Skyray Medical¡¯s products are of good quality. I hope we have the chance to coborate with Prospectus Technology.¡±
After Zoe left, N went to wash up and go to bed.
N woke up with stomach pain in the middle of the night. She realized she hadn¡¯t eaten much at dinner, likely causing a re¨Cup of her gastritis.
When rk first took over the Sumner Group, he would often workte. N had developed the habit of waiting for him to eat together, which eventually led to her developing gastritis.
She had managed it well over the years, almost forgetting about it.
N turned on the bedsidemp, ordered medicine through a delivery app, and called reception to ask for
some warm water.
After arranging everything, she was pale with pain, and cold sweat dotted her forehead.
Every minute felt like an eternity as she waited.
When she heard the knock on the door, she was curled up on the bed, too weak to get up.
Spencer, just leaving after briefing Damon, saw a hotel staff member with a ss of water standing outside N¡¯s room. He walked over to ask what was going on.
The staff member exined that N had requested warm water a few minutes ago, but there was no response when she knocked.
Spencer frowned. ¡°Do you have a spare key card?¡±
¡°Yes, I¡¯ll go get it,¡± the staff member replied.
While the staff member went to get the card, Spencer tried calling N several times, but she didn¡¯t answer, and his worry grew. He informed Damon, whose expression turned cold.
¡°What happened?¡± Damon asked.
¡°I¡¯m not sure. Ms. Jayston isn¡¯t answering her phone, Spencer replied.
The staff member soon returned with the spare key card.
As soon as they opened the door, they saw N curled up on the bed, unconscious and covered in coldThis belongs ? N?velDra/ma.Org.
sweat.
Damon quickly walked in and instructed Spencer, ¡°Find a doctor.
As Damon reached the bedside, N suddenly grabbed his hand, He paused, then tried to pull his hand away, but her grip was too tight.
Not wanting to hurt her by pulling too hard, he frowned and let her hold on.
Prev
CHAPTER 79
¡°It hurts¡¡± N muttered, sweat breaking out on her forehead. Her delicate brows were tightly knitted, and her face was ghastly pale.
The doctor arrived with her medication for gastritis around the same time.
The intention was to have her take the medicine first. However, she was clenching her teeth so tightly. that it was impossible to get her to swallow the pills.
In this situation, the only option was to administer IV fluids.
Once the IV was set up, the doctor turned to Damon and said, ¡°When she wakes up, give her some light foods like chicken soup.¡±This belongs ? N?velDra/ma.Org.
¡°Got it.¡±
After giving a few more instructions, the doctor and the staff left.
¡°Mr. Sumner, maybe you should go get some rest. I¡¯ll keep an eye on Ms. Jayston,¡± Spencer suggested.
Damon nced down at his hand, still tightly gripped by N. His expression darkened.
While the doctor had been setting up the IV earlier, he had tried to pry her hand away but had failed, which was why N¡¯s other hand was used for the IV.
¡°Do you think I can rest in this situation? Damon asked.
Following Damon¡¯s gaze, Spencer noticed their sped hands and quickly changed the subject. ¡°I¡¯ll get some chicken soup for Ms. Jayston.¡±
¡°Okay.¡±
As Spencer left, the room fell into silence, except for N¡¯s asional murmurs.
go
Damon looked down at her sweat¨Cdrenched face, her features scrunched up in pain, and felt a pang of sympathy. But then he remembered she was rk¡¯s wife, his niece¨Cinw, and his gaze turned cold.
In N¡¯s pain¨Cinduced haze, she unknowingly held onto something warm. She grasped tightly, thinking it might relieve her stomachache a bit.
When dawn broke, N slowly woke up.
The first thing she saw was Damon¡¯s face, magnified and close.
She blinked in surprise, taking a few seconds to realize it was real, and gasped, instinctively pulling away.
Her head hit the headboard hard, making her wince in pain. ¡°Ouch!¡±
Her movement roused Damon, who saw her holding her head and furrowed his brows. ¡°You¡¯re up?¡±
Seeing Damon¡¯s Indifferent gaze, N Ignored her pain and quickly asked, ¡°Mr. Sumner, why are you in my
room?¡±
Damon¡¯s expression darkened. ¡°Last night, you passed out from stomach pain. When I came to your
bedside, you grabbed my hand so tightly I couldn¡¯t pry it loose. I had to wait here until you woke up.¡±
N¡¯s confusion turned into embarrassment. She had indeed grabbed something in her pain¨Cinduced daze, but she hadn¡¯t expected it to be Damon¡¯s hand!
She wondered what he would think of her. Would he see her as a weirdo?
Noticing her changing expressions, Damon raised an eyebrow.
¡°Mr. Sumner¡ I¡¯m really sorry. I didn¡¯t mean to. I must have thought you were my motherst night¡¡±
Damon was speechless.
Seeing his displeased expression, N quickly added, didn¡¯t mean you look like my mother. It¡¯s just that your hand felt warm, like my mother¡¯s.¡±
As soon as she said that, she regretted it. Her exnation only made things worse.
As expected, Damon¡¯s expression became gloomy. With a coldugh, he got up and left N¡¯s room.
Realizing he was upset, N opened her mouth to apologize further but thought better of it and said nothing.
After Damon left, the oppressive atmosphere lifted)
N breathed a sigh of relief, then turned to see the chicken soup and medicine left by her side.
CHAPTER 80
N was dazed for a few seconds before she felt an indescribable warmth well up inside her.
After getting up, washing up, taking her medicine, and eating her chicken soup, she decided to thank Damon properly. After all, she had been holding onto his hand all night, and he probably hadn¡¯t had a good
rest.
When she reached the door of the room next door, it opened from the inside just as she reached out to
knock
Damon, with slightly damp hair and dressed in a fresh outfit, seemed to have just taken a shower.
¡°Mr. Sumner, I came to thank you forst night. I appreciate it,¡± N said.
Seeing N¡¯s eyes lowered, her hands awkwardly sped in front of her, Damon thought she seemed a bit ufortable and nervous around him.
Upon realizing this, his mood unexpectedly soured. He pressed his thin lips together.
¡°There¡¯s no need for thanks. Just make sure to speak up if you¡¯re feeling unwell next time. Don¡¯t make things difficult for others,¡± he said.
His indifferent tone made N feel even more ashamed. ¡°I understand.¡±
¡°Alright. Prepare yourself and be ready to leave for Skyray at 8:00 a.m.,¡± he instructed.
Back in her room, N felt a bit down. The events fromst night seemed to have left Damon dissatisfied with her.
When she thought it was all because of rk, her mood worsened. She resolved not to let him affect her feelings any further.
By around 9:00 a.m., they arrived at Skyray Medical.
They were greeted by Bill, who showed them the medicinal herb cleaning and processing workshop, as well as the production workshop. He then took them to the testingboratory.
*Ms. Jayston, which herb would you like to test?¡± Bill asked.
Looking at the herbs on the tray, N frowned slightly but chose one of them. ¡°Let¡¯s test this one.¡±
Bill smiled. ¡°Alright.¡±
N carefully cut, ground, and filtered the herb, setting up the experimental equipment to extract the active ingredients. She was meticulous and precise in her approach, and with her striking appearance, her movements were almost pleasing to watch.
For a moment, Damon¡¯s gaze was drawn to her.
N looked even more beautiful while focused on her experiment, her concentration lending her an irresistible allure that drew attention.
After
extracting the active ingredients, N weighed them on a scale¨C0.06 grams.
Given the herb¡¯s original weight of 3.2 grams, the active ingredient high.
counted for 1.875%, which was quite
When N shared the results with Damon, Bill let out a small sigh of relief and smiled at him.
¡°Mr. Sumner, our herbs at Skyray Medical are strictly managed from cultivation to harvesting ording to standards, which is why the active ingredient percentage is so high. You won¡¯t regret choosing to
cooperate with us,¡± Billmented.
¡°Mm, this percentage is quite good, and the herb quality is excellent,¡± Damon remarked.
¡°So, what do you think about the cooperation?¡± BIII asked.This belongs ? N?velDra/ma.Org.
¡°We don¡¯t need to rush on the cooperation details just yet. Considering Prospectus Technology¡¯srge demand, I need to evaluate thoroughly, Damon replied.
Bill nodded repeatedly. ¡°Of course, Mr. Sumner. Please take your time to consider. How about lunch in ourpany¡¯s cafeteria today?¡±
¡°Sure.¡±
After a tour and lunch, Bill sent Damon and the others back to their hotel.
Back at the hotel, Damon asked N, ¡°What do you think of the active ingredient percentage from today?¡°,
¡°If all the herbs from Skyray Medical have this quality, partnering with them will be a guaranteed win. However, herbs of this quality have high growth requirements, sorge¨Cscale production is difficult,¡± she answered.
¡°Alright. We have some free time this afternoon. Let¡¯s visit the nearby herb production base,¡± Damon said.
CHAPTER 81
Chapter B1
N pressed her lips together and said, ¡°It¡¯s clear that the people at Skyray Medical are eager to secure this partnership. They might even send someone to follow us. If they find out we¡¯re going to the herb production base, they might prepare in advance.¡±
This meant they wouldn¡¯t be able to assess the true quality of the herbs at the base.
Spencer smiled and said, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Ms. Jayston. We have ways to evade Skyray Medical¡¯s people.¡±
Relieved to hear they had a n, N nodded and said no more.
Around 2:00 p.m., a car arranged by Spencer arrived at the hotel to pick them up.
Shortly after they got in, the driver nced at the rearview mirror and said, ¡°We¡¯re being followed.¡±
Spencer remained calm. ¡°Ignore them.¡±
Trying to lose them would only alert Skyray Medical. By acting unaware, they could keep Skyray Medical¡¯s peoplecent.
In less than half an hour, the car stopped at the entrance of the busiest mall in Rontana. They got out and walked into the mall, with Skyray Medical¡¯s people following them inside.
Damon headed straight for a clothing store on the third floor, a store that only admitted members. The people tailing them could only observe from nearby.
Inside, a sales associate led them to the fitting rooms. Mr. Sumner, the clothes are ready. After changing, you can leave through the back door.¡±
Once they changed clothes, the associate handed their original clothes to two men and a woman, who then changed into them and sat on the store¡¯s lobby sofa with their backs to the door.
The tailing agents initially grew anxious when they lost sight of them but rxed upon spotting the decoys.T¨ºxt belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
Meanwhile, Damon and the others exited through the back door, taking an elevator to the basement where another car awaited them.
As they got in, N couldn¡¯t help but say, ¡°We can¡¯t stay in one store all afternoon. They¡¯ll get suspicious.¡± Spencer chuckled. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Ms. Jayston. We won¡¯t be exposed.¡±
The decoys would continue shopping in the mall for three to four hours, giving them ample time to visit the herb base and return.
The car drove out of the city, stopping at the entrance of Rontana Meds Base. They got out and walked inside, nked by fields of herbs emitting a faint, pleasant aroma.
Soon, a representative approached them, exining the growth and usage of various herbs.
¡°Mr. Sumner, the rauvolfia you need is over there. Let me show you,¡± the representative said.
+25
Damon followed him, asking indifferently, ¡°Do medicinepanies in Rontana supply all their herbs from
here?¡±
The man nodded. ¡°Yes. Largepanies like Sandhosh, Skyray, and Newfarm all source from here.¡±
Damon said nothing more until they reached the rauvolfia ntation.
¡°The rauvolfia is just blooming and still growing. Let me show you the dried herb products,¡± the representative replied.
The herbal aroma was much stronger inside the drying room.
N looked around curiously at the various herbs. She had only ever seen these herbs in theb, never in such quantity.
Absorbed in her surroundings, she didn¡¯t notice the small slope ahead and suddenly slipped.
¡°Watch out.¡± A cool male voice sounded in her ear as she fell into a warm embrace.
CHAPTER 82
Upon noticing the strong, firm hand around her waist and feeling its warmth seeping through the thin fabric, N¡¯s face turned bright red. She quickly steadied herself, avoiding eye contact.
¡°Thank you, Mr. Sumner,¡± she said.
Damon withdrew his hand nonchntly and said in a deep voice, ¡°Watch where you¡¯re stepping even when looking at herbs¡±
N nodded. ¡°Got it.¡±
From then on, N was careful to watch her step, determined not to trip again. ¡°These are the dried.
rauvolfia.¡±
A staff member casually handed a dried rauvolfia root to Damon, who inspected it briefly before passing
it to N.
¡°Take a look,¡± he said.N?velDrama.Org (C) content.
The rauvolfia looked no different from the ones Skyray Medical had shown them that morning. They would need to test it to determine the active ingredient content.
N turned to the staff member and asked, ¡°Typically, what¡¯s the alkaloid content in rauvolfia?¡±
¡°It¡¯s usually around 0.1%. Anything higher is quite rare,¡± the staff member replied.
Actually, 0.1% was a decent percentage. If Skyray Medical truly sourced all their herbs from there, then the high percentage they showed that morning was likely staged to hike up prices.
N handed the herb back to the staff member with a smile. ¡°Thanks. I¡¯ve got a good idea now.¡±
While they were inspecting the herb base, the people at Skyray Medical were busy as well.
Bill called Zoe into his office.
¡°What do you think? Is Mr. Sumner interested in partnering with us?¡± he asked.
This morning, he had hinted several times at signing a contract, but Damon deftly sidestepped the topic each time.
However, Damon hadn¡¯tpletely shut it down, only saying he needed more time to consider.
If they could secure this partnership, Skyray Medical¡¯s profits would double this year, so Bill was very
Invested in this deal.
Zoe shook her head. ¡°I¡¯m not sure. The other night¡¯s gift didn¡¯t win N over. If we could sway her, the deal would be in the bag.¡±
Thinking of N, Bill lit a cigarette, feeling irritated.
She had turned down 30,000 dors. Was she truly above material desires, or did she want more?
¡°There¡¯s 150,000 dors on this card. At dinner tonight find a chance to give it to her. If she takes it, fine.
If she refuses, you know what to do.¡±
Zoe took the card and nodded. ¡°Understood, Mr. Jenkinson.¡±
In the evening. Damon and his group returned to the clothing store to change back into their original clothes.
Back at the hotel, N rested for a while before it was time to head out again.
They were leaving tomorrow afternoon, and Skyray Medical was hosting a farewell dinner tonight.
N wasn¡¯t fond of such social events but had no choice but to attend.
When they arrived at the restaurant, Bill was already there to greet them with a friendly smile. ¡°Mr. Sumner, pleasee in.¡±
After they sat down in the room, Bill poured a drink for Damon and offered a toast. ¡°Mr. Sumner, I toast to you.¡±
Damon raised his ss, clinked it against Bill¡¯s, and downed his drink in one gulp.
Bill refilled his ss before sitting down. ¡°Mr. Sumner, you¡¯re leaving tomorrow. Can we finalize the partnership tonight? Or do you have any concerns we can discuss?¡±
Damon smiled faintly, but his deep eyes gave nothing away. ¡°Mr. Jenkinson, Skyray Medical¡¯s herb quality is impressive. However, this trip was mainly for assessment. I¡¯ll need to discuss the details with our board back at thepany.¡±
A flicker of dissatisfaction crossed Bill¡¯s eyes. He had gone out of his way these past two days to amodate them, nearly turning thepany upside down. And now, Damon was saying he needed more time to discuss it?!
CHAPTER 83
+26
Bill quickly suppressed his dissatisfaction, maintaining a friendly smile, as he was quite the strategist.
¡°Of course, Mr. Sumner. Ourpany is very sincere about forming a long¨Cterm partnership with Prospectus Technology. I hope you will consider it seriously,¡± Bill said.N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content.
Damon nodded. ¡°Yes, Mr. Jenkinson. Let me toast to you.¡±
The two continued chatting, and before long, they had finished a bottle of wine.
Damon¡¯s usually pale face was now tinged with a faint red, and his typically cool eyes showed a hint of Intoxication. Under the overhead light, his striking features were even more captivating, making it hard to look away.
Catching herself staring. N quickly averted her gaze.
¡°Ms. Jayston, a toast to you.¡± Zoe said.
N turned to see Zoe holding out a ss of red wine, smiling warmly.
I¡¯m sorry, Ms. Quinn, I don¡¯t drink,¡± N replied.
¡°This is a low¨Calcohol red wine, very mild and with a rich, smooth taste. You should give it a try,¡± Zoe insisted.
As Zoe spoke, she pushed the wine ss closer.
N reached out to refuse. As soon as her hand touched Zoe¡¯s, thetter¡¯s hand suddenly tilted, spilling at portion of the wine onto N¡¯s cor.
¡°Oh no¡ I¡¯m so sorry, Ms. Jayston. I must have had too much to drink and lost my grip¡¡± Zoe quickly put down the ss and grabbed a napkin to dab at the wine on N¡¯s cor.
Themotion immediately drew everyone¡¯s attention in the room.
Damon¡¯s gaze darkened, and he subtly furrowed his brow.
Next to him, Bill was disgruntled and questioned coldly, Zoe, what¡¯s the matter with you? How could you spill the wine like that?¡±
Zoe seemed frightened, her hands trembling as she dabbed at N¡¯s cor, her face full of remorse.
¡°I¡¯m so sorry, Mr. Jenkinson. It wasn¡¯t on purpose¡¡± she said.
Seeing Zoe¡¯s pale face and remorseful gaze, N pursed her lips and said, ¡°Mr. Jenkinson, it¡¯s fine. I¡¯ll just go to the restroom to clean up.¡±
After all, they were all just employees, and she didn¡¯t want to make things difficult over a small mistake.
¡°Alright, it¡¯s my fault for not managing my staff better. I apologize,¡± Bill replied.
N lowered her gaze and turned to leave the room.
As N started to clean her cor in the restroom, she noticed in the mirror that Zoe had followed her.
Turning to face Zoe, N said, ¡°Ms. Quinn, it was just an ident. Don¡¯t worry about it.¡±
¡°Thank you, Ms. Jayston.¡±
N didn¡¯t respond and turned back to the sink to wash the wine stains from her cor. When she finished, she looked up to find Zoe still standing there, a hint of confusion crossing her eyes.
Zoe stepped forward and took out a card from her bag, offering it to N with a smile. ¡°Ms. Jayston, I¡¯m truly sorry about tonight. I hope you¡¯ll ept my apology.¡±
Seeing the gilded card, N finally understood that Zoe¡¯s earlier clumsiness had been a setup for this
moment.
¡°How much is on this card, Ms. Quinn?¡± N asked.
¡°150,000 dors. If you can persuade Mr. Sumner to partner with Skyray Medical, there will be more toe,¡± Zoe promised.
N¡¯s eyes shed with surprise. She hadn¡¯t expected Skyray Medical to go to such lengths to win her
over.
However, she wasn¡¯t an employee of Prospectus Technology and had no intention of epting such unearned money.
¡°Sorry, but I don¡¯t have the power to influence Mr. Sumner¡¯s decisions. You¡¯ve got the wrong person,¡± N said.
With that, N turned to leave.
The next moment, Zoe¡¯s cold voice sounded behind her. ¡°In that case, I must apologize to you in advance. Ms. Jayston.¡±
Before N couldprehend the meaning of those words, a sharp pain struck the back of her neck, and everything went ck as she lost consciousness.
CHAPTER 84
Back in the room at the restaurant.
Half an hour had passed, and N still hadn¡¯t returned,This belongs ? N?velDra/ma.Org.
Damon¡¯s frown deepened. ¡°Spencer, call N.¡±
Bill quickly intervened, ¡°Mr. Sumner, no need to worry. Zoe is with her, so nothing will happen.¡±
Damon pursed his lips, remaining silent and clearly in a foul mood,
Bill hurriedly poured him another drink, not too concerned. After all, N was just a regr employee. Even if Damon found out the truthter, he wouldn¡¯t make a big deal over a woman.
Spencer called N, and her phone started ringing in the room. She hadn¡¯t taken it when she went to the restroom.
Seeing the unhappy looks on Damon and Spencer¡¯s faces, Bill quickly said, ¡°Let me call Zoe to check.¡± He dialed Zoe¡¯s number and put it on speaker. ¡°Zoe, why are you not back with Ms. Jayston yet?¡± Zoe¡¯s calm voice came through. ¡°Mr. Jenkinson, Ms. Jayston couldn¡¯t clean the wine stain off her clothes so I¡¯m helping her buy a new outfit. She¡¯s trying it on now. We¡¯ll be back soon.¡±
¡°Alright.¡± Bill hung up and smiled at Damon. ¡°See, Mr. Sumner? No need to worry.¡±
He felt a twinge of doubt. Was Damon really this concerned about a regr employee?
Damon nodded, his voice calm. ¡°Of course. With Ms. Quinn apanying her, I¡¯m reassured.¡±
¡°Good, good. Let¡¯s continue drinking.¡± Bill said.
While Bill was distracted, Damon gave Spencer a meaningful look.
Understanding immediately, Spencer discreetly messaged their team to find out N¡¯s current location.
Soon, a reply came, and Spencer¡¯s expression changed drastically. He looked at Damon in shock. ¡°Mr. Sumner, Zoe has knocked out and taken away Ms. Jayston
Damon shot to his feet, his anger palpable as he leered at Bill with killing intent. ¡°Where did you take her?!
Without Bill¡¯s approval, there was no way Zoe would dare to act against N.
Startled by Damon¡¯s fury, Bill trembled involuntarily, hastily saying, ¡°Mr. Sumner, please calm down. There must be some misunder-¡±
Before he could finish, Damon¡¯s hand was around his throat.
Damon red down at Bill, his expression terrifying like a demon from hell. Bill¡¯s soul quaked, and his body shivered uncontrobly.
Escape was the only thought in Bill¡¯s mind, but with Damon¡¯s grip tightening around his neck, it was Impossible. Overwhelmed by the suffocating pressure, fear surged within him.
¡°¡ I¡¯ll talk. N is¡ in a hotel room¡ on the sixth floor.¡±
+25
Damon¡¯s eyes narrowed, and his grip tightened further. ¡°Room number.¡±
¡°I¡ Cough, cough¡ I don¡¯t know¡¡±
Seeing Bill¡¯s face tuming purple and his eyes starting to lose focus, Spencer quickly intervened, afraid it might lead to fatal consequences.
¡°Mr. Sumner, finding Ms. Jayston is more urgent right now,¡± Spencer urged.
Damon released his grip, and Bill¡¯s plump body slid off the chair. He copsed onto the floor, coughing violently.
¡°If anything happens to her, I¡¯ll make sure you pay with your life,¡± Damon threatened.
Bill shuddered violently, terror in his eyes.
Without another nce, Damon stormed out.
When N regained consciousness, she found herself in a dimly lit room. A man beside her was unbuttoning her clothes.
¡°Ah!¡± she screamed and shoved him away.
CHAPTER 85
The man clearly hadn¡¯t expected N to wake up at that moment and push him off the bed, so he cursed in frustration.This belongs ? N?velDra/ma.Org.
¡°Who are you?!¡± N backed away, frantically searching for something to defend herself with, her face full of panic and fear.
The man sneered, his tone lewd. ¡°I¡¯m the guy who¡¯s gonna make you feel amazing.¡±
With that, he lunged at her.
A small red light blinked in the corner of the room, recording everything that was happening.
As the man charged at N, she swung a tablemp at his forehead. He screamed in pain, feeling liquid trickle down from his head, and pped her hard.
¡°Bitch! You dare hit me? I¡¯ll make you pay!¡± he roared.
warm
He snatched themp from her and threw it to the floor, pinning her down. He grabbed her cor and yanked it hard, popping the buttons off and exposing her chest and bra.
Lust and greed filled his eyes as he pulled her bra strap down, his expression lecherous.
N struggled desperately, and her nails scratched the man¡¯s face, making him even angrier.
He pped her twice more. Her ears rang and her mind was fuzzy, draining her strength to fight back.
The man started to pull her pants down. Her struggle was in vain, her heart sinking into despair.
Just as he was about to pull off her underwear, a loud bang came from the door.
Before the man could react, he was kicked off N.
The weight on N lifted, and a warm jacket was draped over her.
The familiar scent of pine reached N¡¯s nose. She slowly opened her eyes to see Damon, and finally felt at ease, cking out right after.
When Damon broke down the door, his eyes immediately turned bloodshot. He saw the man on top of N and kicked him off her. Noticing her swollen face, disheveled hair, and near¨Cnaked body, he quickly covered her with his jacket, fury burning in his eyes.
After Damon pulled the jacket over N, he stood up and walked slowly toward the man cowering in the
corner.
Sensing the danger, the man started shaking even more violently. ¡°Please let me go- Ahhh!¡±
Damon stomped on the man¡¯s crotch, his scream echoing through the sixth floor.
Bill and Zoe were brought in by Damon¡¯s men just in time to witness this, fear evident in their eyes. They were thrown to the floor next to the man, who was now pale with pain and terror.
¡°Mr. Sumner, what should we do next?¡± Spencer asked
Damon¡¯s expression was icy as he nced at the camera in the corner. ¡°Whatever she did to N, make
sure these two men do the same to her. Have someone watch over them.¡±
Zoe¡¯s face turned ashen, and she immediately knelt, pleading, ¡°Mr. Sumner, please! It was Mr. Jenkinson¡¯s orders-
She tried to crawl toward Damon but was kicked aside by Spencer,nding pathetically on the floor.
Damon walked over to the bed to pick up the unconscious N and strode out of the room.
Behind him, Zoe¡¯s screams and pleas gradually faded into hopeless sobs.
When N woke up, she shot upright, her eyes still filled with panic and fear. The sudden movement caused a sharp pain in her hand, and she looked down to see an IV drip.
¡°You¡¯re awake?¡±
CHAPTER 86
Damon sat by the bedside, his expression calm as he watched N.
Thest memory before she passed out rushed back into N¡¯s mind. She bit her lip and looked down. Mr. Sumner, thank you for saving me.¡±
If he hadn¡¯t arrived in time, she could only imagine what might have happened.
¡°This happened because I didn¡¯t consider everything carefully enough. I¡¯m sorry,¡± Damon said.
Upon meeting Damon¡¯s earnest gaze, N¡¯s heart skipped a beat. She instinctively looked away.
¡°It¡¯s not your fault. No one could have predicted that Skyray Medical¡¯s people would do something like this, N replied.
Besides, Zoe had not only tried to have her assaulted but had also nned to record it, likely intending to ckmail her after she refused to ept the bribe.
Thinking about it made her eyes turn cold.
Seeing N¡¯s downcast eyes and pale face, Damon¡¯s gaze darkened. ¡°Are you feeling ufortable anywhere?¡±
N shook her head and hesitantly asked, ¡°What about Zoe?¡±
¡°Don¡¯t worry. She¡¯s been punished appropriately. Prospectus Technology won¡¯t be working with Skyray Medical anymore,¡± he reassured her.
N bit her lip and nodded. ¡°Thank you for taking care of it, Mr. Sumner.¡±
¡°Get some rest. The doctor will check on you soon. If everything is fine, you can be discharged,¡± he said. ¡°Okay.¡±
N wasn¡¯t tired, but Damon¡¯s overwhelming presence made it impossible to ignore him. Plus, they had nothing to talk about, so she closed her eyes and pretended to sleep.
Unexpectedly, she actually fell asleep.
When N woke up again, it was 2:00 p.m. The IV was gone, and she felt much better.
Damon, who was reading documents on the sofa, looked up at her and said in a low voice, ¡°There¡¯s porridge on the table.¡±
¡°Thank you, Mr. Sumner,¡± N said.
Feeling hungry, N got up, washed up in the bathroom, and then started eating her soup. It was her favorite, chicken soup.This belongs ? N?velDra/ma.Org.
After a few sips, she looked up at Damon. ¡°Mr. Sumner have you eaten lunch yet?¡±
¡°Yes. The doctor said all your health indicators are normal. Once you finish your food and change, we¡¯ll head to the airport and return to Saintornia,¡± he replied.
¡°Okay.¡± She continued eating.
Shortly after, Spencer walked in with a stack of reports, Mr. Sumner, Ms. Jayston¡¯s discharge papers are ready.¡±
Damon nodded. ¡°Leave them there.¡±
N put down her spoon and looked at Spencer. ¡°Mr. Hogg, can I see the hospital bill? I want to know the
cost.¡±
Before Spencer could move, Damon looked at her and said, ¡°Don¡¯t worry about the hospital fees. This counts as a work injury, so you don¡¯t have to pay.¡±
¡°Okay.¡± Seeing Damon¡¯s determined expression, N didn¡¯t argue and continued eating.
.w
Half an hourter, they left for the airport.
On the way, N learned from Spencer about Zoe and Bill¡¯s fate.
Zoe and the man she had hired were arrested for criminal offenses. Meanwhile, Bill was fired from Skyray Medical and faced jail time for embezzlement and incitement tomit a crime.
Spencer didn¡¯t share the details of what had happened in that room afterward, wanting to avoid scaring her.
N was satisfied with this oue. She felt no sympathy for Zoe and the others. They got what they deserved.
They arrived back in Saintornia after 11:00 p.m.
N showered and went straight to bed.
The next two days were the weekend, so she didn¡¯t have to work.
She slept in the following morning, got up, and went to buy groceries for the next two days.
While she was picking fish in the fresh produce section, she suddenly heard a sweet female voice from not far away.
CHAPTER 87
¡°rko, I¡¯m shopping for groceries. What would you like for dinner?¡±
N looked up. Upon seeing who it was, her expression darkened. It was Jordyn.
Seeing Jordyn¡¯s smiling face and shy demeanor, N felt a wave of disgust. It seemed like the ¡°rko¡± Jordyn was talking to was rk.
Thinking about what those two had done until they ended up in the hospital made N feel sick. She quickly grabbed the fish and turned to leave with her cart.
Jordyn didn¡¯t notice N and continued talking on the phone with rk, who sounded indifferent. ¡°I won¡¯t be
rk hung up before Jordyn could respond.
Putting down his phone, rk checked his messages and saw that hisst message to N from a few days ago was still unread. Irritation shed in his eyes.
His restless thoughts were interrupted by a knock on the door, followed by Michael entering the room. ¡°Mr. Sumner, we just got a call from Rontana. They said nothing unusual happened, except for two nights. ago. Mrs. Sumner was almost assaulted by someone from Skyray Medical. Your uncle rescued her,¡± Michael informed rk.
¡°What?!¡± rk¡¯s face darkened with anger. ¡°Why am I just hearing about this now?¡±
¡°They saw your uncle carrying Mrs. Sumner out¡ They didn¡¯t dare report it until they confirmed the details, ¡°Michael replied.
rk¡¯s expression grew even darker, his gaze filled with menace.
Noticing his boss¡® chilling aura, Michael trembled slightly and kept his head down:
¡°Understood. You can go.¡± As Michael reached the door, rk¡¯s icy voice stopped him. ¡°Make sure those responsible are dealt with.¡±
¡°Mr. Sumner, your uncle already handled them, and they¡¯re all in custody now,¡± Michael said.
¡°Then make sure they stay there. Permanently,¡± rk instructed.
Seeing the killing intent in rk¡¯s eyes, Michael felt a shiver of fear and quickly nodded. ¡°Yes, sir.¡±
After Michael left, rk called N, but the line was busy. He put down his phone, thought for a moment, then got up and left.
When N got home with her groceries, she found rk waiting by her door. Her expression immediately turned cold.
¡°N, were you out buying groceries?¡± he asked.
N ignored rk, treating him as if he were invisible, and moved to unlock her door, but he blocked her.
¡°N, are you still mad about me not letting you go on that business trip?¡± he asked.
N looked down, her gaze filled with disgust and impatience. ¡°No.¡±
rk sighed in exasperation. ¡°You¡¯re clearly upset. You always ignore me when you¡¯re angry.¡±
He reached for her grocery bags, but she pulled away, stepping back with a mocking expression.
¡°rk, you think I wouldn¡¯t find out about your disgusting affair with Jordyn just because I was away on a business trip?¡± she questioned.
rk¡¯s face paled, a guilty look shing across his features. ¡°N, did someone say something to you?¡±
Clutching the grocery bags tightly, N realized her words almost revealed that she had someone. watching him.
She quickly recovered and sneered. ¡°Say something to me? I overheard Jordyn calling you at the supermarket earlier, asking about dinner. If you had really cut ties with her, how could she still contact you? Don¡¯t take me for a fool!¡±
CHAPTER 88
rk felt a wave of relief. It was fine as long as N didn¡¯t find out about that matter.
¡°N, I blocked her a long time ago. She used a different number to contact me, and I hung up right away. I didn¡¯t agree to have dinner with her,¡± he lied.T¨ºxt belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
rk looked at her with a pained expression, as if he were the one who had been wronged.
If N hadn¡¯t known about his disgusting affair with Jordyn, she might have believed him. Now, she couldn¡¯t let him know she had been secretly gathering evidence of his infidelity.
N looked down and forced herself to say, ¡°Maybe I misunderstood you. Sorry.¡±
Seeing her soften, rk spoke gently. ¡°Rest assured. I promised you I wouldn¡¯t have anything more to do with her, and I won¡¯t break that promise.¡±
His words made N want to vomit. How could he lie to her so effortlessly?!
She didn¡¯t understand how the sincere and passionate boy she once knew had turned into this deceitful
man.
here tod
¡°So, why are you here today?¡± she asked.
¡°L¡ I just wanted to ask if your business trip went well,¡± he replied.
N frowned. Did hee all this way just to ask something so trivial?
¡°It went fine. If there¡¯s nothing else, you should leave,¡± she said.
rk sighed. ¡°N, I¡¯m your husband. I don¡¯t want outsiders to know about your grievances while I remain in the dark.¡±
N looked up sharply and met his knowing gaze, her expression turning cold. ¡°Are you having me followed?¡±
¡°Not followed, protected,¡± he corrected her.
N snickered. ¡°Protected? When I was knocked out and nearly assaulted, where were your so¨Ccalled protectors?¡±
He spoke so righteously, but she knew he had someone follow her to see if she and Damon would do anything inappropriate.
rk¡¯s hands clenched at his sides, his eyes shing coldly. If she had just listened to him and not gone on that trip, none of this would have happened. He knew he couldn¡¯t say that out loud, though.
¡°N, my men arrived just as my uncle saved you, so they didn¡¯t step in¡¡±
N didn¡¯t believe a word of his nonsense but didn¡¯t want to argue further. ¡°Say what you want. I don¡¯t want to light. Just leave.¡±
She brushed past him and grabbed her keys to open the door, but rk suddenly grabbed her wrist. ¡°N, there¡¯s one more thing.¡±
¡°If you have something to say, just say it. Don¡¯t touch me,¡± she said.
She shook off his hand, clearly annoyed.
Although rk¡¯s heart burned with frustration at her rejection, he knew their rtionship was strained and held back his temper.
¡°You must have noticed that my uncle¡ treats you differently. I hope you can keep your distance from him,¡± rk asked.
N¡¯s expression remained indifferent. ¡°We only interact for work. I haven¡¯t noticed anything special.
¡°How exactly should I keep my distance? Should I turn and walk away whenever I see him? Or should I move to another city to avoid him?¡±
¡°That¡¯s not what I meant.¡±
¡°Then what did you mean?¡± N asked, her tone mocking. ¡°If you¡¯re so worried, why don¡¯t you talk to him instead? Telling me this makes it seem like you think I¡¯m easy to bully.¡±
ming her for another man¡¯s interest in her, rather than addressing it with that man, was no different from saying a woman was to me for being assaulted because of how she dressed.
rk stiffened, embarrassment and shame crossing his features. ¡°N-¡±
She chided him, ¡°Enough. If you don¡¯t have the guts to tell your uncle to stay away from me, then don¡¯t say such disgusting things to me!¡±
With that, she turned and went inside, closing the door behind her.
Taking a deep breath to calm herself, N carried her groceries into the kitchen and began to put them away.
CHAPTER 89
The weekend flew by, and soon it was Monday.
N returned to the R&D department to continue her experiments.
Lucia also came back to work, but she was much more low¨Ckey than before, pretending not to see N andpletelycking her previous arrogance. Whether she had truly learned her lesson or was just biding her time to scheme again was unclear.
The day passed quickly. N received a call from Vrie just before the end of the workday, inviting her out to dinner. Since she had no other ns, she agreed.
When N arrived at the restaurant, she noticed a young man, around 20 years old, sitting next to Vrie. He was full of youthful exuberance, and N couldn¡¯t help but raise an eyebrow.
As soon as she sat down, Vrie eagerly introduced him, ¡°N, this is my new boyfriend. What do you think?
The young man blushed and looked down shyly when N¡¯s gaze fell on him, his ears turning red.
¡°Where did you find such an innocent¨Clooking guy? He¡¯s not still in college, is he?¡± N asked.
¡°You guessed it,¡± Vrie replied.
N was speechless. She had assumed Vrie had just been joking about finding a college boy, but she acted so fast.
Giving Vrie a thumbs¨Cup, N picked up the menu. ¡°Let¡¯s order. I¡¯m starving.¡±
Once they had ordered, N chatted with Vrie while the young man beside Vrie meticulously fed her snacks.
N began to wonder if he was under some sort of threat from Vrie to agree to be her boyfriend. Before long, the dishes arrived, and just as N was about to dig in, a cold male voice echoed. ¡°Vrie, who is that man beside you?!¡±
All heads turned simultaneously.
Not far away, Tom stood with a stormy expression, ring at Vrie.
If not for Jacqueline standing beside him, he would have looked exactly like a man who had just discovered his girlfriend was cheating on him.
Vrie¡¯s eyes remained indifferent, but she smirked. ¡°Mr. Genge, this doesn¡¯t seem to concern you, does
it?
Tom¡¯s gaze grew colder, and he started toward her, but Jacqueline quickly grabbed his arm. ¡°Tom, tonight¡¯s dinner is important. Whatever misunderstanding you have with Ms. Weir, deal with it after the dinner.¡±
Tom lowered his eyes, suppressing his anger, and turned to walk toward another room.
+25 BON
Jacqueline hurried after him.
The group couldn¡¯t hear what Jacqueline said, but they saw Tom leave immediately after hearing her
words.
N turned back to see Vrie¡¯s calm face, seemingly unbothered. She swallowed theforting words she was about to say.
Dinner continued in a somewhat heavy silence.
After they finished eating. Vrie sent the young man to get the car.
Standing at the restaurant entrance, N couldn¡¯t hold back her curiosity. ¡°Are you serious about this guy?
Vrieughed. ¡°I was joking. He¡¯s just my neighbor¡¯s kid, who grew up following me around. I was going to exin it to you, but then I forgot.¡±
Once the young man brought the car around, Vrie waved goodbye to N and left.
N was about to get her car when someone called her name from behind.
She turned to see Spencer and Damon walking toward her.This content belongs to N?/velDra/ma.Org .
Damon seemed to have been drinking¨Chis face was a bit flushed, and the top two buttons of his white shirt were undone, revealing a well¨Cdefined corbone
His suit jacket hung casually over his arm, and his innate elegance made it hard not to stare at him. Seeing him, N suddenly remembered the nonsensical things rk had said to her a few days ago. Damon had ulterior motives toward her?
With his status and looks, he could have any number of women at his beck and call. Why would he have designs on her?
Thinking that, N couldn¡¯t help butugh.
Under the streetlight, Damon was momenta
CHAPTER 90
Spencer and Damon stopped in front of N.
Spencer smiled and said, ¡°What a coincidence, Ms. Jayston. You¡¯re also having dinner here tonight?¡±
N nodded. ¡°Yes. I had ns with a friend.¡±
¡°I¡¯ll go get the car. How about I drive you home afterward?¡± Spencer offered.
¡°No need, I drove here.¡± N replied.
¡°Alright then. Could you please keep an eye on Mr. Summer? He¡¯s had a bit too much to drink, and I don¡¯t feelfortable leaving him alone, Spencer asked.
N nced at Damon. Despite the faint smell of alcohol, he seemed perfectly
sober.
Sensing her doubt, Spencer exined, ¡°Mr. Sumner always appears sober, whether he is or not. He might look fine, but he could actually be quite drunk.¡±
Remembering how Damon had helped her several times before, N felt it would be unkind to refuse. Alright, I¡¯ll watch over him.¡±
Satisfied, Spencer quickly walked to the parking lot.
Once he left, silence settled between N and Damon. His presence was impossible to ignore, so N stared at her shoes to avoid his gaze.
¡°How are you feeling?¡± Damon asked suddenly.
N was taken aback, then realized he was referring to the incident in Rontana where she had almost been assaulted. She looked up. ¡°I¡¯m much better now. The ringing in my ears is gone too.¡±
¡°Good.¡± With that, Damon fell silent again.
N resumed staring at her shoes, feeling time drag on. She didn¡¯t notice Damon¡¯s asional nces at her, nor did she see a photographer capturing their interaction from a passing car.
A ck Maybach pulled up to the restaurant, and Spencer helped Damon into the car. ¡°Thank you, Ms. Jayston. Where¡¯s your car parked?¡±
¡°Just outside the restaurant,¡± she replied.
N waved goodbye and walked to her car.
Seeing her get into a pink car, Spencer couldn¡¯t help butment. ¡°This model is really popr with womentely. My girlfriend is thinking about getting one too but hasn¡¯t decided on a color yet.¡±
Damon nced out at the pink car and said indifferently, ¡°It does look nice.¡±
Back home, N took a shower and went to bed.
Early the next morning, the was woken by the sound of her phone ringing.
Groggily, she answered, ¡°Hello?¡±
¡°N, what¡¯s with the photo online?!¡± rk¡¯s angry voice came through the phone, making N frown.
What was he ranting about so early in the morning?
¡°What photo?¡± she asked.This content belongs to N?/velDra/ma.Org .
¡°The one of you and Uncle Damon at the restaurant! Do you know how many people have called me about it this morning?!¡± he thundered.
Photo at the restaurant?
Confused, N hung up and was about to check the Inte when she saw dozens of messages from Vrie.
Vrie: [N, what¡¯s with this photo?]
Vrie: [Don¡¯t you think Damon looks at you with some affection?]
Vrie: Where are you?! Show up! Does Damon really like you?
Vrie: [Did he hide his feelings because you got married but still can¡¯t help looking at you?]
Reading these messages, N was speechless.
Why did everyone think Damon had feelings for her?
However, when she finally saw the photo, she was stunned.
The photo showed her and Damon standing outside the restaurant. She was looking down, while Damon had turned slightly to gaze at her, a soft light in his eyes.
CHAPTER 91
Chapter 91
The restaurant¡¯s lighting cast a soft glow over Damon¡¯s normally cool profile, making his expression appear much gentler as he looked at N.
The photo could easily be misinterpreted.
It was simply the angle¨CDamon had been speaking to her and naturally looked her way, which happened to be caught on camera.
N immediately called Vrie. ¡°What¡¯s the deal with that photo? Who took it?¡±
¡°You¡¯re finally up! That photo was taken by a somewhat well¨Cknown photographer who posted it on their profile. It blew up, and now everyone online is saying you and Damon are a perfect match.¡±
N was speechless.
Although the photo only showed their profiles, anyone who knew them could easily recognize them. No wonder rk was so furious earlier.
¡°It¡¯s just the angle. Il contact rk
uncle to sort this out,¡± N said.
If this got any bigger, it would only cause her more trouble. She decided to call Spencer instead of contacting Damon directly.
When Spencer heard about the photo, he quickly reassured N, ¡°Ms. Jayston, we¡¯re already in touch with the photographer to handle it. Don¡¯t worry.T¨ºxt belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
¡°Thanks. Let me know once it¡¯s resolved.¡±
Spencer was apologetic. ¡°Of course. I¡¯m really sorry about this. If I¡¯d known, I wouldn¡¯t have asked you to watch over Mr. Sumnerst night.¡±
N pressed her lips together. ¡°What¡¯s done is done. Just handle it as quickly as possible.¡±
She hoped not too many people had seen the photo.
¡°Alright, I¡¯ll get back to work now,¡± Spencer said.
Spencer put away his phone and turned to Damon, who was seated at his desk. ¡°Mr. Sumner, our team is already en route to the photographer¡¯s ce. We¡¯ve also contacted the social media tform to delete the photo, but some people might have saved it on their phones.¡±
Damon¡¯s expression was icy. ¡°Delete all you can.¡±
At that moment, the office door burst open.
rk stormed in, mming a printed copy of the photo onto the desk. ¡°Uncle Damon, staring at my wife so openly¨Cisn¡¯t that too much?!¡±
Damon slowly looked up, meeting rk¡¯s furious gaze with a cold, detached expression. Despite being seated, he exuded an aura that overshadowed rk.
¡°It¡¯s just a misleading photo. Is this really worth all this fuss?¡± Damon asked.
rk sneered. ¡°Misleading? Can you honestly say you have no feelings for N?¡±
+25 BONU
Damon¡¯s gaze remained impassive. ¡°Whether I do or not is none of your business.¡±
Upon feeling the oppressive tension and seeing Damon¡¯s icy stare, rk¡¯s anger red even more. ¡°If you don¡¯t back off, I¡¯ll tell Grandpa and Grandma and let them handle this.¡±
Damon raised an eyebrow, his demeanor turning dangerously cold. ¡°Are you threatening me?¡±
rk instinctively took a step back under Damon¡¯s chilling gaze but quickly regained his resolve, driven by his jealousy over N.
¡°Uncle Damon, I wouldn¡¯t dare threaten you. I¡¯m just reminding you that N is off¨Climits,¡± rk asserted.
CHAPTER 92
¡°I don¡¯t need you to tell me what I should or shouldn¡¯t do,¡± Damon said coldly, plunging the office into silence.
The tension between him and rk was palpable as they stared each other down, neither willing to back off.
Sensing the intensity of the situation, Spencer quickly intervened, Mr. rk, Mr. Damon has been dealing with the photo situation since this morning. Maybe you should head back for now.¡±
rk turned to Spencer, his tone icy. ¡°Mr. Hogg, you¡¯ve been with my uncle for a few years now. I hope you can talk some sense into him, remind him not to-¡±
¡°rk!¡± Damon¡¯s voice cut through sharply, his eyes filled with a storm of anger. ¡°Say one more word, and you can forget about staying as the Sumner Group¡¯s CEO.¡±
rk¡¯s hands clenched tightly at his sides, feeling both humiliated and frustrated. He knew Damon had the power to oust him from his position.
He red at Damon, enunciating each word, ¡°I hope you know what you¡¯re doing, Uncle Damon.¡±
With that, he turned and stormed out of the office.
Even after leaving Prospectus Technology, rk couldn¡¯t shake off his ang¡¡. He pulled out his phone to call N. But knowing she wouldn¡¯t pick up if she saw it was him, he decided to drive over to her ce instead.
.92
N had just finished breakfast and was putting on her shoes to head to work. As she opened the door, she was surprised to see rk standing there with a cold expression.
¡°What are you-¡± she started, but rk shoved the door open, grabbed her wrist, and pushed her against the wall.
¡°N, I told you to stay away from my uncle. It seems you didn¡¯t take me seriously,¡± he said.N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content.
He pinned her in ce, his hand moving down her face, his eyes filled with a dangerous glint.
The image of Damon gazing at her with what looked like affection in that photo filled him with jealousy and rage, fueling his irrational
behavior.
His hand continued downward, hovering near her throat.
N¡¯s neck was slender and delicate, seemingly easy to snap with just a bit of force.
Feeling rk¡¯s gaze fixated on her neck, as if contemting whether to strangle her, sent chills down N¡¯s spine and made her skin prickle with goosebumps.
rk was insane!
She shoved him away, gritting her teeth. ¡°That photo is just a matter of perspective. We were talking at the time.¡±
¡°Oh, really?¡± rk, seemingly unbothered by her push, smiled mockingly. ¡°N, you know I can¡¯t go against my uncle. So you better behave and stay away from him, or I can¡¯t promise what I might do.¡±
263
His tone was gentle, but it sounded more like a threat to N.
She took a deep breath, locking eyes with him. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I have no interest in him and will never fall in love with him.¡±
All she wanted now was to gather evidence for a divorce from rk and distance herself from the Sumners forever.
rk scrutinized her, trying to gauge the sincerity of her words.
After a moment, he smiled slowly. ¡°N, I¡¯ll believe you this time. But if this happens again, I¡¯ll make sure you¡¯re properly punished.¡± He emphasized the word ¡°punished¡± with a chilling tone.
CHAPTER 93
Chapter 93
When rk saw N¡¯s eyshes flutter, his eyes shed with satisfaction.
N bit her lip and said coldly, ¡°need to go to work. Can you leave now?¡±
Upon noticing her distant attitude, rk¡¯s gaze darkened. He didn¡¯t want to push her too hard as it would only worsen their rtionship.
¡°I¡¯ll drive you,¡± he offered.
¡°No need.¡±
With that, N pushed him out and closed the door behind him..
Upon arriving at the office, N noticed her colleagues sneaking nces at her.
She remained expressionless, assuming they had all seen the photo online.
After cing her things at her desk, she was about to head to theb when Sasha approached her, whispering, ¡°N, about that photo online¡ Is it true? Does Mr. Sumner really like you?¡±
Immediately, everyone around them perked up their ears.
Everyone knew about the incident where Damon protected N during theb explosion, risking his own safety. Now, with the photo circting online, they couldn¡¯t help but specte about the nature of their rtionship.
Seeing the curiosity in Sasha¡¯s eyes, N responded calmly. ¡°It¡¯s not true. It¡¯s just the angle of the photo. We ran into each other at the restaurant entrance and exchanged greetings.¡±
Sasha looked puzzled. ¡°Just that simple?¡±
Before she could ask more, N headed to theb with her experiment report.
On her way, she ran into Luciaing out of the restroom.
N pretended not to see Lucia and continued walking, but Lucia couldn¡¯t resist making a snide remark.¡± Some people really know how to y their cards right, getting both Sumners wrapped around their fingers. I¡¯m impressed.¡±
Lucia had been fuming since seeing the photo that morning. She couldn¡¯t believe that N, knowing about her interest in Damon, would be so shameless as to flirt with him.
Thements online pairing N and Damon only fueled her anger.N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content.
She had tried to expose N as Damon¡¯s niece¨Cinw in thements, but herments wouldn¡¯t go through.
Soon after, all photos and rted tags were deleted, clearly a move by the Sumners.
N turned to Lucia, noticing the barely concealed Jealousy in her eyes, and couldn¡¯t help but smirk. ¡°If you¡¯re so jealous, why don¡¯t you try taking a photo like that yourself? Though I doubt Mr. Sumner would give you the chance.¡±
+25
Lucia was angered and sneered. ¡°I wouldn¡¯t stoop to your level. Married and still flirting with other men. Is rk not enough for you?¡±
N raised an eyebrow! ¡°If you¡¯re so concerned about our marital affairs, why don¡¯t you install a camera at my house? Then you can satisfy your curiosity 24/7.
Lucia gritted her teeth. ¡°Don¡¯t get too cocky, N. If you keep walking down this path, you¡¯ll run into trouble eventually.¡±
¡°And I suggest you get your jealousy treated. Don¡¯te to me with your nonsense.¡± With that, N turned and walked away, ignoring Lucia.
Lucia shot daggers at N¡¯s retreating figure, her eyes filled with rage and disgust.
She pulled out her phone and called Keh, her voice cold. ¡°When are you going to make your move?!¡±
CHAPTER 94
Keh stood in a hospital corridor, staring at the bill with worry. Hearing Lucia¡¯s voice, he replied seriously, ¡°Within the next few days.¡±
He waspletely out of money. With Mabel in police custody, his only option was to follow Lucia¡¯s n to get the money for medical expenses.
¡°I¡¯ll be waiting for your good news then, Lucia said, hanging up with a smirk.
Once Keh kidnapped N, she would ensure both of them perished at the scene, leaving her free of worry.
In theb.
N was preparing to continue her experiment when she received a message from Genevieve, asking her toe to her office.
When she arrived, Genevieve greeted her with a smile. ¡°N, how was the business trip to Rontana with Mr. Sumner?¡±
N pursed her lips. ¡°It was fi
Is there something you need?¡±
¡°Headquarters is very interested in the project you¡¯re working on. Since it¡¯s funded by Prospectus Technology, they¡¯ve decided to have you work there for a while to avoid Mr. Sumner having to constantly travel back and forth to check on the progress.
N was taken aback, frowning slightly. ¡°How long will it be? And does Prospectus Technology have ab?¡±
Genevieve smiled. ¡°I¡¯m not sure about the exact duration, but likely until the project progresses
significantly. As for theb, Prospectus Technology bought a building next to their headquartersst year and converted it into ab, so it¡¯s ready for use.¡±This content belongs to N?/velDra/ma.Org .
If the project¡¯s progress was the measure, it could take at least a year or two. Drug development involved both pharmacological and clinical trials, with the former alone possibly taking years.
Seeing N¡¯s reluctance, Genevieve added, ¡°You¡¯ll get a daily travel allowance of 30 dors.¡±
A daily allowance of 30 dors meant an extra 600 dors a month, a tempting offer for N. Instantly, her reluctance disappeared.
¡°Genevieve, when do I start?¡± she asked.
Genevieve couldn¡¯t help butugh. ¡°If possible, it would be best if you start tomorrow. You can wrap up your current experiment today and head to Prospectus Technology tomorrow to meet Mr. Hogg.¡±
N was surprised by the urgency but figured that starting sooner would mean receiving the travel allowance sooner, which was a good thing.
¡°Alright, Genevieve. I¡¯ll finish up my work today and organize my materials,¡± N said.
¡°Good. If you have any problems at Prospectus Technology, feel free to contact me.
+25 BOI
Returning to theb, N packed up her equipment and headed back to her desk. The day passed quickly. After gathering her materials and personal belongings, she turned off herputer and informed Sasha about her transfer to Prospectus Technology.
Sasha was initially stunned but then her eyes widened. ¡°You¡¯re switching jobs?¡±
Her voice was loud enough to catch the attention of everyone nearby, including Lucia.
N shook her head. ¡°No, thepany is sending me to Prospectus Technology toplete this project beforeing back.¡±
Since other colleagues had been sent to otherpanies for projects before, Sasha wasn¡¯t too surprised. ¡°I see. I heard Prospectus Technology has many handsome and wealthy single men. If you meet any, remember to introduce me. My family¡¯s been nagging me about marriage nonstop,¡± Sasha said.
Nughed, not expecting that to be her concern. ¡°Sure. If I find anyone suitable, I¡¯ll let you know.¡±
CHAPTER 95
Once N got home, she contacted Spencer, who instructed her toe to the CEO¡¯s office the next morning for fingerprint registration and ess cards.
After hanging up, N felt anxious. rk already suspected Damon of having ulterior motives toward her. Now that she was going to work at Prospectus Technology, there could be serious trouble if rk found
out.
For now, though, she could only take it one step at a time and deal with it when it happened.
The next morning, N got up, freshened up, and drove to Prospectus Technology.
After parking her car, she went to the reception and mentioned she was there to see Spencer.
Upon confirming her identity, the receptionist led her to the elevator. ¡°Ms. Jayston, the CEO¡¯s office is on the top floor.¡±
N nodded. ¡°Thank you.¡±
She entered the elevator and pressed the button for the top floor.? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org.
As it ascended, she noticed it was her first time at Prospectus Technology and had heard that all their elevators were scenic. Now, she could see it for hersell.
As the elevator rose, the city¡¯sndscape unfolded before her, giving her a sense of openness.
Soon, the elevator reached the top floor. N walked out and down a long corridor to reach the CEO¡¯s
ice.
When her rtionship with rk was good, she had visited him at the Sumner Group¡¯s office, but their setup was different from Prospectus Technology¡¯s.
Prospectus Technology had several times more secretaries than the Sumner Group.
Even though it was just after 8:00a.m., all the secretaries were busy at their desks, with phones ringing
non¨Cstop.
After searching for a while, N spotted Spencer at the desk outside the CEO¡¯s office, sorting through documents. She quickly approached his desk. ¡°Mr. Hogg.¡±
Spencer looked up, saw it was N, and stood up. ¡°Ms. Jayston, you¡¯re here. I¡¯ll take you toplete the onboarding process.¡±
Although N was sent by Park Pharmaceuticals, she still needed to go through the formalities.
¡°Thank you, Mr. Hogg,¡± she said.
¡°You¡¯re wee.¡±
Afterpleting the onboarding process, Spencer showed N where the cafeteria was before taking her to theboratory building.
Chapter 95
Theb building was connected to the main building by a long corridor, about 400-500 meters long.
Since theb building was newly operational and had few projects, N was assigned her own office andb. She was very pleased with the spacious and well¨Clitb.
During her university days, she had had to share a .¡±
N took the card and nodded. ¡°Got it. Thank you, Mr. Hogg.¡±
Back at the CEO¡¯s office, Spencer knocked and entered Damon¡¯s office.
Damon was reviewing documents, bathed in the morning sunlight that streamed through the window.
He looked like he had stepped out of a painting¨Ca sight that would undoubtedly drive his admirers wild, given his looks and aristocratic air.
¡°Mr. Sumner, Ms. Jaystonpleted her onboarding this morning. Spencer informed him.
Chapter 96
Chapter 96
Damon looked up at Spencer, his expression cool and detached. ¡°Got it.¡±
Seeing Damon¡¯s Indifferent reaction, Spencer felt he might be overdoing it by bringing this up. After reminding Damon about the 10:00 a.m. meeting, he turned and left.
At noon, N took her meal card to the cafeteria.
As soon as she walked in, she was stunned by the luxurious setup. It looked more like a five¨Cstar restaurant than a cafeteria.
The food at each station was meticulously prepared and visually appealing. Moreover, the prices were incredibly low, almost the same as a university cafeteria.
The cafeteria had three floors, offering a variety of cuisines.
N lined up at one of the food stations, collected her meal, and found a seat in a corner.
Tasting the soup, she was surprised at how delicious it was,parable to what she had tasted at five- star restaurants before.
She had heard people online say that Prospectus Technology¡¯s cafeteria was like a five¨Cstar restaurant and thought it was an exaggeration. She realized it was true now.
No wonder people joked that once someone joined Prospectus Technology, dieting became a thing of the past.
Focused on her meal, N didn¡¯t notice the curious and admiring nces from those around her. Soon, news of a new, beautiful employee spread throughout thepany¡¯s internal chat groups, along with a candid photo of N¡¯s profile taken by someone.
Everyone was curious about which department she worked in.
Unaware that she had be a hot topic among Prospectus Technology employees, N returned to theb after lunch.
It wasn¡¯t long before someone approached Spencer to ask about her.
The chat group of the CEO¡¯s office was buzzing with activity, with everyone tagging Spencer to inquire about N.
[Mr. Hogg, that pretty girl who joined today must have some connections, right? You personally handled her onboarding. Now everyone in thepany is curious about the department she¡¯s in.]
[Yeah, and I saw how courteous you were to her. Is she rted to some high¨Clevel executive?]
[I saw her too this morning. She¡¯s really stunning. Even as a woman, I couldn¡¯t help but take a second look.
Reading the messages, Spencer was a bit surprised. He didn¡¯t expect N to cause such a stir on her first day at Prospectus Technology.
After thinking for a moment, he replied in the group.
Spencer. [Stop guessing. She¡¯s a research developer sent over from Park Pharmaceuticals, and she isn¡¯t avable.]
After sending that message, Spencer closed the chat app and went back to his documents.
Back in theb, N started her afternoon experiments. As the reaction began, she sat nearby, timing and recording the experiment.
It was then that she received a message from rk.
rk: [I¡¯m downstairs at Prospectus Technology. Come down immediately, or I¡¯lle up to find you myself.]Property of N?)(velDr(a)ma.Org.
N frowned, surprised that rk found out about her working at Prospectus Technology so quickly. After a moment of thought, she called him,
The phone barely rang twice before he picked up, but he stayed silent.This belongs ? N?velDra/ma.Org.
¡°My transfer to Prospectus Technology was apany decision. There¡¯s no point in youing here,¡± she said.
¡°Then you can quit,¡± he rebuked.
His matter¨Cof¨Cfact tone made Nugh in disbelief. ¡°I¡¯m not quitting. If you¡¯re so worried about me and your uncle, why don¡¯t you put a surveince camera on me?¡±
With that, N hung up. If rk actually stormed into Prospectus Technology, he would only embarrass himself and potentially offend Damon, which would backfire.
In the car, rk gripped his phone in anger, his eyes cold. He had warned N, and now she dared to start working at Prospectus Technology. It seemed she needed to be taught a lesson.
That evening, N was cleaning up herb equipment when she received a call from Harrison.
The atmosphere was tense when she arrived at the hospital room.
Seeing her, Harrison spoke coldly. ¡°N, quit your job tomorrow.¡±
CHAPTER 97
N¡¯s steps faltered, and she red at rk. ¡°What did you tell m, ad?!¡±
Before rk could respond, Harrison shouted, ¡°You¡¯re questioning rk? How could you betray him with his uncle?!¡±
N¡¯s fingers trembled with rage. She couldn¡¯t believe rk had the gall to twist the truth, and even more, she couldn¡¯t believe her father had fallen for it.
¡°Dad, do you really see me as that kind of person? You didn¡¯t even ask me, and you just believed rk¡¯s side of the story, thinking I betrayed him?!¡± she questioned.
N took a deep breath, deciding not to hide rk¡¯s infidelity any longer. ¡°Do you know it was he who-¡±
¡°N, your dad was so upset earlier that he almost fainted. The doctor said he can¡¯t take any more stress. Do you really want to push him to the brink?¡±
rk¡¯s loud voice drowned out N¡¯s words.
She clenched her hands at her sides, her hatred for rk reaching a peak. ¡°If you know my dad can¡¯t take stress, why did youe here and tell him nonsense?!!
rk sighed, looking helpless. ¡°Fine. If you say there¡¯s nothing between you and my uncle, then I¡¯ll believe you. Just move back home and I won¡¯t hold anything against you.¡±
Harrison, who had just calmed down a bit, got agitated again. ¡°You moved out?!¡±? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org.
N took another deep breath and spoke slowly. ¡°Dad, I¡¯ll exin everything to youter. Right now, you need to focus on getting better. Please don¡¯t get involved in our issues.¡±
¡°Move back home immediately! Married couples shouldn¡¯t live apart!¡± Harrison ordered.
Harrison and N¡¯s mother had divorced after sleeping in separate rooms. He didn¡¯t want N to go down the same path. Besides, if N left rk, she might be vulnerable to bullying.
rk quickly tried to soothe Harrison. ¡°Dad, don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ll talk to N. I¡¯m sure she¡¯lle back home.
soon.¡±
Seeing rk¡¯s seemingly conciliatory act, N was furious. ¡°rk, can you stop pretending and making everyone sick?¡±
She hadn¡¯t revealed rk¡¯s misdeeds out of concern for Harrison¡¯s health. Yet, rk had exploited that, ndering her in front of Harrison.
Harrison frowned and was about to speak when the hospital room door opened.
Wren walked in with a thermos, smiling as she saw both N and rk. ¡°N, you and rk came to visit your dad?¡±
N nodded briefly, then looked at rk. ¡°Our problems are between us. Don¡¯t bring it up in front of the elders. Let¡¯s settle this outside.¡±
With that, she turned and left the room.
Harrison called after her, but she ignored him.
Wren nced at rk, her brows furrowing slightly. She was aware of his affair, and seeing him now filled her with disapproval and dissatisfaction.
rk didn¡¯t notice her gaze. He turned to Harrison and said, ¡°Dad, today was my fault. Don¡¯t be angry with N. I¡¯ll handle this. Please don¡¯t worry.¡±
Harrison sighed. ¡°N has been spoiled by me since she was little. For my sake, please be more patient
with her.¡±
¡°Don¡¯t worry. She¡¯s my wife. I¡¯ll take good care of her,¡± rk assured him.
With that, rk nodded to Wren and left the room.
As he stepped out, he saw N waiting at the end of the hallway. She was clearly waiting for him.
rk smiled and walked toward her.
As soon as he reached her, she pped him hard across the face.
CHAPTER 98
Instantly, a red handprint appeared on rk¡¯s face. His gaze toward N was chilling. ¡°How dare you hit me?!¡±
N met his furious eyes and said slowly, ¡°Why wouldn¡¯t I? You¡¯re the one who cheated, yet you have the audacity to nder me in front of my dad. Don¡¯t you deserve to be hit?¡±
As soon as she finished speaking. rk grabbed her chin and pushed her against the wall, his eyes filled with anger.
¡°N, it¡¯s your fault for not listening to me. If you had obeyed, I wouldn¡¯t have had to go to your father,¡± he imed.
N sneered. ¡°If you dare approach my dad again, I¡¯ll expose your affair.¡±
¡°If you¡¯re not afraid of aggravating his condition, go ahead,¡± rk dared her
rk¡¯s nonchnt tone fueled N¡¯s rage, her hands clenched at her sides. ¡°rk, how did you be so despicable?!¡±
rk leaned closer. He could see the disgust and anger in N¡¯s eyes and tightened his grip on her chin.
liu
¡°N, I just want you back by my side and to stay away from my uncle. You¡¯re the one provoking me,¡± he said.
Taking a deep breath, N said, ¡°I won¡¯t be threatened by you, and I won¡¯t quit my job.¡±? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org.
¡°You don¡¯t have to quit. I¡¯ll give you a week to move back to the vi. N, this is my final concession. If you don¡¯tply, I¡¯ll have to take drastic measures,¡± he warned.
His threatening tone made N stiffen. She couldn¡¯t believe she had once loved such a shameless man, but regretting it now was useless.
¡°And if I refuse? What drastic measures will you take?¡±
¡°You wouldn¡¯t want your father to lose his ce on the kidney transnt list, would you?¡± he threatened. N looked at him in disbelief. ¡°rk, you¡¯re inhuman!
He used Harrison against her, knowing he was her greatest concern!
rk smiled slightly, whispering in her ear, ¡°I¡¯ll be waiting for you toe back
He then released her and left without another word.
N returned home after 8:00 p.m.
She didn¡¯t turn on the lights and walked to the couch, her mind a tangled mess, unsure of whom to confide in.
She had nned to pretend toply with rk, gather evidence, and then file for divorce. However, his shamelessness was beyond her expectations.
+25 BONU:
Should she really give in and move back?
As N was lost in thought, she heard a faint noise from the bedroom. Frowning, she wondered if she was imagining things.
She stood cautiously and walked to the door to press the light switch.
The living room lights didn¡¯t turn on.
She nced outside and saw the neighbor¡¯s lights were on, feeling a surge of fear.
Reaching for the door handle, she opened the door and ran out.
As soon as the motion sensor light turned on, however, someone pushed her back into the living room.
The person who had been waiting outside walked in and shut the door, cutting off the light.
N fell back heavily, her face contorted with pain, but her mind was racing.
CHAPTER 99
People were hiding in both the bedroom and by the door, indicating a premeditated attack.
N scrambled to her feet and ran toward the kitchen. Unfortunately, she only managed a few steps before someone grabbed her arm and mmed her against the wall.
¡°Who are you? Why are you- Mmph!¡±
Before she could finish, one of her attackers pinned her down and pressed a cloth against her nose. A pungent smell filled her nostrils, and her vision began to blur.
Soon, two masked men dragged arge suitcase out of N¡¯s apartment.
Since it was just past 8:00 p.m. and most people were home from work, there weren¡¯t many people around, so the men didn¡¯t attract much attention.
They quickly reached the back gate of the building, where a nondescript van without a license te was parked in the shadows.
They loaded the suitcase into the trunk and drove off toward the outskirts of the city.
Spencer hurried into the CEO¡¯s office at Prospectus Technology with a document in hand.
¡°Mr. Sumner, this file was just sent back by our partner. They said there might be an issue with the experimental data, but I¡¯m not a technical expert. As such, I can¡¯t pinpoint the problem,¡± Spencer said.
Damon nced at the file and said, ¡°Call N.¡±
Spencer nodded and quickly called her.
N¡¯s phone vibrated in the dark living room for a long time before stopping.
Spencer tried calling several times, but N didn¡¯t answer.
¡°Mr. Sumner, should I go to Ms. Jayston¡¯s ce with the document?¡± Spencer asked.
¡°Go ahead.¡±
When N woke up, she found herself crammed into a confined space, which felt like a suitcase.
Panic and fear washed over her. Although she usually remained calm, this was her first time experiencing a kidnapping, and she knew she was in constant danger.
Her captors could decide to kill her at any moment.
After taking a deep breath to calm herself, she noticed that she was moving, likely in a vehicle. Where were they taking her?
She gave it some thought. She wasn¡¯t staying somewhere affluent and hadn¡¯t offended anyone. Besides,
captors had clearly nned it based on how they had abducted her.? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org.
her
After considering everyone she had interacted with, she concluded that the most likely person behind her
kidnapping was Lucia.
Suddenly, the car stopped.
N heard the trunk open and quickly closed her eyes. Momentster, she felt the suitcase being lifted. and roughly dropped to the ground.
Pain shot through her body as if every bone had been shattered, but she bit her lip hard to keep from making any noise.
If they realized she was awake, there was no telling what they might do. For now, it was safer to pretend
to be unconscious.
She heard voices outside.
¡°I brought her here for you. Now give me the money you promised.¡±
There was a brief silence before a familiar male voice responded.
¡°Wait, I don¡¯t have the money yet. Once I get it, I¡¯ll pay you immediately.¡±
The first man¡¯s voice rose in anger. ¡°Keh, are you ying me? I agreed to help you kidnap her, not to get involved in extortion. Give me my money now, or I¡¯ll spill everything about what you made me do. Don¡¯t me me for what happens next!¡±
CHAPTER 100
¡°Even if you spill the beans, I don¡¯t have any money now. And if this gets out, you¡¯ll be going to jail too!¡± Keh responded.
As the argument grew more intense, N finally recognized the man who had kidnapped her¨CMabel¡¯s father, Keh.
She had only met him once. How did he know where she lived? How had he gotten into her home?
This wasn¡¯t something a regr farm worker coulde up with. Someone must have been behind it, and that person was obviously Lucia.
Gradually, the argument outside died down, followed by the sound of a car starting.
Soon, everything was silent.
N held her breath, not daring to make a sound.
Suddenly, she felt the suitcase being moved and heard the wheels rolling on the ground. She realized she was being dragged somewhere, and her mind raced as she considered how to escape.
N cautiously unzipped the top of the suitcase a little, but the outside was pitch ck except for the shlight held by the person dragging her.
Unable to see her surroundings, N knew she couldn¡¯t make a rash move.
After about ten minutes, the person brought her to an abandoned building and started dragging her upstairs. Each step made her body m painfully against the stairs, but she bit her lip to keep from making a sound.
Finally, after what felt like an eternity, the man stopped
Keh put down the suitcase and called Lucia. ¡°I¡¯ve got her. What¡¯s next?¡±
Lucia, who had been waiting nearby, said, ¡°I¡¯ll be there soon.
When Lucia arrived, she opened the suitcase right away and reprimanded Keh, ¡°You idiot! Why didn¡¯t you tie her up? What if she escapes?¡±
¡°I was in a hurry and forgot¡¡±
¡°Moron!¡± Lucia cursed, realizing it was toote to fix it.
Seeing N was still unconscious, she smirked and pped N hard twice, waking her up.
you want?¡±
N slowly opened her eyes, pretending to be groggy and terrified. ¡°L¨CLucia, what do Seeing the fear on N¡¯s face, Lucia felt a surge of satisfaction. ¡°N, didn¡¯t expect this, did you?¡± ¡°Are you crazy? Kidnapping is a crimel¡± N tried to talk while assessing her surroundings. Everything was dark except for the small area lit by the shlight. To escape, she¡¯d need that shlight.Content ? N?velDrama.Org 2024.
Lucia sneered. ¡°Since I¡¯m daring enough to kidnap you, I have a way out.¡±
With that, she signaled to Keh.
A knife was pressed against N¡¯s throat. ¡°N, I¡¯ll give you a chance. Call rk and ask for help. If he¡¯s willing to pay, I¡¯ll let you go. How about that?¡±
N frowned, wary of Lucia¡¯s intentions. Something felt off. If Lucia only wanted money, she wouldn¡¯t be showing herself because she knew N would tell rk everything if she survived.
Lucia had no intention of letting her go alive!
From Keh¡¯s earlier conversation with the other man, N deduced that Keh was in this for the money. Lucia, however, wanted her dead but didn¡¯t want to be implicated, so she had Keh do the dirty work.
Once N was dead, Keh would take the fall. Lucia likely didn¡¯t n to let Keh live either, ensuring no loose ends.
Noticing N¡¯s hesitation, Lucia smirked. ¡°If you don¡¯t call, you¡¯ll die now.¡±
N knew calling rk was her only chance. If he came with help, she might survive. ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll call him.¡±
¡°Give me the number, and I¡¯ll dial it. Think carefully about what to say,¡± Lucia warned.
Lucia dialed rk¡¯s number and put it on speaker.
After a few rings, a soft, feminine voice answered instead of rk.
CHAPTER 101
¡°Who is this?¡±
N¡¯s expression changed as she recognized Jordyn¡¯s voice. ¡°This is N. I need to speak to rk. Put him on the phone.¡±
A lightugh came from the other end. ¡°Oh, rko? He¡¯s in the shower right now and probably can¡¯t take your call. If you need something, Ms. Jayston, just tell me, and I¡¯ll pass it on.¡±
N bit her lip, her hands clenching at her sides. ¡°Jordyn, I¡¯ve been kidnapped-¡±
Before she could finish, Jordyn cut her off, ¡°N, do you really think using such a pathetic lie will get rk toe to you? If you want to see him so badly,e find him yourself. But he¡¯s with me and our baby tonight, so he doesn¡¯t have time for you.¡±
N knew that this was a matter of life and death. She couldn¡¯t afford to hold a personal grudge. ¡°I¡¯m really kidnapped¡ Just tell him this-¡± N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content.
¡°If you¡¯re really kidnapped, then go ahead and die. Without you, my baby can be legitimized, and I can be with rk.¡± Jordyn¡¯s voice was filled with malice. She hung up immediately.
N¡¯s heart sank. Fear, despair, and hopelessness overwhelmed her.
Jordyn genuinely wanted her dead. Jordyn wouldn¡¯t let her get in touch with rk, and he might never know about this call.
Maybe she shouldn¡¯t have made that call. From the moment rk cheated, she was disposable to him.
At that moment, she truly lost all hope in him. Eight years of feelings vanished into thin air.
Seeing the despair on N¡¯s face, Lucia sneered. ¡°Looks like rk isn¡¯t
ou off early.¡±
Keh¡¯s voice turned serious. ¡°Ms. Pord, what do you mean by that? If you kill her, I get nothing!¡±
Lucia smiled and looked at Keh. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. If you kill her, I¡¯ll give you 300,000 dors. How about that?¡±
Keh hesitated, fear shing in his eyes. He only wanted to kidnap N to get money for his wife¡¯s treatment, not tomit murder.
Seeing his hesitation, Lucia urged, ¡°Why are you hesitating? N knows we kidnapped her. Do you think she won¡¯t turn us in if we let her go? If you don¡¯t want to go to prison, you have to kill her!¡±
Under Lucia¡¯s persuasion, Keh¡¯s resolve wavered. He started contemting whether to kill N.
By then, N had calmed down. She knew she couldn¡¯t die there. ¡°Don¡¯t be fooled by her. She wants you to kill me so she won¡¯t be med for murder. She ns to pin it all on you.¡±
Lucia¡¯s face twisted with anger. ¡°N, shut up! Keh, do it now! Don¡¯t you want to save your wife?!¡±
¡°If you kill me, she¡¯ll either kill you, or you¡¯ll end up in prison. You won¡¯t get anything you want!¡± N yelled.
Seeing Keh¡¯s firm expression waver again, Lucia grew furious. ¡°You bitch, shut up!¡±
Keh looked at Lucia, his eyes betraying his suspicion. ¡°Lucia, is she right? Are you trying to pin it all on me?¡±
Lucia¡¯s expression stiffened. ¡°You believe her? She¡¯s just trying to save her own life!¡±
¡°If that¡¯s not true, then you do it,¡± he said.
Keh wasn¡¯t stupid. N¡¯s words made him realize that Lucia had been trying to distance herself from the crime. He handed the knife hovering near N¡¯s neck to Lucia.
This was N¡¯s chance. She pushed Keh away, quickly grabbing the shlight and sprinting toward the stairs.
Meanwhile, Spencer arrived at N¡¯s apartment and immediately sensed something was wrong.
The door was ajar, and it was pitch dark inside. He called out but got no response. He dialed N¡¯s number, only to hear the phone vibrate from inside
Carefully pushing open the door, he saw the messy living room but no sign of N. His face darkened, and he quickly contacted Damon.
¡°Mr. Sumner, Ms. Jayston is missing!¡±
CHAPTER 102
Damon¡¯s expression darkened. ¡°What happened?¡±
¡°Ms. Jayston¡¯s home is a mess. Her phone is on the couch, but she¡¯s gone,¡± Spencer replied.
¡°Find out what happened immediately!¡± Damon ordered.
Within half an hour, Spencer discovered that N had been kidnapped and quickly informed Damon.
As the unmarked van drove into the city, it was abruptly stopped by a group of men in ck.
The driver, taken aback, opened the door to ask what was going on and was immediately kicked to the ground, kneeling in pain.
¡°Ah!¡± he screamed as his knee shattered, his face pale and covered in cold sweat.
Spencer¡¯s expression was icy. ¡°Where did you take her?¡±
The man¡¯s eyes flickered with panic, and he shook his head quickly. ¡°I don¡¯t know what you¡¯re talking about=¡±
Spencer sneered. ¡°You don¡¯t understand? Then we¡¯ll make you understand.¡±
At hismand, the men in ck pounced on the man, his screams filling the air.
In less than five minutes, the man begged, ¡°Stop! Stop! I¡¯ll talk¡ I¡¯ll talk¡
Spencer gestured for the bodyguards to stop and crouched down in front of the man. ¡°Where is she?¡±
Chapter the
176 ROMBUS
¡°She¡¯s¡ She¡¯s in an abandoned building about ten kilometers east of the city¡¡±
Spencer frowned. That was an abandoned hotel project by an overseas investor, left deste after a financial copse.
¡°Why did you kidnap her?¡± Spencer asked.
Fearing another beating, the man quickly spilled everything. He had hoped to be released afterward but was instead sent to the police
station.
With the matter resolved, Spencer reported it to Damon.
¡°Mr. Sumner, he¡¯s confessed. They took Ms. Jayston to an abandoned hotel about ten kilometers outside the city. The kidnapper doesn¡¯t know her personally.
¡°It was arranged by his distant rtive, Keh O¡¯Neill, who promised. him 30,000 dors for his help. Keh is Mabel¡¯s father. Mabel is Ms. Jayston¡¯s colleague responsible for theb explosion.¡±
As Spencer finished, Damon¡¯s ck Maybach sped off like an arrow.
Spencer, startled, quickly got into another car and followed.
Meanwhile, N ran down the stairs with a shlight in hand as Keh chased after her.
It wasn¡¯t long before he caught up, snatched the shlight, and punched
her hard in the stomach.
N spat blood, her strength drained, and copsed.
As Keh grabbed her, she felt a wave of despair. She knew no one wasing to save her. She might really die here tonight.
N didn¡¯t want to die. She wanted to fight back, but a sharp pain in her neck made her lose consciousness.
The click of high heels echoed on the stairs as Lucia approached with a knife, her face dark. ¡°If you had tied her up properly, she wouldn¡¯t have had the chance to escape. You¡¯re utterly useless.¡±
Keh stayed silent, deep in thought.
Lucia stood before the unconscious N, her expression cold. ¡°I hate people who think they¡¯re clever. This time, your cleverness won¡¯t save you.¡±
She raised the knife toward N¡¯s neck, but Keh grabbed her wrist.
¡°What are you doing?!¡± she yelled.
¡°She can¡¯t die yet,¡± Keh said.
Lucia¡¯s eyes widened in disbelief. ¡°You believed her lies about me wanting to stay out of this. And now that I¡¯m ready to kill her, you¡¯re stopping me?!¡±? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org.
¡°I won¡¯t trust you until I see the money,¡± he replied.
Keh had realized that Lucia¡¯s true intention was to kill N and that she had no intention of helping him get the money to save his wife and daughter.
CHAPTER 103
If N died, not only would Lucia refuse to pay him, but she might also turn on him and use him of murder.
Keh had no power or influence, and with Mabel in jail, there was no way he could fight against Lucia. Keeping N alive was more advantageous for him now.
¡°Are you crazy? rk Sumner might already know we¡¯ve kidnapped her. The longer we wait, the worse it gets for us!¡± Lucia yelled.
¡°As soon as I see the money, you can kill her. I won¡¯t care,¡± he replied.
Lucia was furious. ¡°It¡¯s the middle of the night. How can I transfer money now? We¡¯ll have to wait until the bank opens in the morning!¡±
Keh was just as useless as his daughter, Mabel, always messing things up. Even if she could transfer the money, she would have to use an overseas ount to avoid detection.
¡°I don¡¯t care. I just want the money,¡± he insisted.
As they argued, a distant light grew closer.
Lucia was appalled and ordered, ¡°Hurry! Take her to the rooftop!¡±
Realizing the urgency, Keh stopped arguing and quickly dragged N upstairs.
Soon, they reached the top floor.
Despite being the ¡°rooftop¡°, the abandoned hotel only had five stories. From their vantage point, they could see a convoy of cars speeding toward them.
Their kidnapping attempt had been exposed!
Lucia thought that she wouldn¡¯t lose as long as she had N, even if
*OR DOW
rk arrived so quickly.
¡°Give her to me!¡± Lucia demanded, but Keh didn¡¯t move.
¡°Lucia, you ordered me to kidnap her. Transfer the promised 700,000 dors to my ount now, or I won¡¯t hand her over!¡± he demanded.
Lucia nced at the edge of the rooftop, just a few steps behind Keh. She tightened her grip on the knife, her gaze cold. Since Keh wouldn¡¯t cooperate, there was no use keeping him around.
Taking a deep breath, she said slowly, ¡°Fine. I¡¯ll transfer the money now.¡±
She pulled out her phone and pretended to make the transaction. After a few seconds, she looked at Keh. ¡°It¡¯s done. Check your ount.¡±
Hearing the notification, Keh released N, who copsed to the ground.
As he checked his phone, Lucia suddenly rushed at him. ¡°Die!¡±
Keh sensed the danger toote. He stumbled back, stepped off the edge, and fell from the rooftop.
The sound of his body hitting the cement was dull and heavy.
Damon had just exited his car when he saw a figure plummet from above. He hurried toward the twitching body on the ground, his hands clenching unconsciously and his expression tense as a wave of panic washed over him.
Realizing it wasn¡¯t N, he sighed in relief but noticed his palms were sweaty.
Spencer caught up to him, nced at the body, and said, ¡°Mr. Sumner, that¡¯s Keh O¡¯Neill. Ms. Jayston should be upstairs.¡±
Without a word, Damon turned and rushed into the hotel.N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content.
Meanwhile, on the rooftop.
Lucia¡¯s expression turned maniacal after pushing Keh down. She knew there was no turning back now.
Seeing N regaining consciousness and crawling toward the stairs, Lucia smiled, slowly walked over, and crouched beside her. ¡°N, who would have thought you¡¯d end up like this?¡±
She wasn¡¯t in a hurry to kill N anymore. She wanted to torment her first, repaying all the humiliation she had endured.
¡°Where should I start? Maybe your hand?¡± she wondered aloud.
With that, Lucia raised the knife and plunged it into the back of N¡¯s hand.
CHAPTER 104
As the knife pierced N¡¯s hand, she let out a muffled groan, her face turning pale from the pain. Blood flowed from her wound, creating a gruesome sight.
Lucia smirked and pulled the knife out, causing blood to spurt.
N bit her lip hard to stifle a scream.
Lucia¡¯s smirk widened at N¡¯s pained but restrained expression.¡± Didn¡¯t think you were this tough. Let¡¯s see how long you canst.¡±
Lucia raised the knife again, aiming for N¡¯s heart.
Just as the de was about to reach its mark, a sharp pain shot through Lucia¡¯s wrist, and the knife ttered to the ground.
Lucia stared in disbelief at the dart lodged in her wrist. She looked up and saw someone running toward her.
Panicking, she bent down to retrieve the knife, but a powerful kick sent her flying before she could. She hit the ground hard and spat out blood before losing consciousness.
Spencer quickly kicked the knife away and helped N up. ¡°Ms. Jayston, are you okay?¡±
N was shocked to see Spencer. She hadn¡¯t expected him toe to her rescue and wondered how he knew where to find her.
Still, relief washed over her as she looked at Spencer with gratitude. She knew that without his timely intervention, she would have died at
Lucia¡¯s hands.
¡°Thank you, Mr. Hogg.¡± N¡¯s voice was weak from her injuries and blood loss.
Spencer, not daring to take credit, nced behind him at Damon, who
#
exuded a cold aura.
¡°Mr. Sumner, I¡¯ll go subdue Lucia,¡± he said.
¡°Go ahead,¡± Damon replied.
After Spencer left, N looked up at Damon, about to speak, but he suddenly bent down and lifted her into his arms.N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content.
She gasped, instinctively wanting to wrap her arms around his neck. However, she stopped herself, remembering her dirty and injured hands.
¡°Mr. Sumner, thank you for rescuing me, but I can walk. Please put me down,¡± she said.
Being carried by Damon felt strange to N, especially since he was rk¡¯s uncle. She wanted to keep her distance from him.
Damon looked down at her and asked, ¡°Are you sure you can walk?¡±
N bit her lip, about to insist she could, but Damon was already striding forward with her in his arms.
She nced up at his resolute expression, her heart skipping a beat. She lowered her head and stayed silent.
When they reached the ground floor, a doctor was already there.
After quickly bandaging N¡¯s wounds and stopping the bleeding, the doctor turned to Damon.
¡°Mr. Sumner, from the initial examination, Ms. Jayston has only sustained some external injuries. She¡¯s not in immediate danger, but she should still go to the hospital for a thorough checkup. The wound on her hand is deep and needs a tetanus shot.¡±
Damon nodded. ¡°Do as you said.¡±
N wanted to say she could go to the hospital herself, but one look at Damon¡¯s cold eyes made her hold her tongue.
She felt that Damon was very angry, exuding a terrifying aura. It was safer not to talk to him right now,
Soon, Spencer returned with the unconscious Lucia,
¡°Mr. Sumner, what should we do with her?¡± he asked,
¡°Break her hands and send her to the police, I don¡¯t want to see her out on the streets again,¡± he ordered.
Damon¡¯s voice was chilling, making N tremble. Despite this, she had no intention of pleading for Lucia. After all, Lucia had tried to kill her, so she deserved this oue.
However, thinking about how Damon had saved her again left her unsure of how to repay him.
After Spencer and his men left, Damon got into the car and drove N to the hospital.
CHAPTER 105
On the way to the hospital, N kept ncing at Damon. She looked like she wanted to say something but hesitated.
Damon turned to her, his voice deep. ¡°What do you want to say?¡±
N bit her lip. ¡°Mr. Sumner, I was just wondering¡ How did you know I was kidnapped? And how did you find me?¡±
¡°Spencer had some experimental data he wanted to ask you about. When he couldn¡¯t reach you on the phone, he went to your house and found you missing. So, we investigated,¡± he exined casually, but N felt a surge of gratitude.T¨ºxt belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
¡°Mr. Sumner, I really appreciate it¡ If you and Mr. Hogg hadn¡¯t arrived in time, I might not have survived the night.¡±
Damon¡¯s expression remained indifferent. ¡°Don¡¯t think too much about it. The most important thing for you now is to recover.¡±
N fell silent and lowered her gaze, deciding she must find a way to repay Damon.
As they neared the hospital, N looked at him again. ¡°Mr. Sumner, it¡¯s already veryte. You can drop me off at the hospital entrance, and I¡¯ll handle the check¨Cup myself. You should go home and rest.¡±
Damon didn¡¯t respond until the car stopped at the hospital entrance. He unbuckled his seatbelt, got out, and lifted N in his arms again, heading into the hospital.
N bit her lip. ¡°Mr. Sumner-¡±
¡°It won¡¯t take long,¡± he interrupted her
They had only taken a few steps when they were stopped.
rk stood there, his expression icy, speaking slowly and clearly. ¡±
Uncle Damon, thank you for saving N. I¡¯ll take it from here.¡±
His hair and clothes were d a friend at the police station, he might not have even learned N had been kidnapped.
veled. If he hadn¡¯t received the call from
The thought of Damon being the one to rescue N while she was most helpless filled rk with jealousy and anger. If he had been the one to save her, perhaps their strained rtionship could have been mended.
Damon¡¯s grip on N tightened, his gaze darkening.
Seeing that Damon had no intention of letting go, rk smiled. ¡°Uncle Damon, don¡¯t forget, I am N¡¯s husband. If people see you¨Ccarrying her into the hospital and take a picture of it again, it may cause misunderstandings.
¡°You wouldn¡¯t want my wife to suffer because of baseless rumors, right?
rk was confident that if Damon cared for N, he wouldn¡¯t let her reputation be tarnished.
As expected, Damon¡¯s expression wavered.
Before Damon could speak, though, N spoke up. ¡°Mr. Sumner, please put me down. I can walk.¡±
After a moment of silence, Damon set N down.
rk moved to carry her, but she pushed him away. ¡°Don¡¯t touch me!¡±
The memory of being on the brink of death, with Keh¡¯s knife at her throat while rk had been with Jordyn, filled N with disgust.
rk¡¯s hand froze in mid¨Cair, his expression darkening. ¡°N, I know I disappointed you by not getting to you in time, but I only just found out-
N cut him off calmly, ¡°It doesn¡¯t matter anymore.¡±
To her, he was just a stranger now, and she didn¡¯t want to waste any more feelings on him.
For some reason, rk felt a sudden panic. It seemed he was truly losing N.
While he stood there in shock, N limped past him toward the hospital.
rk clenched his fists, and suddenly, he seemed toe to a decision. He quickly walked over, forcibly picking her up and carrying her inside.
N struggled fiercely. ¡°rk, put me down!¡±
rk ignored her, his face grim and filled with determination. He couldn¡¯t lose her.
Damon stood watching as rk carried N away. His gaze was dark and stormy, with something brewing in his eyes.
CHAPTER 106
N struggled throughout the journey, trying to make rk put her down, but to no avail.
When rk finally ced her on the emergency room bed, he pressed her hands down and said in a low, serious tone, ¡°N, I¡¯m in a bad mood right now. You¡¯d better behave.¡±
Detecting the threat in his voice, N shook off his hands and looked at him coldly. ¡°What does your bad mood have to do with me? If you like obedient behavior, you should go find Jordyn. I¡¯m not capable of being as understanding as she is.¡±
rk stared at her impassive profile and suddenly smiled. ¡°N, are you jealous?¡±
N frowned, unsure of where he got that idea from. She didn¡¯t want to argue with him, so she let him think whatever he wanted.
Soon, the doctor arrived, conducted a thorough examination, and rebandaged N¡¯s injured hand. He advised her to stay in the hospital for a few days for observation.
Once in the hospital ward, N noticed that rk hadn¡¯t left and felt a flicker of annoyance. ¡°You can leave now.¡±
I¡¯m staying here with you,¡± he said.
Seeing rk¡¯s serious expression, N turned away in disgust. ¡°Do you think your presence here now makes any difference? Where were you when I was kidnapped?¡±
¡°N, I didn¡¯t know you were kidnapped¡¡±
N smiled mockingly. ¡°Of course you didn¡¯t know because you were busy having an affair with Jordyn.¡±? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org.
Chapter the
rk instinctively I
an to exin, ¡°I wasn¡¯t
Suddenly, he seemed to realize something, his gaze darkening. ¡°How do you know I was with Jordyn at that time?¡±
N stared at him, enunciating each word, ¡°Because I called you, but it was Jordyn who answered. At my most desperate and scared moment, you were with another woman. How can you face me now and act as if nothing happened?¡±
rk¡¯s face turned pale, and he shook his head in disbelief. ¡°No¡ I didn¡¯t have any iing calls¡¡±
He couldn¡¯t bear to think about how desperate N must have felt when Jordyn answered the phone while she was begging for help.
N sneered, ¡°You should ask Jordyn about it.¡±
¡°N, I¡¯ll investigate this matter thoroughly. If it turns out that Jordyn responsible, I won¡¯t let her get away with it!¡± he promised.
N didn¡¯t believe a word he said. She slowly looked up, her gaze icy. If it is her, how will you take revenge? Make her abort the baby, or have her go through what I did?¡±
Her cold eyes were filled with stubbornness, demanding an answer.
rk frowned, feeling that her attitude was somewhat aggressive. She wasn¡¯t like this before¨Cshe used to be kind and gentle.
Seeing that he didn¡¯t respond, N chuckled. ¡°rk, do you know what I find most disgusting about you? It¡¯s that you neither want to divorce me nor cut tiespletely with Jordyn. Do you think I¡¯ll tolerate your behavior like your mother tolerates your father¡¯s mistresses?¡±
¡°N, I never thought that way¡ I just..¡±
¡°You just think I can¡¯t live without you, which is why you feel free to hurt
+258OWN
me so recklessly,¡± she said.
rk¡¯s hands clenched at his sides, a flicker of despair in his eyes. He couldn¡¯t refute N because everything she said was true. He did think she couldn¡¯t leave him and didn¡¯t want to let her go.
N smiled bitterly as she averted her gaze. ¡°Just leave, I don¡¯t want to see you right now.¡±
The door to the hospital ward opened and closed, and N¡¯s expression turned cold again.
After leaving the hospital, the first thing rk did was find Jordyn.
When Jordyn saw him return, her face lit up with joy. ¡°rko¡ you¡¯re back- Ah!¡±
Before she could finish, rk grabbed her by the hair, yanking her closer with an icy re.
CHAPTER 107
¡°Jordyn, it seems I¡¯ve been too kind to youtely, and you¡¯ve forgotten your ce,¡± rk remarked.
The pain in Jordyn¡¯s scalp made her eyes well up with tears, and rk¡¯s menacing expression terrified her.
¡°rk¡ what are you saying? I don¡¯t understand¡¡±
¡°You don¡¯t understand? If that¡¯s the case, then you should go outside N¡¯s ward and stay there until you do,¡± he said.
Jordyn¡¯s face paled as she realized what was happening. ¡°I didn¡¯t know
. Ms. Jayston called and said she was kidnapped. I thought she was trying to get you to go to her ce¡ I¡¯m sorry¡¡±
The moment she finished speaking, rk pped her hard. The force was so great that if he hadn¡¯t been holding her hair, she would have fallen.
Jordyn let out a cry of pain, feeling her face burn as it started to swell.
rk looked at her with a chilling re. ¡°She is my wife. Even if she was manipting me, as long as I¡¯m willing, it¡¯s not for you to interfere. If you don¡¯t want to end up dead, don¡¯t try to test my limits.¡±
Just thinking about how close Jordyn came to causing N¡¯s death made rk want to strangle her.
His gaze was so terrifying that Jordyn trembled uncontrobly. She had never seen him this angry before. However, her jealousy grew as she thought about how his anger was all for N.
Why didn¡¯t that bitch die? If N had died, she wouldn¡¯t be suffering like this now¡
¡°rk¡ I know I was wrong¡ I¡¯m sorry. I didn¡¯t know Ms. Jayston was
really kidnapped¡¡±
Tears flowed continuously from Jordyn¡¯s eyes, her face a mask of fear and regret.
rk released her and turned to leave.
Only when he was gone did Jordyn wipe away her tears, her initial sadness and fear reced by a calm demeanor,
She got up, walked into the bedroom, and pulled out a file from the deepest drawer of the bedside table. It wasbeled ¡°Medical Examination Report¡± in bold letters,
She had made a copy of the medical reports for rk and N when she first got them. Now, the reports were about toe into y,
While holding the file tightly, Jordyn¡¯s eyes were filled with cold resolve.? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org.
The next morning, N was woken by amotion,
As soon as she opened her eyes, the hospital room door was flung open. Lucia¡¯s parents barged in, pushing the nurse aside.
As soon as Jade Emerson reached the bedside, she began wailing. ¡± N¡ Lucia grew up with you. She¡¯s just lost her mind this time. For the sake of your past rtionship, can you forgive her this once?¡±
Despite Jade¡¯s tears, N¡¯s expression remained unchanged. ¡°Mrs. Pord, you¡¯re looking for the wrong person. At this point, it¡¯s more effective to consult awyer.¡±
Jade was stunned, staring at N in disbelief. ¡°You and Lucia used to be so close. Are you really going to disregard all that?¡±
N smiled faintly, speaking slowly. ¡°She was nice to me before only because I was the daughter of Harris Pharmaceuticals¡® boss, and your
husband was the purchasing manager there. She needed to tter me to secure your husband¡¯s position,
¡°And as for sentiment, she¡¯s done something as extreme as kidnapping me and trying to kill me. It seems there¡¯s no sentiment left to discuss between us,¡±
Jade¡¯s gaze turned icy upon seeing that N, despite her smile, had no intention of letting Lucia off.
¡°N, you¡¯re fine. Why won¡¯t you let Lucia go? After all I¡¯ve done for you, how did you be so vicious?¡± Jade asked,
CHAPTER 108
¡°Vicious?¡± N scoffed. ¡®Is it not vicious when your daughter had her colleague plot against me, almost ruining my face? Or when she deliberately had someone kneel in front of me, filmed it, and posted it online to incite people to cyberbully me?
¡°And kidnapping me, almost getting me killed¨Cdon¡¯t tell me that¡¯s not vicious?¡±
Jade tried to retort but was momentarily stunned by N¡¯s icy gaze, forgetting what she was going to say
Seeing N¡¯s sharp¨Ctongued response, Clement said coldly, ¡°N, your father is not well. If he finds out about your kidnapping, he¡¯ll likely be very worried.¡±
N shot a sharp look at Clement, her hands tightening under the covers. She was about to respond when the door to the room was suddenly pushed open.
¡°Mr. Pord, you¡¯re quite bold, even daring to threaten people.¡±
Clement stiffened as he turned and saw Damon¡¯s cold gaze fixed on him. He looked visibly uneasy. ¡°Mr. Sumner, what brings you here?¡±
As a department manager of a Prospectus Technology subsidiary, Clement had seen Damon a few times during visits to the Prospectus Technology headquarters.
Damon¡¯s eyes shed with displeasure. ¡°Do I need to report my whereabouts to you?¡±
Noticing Damon¡¯s anger, Clement hurriedly lowered his head. ¡°N¨CNo need¡¡±
After confirming that N was fine, Damon turned his attention back to Clement. ¡°Mr. Pord, do you know that N is part of the Sumners?¡±
Clement broke out in a cold s at under Damon¡¯s intense scrutiny. ¡°Mr.Content ? N?velDrama.Org 2024.
Sumner¡ I¡¡±
He gritted his teeth and turned to N. ¡°N¡ No, Ms. Jayston¡ I apologize for my earlier remarks. I hope you can forgive me. As for Lucia, she did make a mistake, and we will ept whatever judgment the court deems appropriate. We won¡¯t argue about it.¡±
Jade, incredulous, shouted, ¡°Clement, what are you saying?!¡±
¡°Be quiet!¡± Clement shot Jade a cold nce, and she was immediately silenced by his stare.
Seeing Clement¡¯s obsequious behavior, N realized the benefits of power and influence. Clement had been threatening her just moments ago, and he was apologizing now.
¡°Mr. Pord, I hope you mean what you say and that you won¡¯t appear in front of my father again,¡± N demanded.
¡°Of course, of course¡ Mr. Sumner, we¡¯ll take our leave now,¡± he said.
Damon didn¡¯t even nce at him, instead turning to N. ¡°How¡¯s your recovery today?¡±
¡°Much better.¡±
Seeing N¡¯s face was no longer pale but had regained some color,
Damon nodded.
Clement understood that Damon was ignoring him and that the matter was essentially settled, so he quickly pulled Jade away.
Once they were alone, N looked at Damon. ¡°Uncle Damon¡ thank you for helping me again today.¡±
Damon frowned slightly, his voice taking on a more serious tone. ¡°You used to call me ¡®Mr. Sumner¡®. Why the sudden switch to ¡®Uncle Damon¡®?
And am I really that old?¡±
+25
N lowered her gaze and smiled. ¡°You said earlier that I¡¯m part of the Sumners. Besides, you are my uncle, age aside.¡±
¡°Just call me Mr. Sumner from now on,¡± he said.
N pressed her lips together. ¡°At work, I¡¯m an employee, so it¡¯s appropriate to call you Mr. Sumner. But privately, by seniority, I should call you uncle.¡±
Displeasure shed in Damon¡¯s eyes when he saw that N was deliberately maintaining distance.
CHAPTER 109
¡°Do as you like,¡± Damon said.
¡°Okay. Uncle Damon, you¡¯re busy with work. If you don¡¯t have to, don¡¯t waste your timeing to see me,¡± Nmented.
Damon raised an eyebrow, his gaze scrutinizing N. ¡°Is this how you treat someone who saved your life?¡±
N looked up at him and said slowly, ¡°It¡¯s precisely because you saved my life that I should be more grateful. I don¡¯t want to waste your time when you¡¯re so busy, Uncle Damon.¡±
Seeing her repeatedly address him as ¡°Uncle Damon¡°, a constant reminder of their rtionship, Damon suddenly leaned in closer.
Startled by his magnified face, N backed away quickly, as if avoiding the gue.
Just as Damon was about to speak, the door to the room was pushed
open.
¡°N-¡± rk¡¯s voice halted abruptly when he saw Damon.
From rk¡¯s perspective, Damon¡¯s movement seemed like he wanted to kiss N.T¨ºxt belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
rk¡¯s expression turned icy as he strode to the bedside, ring at Damon. ¡°Uncle Damon, I¡¯ve told you before to stay away from N!¡±
Damon¡¯s expression remained indifferent, his gaze so cold it seemed it could freeze someone.
rk red back at him without fear. N was his wife, and Damon¡¯s interest in her was unjustifiable.
Feeling the temperature in the room plummet, N frowned. ¡°If you two want to argue, do it outside. I need to rest.¡±
As soon as she spoke, both men looked at her, and the tension in the room seemed to vanish as othing had happened,
¡°Rest well. I¡¯lle see you tomorrow,¡± Damon stated,
rk sneered. ¡°I¡¯ll take good care of N, so you don¡¯t need to worry, Uncle Damon.¡±
Damon nced at him. ¡°You also have a pregnant mistress outside, Can you manage both?¡±
¡°That¡¯s my concern. Just take care of yourself and stop fixating on someone else¡¯s wife,¡± rk retorted,
¡°rk! Shut up!¡± N red at rk. She had intended to discreetly distance herself from Damon, but now that rk had brought it up, how was she supposed to interact with Damon in the future?
Ignoring rk¡¯s gaze, N turned to Damon and said, ¡°Uncle Damon, please be careful on your way back.¡±
Her tone was respectful, like a junior addressing a senior, which made Damon¡¯s gaze turn colder. He didn¡¯t say anything else and turned to leave.
Once Damon had disappeared from the doorway, N told rk, ¡°You should leave too. I don¡¯t want to see you.¡±
¡°N, you¡¯re not developing feelings for my uncle, are you?¡± he asked.
Seeing the suspicion in rk¡¯s eyes, N felt only calmness, no longer affected by the previous sadness or anger. ¡°What you choose to think is your business, not mine.¡±
All she wanted now was to recover from her injuries, reveal rk¡¯s affair to the Summers once she was discharged, and get a divorce, distancing herself from him.
After the disappointment fromst night, she no longer wished to see rk even once more.
N¡¯s cold attitude fueled rk¡¯s anger.
He gripped her chin forcefully. ¡°Does your refusal to exin mean you¡¯re admitting it?!¡±
rk¡¯s grip on N¡¯s chin was intense, and she felt as if it might be crushed. She looked up, seeing the pain in his eyes, and a hint of sarcasm crossed her face.
Pushing his hand away, she said tly, ¡°Get out.¡±
CHAPTER 110
rk sneered and was about to speak when his phone suddenly rang. Seeing it was Jordyn, he coldly ended the call.
¡°N, do you really think my uncle likes you? If he genuinely cared
about you, he wouldn¡¯t have tried to seduce you while you were still my wife. The fact that he¡¯s acting like this now just shows he¡¯s ying with you¡¡±
N was disgusted by rk¡¯s words and looked at him coldly. ¡°rk, I¡¯ve told you before¨Cdon¡¯t assume everyone is as vile as you.¡±Content ? N?velDrama.Org 2024.
¡°Vile? Is he having inappropriate thoughts about you as an elder not vile?¡± he taunted.
N¡¯s expression turned even colder. ¡°What right do you have to criticize others? You haven¡¯t even dealt with your mistress and her unborn child. rk, the truly vile person here is you.¡±
rk¡¯s expression darkened, and his gaze toward N was filled with chilling anger.
¡°N, it seems you¡¯re not learning your lesson.¡± He smirked and dialed a number on his phone. ¡°Stop looking for a kidney donor for my father¨Cin w.¡±
N was taken aback, and she tried to grab rk¡¯s phone, but he was prepared. He quickly stepped back, keeping his distance.
¡°rk, are you insane?! Have you forgotten what you promised me?!¡±
N¡¯s gaze shifted from anger to hatred. Despite being the one who had cheated first, rk was now hurting her even more. He knew how crucial a kidney donor was for Harrison.
Just because they had argued, he was halting the search for Harrison¡¯s kidney.
rk had promised her that he w find a way to treat her father when he made her give up the patent Just a few yearster, he was now breaking his word.
N realized how selfish and ruthless the man she had fallen for was.
rk ended the call without any expression and walked to the bedside, gripping N¡¯s chin. ¡°N, this is just a lesson. Remember this pain. If you anger me again, you¡¯ll experience this kind of pain over and over.¡±
N¡¯s eyes were red, and she raised her hand to p him.
Before she could reach him, he grabbed her wrist. ¡°You¡¯d better think carefully about the consequences of this p.¡±
¡°rk, are you really trying to make me hate you?¡±
rk smiled. ¡°Hate me if you want. Either way, we¡¯re destined to be entangled for life.¡±
Seeing the madness in rk¡¯s eyes, N shivered with chills rising from her heart. Was she really doomed to never escape him?
Noticing N¡¯s evident distress, rk grinned with satisfaction. ¡°N, if you behave, I¡¯ll treat you well and keep those around you safe. Understand?¡±
N clenched the nket tightly as she stared at him. ¡°rk, you¡¯d better stay firmly in your position as the CEO of the Sumner Group.¡±
Hearing the underlying threat in her words, rk raised an eyebrow.¡± Don¡¯t worry. Even if I go to hell, I¡¯ll drag you down with me.¡±
¡°You¡¯re crazy!¡± she yelled.
¡°If you know I¡¯m crazy, then stop challenging my limits,¡± he replied.
Noticing N trembling, rk released her, straightened up, and said, ¡°I have work to do. I¡¯lle see you again this afternoon.¡±
+25 BON
Shortly after rk left, N received a call from the police, asking her to go to the station to give a statement.
CHAPTER 111
Chapter 111
After N gave her statement, she was about to leave when an officer stopped her.Content ? N?velDrama.Org 2024.
¡°Ms. Jayston, the suspect wants to see you. She says she won¡¯t say anything until she meets you. Can you please cooperate and speak with her?¡± the police officer asked.
N frowned, suspecting that Lucia might have ulterior motives.
Seeing her concern, the officer continued. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. You¡¯ll be separated by ss, so she won¡¯t be able to harm you.¡±
N agreed reluctantly. ¡°Alright then.¡±
When she arrived, Lucia was already waiting on the other side of the ss.
Lucia looked calm, probably knowing that no matter how much she hated N, she couldn¡¯t do anything
now.
N picked up the phone and spoke in a cold tone. ¡°What do you want to say to me?¡±
Lucia smirked. ¡°N, do you think you¡¯ve won?¡±
N remained indifferent, her gaze devoid of any emotion. She thought even hating Luc¨ªa seemed
excessive.
¡°You¡¯re overthinking it. I¡¯ve never tried to win against anyone. Your own greed and extremism have led to this,¡± N remarked.
¡°Hah, what I hate most is your indifferent attitude while taking advantage of everything,¡± Luc¨ªa said.
Looking into Lucia¡¯s obsessive eyes, N felt that Luc¨ªa had truly lost her mind.
¡°Lucia, I¡¯m not here to listen to your nonsense. If you don¡¯t have anything useful to say, just confess to your crimes. The evidence is clear, so even if you remain silent, you¡¯ll still be convicted.¡±
N set the phone down, ready to leave.
¡°N, do you know the ident at Harris Pharmaceuticals wasn¡¯t an ident but a deliberate act?*
Lucia asked.
N froze. She brought the phone back to her ear and coldly asked, ¡°What do you mean by that?¡±
¡°Can¡¯t you understand when you¡¯re so smart? That ident was part of a scheme against Harris Pharmaceuticals, and it involves rk¡¯s father. Isn¡¯t it ironic that you married your enemy¡¯s son?¡± Lucia
revealed.
N¡¯s grip on the phone tightened, her knuckles turning white as a storm of emotions raged inside her.
The ident at Harris Pharmaceuticals was connected to Cyrus?
N gritted her teeth, trying to remain calm. ¡°Why should I believe you?¡±
Believe it or not, it¡¯s up to you. If you prefer to stay in the dark and sleep next to your enemy¡¯s son, that¡¯s your choice. It¡¯s really a pity for your dad, who should have had a smooth life but was struck innocently and fell so seriously ill. It¡¯s truly tragic!¡±
+25
Lucia¡¯s expression was mocking, with a look of feigned sympathy in her eyes.
N stared at her coldly and asked, ¡°That ident had something to do with your father too, didn¡¯t it?¡±
Lucia nodded. ¡°Yes. Otherwise, why would he suddenly be an executive at a subsidiary of Prospectus Technology?¡±
Lucia hadn¡¯t wanted to expose Clement, as she was still hoping he would help her. Two hours ago, however, Clement had sent awyer to tell her to plead guilty and fend for herself, clearly indicating he was done with her.
Since he no longer considered her his daughter, she saw no reason to protect him any longer.
N didn¡¯t remember how she left the police statio
CHAPTER 112
Chapter 112
N was suddenly yanked from behind and mmed to the ground.
Arge truck roared past her. Her body ached, but she felt numb, sitting on the ground in a daze.
¡°Are you alright?¡± The person who had pulled her to safety waved a hand in front of her face, thinking she was stunned by the recent events.
N nodded. ¡°I¡¯m okay¡ Thank you¡
¡°Are you really sure?¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
After confirming she was truly fine, the good Samaritan reminded her to stay alert while crossing the street, then left with a frown.
Instead of going home, N went to visit Harrison.
When N arrived, her father was undergoing dialysis.
Wren was surprised to see her and quickly wiped away tears from the corners of her eyes, forcing a smile. ¡°N, what brings you here?¡±
N sat beside her and lowered her gaze. ¡°I came to see my dad.¡±
Wren sighed. ¡°We don¡¯t know when a matching kidney will be found¡ Your father¡¯s health is deteriorating/ and each dialysis session is very painful. It breaks my heart to see him like this¡¡±
Her eyes reddened again as she spoke.
N stayed silent, staring at the floor, lost in thought.
Wren then noticed her bandaged hand and asked, ¡°What happened to your hand? How did you get injured?
¡°It¡¯s nothing, just a minor injury from an experiment. It will heal in time,¡± N replied.
Seeing N¡¯s nonchnt demeanor, Wren frowned in concern. ¡°You should be resting at home when you¡¯re injured. There¡¯s no need toe to the hospital. I¡¯ll take care of your father, so just focus on your
work.¡±
N nodded. ¡°Yes. Wren, thank you for everything.¡±
¡°No need to mention it. I¡¯m his wife. He never mistreated me when he was sessful. If I were to leave him now, I¡¯d truly be heartless,¡± Wren said.
They had a genuine rtionship, not just a partnership.
As they spoke, Harrison finished his dialysis and came out.
Seeing his pale face and lips made N¡¯s eyes sting.
If it weren¡¯t for that ident, Harrison wouldn¡¯t have fallen so ill so quickly. Thinking of this, N
subconsciously clenched her hands at her sides.
¡°N, how did you get hurt?¡± Harrison looked at N¡¯s bandaged hand with a pained expression.
After she and rk left that day, Harrison had regretted the things he had said. He had wanted to contact her but was afraid she was still upset.
¡°It¡¯s just a minor injury.¡±
N¡¯s indifferent attitude made Harrison feel even more heartache and guilt. She used to cry at the slightest injury, but due to the Jaystons¡® downfall, she had to learn to be strong.? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org.
¡°N¡ I said some things I shouldn¡¯t have. I apologize. You¡¯ve probably endured a lot being married to rk over the years, haven¡¯t you?¡±
N was momentarily taken aback, her nose suddenly feeling a bit sore. She fought back the tears and replied softly, ¡°It¡¯s alright.¡±
¡°I¡¯ve thought a lot these past few days. If you want to live elsewhere, you can. I won¡¯t force you to move back. You¡¯re my only daughter, and all I want is for you to be happy.¡±
N nodded. ¡°Yes, Dad, I understand. I¡¯m not upset with you.¡±
¡°Good. Regardless, don¡¯t let yourself suffer. I¡¯d rather not treat my illness than for you to be mistreated in the Sumners,¡± Harrison said.
CHAPTER 113
Chapter 113
N frowned and leered at Harrison. ¡°Dad, what are you saying?! If you say something like this again, I won¡¯te to see you anymore.¡±
Before Harrison could respond, Wren quickly spoke up. ¡°Alright, Harrison, stop. You should consider how much this upsets N.¡±
Seeing the sadness in N¡¯s eyes, Harrison sighed and didn¡¯t say anything more.
After settling Harrison back into his room, N was about to leave when she couldn¡¯t help but ask, ¡°Dad, has the cause of the Harris Pharmaceuticals ident ever been determined?¡±
Harrison was taken aback and then frowned. ¡°Why are you asking about that all of a sudden?¡±
¡°I recently watched some safety ident videos and wanted to know what happened during that incident. After all, I work in ab and need to be cautious to prevent simr idents,¡± she lied.
¡°I don¡¯t remember the specifics. It¡¯s been so long, and I¡¯d prefer not to talk about it,¡± Harrison replied. Noticing Harrison¡¯s reluctance, N didn¡¯t press further. ¡°Alright, I understand.¡±
As she was about to leave, the hospital door swung open, and rk walked in. ¡°N, you should have told me you wereing to see Dad. I would havee with you.¡±N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content.
Seeing rk, N was reminded of the threats he had made to her that morning, and a wave of distaste washed over her.
The fact that he knew she was visiting Harrison and arrived just in time suggested he might have had someone follow her. He was probably worried she¡¯d tell others about his behavior this morning.
N took a deep breath, looked up at rk, and forced a smile. ¡°I didn¡¯t want to bother you since I thought you might be busy.¡±
rk¡¯s steps faltered due to her smile. Since learning of his infidelity, she had not smiled at him. Her expressions had been filled with either disgust or annoyance.
He had almost forgotten that she used to greet him with a smile and warm eyes.
Subconsciously, his gaze softened a bit. ¡°Even if I¡¯m busy, I can always find time toe with you.¡±
N nodded. ¡°Alright, I¡¯ll let you know next time in advance so we cane together.¡±
¡°Sounds good.¡±
rk turned to Harrison and exchanged a few words with him.
Harrison¡¯s attitude was noticeably colder than before. Previously, Harrison, thought rk treated N well, and therefore, he always found rk favorable.
However, since rk mentioned during hisst visit that N had moved out and refused to return, Harrison could no longer view him the same way.
If rk truly cared for N, she wouldn¡¯t have had to move out.
Harrison felt a deep sense of guilt and remorse, realizing he had upset N by siding with rk and
ming h¨¦r.
¡°If you¡¯re too busy, you don¡¯t have toe. I understand, Harrison sad
N pressed her lips together, aware that Harrison was intentionally being cold toward rk because he knew she had been wronged.
¡°Dad, even if I¡¯m busy, I¡¯ll make time to visit you.¡±
Harrison wanted to say more but decided to keep quiet upon seeing Nyle¡¯s troubled expression.
After spending some more time together with Harrison, N left with rk.
While waiting for the elevator, rk looked at N and said softly, ¡°M, I was wrong this morning ve
arranged for the search for a kidney for Dad to continue. I hope you can forgive me
CHAPTER 114
Chapter 114
N looked up at rk and saw the apology in his eyes.
She nodded and said, ¡°Yes, I¡¯ve thought it over. I¡¯ve been too cold toward you. And between spouses, it¡¯s not just about forgiveness.¡±
rk was momentarily stunned, then his eyes filled with joy. ¡°N, are you serious?¡±
He had expected that N would still be angry and that he would have to spend time cating her. To his surprise, her attitude had changed in just a morning. She was no longer as cold and resistant as before.
N smiled. ¡°Of course. Although I haven¡¯tpletely forgiven you yet, I realize I shouldn¡¯t continue to hold grudges. I¡¯ll move back to the vi in a couple of days.¡±
¡°Really?¡±
Although rk didn¡¯t understand why N had suddenly changed her mind, the important thing was that she was willing toe back to him. Nothing else mattered.
¡°Yes, juste and pick me up when the timees,¡± she replied.
Alright.¡±
Seeing N¡¯s demeanor soften from before, rk hesitated for a moment, then carefully asked, ¡°N¡ would you have dinner with me tonight? It¡¯s been a long time since we¡¯ve eaten together¡¡±
N was silent for a few seconds.
Just when rk thought she was going to refuse, she nodded. ¡°Sure, just send me the location.¡±
rk¡¯s face lit up with excitement. ¡°I¡¯lle pick you up.¡±
He had a feeling that N would fully forgive him soon.
¡°Okay,¡± she said.
rk dropped N off at the entrance of her apartment and left.
As soon as his car was out of sight, her smile turned cold.
To investigate the Harris Pharmaceuticals incident thoroughly, she needed to stay close to rk. Otherwise, she wouldn¡¯t have the chance to approach Cyrus.
Taking a deep breath, N turned and walked to her apartment.
In the evening, rk drove to pick up N.
When she appeared, he was momentarily taken aback.
It was clear that N had made an effort to look presentable. Although she wore only a dress and light makeup, she looked very different from when theyst met.
¡°Chapter 114
¡°N, you look beautiful today,¡± he praised.
N seemed to shyly lower her head. Without saying a word, she opened the passenger door and got in
the car.
rk reached out to hold her hand, but she pulled away.
¡°I¡¯ve only agreed to move back and improve our rtionship. It doesn¡¯t mean I¡¯ve forgiven you, so I¡¯m not ready for any intimate gestures right now. I hope you understand,¡± she exined.
rk¡¯s gaze dimmed, but he nodded. ¡°I understand. I¡¯ll wait until you¡¯ve fully forgiven me.¡±
There was a hint of sarcasm in N¡¯s downcast eyes. If it turned out that the Harris Pharmaceuticals incident was indeed rted to Cyrus, her hatred for rk would only deepen.
Forgiving him was impossible.
Seeing she said nothing else, rk didn¡¯t press further and started the car.
Half an hourter, they stopped outside a restaurant. As they got out, they ran into Damon and Spencer.? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org.
Damon frowned when he saw N and a trace of coldness shed in his eyes.
Didn¡¯t the doctor say she needed to stay in the hospital for observation? Why was she out and about now -and with rk?
Noticing Damon¡¯s gaze on N, rk stepped in front of her to block the view and said in a low voice,¡± What a coincidence, Uncle Damon. Are you here for dinner too?¡±
Damon looked at him, his gaze devoid of warmth.
CHAPTER 115
apter 115
¡°Yes, here to discuss business,¡± Damon said.
rk smiled and replied, ¡°Then I won¡¯t keep you. N, let¡¯s go inside.¡±
N nodded, her gaze lowered, and followed rk into the restaurant.
Damon¡¯s expression darkened as he watched their retreating figures, his displeasure almost palpable. Spencer internally groaned at the disgruntlement emanating from Damon¨Cwhy was he always the one suffering?
After a moment of hesitation, Spencer finally mustered the courage to remind Damon, ¡°Mr. Sumner, the meeting time is approaching.¡±
Damon didn¡¯t respond, scowling as he walked inside.
rk was in a good mood tonight. N wasn¡¯t as cold as before, and he had managed to turn things around with Damon.
Under the candlelight, his gaze toward N softened considerably. ¡°N, I¡¯m so d you¡¯re willing to give me another chance. I promise I won¡¯t let you down!¡±
N barely registered his words, nodding absentmindedly. ¡°Yeah, I believe you.¡±
She continued to cut her steak, the light casting a warm glow over her.
The scene was quiet and pleasant. rk¡¯s gaze was filled with affection as he looked at her.
N didn¡¯t notice his expression, her thoughts preupied with her earlier encounter with Damon. She hadn¡¯t even greeted him¨Che must think she was ungrateful.
Even if he did think so, she nned to keep her distance from him. If she could, she¡¯d rather never have interacted with him. At least then, she wouldn¡¯t feel guilty now.
¡°N¡ N?¡±
rk¡¯s voice pulled her back to reality. She looked up at him. ¡°What did you say? Sorry, I was so focused on cutting my steak, I didn¡¯t hear.¡±
¡°I was saying, how about I host a birthday party for you at home this year? It¡¯ll be more lively,¡± rk suggested.
N shook her head. ¡°No, I don¡¯t like events with too many people.¡±
¡°Alright. If you want any gifts, just let me know,¡± he said.
¡°Okay.¡± N set down her knife and fork and stood up. ¡°I¡¯m going to the restroom.¡±
Once she was around the corner and out of rk¡¯s view, she felt a sense of relief. She had no feelings for rk anymore, but maintaining a fake smile in front of him was exhausting,
However, she¡¯d get used to it in time. As long as she could uncover the truth about the ident, she
could endure everything else.
The restaurant wasrge, with the restrooms located down a long corridor lined with private dining
rooms.
As N emerged from the restroom and walked past the first private room, the door suddenly flew open. A hand reached out and yanked her inside.
¡°Ah!¡± N¡¯s scream was quickly muffled by the door closing behind her.
The room was pitch dark, and her heart raced.? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org.
As she struggled, she suddenly smelled a mix of alcohol and pine.
It was Damon!
N froze in her struggle, biting her lower lip in fear.
¡°Uncle Damon-¡±
Before she could react, a sharp pain hit her lips. Damon bit her.
N gasped in shock and tried to push him away, but her hands were pinned to the wall, unable to move. She could only submit to his will.
¡°Mmph¡¡±
She struggled desperately, terror and panic flooding her.
Damon was her husband¡¯s uncle¨Chow could they¡
CHAPTER 116
Chapter 116
Sensing N¡¯s struggle, Damon paused and abruptly released her.
N trembled with anger, torn between wanting to hit him and remembering that he had saved her life. She bit her lip hard and remained silent, though she was deeply hurt inside.
What did he think of her? He knew she was rk¡¯s wife¨Chis nephew¡¯s wife¨Cand still dared to do something like that!
The more N thought about it, the more wronged she felt, and tears streamed down her face.
The Sumner men were all despicable!
Damon¡¯s gaze grew colder in the darkness, his entire demeanor radiating chill, as he heard N¡¯s sobs.
¡°Why were you so distant from rk before, even wanting a divorce, but now you¡¯re having dinner with him as if nothing happened?¡± he asked.
Damon¡¯s usatory tone made N frown. Even though he had saved her before, what he had just done and the question he was asking now were far beyond eptable.
She took a deep breath, wiped away her tears, and said coldly, ¡°Uncle Damon, it¡¯s normal for a married couple to have dinner together. But what you did just now, as an elder, ispletely out of line.¡±
Damon¡¯s voice was icy. ¡°Out of line? Didn¡¯t you seduce me first?¡±
N instinctively retorted, ¡°When did I-¡±
Suddenly, she stopped, remembering the night she had found rk cheating and ended up in the wrong
room.
Seeing her silence, Damon asked, ¡°Cat got your tongue?¡±
¡°I¡¯ve already exined that night at the hotel¨Cit was an ident. If you don¡¯t believe me, there¡¯s nothing more I can do,¡± she said.
¡°Whether it was an ident or not, it happened,¡± he remarked.
N¡¯s expression hardened. Was he trying to pin this on her?
¡°As long as nothing happened in the end, it doesn¡¯t count,¡± she retorted.
¡°You mean I can do whatever I want to you as long as I don¡¯t go all the way, and you¡¯ll just pretend nothing happened?¡± he asked.
¡°That¡¯s a misleading interpretation. I¡¯ve exined that night. Believe it or not, I¡¯m grateful for your help. Still, that doesn¡¯t give you the right to do as you please with me.¡±
After saying that, N tried to push past Damon and find the door, but she was yanked back as soon as her hand touched the handle.
Damon¡¯s voice was filled with anger. ¡°That mistress is pregnant with rk¡¯s child. Soon, she¡¯ll give birth. Can you tolerate another woman having his child and even sharing him with her?¡±
N took a deep breath and shook off his hand, saying coldly, ¡°That¡¯s my business, not something for you
+25
to worry about.¡±N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content.
¡°So you love him so much that you¡¯re willing to forgive him even if he¡¯s unfaithful?¡± he asked.
¡°Yes!¡±
N¡¯s voice was filled with resolve. To uncover the truth about the Harris Pharmaceuticals incident, she had to stay close to rk.
Besides, her rtionship with Damon could never go any further. He had helped her many times and saved her life this time, and it would be a lie to say she wasn¡¯t moved.
Any woman would be touched by a man like him who was capable and had been so helpful. But that was all it could ever be¨Cjust a fleeting attraction.
Once she returned to the Sumners, she would bury those feelings deep inside her, never to be seen again. Her rtionship with Damon couldn¡¯t and wouldn¡¯t continue.
As her words echoed, an oppressive silence enveloped the room.
After what felt like an eternity, though it might have been just seconds, Damon¡¯s chilling voice broke the silence. ¡°Get out!¡±
His tone was filled with disgust, causing N to quiver. She quickly yanked open the door and fled.
CHAPTER 117
Chapter 117
N went back to the restroom and sshed cold water on her face.
Looking at her red eyes in the mirror, she couldn¡¯t help but smile bittery.
Damon must be disgusted with her now. He would probably be as cold toward her as he was before Maybe that was for the best¨Cthey shouldn¡¯t have any connection at all
After calming down and letting her eyes return to normal, she left the restroom.
When N returned to the table, rk¡¯s gaze immediately fell on her swollen lips
¡°N, what happened to your mouth?¡± rk¡¯s expression was dark, and his tone was icy.
N lookedpletely out of ce, as though she had just indulged in pleasure. With Demon in the restaurant, rk couldn¡¯t help but be suspicious.
N maintained herposure. ¡°I noticed my lipstick was smudged when I looked in the minor, so I cleaned it off. I must have been too rough, which is why my lips are swollen
¡°Really?¡± rk¡¯s eyes were fixed on her, his gaze filled with doubt.
N frowned, her expression growing cold as well. ¡°What¡¯s with the interrogation? If you don¡¯t believe me, that¡¯s one thing, but don¡¯t act like you¡¯re questioning a criminal
Seeing that N remained unflustered and even defiant, rk pushed aside his suspicions. ¡°N, I¡¯m sorry. I was just concerned, and that made me sound aggressive.¡±
N gave a coldugh. ¡°That¡¯s not ¡®concern but an interrogation.¡±
With that, she grabbed her bag and turned to leave.
As she reached the restaurant¡¯s entrance, rk ran after her. ¡°N, I¡¯m sorry. I was out of line. Please forgive me this time.¡±
N remained silent and cold, but she stopped walking
¡°You know how my uncle is¡ I¡¯m worried about what he might do. When he goes mad, no one can stop him,¡± rk said.Content is property of N?velDrama.Org.
N looked down, filled with scorn. Wasn¡¯t rk the same when he lost his temper?
¡°I¡¯ll keep my distance from him, but if you keep using me without cause, I won¡¯t tolerate it,¡± she asserted.
Seeing her soften a bit, rk finally rxed and quickly promised, ¡°I won¡¯t do it again.¡±
Since N had just agreed to move back, he didn¡¯t want anything to ruin their rtionship.
As they were talking, a group of people in suits walked out of the restaurant. Leading them was Damon, his face dark and radiating a dangerous aura.
rk frowned and wanted to move in front of N, but Damon didn¡¯t even nce at them. He got into his car and left.
rk furrowed his brow, feeling that something was off about Damon¡¯s mood He brushed off assuming it was just a business deal gone wrong
¡°N, let me take you home.¡±
¡°Mm.¡± N¡¯s expression was indifferent, but her hands glenched at her sides
After dropping N off downstairs, rk looked reluctant. Wyle, I really don¡¯t want to let you go Wify don¡¯t you move back in tonight? I¡¯ll have the maide over tomorrow to pack up your things
Seeing his eagerness, N frowned. ¡°No. I don¡¯t like others handling my things¡±
rk knew her well enough to ept her decision. ¡°Alright then.¡±
¡°By the way, even though I agreed to move back, I want us to sleep in separate rooms. When you¡¯ve resolved things with your mistress, I¡¯ll consider moving back into the bedroom. Until then, you can¡¯t be intimate with me without my permission,¡± N dem
CHAPTER 118
+25
As soon as N finished speaking, rk immediately agreed. His main priority was getting N back by his side. Everything else could be dealt withter.
¡°Ny?a, don¡¯t worry. I promise I won¡¯t overstep any boundaries. I swear.¡±
N had heard these empty promises from him many times before and didn¡¯t take them seriously.
Since she was going back, she was determined to protect herself. If rk tried to force himself on her, she wouldn¡¯t let him get away with it.
¡°Okay, I¡¯m heading back now. Drive safe,¡± she said.
Over the next two days, N rested and packed her things at home.
On the day she was set to move, Vrie suddenly came to visit.
Seeing N unharmed, Vrie sighed in relief.
However, her expression soon turned troubled. ¡°N, why didn¡¯t you tell me about being kidnapped?!¡±
Noticing Vrie¡¯s disapproving look, N exined, ¡°I thought you were going through a rough time, and I didn¡¯t want to add to your stress. Since I¡¯m fine, I didn¡¯t tell you.¡±
Vrie red at her. ¡°How could you keep something like this from me? If I didn¡¯t know someone working at the police station, I might still be in the dark!¡±
¡®I¡¯m sorry. I should have told you. I promise I won¡¯t hide anything like this again.¡±
¡®Is there going to be a next time?¡± Vrie asked.
¡®No, I mean I¡¯ll inform you of any major issues immediately in the future,¡± N rified.
Vrie gave a reluctant huff at N¡¯s sincere expression. ¡°That¡¯s better. But are you really okay?¡±
¡°Yeah, just some minor injuries. Nothing serious.¡±
¡°That¡¯s good.¡± Vrie then noticed the packed bags and boxes in the living room and frowned. ¡°You¡¯re moving?¡±
¡°Yes.¡± N nodded and told Vrie about her n to move back to the vi,
Vrie¡¯s expression turned extremely grim. ¡°N, are you crazy? rk cheated and got another woman pregnant, and you still want to go back? Are you out of your mind?¡±
N understood Vrie¡¯s disbelief. If someone had told her ten days ago that she would be moving back to rk¡¯s vi, she would have thought they were insane too.
¡°Vrie, I have reasons for moving back that I can¡¯t share with you right now,¡± N said,
The Harris Pharmaceuticals incident involved too many people. Investigating it could interfere with many interests and lead to unexpected dangers, so it would be better if fewer people knew.
¡°What could possibly make you go back to that jerk? Don¡¯t tell me you still have feelings for him?!¡± Vrie
asked,
N was about to deny it when she noticed a gray jacket sh by at the door. The words she was about to say changed direction.
¡°Actually, I still have some feelings for him. This move is conditional¨Cif he¡¯s willing to cut ties with his mistress, I-¡±
¡°Enough!¡± Vrie interrupted sternly. ¡°I thought you were someone who could handle rtionships with maturity. I was wrong. If you want to go back and suffer, I can¡¯t stop you. But let me tell you: that jerk will never change!¡±
¡°Ms. Weir, are you talking about me?¡± rk¡¯s cold voice came from the doorway, his gaze icy as he
looked at Vrie.
Vrie sneered. ¡°I didn¡¯t expect you to be so self¨Caware. Yes, I¡¯m talking about you, you scum!¡±
rk¡¯s expression darkened, and he exuded menace.Content is property of N?velDrama.Org.
N looked at him indifferently. ¡°Since you¡¯re here, you can start by helping me move these things downstairs.¡±
CHAPTER 119
Upon seeing ispletely different attitude toward rk¨Cno longer the cold and distant demeanor she once had¨CValerie¡¯s eyes shed with frustration.
¡°H, I hope you won¡¯t regret your decision today¡± she said.
With that, Vne turned and walked away, testing the might lose her temper if she stayed any longer.
How had N gone from being fine when she moved out previously to bing so infatuated in less than a month?
Fuming in her car, Vrie was about to start the engine when she suddenly had a troubling thought. When she had asked N if she still had feelings for rk, N had hesitated,
Moreover, her gaze toward rk had been devoid of the previous affection and warmth¨Calmost indifferent
Could it be that N had some unavoidable reason for moving back?
Vrle decided she would talk to her again in the near future.
111
After Vrie left, rk said, ¡°Vrie is always bad mouthing me and ruining our rtionship. You should have less contact with her in the future¡±
N frowned and replied coldly, ¡°She¡¯s my friend. Whether she¡¯s good or bad isn¡¯t your concern. Besides, she¡¯s not wrong, is she?
rk¡¯s eyes shed with anger as N defended Vrie. Was he not as important to her as a friend? But, realizing he was indeed at fault, he couldn¡¯t argue back strongly,
Seeing N turn back to her packing and not intending to engage with him, he hesitated but walked over
to her.
¡°N, I¡¯m sorry, I was too emotional earlier. I shouldn¡¯t have spoken ill of your friend,¡± he said.
N¡¯s previously cold expression softened slightly. She nodded and said, ¡°Yes, Vrie is my best friend. I hope you can respect her.¡±
After what happened today, rk¡¯s dislike for Vrie was deep¨Cseated,
However, he knew it was unwise to argue with N about her right now. He nned to address the issue of Vrieter, once N had forgiven him.
¡°Alright, I¡¯ll listen to my wife.¡±
N¡¯s gaze remained calm as she looked down.
¡°Oh, by the way, we need to move quickly. Grandma and Grandpa have invited us for dinner tonight,¡± rk mentioned.
N¡¯s curiosity was piqued. The Sumner elders were known for their quiet lifestyle and rarely invited younger family members over except for their monthly family dinners.
+25
¡°Why the sudden invitation?¡± she asked.
rk smiled. ¡°Grandma wants to introduce a potential girlfriend to Uncle Damon. She¡¯s afraid the girl might feel shy being alone, so she thought it would be good for you to join them for dinner since you¡¯re around the same age. Looks like you¡¯re helping out again.¡±? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org.
N was distracted, nearly dropping the photo frame she was holding.
After a few seconds, she managed a smile. ¡°That¡¯s good. If Grandma is introducing someone, she must be carefully chosen.¡±
¡°Of course. She¡¯s the daughter of Builders Property¡¯s boss. She just returned from studying abroad,¡± rk mentioned.
The owner of Builders Property had amassed a fortune through real estate before shifting hispany¡¯s resources to the new energy vehicle industry.
Thepany had thrived, and now his worth was over ten billion. His daughter was a suitable match for Damon, which exined why the Sumner elders were so eager.
Seeing that N remainedposed, rk looked down thoughtfully.
Could it be that N had never been attracted to Damon at all?
CHAPTER 120
Chapter 120
Damon was reviewing documents in his office at Prospectus Technology when his personal phone suddenly rang.
He answered, and Marie¡¯s booming voice came through. ¡°Damon,e home for dinner tonight.¡± Damon nced at the pile of unfinished documents and immediately refused. ¡°I¡¯m busy.¡±N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content.
¡°No matter what, you must make time tonight. Otherwise, I¡¯ll go to your office and drag you home myself,¡± Marie warned.
Marie¡¯smanding tone left Damon feeling helpless.
¡°There¡¯s too much to do today. I really can¡¯t make it,¡± he said.
¡°No excuses. You muste back for dinner. Even with your busy schedule, you can always spare time for a meal,¡± Marie insisted.
Without giving Damon a chance to respond, Marie hung up.
By the time N and rk had moved N¡¯s things back to the vi, it was already past 4:00 p.m.
After taking a shower and changing clothes, they headed to the Sumner residence.
As rk pulled up to the entrance, Damon was about to walk in. Hearing the car, Damon turned around, his eyes narrowing slightly upon seeing the license te. His expression became distant.
N noticed Damon first from inside the car and subconsciously tightened her grip on the seatbelt. rk also saw Damon, and his gaze darkened. ¡°Let¡¯s get out.¡±
As soon as N stepped out of the car, rk walked over and took her hand.
At that moment, N¡¯s skin crawled. If Damon hadn¡¯t been watching, she would have pulled away from rk¡¯s touch.
Noticing N¡¯spliance, rk smiled and led her toward Damon. ¡°Uncle Damon, what a coincidence.¡±
¡°Mm.¡± Damon¡¯s gaze passed over their joined hands before settling on N¡¯s face. ¡°Why aren¡¯t you saying hello?¡±
N flushed with embarrassment. She had assumed that Damon would ignore her after what had happened in the restaurant. However, she didn¡¯t expect him to make things difficult in front of rk.
She bit her lip and murmured, ¡°Uncle Damon.¡±
Damon¡¯s gaze lingered on her red lips for a moment before he turned away coldly.
Noting Damon¡¯s frosty attitude toward N, rk was slightly surprised but quickly masked it with a smile. ¡°Uncle Damon, N is quite shy. You might scare her like that.¡±
¡°If she¡¯s scared, she shouldn¡¯t have been brought along,¡± Damon retorted.
With that, Damon turned and walked away.
+25
Watching his retreating figure, N felt a wave of indescribable sadness. From the look he gave her, it was clear he genuinely disliked her.
Although this was the oue she wanted, she felt no joy at all.
As rk led N into the living room, Damon was already seated on the sofa, talking to Richard and
Marie.
Upon seeing the smiles on Richard and Marie¡¯s faces, rk¡¯s gaze darkened.
No matter how hard he tried, their attitude toward him was always lukewarm, unlike the enthusiasm they showed Damon.
¡°Grandpa, Grandma,¡± the couple greeted.
Marie looked at rk and N with a smile. ¡°rk, N, you¡¯re here. Have a seat. Ms. Hulle will be here shortly.¡±
After exchanging greetings with the elders, N took a seat next to rk but kept a slight distance from
him.
Marie didn¡¯t pay much attention to them. After all, their presence was merely a formality for tonight.
¡°Damon, do you remember what I told you earlier? Be attentive to Ms. Hulle tonight, or I won¡¯t forgive you!¡±
Damon¡¯s peripheral vision caught sight of N, who was staring at the floor, lost in thought.
Noticing herck of reaction to Marie¡¯s words, Damon exuded a chilly aura.
CHAPTER 121
Just a momentter, however, a trace of mockery shed in Damon¡¯s
eyes.
N had made it clear that she had no feelings for him. If he continued to pursue her, it would be nothing more than wishful thinking on his part.
¡°I got it,¡± Damon replied.
Marie had been about to persuade him further but was taken aback and looked at him with suspicion. She asked, ¡°You¡¯re not nning anything bad, are you?¡±Content is property of N?velDrama.Org.
Damon stayed quiet.
Seeing his silence, Marie frowned and was about to speak when footsteps echoed from the doorway.
¡°Madam Summer, Ms. Hulle has arrived.¡±
Everyone in the living room looked up to see a young woman in her 20s
walk in.
Erin Hulle, with her delicate features, was dressed in a light yellow spaghetti¨Cstrap dress. Her short hair grazed her corbones. With her light makeup and elegant demeanor, she exuded a charm that was hard.
to ignore.
Even N, who had seen many beautiful women, couldn¡¯t help but be impressed by Erin¡¯s appearance.
Marie¡¯s face lit up with a warm smile as she stood up and said, ¡°Erin,e sit by me.¡±
Erin smiled and gracefully walked over to sit next to Marie.
After a bit of small talk, Marie seemed even more pleased with her, almost ready to arrange Damon and Erin¡¯s engagement on the spot.
¡°Oh, let me introduce you. This is my son, who¡¯s almost 30 and still unmarried,¡± Marie said, her tone full of disdain.
Following Marie¡¯s gaze, Erin looked over with a reserved smile. She greeted, ¡°Hello, Mr. Damon. I¡¯ve heard that you founded Prospectus Technology in your 20s. My father always speaks highly of you.¡±
Erin had noticed Damon the moment she walked in.
Initially, she had been displeased with her parents arranging this blind date and nned to brush it off and decler. However, after seeing Damon in person, she found herself intrigued.
His calm demeanor and aloof air were deeply attractive to her. She had to have this man.
Damon¡¯s expression remained unchanged, his gaze toward Erin cold. He greeted her back, ¡°Hello, Ms. Hulle.¡±
Sensing his indifference, Erin became even more determined to win
him over.
With everyone present, Marie called them to dinner. She introduced Erin to rk and N during the dinner, but Erin paid little attention, focusing almost entirely on Damon.
Once everyone was seated, Marie instructed the service staff to serve.
the dishes.
Throughout the meal, rk attentively served N, while Damon remained cold and aloof, making no effort to assist Erin.
That caused Marie to frown and nag, Damon, don¡¯t just focus on your own meal. Help Erin with some dishes she can¡¯t reach.¡±
Damon frowned and was about to refuse when he noticed rk leaning close to N, whispering something that made her smile. His gaze darkened instantly.
He turned to Erin, his expression suddenly softening, and asked, ¡°What would you like to have, Ms. Hulle?¡±
Although Erin was surprised by his change in demeanor, she didn¡¯t
show it as she answered, ¡°Anything is fine with me.¡±
Damon nodded, reached for the te of fish that rk had just handed to N, and ced it in front of Erin.
The entire dining room fell silent.
CHAPTER 122
Erin¡¯s smile stiffened slightly, but before she could say anything, Marie mmed her cutlery onto the table and chided, ¡°Damon, is that how you. serve food?!¡±
She had wanted him to help Erin with the dishes to help them bond, but he nearly went so far as to ce the whole te in front of her. If word got out, it would surely offend the Hulles.
Damon smiled at Marie. ¡°Mom, if you know I¡¯m bad at this, don¡¯t make me do it.¡±
Marie was fuming and about to explode, but Erin quickly intervened.¡± It¡¯s fine. I actually like fish, and it¡¯s more convenient this way. No need to keep troubling him to serve me.¡±
Seeing Erin¡¯s willingness to smooth things over, Marie beamed with satisfaction, growing even fonder of her.
¡°Erin, you¡¯re so considerate. This brat only knows how to make me angry. After dinner, take her home,¡± she told Damon.
Damon frowned, about to refuse, but Erin spoke first. ¡°There¡¯s no need. I drove myself here.¡±
She could sense Damon¡¯sck of interest in her, and forcing him to drive her home wouldn¡¯t help. It would be better to retreat and advanceter.
With Builders Property and Prospectus Technology about to cooperate soon, she¡¯d have plenty of opportunities to get closer to him.
Marie thought Damon¡¯s attitude had upset Erin, so she red at him.
Damon ignored her, his expression remaining indifferent. After all, he had never agreed to this blind date. Marie had arranged it on her own. If he had known the dinner was a matchmaking attempt, he wouldn¡¯t have
.
Erin¡¯s gaze fell on the couple opposite her. Seeing how attentively rk cared for N, she couldn¡¯t help but remark, ¡°Mr. rk is really good to Ms. N.¡±
rk peeled a shrimp and ced it on N¡¯s te, then looked at Erin with a teasing smile. ¡°No need to envy. Once you and Uncle Damon are together, he¡¯ll treat you just as well.¡±
Erin nced at Damon¡¯s indifferent face, doubting he was the type to dote on a woman like that.
As expected, Damon coldly replied, ¡°Don¡¯t assume everyone is like you. And if I¡¯m not mistaken, you didn¡¯t always treat her this well. Did you do something to feel guilty about?¡±
rk¡¯s smile froze, and his gaze turned icy as he looked at Damon.
The unusual tension between them made Erin frown, sensing something unsaid.
After a moment, rk pulled N closer and smiled. ¡°You¡¯re overthinking it, Uncle Damon. N and I are very close.¡±
N lowered her head, suppressing the urge to push away rk¡¯s arm around her. She knew that if she wanted to stay with him, she couldn¡¯t always appear cold and distant. Otherwise, he would start to question her reasons for returning.
Damon chuckled. ¡°If you¡¯re so close, why did she move out?¡±
Marie looked at N in surprise, her brows furrowing. N had moved
out?
In truth, Marie wasn¡¯t entirely satisfied with N as a granddaughter¨Cin-Content ? N?velDrama.Org 2024.
Jaw.
Before N and rk married, the Jaystons had already gone
bankrupt. Marie suspected that N had married into the Sumners for their money.
However, rk had knelt at the front gate for three days, insisting he
would marry no one else, and no one could dissuade him. Finally, Marie and Richard relented.
After the wedding, N had been well¨Cbehaved and sensible, which gradually reduced Marie¡¯s bias against her.
Upon hearing that N had moved out now, Marie found her dissatisfaction resurfacing.
CHAPTER 123
If this were to get out, people might start saying she was being mistreated in the Sumners.
rk¡¯s smile deepened as he looked at Damon and said, word by word, ¡± Uncle Damon, you probably don¡¯t know yet, but N moved back today.¡±
Damon widened his eyes and turned his icy gaze to N, who had remained silent.
He wanted to ask her if she really intended to forgive rk just like that, but he couldn¡¯t. He was only her husband¡¯s uncle. Beyond that, they had no other rtionship. What right did he have to question her?
Even though N kept her head down, she could feel Damon¡¯s gaze on her. It sent a chill through her entire body, making her shiver involuntarily.
After several seconds, Damon chuckled. ¡°Well, that¡¯s good to hear.¡±
He looked away, a smile on his face, but his eyes were cold.
rk¡¯s gaze shed with triumph. ¡°Uncle Damon, you should focus on your own love life. I think Ms. Hulle and you are quite a match, don¡¯t you think, N?¡±
He turned to N, seeking her opinion.
N forced a smile and nodded as she said, ¡°Yes, Ms. Hulle is elegant and beautiful. She and Uncle Damon do seem well¨Csuited.¡±
¡°Then let¡¯s take your word for it, Ms. N,¡± Erin said with a smile, though her gaze was scrutinizing N.
She couldn¡¯t shake the feeling that Damon treated his niece¨Cinw differently.
The rest of the meal was somewhat silent, with everyone lost in their
thoughts.Content is property of N?velDrama.Org.
Near the end of dinner, rk received a call from his secretary, informing him of an issue at thepany that needed his attention.
He nned to take N with him, but Marie interjected, ¡°You go handle the work. N will stay here. I want to talk to her.¡±
After a moment¡¯s hesitation, rk told N, ¡°Wait for me here. I¡¯lle back to pick you up once I¡¯ve dealt with the issue.¡±
N nodded. ¡°Okay.¡±
Seeing his worried expression, Marie asked with a frown, ¡°What? You don¡¯t trust her here?¡±
¡°No, Grandma, I¡¯ll head to thepany now,¡± rk answered.
Shortly after rk left, Erin also got up to leave.
Marie smiled warmly at her and said, ¡°Erin,e visit us often.¡±
¡°Yes, I¡¯ll be sure to visit regrly. I hope I won¡¯t be a nuisance,¡± Erin replied.
¡°Not at all. If it weren¡¯t sote, I¡¯d ask you to stay longer. Damon, see Erin out,¡± Marie said.
After Damon and Erin disappeared through the doorway, Marie turned to N with a serious expression and said, ¡°Come with me.¡±
Half an hourter, N followed Marie out of the study.
¡°Remember what I just told you?¡± Marie asked.
N lowered her gaze and nodded. ¡°Yes, Grandma, I remember.¡±
¡°Good. Now that you¡¯re part of the Sumners, your actions reflect on us. It¡¯s normal for couples to argue, but if it gets out, it will ember
Sumners,¡± Marie reminded her.
¡°Yes, Grandma,¡± N replied.
Seeing N¡¯s obedience, Marie didn¡¯t say anything more and turned to go back to her bedroom.
N walked out of the living room, nning to wait for rk in the garden pavilion.
The garden was dimly lit, with only a few lights. As she reached the pavilion, she realized someone was already there.
It was Damon!
His expression was icy, and he looked unhappy.
N frowned and was about to leave when Damon¡¯s cold voice stopped her. ¡°Come here!¡±
CHAPTER 124
N stood still, sensing a dangerous vibe from Damon that made her instinctively want to flee.
¡°Uncle Damon, it¡¯s dark here, and it¡¯s not appropriate for us to be alone. I¡¯ll head back,¡± she said, turning to leave.
As she took a few steps, though, she heard footsteps behind her. Panicking, she tried to quicken her pace but stumbled and tripped.
She lost her bnce, but a strong hand grabbed her waist and pulled
her back.
N fell into Damon¡¯s arms. She quickly pushed him away and stepped back.
Damon narrowed his eyes, the menace in them intensifying as he remarked, ¡°You use people and then discard them. You¡¯re quite skilled at that.¡±
N bit her lip, feeling embarrassed. ¡°Uncle Damon, thank you for just now, but we should keep our distance.¡±
Damon stepped closer, and N instinctively tried to retreat but found herself against the door of the greenhouse. She had nowhere to go.
When they were so close that they could hear each other¡¯s breathing, Damon looked down at her and said, ¡°But I don¡¯t want to keep my
distance.¡±
N took a deep breath, looked up at him, and said, ¡°Uncle Damon, Ms. Hulle is more suitable for you. She¡¯s beautiful and-¡±
Before she could finish, her eyes widened in shock. Damon grabbed her chin and kissed her, swallowing the rest of her words.
N was stunned. For a moment, she waspletely frozen. This was
10
the Sumners¡® home. Was he out of his mind?!
When she regained herposure, she shoved him away and warned,¡± Uncle Damon, have some respect!¡±
Fury filled N as she red at Damon with icy disdain.
¡°If I hear you mention any other woman again, I¡¯ll have to shut you up my way,¡± Damon said, his tone serious.
N clenched her hands at her sides. She turned her gaze away and said coldly, ¡°If you don¡¯t want to hear it, I won¡¯t say it. Can I leave now?¡±Content ? N?velDrama.Org 2024.
If anyone saw her alone with Damon in the middle of the night, who knew what they would think?
Marie already disliked her. If Marie discovered Damon¡¯s feelings for her, who knew what she would do?
Damon¡¯s demeanor grew even colder. ¡°Do you really not want to be around me that much?¡±
¡°Uncle Damon, given our rtionship, is it appropriate for us to be alone, together? You might not be affected, but have you considered what people will say about me?¡±
In the end, N thought Damon¡¯s feelings were just a fleeting
infatuation. If he truly cared about her, he wouldn¡¯t risk her reputation by cornering herte at night.
Damon¡¯s gaze grew even colder as he questioned, ¡°Who dares to speak. ill of you?¡±
N scoffed. ¡°You can¡¯t control what others say.¡±
¡°I think you¡¯re not afraid of others seeing us. You¡¯re afraid rk will see us. Moving back so quickly¨Care you worried that woman will threaten. your position?¡± Damon asked.
N turned her head away, her expression indifferent, as she answered, ¡°Since you know, you shouldn¡¯t be bothering me.¡±
Damon grabbed her chin, forcing her to look at him. His expression was chilling as he dered, ¡°N, I¡¯m not someone you can easily provoke. You should have anticipated the consequences when you first involved me.¡±
¡°I already told you that was an ident,¡± N said.
Damon chuckled. ¡°Let¡¯s say the hotel incident was an ident. But what about the times I saved you? Don¡¯t you think you owe me?¡±
N bit her lip before asking, ¡°What do you want me to do?¡±
¡°That¡¯s for you to decide,¡± Damon replied.
N pushed him away, about to speak, when suddenly a shlight beam illuminated their direction.
CHAPTER 125
¡°Who¡¯s there?¡±
In a split second, Damon pulled N Into the greenhouse and shut the door behind them.
It was pitch ck inside. He pushed her against the door, their bodies. pressed tightly together. One hand rested on her waist, while the other gripped the doorknob, leaving no space between them.
She could hear his steady heartbeat and whispered, ¡°Can you let go¡¡±
Damon leaned in close to her ear, speaking so softly that only she could hear. ¡°Someone¡¯sing. If you don¡¯t want to be discovered, don¡¯t make a sound.¡±
Just then, footsteps approached the greenhouse door.
N¡¯s heart raced as the doorknob turned.
After a few moments of trying and failing to open the door, the person outside sounded puzzled. ¡°What¡¯s wrong with the door? Is it broken?¡±
They lingered a bit longer, but finding nothing unusual, they mumbled something and left.
N finally exhaled in relief and asked, ¡°Can you let go of me now?¡±
Damon released her and was about to speak when N¡¯s phone rang- it was rk.
She was about to answer when Damon said coldly, ¡°If you¡¯re not afraid of him finding out we¡¯re alone in here, go ahead and answer.¡±
N looked at Damon in disbelief. ¡°Uncle Damon, don¡¯t you think you¡¯re being a bit despicable right now?¡±
The Damon tonight felt like a stranger to her, nothing like the man she
thought she knew. She couldn¡¯t understand why he wouldn¡¯t leave her alone.
¡°Do you really think rk will leave that other woman for you? Unless she loses the baby, she¡¯ll always be between you two,¡± Damon said.
This foolish woman could have asked for his help to divorce rk, but instead, she stubbornly chose to go back to him.
¡°No matter what, it has nothing to do with you, does it?¡± N snapped, her voice cold and her hand trembling slightly as she held her phone.
¡°N!¡± Damon¡¯s voice was filled with anger.
N remained calm. ¡°If you want to tell rk that we are together, go ahead. I¡¯m answering the phone.¡±
She answered the call, and rk¡¯s voice came through. ¡°N, why did it take you so long to pick up? I¡¯ll need more time here. Someone from the house will take you back.¡±
N lowered her gaze and replied, ¡°Okay. Don¡¯t worry about me. Focus on your work.¡±
After hanging up, she looked at Damon.
The dim light from her phone illuminated only part of his cold, stern face. She could sense his anger, but regardless of whether she divorced rk, she couldn¡¯t give Damon what he wanted. Instead of continuing this way, it was better to sever tiespletely.
¡°Uncle Damon, if there¡¯s nothing else, I¡¯ll be going,¡± she said. Damon remained silent, but the air around him grew even colder. N didn¡¯t expect him to respond. She opened the door and left.
After that night, Damon stopped seeking N out. Even when they
crossed paths at work, he treated her with indifference, as if they were strangers.
N¡¯s life returned to normal. She thought they would never interact again until Erin unexpectedly approached her a weekter.
At a cafe near Prospectus Technology¡
Erin and N sat across from each other by the window.N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content.
Erin asked, ¡°Ms. N, I feel like Damon is a bit distant with me. Since you¡¯re his niece¨Cinw and work at Prospectus Technology, can you help me? I want to pursue him.¡±
CHAPTER 126
N was momentarily stunned before she looked down and said calmly, ¡°Ms. Hulle, I¡¯m afraid I can¡¯t help you. I¡¯m not close to Uncle Damon.¡±
¡°You¡¯re family. How can you not be close? Ms. N, you¡¯re not unwilling to help me, are you?¡± Erin asked, her gaze probing.
During herst visit to the Sumner residence, Erin had noticed something strange about the way Damon looked at N.
After some reflection, she decided to investigate N further and discovered that N was now working at Prospectus Technology. Erin nned to assess N¡¯s attitude toward Damon.
N excused herself, ¡°Ms. Hulle, it¡¯s not that I don¡¯t want to help you. I really am not close to him. I have unfinished work in theb, so I must go.¡±
With that, she stood up and left.
Erin watched N walk away, a cold glint in her eyes. It seemed N wasn¡¯t going to be easy to deal with, so Erin would need to proceed with
caution.
with
Back in theb, N continued her experiments.
Time flew by, and she didn¡¯t realize it was already past 6:00 p.m. until rk called. ¡°N, I¡¯m downstairs at Prospectus Technology. I¡¯ll pick
you up.
N packed her things and headed to the elevator.N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content.
Prospectus Technology¡¯s workday ended at 5:00 p.m., and Damon didn¡¯t encourage overtime, so the office was nearly
tv at
this hour.
When the elevator arrived from the top floor, N saw Damon and Erin inside. She hesitated for a moment.
¡°Mr. Sumner, Ms. Hulle,¡± she greeted
Erin smiled and nodded at her, while Damon¡¯s expression remained cold, as though he were deliberately ignoring her.
N had noticed that when the elevator doors first opened, Damon had been chatting with Erin, a faint smile on his face.
It seemed he truly disliked N, but this was the reaction Erin had been hoping for.
Stepping into the elevator, N turned her back to them.
Erin¡¯s soft voice broke the silence. ¡°Mr. Damon, I know of a newly opened restaurant that¡¯s quite good. How about we go there for dinner tonight?¡±
¡°Sure, you decide,¡± Damon replied in his deep voice.
N couldn¡¯t help but sense a hint of warmth in it.
If he and Erin ended up together, they would make a good match.
Ignoring the difort in her heart, N focused on the floor number. For the first time, the descent from the eighth floor to the first seemed interminable.
Her subtle movements didn¡¯t escape Damon¡¯s notice, and his gaze grew even colder.
Finally, the elevator reached the first floor.
As N stepped out, she heard Erin¡¯s cheerful voice. ¡°Mr. rk and Ms. N seem to get along well. He even picks her up from work.¡±
The elevator doors closed, heading to the basement level. N didn¡¯t
hear Damon¡¯s response, but he likely agreed with Erin.
rk¡¯s car was parked by the curb outside Prospectus Technology.
N walked over, opened the door, and sat down.
rk handed her a bouquet of sunflowers.
¡°I remember you used to love sunflowers. Did I get it right this time?¡± he asked.
Seeing the careful look in his eyes, N felt no emotional stirrings. Since the time she had been kidnapped and called rk for help¨Conly to have Jordyn answer¨Cshe had felt nothing for him.
She smiled and took the flowers. ¡°Thank you. I really like them.¡±
CHAPTER 127
N was momentarily stunned before she looked down and said calmly, ¡°Ms. Hulle, I¡¯m afraid I can¡¯t help you. I¡¯m not close to Uncle Damon.¡±
¡°You¡¯re family. How can you not be close? Ms. N, you¡¯re not unwilling to help me, are you?¡± Erin asked, her gaze probing.
During herst visit to the Sumner residence, Erin had noticed something strange about the way Damon looked at N.
After some reflection, she decided to investigate N further and discovered that N was now working at Prospectus Technology. Erin nned to assess N¡¯s attitude toward Damon.Content ? N?velDrama.Org 2024.
N excused herself, ¡°Ms. Hulle, it¡¯s not that I don¡¯t want to help you. I really am not close to him. I have unfinished work in theb, so I must go.¡±
With that, she stood up and left.
Erin watched N walk away, a cold glint in her eyes. It seemed N wasn¡¯t going to be easy to deal with, so Erin would need to proceed with
caution.
with
Back in theb, N continued her experiments.
Time flew by, and she didn¡¯t realize it was already past 6:00 p.m. until rk called. ¡°N, I¡¯m downstairs at Prospectus Technology. I¡¯ll pick
you up.
N packed her things and headed to the elevator.
Prospectus Technology¡¯s workday ended at 5:00 p.m., and Damon didn¡¯t encourage overtime, so the office was nearly
tv at
this hour.
When the elevator arrived from the top floor, N saw Damon and Erin inside. She hesitated for a moment.
¡°Mr. Sumner, Ms. Hulle,¡± she greeted
Erin smiled and nodded at her, while Damon¡¯s expression remained cold, as though he were deliberately ignoring her.
N had noticed that when the elevator doors first opened, Damon had been chatting with Erin, a faint smile on his face.
It seemed he truly disliked N, but this was the reaction Erin had been hoping for.
Stepping into the elevator, N turned her back to them.
Erin¡¯s soft voice broke the silence. ¡°Mr. Damon, I know of a newly opened restaurant that¡¯s quite good. How about we go there for dinner tonight?¡±
¡°Sure, you decide,¡± Damon replied in his deep voice.
N couldn¡¯t help but sense a hint of warmth in it.
If he and Erin ended up together, they would make a good match.
Ignoring the difort in her heart, N focused on the floor number. For the first time, the descent from the eighth floor to the first seemed interminable.
Her subtle movements didn¡¯t escape Damon¡¯s notice, and his gaze grew even colder.
Finally, the elevator reached the first floor.
As N stepped out, she heard Erin¡¯s cheerful voice. ¡°Mr. rk and Ms. N seem to get along well. He even picks her up from work.¡±
The elevator doors closed, heading to the basement level. N didn¡¯t
hear Damon¡¯s response, but he likely agreed with Erin.
rk¡¯s car was parked by the curb outside Prospectus Technology.
N walked over, opened the door, and sat down.
rk handed her a bouquet of sunflowers.
¡°I remember you used to love sunflowers. Did I get it right this time?¡± he asked.
Seeing the careful look in his eyes, N felt no emotional stirrings. Since the time she had been kidnapped and called rk for help¨Conly to have Jordyn answer¨Cshe had felt nothing for him.
She smiled and took the flowers. ¡°Thank you. I really like them.¡±
CHAPTER 128
Nughed lightly, her gaze indifferent as she said, ¡°Do you even believe what you¡¯re saying? If you really didn¡¯t want to see her, you wouldn¡¯t have allowed her to keep the baby or stay in the city. With your power, you could have easily taken care of that.¡±
¡°The baby¡ I had no choice but to let her keep it¡¡± rk exined.
N lowered her gaze and spoke slowly. ¡°You don¡¯t need to exin yourself to me. I don¡¯t want to argue about it anymore. If you want to see her, I can leave and take a taxi home.¡±
As soon as she finished speaking, the ck Cayenne sped off.
Less than half an hourter, they arrived at the vi.
N was about to get out when rk said coldly, ¡°N, remember, you¡¯re the one pushing me toward her.¡±
¡°If you really want to be with her, I won¡¯t me you. I came back prepared to ept her and the child,¡± N replied.
rk didn¡¯t look at her and said coldly, ¡°Get out!¡±
N got out of the car. As soon as she closed the door, rk sped away. Watching his car disappear, a trace of mockery shed in her
eyes.
rk still couldn¡¯t let go of Jordyn, yet he wanted N to be the bad guy.
N wondered when he had be so despicable. She could hardly recognize him anymore.
Taking a deep breath, she turned and walked into the vi.
Patricia hurried over and took the flowers from her, asking, ¡°Mrs. Sumner, should I put these flowers in your bedroom?¡±
¡°No, just leave them in the living room,¡± N replied.
She didn¡¯t want to be reminded of rk every time she saw the flowers in her bedroom.
¡°Okay. By the way, where¡¯s Mr. Sumner? He asked the kitchen to
prepare your favorite soup for tonight¡¯s dinner,¡± Patricia inquired.
¡°Jordyn isn¡¯t feeling well. He went to be with her. I¡¯ll go change. Prepare dinner,¡± N said.
Patricia looked at her, surprised that she didn¡¯t seem upset. She had assumed N had returned to win rk back from Jordyn, but now it
seemed otherwise.
Lost in thought, Patricia didn¡¯t notice N heading upstairs.
N changed into casual clothes in her room.
When she came back down, she found Cindy sitting on the living room
sofa, looking angry.
Seeing N, Cindy sneered and threw a document at her feet.
¡°No wonder you haven¡¯t gotten pregnant in three years. It turns out you¡¯re a barren hen!¡± Cindy snapped.
N frowned as a sense of dread crept over her. She picked up the document and opened it.
As N¡¯s face grew paler, Cindy said coldly, ¡°Since you can¡¯t have children, make way for someone who can. I won¡¯t let my son waste his life with a woman who can¡¯t bear children!¡±
23
Ignoring Cindy, N stared at the medical report in disbelief, her hands trembling.
After marrying, they hadn¡¯t used protection. N had assumed this was because she was consciously avoiding fertile periods, but it turned out she was unable to conceive.Content is property of N?velDrama.Org.
She forced herself to stay calm, wondering if the report was a
fabrication orchestrated by Cindy to pressure her into divorcing rk.
¡°Where did you get this report?¡± she asked.
Cindy sneered. ¡°From the hospital where you had your checkup, of course! Do you think I¡¯d fake something like this?¡±
Her eyes filled with disdain as she continued. ¡°If you don¡¯t believe me, call the hospital and ask them to send another copy.¡±
N pressed her lips together and sat down across from Cindy, cing the report on the table. ¡°If you want me to divorce rk, you should talk to him, not me.¡±
Cindy gritted her teeth. ¡°You think I won¡¯t? Once he knows you¡¯re barren, he¡¯ll divorce you immediately!¡±
¡°I hope so,¡± N replied.
Cindy scowled, not expecting N to be so defiant even after learning she couldn¡¯t have children.
She growled, ¡°N, don¡¯t forget that you rely on the Sumners for everything. Without us, you¡¯re nothing!¡±
CHAPTER 129
N remained unfazed by Cindy¡¯s words. Had she not be a housewife after marrying rk, she could have maintained her current. lifestyle on her own.
¡°Mrs. Sumner, didn¡¯t you know? I didn¡¯t want toe back. It was your son who forced me. Why don¡¯t you go tell him to kick me out?¡± N
said.
Cindy¡¯s face flushed red with anger as she pointed at N. ¡°You!¡±
Finding it pointless to argue with Cindy, N stood up and said, ¡± Patricia, I¡¯m hungry. Let¡¯s start dinner,¡±
Seeing N¡¯s tant disregard, Cindy was livid and immediately called rk toin. To her dismay, he coldly told her to leave the vi and refused to take any more of her calls, not even giving her a chance to tell him that N couldn¡¯t have children.
Cindy was nearly driven to a heart attack by the frustration.
He had truly forsaken his mother for his wife!
After Cindy left, N called the hospital where she had her checkup and requested a copy of her report. When the report arrived, it was identical to the one Cindy had given her.
Staring at her phone in disbelief, N decided to get a second opinion. and contacted another health center to schedule a new exam.
After making the appointment, she set the matter aside for now and went to have dinner.
After dinner, N watched TV on the sofa for a while before heading to her room around 9:00 p.m.
As soon as she entered her bedroom, her phone rang. Noting that it was the private investigator she had hired, she walked out to the balcony to take the call.
¡°Ms. Jayston, I haven¡¯t found any useful information about the Harris Pharmaceuticals incident from six years ago yet. However, I did locate an ex¨Cemployee who seems to know something but won¡¯t talk. I¡¯ll keep trying.¡±
N¡¯s eyes narrowed. ¡°Okay. If you need more funds, let me know. I¡¯ll handle it.¡±
¡°Do you still want me to keep an eye on your husband and Jordyn?¡± the private investigator asked.
¡°No, focus on the Harris Pharmaceuticals incident for now,¡± N replied, her expression serious.
The employees who knew about the incident at Harris Pharmaceuticals seemed to have vanished. If there was a cover¨Cup, it would be difficult
to uncover.
Suddenly, she thought of someone and told the private investigator, Look for a man named Godric Wyatt. He was the assistant manager of the procurement department at Harris Pharmaceuticals. He might know something.¡±
Godric had worked under Clement and had not been heard from since Harris Pharmaceuticals went bankrupt. Rumor had it that he had returned to his hometown. He might have some information.? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org.
¡°Understood, Ms. Jayston. I¡¯ll look into it right away,¡± replied the private investigator.
After hanging up, N took a deep breath.
To uncover.
truth, she knew she needed to start with Cyrus.
However, given rk¡¯s strained rtionship with Cyrus, getting close to him would not be easy.
As she pondered this, her phone buzzed with a message from Vrie, surprising her.
She opened it to find photos of rk and Jordyn in a bar¡¯s private room. Despite the dim lighting, their intimacy was evident.
N couldn¡¯t believe that Jordyn would go to a bar while pregnant. Then again, with rk by her side, she probably felt safe.
Vrie sent a voice message next. ¡°What¡¯s with rk bringing that woman to a bar? He¡¯s calling her his secretary. It¡¯s infuriating. Are you really going to stick with this guy? Dump him already!¡±
N lowered her gaze, about to respond, when Vrie suddenly called her on video.
Answering, N was shocked by what she saw.
In the dimly lit bar, Damon had punched rk to the floor with an icy expression.
¡°OMG! Damon is so cool! He did what I always wanted to do! Is he on a purge? If so, he should just beat that jerk to death!¡± Vrie gushed.
CHAPTER 130
N widened her eyes and quickly asked, ¡°Which bar are you at?¡±
¡°The one on Tancy Street, where we went before. Are youing?¡± Vrie asked.
¡°Yes,¡± N answered, hung up, and hurriedly changed clothes to go out.
As N started the car, she hesitated. She worried that showing up might escte the situation, especially since she wasn¡¯t sure if Damon had hit rk because of her. If it was for another reason, her presence would be pointless and embarrassing.
N doubted Damon would do anything for her after their fallout at the Sumner residence.
After calming herself, N¡¯decided against going.
Just as she returned to her bedroom, her phone rang. It was Vrie. N, I was wrong. Damon wasn¡¯t trying to purge. He was standing up for Erin, who had a conflict with Jordyn at the mall earlier.¡±
N gripped her phone with a bitter smile. It was a good thing she hadn¡¯t rushed over¨Cshe would have made a fool of herself.
¡°I see,¡± she replied.
Vrie continued. ¡°But do you think Damon and Erin are dating? He seemed pretty protective of her.¡±
N looked down, her expression indifferent. ¡°Maybe. I don¡¯t know.¡±
¡°Anyway, it made me happy to see rk get punched. When are youing over? I still need to grill you about moving back in. You can¡¯t just brush me off,¡± Vrie said.Content ? N?velDrama.Org 2024.
¡°I¡¯m noting over anymore. I¡¯m tired today. Let¡¯s talkter,¡± N said and hurriedly ended the call.
Putting down the phone, she forced herself to stop thinking about Damon. He and Erin were both single and well¨Cmatched. A woman like Erin seemed suitable for him.
Meanwhile, Erin was in the bar¡¯s private room, holding an ice pack and intending to apply it to Damon¡¯s hand, but he pulled away.
¡°No, thanks. I can do it myself.¡± His voice was cold, a stark contrast to the impulsiveness he had shown when hitting rk. He seemed like a different person.
Over the past few days, Erin had gotten a sense of Damon¡¯s personality and reluctantly handed him the ice pack.
¡°Mr. Damon, you were too impulsive. I was fine, and it was Mr. rk¡¯s secretary who offended me. It¡¯s unfair to hit him,¡± Erin said.
To her, Damon didn¡¯t seem like someone who acted on impulse. His actions felt more like a release of pent¨Cup frustration than an act of
defense.
Damon¡¯s expression remained cold. ¡°He deserved it. He can¡¯t event control his own people.¡±
Sensing something deeper in his words, Erin was about to probe further when the private room door opened.
¡°Mr. Sumner, Ms. Hulle, sorry I¡¯mte,
Erin set aside her questions and smiled at the neer. ¡°We were early. Please, have a seat.¡±
Around 11:00 p.m., N was half¨Casleep when a knocking sound woke her. She frowned, turned on the bedsidemp, and looked toward the
apt
door without moving.
¡°N, open the door. I need to talk to you.¡± rk¡¯s voice sounded from the other side.
N didn¡¯t move or change her expression.
¡°It¡¯ste. Whatever you have to say, let¡¯s discuss it tomorrow,¡± she replied.
rk didn¡¯t respond, but the knocking grew more insistent. It was clear he wouldn¡¯t leave until she opened the door.
N took a deep breath and raised her voice. ¡°rk, if you keep knocking, I¡¯ll move back to my apartment tomorrow.¡±
The knocking stopped abruptly.
N ignored it, turned off themp, and went back to sleep.
The next morning, as N descended the stairs, she saw rk sitting at the dining table with a gloomy expression. His face was bruised and
swollen.
N was taken aback by the severity of rk¡¯s injuries. She sat down at the table, and Patricia quickly brought her breakfast.
When rk realized that N had no intention of inquiring about his injuries, his expression grew colder. ¡°N, can¡¯t you see my injuries? Aren¡¯t you going to ask about them?¡±
N regarded him calmly. ¡°Is it necessary? You probably got hurt while you were with Jordyn. I¡¯m not interested in the details.¡±
rk¡¯s expression darkened, and he nearly crushed the utensils in his grip. He wanted to tell her that Damon had struck him but struggled to find a way to bring it up. He feared that stating it outright would make
CHAPTER 131
Feeling frustrated and aggrieved, rk watched as N finished her breakfast and left the table. As he stared at her retreating figure, he mmed his fork and knife onto the table, startling Patricia, who was seated nearby.
¡°Mr. Sumner, is the breakfast not to your liking?¡± Patricia asked.
rk rose from his seat and departed without responding, hist expression stern.
As soon as he got into his car outside the vi, his phone rang. Seeing that it was Cindy calling, he answered with a frown. ¡°Mom, what¡¯s the matter so early in the morning?¡±Content is property of N?velDrama.Org.
¡°rk, did you know N can¡¯t have children?!¡± Cindy demanded.
rk¡¯s expression turned icy as he asked, ¡°Did Jordyn tell you?¡±
¡°Never mind who told me. If she really can¡¯t have children, you need to divorce her immediately!¡± Cindy insisted.
Hermanding tone made rk¡¯s gaze harden. ¡°Mom, this is between N and me. You don¡¯t get to make decisions about it. Also, I don¡¯t want anyone else in the Sumners to know about this. If it gets out, it won¡¯t benefit me in any way. I hope you understand that.¡±
Cindy was infuriated. ¡°I wouldn¡¯t want to tell anyone! Your aunt is alwaysining about N not having kids. If she finds out N can¡¯t have children, she¡¯ll mock me behind my back!¡±
¡°Just pretend you don¡¯t know. How we handle this is our business,¡± rk said, his tone final.
Upon hearing rk¡¯s warning tone, Cindy¡¯s anger intensified. She was trying to help him, and now he was shutting her out?
mer 131
¡°Fine! If you don¡¯t want me involved, I won¡¯t interfere! But don¡¯te crying to me if you regret itter!¡± With that, Cindy hung up angrily.
rk¡¯s eyes remained cold as he drove directly to Jordyn¡¯s ce.
N parked her car outside her office building and walked to the elevator, where she encountered Erin.
Erin held a file in one hand and a food container in the other, smiling warmly.
¡°Good morning, Ms. N,¡± Erin greeted when she saw N.
N nodded in return. ¡°Good morning, Ms. Hulle.¡±
¡°Have you had breakfast? I brought some, and I don¡¯t think Mr. Damon and I can finish it all. Would you like to join us?¡± Erin invited.
¡°No, thank you. I¡¯ve already eaten,¡± N replied.
Erin looked a bit disappointed. ¡°That¡¯s too bad. I brought breakfast from. Amy¡¯s Shack.¡±
Amy¡¯s Shack had been a popr spot for decades, often requiring at least a month¡¯s wait for average customers. For someone like Erin, though, nothing was out of reach.
N smiled and said, ¡°That is a shame.¡±
They chatted casually until the elevator reached the seventh floor.
As N stepped out, Erin suddenly spoke up. ¡°Ms. N,st night when Mr. Damon and I were at the bar for business, I saw Mr. rk and his secretary there too. They seemed¡ quite intimate.¡±
N instinctively turned back but saw only the elevator doors closing.
As she walked to theb, she reflected on Erin¡¯s words. Was Erin
offering a friendly warning, or did she already know about rk¡¯s affair?
Regardless, N dismissed the concern. She was focused solely on her work and uncovering the truth about the Harris Pharmaceuticals incident from six years ago. Everything else was irrelevant.
Back in theb, she quickly immersed herself in her tasks.
For most people, experiments might be tedious, but N enjoyed the methodical process. It was simpler than dealing with people.
Experiments had only two oues¨Csess or failure.
People, on the other hand, introduced countless variables, and a slight misstep could unintentionally offend someone.
When Erin entered Damon¡¯s office, he was reading documents. Without looking up, he said, ¡°Ms. Hulle, just leave the files on the desk. I¡¯ll review them when I¡¯m free.¡±
Raising an eyebrow, Erin remarked casually, ¡°Mr. Damon, I ran into Ms. N downstairs. She seems unaware of Mr. rk¡¯s affair.¡±
Damon frowned and looked up at her. ¡°Ms. Hulle, this doesn¡¯t concern you, does it?¡±
Seeing the coldness in his eyes, Erin felt her heart sink. Her suspicions were confirmed.
She asked, ¡°Mr. Damon, does Ms. N know you like her?¡±
CHAPTER 132
Damon¡¯s expression turned icy as he looked at Erin and said, ¡°Ms. Hulle, I hope you understand the implications of what you¡¯re saying.¡±
Erin smiled, showing no fear. ¡°Of course I do. I wonder if you understand the consequences of your actions. Coveting your nephew¡¯s wife¨Cif this gets out, you know what will happen to Ms. N.¡±
Damon¡¯s eyes narrowed. ¡°Are you threatening me?¡±
¡°Not at all. I intend to help you,¡± Erin replied.
Damon asked, ¡°Oh? How exactly do you n to help me?¡±
Sensing the cold aura around Damon, Erin took two steps closer and said, ¡°Mr. Damon, you should know that even if Ms. N divorces your nephew, you two can never be together. But if you choose to be with me, I¡¯ll help keep your secret.¡±
Damon let out a coldugh, each word dripping with ice. ¡°Ms. Hulle, I don¡¯t like you and will never be with you.
¡°If this gets out, Prospectus Technology will immediately cancel all contracts with Builders Property and never cooperate again. You should consider if Builders Property can handle those consequences.¡±
Seeing the seriousness in his gaze, Erin realized he meant every word. How was he willing to risk everything with Builders Property just for N?!
An oppressive silence filled the office.
After a long pause, Erin finally spoke. ¡°Rejecting me will be the biggest mistake you ever make.¡±
Marrying her meant gaining control of Builders Property. Many menN?velDrama.Org: owner of this content.
would jump at the chance to be with her, yet Damon was so ungrateful.
Chapter 137
What hurt the most was losing to a woman she deemed inferior in every
way.
Damon¡¯s expression remained unchanged. ¡°Ms. Hulle, I have work to do. You may leave.¡±
Biting her lip, Erin turned and left the office.
The silence that followed was even more stifling, and Damon¡¯s demeanor grew colder.
Spencer knocked and entered. ¡°Mr. Sumner, you¡¯re scheduled to review Ms. Jayston¡¯s experiment progress at ten. Should I-¡±
He
was abruptly cut off by Damon¡¯s cold tone. ¡°I¡¯m not avable. Send Zachary. From now on, he¡¯ll handle all updates on her experiment.¡±
Spencer was surprised. If Damon wasn¡¯t interested, why insist on N working there? The work could have been done at Park Pharmaceuticals just as well.
¡°Understood,¡± he replied.
After Spencer left, Damon took a deep breath, trying to suppress his irritation and focus on his documents. However, he couldn¡¯t concentrate and soon tossed the papers aside, lighting a cigarette in frustration.
At 10:00 a.m., N was separating solutions when Spencer arrived with a few men in suits.
¡°Ms. Jayston, this is Mr. Zachary Keane from Prospectus Technology. He¡¯ll be your new contact for the experiment. Any updates or needs should go through him,¡± Spencer said
N was taken aback and asked, ¡°Mr. Sumner isn¡¯t overseeing this experiment anymore?¡±
She remembered being sent here to ensure Damon could monitor the experiment¡¯s progress.
Spencer nodded. ¡°Yes. Mr. Sumner is busy and won¡¯t be able to follow up on this.¡±
N pressed her lips together, realizing that Damon wasn¡¯t too busy- he simply didn¡¯t want to see her.
A clear separation was probably for the best, sparing them both the awkwardness.
¡°Alright, I understand,¡± she said.
After N briefly updated Zachary on her experiment¡¯s progress, the group of men left.
CHAPTER 133
N added the solution to the sk and began the reaction before sitting down to write her experiment records.
She soon found herself distracted until her phone rang, jolting her back to reality. Seeing that it was rk, she answered. ¡°What¡¯s up?¡±
¡°N, there¡¯s a charity g tonight. Come with me,¡± rk said.
N hesitated for a moment before replying, ¡°Alright. What should I wear?¡±
¡°No need to worry about that. I¡¯ll have my secretary prepare something for you,¡± rk assured her
Since rk was taking care of it, N didn¡¯t dwell on the matter. After confirming the time, she hung up.
Time flew by, and soon it was the end of the workday.
N finished filling out her experiment records, cleaned the equipment, put everything back in ce, and locked theb before leaving.
N and rk arrived at the g around 7:00 p.m.
After getting out of the car, rk asked her to link arms with him and whispered, ¡°You know most of the people here. I¡¯ll be discussing business, so just mingle and chat.¡±
¡°Got it,¡± she replied.
rk nced at N.
She was wearing a white strapless silk gown adorned with lifelike white
silk roses on the bodice, which highlighted her delicate corbones.
A small, exquisite diamond ne glittered around her neck, and her straight hair flowed naturally down her back like fine silk. With just a touch of makeup, she was stunning,
If he could, he would keep her hidden away at home, away from everyone else. It was because of a few interactions with her that Damon had developed inappropriate feelings.
rk¡¯s face darkened as he thought about it.
Sensing his change in mood, N frowned slightly and said, ¡°Let¡¯s go. inside.¡±
Once inside the ballroom, rk quickly left N to chat with the Sumner Group¡¯s business partners.
Despite the visible bruises on his face, everyone pretended not to notice and politely inquired about his condition.
rk imed he had fallen, then swiftly redirected the conversation to business matters.
With Vrie unable to attend that night, N took a ss of juice and found a quiet corner to sit in. She was waiting for someone specific who hadn¡¯t arrived yet and wasn¡¯t interested in mingling. After all, she knew that once she divorced rk, these connections would no longer matter.
Unbeknownst to N, she had already caught someone¡¯s attention the moment she walked in.
Erin, having been rejected by Damon earlier, was in a foul mood and felt a surge of resentment upon seeing N.
The person next to Erin followed her gaze and noticed N sitting quietly in the corner. ¡°Erin, I heard you recently had dinner with the
Sumners. How did it go? Did you win over Damon?¡±? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org.
Erin¡¯s expression darkened. ¡°Don¡¯t bring that up. There are plenty of men in this city besides him. And having dinner with the Sumners is normal. Builders Property and Prospectus Technology are business. partners.¡±
Recalling how she had humbled herself earlier and Damon¡¯s
indifference only fueled her anger. She downed her drink in one go, her gaze on N growing cold and scrutinizing.
¡°What¡¯s the matter? Did N offend you? Want me to teach her a lesson?¡± the person beside her asked.
CHAPTER 134
Erin turned to Jacqueline. ¡°You know her?¡±
If she remembered correctly, Jacqueline had also just returned to the country not long ago.
Jacqueline sneered. ¡°Of course I know her. She¡¯s good friends with that slut clinging to Tom.¡±
The mere thought of Vrie filled Jacqueline with disgust. If she hadn¡¯t gone abroad, there was no way Vrie would have gotten close to Tom.
Originally, Jacqueline had nned to deal with Vrie today, but since Vrie hadn¡¯t shown up, targeting N would suffice.
Surprise shed in Erin¡¯s eyes, and she frowned. ¡°What are you nning to do?¡±
Jacqueline pondered for a moment before removing the diamond ne from her neck. ¡°I heard her family isn¡¯t well off, so it¡¯s understandable if she resorts to stealing.¡±
ar
There was a glint in Erin¡¯s eyes, but she didn¡¯t stop Jacqueline.
With the Sumners¡® influence, N wouldn¡¯t face severe consequences. However, if she were branded a thief, it would tarnish the Sumners¡® reputation. And who would want a thief around?
Jacqueline walked to a corner, called over a waiter, and whispered something to him. The waiter then took the diamond ne and left.
N was asking Vrie why she hadn¡¯t attended the charity g when a waiter suddenly appeared beside her with a tray of juice and desserts. ¡°Ms. Jayston, Mr. Sumner asked me to bring you some refreshments.¡±
N was surprised and nced over at rk, who was not far away.
+25
At that moment, he turned to look at her and smiled.
¡°Just leave them on the table, thank you,¡± N said.
¡°As you wish,¡± the waiter replied as he ced the drinks and desserts on the table and then turned to leave.
Unnoticed by anyone, the waiter casually brushed his right hand against N¡¯s bag as he left, allowing a diamond ne to slip from his sleeve into her bag.? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org.
Vrie soon replied to N¡¯s message.
Vrie: [Tom and Jacqueline are attending, so I didn¡¯t want to be there.]
After the argument at the mall with Jacqueline, Vrie had broken up
with Tom.
Tom had refused to ept it and even visited Vrie at home to talk. She had avoided seeing him and had handed in her resignation, staying away from the office entirely.
Now, she made a point of avoiding any events involving the two of them.
After responding to Vrie, N put away her phone, picked up her bag, and headed to the restroom.
As N opened her bag to retrieve a tissue, she noticed the diamond
ne inside.
A cold gleam shed in her eyes. Someone at the g was trying to set
her up.
She quickly deduced that it must have been the waiter who delivered the drinks and desserts, as no one else had the opportunity.
It was a crude but malicious trick. If the ne were found in her bagter, the Sumners would be humiliated tonight.
20
She raised an eyebrow, considering flushing the ne down the toilet. Just as she was about to do so, a thought struck her. She then put the ne back in her bag.
When N returned to the banquet hall, the lights had dimmed, and the charity g was about to begin. She found rk and sat down beside him.
rk asked, ¡°Where did you go? I messaged you, but you didn¡¯t reply.¡±
¡°I was in the restroom,¡± N answered.
rk didn¡¯t say anything more. He reached for her bag, but she refused, saying, ¡°No need. I¡¯ll hold it.¡±
rk¡¯s hand froze, and he withdrew it, his expression indifferent. ¡°Next time, reply to my messages. I worry when I can¡¯t find you.¡±
N lowered her gaze. ¡°Got it.¡±
Her tone was casual as if she hadn¡¯t really listened.
CHAPTER 135
rk frowned, about to speak, when a loud female voice suddenly echoed in the banquet hall. ¡°Oh no! My ne is missing!¡±
The voice was so piercing that it immediately drew everyone¡¯s attention.
Staff members quickly approached her. Upon hearing about the
missing ne, they turned on the lights, illuminating the ballroom as bright as day.
¡°Ms. Rainford, don¡¯t worry. We¡¯ll have our staff search for it right away. If it¡¯s here, we should be able to find it quickly.¡±
Jacqueline looked anxious and said, ¡°Why not check the security. cameras? We should be able to find it quickly. I¡¯m sure I lost it here.¡±
The staff member apologized, ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Ms. Rainford. To ensure the privacy and security of the charity g, there are no cameras in the
ballroom.¡±
Jacqueline was aware of this already. She was simply trying to convey. her urgency. ¡°Please help me find it. The ne was a birthday gift from Tom, and it means a lot to me.¡±
¡°Of course, Ms. Rainford,¡± the staff member assured her.
The staff began a thorough search.
After ten minutes, they still had not found the ne.
Jacqueline¡¯s anxiety grew. ¡°Could you check again? The ne is worth millions, but more importantly, it has special meaning to me. I¡¯m certain I had it when I got out of the car.¡±
Erin chimed in. ¡°I remember your ne. The pendant is a swan made of hundreds of diamonds. I saw you wearing it earlier and evenplimented it.¡±
¡°Yes, that¡¯s the one,¡± Jacqueline confirmed.
With no other options, the staff searched once more but still came up empty¨Chanded. Jacqueline¡¯s eyes filled with tears as she struggled to hold back her emotions.
Tom frowned and said in a low voice, ¡°It¡¯s just a ne. If you want, I¡¯ll buy you another er. Let¡¯s not dy the g.¡±
Jacqueline bit her lip and said slowly, ¡°Tom, I don¡¯t want to dy the g either, but the staff has already searched twice and hasn¡¯t found it. I suspect someone either stole it or found it and is not returning it.¡±
The room fell silent, with everyone looking uneasy. No one wanted to be used of theft.
Jacqueline, tears in her eyes, nced around nervously. ¡°I apologize for taking up everyone¡¯s time, but this ne means a lot to me. If someone took it, please return it. I promise I won¡¯t pursue the matter.¡±
Her words sparked a murmur of conversation among the guests.
¡°If someone did take it, they won¡¯t admit it now,¡± one guest remarked.
¡°Yeah, and she said it¡¯s worth millions. Who here isn¡¯t already worth billions? Why would anyone steal it?¡±
¡°Still, if there¡¯s a thief among us, we need to find them. It¡¯s unsettling to think about attending future events with them around.¡±
¡°Find them? How? There aren¡¯t any cameras in the ballroom.¡±
Erin pursed her lips before suggesting, ¡°I have an idea. If we search everyone¡¯s bags, we can clear this up quickly.¡±
Before Erin could finish, N coldly interjected, ¡°Ms. Hulle, I disagree with your suggestion. We haven¡¯t done anything wrong, so why should we be treated like criminals and have our bags searched?
¡°Moreover, Ms. Rainford losing her ne is her own issue. TurningContent is property of N?velDrama.Org.
this event upside down for her ne seems inappropriate, doesn¡¯t it?
125 BONS
CHAPTER 136
With N¡¯s words, everyone began to grasp the absurdity of the situation. They turned to Erin and Jacqueline with expressions of displeasure.
Jacqueline had lost her own ne. What did that have to do with them? Why should their bags be searched because of her mistake?
A ne worth millions? They could easily afford several of those. There was no need to resort to theft.
A cold glint appeared in Erin¡¯s eyes as she noticed the unfriendly looks. from the crowd. She hadn¡¯t anticipated N being so sharp¨Ctongued and difficult to handle. Soon enough, she would make her pay.
Erin sighed and said helplessly, ¡°I suggested this to clear everyone¡¯s names and help Jacqueline find her ne. It means a lot to her.¡±
¡°What does that have to do with us? If it was so important, she should¡¯ve kept it safe at home instead of wearing it out.¡±
¡°Exactly! She lost it herself and now wants to search our bags? I don¡¯t agree with that!¡±
¡°Hah! If you care about the ne so much, I¡¯ll buy you a new one right now. Stop dying the charity g.¡±
Seeing the crowd siding with N, Jacqueline bit her lip, her eyes filled with disdain. If this continued, her n to frame N tonight would fail. She needed another approach.
Taking a deep breath, Jacqueline addressed the group, ¡°Everyone,
please calm down. I wanted to give the person who took my ne a chance to return it discreetly, but since they won¡¯t, I have no choice but to expose them.
¡°I had a tracker installed in the ne to prevent it from getting lost.¡±
Chapter 136
As she spoke, she pulled out her phone and began tapping on the screen, seemingly searching for the ne¡¯s location. Beside her, Tom frowned but remained silent.
Soon, Jacqueline eximed, ¡°Found it!¡±
All eyes turned to her as she looked at N, who stared back with cold eyes. ¡°Ms. Jayston, I can¡¯t believe you took my ne!¡±
The room fell silent once again.
The Sumners were wealthy¨Cit didn¡¯t seem likely that N would steal a ne.
However, when Erin suggested searching everyone¡¯s bags earlier, N had strongly opposed it. If she wasn¡¯t guilty, why would she react so strongly?
Everyone¡¯s gaze shifted to N¡¯s bag, including rk, who now looked suspicious. Earlier, he had tried to help N with her bag, but she had refused. In hindsight, her reaction did seem odd. If the ne was indeed in her bag, it would disgrace the Sumners.
¡°Pft!¡± N couldn¡¯t help butugh. She hadn¡¯t expected Jacqueline to lie so brazenly about having a tracker. If she hadn¡¯t known the truth, she might have been fooled.
¡°Ms. Rainford, are you sure?¡± N asked calmly.
Seeing N¡¯sposed demeanor, Jacqueline said coldly, ¡°The tracker shows the ne is closest to you. It must be in your bag. Do you dare open it to check?¡±
N nodded. ¡°Sure, but if the ne isn¡¯t in my bag, how do you n to apologize? using someone falsely is a crime.¡±
Jacqueline smirked at N¡¯s confidence, thinking she wouldn¡¯t be so brazen when she opened her bagter. ¡°If it¡¯s not there, I¡¯ll get on my
73
knees and apologize.¡±
N raised an eyebrow. ¡°Really?¡±
¡°I stand by my word!¡± Jacqueline dered.
¡°Alright, everyone here can be witnesses. Ms. Rainford said if the ne isn¡¯t in my bag, she¡¯ll kneel and apologize,¡± N repeated.
Jacqueline clenched her teeth icily. ¡°Enough talk. Just open your bag.¡±
N smiled and opened her bag, revealing a diamond ne glittering under the lights.
Jacqueline¡¯s face lit up with a triumphant sneer.
¡°Ms. Jayston, you imed you didn¡¯t take my ne. What is this in your bag then?¡± she demanded.
People near N saw the ne and began looking at her with disdain and contempt.
¡°Wow, I can¡¯t believe Mr. Sumner married a thief. The Sumners¡® reputation is ruined tonight!¡±
¡°I had a feeling something was off when she refused to let us search her bag. Turns out she did steal Jacqueline¡¯s ne!¡±
¡°People from wealthy backgrounds who fall from grace can have twisted minds. Now she¡¯s stealing for money!¡±
The mocking and contemptuous gazes made rk feel utterly humiliated. He turned a cold stare toward N..Content ? N?velDrama.Org 2024.
CHAPTER 137
¡°N, am I not giving you enough money? Why would you do something. like this?!¡± rk demanded.
N nced at him, noting the unfamiliar fury in his eyes. She even suspected that if they weren¡¯t in a public setting, he might have grabbed her by the neck and demanded answers.
She smiled. ¡°rk, you¡¯ve really changed.¡±
He used to trust herpletely, but now he seemed to think she was capable of stealing from someone else. It appeared that when a person¡¯s heart changed, they also became blind to reality.
Taking the diamond ne out of her bag, N held it up for Jacqueline to see. ¡°Ms. Rainford, take a good look. Is this your ne? If I remember correctly, Ms. Hulle described your ne¡¯s pendant as a swan encrusted with diamonds.¡±
Under the light, the ne N held was a delicate heart¨Cshaped pink diamond, clearly different from Erin¡¯s description. This was the
ne N had worn to the event.
Jacqueline¡¯s eyes widened in disbelief. ¡°Impossible! My ne must still be in your bag!¡±
N handed her the bag with a smile. ¡°Why don¡¯t you check for yourself?¡±
Jacqueline grabbed the bag and frantically searched through it, pulling out everything inside. Despite several attempts, she still couldn¡¯t find her ne.
There was nothing. How could there be nothing?!Content is property of N?velDrama.Org.
Upon seeing Jacqueline¡¯s growing panic, N¡¯s smile deepened. ¡°Ms. Rainford, have you found it?¡±
+25
Jacqueline¡¯s face contorted with rage. ¡°You must have hidden it somewhere else! Where did you hide it? Give it back to me!¡±
¡°Ms. Rainford, don¡¯t you think that¡¯s ridiculous? You were the one who confidently imed your ne had a tracker and that the signal wasing from my bag. Now that you can¡¯t find it, you think it must be hidden elsewhere?¡± N asked. ¡°If you have a tracker, you should be able to locate the ne, right? Why don¡¯t you try again?¡±
Jacqueline¡¯s face turned ashen as she tightened her grip on N¡¯s bag.
The people around them quickly understood what had happened: Jacqueline had nted her ne in N¡¯s bag to frame her, but N had caught on and turned the tables.
The crowd¡¯s gazes toward Jacqueline grew disdainful. She was getting exactly what she deserved for trying to frame N with such despicable tactics.
Jacqueline bit her lip in silence, and N, maintaining a calm tone, asked, ¡°Ms. Rainford, you promised that if your ne wasn¡¯t in my bag, you would kneel and apologize, correct?¡±
Jacqueline shouted, ¡°Shut up! I¡¯m not kneeling to you!¡±
Tom, who had been silent until now, spoke up sternly. ¡°Jacqueline, that¡¯s enough!¡±
Although he had seen through Jacqueline¡¯s scheme, Tom¨Cwho had grown up with her as a childhood sweetheart and his first love¨Ccouldn¡¯t bear to see her humiliated in front of everyone.
He turned to rk and said, ¡°Mr. Sumner, this is Jacqueline¡¯s fault. I apologize on her behalf. Whateverpensation Mrs. Sumner wants, I will provide. Please, let this go.¡±
Before rk could respond, N snickered and raised an eyebrow at
Tom. ¡°What¡¯s your rtionship with Ms. Rainford that gives you the right to apologize on her behalf? And I don¡¯t needpensation. I just want Ms. Rainford to keep her word.¡±
Tom¡¯s expression darkened. ¡°I thought you were reasonable, Mrs. Sumner.
¡°Being reasonable doesn¡¯t mean being a pushover. If I don¡¯t stand up for myself now, people will think they can walk all over me,¡± N retorted.
rk, feeling a pang of guilt, realized his mistake.
However, he also knew that the Sumner Group had many business dealings with Gen Pharma, Offending Tom could jeopardize future coborations. It seemed wiser to appease him now for the sake of future business.
¡°N, why don¡¯t we let this go? You didn¡¯t suffer any loss, and Mr. Genge has offeredpensation. How about Ms. Rainford just apologizes?¡± rk suggested.
N found itughable. rk had learned to weigh the pros and cons too, and she was the one being sacrificed.
Just as she was about to respond, a cold voice came from the entrance of the banquet hall. ¡°Framing the Sumners for theft and expecting a simple apology to settle it? Mr. Genge, do you take the Sumners for fools?¡±
CHAPTER 138
¡°Or do you think your apology is worth that much, Mr. Genge?¡±
Everyone turned to the door as Damoh walked in with Lincoln Gunton, the host of the charity event.
Lincoln wore a smile, but Damon¡¯s demeanor was icy, exuding an unweing aura.
Tom¡¯s gaze darkened. If only rk had been present, he might have been able to resolve the situation amicably. With Damon involved, however, things were likely to be much moreplicated.
rk¡¯s expression was also grim. N had almost agreed to his suggestion, but Damon¡¯s arrival threatened to jeopardize the Sumner Group¡¯s cooperation with Gen Pharma.
¡°Mr. Damon, this was Jacqueline¡¯s mistake. I¡¯ve assured you that she will apologize andpensate Mrs. Sumner in any way possible,¡± Tom said, hoping to show respect to the Sumners.
He knew that if things escted further, it would reflect poorly on everyone involved.
Damon stopped a few steps away, his gaze frosty enough to freeze someone in ce. ¡°If Jacqueline had been falsely used of theft today, would you ept just a simple apology and some tokenpensation? If that¡¯s your standard, I¡¯ll make sure she experiences. exactly what N went through.¡±
Before Tom could respond, a dozen men in ck swiftly entered the room and surrounded Jacqueline.
The onlookers quickly stepped back, not wanting to be caught in the middle of the unfolding drama.
¡°Damon, what do you mean by this?¡± Tom demanded.
+25
Damon¡¯s smilecked warmth. ¡°If Ms. Rainford doesn¡¯t kneel and apologize as promised, I¡¯ll have her stripped right here and now so she can experience the humiliation she deserves.¡±
Surrounded by the men in ck, Jacqueline paled with fear. ¡°Tom¡
save me¡N?velDrama.Org: owner of this content.
The thought of being stripped in public was more terrifying than death. Tears filled her eyes as she looked at Tom, her face etched with dread.
Tom¡¯s expression turned dark, and he leered at Damon with barely. contained rage. ¡°Damon, must you go this far?¡±
¡°Your woman tried to frame a member of the Sumners, and now you me me for being harsh? Don¡¯t you feel ashamed?¡± Damon snapped.
Tom sneered. ¡°Even Ms. Jayston¡¯s husband agreed to my solution. Who are you to interfere?¡±
Damon turned to N and asked coldly, ¡°Do you ept Tom¡¯s proposal?¡±
Knowing that Damon was standing up for her, N replied firmly, ¡°I don¡¯t. I want Ms. Rainford to keep her word.¡±
¡°You heard her,¡± Damon said, turning to Jacqueline. His icy gaze made her shiver. ¡°Ms. Rainford, you have ten seconds to decide¨Ckneel or strip. Your choice.¡±
Tom¡¯s anger anger
boiled over. ¡°Damon, don¡¯t think you can do whatever you want in Saintornia. If you anger the Rainfords and Genges, you won¡¯t have an easy time.¡±
¡°Five seconds,¡± Damon counted.
Seeing that Damon had no intention of backing down, Tom rushed forward to take Jacqueline away.
Before he could reach her, one of the men in ck punched him to the floor. Two others pinned him down to prevent further interference.
¡°Time¡¯s up, Ms. Rainford. Since you won¡¯t choose, I¡¯ll choose for you,¡± Damon announced.
As he finished speaking, the men in ck moved toward Jacqueline.
¡°Jacqueline!¡± Tom shouted, his face paling.
He struggled to get to her but was held firmly down, helplessly watching as the men in ck closed in on Jacqueline.
CHAPTER 139
Jacqueline screamed, clutching her dress in desperation, her eyes filled with terror. ¡°No! Don¡¯te any closer! I¡¯ll kneel and apologize!¡±
She had initially thought Damon was merely trying to scare her, but now she saw that his men were actually advancing. He was mad. She would rather be dead than exposed in front of everyone. Kneeling and apologizing seemed preferable.
Damon¡¯s expression remained icy as he sneered. ¡°Alright, back off.¡±
The men in ck retreated, leaving Jacqueline on the floor, desperately holding onto her dress. Her hair and clothes were in disarray, and she looked utterly disheveled.
Trembling with fear, she crawled over and knelt before N.
¡°Ms. Jayston, I¡¯m sorry. I shouldn¡¯t have framed you. I was wrong. I¡¯ll never do it again. Please forgive me¡¡± she pleaded.
N regarded her with indifference, feeling no sympathy. Had she not discovered the ne in her bag, she might have been the one facing humiliation now.
¡°Ms. Rainford, there¡¯s no need to discuss forgiveness. You¡¯re merely fulfilling your promise. We¡¯re all adults here, and we must be responsible for our actions,¡± N stated.
Though Jacqueline was seething inside, she dared not show it. ¡°I¡ I understand¡¡±
Tom, having freed himself from the guards, swiftly moved to Jacqueline¡¯s side. He draped his jacket over her and then lifted her into his arms. His eyes darkened as he red at Damon.
¡°This isn¡¯t over,¡± he said before hastening out with Jacqueline.
Erin, witnessing Damon¡¯s ruthlessness for N¡¯s sake, felt a jolt of fear mingled with jealousy.
She knew that if she had been in Jacqueline¡¯s ce, she might have suffered the same fate. Despite this, her fear only strengthened her resolve to win Damon¡¯s favor. She was determined to make him fall for her, no matter what.Content ? N?velDrama.Org 2024.
As Tom and Jacqueline left, Lincoln attempted to ease the tension.¡± The charity auction is about to begin. Let¡¯s return to our seats and not let this incident ruin the evening.¡±
Given Lincoln¡¯s status, no one dared to oppose him. Moreover, his failure to intervene earlier had indicated his support for Damon¡¯s
actions.
With this understanding, everyone forced smiles, and the atmosphere quickly became lighthearted again, as if nothing had urred.
rk, however, was displeased with Damon¡¯s actions. He had hoped to use the incident to gain favor with Tom, which could have benefited their future business dealings.
Now, any potential cooperation was jeopardized, and it would be a miracle if Gen Pharma didn¡¯t turn against the Sumner Group.
Frowning, rk approached Damon. ¡°Uncle Damon, even if you wanted to y the hero, you shouldn¡¯t have been so harsh. You¡¯ve made enemies of both the Rainfords and the Genges.¡±
¡°Come with me,¡± Damon replied tersely.
As Damon walked toward the balcony, rk hesitated but followed.
Once they were alone, rk was about to speak but was silenced by Damon¡¯s cold gaze.
¡°You couldn¡¯t even stand up for your own wife. How are you any
different from a piece of garbage?¡± Damon demanded.
CHAPTER 140
0
rk was indignant as Damon scolded him, his hands clenched at his sides. Anger shed in his eyes.
¡°Uncle Damon, N is my wife. How I handle things is none of your business!¡± he snapped.
Damon sneered. ¡°At least Tom knew to protect Jacqueline. You, on the other hand, are both unfaithful and cowardly. I don¡¯t know how the Sumners ended up with someone as useless as you.¡±
rk gritted his teeth and said coldly, ¡°At least I¡¯m not coveting someone else¡¯s wife.¡±
¡°Do you believe I can have you two divorced by tomorrow?¡± Damon threatened.
He had only held back out of respect for N, waiting until she was ready to make her own decision.
rk¡¯s face twisted with resentment. He knew Damon had the power to do just that. Even if Damon took N away from him right now, he wouldn¡¯t be able to do anything about it. As the CEO of the Sumner Group without any shares, he was no match for Damon.
¡°Uncle Damon, don¡¯t push it too far!¡±
He had endured a lot, but Damon¡¯s tant support for N and interference tonight made him worry that Damon might do something even more outrageous next time.
¡°If you don¡¯t want me to go too far, treat your wife better. If you think you can sacrifice her to please others, maybe I should consider taking over the Sumner Group,¡± Damon warned.
Panic and rage surged within rk. This was a clear warning and threat from Damon.
10
+25
How dare he? Damon was the one coveting N, yet rk couldn¡¯t say anything and had to endure his threats!
Despite his anger, rk knew that defying Damon would only lead to his own downfall. He needed to gain control of Richard¡¯s shares and be the real decision¨Cmaker in the Sumner Group to stop being at Damon¡¯s mercy.
Taking a deep breath, he said, ¡°N is my wife. I will treat her well. Uncle Damon, you should just mind your own business!¡±
With that, rk stormed off.
Damon watched him leave coldly, then turned and walked toward the door. He hade tonight to finalize a deal with Lincoln. Now that it was done, there was no reason to stay.
Just as he left the banquet hall, N stopped him. ¡°Uncle Damon, thank you for tonight.¡±
Without Damon¡¯s intervention, rk would have pressured her into letting Jacqueline off the hook. She was genuinely grateful.
Damon looked at her with indifference. ¡°No need. I only helped because you¡¯re part of the Sumners.¡±Content ? N?velDrama.Org 2024.
With that, he walked past her and left.
Feeling his cold attitude, N lowered her gaze to hide her fleeting disappointment.
Returning to the banquet hall, she found a random seat at the back, not bothering to look for rk.
Meanwhile, Tom put Jacqueline in the car. Once inside, she finally broke down, sobbing uncontrobly as she clung to him. ¡°Tom, I was so
scared¡ You have to help me get revenge¡¡±
If Damon hadn¡¯t shown up tonight, she wouldn¡¯t have been forced to kneel and apologize to that bitch N. Now, everyone might secretly mock her for it. All of this was Damon and N¡¯s fault.
Tom didn¡¯t speak, silentlyforting her until she calmed down. Then he asked, ¡°You had no grudge against N. Why did you set her up like that?¡±
Jacqueline hesitated, then bit her lip. ¡°I saw Ms. Hulle didn¡¯t like N. I thought if I helped her, it might benefit yourpany¡¯s project with her father¡¯spany¡ I didn¡¯t expect¡¡±
CHAPTER 141
A cold gleam shed across Tom¡¯s eyes. Was Jacqueline being used by Erin? Although he didn¡¯t agree with Jacqueline¡¯s actions, she did them for his sake.
¡°Don¡¯t do this kind of thing again. Damon is ruthless and never shows mercy. Going against him will only lead to trouble,¡± he warned her.
Seeing Tom¡¯s stern expression, Jacqueline bit her lip and cautiously said, ¡°Tom, Ms. Jayston wasn¡¯t hurt at all. If I just apologized, it would be over. But she refused to let me off Could it be because of Ms. Weir?¡±
Tom narrowed his eyes and said coldly, ¡°You mean she did it to get back at you for Vrie?¡±
¡°Aside from that, I can¡¯t think of any other reason why she would be so relentless,¡± Jacqueline replied.
N and Vrie were good friends, and Vrie had misunderstood Tom¡¯s rtionship with Jacqueline. If N was teaching Jacqueline a lesson on Vrie¡¯s behalf, it would make sense.
Seeing Tom¡¯s grim face and silence, Jacqueline didn¡¯t say anything more. She knew that speaking too much could backfire.
After a long minute, Tom finally said coldly, ¡°I¡¯ll take you home first.¡±
Jacqueline knew when to y nice around Tom, so she nodded obediently. ¡°Okay.¡±
N stayed at the auction until the end, but the person she was looking for never showed up.
This person was once a senior executive at Harris Pharmaceuticals and had moved to anotherpany after its bankruptcy. He had been
involved in investigating the ident back then and knew more than
others.
Despite that, he didn¡¯te today, so she didn¡¯t get a chance to ask. him anything.
As she walked out of the banquet hall with the crowd, nning to call a taxi, she suddenly heard rk¡¯s voice beside her. ¡°N, are you still upset about what happened earlier?¡±
N turned to look at him, her gaze indifferent. ¡°No, there¡¯s no need.¡±
rk grabbed her wrist, leaned closer, and said in a low voice, ¡°I had not choice earlier. You know I¡¯m the CEO of thepany, but I don¡¯t have any shares. If I offend our partners, my grandfather might remove me from my position tomorrow.¡±
Every word he uttered was about his difficulties, hoping she would understand and sympathize with him. N found it somewhat amusing.
She pulled her hand away and replied, ¡°I know. I¡¯m not angry, and I don¡¯t me you.¡±
After all, she no longer loved him, so she had no expectations of him.
However, to rk, her words seemed like a statement of extreme disappointment.
¡°N, bear with it a little longer. Once I get the shares and be the Sumner Group¡¯s true decision¨Cmaker, I won¡¯t let anyone bully you again,¡± he pleaded.
N pressed her lips together and said slowly, ¡°I really don¡¯t care about these things, and you don¡¯t need to make any promises to me.¡±
Once she uncovered the truth about the Harris Pharmaceuticals incident, she nned to divorce him. In the end, she was merely using him right now, so she had no reason toin if he chose to
sacrifice her.
rk¡¯s gaze darkened. Her words made his heart sink. If she still cared about him, she wouldn¡¯t be so calm. To be this indifferent meant she no longer had any feelings for him.This is from N?velDrama.Org.
His heart felt like it was being squeezed tight. He looked at her with deep sorrow. ¡°N, if you don¡¯t love me anymore, why did youe back to me?¡±
CHAPTER 142
¡°If I don¡¯t love you anymore, will you let me go?¡± N asked.
rk¡¯s gaze turned cold as he answered, ¡°No.¡±
¡°Then what¡¯s the point of asking? And wasn¡¯t it you who threatened me with my dad to move back in?¡± N retorted.
Meeting N¡¯s calm gaze, rk smiled self¨Cdeprecatingly and turned away, saying nothing more. He had indeed forced her to return.
From the day he cheated, he should have expected this. He was just too confident, thinking her love for him would lead to forgiveness.
They fell into silence.
Soon, the driver pulled the car around.
¡°Let¡¯s get in,¡± rk said.
N nced at her phone, canceled her ride order, and got in the car.
The drive home was quiet. Neither of them spoke, and the driver didn¡¯t dare break the silence.
When they reached the vi, N was about to head upstairs when rk spoke up. ¡°N, I¡¯m sorry about tonight. I didn¡¯t protect you.¡±
His tone was serious, and N paused for a moment before walking away without a word.
As soon as she returned to her room, her phone rang. It was Vrie.Content is property of N?velDrama.Org.
¡°N, did Jacqueline try to set you up tonight?¡± Vrie asked.
N was surprised. ¡°How did you know?¡±
¡°Tom called to question me out of nowhere, asking if I told you to go after Jacqueline. I asked around with some friends who were at the
event,¡± Vrie answered.
She was furious about the whole situation. To her, Jacqueline and Tom were just a pair of scumbags¨Cnot worth her time.
N pressed her lips together before saying, ¡°I just wanted to teach her a lesson so she won¡¯t mess with me again.¡±
Vrie warned, ¡°Be careful. Jacqueline holds grudges. She won¡¯t let this go after being humiliated.¡±
¡°Okay, I¡¯ll be cautious,¡± N affirmed.
There was a brief silence before Vrie¡¯s apologetic voice came through. ¡°N, I¡¯m sorry. She probably targeted you because of me.¡±
¡°It¡¯s not your fault. You can¡¯t control what other people think,¡± Nforted her.
The real issue was Jacqueline¡¯s malicious intent.
¡°But how did you turn things around on her tonight? What happened to her ne?¡± Vrie asked, intrigued.
N¡¯s expression remained calm. ¡°I left it somewhere. Whoever finds it will probably return it to her.¡±
Jacqueline likely wouldn¡¯t be happy to see that ne again.
Vrie and N chatted for a while longer before Vrie ended the call, knowing N had to work the next day.
After a shower, N dried her hair,pleted her skincare routine, and went to bed.
Meanwhile, Jacqueline was far from sleep.
Ten minutes ago, a maid had brought her a box, saying it was delivered
by the charity event staff. Inside was her diamond ne.
Seeing it made her rage re up again. She grabbed the ne and smashed it to the floor, sending the diamonds flying.
¡°Get out! Get out!¡± she screamed.
The maid, startled, quickly left the room.
Jacqueline¡¯s hatred burned as she stared at the shattered ne. She vowed to repay N for tonight¡¯s humiliation.
The next day, as N was about to leave work, she received a call from the Sumner residence, summoning her. Her heart sank¨Cshe guessed it. was about the previous night¡¯s charity event.
Going alone would mean facing their harsh treatment. Involving rk would likely result in him ming everything on Damon. Although Damon had helped her the previous night, she didn¡¯t want to burden him further.
With that in mind, she messaged rk, saying she was going out with colleagues for dinner and that he didn¡¯t need to pick her up.
Chaparat
CHAPTER 143
After work, N took a cab to the Sumner residence. As soon as she was led into the living room by a maid, Marie¡¯s cold voice echoed. ¡°On your knees!¡±
N stopped in her tracks, her expression calm as she looked at Marie. ¡°Grandma, I don¡¯t know what I did wrong to deserve this.¡±
Cindy, sitting next to Marie, sneered with a sharp tone. ¡°How dare you ask what you did wrong?! Why did you force Ms. Rainford to kneel and apologize to you in front of everyonest night? Do you even realize your statuspared to hers?Content is property of N?velDrama.Org.
¡°This morning, Gen Pharma and the Rainford Group terminated their contracts with the Sumner Group, causing billions in losses. The other shareholders are furious with rk and are calling for a board meeting to remove him as the CEO. You¡¯re nothing but bad luck!¡±
If it were not for affecting rk, Cindy would have told Marie about N¡¯s infertility and had Marie chase N out of the Sumner family.
N met Cindy¡¯s hateful gaze with aposed look. ¡°Jacqueline tried to frame me with a nest night, then the Rainford Group terminated the contracts today. It shows they don¡¯t respect the Sumners or the Sumner Group.
¡°Besides, she offered to kneel and apologize if the ne wasn¡¯t found on me. I don¡¯t think I did anything wrong.¡±
Marie¡¯s expression turned colder. ¡°If you don¡¯t understand your mistake, then go stand in the old wing until you figure it out.¡±
At hermand, two maids stepped forward, ready to drag N if she resisted.
The old wing was situated on a secluded hillside a few hundred meters
Chop 143
from the estate. It was a cold, eerie ce, visited only during family ceremonies.
Despite her fear, N maintained aposed demeanor and walked out of the house with her head held high.
Watching her unrepentant departure, Cindy seethed with anger. ¡°Mom, don¡¯t send her any food. Lock her up for three days, and she¡¯ll admit her mistake!¡±
Marie had intended to teach N a lesson and then have her apologize to Jacqueline in person. She hadn¡¯t anticipated N¡¯s stubbornness, her refusal to admit her fault, or her reluctance to apologize.
¡°Enough! I know what to do. You can go now. Don¡¯t bother me unless it¡¯s important,¡± Marie said.
She found Cindy¡¯s pettiness irritating. If Cindy weren¡¯t rk¡¯s mother, Marie wouldn¡¯t have paid her any attention.
Sensing Marie¡¯s displeasure, Cindy left in frustration.
The two maids locked N in the old wing and departed. As their footsteps faded, silence enveloped the old wing.
N had only visited the old wing during the day in the past, and it had never seemed particrly frightening.
Now, as darkness fell and the old wing grew dim, the eerie silence and the rows of paintings heightened the spooky atmosphere.
The temperature in the old wing was several degrees lower than
outside, and N, dressed lightly, felt the chill. She grabbed a small rug and ced it in a corner. Sitting with her back against the wall, she tried to suppress her fear.
Marie had summoned her alone, clearly not wanting to alert rk or Damon. N reassured herself that she would likely be released after
Choler TAS
enduring the night.
Suddenly, her phone rang, startling her in the quiet of the old wing. Seeing that it was rk, she took a deep breath and answered.
¡°Where are you? I¡¯lle pick you up after your gathering,¡± rk said.
CHAPTER 144
N smiled bitterly. There was no way she could go back tonight.
¡°No need. The gathering is close to Vrie¡¯s ce. I¡¯ll stay with her tonight,¡± she replied.
There was silence on the other end before rk¡¯s deep voice came through. ¡°Are you still upset aboutst night?¡±
¡°No. I just haven¡¯t had a good chat with Vrie in a long time, so I n to stay over at her ce tonight,¡± N said, though she was lying.
After another long pause, rk finally said, ¡°Alright, but if anythinges up, give me a call.¡±
¡°Got it,¡± N replied.
After hanging up, her phone shed a low battery warning, indicating only 20% charge left. She frowned, realizing she hadn¡¯t charged it since the previous night due to her busy schedule.
Sighing, she turned off her phone to conserve battery.
rk sensed something was off after the call but couldn¡¯t pinpoint what
it was.
Just as he was about to ponder the matter, Michael entered his office and reported, ¡°Mr. Sumner, Gen Pharma and the Rainford Group refuse to meet, and several smallerpanies that closely work with them are also terminating their contracts.¡±
rk was furious, his voice dripping with sarcasm. ¡°If they want to terminate, let them. They won¡¯t get away without paying the penalty fees!¡±
Michael looked worried. Terminating contra ts was one thing, but now
the shareholders were discussing demoting rk to vice CEO.
¡°Mr. Sumner, perhaps¡ you should ask your wife if she¡¯s willing to apologize to Ms. Rainford?¡± he suggested.
An apology from N might resolve all their problems.
rk¡¯s face darkened. ¡°No, she won¡¯t agree. And apologizing now will make it look like the Sumner Group is afraid of Gen Pharma and the Rainford Group. It will set a bad precedent.¡±
The issue wasn¡¯t just about the apology anymore. Jacqueline had been at fault from the start. If things escted further, it would be more embarrassing for the Rainfords.
¡°So, are we just going to sit and wait without doing anything?¡± Michael asked.
¡°You can leave for the day,¡± rk replied.
Michael was too worried to leave. If rk were demoted, it would affect him as well. He offered, ¡°I¡¯d rather stay here and wait with you.¡±Content ? N?velDrama.Org 2024.
The atmosphere was tense in the boardroom.
Richard sat at the head of the table while the shareholders looked
increasingly disgruntled.
¡°Mr. Richard, this situation was caused by Mr. rk. He should be held ountable. Are we supposed to bear the losses together?¡± one
shareholder said.
¡°Exactly. He offended two partners at a single event. If he can¡¯t manage his own wife, how can he manage the Sumner Group?¡± another asked.
¡°He¡¯s young and needs more experience. Once he¡¯s more capable, he can return to the CEO position,¡± a third suggested.
Richard listened to the shareholders¡®ints in silence, his face stern. As their voices gradually faded, he finally spoke.
¡°Gen Pharma and the Rainford Group were at fault first. If we demote him now, it will seem as though the Sumner Group is afraid of them. Under rk¡¯s management, your annual dividends have increased by hundreds of millions.
¡°Now, just because a few partners have terminated their contracts, you all want to remove him? What are your intentions?
¡°Or do you want to bring him down to rece him with your own people? ¡°he questioned, eyeing the shareholders critically.
Che
CHAPTER 145
With Richard¡¯s words, the entire meeting room fell into silence.
Everyone lowered their heads, too intimidated to speak. Each person had their private reasons for wanting to remove rk from his position.
After a long pause, a shareholder finally broke the oppressive silence.¡± Mr. Richard, we were simply too anxious¡ The Sumner Group lost billions in just one morning¡¡±
Richard scoffed. ¡°Billions? Is that a significant amount? He can recoup that in less than a year. If anyone wants the CEO position, prove your worth!¡±
Disregarding their reactions, Richard stood up and left the room, heading directly to rk¡¯s office.
¡°Grandpa¡¡± rk began.
¡°Shut up! If this happens again, I won¡¯t step in to save you!¡± Richard snapped.
Under Richard¡¯s furious gaze, rk lowered his head, his fists clenched tightly at his sides. ¡°I understand.¡±
¡°By the way, Brandon will be returning to the country soon. When he arrives, arrange a position for him at the Sumner Group. Make sure it¡¯s a challenging role, not something trivial where he won¡¯t learn anything,¡± Richard instructed.
A sh of hostility crossed rk¡¯s eyes. It was clear Richard was preparing to groom Brandon Sumner and eventually choose between him and rk as his sessor.
¡°Alright, I¡¯ll handle it,¡± rk replied.
Richard left with a dismissive snort.
While the immediate crisis was averted, rk felt the weight of his precatious situation. With Brandon joining thepany, his position was at risk. He needed to ensure that he remained the sole heir to the Sumner Group.
rk returned to the vi past midnight. He went to N¡¯s room and found it empty, just as he had expected.
Frowning, he hesitated before calling her, but her phone was off. His expression darkened, and he instructed Michael to find Vrie¡¯s phone
number.
After receiving the number, he called immediately.
Vrie answered after a few rings, sounding irritated. ¡°Who is it at this hour? This better be important!¡±
¡°It¡¯s rk. Is N with you?¡± rk asked directly.
Vrie, still half¨Casleep, replied curtly, ¡°Do you even know what time it is? Of course she¡¯s not here!¡±
Vrie realized something was amiss and was about to say more, but rk hung up. Feeling uneasy, she tried calling back, but the line was busy.
Meanwhile, rk was on the phone with Michael. ¡°Find out where N went after work. I need the results in half an hour!¡±
Sensing the urgency in rk¡¯s voice, Michael immediately began the investigation.
N was shivering uncontrobly, curled up in corner of the old wing.
It was early fall, and the temperature difference between day and night.
29
was significant. In her rush to the house, she had forgotten to bring a coat, leaving her in only a short¨Csleeve shirt and pants, freezing and pale.Content is property of N?velDrama.Org.
Her phone had died after the battery drained to 20%, leaving her unaware of the time.
Without dinner, she felt cold, hungry, and miserable.
As time passed, she grew colder, her consciousness fading. Her head. spun¡
Finally, she could hold on no longer and fainted.
Some timeter, the doors of the old wing burst open with a loud bang.
CHAPTER 146
Damon¡¯s eyes grew cold when he saw N curled up in the corner, eyes closed, her face flushed unnaturally, and her body trembling. He was about to rush over when rk suddenly pushed him aside, quickly striding to N and lifting her into his arms.
Seeing that N had already fallen unconscious, Marie frowned. She had only intended to lock N up for a night to teach her a lesson, never expecting things to escte like this.
Filled with anger but unable tosh out at Marie, rk spoke in a low. voice. ¡°Grandmother, I need to take N to the hospital.¡±
Without waiting for a response, he carried N out quickly.
Damon clenched his fists tightly as he watched him leave, his eyes shing with fury.
Marie looked at Damon and couldn¡¯t help but ask, ¡°Damon, did I go too far?¡±
Seeing N in such a state made her feel a twinge of guilt.
Damon¡¯s expression remained indifferent. ¡°What do you think? This wasn¡¯t her fault, yet you punished her because you knew she had no one to support her. Don¡¯t you think that¡¯s unfair?¡±
Marie was at a loss for words.Content ? N?velDrama.Org 2024.
After a few seconds, she muttered, ¡°But it all started because of her. If she hadn¡¯t forced Jacqueline to kneel, the Sumner Group wouldn¡¯t have lost billions.¡±
Damon sneered. ¡°Someone tried to set her up. Shouldn¡¯t she fight back? And it wasn¡¯t her who forced Jacqueline to kneel¨Cit was me. If you need someone to me, I¡¯ll stay here tonight.¡±
Marie said sternly, ¡°No, your health isn¡¯t good. If you stay here all night¡
She fell silent, meeting Damon¡¯s mocking gaze.
¡°Mom, she¡¯s part of the Sumners. Jacqueline¡¯s attempt to scheme. against her at the banquet might have been a provocation against the
Sumners.
¡°The Rainford Group has been secretly contacting the Sumner Group¡¯spetitors. Even withoutst night¡¯s incident, they would have found another reason to break the contract soon,¡± Damon said, then turned
and left.
Marie sighed and instructed a maid, ¡°Send some supplements to N. tomorrow.¡±
She realized she had indeed gone too far this time.
When N woke up and found herself in the hospital, she was surprised.
Turning her head, she saw rk sleeping by her bedside, and her emotions became conflicted. It seemed that rk had sensed
something was wrong, tracked her to the Sumner residence, and saved her.
She carefully tried to get out of bed to use the bathroom, but her movement woke rk.
Seeing her awake, he quickly asked, ¡°Are you feeling any difort?¡±
¡°Just a bit dizzy, but otherwise fine,¡± N answered.
rk sighed in relief upon hearing that. As he saw N attempting to get out of bed, he moved to assist her, but she waved him off, saying, No need. I can manage myself.¡±
ÊÖ
CHAPTER 147
¡°Eat your breakfast.¡± rk¡¯s tone was cold, clearly upset by N¡¯s indifference.
N replied, ¡°I¡¯m not hungry right now. I¡¯ll eatter. You should go back
to work.¡±
rk¡¯s anger, which had been simmering since earlier, finally boiled over. He looked at her coldly, his voiceced with usation. ¡°Are you not hungry, or do you just lose your appetite when you see me?¡±
N frowned. ¡°That¡¯s not what I meant.¡±
¡°That¡¯s exactly what you meant. When Grandma called you to the housest night, why did you lie and say you were having dinner with colleagues?¡± rk demanded.
If he hadn¡¯t sensed something was wrong and called Vrie, he might still be in the dark about her lie.
N lowered her gaze, her expression calm. ¡°I didn¡¯t want you to worry.¡±
rk sneered. ¡°Don¡¯t take me for a fool, N. Are you worried about me, or are you afraid I¡¯ll drag my uncle down?¡±
She took a deep breath, her gaze growing icy as she met his eyes. ¡± rk, can you stop being unreasonable?¡±
¡°Am I the one being unreasonable, or are you hiding something?¡± rk pressed.
He grabbed her chin and leaned in close, enunciating each word, ¡°N, if you have any feelings for my uncle, you¡¯d better stop them now. Do you think the Sumners will let him marry a divorced woman who was once his nephew¡¯s wife?¡±
They were so close that N could see the mockery and disdain in
rk¡¯s eyes. It was as if he wereughing at her foolishness.
She pushed his hand away with disgust, meeting his gaze coldly. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I know my ce. I have no inappropriate thoughts about him!¡±
Seeing the anger on her face, rk suddenly chuckled. ¡°Good. But let me remind you, don¡¯t y with fire.¡±
¡°Now that you¡¯ve reminded me, can you leave? I don¡¯t want to see your face!¡± N hissed.
Her eyes were filled with loathing, and rk felt a sharp pain in his heart -his breath became heavy.
¡°What a pity. You¡¯ll have to look at it for the rest of your life!¡± he snarled.
N didn¡¯t respond, turning away from him coldly.
¡°Remember to eat your breakfast. It will get stale and hurt your stomach,
rk reminded.
Seeing her icy expression, he said nothing more and left the room.
As he opened the door, he saw Damon standing there, his expression unreadable. It seemed Damon had overheard the conversation.
rk smiled. ¡°Uncle Damon, N will be discharged this afternoon. You can leave now.¡±
Damon gave him a cold look and then gestured to Spencer. ¡°Pass the items to him.¡±
Spencer handed rk some supplements and flowers, saying, ¡°Mr. rk, these are from your uncle.¡±
rk epted them with a smile and turned back to N.
¡°N, these are supplements and flowers from my uncle. See how thoughtful he is,ing to see you first thing in the morning. Anyone would think you two are very close!¡± hemented snidely.
Chapter fatThis is from N?velDrama.Org.
N didn¡¯t react to his sarcasm.
rk¡¯s grip on the flowers tightened. He walked to N¡¯s bedside and leaned close to her ear, speaking so softly only they could hear. ¡°N, you said you have no inappropriate thoughts about my uncle. Now¡¯s your chance to prove it. Throw away his gifts right in front of him, and I¡¯ll believe you.¡±
N¡¯s hands clenched the nket tightly, her already pale face turning even paler.
Seeing her hesitation, rk smirked, but his eyes remained cold.¡± What¡¯s wrong? Can¡¯t do it?¡±
CHAPTER 148
N met rk¡¯s cold gaze. With a scoff, she snatched the flowers and supplements from his hands, tossing them into the trash can.
Spencer¡¯s eyes widened with shock, quickly shifting to anger. ¡°Ms. Jayston, how could you do that? Mr. Damon came to see you, and you-¡±
Before he could finish, Damon had already turned and left, his presence so chilling that it sent shivers down one¡¯s spine.
Spencer, struggling to control his frustration, hurried to catch up with Damon.
¡°Mr. Sumner, are we just going to leave like this?¡± Spencer asked.
The situation felt unbearably humiliating. After all, Damon had helped N numerous times before, but she had repaid his kindness with disdain.
¡°What else? Storm into the room and demand an exnation?¡± Damon
retorted.
He wasn¡¯t the type to grovel. Plenty of women wanted to be with him- he didn¡¯t need her specifically.
Sensing the frostiness in Damon¡¯s gaze, Spencer felt a chill rise from his feet and dared not speak further. Damon was clearly in a foul mood, and it was best to remain silent.Content is property of N?velDrama.Org.
Back in the hospital room, N red at rk. ¡°Are you satisfied now?¡±
rk smiled and spoke slowly. ¡°N, I¡¯m doing this for your own good. This will prevent any further advances from my uncle. Otherwise, you¡¯ll be the one who gets hurt in the end.¡±
N¡¯s expression turned mocking. ¡°For my ow: good, or just to control
14
me? You know the answer.¡±
¡°N, do you have to misunderstand me like this?¡± rk asked.
¡°I don¡¯t want to see you. Get out!¡± N snapped.
rk¡¯s gaze darkened as he grabbed her wrist and pulled her closer. ¡± N, I don¡¯t like this attitude of yours.¡±
She shook him off, her eyes filled with disgust. ¡°If you prefer someone gentle, go find Jordyn. I never asked you to be here.¡±
rk¡¯s expression grew colder. Just as he was about to speak, the door opened.
A nurse entered with an IV drip and said, ¡°Ms. Jayston, it¡¯s time for your
IV.¡±
Suppressing his anger, rk softened his tone. ¡°N, take care of yourself. I¡¯lle pick you up tonight.¡±
N didn¡¯t spare him a nce, her expression showing annoyance.
After rk left, she immediately threw the breakfast into the trash can.
Seeing the flowers and supplements on the floor, the nurse looked surprised. ¡°Ms. Jayston, these flowers and supplements¡¡±
¡°They fell on the floor identally,¡± N said.
The nurse offered, ¡°I can pick them up for you-¡±
¡°No need,¡± N interrupted, pausing before adding, ¡°Please throw them.
away.¡±
Some things shouldn¡¯t be hoped for if there¡¯s no future in them.
The nurse, assuming N didn¡¯t want the items because they had fallen, said nothing more. She hooked up the IV and picked up the flowers and supplements before leaving.
-25 BONUS
Left alone in the room, N closed her eyes, hoping for rest, but her mind kept reying the moment Damon left. Even from a distance, she could see the iciness in his eyes.
Her heart ached, and her eyes stung with unshed tears.
There was no possibility between them. Pushing him away was the only path she could take.
That afternoon, after the doctor checked on N and prescribed some medication, she was discharged.
The following morning, as soon as N arrived at the office, Spencer came over with a young woman.
¡°Ms. Jayston, thepany has decided to assign someone to assist you with your work.¡± Spencer¡¯s tone was frosty. He was still upset about N throwing away the flowers and supplements in front of Damon the day before.
CHAPTER 149
However, Damon had no intention of pursuing the matter, so as a mere secretary, Spencer had no ce toment.
N nced at the young woman standing next to Spencer. She had a baby face, shoulder¨Clength hair, and eyes that smiled like crescent
moons, giving her a very cute appearance.
¡°Ms. Jayston, my name is Melody Sorley. I just graduated from university. It¡¯s nice to meet you,¡± Melody introduced herself.Content is property of N?velDrama.Org.
¡°Hello, I¡¯m N Jayston,¡± N replied simply.
With many tasks in theb, N was indeed struggling to manage everything on her own. Having an assistant would be a significant help.
¡°Thank you, Mr. Hogg,¡± N said gratefully.
Spencer¡¯s expression remained cold. ¡°No need to thank me. It¡¯s my job. I¡¯ll be going now. If you
Understanding that Spencer¡¯s displeasure was rted to Damon, N chose not to get angry. She nodded and said, ¡°Okay.¡±
After Spencer left, Melody turned to N and asked, ¡°Can I call your N? ¡®Ms. Jayston¡® feels too formal.¡±
N smiled. ¡°That¡¯s fine. For today, just go through the literature. Your can start working in theb in a couple of days.¡±
¡°Okay, thank you, N,¡± Melody chirped.
Melody was lively and diligent, frequentlying to theb to ask N questions about the literature. N patiently answered her, and by the end of the morning, the two had be muc closer.
At noon, Melody pulled N to the cafeteria, saying, ¡°N, I¡¯ve heard
+35 BONUS.
that Prospectus Technology¡¯s cafeteria food is really delicious. Is that
true?¡±
Seeing her bright, eager eyes, N couldn¡¯t help but smile. ¡°Yes. You¡¯ll see for yourself soon.¡±
They chatted as they walked, quickly arriving at the cafeteria. After getting their food, they found a corner to sit down.
After taking a bite, Melody eximed, ¡°This is so good! I¡¯ve never had such delicious food in my life. Working at Prospectus Technology is such a blessing!¡±
N smiled, about to respond, when amotion at the entrance caught her attention. Looking up, she saw Damon and Erin walking side by side.
Erin was smiling, her eyes filled with curiosity as she asionally turned to speak with Damon, who patiently answered her every question.
N lowered her gaze, suddenly finding the food tasteless.
Melody, also watching them, lowered her voice and said, ¡°N, I heard before I even joined thepany that Mr. Sumner is dating the heiress. of the Hulle family. I thought it was just a rumor, but it turns out to be true. They make a perfect match. It seems the Cindere story only. happens in fairy tales.¡±
N forced a smile. ¡°Yes, you¡¯re right.¡±
Noticing N¡¯s disinterest in gossip, Melody switched topics.
They were discussing what to have for dinner when a gentle voice suddenly echoed. ¡°Ms. N, what a coincidence to see you here again.¡±
N turned her head to see Erin holding a te of steak, standing a few steps away with a bright smile.
N hadn¡¯t liked Erin since the banquet whe she sided with Jacqueline
une, 149
and targeted her at every turn. Thus, she kept her expression neutral. Hello, Ms. Hulle.¡±
¡°Do you mind if we sit next to you?¡± Erin asked.
N frowned slightly, about to respond, when Melody quickly answered, ¡°Not at all, not at all.¡±
Erin sat next to N, while Damon took the seat next to Melody, diagonally across from N. He didn¡¯t even nce at her, his presence radiating an almost palpable coldness.
CHAPTER 150
Erin chatted with Damon, her smile evident. Although Damon only responded asionally, the atmosphere between them remained fairly. harmonious.
Ever since Erin and Damon had sat down next to N and Melody, N kept her head down, quietly eating. She hoped to finish quickly and leave
Suddenly, a somewhat shy voice came from nearby. ¡°Ms. Jayston¡This is from N?velDrama.Org.
N turned to see a tall, muscr man holding a bouquet of red roses. He stood a few steps away, looking at her nervously. She frowned, sensing something was off.
As expected, the next moment, the man extended the roses toward her.
¡°Hi, my name is Dn Lomas. From the moment I saw you, I fell in love. at first sight. Could you give me a chance¡ to pursue you?¡± Dn confessed.
N often received such confessions back in university, but this was the first time since marrying rk.
It was lunchtime, and the cafeteria was packed. Everyone¡¯s eyes were on her and Dn.
After a few seconds of silence, she said calmly, ¡°I¡¯m sorry, but I¡¯m already married.¡±
Dn¡¯s face darkened, his gaze filled with disbelief.
N¡¯s youthful appearance and beauty made her seem too young to be married. Additionally, being publicly rejected left Dn feeling humiliated, as if everyone around him were mocking him.
¡°Ms. Jayston¡ are you lying about be.. ig married because you don¡¯t like
me?¡± Dn pressed.
N was unsettled by his usatory tone, and her voice grew colder. Mr. Lomas, if you don¡¯t want to believe me, there¡¯s nothing I can do. I want to finish my meal now. Please leave.¡±
Her response only reinforced Dn¡¯s belief that she was lying. His expression darkened further as he considered the time and money he had invested in preparing for the evening, particrly the rose bouquet that had cost nearly 100 dors.
N¡¯s public rejection felt like a deliberate humiliation.
Did she think that being pretty gave her license to disregard other people¡¯s feelings? The more he thought about it, the angrier he became.
However, surrounded by people, he suppressed his rage and forced a smile. ¡°At least take the flowers. It¡¯s my way of showing you how I feel.¡±
¡°Thank you, but I can¡¯t ept them,¡± N replied, turning back to her meal, clearly uninterested in continuing the conversation.
Dn¡¯s smile froze, his grip on the flowers tightened, and his eyes shed with anger.
After taking a deep breath, he left quickly without further argument.
Beside them, Erin couldn¡¯t help butugh. ¡°Ms. N, you¡¯re quite popr. You¡¯ve only been at Prospectus Technology for a few days, and someone¡¯s already confessed to you. I¡¯m so envious.¡±
N gave her a cool nce. ¡°No need to be envious, Ms. Hulle. If you¡¯re pretty enough, it can happen to you too.¡±
Erin¡¯s expression stiffened, and she nearly snapped her cutlery in half. Was N implying she wasn¡¯t pretty enough?
Struggling to maintain her smile, Erin turned to Damon, who remained expressionless. ¡°Not everyone can rely on their looks to get by like Ms.
N. I think true ability is more important. What do you think, Mr. Damon?¡±
Damon looked at her with an indifferent expression and simply hummed in response.
N pressed her lips together, feeling aplicated mix of emotions. Did Damon also think she was just a pretty face?
CHAPTER 151
Upon hearing Damon¡¯s affirmative response, Erin¡¯s face lit up, ready to continue mocking N.
Melody suddenly interjected, ¡°Ms. Hulle, you¡¯ve got one thing wrong. N is both beautiful and capable, which is not something people can simply envy.¡±
Erin¡¯s expression froze, and her eyes betrayed a flicker of anger. She huffed. ¡°I never said Ms. N wasn¡¯t capable¨Cjust that her looks give her many advantages.¡±
Tired of Erin¡¯s thinly veiled sarcasm, N decided to speak her mind.
She turned to Erin and said, ¡°You im my looks give me benefits, but doesn¡¯t your family background provide you with plenty of advantages. too? Otherwise, you wouldn¡¯t be sitting here having lunch with Ms. Summer, would you?¡±
The world was never fair, and wanting everything was simply being. greedy.
Erin was rendered speechless, her face turning an ugly shade.
N picked up her tray and stood up, announcing, ¡°I¡¯m done. Enjoy your meal.¡±
Melody quickly followed her. ¡°N, I¡¯m sorry. I spoke too quickly earlier. If I hadn¡¯t agreed to let them sit with us, none of this would have happened.¡±
N brushed it off, saying, ¡°Don¡¯t worry about it.¡±
Erin was looking for provoke her. Even if they hadn¡¯t
any exCUSA ¨C
agreed to let them sit, she would have stayed nearby and found another way to irritate N.
Initially, N thought Erin and Damon were a good match, but now she felt Erin was not worthy of him. However, Damon may eventually choose to marry Erin, so it was not her ce to interfere.
After they left, Erin turned to Damon. ¡°Mr. Damon, does Ms. N hold a grudge against me?¡±
She bit her lip, looking aggrieved.
Normally, any other man might have felt a surge of sympathy seeing. her like this. However, Damon remained expressionless as he asked, Didn¡¯t you provoke her first?¡±
Sensing Damon¡¯s defense of N, Erin¡¯s anger red, her voice growing colder. ¡°I was just speaking the truth. Didn¡¯t you agree with me?¡±
She had expected that knowing Damon liked N would make him treat her better, to keep her quiet. Instead, his attitude had worsened.
¡°I only agreed that personal capability is important. It seems you don¡¯t understand men,¡± Damon remarked.
Erin¡¯s face paled. Was he implying that he preferred beautiful women and had no interest in her?
¡°Mr. Damon, you should remember your and N¡¯s identities!¡± she snapped.
As soon as she spoke, the temperature seemed to drop several degrees. Damon¡¯s gaze turned icy, cold enough to freeze.
¡°Ms. Hulle, I suggest you think before you speak. Otherwise, the consequences will be more than you can bear,¡± he said, standing up and leaving.
Only after Damon left the cafeteria did Erin feel the suffocating? 2024 N?v/el/Dram/a.Org.
pressure lift, and she let out a breath she hadn¡¯t realized she was
holding.
However, she was far from giving up. After years of finally finding a man she liked, she wouldn¡¯t quit so easily.
N and Damon were obstacles, but she still had a chance!
Recalling the angry look on Dn¡¯s face as he left, Erin smirked and formed a n in her mind.
Back in his office, Damon coldly ordered, ¡°Look into a Dn Lomas in ourpany.¡±
CHAPTER 152
Spencer looked puzzled and asked, ¡°Mr. Sumner, why are we investigating this employee?¡±
¡°I hired you to do your job, not to ask questions,¡± Damon replied curtly.
Meeting Damon¡¯s icy gaze, Spencer quickly lowered his head. ¡°I¡¯ll get right on it.¡±
Soon, Spencer delivered a printed report on Dn to Damon.
After reading it, Damon said coolly, ¡°Find an excuse to send him on a business trip. I don¡¯t want him in thepany for the next six months.¡±
Spencer found this odd but didn¡¯t dare ask further questions upon recalling their previous exchange. He nodded. ¡°Understood. I¡¯ll handle it immediately.¡±
Dn left the cafeteria, agitatedly clutching the flowers in his hand. He considered throwing them away but felt it would be a waste.
After a moment¡¯s thought, he sent a message to a recent fling, inviting. her to dinner. He figured dinner would naturally lead to inviting her to his ce afterward.
Feeling better with this n, he was about to head back when he
received a friend request. Noting the pretty woman¡¯s profile picture, het assumed she was someone he had met on a dating app and quickly epted.
Before he could say anything, he received a message: [Want to get N? 8:00 p.m. tonight at State Zero Bar, Room 8.]
Dn frowned and was about to reply when the message was unsent.
He sent several messages asking for arification but received no
-15 BONUS
response. If not for the deleted message notification in the chat, he might have thought he imagined it.
He had just confessed his feelings to N, and now someone added him and sent this message. It suggested that the sender was also in the cafeteria. But with so many people there, he couldn¡¯t pinpoint who it
was.
After some hesitation, he decided it might be a prank and blocked the
contact.
That evening, Erin waited in the bar for over an hour. When Dn didn¡¯t show, she lost patience and had him forcibly brought in.
Seeing Erin, Dn realized she was the one who had contacted him. He asked, ¡°Ms. Hulle, what do you want?¡±
His gaze was wary, knowing there was no connection between Erin and N. He didn¡¯t know Erin either. Why would she want to help him?
Erin smirked. ¡°Didn¡¯t I already tell you in the text? I can help you get N.¡±
Dn sneered. ¡°Why should I believe you?¡±
¡°You have no choice but to follow my instructions,¡± Erin said, tossing some documents in front of him with a cold smile. ¡°If you don¡¯t, the consequences might be more than you can handle.
Dn picked up the files, his face turning ashen as he read through them.
After a long moment, he looked at Erin, trembling. ¡°Did N offend you?
Erin smirked, but the expression didn¡¯t reach her eyes. ¡°It¡¯s best not to ask questions you shouldn¡¯t. Knowing to uch could be disastrous. All
$Content is property of N?velDrama.Org.
you need to know is that I¡¯ll help you get her.¡±
¡°What do I need to do?¡± Dn asked.
¡°Just follow my instructions and don¡¯t ask questions,¡± Erin ordered.
Dn lowered his gaze, filled with anger at being threatened. He knew opposing Erin was futile and decided to go along with her n. He was determined to get back at N for humiliating him in the cafeter¨ªa today.
CHAPTER 153
Taking a deep breath, Dn said slowly, ¡°Alright, I¡¯ll follow your lead.¡±
N had been busy in theb until after 10:00 p.m. due to problems with her experiment. As she gathered her things and prepared to leave, she received a call from rk.
His slightly icy voice came through as soon as she answered. ¡°Why aren¡¯t you home yet?¡±
¡°I¡¯m wrapping up now. I¡¯ll be home soon.¡± Just as N spoke, the elevator doors opened.
She was about to step in when she saw Damon standing inside. She
hesitated for a moment.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
Their eyes met, and Damon¡¯s were filled with frost. His entire demeanor radiated a chilling aloofness.
N bit her lip, unsure if she should enter. Given Damon¡¯s attitude toward her at lunch, he clearly didn¡¯t want to see her.
rk¡¯s voice came through the phone, asking if he shoulde pick
her up.
N snapped back to reality and replied, ¡°No need. I drove. Just wait for me at home.¡±
She hung up and could feel Damon¡¯s sharp gaze on her, making her palms sweat as she gripped her phone.
¡°Aren¡¯t youing in?¡± Damon asked, his voice icy and cutting through the air.
N shook her head and answered, ¡°No. just remembered I forgot something. You go ahead.¡±
Damon released the button holding the door open without another word, and the elevator doors slowly closed in front of N. The elevator descended once again.
N stared at the down button for a few seconds before pressing it
again.
When she finally got home, it was nearly midnight. She walked into the living room to find rk waiting for her on the sofa..
¡°I might be workingte often. You don¡¯t have to wait up for me,¡± she said, frowning slightly.
rk scowled. ¡°Is this job really that demanding?¡±
N met his gaze, aware that he was really asking if herte hours meant spending time with Damon..
¡°Don¡¯t worry. Your uncle doesn¡¯t like me at all right now. My work is with another executive at Prospectus Technology. We won¡¯t have any interactions,¡± she replied.
rk, unperturbed by having his true concerns revealed, said, ¡°I¡¯m just looking out for you.¡±
Not wanting to continue the argument, N nodded. ¡°I know. Thank you. for your concern.¡±
rk frowned, noticing N wasn¡¯t taking his words seriously.
However, recalling how she had discarded Damon¡¯s gift in front of him. the previous day, he assumed Damon¡¯s pride would prevent him from. pursuing her any further.
¡°N, let¡¯s drop this topic. Grandma sent over some supplements today. She still cares about you,¡± rk said, changing the subject.
N nced at the pile of supplements on the table, a hint of sarcasm.
in her eyes. Marie and rk had a way of following up a harsh reprimand with a small gesture of care.
¡°Thank Grandma for me,¡± she said.
With that, N started toward the stairs. She had barely reached the staircase when she heard footsteps behind her. Before she could react,
her wrist was seized.
¡°N, what¡¯s with your attitude? Are you still mad at Grandma?¡± rk demanded.
CHAPTER 154
N shook rk off, dismissing him with indifference. ¡°You¡¯re overthinking it.¡±
rk was dissatisfied with her dismissive response, and his gaze grew colder.
After taking a deep breath to calm himself, he softened his tone. ¡°N, I know you feel wronged, but Grandma is getting old. I hope you can be more understanding.¡±
N found his wordsughable. Whenever the Sumners were involved, rk¡¯s solution was always for her to endure. She had previously ignored these issues because she loved him, but now she realized she would alwayse second to his family and career.
¡°Don¡¯t worry, I have no issues with her,¡± she said calmly.
After all, she no longer cared about rk, so why would she care about anyone else?
Seeing her calm demeanor, rk dropped the topic and said, ¡°By the way, Mom invited us over for dinner tomorrow night.¡±
N was surprised. Cindy had never liked her and rarely invited them over since their marriage. However, if she could get into Cyrus¡® study, she might find clues about the Harris Pharmaceuticals incident.
¡°Alright, got it. Do we need to prepare any gifts?¡± she asked.
¡°No need. I¡¯ll pick you up after work,¡± rk answered.Content is property of N?velDrama.Org.
¡°Okay,¡± N agreed readily.
The next evening, N packed up he equipment and said goodbye to Melody before leaving. As she reached the downstairs lobby,
someone suddenly appeared, startling her.
It was Dn, the man who had confessed his feelings to her the day before. He was holding a bouquet in one hand and a small, elegant cake in the other, grinning at her.
¡°Ms. Jayston, I thought about it all night and realized I still like you and don¡¯t want to give up. Can you give me a chance to pursue you?¡± Dn
asked.
N found his persistence annoying. She has assumed she had made herself clear yesterday.
¡°Mr. Lomas, I told you I¡¯m married. This is harassment,¡± she replied firmly.
Dn¡¯s expression momentarily hardened before he resumed hist previous smile. ¡°I don¡¯t believe you¡¯re married. Unless you show me your marriage certificate or bring your husband to prove it.¡±
Annoyance flickered in N¡¯s eyes, and her voice turned cold. ¡°I don¡¯t have to prove anything to you. If you think I¡¯m lying, find evidence. If you can¡¯t, stop bothering me.¡±
She turned to leave, but Dn suddenly grabbed her arm as she walked past him.
In the next moment, Dn was punched in the face.
¡°Ah!¡± he screamed.
The punch was powerful, sending him to the ground and scattering his flowers and cake. He looked utterly pathetic.
N was momentarily stunned before she asked rk, ¡°When did you get here?¡±
¡°Just now,¡± rk replied, ring at Dn with killing intent.
Ce 154
Initially, Dn was shocked by the punch, but he soon felt a surge of anger. He looked up to yell at rk, but the icy gaze he encountered made him shiver. Trembling involuntarily, he struggled for several seconds to suppress his fear.
Standing up, he red at rk. ¡°Who are you? Why did you hit me?¡±
¡°You¡¯re harassing my wife. Consider yourself lucky it was just one punch,¡± rk growled.
Realizing that N was indeed married, Dn felt a pang of guilt. Still, he quickly regained his confidence as rk had struck first.
CHAPTER 155
¡°You use me of harassing her? Do you have any evidence? If not, I¡¯ll call the police and report you for assault. You might end up spending a few days behind bars!¡± Dn threatened.
rk remained unfazed. ¡°Go ahead, but don¡¯t be surprised if it¡¯s you who ends up in jail.¡±
Dn¡¯s bluster lost its impact as rk¡¯s calm demeanor persisted. Gritting his teeth, Dn snapped, ¡°Fine! Just wait. You¡¯d better hope I don¡¯t see you again!¡±
With that, he turned and stormed off.
rk watched him go with cold, steely eyes. Someone like that dared to harass N?
rk turned to her, his expression dark. ¡°Why didn¡¯t you tell me someone was bothering you?¡±
It was clear from her reaction that this man had been a recurring problem.
N pressed her lips together. ¡°I didn¡¯t expect him to get physical. I rejected him yesterday.¡±
She hadn¡¯t anticipated Dn¡¯s persistence despite her clear refusal.
rk sneered. ¡°Tolerating people like him only emboldens them. I¡¯ll call Uncle Damonter and ask him how he manages his employees.¡±
N frowned at the mention of involving Damon. ¡°It¡¯s just a minor issue. No need to trouble him.¡±
rk paused and scrutinized her denly. ¡°Do you really think it¡¯s minor, or are you worried I¡¯ll make things cult for him?¡±
N¡¯s expression cooled as she replied, ¡°Do you think you have what itContent is property of N?velDrama.Org.
takes to challenge him?¡±
¡°Say that again!¡± rk snarled, his eyes zing with anger.
How dare she imply he couldn¡¯t handle Damon?!
¡°I can say it as many times as you want. It¡¯s the truth,¡± N insisted.
rkughed coldly. ¡°Fine. Very well.
He stormed off toward the car parked by the curb, not uttering a word to N during the drive to Cyrus and Cindy¡¯s ce.
N followed him inside, unfazed by his silence.
As they entered the living room, Cyrus¡®ughter greeted them.
N¡¯s hands tightened at her sides. She took a deep breath to suppress her emotions and followed rk in, changing her shoes at the entrance.
She noticed Damon was there as well, ying chess with Cyrus while. Cindy sat nearby, smiling.
N knew that Cyrus and Cindy¡¯s marriage was merely a fa?ade; Cindy was just maintaining appearances.
Seeing rk, Cindy said gently, ¡°Have a seat. Dinner will start once your dad and uncle finish this game.¡±
Her smile faded when her gazended on N, and she did not greet
her.
N didn¡¯t mind¨Ca sudden disy of warmth from Cindy would have been unsettling.
Seated on the couch, rk watched the chess game, where Cyrus appeared to be losing.
Meanwhile, N was preupied with figuring out how to ess Cyrus
study without being noticed.
The study was on the second floor at the end of the left hallway and was usually locked.
Taking the key from Cyrus wasn¡¯t feasible, but rk¡¯s bedroom was conveniently next to the study, with their balconies connected. If she could get to rk¡¯s balcony, she could ess the study.
As N pondered her n, the chess game ended.
Cyrus sighed. ¡°Damon, you never go easy on me. I¡¯m your brother¨Ccan¡¯t you cut me some ck?¡±
Damon dropped the white pieces into the container. ¡°If you want
someone to go easy on you, y with your subordinates. They wouldn¡¯t dare beat you.¡±
CHAPTER 156
Cyrus shook his head and remarked, ¡°With a temper like yours, I wonder what kind of woman could ever put up with you.¡±
Damon did not respond, concentrating on picking up the chess pieces.
¡°Come on, let¡¯s eat.¡±Content is property of N?velDrama.Org.
At the dining table, Cyrus chatted with Damon almost excessively.
N ate a small amount, then set down her cutlery and said, ¡°I¡¯m done. You all take your time.¡±
As soon as she spoke, everyone at the table looked at her.
Cindy frowned, clearly displeased, but remained silent.
rk turned to N, his voice gentle as he asked, ¡°Is the food not to your liking tonight?¡±
N shook her head. ¡°No, I¡¯m really full. I remember leaving some. clothes in your roomst time I was here. I¡¯m going to see if I can find.
that dress I liked.¡±
rk nodded. ¡°Alright.¡±
Cindy initially considered suggesting that a maid look for the dress but then reconsidered. If N wanted to find it herself, it would save the
service staff the trouble.
Once inside rk¡¯s bedroom, N locked the door behind her and quickly moved to the balcony. After ensuring no one was around, she carefully climbed over to Cyrus¡® study.
Inside the study, she scanned the room, starting with Cyrus¡® desk, which was cluttered withpany documents. She checked the drawers but found nothing useful. It seemed she uld need to look elsewhere.
Just as she was about to leave, she heard footsteps and voices approaching the study. Her face paled. It was toote to escape, so she quickly hid behind the curtain.
The study door opened, and Cyrus¡® voice grew louder as he entered. Damon, you know I never ask for help, no matter how tough things get. But thepany is really in trouble this time. If you help me through this, I¡¯ll repay you with interest.¡±
Had it not been for thepany¡¯s dire straits and Richard¡¯s refusal to assist, Cyrus would not have approached Damon.
Damon remained indifferent. Just as he was about to speak, he nced toward the curtain. Without showing any reaction, he turned back to Cyrus, who was about to sit in the chair facing the curtain. ¡°Cyrus, sit
over there.¡±
Cyrus looked puzzled. ¡°Why?¡±
¡°I prefer this spot,¡± Damon deadpanned.
Cyrus sighed and moved to the opposite chair. He then looked at Damon. ¡°About the funding¡ What do you think?¡±
Damon¡¯s expression remained cold. ¡°I need to think about it. It¡¯s not at
small amount.¡±
¡°I know, but Prospectus Technology is a bigpany, and 150 million. dors shouldn¡¯t be too much of a strain,¡± Cyrus insisted.
Damon did not respond, his face devoid of emotion.
Sensing Damon¡¯s displeasure, Cyrus sighed. ¡°Damon, you know my character. I wouldn¡¯te to you unless I had no other choice.¡±
Damon¡¯s expression remained distant Inderstood. I¡¯ll consider it.¡±
They discussed business for a while longer before leaving the study.
N emerged from behind the curtain and quickly climbed back
through the balcony. She sent a message to her private investigator to look into what was happening with Cyrus¡®pany.
After grabbing a random piece of clothing from the wardrobe, she prepared to leave.
As she opened the door, she was startled to find a tall figure standing there. She nearly screamed, but Damon covered her mouth and pushed her back into the room.
The door shut behind them with a bang, and N found herself pinned against it by Damon.
He looked down at her, his expression cold and eyes filled with scrutiny. ¡°What were you doing sneaking into Cyrus¡® study?¡±
N was taken aback, her face turning pale. Had Damon noticed her earlier?
¡°U¨CUncle Damon¡ I don¡¯t understand what you¡¯re talking about¡¡± she stammered.
Damon chuckled, but his eyes remained icy. ¡°I saw you hiding behind. the curtain on the left side of the window. If you don¡¯t admit it, I¡¯ll go tell Cyrus right now and see if anything is missing from his study.¡±
N¡¯s face turned white. She hadn¡¯t taken anything, but if Cyrus found out, he would be on high alert. essing the study would be much harder in the future. Yet, she couldn¡¯t reveal her true intentions.
CHAPTER 157
Seeing N biting her lip and remaining silent, Damon sneered and pushed her aside, preparing to leave.
In a panic, N quickly stopped him by grabbing his hand.
Damon tensed, his gaze turning cold and dangerous.
¡°Let go!¡± he barked.
N bit her lip. ¡°Uncle Damon, do you really have to push me this far?¡±
Damon smirked coldly. ¡°N, do you know what would have happened if Cyrus had found you in his study?¡±
N was unaware of Cyrus¡® true nature, yet she had dared to sneak into his study. Had Cyrus caught her, she might have vanished without a trace¨Csomething that had happened before.
Her grip on Damon tightened involuntarily, her face growing pale under the harsh light.
¡°Still not talking?¡± Damon¡¯s voice loomed above her.
N took a deep breath and said slowly, ¡°I¡ I wanted to find my marriage certificate with rk¡¡±
¡°Why would your marriage certificate be in Cyrus¡® study?¡± Damon asked, his skepticism clear.
N bit her lip and continued her story. ¡°When we got married, rk said he¡¯d keep our marriage certificate with his parents¡ I agreed¡ Now I want to retrieve it¡¡±
Damon looked at her with mockery. ¡°Why do you need your marriage certificate all of a sudden? Weren¡®: u nning to forgive him?¡±
¡°That¡¯s only temporary¡ If he cheats again, I¡¯ll definitely divorce him. I
can¡¯t keep forgiving him forever, right?¡± N replied.
Damon¡¯s gaze grew colder, his irritation apparent at her poor acting, but he chose not to expose her lie. He decided to reveal her true intentions gradually.
Just as he was about to speak, there was a loud knock on the door.
rk¡¯s angry voice echoed. ¡°N, open the door! Is Uncle Damon in there?!¡±
Panic shed in N¡¯s eyes as she looked at Damon. If rk saw Damon there, it would definitely cause a scene.
Meeting her pleading gaze, Damon felt his breath hitch, but he looked away icily.
Seeing no reaction from him, N couldn¡¯t help but plead in a low voice, ¡°Uncle Damon, can you hide¡¡±
¡°I haven¡¯t done anything wrong. Why should I hide?¡± Damon refused.
The knocking continued, growing more intense, and rk¡¯s voice became angrier as if he might break down the door at any moment.¡± N! Open the door! Are you doing something shameful in there?!¡±Content is property of N?velDrama.Org.
¡°Please, I¡¯m begging you,¡± N nearly cried.
Damon¡¯s expression was still cold as he replied, ¡°Just this once.¡±
He quickly moved to the balcony and jumped over the edge.
N covered her mouth in disbelief. Had Damon really jumped from the
second floor?
Just then, the bedroom door lock was forcefully twisted off.
rk burst in, furious. Seeing only N in the room, he red at her
and questioned coldly, ¡°Where¡¯s ¡®cle Damon?¡±
¡°How would I know? I identally fell asleep on the bed,¡± N
answered.
rk sneered. ¡°Fell asleep?¡±
If he believed that, he would be a fool.
¡°Yes, what else? Why would Uncle Damon be in your bedroom? Are you that eager to be a cuckold?¡± N shot back.
As soon as she finished speaking, rk grabbed her wrist and threw her onto the bed, pinning her down with his body.
¡°N, you better not y games with me!¡± he snarled.
His cold hand slowly moved from her face downward, like a venomous snake, making her shiver uncontrobly.
She red at him. ¡°If you don¡¯t believe me, find him yourself. Otherwise, I¡¯m not letting this go!¡±
rk stared at her, seeing no sign of guilt in her eyes, and began to doubt himself. Could he have really misunderstood her? But he had clearly seen Damon go upstairs earlier.
At that moment, a maid¡¯s voice came from the door. ¡°Mr. rk, Mr. Cyrus wants to see you downstairs. There¡¯s something he needs to discuss with you.¡±
¡°I¡¯ll be right there,¡± rk said.
After the maid left, rk released N and stood up, his voice cold. ¡°I¡¯ll believe you this time. You better behave yourself.¡±
CHAPTER 158
After rk left, N finally breathed a sigh of relief
The incident was over, but she knew she had to be more cautious in the
future.
She got up, straightened her wrinkled clothes, grabbed a random piece of clothing from the closet, and went downstairs.Please check at N/?vel(D)rama.Org.
rk and Cyrus sat facing each other in the living room, both looking displeased.
Seeing Ne down, Cyrus said coldly, ¡°It¡¯ste. You two should head back.¡±
rk nodded and stood up. ¡°Alright.¡±
He looked at N with an emotionless gaze. ¡°Let¡¯s go.¡±
On the way back, rk remained silent, clearly still angry about what had happened.
As they reached the vi and N was about to get out of the car, rk spoke coldly. ¡°Don¡¯t you have anything to say?¡±
N turned to him. ¡°What do you want me to say? That I really cheated, or something else?¡±
¡°N!¡± rk¡¯s gaze was icy, making N feel as though he might strangle her at any moment.
¡°People say you need to catch someone in the act. You didn¡¯t even see your uncle¡¯s shadow, yet you use me of cheating. Do you need to see me in bed with him to ease your guilt over cheating with Jordyn?¡± N questioned.
rk¡¯s expression darkened instantly, and he gritted his teeth. ¡°I never thought that.¡±
Nyia chuckled ¡°Do you dare swear you never thought that?¡±
rk¡¯s sullen silence was his only response.
The two fell into an ufortable silence once again.
N smirked mockingly, said nothing more, pushed open the car door,
and left.
rk watched her retreating figure, mming his hands on the steering wheel in frustration and causing the horn to re. However, N never
looked back.
Back in her bedroom, N heard the sound of the car engine starting, indicating that rk had left. She didn¡¯t know where he had gone, nor
did she care.
The next morning, rk woke up with a hangover. As he turned his head, he saw Jordyn lying naked beside him. His expression remained impassive as he got up, dressed, and prepared to leave.
Just as he reached the door, Jordyn¡¯s gentle voice called out from behind him. ¡°rko, I made some hangover soupst night and kept it warm. Why don¡¯t you have some before you go?¡±
rk nced back at her with a nk stare.
To him, she was merely an essory to his otherwise mundane life with N, nothing more than a temporary diversion. Jordyn¡¯s eagerness. to please him stemmed solely from his position as CEO of the Sumner Group.
¡°No need,¡± he replied curtly and left without another word.
He went straight to the office.
As soon as he entered, he summoned Michael. ¡°If I remember correctly,
??
Prospectus Technology once bankrupted a smallpany run by the Magills.¡±
Seeing the cold look in rk¡¯s eyes, Michael felt a chill. ¡°Yes, that¡¯s right. What about it?¡±
rk smirked. ¡°Find the Magills.¡±
Michael was momentarily taken aback. ¡°Mr. Sumner, are you nning to go after your uncle?¡±
¡°Yes. Is there a problem?¡± rk retorted.
Michael hesitated, then tried to reason with him. ¡°Mr. Sumner, the Sumner Group has many partnerships with Prospectus Technology. If he finds out you¡¯re plotting against him, he might terminate the contracts, which wouldn¡¯t be beneficial for you.¡±
CHAPTER 159
¡°He bankrupted the Magills. If theye for revenge, what does that have to do with me?¡± rk dismissed Michael¡¯s concerns, ignoring his warning.
Seeing that rk wasn¡¯t listening, Michael frowned and replied, ¡°Alright, I understand.¡±
rk¡¯s eyes. Since Damon had tried multiple times to humiliate him, it was time to teach.
him a lesson.
For the next few days, Dn went to theb daily, bringing gifts for N, but she rejected them each time.
While helping N set up an experiment, Melodymented, ¡°I don¡¯t get it. Why does Dn keeping even though you reject him every day? Does he have a masochistic streak?¡±
N shook her head and replied, ¡°I don¡¯t know. Don¡¯t worry about him. You set that rack up backward.¡±
Melody quickly fixed the rack and didn¡¯t bring it up again.
After a week of visiting theb, Dn finally figured out N¡¯s. schedule. Now, he just needed to find a time when Melody wasn¡¯t around to take N away.
On Friday morning, when Dn brought flowers to N and saw that she was alone in theb, he knew his chance hade. He handed her the flowers and smirked when he noticed her irritation.
¡°Ms. Jayston, are you sure you don¡¯t want to ept my flowers?¡± he
asked.
N sensed something was off, and her gaze grew cautious. She instinctively grabbed her phone, saying, ¡°I¡¯ve told you many times, I¡¯m married, Mr. Lomas. Please respect that.¡±
¡°Respect? Today, I¡¯ll show you what happens when you look down on me!¡± Dn cackled.Please check at N/?vel(D)rama.Org.
N turned to run for the back door, but after only a few steps, she was violently yanked back by her hair.
¡°Ah!¡± she screamed.
A cloth with a sharp, chemical odor was pressed over her nose.
Struggling, she fumbled blindly with her phone, hoping to call someone for help. As her vision blurred, the call connected, but she lost
consciousness.
Dn, holding the unconscious N, picked up her phone from the floor. He immediately ended the call and turned off the phone.
The newly constructedb building was seldom visited, so Dn felt confident acting boldly. He dragged N into the adjacent equipment room, locked the door, and set up a camera.
Once he finished, he would have footage to ckmail N intopliance. Perhaps he could use the video to force her into repeated. sexual encounters.
at
Grinning wickedly the thought, he looked at N with lecherous
intent. He slowly approached her, knelt, and began unbuttoning herb.
coat.
After undoing two buttons, he grew impatient and roughly tore the coat. apart.
With a loud rip, the remaining buttons flew off, revealing a V¨Cneck
Chapter 160
N, who should have been unconscious, had seized a nearby sk and smashed it over Dn''s head.
The sharp shards of ss sliced into his forehead, and blood began to flow immediately.
Seizing the moment of his shock, N shoved him away and stumbled toward the door.
However, she had expended all her strength in that single blow and felt weak and unsteady. Before she could reach the door, Dn yanked her back by her hair. "Bitch, how dare you hit me!" Dn snarled.
He pped her across the face repeatedly. His forehead, still bleeding, made him appear grotesque and terrifying.
N wanted to fight back, but her weakness prevented her. She could only re at him with disdain.
Her defiant stare further enraged Dn. He pped her again and again until she was nearly unconscious.
"Let''s see how long you can keep that attitude!" he growled.
He threw her to the floor and ripped off her skirt. As he gazed at her pale, slender legs, his eyes turned red with lust, and his hands began to roam.
N tried to resist, but the disparity in their strength was too great, and the effects of the drug still lingered. She couldn''t even push him away. "Dn, if you touch me, you''ll die without a ce to be buried!" she threatened.
Dn sneered. "You think I''m scared? I wouldn''t be here if I wasn''t confident I could get away with this
As he spoke, his hands moved up herlegs
"Wearingcy underwear, huh? You must be dying for me to screw you," he taunted
Nausea surged in N''s throat, and she began to dry heave.
She gripped a shard of ss tightly, the pain serving as a grounding force. She resolved to sh Dn''s throat if given the chance.
If she couldn''t seed, she would cut her own throat. She would rather die than allow him to have his way.
Dn''s eyes were cold, and his thoughts were vile. He grabbed her underwear, preparing to pull it off when suddenly the equipment room door was violently kicked open.
Dn''s face twisted in surprise. Before he could react, he was kicked. across the roomnding hard and spitting out blood
Upon seeing N''s swollen face, disheveled hair, and nearly naked body, Damon''s gaze turned murderous. He took off his coat and covered her, then slowly approached Dn Dn''s face was astien, his eyes filled with terror: When he saw it was Damon, he knew he was finished.
Damon grabbed him by the cor and lifted him, looking like a demon from hell.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
Dn trembled and began to beg for mercy, "M-Mr Sumner, I was wrong I''m inhuman, please- Ahr."
With a scream, Dn''s arm was dislocated.
"You used both hands to touch her. The other one can go too," Damon said tly.
"Mr. Sumner, I didn''t-" Before Dn could finish, Damon dislocated hist other arm.
Overwhelmed by pain, Dn broke out in a cold sweat and was unable to beg for mercy.
Damon tossed him aside like garbage and walked back to N. Seeing her left hand bleeding, he crouched down and took hold of her wrist.
CHAPTER 161
¡°Let go!¡± Damon said.
Looking into Damon¡¯s angry eyes, N finally felt a sense of relief after surviving the ordeal, and her eyes reddened. She slowly opened her hand, revealing the bloody mess of her palm and the piece of ss embedded in it.
Damon¡¯s expression darkened as he picked her up and headed out.
N grabbed his shirt cor, her voice weak. ¡°Mr. Sumner, just have someone bring me some clothes.¡±
If Damon carried her out of thepany, rumors would undoubtedly spread like wildfire by the next day.
Damon looked down at her, his gaze cold. Upon seeing her pale, delicate face looking so pitiful, his expression darkened further. ¡°Your hand is injured. It needs immediate attention.¡±
N shook her head stubbornly. ¡°There¡¯s a first¨Caid kit in theb. I can take care of it myself and go to the hospitalter.¡±
Damon could tell that she didn¡¯t want to be associated with him, so his expression grew even darker. ¡°Should I call rk for you?¡±
N tightened her grip on his shirt before shaking her head. ¡°No. Just call the police for me.¡±Content is property of N?velDrama.Org.
¡°Alright,¡± he said, setting her down and calling Spencer to bring a set of women¡¯s clothes.
Soon, Spencer entered theb with the clothes. Seeing N disheveled and wearing Damon¡¯s jacket, he was astonished.
Could it be that¡ Damon and N¡
Noticing Spencer¡¯s expression, Damon knew what he was thinking. With
a poker face, he instructed, ¡°Give her the clothes and notify security to take the man in the equipment room to the police.¡±
Spencer snapped out of his surprise and handed the clothes to N.
¡°Thank you,¡± N said, then took the clothes and walked to the
restroom.
Although the drug¡¯s effects hadn¡¯t fully worn off, she had rested enough to change clothes.
Spencer went to the equipment room and found Dn lying on the floor. It finally dawned on him what had happened.
A few minutester, the security team arrived and took Dn to the police station.
¡°Mr. Sumner, about Dn¡¡± Spencer began.
A cold glint shed in Damon¡¯s eyes. ¡°I don¡¯t want to see him out again. Also, delete all the surveince footage from today in theb building.¡±
¡°Yes, sir!¡± Spencer replied.
N changed into the new clothes and washed her face in the restroom. Upon seeing her swollen cheeks in the mirror, her eyes
dimmed.
When she returned to theb, Damon and Spencer were gone, and
Dn had been taken away.
The equipment room had been restored to its original state. If not for the stinging pain in her face, she might have thought it had all been a bad dream.
She bandaged her hand and sent a message to HR, requesting leave to go to the hospital. The wound was deep, and she needed a tetanus shot.
N entered the payment hall with the paperwork in hand and immediately spotted rk and Jordyn leaving.
rk was holding some documents, his brow furrowed slightly as he spoke quietly to Jordyn. Jordyn, in turn, smiled patiently and exined things to him.
It seemed that rk was apanying Jordyn for a prenatal check¨Cup.
N couldn¡¯t help but smile wryly. They looked more like a couple than she and rk ever did.
She turned to head in the opposite direction, but rk appeared to sense something and looked her way. He recognized N¡¯s back, and his frown deepened. He began walking toward her, but Jordyn grabbed his wrist.
¡°rko, we need to go for the check¨Cup. Don¡¯t you have a meetingter?
she reminded him.
CHAPTER 162
¡°Let¡¯s go,¡± rk said, retracting his gaze.
As they turned away, Jordyn let out a barely noticeable sigh of relief.
While Jordyn was getting her check¨Cup, rk repeatedly tried to call N, but she didn¡¯t answer. Growing impatient, he eventually gave up.
After paying her bills and receiving her injection, N got a call from the police station asking her toe in and give a statement.
Meanwhile, Erin had learned about Dn¡¯s failed n.
Her subordinate looked worried, his voice tense. ¡°Ms. Hulle, do you
think Dn will betray us?¡±
Erin sneered. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. He wouldn¡¯t dare. Unless he wants his family destroyed.¡±
Dn was proving to be useless. Despite having everything nned for him, he had still failed miserably. She needed to find another way to deal with N.
By the time N finished giving her statement at the police station, it
was evening.
She drove straight home. Just as she got out of the car, rk¡¯s car pulled up at the gate.
N hesitated before continuing to walk inside, but rk got out of the car angrily.This is from N?velDrama.Org.
¡°Why didn¡¯t you answer my calls this afternoon?!¡± he demanded.
144
Upon seeing the swelling on her face, his eyes widened in shock. He quickly approached her, asking, ¡°Who did this to your face?!¡±
He then noticed the bandage on her hand, and his expression darkened
even more.
¡°It¡¯s nothing, just a minor issue,¡± N replied, not wanting to exin further, and kept walking.
rk grabbed her wrist, his voice cold. ¡°Tell me yourself, or I¡¯ll investigate. If I have to investigate, I¡¯ll involve Uncle Damon.¡±
Hearing the threat in his voice, N shook off his hand and asked, ¡± rk, do you think this is funny?¡°.
¡°Of course it¡¯s funny. At least it shows you¡¯re not as indifferent to Uncle Damon as you im,¡± rk replied.
His prating gaze bore into her, searching for any sign of guilt but finding none.
¡°I just don¡¯t want to drag innocent people into our mess,¡± N said.
¡°Innocent?¡± rk found it ridiculous. ¡°Don¡¯t tell me you haven¡¯t noticed his feelings for you!¡±
N pressed her lips together, looking at him with indifference.
¡°You keep harping on about me and your uncle, but what about you? How innocent are you? Weren¡¯t you just with Jordyn for a prenatal check -up today?¡± she questioned.
rk froze and then blurted out, ¡°So it really was you in the hospital lobby!¡±
As he spoke, he finally noticed that her clothes were the same as those of the person he had seen at the hospital.
¡°It was me. So what right do you have to question me?¡± N asked.
+25
A wave of guilt washed over rk, but N¡¯s indifference quickly turned it into anger.
¡°If you really cared about me, you wouldn¡¯t have ignored me at the hospital,¡± rk defended himself.
N found it almostughable that he was ying the victim.
¡°And you? Do you care about me? You saw I was hurt, yet your first reaction wasn¡¯t to find out what happened but to threaten me with your
uncle.
¡°rk, other than throwing tantrums, what else can you do?¡± she retorted, her eyes cold and disappointed as she looked up at him.
rk felt a stab in his heart, his hands clenched by his sides.
¡°N, you wouldn¡¯t tell me the truth, so I had no choice but to push you,¡± he tried to exin.
Nughed coldly. ¡°Stop making excuses. It just makes you look pathetic.¡±
She turned and walked away.
rk didn¡¯t stop her, his expression darkening as he watched her go.
After she disappeared from sight, he took out his phone and called Michael. ¡°Find out what happened to N at Prospectus Technology today!¡±
¡°Yes, Mr. Sumner. By the way, I have news about the matter you asked me to investigate this morning. After the Magills¡®pany went bankrupt, Josh Magill couldn¡¯t bear the massive debt andmitted
suicide.
¡°His son, Samuel Magill, has been hiding ever since. Recently, he was caught and had a finger cut off by debt collectors who threatened to kill
him if he didn¡¯t pay up. Desperate, he tried to rob someone on the street and got arrested.¡±
CHAPTER 163
Chapter 163
rk smirked, his voice void of emotion. ¡°How pitiful. He must hate the person who ruined his family and left him destitute.¡±
Michael shuddered at the coldness in rk¡¯s voice.
¡°Mr. Sumner, should we get him out?¡± Michael asked.
¡°Of course. I want to see him within three days,¡± rk replied.
Michael hesitated. He wanted to dissuade him but remained silent, knowing it would be pointless.
He hung up with a sigh, contemting the possibility of finding a new job. rk¡¯s current demands could be disastrous if they were
discovered.
N remained in her room until dinner.
After eating silently, she quickly retreated upstairs, eager to avoid lingering.
rk watched her departure with a dark, unsettling expression.
As Patricia cleared the table, she said, ¡°Mr. Sumner, silent treatments are harmful. Women need to beforted.¡±
rk frowned, irritation shing in his eyes. ¡°I know.¡±
It wasn¡¯t that he didn¡¯t want tofort N, but she wouldn¡¯t give him a chance. Moreover, he still didn¡¯t fully understand what had transpired that day. Even if he wanted tofort her, he wasn¡¯t sure how.
Noting rk¡¯s grim expression, Patricia realized he wasn¡¯t listening, sighed, and returned to the kitchen.
Back in his study, rk struggled to concentrate on his documents, his thoughts drifting to N¡¯s swollen face and bandaged hand. He called Patricia and asked her to bring some antiseptic ointment to N.
Patricia smiled. ¡°Mr. Sumner, it would be more effective if you took it to her yourself.¡±
Just as rk was about to respond, his phone rang.
After a brief conversation, his face darkened, radiating a chilling intensity. He spoke coldly. ¡°If he can¡¯t control his lower body, there¡¯s no need for him to keep it.¡±
After ending the call, rk turned to Patricia and said, ¡°Bring me the ointment. I¡¯ll go see her.¡±
Reflecting on N¡¯s near assault earlier that day while he was with Jordyn for her check¨Cup, rk felt a pang of guilt. She must have been so disappointed to see him at the hospital.
With the ointment in hand, rk hesitated at N¡¯s bedroom door,
unsure whether to knock.
Inside, N was debating whether to call Damon to thank him. Just as she decided to dial, there was a knock at the door.
Setting her phone down, she inadvertently hit the call button and went to open the door. Upon seeing rk, she tried to shut it immediately,
but he blocked it with his foot.
¡°N¡ I¡¯m sorry about today. I was too harsh,¡± rk began.
Seeing his guilty expression, N remained indifferent. ¡°What? No longer suspicious of me and Uncle Damon?¡±
Unaware that the call had connected, Damon, who was about to speak, heard their conversation and his expression darkened.
¡°I know you don¡¯t like him, but he¡¯s better than me. I was afraid you¡¯d develop feelings for him,¡± rk said.
N stayed silent. She did have feelings for Damon but knew she could never admit it.
Looking down to hide her sadness, she said quietly, ¡°If you¡¯re so paranoid, why not put a monitor on me? That way, you¡¯ll know exactly who I meet and what I say.¡±
rk took her hand and spoke softly. ¡°I know I was wrong. I promise I won¡¯t doubt you and Uncle Damon again, okay?¡±
N smirked mockingly. rk probably didn¡¯t even believe his own words. If there was another opportunity, he¡¯d still doubt her and Damon.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
However, she didn¡¯t want to argue any further, so she said, ¡°If there¡¯s nothing else, please leave. I want to rest.¡±
rk didn¡¯t move, his eyes fixed on her, and asked slowly, ¡°N, you¡¯ll never fall in love with Uncle Damon, right?¡±
CHAPTER 164
Chapter 164
N pressed her lips together and looked down. ¡°Yes.¡±
Out of the corner of his eye, rk nced at her phone on the table and said calmly, ¡°I believe you. I brought some ointment. Let me help you apply it.¡±
Once Jordyn had the baby, he nned to send her away immediately, ensuring she never came between him and N again.
He stepped forward, but N suddenly stepped back, saying, ¡°No need. I¡¯ll do it myself.¡±
Seeing the distance in her eyes, rk suppressed his disappointment and forced a smile. He handed her the ointment and reminded her, ¡± Apply it now and again before bed. The swelling should go down by morning.¡±
She took the ointment from him. ¡°Thank you.¡±
¡°I¡¯m your husband. It¡¯s my duty to take care of you,¡± rk said.Please check at N/?vel(D)rama.Org.
¡°I¡¯m going to rest now,¡± N told him.
¡°Alright, I¡¯ll get back to work,¡± rk replied.
As he turned away, he heard the door close behind him, and a bitter smile tugged at his lips.
Back at her vanity, N threw the ointment into the trash.
The doctor had already prescribed her medication at the hospital earlier. His concern now felt useless. He hadn¡¯t been there when she was most terrified and helpless, as he had been with another woman for a prenatal check¨Cup.
N despised Jordyn, but she knew the bigger problem was rk¡¯s weakness. If he hadn¡¯t given in to temptation, Jordyn wouldn¡¯t have
gottern pregnant, nor would she have had the audacity to taunt N.
The next morning, N went to Damon¡¯s office as soon as she arrived at thepany.
His expression was icy when he asked, ¡°What is it?¡±
Sensing his cold demeanor, N felt a pang of bitterness but tried to keep her voice steady. ¡°Mr. Sumner, you saved me yesterday. I¡¯d like to thank you with a meal.¡±
¡°No need. I would have helped anyone in that situation,¡± Damon stated.
In other words, he was saying, ¡°You¡¯re no different from anyone else.¡±
N pressed her lips together and nodded. ¡°I understand, but you saved my life. I still want to repay you.¡±
¡°Staying out of my sight is the best way you can repay me,¡± Damon said, picking up a document, his face devoid of any emotion.
N stood stunned for a moment, her fingers twisting together. ¡°Mr. Sumner, I understand. I¡¯ll try not to bother you anymore.¡±
Damon¡¯s grip on the document tightened, crumpling it slightly, but his smile was nonchnt when he asked, ¡°Still here? Waiting for me to see
you out?¡±
N stiffened. After a few seconds, she looked up at him, saying, ¡°I¡¯ll go back to work now. Thank you again for yesterday.¡±
Damon didn¡¯t look at her, his eyes focused on the document.
Feeling a tightness in her chest, N turned and left. She did not want to humiliate herself further.
Once the office was quiet again, Damon threw the document on the desk, frustration and anger boiling over. He had already guessed N¡¯s
answer when rk asked if she would ever love himst night, but hearing it confirmed still stung.
If she truly disliked him and felt nothing for him, he wouldn¡¯t force it. After all, there were plenty of beautiful and understanding women out there. He didn¡¯t need to fixate on her.
Taking out a cigarette, he lit it and sent a message in a group chat with just three people.
CHAPTER 165
Chapter 165
Damon: [Drinks tonight.]
Caleb Goddard: [?]
Nathaniel Preston: [You¡¯ve been avoiding us like the guetely. What¡¯s with the sudden enthusiasm? Got your heart broken?]
Damon: [Shut up.]
Nathaniel: [Alright, alright, I hit a sore spot. I¡¯ll stop. There¡¯s a new bar on North Saint Street. I¡¯ll book a private room.]
Damon: [¡]
N had just returned to theb when Melody approached her, asking, N, why are you sote today? Hey¡ what happened to your hand? Did you cut yourself during an experiment?¡±
N didn¡¯t want too many people to know about yesterday¡¯s incident, so she nodded along. ¡°Yeah.¡±
11
¡°Then let me handle the operations for now. You can supervise,¡± Melody offered.
¡°It¡¯s fine. It doesn¡¯t affect my work,¡± N declined.
They chatted briefly before starting the morning¡¯s experiment.
The morning flew by.
N took off her protective goggles and gloves, ready for lunch.
Melody, staring at her phone, said, ¡°N, a friend just told me severalpanies have terminated their contracts with Prospectus Technology. Even thepany she works for did. Do you think
something¡¯s going on with Prospectus Technology?¡±This is from N?velDrama.Org.
N had a bad feeling. She asked with a frown, ¡°Whichpanies exactly?¡±
Melody listed severalpanies, all of which had close ties with Gen Pharma and the Rainford Group. It seemed Tom and the Rainfords had decided not to wait for her apology and had started targeting
Prospectus Technology instead.
N felt a pang of worry and considered texting Damon to ask but hesitated, remembering how he had told her not to appear before him.
After a few seconds, she closed the chat window.
Forget it. Going to him now would only annoy him.
Elsewhere, Jacqueline sat on the ck leather sofa in Gen Pharma¡¯s CEO office, looking at Tom with admiration.
She gushed, ¡°Tom, you¡¯re amazing. So manypanies have terminated their contracts with Prospectus Technology. Damon must be really stressed right now.¡±
She couldn¡¯t believe that, with so manypanies pulling out, the Sumners could still allow N to remain hidden withouting forward to apologize.
Tom, ncing at his phone, gave a perfunctory hum.
He had coordinated the contract terminations to position himself to capture Prospectus Technology¡¯s market share. The Sumners had dominated Saintornia for too long, and it was time for others to get a piece of the pie.
Jacqueline¡¯s issue just pushed up the timetable for his and the Rainfords¡® ns. It wasn¡¯t primarily about her.
3
If Gen Pharma and the Rainford Group weren¡¯t capable of standing up to the Sumners, the Rainfords would have been the ones apologizing for what Jacqueline had done.
¡°Tom, will Ms. Weir be upset with you for helping me like this? She misunderstood usst time¡ Should I go exin to her?¡± Jacqueline asked.
Tom frowned as he remembered how Vrie had berated him over the phone for supposedly orchestrating N¡¯s humiliation of Jacqueline.
His expression darkened. He had been busy with work these past few days and hadn¡¯t contacted her. Yet, she hadn¡¯t reached out either.
This realization soured his mood even more.
Seeing Tom¡¯s displeasure at the mention of Vrie, Jacqueline quickly said, ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Tom. You don¡¯t want to talk about Ms. Weir. I-¡±
Before she could finish, Tom cut her off, ¡°Enough. I have work to do. You should go.¡±
Jacqueline bit her lip. She was disgruntled but knew this Tom wasn¡¯t the same boy who used to worry over her every frown. She didn¡¯t dare act out.
CHAPTER 166
Chapter 166
+25
Jacqueline forced a smile and stood up, saying, ¡°Okay, there¡¯s a new restaurant that¡¯s really good. Once you¡¯re not busy, let¡¯s go there together.¡±
¡°Sure,¡± Tom answered.
After Jacqueline left, he frowned and stared at his phone for a while before calling Vrie.
The call quickly went to a busy tone, and his expression darkenedpletely.
¡°N, N?¡± Melody called out.
N snapped back to reality, looking at Melody, who was staring at her curiously. N collected herself. ¡°Sorry, what did you say?¡±
¡°N, do you have something on your mind? You¡¯ve been zoning out a lot,¡± Melody asked with concern.
N looked down. After a few seconds of silence, she suddenly stood up. ¡°Melody, I just remembered something I need to take care of. You can go back to theb first after lunch.¡±
Before Melody could respond, N grabbed her tray and left. After returning her tray, she took the elevator to the top floor.
When Spencer saw her, he frowned and stepped in front of her. ¡°Ms. Jayston, Mr. Sumner is resting. If you need something,e back in the afternoon.¡±
¡°No need. I¡¯ll wait here,¡± N replied.
¡°Is it urgent?¡± Spencer asked to confirm.
Although he didn¡¯t like N much after the hospital incident, he was worried that Damon would be angry if it was important and he dyed
her.
N shook her head. ¡°It¡¯s not urgent. I¡¯ll wait until he wakes up.¡±
She found a chair in the break room and sat down.
After hesitating for a moment, Spencer decided not to disturb Damon. After all, making N wait wouldn¡¯t hurt anyone.
N waited for over an hour.
As the afternoon work hours began, Spencer saw that N was still there and finally went to notify Damon.Content is property of N?velDrama.Org.
Soon, Spencer told N she could go in.
In the office, Damon was reading a document and didn¡¯t look up when he heard her footsteps.
¡°What do you need?¡± he asked.
¡°Mr. Sumner, I know you don¡¯t want to see me. I¡¯ll leave after I say what I need to say,¡± N began. ¡°I heard severalpanies that have strong partnerships with Gen Pharma and the Rainford Group have terminated their contracts with Prospectus Technology. If necessary, I can apologize to Jacqueline.¡±
Damon looked up at her. ¡°Why do you suddenly want to apologize to Jacqueline? Do you think you were wrong that day?¡±
N took a deep breath and looked at him seriously. ¡°I don¡¯t think I was wrong. I just don¡¯t want to cause you any more trouble.¡±
¡°Why?¡± Damon asked.
Meeting Damon¡¯s cold gaze, N couldn¡¯t help but look away. ¡°Because you helped me that day, and I¡¯m very grateful. I don¡¯t want Prospectus Technology to be affected because of me.¡±
Damon put down the document and leaned back in his chair, his demeanor elegant and aristocratic, making it hard to look away.
He asked again, ¡°Are you really just worried about Prospectus Technology, or have you developed feelings for me?¡±
N froze and instinctively denied it. ¡°Mr. Sumner, you¡¯re overthinking it. I¡ª¡±
Before she could finish, Damon interrupted her calmly, ¡°A few days ago, Gen Pharma and the Rainford Group also terminated their contracts with the Sumner Group. I remember you didn¡¯t n to apologize then, nor did you give this excuse. Do you really have no feelings for me at all?¡±
His dark eyes bore into N, demanding an answer. She wanted to run away, but her feet felt rooted to the spot.
CHAPTER 167
Damon had helped N countless times, always rescuing her when she was in danger.
How could she not have feelings for him? But what good would that do her?
There was no chance for them. They couldn¡¯t even ovee the obstacle of societal judgment. Besides, she was still married to rk.
Taking a deep breath, N looked at Damon and spoke slowly. ¡°Mr. Sumner, I want to apologize because you have helped me so much, and I want a chance to repay you. As for rk, he cheated on me first. Naturally, I wouldn¡¯t apologize to Jacqueline on his behalf.¡±
Damon¡¯s gaze grew icy as he looked at N. ¡°I understand, Ms. Jayston. Please leave. Prospectus Technology hasn¡¯t reached the point where it needs to send a woman to the Rainfords to apologize.¡±
He didn¡¯t look at her again and resumed reading his document.
Seeing his cold demeanor, N felt a sharp pang in her heart and bit her lip. ¡°Mr. Sumner, if there¡¯s anything you need, you can have Mr. Hogg contact me anytime.¡±
Damon didn¡¯t respond, his expression growing even colder.
Not expecting a reply, N turned and left.
Back at theb, Melody looked at her with confusion. ¡°N, are you in some kind of trouble? Maybe I can help if you tell me.¡±
N shook her head and forced a smile. ¡°No. I just didn¡¯t sleep wellst night, so I¡¯m a bit tired.¡±
Melody frowned. N had been fine until just before lunch when she
mentioned severalpanies terminating their contracts with Prospectus Technology.
Could it be that she was worried about how thepany¡¯s potential downfall might affect her job?
The more Melody thought about it, the more usible it seemed.
She tried tofort N. ¡°N, as a fellow worker, I understand your worries. But don¡¯t stress. Prospectus Technology is a hugepany. It won¡¯t go under because a fewpanies terminated their contracts. At most, they¡¯ll lose a few million.¡±
Just as N was about to speak, her phone rang. She saw the number and a glint appeared in her eyes. She excused herself, saying, ¡°I need to take this call.¡±Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
She went to the stairwell and answered. ¡°So, any progress?¡±
A deep male voice responded from the other end. ¡°Yes, let¡¯s discuss it tonight. I¡¯ll send you the address.¡±
Since now wasn¡¯t a good time for N to talk, she replied softly, ¡°Okay.¡± After ending the call, she quickly received a text message.
At 8:00 p.m., N walked into a bar named Just One and asked the server to take her to Room 7, which had been reserved.
Her contact was already waiting and smiled when he saw her. ¡°Ms. Jayston, this is our first meeting. My name is Pete Monaghan. Please, have a seat.¡±
Pete was the private investigator N had hired, renowned in the
industry for his ability to uncover anything once he set his mind to it. Previously a paparazzo, he had exposed several major scandals in the entertainment industry over the past year.
apter
MA
He was small and unassuming, the kind of person one might overlook in a crowd, but a long scar running from his right forehead to his left jawline lent him an intimidating presence.
It was rumored that this scar resulted from a revenge attack after he exposed too many secrets in the entertainment industry.
Shortly after his injury, he announced his retirement from the paparazzi business and transitioned to a career as a private investigator.
N sat down across from him and said calmly, ¡°Mr. Monaghan, have you made any progress on the matter I asked you to investigate?¡±
Understanding how important this was to her, Pete didn¡¯t hesitate. He handed her a file.
CHAPTER 168
+25
¡°You¡¯ll understand once you read it, Ms. Jayston,¡± Pete said.
If what he had discovered hadn¡¯t been significant, he wouldn¡¯t have met with N in person.
As N opened the file, her expression quickly turned grim. She asked, ¡± Are you sure this information is urate?¡±
Pete nodded confidently and replied, ¡°Of course, Ms. Jayston. I wouldn¡¯t charge such a high fee if I weren¡¯t certain of the value of my findings.¡±
Closing the file, N inquired, ¡°Can you find concrete evidence that Cyrus orchestrated the ident?¡±
The documents Pete provided revealed that after the bankruptcy of Harris Pharmaceuticals, Godric received arge sum of money and died mysteriously within a year. Before his death, he had contacted Cyrus.
While these connections implicated Cyrus in the ident six years ago, there was no direct evidence linking him to it. For N, direct evidence
was crucial.
¡°I can, but it will take some time. The Sumner family¡¯s influence in Saintornia is substantial. If we investigate too openly, we risk being discovered quickly. We¡¯ll have to proceed cautiously,¡± Pete cautioned.Please check at N/?vel(D)rama.Org.
¡°That¡¯s fine. This isn¡¯t urgent. Take your time and let me know if there are any updates,¡± N agreed.
With their discussion concluded, Pete stood up and said, ¡°Ms. Jayston, I have other matters to attend to tonight. I¡¯ll take my leave.¡±
¡°Thank you for your efforts,¡± N replied.
¡°You¡¯re wee,¡± Pete said, then left.
13
N remained in the private room for another half hour before leaving.
Meanwhile, on the second floor, Nathaniel watched Damon silently drink ss after ss with a grim expression and raised an eyebrow.
¡°Damon, are you really heartbroken?¡±
When Damon had just started hispany and faced bankruptcy several times due to others¡® schemes, he never appeared this upset.
Damon shot Nathaniel a cold look, said nothing, and took another sip of
his drink.
Nathaniel turned to Caleb, who was sitting nearby. ¡°Caleb, aren¡¯t you going to say something? If he keeps drinking like this, he¡¯ll end up in the hospital.¡±
Caleb¡¯s expression remained indifferent. ¡°One less drinker, one less problem.¡±
Nathaniel was speechless. What a friend. He nced down at the dance floor and suddenly said, ¡°Hey, isn¡¯t that your niece¨Cinw?¡±
Damon paused his drinking and looked in the direction Nathaniel pointed. It was indeed N.
At that moment, she was being osted by a drunken man, her face showing extreme displeasure.
Damon set down his ss and stood up, only to sit back down again. He addressed the manager standing nearby with cold detachment. ¡°Is your bar¡¯s security so poor that people don¡¯t feel safe here?¡±
The bar manager broke into a cold sweat and quickly said, ¡°Mr. Sumner, I¡¯ll handle it right away.¡±
Nathaniel looked at Damon and couldn¡¯t help but tease, ¡°If I remember
correctly, you don¡¯t seem to like your nephew much, and you¡¯re not one to meddle in others¡® affairs. Yet here you are, making sure someone helps your niece¨Cinw.¡±
Nathaniel knew well that rk often faced difficulties negotiating deals in the past, and Damon never intervened, let alone offered assistance.
Damon remained indifferent. ¡°If something happens and the Sumners find out I was here and didn¡¯t help, it won¡¯t look good.¡±
Nathaniel nodded. ¡°Makes sense.¡±
He had met rk¡¯s mother before¨Cshe was quite a formidable character.
Caleb raised an eyebrow, a hint of interest in his eyes. Damon had always been aw unto himself, indifferent to others¡® opinions. His assistance today likely had another motivation behind it.
CHAPTER 169
Meanwhile, N couldn¡¯t believe her bad luck. As she left the private room, intending to cross the hall and exit, a drunk man suddenly grabbed her halfway there.
¡°Hey, prettydy, here alone? Hic¡¡± The man huped, his alcohol-den breath making N nauseous.
She yanked her arm free and quickly walked away. However, after just a few steps, several men blocked her path.
¡°Hey,dy, ignoring Ty, our boss? You¡¯ve got guts.¡±
N sensed their hostility, and her expression turned cold. ¡°I don¡¯t know any ¡®Ty¡®. If you don¡¯t get out of my way, I¡¯ll call the police.¡±
The next time she met with Pete, she needed to avoid bars. While they were good for discreet information exchanges, they also attracted troublemakers.
¡°Hahaha, call the police? You think we¡¯ll give you that chance?¡± one of the men said as he stepped forward and snatched her phone.
Mockingly, he added, ¡°Go ahead, make the call. What are you going to use now?¡±
N remained silent, her mind racing for a way out. They wouldn¡¯t dare do anything too tant in the bar. However, if they took her elsewhere, it would be a different story.Content is property of N?velDrama.Org.
At that moment, Tyler Krout approached her, holding a bottle of whiskey. ¡°I won¡¯t make this hard for you. Just drink this bottle, and I¡¯ll pretend this never happened. How about that?¡±
N nced at the bottle. Who knew what he might have put in it? Still, she took it.
Tyler¡¯s eyes gleamed with anticipation. Once she drank it, she¡¯d be out cold in five minutes¡
¡°Ty!¡± one of Tyler¡¯s henchmen shouted as N smashed the bottle against Tyler¡¯s head.
The alcohol already in Tyler¡¯s system dulled his reactions, and he couldn¡¯t dodge in time. Crimson liquid mixed with blood trickled down his face, and he nearly fell from the pain.
Watching from the second¨Cfloor booth, Nathaniel was taken aback.¡± Damon, your niece¨Cinw is brutal! She didn¡¯t even hesitate to smash
that bottle.¡±
He suddenly had a newfound respect for N.
Damon¡¯s expression remained indifferent as he said, ¡°Oh.¡±
Given what he knew about N, this wasn¡¯t surprising at all.
Tyler¡¯s henchmen quickly helped him up while the others charged at N with fury. Armed with the broken bottle, she managed to fend them off, injuring a few in the process.
¡°Dammit! When we catch this bitch, I¡¯m gonna teach her a lesson!¡± one of the men shouted.
Ignoring the risk of injury, another man lunged at N. He attempted to grab the bottle and choke her simultaneously.
N quickly retreated, but another man seized her from behind.
He was much stronger, and she couldn¡¯t break free. Soon, the bottle was wrested from her grasp, and she was subdued.
The men dragged her in front of Tyler, who was holding a towel to his bleeding forehead. He sneered. ¡°She¡¯ll pay tonight!¡±
As soon as he spoke, the men began dragging N away.
CHAPTER 171
It was not unusual for such incidents to ur in a bar, so the
surrounding patrons did not react much. Even if some noticed, they were intimidated by Tyler and his men and dared not intervene. After all, ying the hero required some backing.
N¡¯s mind raced as she sought a way out. She did not want to be taken away like this.
Suddenly, several uniformed men stepped in front of Tyler and his crew. ¡°Ty, you can¡¯t take this woman.
Tyler looked at the manager, Kash Daly, who was leading the group. He removed the cloth from his bloody forehead and sneered. ¡°Kash, see this wound on my head? This woman did it. And if you stop me, you¡¯ll have to answer to Big Jin.¡±
Tyler¡¯s influence in the area made him brazen.
Normally, Kash might have given him some leeway. However, in the presence of those higher up, Tyler was insignificant.
Kash advised, ¡°Ty, she¡¯s someone you can¡¯t afford to mess with. I suggest you let her go, or else-¡±
Tyler interrupted with a coldugh, ¡°Or else what? There¡¯s no one
around here I can¡¯t handle!¡±
Kash¡¯s expression darkened. ¡°You have leeway out of respect for Big Jin. Tyler Krout, if you try to take her, you won¡¯t leave this bar!¡±
¡°Fine, let¡¯s see what you can do!¡± Tyler snarled.
He called Big Jin and handed the phone to Kash.
Kash whispered something into the phone and handed it back.
The moment Tyler put the phone to his ear, Big Jin¡¯s furious voice
13
red through. ¡°Tyler Krout, if you want to die, just say so. Let her go immediately, or I¡¯ll kill you!¡±
Big Jin hung up, and Tyler felt a surge of panic.
Even Big Jin had spoken¨Cwhat was this woman¡¯s background?
He turned to his men and ordered, ¡°Let her go!¡±
Upon seeing his anxious face and the sweat on his forehead, his men dared not question him and immediately released N.
Kash approached N with a smile and apologized, ¡°Miss, I¡¯m terribly sorry for this incident. It was apse in our bar¡¯s management. Please ept this lifetime membership card. All drinks will be half¨Cprice whenever you visit our bar. How does that sound?¡±
N wasn¡¯t naive. During the harassment by Tyler and his men, no bouncer had appeared for a long time. Their sudden intervention now must have been orchestrated by someone.
¡°Who helped me?¡± she asked.
Kash hesitated, unsure whether to introduce her to Damon. After all, Damon had instructed him to handle the situation but hadn¡¯t mentioned meeting N.
Nevertheless, Kash suspected there might be a deeper connection, given that Damon had intervened.
¡°Please follow me. I¡¯ll take you to him,¡± Kash replied.
Leading N to the second floor, Kash showed her to a booth where Damon was seated.
N instinctively bit her lip upon seeing a scantily d woman sitting
next to him.
¡°Mr. Sumner, thisdy wanted to see you, so I brought her over,¡± Kash
announced.
Damon showed no expression and remained silent.
Taking the initiative, N said, ¡°Uncle Damon, thank you for tonight.¡±This is from N?velDrama.Org.
Damon sipped from a ss of wine poured by the woman next to him, still not responding.
The atmosphere grew tense.
Nathaniel, sitting nearby, quickly tried to ease the tension with a smile.
Ms. Jayston, please don¡¯t mind. Damon has always been a man of few words.¡±
CHAPTER 172
Chapter 172
¡°Why did youe back sote tonight?¡± rk asked.
¡°Had some things to deal with,¡± N answered.
rk didn¡¯t press further and simply nodded. ¡°By the way, we¡¯ve found a kidney donor for Dad. If everything goes well, he can have the surgery in a month.¡±
N paused mid¨Caction while changing her shoes, looking up at him in disbelief. ¡°Really?¡±
rk felt his breath catch at the sight of her excited expression and bright eyes, which reminded him of when they first got together.
¡°Yes,¡± he replied.
¡°That¡¯s great! Thank you!¡± N eximed.
Her gratitude was heartfelt. If they hadn¡¯t found a match, her father¡¯s health wouldn¡¯t have held out much longer.
¡°We¡¯re husband and wife. It¡¯s my responsibility,¡± rk said dismissively.
N pursed her lips and remained silent. To her, they had long ceased to be husband and wife. They were just two strangers bound by a piece of paper.
¡°Regardless, I really appreciate it,¡± N reiterated.
Noticing the distance in her gaze, rk felt a wave of helplessness. No matter what he did, he couldn¡¯t seem to bridge the gap between them.
Just as he was about to say something, his phone rang. Seeing it was Michael, he said, ¡°I need to handle some work. It¡¯ste, and you should rest. Goodnight.¡±
With that, he took the call and walked toward the study
¡°Mr. Sumner, Samuel has arrived in Saintornia,¡± Michael reported.
rk paused, a cold glint shing in his eyes. ¡°Got it. Proceed as we discussed.¡±
¡°Understood,¡± Michael replied.
rk ended the call with a cold smirk.
Since that unpleasant encounter at the bar, N hadn¡¯t seen Damon for several days.
Friday night marked the end of the first phase of the experiment, so N and Melody stayed in theb until after 11:00 p.m.
As they walked to the elevator, chatting, Melody sighed. ¡°I used to asionally run into Mr. Sumner when I got off work, but I haven¡¯t seen him at alltely. These experiments are tedious. I need some eye candy to relieve my fatigue.¡±
N chuckled, about to respond, when the elevator doors opened. She froze upon seeing the man inside,
dressed in a suit.
Did Melody¡¯s words have some sort of magic? Speak of the devil, and he appeared.
Melody¡¯s eyes widened in surprise, then lit up with admiration when she saw Damon.
The universe really granted her wish quickly. If only she had wished to win the lottery!
N and Melody stepped into the elevator and greeted Damon.
Melody tugged on N¡¯s sleeve, her eyes sparkling with excitement.
N smiled slightly but remained silent, looking down.
Damon must have been very busy these past few days. She noticed the dark circles under his eyes and the exhaustion on his face.
The elevator was silent except for the hum of its descent.
Soon, they reached the basement level. Damon stepped out first, with N and Melody following close
behind.
Suddenly, Damon spoke in a low voice. ¡°You shouldn¡¯t stay sote at work. It¡¯s not safe for two women.¡±
Hearing this, Melody gazed at him with increased admiration. He was a handsome employer who encouraged employees not to workte¨Cwhat a rare find!
Melody nodded. ¡°Mr. Sumner, tonight was just an exception. We usually leave on time.¡±Please check at N/?vel(D)rama.Org.
Damon didn¡¯t respond and walked toward his car parked nearby.
At that moment, a man wearing a hat and mask suddenly appeared, rushing toward Damon.
N¡¯s face turned pale as she saw the gleam of a knife in the man¡¯s hand. Reacting instinctively, she rushed forward to push Damon out of the way.
¡°Watch out!¡± she shouted before a sharp pain pierced her abdomen and darkness overtook her.
CHAPTER 173
Chapter 173
When N woke up, she blinked at the white ceiling above her and took a moment to recall what had happened.
¡°You¡¯re awake! Do you feel any difort?¡±
N turned her head to see Damon, who looked worn out, standing by her bedside. She shook her head.¡± Aside from some pain in my abdomen, I¡¯m fine. How long was I out?¡±
¡°A full day,¡± Damon replied.
N frowned. ¡°That long?¡±
¡°Yes, the stab wound damaged your spleen,¡± Damon exined.
The doctor had said that if the wound had been a centimeter deeper, N could have bled out and might not have survived.
The more than ten hours Damon had spent waiting outside the operating room had been the most agonizing of his life, each second stretching into eternity.
Pale and weak, N slowly sat up. ¡°Did they catch the attacker?¡±
Damon nodded, his voice icy. ¡°Yes. He was the son of the owner of a rivalpany to Prospectus Technology. After their bankruptcy, he was pursued by creditors and chose to take revenge on me.¡±
He lowered his gaze, concealing the fierceness in his eyes. Samuel would never see the light of day again.
N was about to speak when the door suddenly mmed open.
rk stormed in and red at Damon with a murderous intensity.
¡°Damon! Not only did you get N hurt, but you also blocked the news, making me investigate for a whole day. Do you really think you can do whatever you want in Saintornia?¡±
N looked at Damon in shock. She had already found it strange that rk, given his aversion to Damon, had allowed him to stay by her bedside. She hadn¡¯t expected Damon to have blocked the news.
Damon looked at rk indifferently. ¡°This is a hospital room. She just woke up and needs a quiet environment-¡±
Before he could finish, rk interrupted coldly, ¡°What right do you have to say that? If it weren¡¯t for you, she wouldn¡¯t be hurt!¡±
Damon¡¯s gaze dimmed.
It was true that this incident was his fault. However, N¡¯s act of pushing him out of the way had confirmed something for him¨Cshe cared about him.
Knowing that was enough. He would handle the rest. He would clear every obstacle between them, leaving her to simply wait for him.
Just as he was about to speak, his phone rang. Seeing it was Spencer, he walked to the balcony to answer
- it.
+25
¡°What is it?¡± Damon asked.
Spencer¡¯s voice was grave. ¡°Mr. Sumner, I¡¯ve found out what you asked me to investigate. Ms. Jayston has been looking into the Harris Pharmaceuticals ident from six years ago. It seems your older brother is involved.¡±
Damon¡¯s grip on the phone tightened, his face darkening.
He had been puzzled about why N had returned to rk. Spencer¡¯s words provided the answer. She was investigating the Harris Pharmaceuticals ident. No wonder¡
If that ident was connected to Cyrus, then the Sumners were responsible for the Jaystons¡® bankruptcy. How could she be with him as if nothing had happened?
Spencer asked after a moment of silence, ¡°Mr. Sumner, should we stop Ms. Jayston from investigating?¡±
One was the woman Damon cared about and who had just saved him, while the other was a Sumner. Just the thought of it gave Spencer a headache.
Damon spoke in a low voice. ¡°Find out everything about this incident. I want the full story in a week!¡± Ending the call, Damon pocketed his phone and returned to the room with an icy demeanor.
rk red at him. ¡°Uncle Damon, I¡¯m N¡¯s husband. I¡¯ll take care of her. You can pay for the medical expenses and leave.¡±
¡°I won¡¯t leave until she¡¯s discharged,¡± Damon stated.
rk¡¯s eyes shed with sarcasm as he asked, ¡°Staying here will only make things difficult for N. Are you sure you want to force her?¡±
¡°Is that a threat?¡± Damon questioned, his eyes narrowing dangerously as he regarded rk.
¡°You bet. If you don¡¯t want everyone to know about your feelings for N, you should leave,¡± rk pressed.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
Damon raised an eyebrow. ¡°It seems the Sumner Group doesn¡¯t want to cooperate with Prospectus Technology anymore.¡±
rk smirked, his gaze filled with confidence. ¡°Uncle Damon, if you end the partnership with the Sumner Group, everyone in Saintornia will know about your feelings for my wife by tomorrow.¡±
Just as he finished speaking, he felt a massive pressure overwhelm him.
¡°Do you think the media will choose to offend you or me?¡± Damon asked.
rk¡¯s smile froze before he answered, ¡°They wouldn¡¯t dare offend you, but if Grandpa and Grandma found out, they¡¯d be furious.¡±
Damon leered at him, his chilly aura almost tangible. ¡°rk, you¡¯re the first to dare threaten me like this.¡± rk remained unfazed. ¡°Uncle Damon, you¡¯re also the first to dare covet my wife.¡±
Tension crackled between them, making N frown in frustration.
¡°Enough, both of you. I don¡¯t need either of you to take care of me,¡± she said.
+25
rk looked at N, his face darkening. ¡°N, don¡¯t be stubborn. You¡¯re weak right now, and I need to take care of you.¡±
Most importantly, he wanted to be the one looking after her, not giving Damon any opportunity. After all, he was her legitimate husband, While Damon¡¯s presence was inappropriate.
N¡¯s expression was cold. ¡°I¡¯ll hire a nurse.¡±
¡°N¡¡± rk began.
N ignored him and looked down, acting as if she hadn¡¯t heard.
After a moment of silence, she looked up at Damon. ¡°Uncle Damon, you saved me at the bar, and I took a knife for you this time. We¡¯re even now. Don¡¯te here anymore.¡±
Damon¡¯s face grew grim. ¡°You did it just to even the score?¡±
The bitterness in N¡¯s heart surged at his questioning tone, but she remainedposed as she replied, ¡± Yes. What other reason could there be?¡±
CHAPTER 174
Damon¡¯s expression was grim, and his voice was icy. ¡°I suppose I was just being delusional.¡±
With that, he turned and left.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
rk nced at N, his eyes burning with anger. ¡°What was that about the bar? Why wasn¡¯t I aware?¡±
¡°Was there a need to tell you? Could you have gone back in time to protect me?¡± N retorted.
rk gritted his teeth. ¡°N, you know I don¡¯t want you getting involved with my uncle!¡±
Just the thought of N getting hurt because of Damon, and potentially ruining his own ns, made rk¡¯s anger boil over.
N¡¯s expression remained indifferent. ¡°I don¡¯t want you getting involved with Jordyn either, but you still sneak off to see her, don¡¯t you?¡±
rk¡¯s face darkened, but he couldn¡¯t refute her.
Seeing his face turn red, N let out a smallugh. ¡°Enough. Just go. I really don¡¯t want to see you right now.¡±
rk stared at her in silence for a long time, his eyes cold. ¡°Don¡¯t forget, with just one word from me, your father¡¯s kidney transnt might not happen.¡±
Fury shed in N¡¯s eyes. ¡°rk, is threatening me with my dad all you know how to do?¡±
rk stepped forward and gripped her chin. ¡°If it works, that¡¯s all that matters. If you don¡¯t behave, your father¡¯s kidney will go to someone else next month.¡±
N bit her lip hard, tasting blood but refusing to let go. She stared at rk, his once¨Cfamiliar features now seeming foreign.
Was this really the man who had promised to love her forever and never let her be sad?
She had believed in his promises, but now she realized how naive she had been. Maybe he had meant those promises, but people¡¯s hearts changed.
¡°What do you want me to do? Apologize? Beg you?¡± she asked.
rk sneered, his tone mocking. ¡°N, don¡¯t act like I¡¯ve wronged you. Can you honestly say you took that knife for my uncle without any personal feelings involved?¡±
From the way N had looked at Damon earlier, rk could tell she wasn¡¯t as indifferent to him as she imed. But she was his wife, meant to love only him. How could she love another man?
¡°Yes!¡± N eximed.
rk smiled dangerously and leaned in, speaking softly. ¡°N, I know you too well. When you lie, your right pinky finger twitches slightly. You probably don¡¯t even realize it.¡±
N¡¯s eyes widened slightly, and she gritted her teeth as she red at him. ¡°What do you want?¡±
¡°It¡¯s not about what I want. It¡¯s about you not listening. need to show you the consequences of defying me,¡± rk said.
With that, he released her and turned to leave. He had just reached the door when he heard hurried footsteps behind him.
The next moment, N grabbed the hem of his suit jacket. ¡°rk, please don¡¯t give my dad¡¯s kidney to someone else. I¡¯m begging you.¡±
Her voice, tinged with a sob, softened rk¡¯s heart a bit. Since she had discovered his affair, this was the first time she had spoken to him like this.
He turned to look at her, seeing the pleading in her eyes, and his breath caught slightly.
After a long moment, he finally spoke in a low voice. ¡°This is yourst chance. I hope you make the most of it.¡±
CHAPTER 175
Chapter 175 This is from N?velDrama.Org.
Leaving the hospital room, rk saw Damon standing not far away. He approached with a stern expression. ¡°Uncle Damon, did you wait here just to say something to me?¡±
Damon¡¯s eyes were cold. ¡°I¡¯m the one who has feelings for her. If I find out you¡¯re making things difficult for her, I¡¯ll ensure you lose everything you have.¡±
rk sneered. ¡°You¡¯re quite the romantic, Uncle Damon. If you loved someone other than my wife, I might even be touched.¡±
The thought of Damon coveting N made rk wish Damon would disappear from this world. If N hadn¡¯t intervened, the one in the hospital bed would have been Damon!
¡°You two will get divorced eventually,¡± Damon stated tly.
rk red at Damon. ¡°Even if I die, I won¡¯t divorce her. If you have the courage, go ahead and kill me.¡±
¡°Do you think I wouldn¡¯t dare?¡± Damon scoffed.
Damon¡¯s oppressive aura felt like an imprable wall, closing in on rk. His hands clenched tightly at his sides, as fear began to creep in despite his outwardposure.
¡°I know you would dare. But if you kill me, Grandpa and Grandma will never allow N to be with you. Her family might suffer because of your love. Can you protect them forever? Uncle Damon, watch your own actions,¡± rk said through gritted teeth.
After leaving the hospital, rk called Michael. ¡°What¡¯s the situation with Samuel?¡±
¡°He¡¯s taken all the me and hasn¡¯t mentioned being instructed by anyone,¡± Michael answered.
rk wasn¡¯t surprised. He had given Samuel an offer he couldn¡¯t refuse. He told Michael, ¡°Keep an eye on it. Let me know if anything changes.¡±
Hanging up, rk smirked. Damon was lucky this time, but next time, he might not be so fortunate. After all, he had plenty of enemies.
Back in his office, Damon found Spencer rushing in with a file. ¡°Mr. Sumner, I found something about the Harris Pharmaceuticals incident from six years ago. You should take a look.¡±
Seeing Spencer¡¯s grave expression, Damon frowned and took the file. After reading just two pages, his face turned grim.
¡°Mr. Sumner, this evidence¡¡± Spencer began.
¡°Destroy it immediately. We can¡¯t let Pete find out,¡± Damon ordered.
Damon¡¯s face was grim, his knuckles turning white as he gripped the file. He hadn¡¯t realized that the funds Cyrus had used to sabotage Harris Pharmaceuticals had been borrowed from him.
Cyrus had imed he would acquire a smallpany, and Damon had taken him at his word, transferring the money without question.
If N found out, she would never forgive him. This secret had to remain concealed.
+25
¡°And what about your brother¡¯s scheme against Harris Pharmaceuticals? Should we cover that up as well?
Spencer asked.
¡°1
¡°No. We can leak some clues to Pete at the appropriate time,¡± Damon replied.
If N got hold of the evidence, she would leave rk.
Spencer was surprised but wisely refrained from asking further questions, nodding before leaving the
office.
Once alone, Damon¡¯s gaze grew colder. He hadn¡¯t intended to target rk, but thetter¡¯s threats earlier that day made it clear¨Cit was time to teach him a lesson.
CHAPTER 176
Chapter 176
As soon as rk returned to thepany, several angered shareholders stormed into his office.
¡°Mr. Sumner, what¡¯s going on with Prospectus Technology? I just spoke with their manager, and he said they won¡¯t be continuing their partnership with the Sumner Group. You brokered this deal, so you need to take full responsibility!¡±
If the Sumner Group lost the Prospectus Technology contract, it would cost them at least 100 million dors. Coupled with the previous contract losses with Gen Pharma and the Rainford Group because of N, the shareholders¡® dissatisfaction with rk had reached its peak.
rk looked up at them, noting their angry faces. He spoke calmly. ¡°Please don¡¯t worry. I will find out what happened and give you an exnation. For now, return to your work.¡±
¡°No way. You need to call Damon in front of us, or we can¡¯t trust you!¡±
rk¡¯s gaze turned cold as he looked at Jason Dinsmore, a shareholder who held 3% of thepany.
Although Jason¡¯s shares were not significant, his grandfather had contributed greatly during thepany¡¯s early days. As such, Jason considered himself a veteran, often speaking with a sense of entitlement.
On a regr day, rk might have tolerated this. But today, given his bad mood, Jason¡¯s timing couldn¡¯t have been worse. He was asking for trouble.
rk sneered. ¡°Mr. Dinsmore, if you¡¯re in such a hurry, why don¡¯t you make the call? You can even take my position as CEO if you¡¯d like.¡±
Jason¡¯s face darkened with dissatisfaction. ¡°Mr. Sumner, I don¡¯t have the capability to be the CEO. But if this issue isn¡¯t resolved, are you going to need Mr. Richard to step in and clean up your mess again?¡±
rk¡¯s expression grew colder, his eyes narrowing as he stared at Jason with a dangerous glint.
Oblivious, Jason continued sarcastically. ¡°You¡¯re almost 30. When I was your age, I was already building thispany with Mr. Richard. Yet, you still need him to bail you out. It¡¯s embarrassing!¡±
Jason grew more agitated, not noticing the other shareholders signaling him to stop. When he finished, he realized the room had fallen eerily silent.
Jason faced rk¡¯s icy gaze and involuntarily took a step back, feeling a twinge of guilt. He raised his voice, trying to mask his unease. ¡°Mr. Sumner, why are you looking at me like that? Am I wrong?¡±
rk smirked. ¡°No, Mr. Dinsmore. You¡¯re absolutely right.¡±
¡°Then call Damon right now,¡± Jason pressed.
The other shareholders exchanged uneasy nces, hoping to avoid bing coteral damage.
¡°Urn, Mr. Sumner¡ I have some documents to review. I¡¯ll head back now¡¡±
¡°Yeah, I need to meet a client soon. If I don¡¯t leave now, I¡¯ll bete¡¡±
As the other shareholders hurried out, Jason scoffed at their cowardice.
rk¡¯s eyes remained fixed on Jason. ¡°Mr. Dinsmore, if I recall correctly, your grandson works at the
Sumner Group as well?¡±
Jason¡¯s expression faltered. ¡°Yes¡ Why?¡±
rk smiled. ¡°Oh, nothing much. I just remembered he made a mistake at work recently.¡±Please check at N/?vel(D)rama.Org.
by
His tone was casual as if discussing the weather, but the implication made Jason tremble, his eyes betraying his guilt.
¡°He¡¯s young. Mistakes happen¡ You were new once too, Mr. Sumner¡¡± Jason tried to reason.
¡°Mr. Dinsmore, I¡¯ve never made the mistake of embezzlingpany funds. If the other shareholders find out, your grandson could lose his job¨Cor worse, end up in prison. Don¡¯t you agree?¡±
CHAPTER 177
Chapter 177
Although rk was smiling, Jason felt a chill run down his spine, leaving him uneasy.
After several moments of silence, he finally managed to say, ¡°Mr. Sumner¡ my grandson didn¡¯t mean it. If you let him off this time, I promise he won¡¯t make such a foolish mistake again¡¡±
Seeing the fear in Jason¡¯s eyes, rk felt no sympathy. ¡°It seems your grandson isn¡¯t that impressive. He¡¯s in his 20s and still needs you to beg on his behalf.¡±
Realizing rk was throwing his previous words back at him, Jason felt a surge of anger.
Still, he swallowed his frustration and said through gritted teeth, ¡°Mr. Sumner, it was my fault for not teaching my grandson properly.¡±
¡°If you can¡¯t even discipline your own grandson, you shouldn¡¯t be pointing fingers at me,¡± rk replied.
Jason felt utterly humiliated but forced a smile. ¡°Of course¡ Regarding my grandson¡¯s actions¡¡±
¡°As long as you know what to say and what not to say in the future, your grandson will be fine,¡± rk
warned.
Jason quickly said, ¡°I understand, Mr. Sumner.¡±
After Jason left the office, his face darkened with rage. rk was so arrogant that Jason swore to teach
him a lesson.
In his office, rk called Damon. ¡°Uncle Damon, what is this about? Are you targeting me because of what happened at the hospital?¡±
Damon¡¯s cold voice replied, ¡°The decision to terminate the contract with the Sumner Group was made by
the board of directors.¡±
rk snorted. ¡°Don¡¯t give me that nonsense. Do you think I don¡¯t know that you¡¯re the one calling the shots at Prospectus Technology?
¡°If you disagreed, no one would dare to cancel the contract with the Sumner Group.¡±
¡°I¡¯ve helped the Sumner Group a lot these past few years. Continuing the partnership would only result in losses, so terminating it is a rational decision,¡± Damon answered.
rk ground his teeth and said angrily, ¡°The controversy with Gen Pharma and the Rainford Group just passed, and now you¡¯re ending the contract with the Sumner Group. You¡¯re obviously targeting me.¡±
¡°You¡¯re overthinking it. I don¡¯t mix personal matters with business. I have a meeting to attend. That¡¯s all,¡± Damon said before hanging up.
rk was livid. As he prepared to call back, Jordyn suddenly called.
Annoyed, he rejected the call, but she persistently called again and again, preventing him from reaching Damon.
Furious, he finally picked up. ¡°Are you insane? I¡¯m at work!¡±
Jordyn seemed startled by his outburst.
+25
After a moment, she cautiously said, ¡°rk¡ I didn¡¯t want to bother you at work, but I think someone was following me when I came back from grocery shopping¡ I¡¯m scared¡¡±
Her voice trembled,ced with tears.
rk took a deep breath, pinching the bridge of his nose as he processed the situation.
Suddenly, he realized something. He had always been careful when meeting Jordyn. It was unlikely anyone would be tracking her. The most likely culprits were N or Damon.This content is ? N?velDrama.Org.
At that thought, his expression darkened.
¡°Don¡¯t worry about it,¡± he told Jordyn. ¡°I¡¯ll send a couple of people to protect you and find out who¡¯s been following you.¡±
After hanging up, rk called Michael into his office. ¡°Send two people to protect Jordyn and investigate if someone is actually following her.¡±
¡°Yes, Mr. Sumner,¡± Michael answered.
That evening, N was sitting in her hospital bed, eating soup, when the door suddenly mmed open. rk stormed in, his expression cold.
She frowned. ¡°rk, do you have to ruin my appetite during dinner?¡±
CHAPTER 178
Chapter 178
rk stared at her coldly and asked, ¡°Why are you having someone watch Jordyn?¡±
N paused before replying calmly, ¡°If I don¡¯t monitor her, how will I know when you meet up with her and lie to me again?¡±Please check at N/?vel(D)rama.Org.
rk frowned but then suddenly rxed. ¡°N, you still care about me, don¡¯t you?¡±
Otherwise, she wouldn¡¯t have someone monitoring Jordyn to see when they met.
N looked up at him, seeing the joy in his eyes. She thought he was truly confident, so much so that he believed she still liked him.
Nevertheless, his misunderstanding was useful, saving her a lot of trouble.
¡°I just don¡¯t want to be constantly cheated on, nor do I want to live in your lies,¡± she replied.
Her cold demeanor only convinced rk further. He believed her recent actions were meant to get his attention and win him back from Jordyn.
He knew her well. If she didn¡¯t love him anymore, she wouldn¡¯t have returned. Getting close to Damon was just another way to make him jealous.
¡°N, I promise you, I have no feelings for Jordyn. The person I love is you. So you don¡¯t need to monitor her anymore. Once she has the baby, I¡¯ll send her away immediately,¡± he promised.
How disgusting. How could he say that with a straight face?
N looked at him with a trace of sarcasm in her eyes. ¡°And what about her child?¡±
rk hesitated before answering seriously, ¡°We¡¯ve been married for years and haven¡¯t had a child. If you¡¯re willing, we can raise the child as our own.¡±
Hearing the implication that she couldn¡¯t have children, N let out a coldugh. ¡°I have no interest in raising someone else¡¯s child. And do you think I could ept raising the child of my husband and his mistress?¡±
She wanted to knock some sense into rk. Did he think that just because she moved back, she could tolerate everything he did?
rk¡¯s face fell as he said, ¡°If you don¡¯t want to raise the child, I won¡¯t force you. I won¡¯t let the child appear in front of you.¡±
N looked down, saying nothing. She couldn¡¯tpletely cut ties with rk yet.
As for Jordyn and her child, she didn¡¯t care. If she didn¡¯t care about rk, why would she care about irrelevant people?
¡°Do as you wish. I¡¯ve said it before. Once you deal with this matter, we can address our issues,¡± N said.
Seeing the stubbornness in N¡¯s eyes, rk sighed. He wished she were gentler like Jordyn and not so headstrong.
In their social circle, men of his status often had affairs. Why could other wives ept it, but not her? Hadn¡¯t he treated her well over the years?
Just because he had cheated, she had to make things so difficult¡
Even though rk knew she cared about him, he felt exhausted. His busy workdays were already overwhelming, anding home to N¡¯s cold attitude only added to his stress.
¡°Take care of yourself. I have work to do, so I¡¯ll leave now. I¡¯ve hired a nurse for you. If you need anything, just tell the nurse,¡± rk said, then left.
After leaving the hospital, he drove straight to Jordyn¡¯s house.
When Jordyn opened the door and saw him, here it up with joy. ¡°rko, why are you here? Have you
had dinner? I was just about to eat. Want to join me?¡±
Jordyn¡¯s wholehearted affection immediately soothed rk¡¯s frustration from dealing with N. He smiled.
CHAPTER 179
Chapter 179
¡°I haven¡¯t eaten yet,¡± rk said.
¡°Then go wash your hands. I¡¯ll get the food ready,¡± Jordyn replied warmly.
All evening, Jordyn chatted about her day, and rk felt his heart gradually leaning toward her.
Despite the strength of his previous feelings for N, her constant coldness was causing them to wane.
Meanwhile, N was about to go for a walk after finishing her dinner when she received a call from Pete.
¡°Ms. Jayston, your husband¡¯s men found me. They warned me to stay away from Jordyn or they¡¯d call the police,¡± Pete said.This is from N?velDrama.Org.
Since Pete began investigating the Harris Pharmaceuticals ident, he had an assistant keeping an eye on Jordyn. Unfortunately, the assistant was inexperienced and had been caught quickly.
¡°It¡¯s fine. You don¡¯t need to monitor her anymore. I¡¯ll transfer your payment shortly,¡± N said.
She had been monitoring Jordyn to gather evidence of rk¡¯s affair, but it no longer seemed necessary. Once she had the evidence needed to send Cyrus to prison, rk would likely be furious and agree to the divorce.
After hanging up, N transferred the money and recalled the time she had overheard Cyrus borrowing money from Damon in his study. She decided to contact Pete to check on the investigation¡¯s progress. Although Pete didn¡¯t respond immediately, she wasn¡¯t concerned, knowing how busy he could be. Suddenly, the door to her hospital room opened, and Damon walked in carrying a food container. He lookedposed in a white shirt with a few buttons undone, revealing his tanned skin and corbone. His tailored trousers entuated his long legs, giving him an almost fairytale¨Clike appearance. N was momentarily stunned until he reached her, causing her to awkwardly avert her gaze. ¡°Uncle Damon, you didn¡¯t have to visit. The doctor said I could be discharged in a few days,¡± N said. As Damon approached, his subtle cologne enveloped her, making her breath feel a little lighter.
He sat down beside her, opened the container, and handed her a bowl of chicken soup as he replied, ¡± You¡¯re my lifesaver. If I didn¡¯t visit, wouldn¡¯t that be ungrateful?¡±
¡°Uncle Damon, I¡¯ve already told you that taking that knife was my way of repaying you for saving me at the bar,¡± N replied.
Damon looked at her calmly. ¡°Drink the soup first.¡±
He knew that if she truly had no feelings for him and was only repaying a debt, she wouldn¡¯t have instinctively protected him. After all, self¨Cpreservation was human nature.
N frowned, feeling that he hadn¡¯t listened to her. She told him, ¡°I already had some soup.¡±
Without pushing, Damon ced the soup back. ¡°Then have itter.¡±
The room fell silent.
When Damon showed no intention of leaving, N couldn¡¯t hold back anymore. ¡°Uncle Damon, I want to rest. It¡¯s inconvenient with you here.¡±
Damon nodded, stood up, and said, ¡°I¡¯ll sit on the sofa then. You can sleep and call me if you need anything.¡±
N was rendered speechless. That wasn¡¯t what she meant.
Clenching her teeth, she said, ¡°Uncle Damon, your presence here makes me ufortable. I hope you can leave.¡±
Damon paused and looked at her, raising an eyebrow. ¡°Can I take that to mean you care about me, is why you¡¯re ufortable with me here?¡±
CHAPTER 180
Chapter 180 Chasing the Unexpected CHAPTER 180
N frowned. ¡°Uncle Damon, I¡¯ve exined this many times. If you insist on thinking that way, I can¡¯t stop you.¡±
Damon smiled, his cold demeanor momentarily softening. It made it difficult to look away. ¡°N, is it really so hard to admit that you like me?¡±
Under the intensity of his dark eyes, N¡¯s heart rate quickened. She clutched the hem of her hospital gown, feeling as if something was slipping out of her control.
After a long pause, she pressed her lips together and spoke. ¡°Uncle Damon, I¡¯m your niece¨Cinw. If word got out about what you¡¯re saying, do you know what the consequences would be?¡±
¡°I can protect you,¡± Damon imed.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
Nughed lightly. ¡°rk said simr things before, but that didn¡¯t stop him from cheating after we got
married.¡®
When a man wanted to win over a woman, he¡¯d say anything. Whether he could follow through was another matter.
Damon¡¯s face darkened. ¡°I¡¯m not like him.¡±
N shook her head, looking at him seriously. ¡°What¡¯s the difference? You want me to admit I like you, and then what? Sneak around with you? How would I be any different from rk?¡±
Damon had helped her immensely, especially during her lowest moments. It would be a lie to say she wasn¡¯t moved. But that didn¡¯t mean she would abandon her principles and be someone she despised.
¡°I can help you divorce rk,¡± Damon offered.
N looked at him, realizing he didn¡¯t understand her at all.
It made sense¨Csomeone as privileged as he wouldn¡¯t understand her position.
¡°Uncle Damon, you¡¯re just infatuated with me. You¡¯ve never considered me an equal. If you did, you wouldn¡¯t say such things so easily,¡± she countered.
Damon¡¯s expression grew grim, and the room seemed to grow colder. ¡°Do you think everything I¡¯ve done is just a whim?¡±
Outside the hospital room, Cindy stood frozen in shock and anger.
Damon had feelings for N? How could he? She was his nephew¡¯s wife!
And N, that wretch¨Cshe couldn¡¯t even have children, Marrying into the Sumners had been a blessing, yet she wasn¡¯t satisfied and dared to seduce her husband¡¯s uncle. She should never have been allowed into the Sumners in the first ce!
Cindy felt an intense urge to burst in and confront them, but her hand froze on the doorknob. Considering the potential consequences of confronting Damon, she shivered. If she fell out with him, he might orchestrate rk¡¯s downfall.
Even Damon¡¯s parents couldn¡¯t control him.
Sighing deeply, Cindy quickly left.
Inside, N maintained a calm demeanor as she looked at Damon.
¡°If it¡¯s not just a whim, let me ask you¨Cif I divorce rk, will you marry me?¡± she inquired.
Damon frowned and remained silent. Marriage was something he had never seriously considered.
Seeing his silence, N smiled faintly. ¡°Uncle Damon, I¡¯m almost 30. I don¡¯t have the luxury of time like an 18¨Cyear¨Cold. If I divorce rk, my next rtionship will be with the intention of marriage.¡±
She wouldn¡¯t spend another eight years helping a man grow.
With Damon¡¯s status and pride, he would never marry a divorced woman. Besides, she had to deal with Cyrus. There was no future for her and Damon.
After Damon left, N no longer felt like going for a walk. She yed on her phone for a while before going to sleep.
Meanwhile, Cindy called rk and asked him toe home after much consideration.
¡°Mom, what did you want to talk about?¡± rk asked, sitting across from her with a puzzled look.
CHAPTER 181
Cindy took a deep breath. ¡°Do you know about N and Damon?¡±
rk¡¯s expression shifted, and Cindy gnashed her teeth. ¡°So you do know! That woman actually dares to cheat on your
Hearing Cindy¡¯s harsh words about N, rk furrowed his brow. ¡°Mom, it¡¯s not what you think. This has nothing to do with N. It¡¯s Uncle Damon being presumptuous.¡±
Cindy sneered. ¡°Presumptuous? Do you think I¡¯m a fool?! If she wasn¡¯t making advances on Damon, would he even notice her?!¡±
rk¡¯s face darkened. ¡°If you keep insulting N, I¡¯m leaving right now.¡±This content is ? N?velDrama.Org.
Seeing him get up to leave, Cindy shouted, ¡°You stop right there!¡±
rk ignored her and continued walking. Enraged, Cindy stood in front of the door. ¡°Don¡¯t think you can leave until I¡¯m done talking¡±
Observing her unreasonable behavior, rk remained expressionless. ¡°What else do you want to say?¡± ¡°You¡¯re just going to let her cheat on you with your uncle?¡± Cindy demanded.
¡°I¡¯ve already told you, N doesn¡¯t like Uncle Damon. He¡¯s the one pursuing her,¡± rk replied. Cindy didn¡¯t believe that. Why would Damon be interested in a married woman when he could have anyone he wanted?
¡°I don¡¯t care who¡¯s pursuing whom; this can¡¯t just be ignored!¡± Cindy yelled.
rk¡¯s impatience showed, and his tone turned icy. ¡°What do you want me to do? Damon knows Jordyn has my child. Do you think making this public will help me?¡±
was the best
hevealing Damon¡¯s interest in N wouldn¡¯t benefit anyone. Maintaining the status quo wa option.
Cindy ground her teeth. ¡°Are we just going to let them have an affair right under our noses?¡±
¡°Mom, I¡¯ve told you, N doesn¡¯t like Uncle Damon, and I won¡¯t let anything happen between them,¡± rk retorted.
¡°How can you be so sure? Have you put a tracker on N?¡± Cindy questioned.
Just thinking about N daring to flirt with Damon made Cindy furious. She had known from the start that N was no good!
¡°This is my problem. It¡¯s not for you to worry about,¡± rk said.
Cindy¡¯s face turned red with anger. She had been trying to help, only to be met with such a response!
*Fine, fine, I¡¯ll mind my own business. You¡¯ve grown wings now and don¡¯t need my interference. Do whatever you want. I won¡¯t interfere, Cindy said, giving up.
rk didn¡¯t respond. He pushed past her and left.
+25
At the door, he ran into Cyrus and greeted him with a long face. ¡°Dad.¡±
Cyrus, aware that rk had always disliked him, nodded and walked past him into the vi. As soon as he opened the door, he saw Cindy standing in the foyer, looking disappointedly at the door.
¡°What are you doing standing here?¡± Cyrus asked.
Upon seeing Cyrus, Cindy¡¯s expression darkened.
¡°What else would I be doing? Your son is being cheated on, and you¡¯re asking me that?¡± she snapped,
Cyrus glowered, ¡°What¡¯s going on? Exin it clearly!¡±
Cindy recounted the conversation she had overheard between Damon and N outside the hospital room, embellishing the details as she went.
She ended with a cold sneer. ¡°Letting her into the Sumners was the worst decision I¡¯ve ever made!¡±
Initially, Cyrus was furious to hear about rk being cheated on. But when he learned it involved Damon, his expression changed.
He had been struggling to secure funds for thepany, and when he mentioned it to Damon, it seemed that Damon wasn¡¯t inclined to help. If Damon had feelings for N, he could use that to his advantage.
If he could get N into Damon¡¯s bed, he might even secure the funds or obtain a subsidiary from Damon!
Seeing Cyrus¡¯s silence, Cindy demanded, ¡°What are you going to do about this?¡±
CHAPTER 182
Cyrus scowled and spoke in a low voice. ¡°Don¡¯t worry about this. I¡¯ll figure something out.¡± Cindy was momentarily taken aback but then frowned at him. ¡°What are you nning to do?¡±
¡°Just focus on your social gatherings. Leave the rest to me,¡± Cyrus said, walking past her into his study. Once inside, Cyrus pondered for a moment. With Marie¡¯s birthday next month, he realized he could use the asion to his advantage.
By the time Damon and N were together, he could leverage that situation to threaten Damon into providing the funds he needed.
With this n in mind, Cyrus sighed in relief. His frustration over theck of funds dissipated.
To him, women were merely ythings. As long as they served a purpose, he would use them to get what he needed. Even if Damon had feelings for Cindy, Cyrus wouldn¡¯t hesitate to maneuver her into Damon¡¯s bed and deal with the aftermathter.
As for rk, Cyrus would find him a more suitable marriage partner in the future.
In the CEO office of Prospectus Technology¡.
Spencer noticed Damon frowning and appearing deep in thought as he brought in some documents.
¡°Mr. Sumner, these are the documents that need to be handled tonight,¡± Spencer reminded him.
¡°Just leave them there,¡± Damon said.
Spencer nodded, ced the documents down, and turned to leave.
Just as he reached the door, Damon called out, ¡°Oh, I have a question for
Spencer turned around. ¡°What is it?¡±
r you
wondered if Damon had noticed any mistakes or oversights in his work that he himself had missed.
¡°Do women. all want to get married?¡± Damon asked.
Spencer was surprised. He had never imagined that Damon would be interested in such matters. Damon was always focused on advancing thepany, not on personal issues.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
Since it wasn¡¯t a sudden whim, it must be rted to his recent meeting with N.
After a brief pause, Spencer replied, ¡°I suppose so. Women¡¯s youth is precious. My ex¨Cgirlfriend used to talk about our future together all the time.¡±
¡°Why did she be your ex?¡± Damon asked.
¡°Because I didn¡¯t want to get married, and I didn¡¯t want to waste her time,¡± Spencer answered.
Damon frowned, his tone serious. ¡°Got it. You can go back to work now.¡±
Once the office fell silent again, Damon¡¯s gaze grew distant. He drummed his fingers absently on the desk. He had never considered marriage before and had no ns to marry anyone.
To him, the happiness he and his partner shared was sufficient. Although he wanted to be with N, he had no intention of marrying her. After all, a marriage certificate didn¡¯t ensure fidelity¨Cif it did, rk and Cyrus wouldn¡¯t have had affairs.
He came to understand that while he liked N, marriage was not something he desired with her.
Weighing the pros and cons, he decided it was better to end the rtionship before his feelings. deepened. He couldn¡¯t offer her what she wanted, and continuing would only cause her further harm.
Damon called the internal line and instructed, ¡°Hire a caregiver to look after N at the hospital. Have someone bring her meals every day until she¡¯s discharged.¡±
Spencer was puzzled by this request but quickly said, ¡°Understood. I¡¯ll take care of it.¡±
After hanging up, Damon pushed his difort aside and began reviewing the documents.
For the next few days, neither rk nor Damon visited N at the hospital.
N found peace of mind in following the doctors and nurses¡® advice¨Cgoing to bed early, getting up early, taking her medication, and changing her dressings on time.
Her recovery was progressing smoothly.
Since her check¨Cup appointment was scheduled at this hospital, she decided to proceed with it as her recovery continued.
N didn¡¯t trust Cindy, but she was unaware that as soon as she finished her check¨Cup, the information would reach someone else.
CHAPTER 183
The other party smirked. ¡°The money will be transferred to you tonight. You know what to do with the
report.¡±
¡°Don¡¯t worry. I understand how things work when money is involved.¡±
¡°Pleasure working with you,¡± the other party replied.
The day before N¡¯s discharge, Pete finally replied to her message.
N nned to meet him after leaving the hospital, but this time they arranged to meet at a caf¨¦ rather
than a bar.
When N saw Pete, she was taken aback. Although it had only been a short whille, Pete was visibly injured¨Chis left hand was in a cast, and he had a crutch beside him.
¡°Mr. Monaghan¡ How did you get hurt? Was it rted to the investigation?¡± she asked.
Pete handed her a USB drive and said in a low voice, ¡°Ms. Jayston, this is all I could find. I can¡¯t Investigate further. It¡¯s too dangerous.¡±
Noticing Pete¡¯s reluctance to discuss his injuries, N decided not to press the issue. She epted the USB drive with a nod.
¡°Understood. I¡¯ll transfer your payment shortly. Thank you for your hard work during this time. I¡¯m sorry about your injuries,¡± N said.
Pete said nothing more. He stood up and added, ¡°Ms. Jayston, I¡¯ll be leaving now.¡±
Shortly after he departed, he received a notification of a payment. Checking his phone, he saw that N had sent him triple the amount.
After a moment of hesitation, he sent her a message.
Pete. Ms. Jayston, this matter is moreplicated than you think. I advise you to stop investigating. Cherish your peaceful life.]
Seeing Pete¡¯s message, N pursed her lips.
This issue involved Cyrus, and the Sumner family¡¯s influence was deeply rooted in the city. Targeting Cyrus would inevitably impact the entire Sumner family. Once the Sumners noticed, they would not let her off easily. She had no means to counter their power.
N¡¯s grip on the USB drive tightened, her knuckles turning white, but her eyes showed no trace of hesitation.
The ident had not only bankrupted Harris Pharmaceuticals but had also imed the lives of over 20 workers, devastating their families. Meanwhile, the culprits had escaped justice, living lives of luxury.
Why should this be allowed?
Even if she failed, she had to try with all her might. She could no longer live in ignorance.
N sent a message.
N: [Mr. Monaghan, thank you, but this is the only path I have.]
After sending the message, she paid and went home.
At the vi, N copied the files from the USB drive to herputer. After reviewing the contents, she decided to focus on Clement.
Among the evidence Pete had collected were numerous criminal records linked to Clement, who had connections with Cyrus. It appeared Clement had been working behind the scenes for Cyrus all these
years.This content is ? N?velDrama.Org.
- 10.
After some consideration, N decided to meet with Lucia. Thetter had been the first to suggest that the Harris Pharmaceuticals ident was no ident, so she might have more information.
N created an encrypted document to store the files and hid the USB drive in the bottom drawer of her vanity, feeling a bit more secure.
A series of knocks came at the door, followed by a maid¡¯s voice. ¡°Mrs. Sumner, dinner is ready.¡±
N hummed in response and went downstairs. She saw rk sitting in the dining room with aputer in front of him, engaged in a video call with a subordinate.
Upon seeing N, rk said, ¡°The meeting will end here. We¡¯ll continue at eight tonight.¡±
After ending the call, he set theputer aside and looked at N. ¡°I had Michael pick you up today, but he mentioned you were discharged early.¡±
N hummed and sat down opposite him.
Soon, a maid brought a bowl of soup and ced it in front of her. ¡°Mrs. Sumner, this was specially made by the kitchen on Mr. Sumner¡¯s orders.¡±
¡°Got it,¡± N replied.
Noticing her cold demeanor, rk frowned. ¡°Did you get upset because I didn¡¯t pick you up from the hospital?¡±
CHAPTER 184
¡°No, why?¡± N asked.
Her mind was still preupied with when she would visit Lucia, so she had paid little attention to rk.
¡°N, the reason I haven¡¯t visited you these past few days is that I¡¯ve been swamped with work. Uncle Damon deliberately terminated his partnership with the Sumner Group to target me, and I only managed to resolve this issue this evening, rk exined.
N nodded. ¡°I see.¡±
rk felt exhausted due to her cold response. He had been getting only four hours of sleep each night due to his busy schedule and looked worn out, but N seemed oblivious, still sulking.
In the past, rk would have tried to appease her. Now, he didn¡¯t feel like saying anything more. He fell silent, and the dining room was soon filled only with the clinking of cutlery.
After dinner, rk went straight to his study, while N drove to the police station.
Lucia¡¯s case had not been decided yet, so she was still in jail. After some time apart, Lucia looked pale and demoralized.
When N arrived, Lucia¡¯s eyes shed with resentment. ¡°What are you here for? To gloat over my misfortune?
N¡¯s expression remained calm as she replied, ¡°I¡¯m preparing a letter of leniency. Even if it doesn¡¯t get you off the hook entirely, it may lead to a lighter sentence.¡±This content is ? N?velDrama.Org.
Lucia hesitated, showing little joy, and looked at N with suspicion. ¡°What¡¯s your angle?¡±
¡°You mentioned somethingst time I visited. I need more details,¡± N said.
Luels fell silent. She knew Clement and Cyrus were involved but didn¡¯t have specific details. Her earlier
emarks ad only been meant to cause N pain.
Seeing Lucia¡¯s troubled expression, N guessed she didn¡¯t know much more and said, ¡°If you don¡¯t know more, then I¡¯m afraid I can¡¯t issue the letter of leniency
Lucia had nearly caused N¡¯s death. She wouldn¡¯t earn N¡¯s help without providing the necessary. information.
Seeing N about to leave, Lucia quickly said, ¡°Wait! I know something else!
¡°What is it?¡± N asked.
¡°My father has a day each month when he doesn¡¯te home. Also, the golden tiger¨Chead ornament on the third shelf of his study bookshelf can open a hidden room that contains a safe. I¡¯ve tried to open it, but I couldn¡¯t. There might be something very important inside,¡± Lucia revealed.
N¡¯s expression remained impassive, showing no reaction.
The information you¡¯ve given is useless. Following him might get me discovered, and I can¡¯t get into his study,¡± she said matter¨Cof¨Cfactly.
Lucia gnashed her teeth and whispered in a tone only they could hear, ¡°I¡¯ve been thinking while locked up.
The code for the safe in his study is likely your mother¡¯s birthday.¡±
N frowned, her gaze darkening. ¡°Do you know what you¡¯re saying?¡±
The idea that the code to Clement¡¯s safe could be her mother¡¯s birthday seemed absurd.
Lucia scoffed. ¡°Why do you think I was dressed so simrly to you when we were younger? I was puzzled before but never thought much about it. It¡¯s during my time here that I¡¯ve noticed something amiss.¡±
Seeing N¡¯s skepticism, Lucia added, ¡°Believe it or not, but I also know a secret about your mother. If you issue the letter of leniency, I¡¯ll tell you.¡±
¡°What secret?¡± N asked.
¡°If I tell you now, will you still issue the letter of leniency?¡± Lucia retorted.
N didn¡¯t trust Lucia, and Lucia didn¡¯t trust N either.
¡°It¡¯s best if what you¡¯re saying is true. Otherwise, you¡¯ll have to face the consequences,¡± N threatened.
¡°Don¡¯t worry. You¡¯ll find that exchanging a letter of leniency for the secret I know is very worthwhile,¡± Lucia promised.
N didn¡¯t say anything more. She stood up and left.
Lucia¡¯sment suggested that Clement might have had an interest in her mother. Given that Clement and her parents were university ssmates, N could verify this information with Harrison before deciding whether to make a deal with Lucia.
N drove to the hospital and headed swiftly toward the inpatient department. She was unaware, though that someone was observing her from a distance.
Today¡¯s Bonus
CHAPTER 185
Jordyn was surprised to run into N again at the hospital. After a moment¡¯s hesitation, she decided to follow her.
N, preupied with her own thoughts, didn¡¯t notice that she was being followed.
By the time N arrived at Harrison¡¯s hospital room, it was already past 9:00 p.m. Only Harrison wast inside.
¡°Dad, where¡¯s Wren?¡± N asked.
Harrison looked up, surprised to see his daughter. ¡°Why are you here sote? Wren went home to get me some fresh clothes.¡±
N sat by the bedside, her expression serious. ¡°Dad, I need to ask you something.¡±
Harrison smiled. ¡°What¡¯s the matter? Why the serious face?¡±
¡°When you, Mom, and Clement were in university, did Clement have a thing for Mom?¡±
Harrison frowned. ¡°Did someone say something to you?¡±
Seeing his reaction, N was convinced Lucia¡¯s information was correct. ¡°So it¡¯s true?¡±
Harrison sighed. ¡°That¡¯s all from many years ago, and your mother and I are divorced now. Why are you asking about this?¡±
N paused. After the divorce, N¡¯s mother had quickly gone abroad and had been out of touch ever since.
¡°I just need to confirm a few things,¡± she said.
¡°N, the past is the past. Focus on your own life now. That¡¯s what matters,¡± Harrison said.
Ing Harrison¡¯s loving gaze made N¡¯s heart ache. If it hadn¡¯t been for that ident six years ago, he would still be the owner of Harris Pharmaceuticals, not the old man now dependent on his son¨Cinw¡¯s favor.
¡°Don¡¯t worry, Dad. I understand. It¡¯s gettingte. I¡¯ll head back now,¡± N replied.
As N got up to leave, Jordyn quickly stepped into a nearby stairwell to avoid being seen.
Once the footsteps had faded, Jordyn pulled out her phone and dialed a number. ¡°Find out what illness N¡¯s father has.¡±
When N arrived home, it was already past 10:00 pm
???
rk was sitting in the living room, looking displeased. ¡°Where have you been?¡±
¡°I went to visit my dad at the hospital,¡± N replied.
¡°That¡¯s it?¡± rk pressed.
N changed her shoes and looked up at him. ¡°What else would I be doing? Do you think I went toBelonging to N?velDrama.Org.
+35
secretly meet Uncle Damon?¡±
rk scowled. He had indeed thought so earlier.
¡°N, I¡¯m just concerned for you. It¡¯s unsafe for you to be out alone at night. If you wanted to visit your father, you could have asked me toe with you,¡± he said,
N smiled with a hint of sarcasm in her eyes. ¡°You said you¡¯ve been very busy during dinner. How could I ask you to trouble yourself with my dad?¡±
rk rubbed his forehead,
such a harsh manner? Ny somewhat helpless. ¡°When did we be like this, always talking in
such a harsh manner? N, we¡¯re supposed to be lovers, not enemies.¡±
He wanted to resolve their issues, but N never gave him a chance. He wasn¡¯t sure how much longer he could keep trying. His love for her seemed to be wearing thin with every cold remark she made.
They had once loved each other deeply¨Che didn¡¯t want their rtionship to end in animosity.
Nughed lightly and asked, ¡°rk, don¡¯t you think it¡¯s your fault we¡¯ve be this way?¡±
She had given him her heart for eight years, only to end up betrayed. How did he have the nerve to question why they had grown apart?
Before rk could respond, his phone rang. Upon seeing Jordyn¡¯s name on the screen, his gaze froze.
N saw the name too, and her smile turned into a mocking smirk as she walked past him.
rk tensed, wanting to stop her but clenching his fists instead. He didn¡¯t answer the call until N disappeared down the hallway.
¡°What¡¯s up?¡± he asked.
Jordyn began, ¡°rk, something happened to my dad. Can you-¡°.
¡°No. Jordyn, I¡¯m not your husband. I have no obligation to clean up your family¡¯s mess!¡± rk cut her off.
CHAPTER 186
The phone was silent for a few seconds before Jordyn¡¯s voice, trembling with tears, broke through. ¡°I know, but I don¡¯t know who else to turn to¡ I¡¯m sorry Fll find a way myself and won¡¯t bother you anymore
With that, Jordyn hung up.
rk furrowed his brow, frustration surging within him. He appreciated Jordyn¡¯s gentle and understanding nature, but he didn¡¯t want to be entangled with her family. If he got involved now, they¡¯de to him with every problem in the future. He wasn¡¯t running a charity.
However, considering that she was still carrying his child, he felt he should at least help handle the situation.
After a moment of hesitation, rk finally put on his suit jacket and left.
Upstairs, after N finished her shower, she heard the sound of a car engine starting outside. Pausing mid -motion, she walked to the window and saw rk¡¯s car driving away.
She drew her gaze back, dried her hair, andpleted her skincare routine before going to bed.
When rk arrived at the hospital, he found Jordyn sitting outside the operating room, trembling uncontrobly. Beside her sat a middle¨Caged woman, her face etched with worry, her hair streaked with gray¨Cclearly someone worn down by a hard life.
rk approached and asked coldly, ¡°What¡¯s going on?¡±
Jordyn looked up with red, tear¨Cfilled eyes and instinctively threw herself into his arms. ¡°rk¡ He had an ident while bringing me something¡ The doctors say it¡¯s very serious. I¡¯m so scared¡¡± rk frowned, patting her back. ¡°Calm down. Let¡¯s wait until the surgery is over.¡±
my dad¡.
uest then, an angry voice echoed. ¡°What are you doing?!¡±
rk and Jordyn turned to see Harrison storming toward them, his face red with fury.
Wren, who was behind him, tried to hold him back but failed.
Harrison reached rk and pped him hard across the face.
rk didn¡¯t flinch, though the p left a clear mark.
Jordyn was taken aback. ¡°rk¡¡±
Harrison¡¯s face flushed with anger, his whole body trembling. ¡°rk, how did you promise me you would treat my daughter when you married her? And now, here you are with another woman, hugging andforting her in the middle of the night. How can you face my daughter?¡±
He had been puzzled about why N had been so dejectedtely and had moved out on her own. It all made sense now. rk was cheating!
The thought of N suffering so much while still putting on a brave face and hiding her pain made Harrison¡¯s heart ache.
¡°Dad, it¡¯s not what you think. Let me exin,¡± rk pleaded.
Harrison¡¯s eyes were icy. ¡°I¡¯ll call N over. You can exin everything to us in front of her!¡±This content is ? N?velDrama.Org.
Harrison began to dial N with trembling hands, but rk snatched the phone away.
¡°Dad, I know you¡¯re angry. She¡¯s my secretary. Her father is having surgery right now. I was justforting her,¡± rk said, trying to sound convincing.
rk needed to find a way to calm Harrison down, or else he¡¯d be left without any support if N decided to divorce him.
Harrison wasn¡¯t buying it.
What kind of employer would visit the hospital in the middle of the night tofort his secretary while her father was in surgery? And why would he be hugging her instead of simply talking to her?
CHAPTER 187
Besides, Harrison had never seen a secretary who dared to address her employer by name.
¡°rk, I may be old, but I¡¯m not a fool! Do you think that just because the Jaystons are down, we¡¯ll put up with whatever you do to my daughter?¡±
rk frowned. ¡°Dad, you¡¯re not well. Let me take you back to your room so we can talk this through.¡±
He reached out to help Harrison, but thetter pushed him away. ¡°Don¡¯t touch me! Give me back my phone. I told you to call N over. You will exin everything to her face¨Cto¨Cface!¡±
¡°Dad, this is a matter of life and death. Can¡¯t you stop making a scene?¡± rk said.
Seeing the impatience in rk¡¯s eyes, Harrison sneered. ¡°I must have been blind to your true nature! Don¡¯t bother calling me ¡®Dad¡® anymore. I¡¯ll make sure N divorces you.¡±
With that Harrison turned and walked away. After just a few steps, he suddenly copsed and lost consciousness.
N was awakened by the phone ringing in the middle of the night.
By the time she hurried to the hospital, it was after 1:00 am.
¡°Wren, what happened? Why did Dad suddenly faint? And why is rk here?¡±
Wren scoffed. ¡°You should ask him yourself. He was just caught hugging andforting that woman in front of your father,¡±
Had she known it would turn out like this, she wouldn¡¯t have called Harrison out for a walk when he couldn¡¯t sleep.
When they reached the small garden downstairs, they saw rk rushing into the hospital building. Harrison, worried that something had happened to N, had followed, only to witness the scene.
N turned to rk, her eyes icy. ¡°rk, is it really that hard for you to control yourself? You had to be out there hugging Jordyn? How can you still have the nerve?¡±
rk was already boiling with frustration, and N¡¯s usations only made his gaze turn colder. Jordyn¡¯s father is in surgery. I saw her distress and was just trying tofort her,¡±
N snickered. ¡°When my father was in surgery, you wouldn¡¯t evene to apany meeting. But now. that Jordyn¡¯s father is having surgery, you¡¯re rushing to the hospital in the middle of the night tofort her.
¡°If you care about her so much, I¡¯ll make sure you get what you want. I¡¯ll personally tell your grandparents about Jordyn¡¯s pregnancy tomorrow morning¡±
rk¡¯s face darkened. ¡°How dare you?!¡±
If she revealed this to Richard, he¡¯d be forced out of the Sumner Group.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
¡°You¡¯re being so obvious. Even if I don¡¯t say anything,
CHAPTER 188
Before N could say anything, Wren suddenly grabbed her hand. ¡°N, you know how much your father has suffered from being in the hospital all these years. If we can arrange a kidney donation, he can be discharged soon¡¡±
Seeing the urgency in Wren¡¯s gaze, N felt a wave of bitterness.
From the moment rk used the kidney to pressure her, she felt defeated. She couldn¡¯t just watch her father die. She had no choice but to pretend nothing had happened.
Noticing N¡¯s nk expression, Wren, desperate, continued. ¡°Please, just consider it a favor for me. If you agree, I¡¯ll even get on my knees for you.¡±
Wren began to kneel in front of her.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
N quickly helped her up and said, ¡°Wren, I know what I need to do.¡±
¡°Thank you¡ I¡¯m sorry¡¡± Wren said, almost in tears with relief. She then noticed N¡¯s pale face and tried to keep her own emotions in check.
Turning to rk, N said coldly. ¡°You should go. When Dad wakes up, I¡¯ll exin everything to him so he doesn¡¯t think you were unfaithful during our marriage.¡±
rk stepped forward to hug her, ignoring her resistance, and whispered in her ear, ¡°N, if I¡¯m not here with you, your father won¡¯t believe it when he wakes up!¡±
N took a deep breath, fought the urge to push him away, and turned her face coldly to the side without saying a word.
rk smiled with satisfaction, his eyes shing with coldness. It seemed that Harrison¡¯s kidney tansnt would have to be dyed. Otherwise, how could he keep N under his thumb?
Not far away, Jordyn saw rk embracing N and was furious. She vowed not to let N have it easy!
Recalling rk and N¡¯s conversation about the kidney donation, Jordyn suddenly had an idea and quickly left.
It wasn¡¯t until dawn that Harrison woke up. Upon seeing rk and N together, his first words were to
demand a divorce.
N, seeing his agitation and fearing another fainting spell, hurried to his bedside and said softly, ¡°Dad, you misunderstood what happenedst night. That woman is a good friend of mine. I was just having stomach pain, so I asked rk toe over.¡±
Harrison looked at N with disappointment in his eyes. ¡°N, are you also going to lie to me? Even though the Jaystons are bankrupt, I don¡¯t want you to be unhappy in your marriage. I only wish for you to be happy. Do you understand?¡±
How could N not understand?
When she was a child, Harrison always made time for her, no matter how busy he was.
In the absence of her mother, Harrison showered her with double the love, treating her like a princess. He often said that his greatest wish was for her to live freely and happily. Nothing else mattered.
N took a deep breath and looked at Harrison. ¡°Dad, he¡¯s someone I love. I¡¯m happy with him, andst night¡¯s situation was truly a misunderstanding.¡±
Harrison frowned, about to speak, but Wren quickly added, ¡°It¡¯s okay, Harrison. When you were unconscious, N and rk exined everything to me. It really was a misunderstanding. They¡¯re fine, don¡¯t be so suspicious.¡±
SO
¡°Really?¡± Harrison¡¯s frown softened. Since Wren was also saying it was a misunderstanding, he began to doubt whether he had misjudged rk after all.
¡°Of course it¡¯s true. The two of them were so frightened when they saw you faint. They stayed in the hospital all night. Don¡¯t make things harder for them.
¡°N, you and rk should go get some rest,¡± Wren said.
N nodded. ¡°Dad, rk has to go to workter. We¡¯lle back to see you another time.¡±
With that, she took rk¡¯s hand and left the room.
CHAPTER 189
As they reached the elevator, N¡¯s expression turned cold. ¡°You can go be with Jordyn. I¡¯m heading
home to rest.¡±
rk frowned. ¡°I¡¯ll take you home. You haven¡¯t slept all night. I¡¯m worried.¡±
N smiled, her gaze filled with sarcasm. ¡°Isn¡¯t Jordyn¡¯s father in surgery? Shouldn¡¯t you be more concerned about that?¡±
¡°N, no one is more important to me than you,¡± rk insisted.
N looked at him. His eyes still held affection, but she no longer felt any warmth toward him.
¡°Don¡¯t say things like that. The more lies you tell, the more you end up believing them yourself,¡± she said. Before rk could respond, a choked voice came from behind them. ¡°rk¡ my dad¡¡±
rk turned to see Jordyn with tears in her eyes, looking as if she might break down at any moment. His hands tightened into fists without him realizing.
N, noticing his reaction, chuckled. As the elevator doors opened, she stepped inside without a backward nce. She had no interest in fighting over a cheating man with another woman.
¡°What¡¯s wrong with him?¡± rk asked.
The doctor said. his kidney has ruptured¡ H¨CHe needs a transnt¡¡± Jordyn sobbed.
¡°What?¡± rk turned sharply to look at N, but she was already gone. His eyes were filled with coldness when he saw that the elevator had reached the ground floor.
rk wondered if he shouldmend N for herposure, as she had managed to walk away so calmly despite Jordyn¡¯s distress.
Jordyn¡¯s sobbing sounds brought him back to reality. He turned to see her wiping her tears and felt a surge of frustration.
¡°Howe he suddenly needs a kidney transnt?¡± he questioned.Please check at N/?vel(D)rama.Org.
Jordyn choked on her tears. ¡°It¡¯s not just the kidney. Other organs are also damaged, though not as severely. The kidney is the most critical¡ rk, what should I do? If my dad dies, our family will be ruined
rk understood that Jordyn¡¯s family background was modest. Her parents were farmers, and she had a younger brother still in high school. Their ie came primarily from farming. Her father¡¯s death would Indeed be a devastating blow.
rk¡¯s gaze darkened as he thought about the kidney originally intended for Harrison. He had nned to dy Harrison¡¯s transnt but had not considered giving the kidney to someone else.
However, seeing Jordyn so distraught, he felt a pang of sympathy. ¡°I¡¯ll see what I can do about the kidney, but I can¡¯t guarantee I¡¯ll find one.¡±
Jordyn¡¯s eyes widened in shock, her expression filled with gratitude. ¡°Really? Thank you! rk, I don¡¯t know how to thank you¡ If you can find a kidney, you¡¯ll be our family¡¯s savior!¡±
Her gratitude and emotional reaction satisfied rk¡¯s ego as a man, almost making him promise to find a kidney immediately. Jordyn¡¯s reaction seemed more genuinepared to N¡¯s distant and cold demeanor after her thank¨Cyou.
The more rk thought about it, the more frustrated he felt. Apart from his infidelity, he felt he hadn¡¯t done much wrong, yet N had condemned him without a chance to exin.
Seeing rk¡¯s grim expression and deep in thought, Jordyn lowered her gaze and remained silent. rk¡¯sck of a direct refusal indicated there was still room for negotiation.
She was determined that Harrison would not receive the kidney.
Jordyn needed to ensure the situation pushed N into despair, creating an irreparable rift between her and rk.
CHAPTER 190
When
N returned home, she messaged HR to request a day off and slept until nearly noon. Upon checking her phone, she noticed several missed calls and a text message.
§ã§Ñ§á
[Ms. Jayston, your medical report is ready. Our staff tried calling you but couldn¡¯t reach you. You o either pick up a hard copy at the hospital¡¯s medical office or call us back to receive an electronic version. Have a great day!]
N immediately called the hospital to request an electronic copy of the report. As she opened it, her heart sank.
The result was devastating¨Cshe was indeed infertile.
Her
eyes filled with tears, not because of rk, but because her dream of having her own child seemed impossible. She might never be able to be a mother.
Her phone slipped from her hand as she covered her eyes, tears streaming down her face.
After an unknown amount of time, she finally calmed down.
Taking a deep breath, she washed her face and decided to visit another hospital for a second opinion soon. If the infertility was confirmed, she would have to ept it and n her future ordingly.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
After a quick bite, she went to work.
As N parked her car and approached the elevator, she heard footsteps and Spencer¡¯s voice.
¡°Mr. Sumner, here¡¯s this afternoon¡¯s schedule for you,¡± Spencer said.
N turned slightly and met Damon¡¯s dark eyes.
Sumner, Mr. Hogg,¡± she greeted.
Damon¡¯s ze lingered briefly on N¡¯s red eyes and tired face before moving away.
¡°How are you feeling? If you haven¡¯t fully recovered, you can take more time off,¡± he reminded her.
Noticing his cold demeanor, N guessed that her words at the hospital had made an impact. At that moment, however, she was preupied with something else, so she didn¡¯t focus on Damon¡¯s attitude.
She lowered her gaze and said softly. ¡°The wound has mostly healed, so staying at home isn¡¯t necessary.¡±
Damon hummed in response and said nothing more.
Spencer, observing the chilly interaction, was surprised. Had they had a falling out?
The elevator arrived.
N stepped inside. When she saw that Damon didn¡¯t follow, she asked, ¡°Mr. Sumner, aren¡¯t youing?¡±
Damon calmly replied, ¡°I left a document in the car. You go ahead.¡±
¡°Okay,¡± N said.
As the elevator doors closed, Spencer looked at Damon in confusion. ¡°Mr. Sumner, what document? Should I go get it?¡±
Damon pressed the elevator button. ¡°No need. It¡¯s not an important document. I¡¯ll get it next time.¡±
Spencer was about to mention that an extra trip would be troublesome, but he suddenly realized that Damon wasn¡¯t missing any document¨Che was clearly avoiding N.
He couldn¡¯t understand why Damon¡¯s attitude toward N had changed so drastically. Was it because of the marriage discussion? If so, it made sense.
Damon had always been indifferent to marriage, rejecting all of Marie¡¯s matchmaking efforts. He could be in a rtionship, but he had no intention of marrying.
It seemed Spencer no longer needed to worry about Damon¡¯s interest in his niece¨Cinw affecting thepany¡¯s stock price.
When N entered theb, Melody, who was preparing solutions, brightened up upon seeing her.
¡°N, you¡¯re back?¡± she asked.
N nodded and approached her. ¡°Continue with what you¡¯re doing. I¡¯ll change into myb coat ande help.¡±
¡°Sure!¡± Melody chirped.
After putting on herb coat, N joined Melody and reviewed the experiment log. Satisfied that Melody was following her previous instructions, she set the log aside and began working on the experiment.
Having not seen N for a while and being alone in theb, Melody was eager to chat. ¡°N, the news about you saving Mr. Sumner has spread around thepany. Now everyone¡¯s saying that you and Mr. Sumner are dating.¡±
ot worth your
N paused, then replied without much emotion, ¡°Don¡¯t worry about those rumors. They¡¯re not
attention
CHAPTER 191
Melody nced at N, hesitated for a moment, but kept her thoughts to herself. When the attack urred, she had been too slow to react, but N had immediately rushed to Damon¡¯s side, shielding him from the blow.
Melody had a vague sense that N¡¯s feelings for Damon might be different. However, since they only exchanged greetings at thepany and never showed signs of closeness, she wasn¡¯t sure about their rtionship.
Lost in thought, Melody was jolted back to the present by N¡¯s serious tone. ¡°There¡¯s a leak in the filter paper. Didn¡¯t you notice?¡±
Melody snapped back to reality and looked down, spotting a hole in the bottom of the filter paper. The solution had leaked through and contaminated the previously filtered liquid, meaning they would need to
start over.
¡°I am sorry, N. I didn¡¯t notice,¡± Melody apologized.
¡°There¡¯s no need to apologize. Just be more careful when doing experiments. If you can¡¯t focus, take a break,¡± N replied calmly.
The experiment they were conducting was rtively low¨Crisk, so a moment of distraction wasn¡¯t a big deal. However, N knew that in future organic experiments, anyck of focus could lead to dangerous situations, potentially causing explosions with serious consequences.
Melody nodded quickly. ¡°I¡¯ll make sure it doesn¡¯t happen again.¡±
N didn¡¯t say anything more and continued with her work.
Soon, the workday came to an end. As N was gathering her things to leave, she received a call from Vrie, inviting her to dinner.
They met at the restaurant, and Vrie frowned when she saw N. ¡°Has something happened recently? You look so worn out.¡±
N didn¡¯t want to worry Vrie, so she shook her head. ¡°No. I¡¯ve just been a bit tired from work.¡±
¡°Well, a big dinner tonight will be a nice treat,¡± Vrie said, trying to lift her spirits.
Seeing Vrie¡¯s enthusiasm, N smiled. ¡°Okay.¡±
After they were seated and had ordered their food, Vrie asked, ¡°By the way, has Tom or Jacqueline caused you any troubletely?¡±
¡°No, but Gen Pharma and the Rainford Group have teamed up to terminate contracts with the Sumner Group and Prospectus Technology, causing significant losses,¡± N replied.
¡°Gen Pharma and the Rainford Group have probably suffered more. Prospectus Technology and the Sumner Group have started to retaliate, and many partners are terminating contracts with them. Tom and Jacqueline¡¯s situation must be quite tough now,¡± Vrie added.
Vrie¡¯s family owned a moderately¨Csizedpany, so she kept up with business news.
N¡¯s expression remained neutral. ¡°Even if it¡¯s tough, it¡¯s their fault.¡±
Vrie snorted. ¡°They got what they deserved. But I bet Jacqueline wille looking for you soon. Don¡¯t
go soft on her.¡±
If Vrie had been at the party, she would have torn Jacqueline apart.
¡°Don¡¯t worry. I won¡¯t,¡± N replied.
Jacqueline had set her up at the party, and now Gen Pharma and the Rainford Group were using contract terminations to pressure the Sumners into coercing her to apologize.
N knew that if she forgave Jacqueline, she¡¯d be a fool.Please check at N/?vel(D)rama.Org.
After dinner, Vrie dragged N out for some shopping.
Noticing that Vrie was more focused on picking out clothes for her than for herself, N couldn¡¯t help but smile-¡°Vrie, are you nning to buy me clothes?
Vrie picked up a red strapless gown and nodded. ¡°Yes. Don¡¯t you remember? Your birthday ising
up soon.¡±
N was momentarily stunned before recalling that her birthday was indeed approaching. With everything going on, she had forgotten about it.
Since being with rk, they had always spent their birthdays together as a couple. He probably wouldn¡¯t remember this year.
¡°I¡¯ve been too busytely,¡± N said.
Vrie frowned. ¡°Has rk forgotten as well?¡±
¡°I¡¯m not sure, but given our current situation, celebrating together doesn¡¯t seem appropriate,¡± N
reasoned.
une sighed but didn¡¯t press further. She knew N¡¯s personality well enough to understand that once she discovered rk¡¯s infidelity, she would never reconcile with him. As for N moving back, she didn¡¯t ask any more questions. Even close friends shouldn¡¯t pry too much.
¡°Alright, I¡¯ll celebrate for you. I¡¯ll buy you this dress today, and on your birthday, I¡¯ll have a surprise for you!¡±
Vrie enthused.
CHAPTER 192
N¡¯s eyes widened in surprise. ¡°What kind of surprise?
¡°If I tell you now, it won¡¯t be a surprise, will it?¡± Vrle countered.
¡°Alright then,¡± N conceded.
After N and Vrie finished shopping and were about to leave, they unexpectedly ran into Jordyn and Cindy, who were also shopping and carrying multiple bags.
¡°What are you doing out shoppingte at night instead of staying home? That dress you¡¯re holding¨Cyou couldn¡¯t afford it even if you worked a whole year. My son works hard for his money, and you don¡¯t do anything to help him except spend it all,¡± Cindy scolded.
Cindy¡¯s gaze at N was almost burning with anger. If Vrie hadn¡¯t been there, Cindy would have been even harsher, especially given N¡¯s affair with Damon,
Vrie hadn¡¯t expected Cindy to be so harsh toward N in public. She sneered and was about to speak. when N interjected, ¡°Mrs. Sumner, it appears that the money you and Ms. Cheatham are spending alsoes from rk. While it¡¯s understandable for you to use his funds, I have the right to reim any money spent by Ms. Cheatham.¡±
Cindy and Jordyn looked offended.
¡°N, I¡¯m more than willing to spend money on Jordyn. If you had a child, I¡¯d spend money on you too!¡± Cindy scoffed.
N smiled, showing no concern. ¡°Since Ms. Cheatham likes having children so much, she should have more. Otherwise, the Sumner fortune will have no heir.
¡°You!¡± Cindy was furious. She hadn¡¯t expected N to be so bold in public.
¡°Apologize immediately, or I¡¯ll call rk toe and teach you the Sumner rules himself,¡± Cindy threatened.
Nyia raised an eyebrow. ¡°Oh? Is it the Sumner rules for the husband to have an affair and father a child outside of marriage while the mother¨Cinw openly shops with the mistress and mocks the rightful spouse?¡±
¡°I didn¡¯t expect you to be so sharp¨Ctongued. If I had known you were like this, I would never have let rk marry you!¡± Cindy hissed.
¡°Mrs. Sumner, discussing past grievances won¡¯t help. It only shows that you¡¯re powerless against me now,
N said tly.
Cindy was so enraged that she nearly copsed. Each of N¡¯s words drove her to fury
to silence her immediately.
N ignored Cindy and pulled Vrie away.
and she wanted
Once they were out of the mall, Vrie couldn¡¯t help butin, ¡°Is your mother¨Cinw out of her mind? If you hadn¡¯t stopped me, I would¡¯ve definitely let her have it.¡±
N¡¯s expression remained calm. ¡°She¡¯s always like that. Just ignore her.¡±
¡°I¡¯m really fed up Doesn¡¯t rk do anything about it? Vrie asked.
¡°He¡¯s too busy focusing on acquiring thepany shares to care about this kind of thing.¡± N replied
She no longer had any expectations of him, so she wasn¡¯t upset.
Vrie sighed and said no more. After all, it was N¡¯s marriage. If she didn¡¯t want to leave, she must have her reasons.
By the time N got home, it was already past 10.00 pm.This content is ? N?velDrama.Org.
rk hadn¡¯t returned yet, so she went straight to her bedroom to shower and get ready for bed
Just after finishing drying her hair, there was a knock at the bedroom door.
She opened the door. ¡°What¡¯s up?¡±
¡°I heard about what happened tonight from my mom. It won¡¯t happen again,¡± rk promised.
It seemed Cindy hadined to rk.
N nodded. ¡°Got it. If that¡¯s all, I¡¯m going to bed.¡±
Upon noticing her coldness, rk¡¯s eyes dimmed.
After a few seconds of silence, he said quietly, ¡°I¡¯ll be on a business trip tomorrow, so I might not make it back for your birthday. Let me know what you want as a gift, and I¡¯ll get it ready in advance.¡±
In the past, no matter how busy he was, he would always clear his schedule to be with N on her
birthday.
CHAPTER 193
+25 DONUS
rk had recently faced numerous issues with the Sumner Group, and as CEO, he had to prioritizepany matters
N wasn¡¯t disappointed at all. She lowered her gaze and said, ¡°I don¡¯t really want anything. It¡¯s okay if you don¡¯t get me a gift.¡±
IThis is from N?velDrama.Org.
rk frowned. ¡°Then I¡¯ll just get what I had in mind.¡±
¡°Alright,¡± Nplied.
They fell into silence. rk looked at her, hoping she would tell him to take care as she used to before his business trips, but she kept her eyes down and said nothing
Eventually, he stopped expecting anything from her.
¡°I still have some work to finish. Get some rest early,¡± he said.
With that, he turned and left.
Back in his study, he had just settled in when he received a call from Michael.
¡°Mr. Sumner, I checked, and Ms. Cheatham¡¯s father does indeed need a kidney transnt. However, there isn¡¯t a suitable donor yet, so he¡¯s still in the ICU,¡± Michael informed him,
¡°I understand. Have someone look for a kidney donation,¡± rk instructed.
¡°Okay,¡± Michael replied.
After hanging up, rk considered the situation and decided to reserve the kidney for Harrison. After all, N was more important to him.
The next morning, as soon as N arrived at thepany, she was stopped by Jacqueline.
¡°Ms Jayston, we need to talk,¡± Jacqueline said.
N was a bit surprised. Vrie had mentioned the night before that Jacqueline mighte to see her, but she didn¡¯t expect to be confronted at thepany entrance so soon,
¡°We don¡¯t really have anything to talk about,¡± she told Jacqueline.
N tried to walk past Jacqueline, but thetter persistently followed her.
¡°Ms. Jayston, it was indeed my fault at the banquet. I apologize again. Could you please speak to Mr. Sumner and ask him to go easy on Gen Pharma and the Rainford Group?¡± Jacqueline requested.
Previously, Gen Pharma and the Rainford Group had teamed up to terminate their contracts with the Sumner Group.
The Sumner Group had not responded, and without sending N to apologize, they subsequently terminated their contracts with Prospectus Technology as well¨Conly to be deceived by them.
Now, Gen Pharma and the Rainford Group had lost several major contracts, their market value had
plummeted by hundreds of millions, and it continued to decline.
With no other options, Jacqueline hade to beg N for help.
N regarded her coldly. ¡°If I¡¯m not mistaken, it was Gen Pharma and the Rainford Group that terminated their contracts with Prospectus Technology.
¡°I have no shares or position at Prospectus Technology, merely a regr employee. Do you really believe I have enough influence to persuade Mr. Sumner to go easy on Gen Pharma and the Rainford Group?¡±
Jacqueline gritted her teeth. N clearly had no intention of assisting her. Nevertheless, her father had warned her before she came that, regardless of how difficult N might be, she had to ask for help.
She forced a smile. ¡°Ms. Jayston, Mr. Sumner is your uncle, and he stood up for you at the banquet. If you¡¯re willing to persuade him, he¡¯ll definitely agree.¡±
N found this amusing. Jacqueline had previously plotted against her, and now she sought her help? Was she trying to treat her like a fool?
¡°I don¡¯t think our rtionship is close enough for me to speak on your behalf to Mr. Sumner. Isn¡¯t Ms. Hulle your good friend? Instead of wasting time with me, you should ask her. She¡¯ll definitely be able to assist you,¡± N said, brushing past Jacqueline and leaving.
Jacqueline stared at N¡¯s retreating figure, filled with humiliation and anger. She had humbled herself to beg N, only to be dismissed so coldly.
That bitch!
Once Gen Pharma and the Rainford Group emerged from this crisis, she would make sure to pay N back!
In a parked Maybach nearby, Damon said coldly. ¡°Warn the Rainfords to stop harassing N. Otherwise, they¡¯ll face the consequences.¡±
CHAPTER 194
¡°Understood!¡± Spencer replied but then turned back to look at him, his expression hesitant
¡°Is there something else?¡± Damon asked.
¡°It¡¯s not a big deal¡ It¡¯s just¡ With Ms. Jayston¡¯s birthdaying up, should we prepare a gift for her?¡± Spencer asked.
Damon frowned, his gaze showing irritation. ¡°What does her birthday have to do with me?¡±
Spencer quickly shook his head. ¡°No, nothing.
¡°In the future, you don¡¯t need to report anything about her to me. Professionally, she¡¯s just an employee from Park Pharmaceuticals. Personally, she¡¯s my niece¨Cinw, We need to keep our distance,¡± Damon rified,
Spencer lowered his head. ¡°Understood, Mr. Sumner.¡±Please check at N/?vel(D)rama.Org.
Back at home, Jacqueline was fuming.
After learning that N had refused to help, Jacqueline¡¯s father, Byron Rainford, scolded her and instructed her to keep trying until N agreed to assist.
She was burning with frustration. Given N¡¯s attitude that morning, continuing seemed pointless.
While she was brooding, she suddenly received a call from Erin.
Knowing what Jacqueline had been through that morning, Erin invited her out for a shopping spree to cheer her up.
When they met, Jacqueline vented her frustration.
Erin listened sympathetically. ¡°It¡¯s clear that N is holding a grudge from the banquet. I didn¡¯t expect her to be s. petty.¡±
Jacqueline gritted her teeth. ¡°The thought of having to beg her makes me sick.¡±
¡°Isn¡¯t Tom helping you?¡± Erin asked.
Although Gen Pharma suffered significant losses, Tom was supported by his family background. He could resolve the issues facing both Gen Pharma and the Rainford Group with a simple visit home.
At the mention of Tom, Jacqueline¡¯s face darkened. ¡°Don¡¯t bring him up. He¡¯s been avoiding metely. I bet that bitch Vrie said something to him!¡±
Upon recalling Tom¡¯sment that he now saw her as just a sister, Jacqueline¡¯s anger red. She couldn¡¯t believe Tom wanted to marry Vrie!
Erin narrowed her eyes. ¡°Aren¡¯t you nning to win him back? Are you just going to watch him with Vrie?¡±
¡°Of course not. However, with the Rainford Group in such a dire situation, I can¡¯t keep chasing after him,¡± Jacqueline replied.
Erin sighed. ¡°You¡¯re putting the cart before the horse. As long as you¡¯re with Tom, the Genge Group will likely cooperate with the Rainford Group because of his influence. The Genge Group is just as significant as the Sumner Group.¡±
Jacqueline¡¯s eyes lit up. Right, if she could secure Tom she¡¯d also secure the Genges behind him.
Seeing that Jacqueline was considering her advice, Erin added, ¡°What you need to focus on now is driving Vrie away from Tom, not begging N.¡±
Jacqueline nodded. ¡°Erin, you¡¯re right! I know what I need to do now!¡±
A week passed quickly, and soon it was N¡¯s birthday
As soon as she arrived at work that morning, she received a message from Vrie.
Vrie: [Come to Room 302 on the third floor of Hyphen Hotel after work. I have a surprise for you.]
N couldn¡¯t help but smile.
N: [Okay.]
Later in the evening, just before getting off work, rk transferred 1,340,000 dors to her along with an
apology note.
rk: [N, sorry I can¡¯t make it back. I¡¯ve asked my assistant to send a cake and a gift home. Happy Birthday!]
N read the message with a neutral expression, did not reply, and chose not to ept the money.
After cleaning up theb equipment, she changed out of herb coat and left the office.
Halfway there, she received a call from Vrie asking how far away she was.
¡°There¡¯s some traffic, so I¡¯ll probably be there in about half an hour,¡± N said.
¡°Alright, I¡¯ll wait for you,¡± Vrie replied.
Finally, N arrived at the hotel around 7:00 p.m. She paid the cab fare and was about to enter the hotel when suddenly a shadow fell from above,nding right in front of her.
N froze in shock.
When she saw that it was Vrie, her eyes widened in disbelief as she shouted, ¡°Vrie!¡±
CHAPTER 195
N rushed over to Vrie, but in her panic, she stumbled and fell beside her.
Vrie¡¯s eyes were closed, her clothes torn and ragged, and her face bore visible handprints.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
Seeing the blood pooling beneath Vrie, N finally remembered to call for emergency help. Her hands shook as she fumbled with her phone, dialing several times before finally getting through.
With a trembling voice, she reported that someone had fallen from a building, choking up as she provided the address.
After hanging up, N dared not touch Vrie. She trembled uncontrobly, tears streaming down her face.
Vrie hade here to celebrate her birthday. If something happened to her, N would never forgive herself.
Nearby, a ck Maybach was stopped at a red light.
Noticing the crowd gathered around the hotel, Spencer nced over curiously and then frowned.
He spoke up. ¡°Mr. Sumner, the person in the center of the crowd appears to be Ms. Jayston-¡±
Before he finished speaking, the sound of a car door opening came from behind.
Spencer turned in surprise to see Damon swiftly crossing the street.
For the first time, N felt time dragging on endlessly. With each passing second, it seemed like Vrie¡¯s breathing grew fainter.
In her daze, she was transported back six years to when Harrison Pharmaceuticals went bankrupt and Harrison had coughed up blood and copsed in front of her.
The ringing in her ears grew deafening. She covered her ears, her already pale face now nearly colorless.
¡°N¡ N!¡± A deep voice pulled her back from the darkness.
N looked up, her gaze slowly focusing. The moment she saw Damon, she grabbed his hand desperately, as if he were a lifeline.
¡°M¨CMr. Sumner, c¨Ccan you help me? Vrie fell from the building. I¨CI called for an ambnce, but it¡¯s been so long, and t¨Cthey still haven¡¯t arrived¡¡± she stuttered,
Damon frowned. ¡°Don¡¯t panic. I¡¯ll handle it.¡±
Within five minutes of Damon making the phone call, the ambnce arrived. The paramedics assessed Vrie¡¯s condition and quickly ced her on a stretcher and into the ambnce.
In the ambnce, N shakily asked the paramedic about Vrie¡¯s condition.
The paramedic said solemnly, ¡°She needs surgery. We can¡¯t be sure of the specifics yet.¡±
Upon reaching the nearest hospital, Vrie was immediately rushed into surgery.
Seeing N staring intently at the operating room, Damon pulled her aside and said softly, ¡°Don¡¯t worry.
she¡¯ll be fine.¡±
N covered her face, tears slipping through her fingers. It¡¯s all my fault. If it weren¡¯t for celebrating my birthday, she wouldn¡¯t have fallen.¡±
Noting her distress, Damon gently removed her hands from her face and forced her to look at him.
Isn¡¯t your
fault. No one wanted this to happen. I¡¯ll make sure we find out exactly what happened.
Vrie was an adult. She wouldn¡¯t just fall from a building without a reason. Either someone had pushed her, or the situation was so dire that she had had to justip. Regardless, this was no ident.
¡°Yes, call the police¡¡± N murmured as she fumbled for her phone.
Before she could unlock it, arge hand grasped her wrist.
¡°I¡¯ll take care of this. Your job right now is to stay calm. Don¡¯t be afraid. Vrie will be fine,¡± Damon reassured her.
N¡¯s frantic heart began to settle as she looked into Damon¡¯s calm eyes. ¡°I understand. Thank you¡±
Seeing her calm down a bit, Damon released his grip, moved aside, and called Spencer to review the hotel¡¯s surveince footage to determine what had happened before Vrie¡¯s fall.
Soon, Spencer called back, ¡°Mr. Sumner, the hotel¡¯s surveince cameras were down an hour before Ms. Weir fell. We haven¡¯t been able to find anything.¡±
CHAPTER 196
Damon¡¯s expression darkened as he said coldly, ¡°Then check the surveince footage around the hotel.¡± ¡°Understood. I¡¯ll get on it right away,¡± Spencer replied.
After ending the call, Damon approached N. She spoke in a hoarse voice. ¡°What¡¯s the update? Have you figured out what happened?¡±
*Not yet, but it should be soon,¡± Damon answered.
N nodded, lowering her gaze. ¡°Uncle Damon, I¡¯m really grateful for your help today. It¡¯s gettingte, so you should go back. I¡¯ll stay here.¡±
Damon looked at her. She was staring down, her hands tightly clenched, and her body still trembling. He remained silent for a moment before sitting down beside her.
¡°I¡¯ll stay with you,¡± he said firmly.
N said nothing more, silently praying that Vrie would be okay.
Soon, Vrie¡¯s parents arrived after hearing the news. When they learned that Vrie had fallen while going to celebrate N¡¯s birthday, Phoebe Shersby, Vrie¡¯s mother, turned icy.
¡°I¡¯m so sorry, Mr. and Mrs. Weir¡¡± N apologized.
Phoebe, filled with anger, raised her hand to p N. Just as her hand was in the air, it was grabbed firmly.
Facing Damon¡¯s cold and intimidating gaze, Phoebe flinched, and a hint of fear rose in her heart.
¡°Mrs. Weir, I understand your anxiety given the situation with Ms. Weir, but that doesn¡¯t give you the right tosh out at others,¡± Damon said.
Seeing Damon standing in front of her, N spoke softly. ¡°Uncle Damon, I¡¯m okay. This happened because of me¡¡±
Damon turned to her, his voice stern. ¡°Be quiet.¡±
Under his icy stare, N fell silent, not daring to speak further.
Vrie¡¯s father, Jonathan Weir, quickly pulled Phoebe back as he noticed Damon¡¯s barely contained anger. ¡°We don¡¯t have all the details yet. You need to calm down.¡±
¡°How can I stay calm when my daughter¡¯s life is uncertain?¡± Phoebe cried.
Jonathan frowned. ¡°This was clearly aimed at Vrie. Even if she hadn¡¯t gone to celebrate N¡¯s birthday, the attacker would have found another opportunity.¡±
If N had been the target, the assants would likely have waited for her to arrive at the hotel. However, Vrie hadn¡¯t made any recent enemies. Could the attack be rted to Jonathan¡¯s business rivals?
Phoebe remained silent, her gaze fixed on N with open hostility.
The Weirs sat opposite N and Damon, a heavy silence settling over them. The hallway was eerily quiet.
After what felt like an eternity, the light above the operating room door finally extinguished.
They rushed to find the doctor.
Jonathan was the first to speak, his voice urgent. ¡°Doctor, how is my daughter?¡±
The doctor removed his mask, his expression grave. ¡°The wounds have been treated, and bleeding has stopped. However, she sustained a head injury during the fall. We cannot determine when she will regain
consciousness.¡±
Phoebe¡¯s knees buckled, and she would have copsed had Jonathan not caught her.
Her voice choked with emotion, she asked, ¡°What do you mean you can¡¯t determine when she¡¯ll wake up? Will my daughter¡ be in aa?¡±
The doctor shook his head. ¡°We cannot say for certain at this time. We will monitor her in the intensive care unit for three days. If she does not awaken after that, the possibility of a vegetative state increases significantly
¡°Doctor, please, you must save my daughter. She¡¯s so young¡¡± Phoebe sobbed.This is from N?velDrama.Org.
¡°That will depend on her own strength, the doctor replied.
Disbelief etched on her face, N involuntarily stepped back. Vrie would be possiblyatose? How could she fathom that someone she had spoken to just hours ago might end up in such a state?
Seeing the guilt and anguish in N¡¯s eyes, Damon realized the depth of her remorse and regret. His frown deepened, revealing his concern.
After Vrie was transferred to the ICU, N followed. Upon seeing her, Phoebe lunged at N in a frenzied attempt to strike her.
Jonathan intervened swiftly, but not before N¡¯s face bore the mark of a stinging p, a crimson handprint on her pale skin.
Tony¡¯s Bonus Offer
CHAPTER 197
Chapter 197
Damon¡¯s gaze turned icy as if he could kill with a stare.
Phoebe felt a pang of guilt under his harsh scrutiny. However, as she gazed at her daughter in the ICU, uncertain of her fate, her anger reignited.
¡°Mr. Sumner, I¡¯m not afraid of you. After all, my daughter is in this state. What do I have to lose?¡± she stated boldly.
N stepped forward, looking up at Damon. ¡°Uncle Damon, it¡¯s natural for Mrs. Weir to be upset. She¡¯s Vrie¡¯s mother. I¡¯m fine.¡±
Jonathan sighed and turned to N. ¡°Ms. Jayston, you should go home for now. I¡¯ll let you know if Vrie improves.¡±
Although N longed to stay, she realized her presence would only add to the tension.
¡°Okay,¡± she agreed.
N took onest nce at Vrie through the ss, took a deep breath, and turned to leave. Instead of going home, she found a quiet bench in the hospital lobby.
¡°Uncle Damon, you should go back now,¡± she suggested.
Damon stood firm. ¡°And you?¡±
¡°I¡¯m staying here tonight. I won¡¯t be able to sleep at home anyway.¡± N replied.
Staying there would ensure she would be immediately informed of any change in Vrie¡¯s condition.
¡°I¡¯ll have someone watch over things and notify you immediately if Vrie wakes up. But staying here. won¡¯t help. Come back with me,¡± Damon insisted.
N shook her head. ¡°Uncle Damon, it¡¯s okay. You¡¯ve already done so much for me tonight. I-¡± Before she could finish, Damon unexpectedly bent down and scooped her up.
Startled, N instinctively wrapped her arms around his neck
As he carried her toward the hospital exit, she protested, ¡®Uncle Damon, put me down. Even if you take me back, I¡¯ll juste back hereter.¡±This content is ? N?velDrama.Org.
Damon remained silent, his expression grim as he strode forward.
N¡¯s frustration grew as he wasn¡¯t listening. ¡°Uncle Damon, put me down! I said I don¡¯t want to go back!¡±
Damon looked down at her, his eyes cold. ¡°Staying here is just wasting time. The most important thing now is to get some rest and figure out who did this to Vrie, not to uselessly wait around!¡±
N tightened her grip around his neck. After a few seconds, she spoke quietly. ¡°Put me down. I can walk.
tible
Damon was right. Besides waiting for Vrie to wake up, she needed to find out who was responsible for
this.
12
+25
Seeing that N understood, Damon didn¡¯t say anything more or put her down. He quickly walked to the curb and ced her into the car.
¡°Drive,¡± he ordered.
Half an hourter, the car stopped in front of arge, standalone vi.
N frowned. ¡°Where is this?¡±
¡°My ce,¡± Damon answered.
Her expression changed. ¡°Uncle Damon, please have the driver take me home.¡±
¡°You can either stay here tonight or find your own way back. It¡¯s up to you,¡± Damon said, getting out of the car and walking toward the vi.
Seeing the vi surrounded by darkness, with asional mysterious noises, N hesitated but eventually followed Damon inside.
The vi was decorated in a minimalist ck, white, and gray scheme. It was devoid of any bright colors or warmth, giving it a cold and unweing feel¨Cmuch like Damon himself.
Damon took a bottle of water from the fridge and sipped it. He frowned when he noticed N still standing by the door.
¡°The slippers are in the cab by the door. You¡¯ll stay in the second room on the left side of the second floor,¡± he informed her, then turned and headed toward his study.
Seeing him about to leave, N snapped back to reality. She quickly changed into slippers and rushed to block his path. ¡°Uncle Damon, have you found out how Vrie fell from the building? What did you discover?¡±
CHAPTER 198
Chasing the Unexpected CHAPTER 195
Damon¡¯s gaze darkened. ¡°Not yet. The hotel¡¯s surveince was damaged, so I had Spencer check the cameras around the hotel. The most important thing for you tonight is to get some rest. We can handle everything else tomorrow morning.¡±
¡°Got it. Thanks, Uncle Damon,¡± N said gratefully..
¡°There¡¯s no need to thank me. Although it might not be the best time to say this, happy birthday,¡± Damon wished her.
N was momentarily taken aback, then replied softly, Thank you.¡±
If Vrie didn¡¯t wake up, she might never enjoy her birthdays again.
¡°Get some rest,¡± Damon urged.
¡°Okay,¡± N agreed.
She went to her room, decorated in the same ck, white, and gray scheme as the living room. A faint, pleasant fragrance lingered in the air¨Cone she couldn¡¯t identify but found quite nice.
After taking a shower, shey down, expecting to have trouble sleeping, but fatigue soon overcame her, and she drifted into a deep sleep.
Unbeknownst to her, shortly after she fell asleep, a maid quietly entered the room, took a box of ointment from the bedside table, and left.
The fragrance in the air diminished significantly after the maid departed.
In the study downstairs, Damon was reviewing documents when the maid knocked and entered. ¡°Mr. Sumner, Ms. Jayston is already asleep.¡±
Damon nodded. ¡°Alright. You should get some rest too.¡±
¡°Yes, sir. Don¡¯t stay up toote. Work is endless,¡± the maid reminded him,
¡°I know,¡± Damon replied.
Seeing his focus still on the documents, the maid sighed and left.
The next morning, N woke up to find it was already past 8:00 a.m. She was surprised because she
usually had trouble sleeping away from home, yet she had slept so soundly there.
After getting ready, she went downstairs where breakfast was already set out on the table.This is from N?velDrama.Org.
Damon was sitting at the table, reading the news.
¡°Good morning. Uncle Damon,¡± N greeted.
¡°Good morning. How did you sleepst night?¡± Damon asked, setting his tablet aside and looking at her.
¡°Pretty well,¡± she replied.
Damon nodded and resumed eating breakfast.
N wanted to ask about Spencer¡¯s progress but decided it was best not to interrupt Damon while he was eating. She waited until breakfast was over.
¡°Uncle Damon, have there been any updates on Vrie¡¯s situation?¡± she asked.
¡°Still under investigation. There hasn¡¯t been much progress,¡± Damon answered.
Disappointment shed in N¡¯s eyes. ¡°Okay.¡±
¡°I¡¯ll have HR give you a few days off. Come back to work once you¡¯ve had a chance to recover,¡± Damon said.
to work.
N shook her head. ¡°No need. I can return to
Damon looked at her. ¡°Aren¡¯t you going to the hospital anymore?¡±
¡°I wouldn¡¯t be of much help at the hospital, I¡¯ll visit Vrie after work each day,¡± N replied.
Seeing her calm demeanor and recognizing that staying upied at work might be better for her than dwelling on the situation, Damon nodded. ¡°Alright.¡±
§°§á
n the way to Prospectus Technology, N asked Damon to drop her off a couple of blocks from thepany so she could walk the rest of the way.
Damon didn¡¯t insist and had the driver stop.
After thanking him, N got out and headed toward thepany.
The ck Maybach soon merged into traffic and disappeared from N¡¯s view.
As soon as she reached thepany entrance, she received a call from rk.
¡°N, where did you spend the night?!¡± he demanded.
rk was shocked to receive a call from the housekeeper first thing in the morning, saying N hadn¡¯t home all night. Since their wedding, she had always returned home on time, making it unusual for her to be gone for an entire night.
The more he thought about it, the more suspicious it seemed.
N looked down and responded calmly. ¡°rk, I¡¯m an adult, not your property. I don¡¯t need to report where I go to you.¡±
rk sneered. ¡°Even if you don¡¯t tell me, I can find out. I¡¯m giving you two options¨Ceither tell me now or, when I find out who you were with, the kidney for your father¡¡±
T
CHAPTER 199
N bit her lower lip hard, not letting go even when she tasted blood.
After a long moment, she finally said coldly, ¡°rk, is that all you can do?!¡±
¡°You¡¯re the one pushing me. I just wanted to know where you werest night. That¡¯s all. If you refuse to tell me, it only makes me think you¡¯re hiding something,¡± rk insisted.
N took a deep breath and enunciated each word, ¡°I stayed at your uncle¡¯s housest night.¡±
The phone call fell into a suffocating silence.Property belongs to N?vel(D)r/ama.Org.
N could clearly hear rk¡¯s breathing bing heavier. She continued slowly. ¡°Vrie had an identst night. I was emotionally unstable, and Uncle Damon was worried I might overthink things if I went home, so-¡±
rk sneered. ¡°So he took you to his house? N, don¡¯t tell me nothing happened between the two of you alone!¡±
¡°There was service staff in his house, and it wasn¡¯t as sordid as you imagine!¡± N countered.
rk didn¡¯t believe a word of it. ¡°Not as sordid as I think? So you just kissed and hugged, but didn¡¯t go all the way, right?!¡±
¡°rk!¡± N¡¯s eyes shed with cold anger. ¡°You don¡¯t know what happenedst night. Vrie-¡±
rk cut her off. ¡°Don¡¯t use Vrie as an excuse. N, I already told you this was yourst chance, and you squandered it!¡±
His voice was icy, and N had a bad feeling. She quickly said, ¡°If you don¡¯t believe me, I can exin everything when youe back from your business trip.¡±
¡°No need for an exnation. I¡¯m smart enough to judge for myself,¡± rk said and hung up.
When N tried calling back, he wouldn¡¯t answer. She clutched her phone tightly, her heart sinking. Taking a deep breath, she hurriedly sent him a series of messages
N: [I really just stayed at Uncle Damon¡¯s cest night. Nothing happened between us. If you don¡¯t believe me, you can call him right now.]
N: [Also, Vrie had a surprise for me at the hotelst night, but when I arrived, she had fallen from the building right in front of me. I was in shock, and Uncle Damon happened to pass by and helped me.]
N: [Please call me when you see this message, and §±l exin everything slowly. Okay?]
She sent several messages, but they seemed to vanish into thin air. rk did not respond at all.
N was not worried about him misunderstanding her¨Cshe feared he might impulsively give her father¡¯s kidney donation to someone else.
Her heart felt as though it were on fire¨Cagonizing and restless
Had she known that the housekeeper would report to rk, she would have insisted on returningst night. But it was toote for regrets now.
+25
Meanwhile.
In a fit of rage. rk called Michael and ordered him to give the kidney donation to Jordyn¡¯s father.
Michael hestated. M. Sumner, Mrs. Sumner finds out about this, it might¡¡±
rk, consumed by fury and almost losing his sense of reason, was not listening to any objections. ¡°The kidney donation obtained can go to whoever I want! Do as I say?¡±
¡°Understood.¡± Michael replied, acquiescing
After hanging up. rk remained seathing. He saw the unread messages from N but could not bring himself to read them. He deleted the entire chat
This time, he was determined not to forgive her so easily.
CHAPTER 200
Chapter 200
Jordyn quickly received a call from Michael at the hospital.
When she learned that rk had donated the kidney to her father, she couldn¡¯t contain her joy. She had thought it would take longer for rk to agree, but it happened so swiftly!
Now, she just needed to find a chance to tell N about it. She touched her still¨Ct belly, her eyes filled with scheming.
All day. N had tried calling rk more than a dozen times, but he hadn¡¯t answered any of her calls.
It seemed she would have to wait until he returned from his business trip to exin everything.
Spencer entered the CEO¡¯s office with a file and knocked on the door. ¡°Mr. Sumner, we¡¯ve made some progress onst night¡¯s incident.¡±
Damon put down his documents and looked up at him.
Spencer handed over the file and reported, ¡°We found a suspicious vehicle that left through the hotel¡¯s back door shortly after Vrie¡¯s incident. This car had a fake license te and quickly vanished down a
that left the
road without surveince. We¡¯re still tracing its final location.¡±
Damon opened the file, his expression turning icy. ¡°Start by investigating the hotel staff. The fact that the surveince was conveniently down during Vrie¡¯s incident suggests there¡¯s likely an insider involved.¡± Spencer nodded. ¡°Should we inform Ms. Jayston about this now?¡±
¡°Not yet. Let¡¯s wait until we have more concrete results Damon replied.
¡°Understood,¡± Spencer said.
¡°I want the final results within a day,¡± Damon requested.
was
Spencer felt the pressure immediately. Finding the culprit within a day was an enormous task. However, thinking about his monthly sry motivated him to push forward.
Jacqueline was on the phone at the Rainford vi, screaming in frustration, ¡°What kind of mess are you people making?! I just asked you to take a few photos of her clothes being removed, and now it¡¯s turned into a fall?!¡±
If Tom and the Weirs found out, they would never let her off.
Jacqueline was so furious she could barely contain herself.
¡°You don¡¯t understand. We didn¡¯t expect her to jump out of the window when we weren¡¯t looking. By the time we realized what was happening, it was toote¡ the person on the phone said.
Jacqueline gritted her teeth. ¡°The police will definitely trace this back to you. I¡¯ll transfer some money to you. You need to leave the country immediately and nevere back. If you get caught and involve me,
you¡¯ll make sure your family is informed¡±
With that, she hung up and immediately broke the SIM card, flushing it down the toilet.
Despite the money transfer, Jacqueline remained wordled. She could only hope the police wouldn¡¯t trace it back to her.
After much hesitation, she packed her bags, booked the earliest flight out, and prepared toy low abroad for a while.
When Jacqueline¡¯s mother, Charlotte Nichols, saw her dragging a suitcase and asked where she was going, Jacqueline hurriedly said she was going on a trip and then drove off without looking back.This content is ? N?velDrama.Org.
Noticing her daughter¡¯s unusual behavior, Charlotte quickly called Byron.
Spencer worked quickly. Before long, he located the vehicle and apprehended the suspects as they were about to flee.
At first, the two insisted they had done nothing wrong. After a beating, they quickly confessed everything- and Spencer was surprised to learn that Jacqueline was behind it.
¡°Mr. Sumner, they revealed that Jacqueline had instructed them to takepromising photos of Vrie. When Vrie jumped out of the window, one of them grabbed her foot, which likely caused her tond headfirst¡.¡± Spencer reported.
A three¨Cstory fall wasn¡¯t very high, and if the jump was controlled, one might not be seriously injured at all.
CHAPTER 201
It was unexpected that the suspects would attempt to grab Vrie as she jumped from the building, causing her to hit her head and fall unconscious.
Damon¡¯s expression darkened. ¡°Take those two to the police station. As for Jacqueline, send a few people to capture her and bring her to N. Let her handle it herself.¡±
Jacqueline had just arrived at the airport when the Rainfords¡® men blocked her path. She scowled. ¡®Get out of my way! I¡¯ll miss my flight!¡±
The leader of the group was the Rainfords butler, who usually took orders only from Byron
¡°Ms. Rainford, your father wants me to take you back,¡± the butler said.
¡°I¡¯m not going back. I¡¯m going abroad! If you don¡¯t move, don¡¯t me me for being rude Jacqueline yelled.
The butler, seemingly unperturbed, signaled to his team. They moved forward and forcibly dragged Jacqueline to the car.
¡°Let go of me! You¡¯re just the Rainfordsckeys. Don¡¯t touch me! I¡¯ll make sure my dad deals with your Jacqueline screamed.
No matter how much she cursed, their expressions remained unchanged. They stuffed her into the car and drove away from the airport
As soon as Jacqueline arrived home, Byron pped her hard.
¡°You fool! I told you to apologize to N, and now look¨Cthere¡¯s no news from N, and you¡¯ve caused Vrie to fall into aa! Are you trying to kill me?¡± Byron
scolded
Jacqueline stood there, stunned. How did her father know about this?
At that moment, a man in a suit stood up from the sofa and looked at Byron calmly Mr. Rainford, since Ms. Rainford is back, we¡¯ll take her away now.
Jacqueline felt a shiver run down her spine as if she had fallen into an ice cer
¡°Dad what¡¯s going on? Where are they taking me?¡± she asked.
Per ayes were filled with fear, but Byron replied oily, ¡°You¡¯ve made a mess and angered the wrong people You have to face the convence
He turned to Sp, whing slightly cautious 1 Hogg, my daughter has made mastakes, and we won¡¯t discuss the consergences she must face. We just hope that We Sure will show some mercy and spare her life¡±
Spencer smiled. Dont worry, Mr. Panford. We¡¯re all civilized people. We wouldn¡¯t sake lives¡±
wing this, Byron sighed with reduced.
Given the current state of the Panford Group, they wouldn¡¯t darein even if Demon actually killed using they could only me their own foolishness for
theking Damon was as lenient as rk
Now that they had brought this disaster upon themselves, they had no choice but to endure, even if it was painful
Jacqueline, in a panik, subconsciously began to back away. ¡°Dad, help me! I don¡¯t want to go! I know I was wrong! fill listen to you from now on. I don¡¯t want to go with
Byron didn¡¯t even look at her or seem to hear her desperate pleas. He turned and
Her ones grew fainter and eventually disappeared
Half an hourter, as the car stopped in front of Hyphen Hotel, Jacqueline¡¯s eyes widened with terror ¡°What are you going to do?!
¡°You¡¯ll find out soon, Ms. Rainford,¡± Spencer replied calmlyThis content is ? N?velDrama.Org.
¡°Don¡¯t make me get out of the cart Jacqueline shrieked
Despite her desperate struggles, two men in ck forcibly dragged her out of the while. They guided her up the stairs, one on each side.
As they approached Room 202, where Vnd¡¯s incident had urred, Jacqueline¡¯s
When they finally brought her into the room, her terror reached its peak, especially opon seeing Hyle sitting on the sofa with a Gold, unyielding expression
Chacter 201
Jacqueline was thrown roughly to the floor,nding awkwardly at N¡¯s feet.
CHAPTER 202
Seeing the fear in Jacqueline¡¯s eyes, N remained unmoved. Vrie must have been even more terrified when she jumped.
Jacqueline gritted her teeth and red at N. ¡°What do you want, N?¡±
N smiled and said, ¡°I just want you to experience the pain and fear that Vrie went through.¡±
Jacqueline¡¯s eyes widened. ¡°You wouldn¡¯t dare! If youy a hand on me, the Rainfords will never let you get away with it.
¡°If the Rainfords really wanted to protect you, you wouldn¡¯t be here right now, would you?¡± N sang.
Jacqueline felt a surge of terror. After all, Byron had watched her being taken away but had done nothing.
The thought that Vrie was still lying in the ICU, not knowing when she might wake up, made Jacqueline tremble uncontrobly
She didn¡¯t want to end up like that!
¡°Ms. Jayston, I realize I was wrong. Please, can you spare me? I¡¯ll go to Vrie¡¯s hospital room and beg for her forgiveness. I¡¯m begging you¡¡± Jacqueline pleaded.
Her face was pale with fear, and her eyes were full of desperation.
N¡¯s expression remained indifferent. ¡°Will you undress yourself, or should I have someone help you?¡±
Jacqueline quickly shook her head. ¡°No, please¡¡±
Tom wouldn¡¯te to her rescue now, and if he learned what she had done to Vrie, he might be even harsher on her. This thought filled her with despair.
¡°Looks like I¡¯ll have to have someone help you,¡± N said.
As soon as N finished speaking, the two men in ck who had brought Jacqueline earlier stepped forward.
Jacqueline was filled with terror. She backed away, screaming, ¡°No! Don¡¯te near me! Please, don¡¯te near me!¡±
No matter how much she screamed, the men seemed deaf to her cries. They quickly
reached her, ripping her clothes apart and exposing her white bra.
¡°Please, no! I¡¯m begging you, let me go! I truly realize my mistake!¡± Jacqueline shrieked.
N approached Jacqueline and took out her phone, snapping pictures of her disheveled appearance and exposed underwear.
¡°If I see anypromising photos of Vrie online, the pictures I¡¯ve just taken will also be posted,¡± N threatened.
Jacqueline wished she could tear N apart on the spot, but she knew that begging was her only option now, as no one wasing to her rescue.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
¡°I swear¡ I don¡¯t have any photos¡¡± She sobbed.
¡°You¡¯d better not,¡± N said.
Seeing Jacqueline¡¯s swollen, tearful eyes, N remained cold. ¡°Alright. You can go ahead and jump out of that window now.¡±
Jacqueline looked up in disbelief, her eyes filled with terror. ¡°What did you say?¡±
Telling her to jump out of the window was no different from asking her tomit suicide.
¡°Surprised? Don¡¯t forget, Vrie was also forced to jump by the people you sent. Don¡¯t worry. Three stories won¡¯t kill you,¡± N said dismissively.
Jacqueline¡¯s fear was palpable. ¡°No! I don¡¯t want to die! Please, spare me!¡±
suggest you jump yourself. Otherwise, if I have to push you, it¡¯ll be hard to control the force. You could end up severely injured N exined.
Seeing N¡¯s cold smile, Jacqueline gritted her teeth. ¡°N, how is this any different from murder?!*
¡°Oh, you realize it¡¯s no different from murder? Then why didn¡¯t you go to the police when Vrie fell into aa after jumping? Instead, you packed up and tried to escape abroad,¡± N retorted.
CHAPTER 203
¡°I know I was wrong. I¡¯ll go to the police and turn myself in. Will you let me go?¡± Jacqueline pleaded.
N shook her head. ¡°I¡¯m afraid that won¡¯t work. Even if you turn yourself in, the Rainfords could still bail you out.
¡°What I want is for you to experience the same pain and fear that Vrie went through. Only then will you understand what she endured.
Jacqueline felt a wave of despair. She hadn¡¯t expected N to be so ruthless. She started to regret listening to Erin and taking action against Vrie. If she had just listened to her parents and apologized to N, she wouldn¡¯t be in this desperate. situation now.
Wait¡ Erin was the one who had instigated her. If she could just shift the me onto Erin, maybe she could save herself!
At that thought, she looked up at N.
¡°Ms. Jayston, Erin was the one who directed me,¡± she revealed.
N frowned and looked at her coldly. ¡°Erin has no grievance with Vrie. What could she gain from having you harm Vrie?¡±
Jacqueline shook her head, her voice trembling. ¡°I¨CI don¡¯t know, but she told me that if I ruined Vrie, Tom would be with me and save the Rainfords¡ Ir¨Creally didn¡¯t mean to harm Vrie Please, s¨Cspare me!¡±
¡°So it was Erin who instructed you to takepromising photos of Vrie and to force her to jump?¡± N asked.
¡°Yes! She made me do it all!¡± Jacqueline confirmed.
Desperate to save herself, Jacqueline tried to shift all the me onto Erin.
N watched her in silence. Just as Jacqueline thought N might be convinced, N suddenly made a phone call
Soon, Erin¡¯s gentle voice came over the line ¡°Ms. N, what can I do for you?¡±
N didn¡¯t respond immediately. Instead, she yed the recording she had made
earlier
Chupke 201
After the recording ended, there was a brief silence before Erin¡¯s voice, now cold, came through. ¡°Ms. N, do you believe Jacqueline¡¯s ims?¡±
N lowered her gaze and said slowly, ¡°I didn¡¯t want to believe it, but Jacqueline¡¯s usations seemed serious, so I wanted to ask you, Ms. Hulle.¡±
I
¡°She says it was my Instructions. Does she have any proof?¡± Erin asked.
Before N could respond, Jacqueline, sitting on the floor, snarled, ¡°Erin, don¡¯t deny it! You were the one who directed me when we went shopping that day!¡±
¡°Jacqueline, you need evidence to make such ims. If you don¡¯t have proof, keep quiet. If you continue to nder me, not just me, but the Hulles won¡¯t let you off either!¡± Erin warned.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
With that, she hung up.
N looked at Jacqueline with indifference. Do you have any evidence?¡±
Jacqueline was frozen in ce. How could she have any evidence? She had never expected things to escte this far.
Seeing her silence, N said coldly, ¡°Since you don¡¯t have evidence, stop wasting
time.¡±
¡°No, I don¡¯t want to jump! I¡¯ll die if I jump!¡± Jacqueline cried.
N didn¡¯t respond, but the two men beside her moved toward Jacqueline.
She frantically backed away, but the room was too small, and within a minute, she was caught.
The men held her arms and legs and began to lift her toward the window.
Jacqueline was filled with terror as she struggled desperately. ¡°No, please! I beg you! Let me go! I truly understand my mistake!¡±
Just as the men were about to throw her out of the window, a cold, angry voice echoed from the doorway. ¡°Stop!¡±
CHAPTER 204
N turned to the doorway and saw Tom approaching with a cold expression. She sneered. ¡°Mr. Genge, what do you want?¡±
Tom looked at her icily. ¡°Let Jacqueline go.
¡°You should know that Vrie is still unconscious in the ICU because of her. What right do you have to ask me to let her go? N demanded.
¡°Even if you throw her out now, it won¡¯t wake Vrie, and she has already been punished as she should be,¡± Tom reasoned.
N scoffed. ¡°What punishment?¡±
Tom frowned, finding N¡¯s demeanor quite unpleasant. Even now, she wouldn¡¯t let Jacqueline go, despite Jacqueline already being in such a dire state.
¡°If you throw her out, you¡¯ll definitely offend the Rainfords. If the Rainford Group and the Sumner Group sh because of this, the Sumners won¡¯t spare you either,¡± Tom warned.
N raised an eyebrow and said slowly, ¡®So, Mr. Genge, are you looking out for my best interests?¡±
Tom¡¯s gaze grew colder due to the sarcasm in her voice. ¡®Regardless of your intentions, if you dare to push her out today, I won¡¯t let you off. And Damon isn¡¯t omnipotent. He can¡¯t protect you all the time.¡±Please check at N/?vel(D)rama.Org.
The two stared at each other, the air between them charged with tension.
After several seconds, N finally spoke coldly. ¡°If Vrie knew you were protecting the woman who harmed her like this, she would think she was blind for ever liking you.¡±
Tom narrowed his eyes. ¡°This is between me and her. It¡¯s not your ce to judge!¡±
¡°I can let her go now, but this won¡¯t be the end of it,¡± N warned.
With that, N ordered the men to release Jacqueline and walked past Tom, leaving the room.
Within two minutes, the room was left with only the disheveled Jacqueline on the floor and Tom.
Tom Jacqueline sobbed.
Tom¡¯s expression darkened. ¡°Don¡¯t call me Tom, Jacqueline. Out of consideration for our past this is thest time I¡¯m helping you. From now on, when we meet, we are strangers. If I find out you¡¯ve done anything to Vrie again, I will mat hundred times more.¡±
u suffer a
Jacqueline panicked. She scrambled to her feet, trying to stop him. ¡°Tom, I only wanted to take a few photos of Vrie¡ and then use them to threaten her to stay away from you. I never intended to harm her like this-¡±
Before she could finish, Tom grabbed her by the neck. The choking sensation overwhelmed her, and she struggled to push him away, but it was futile.
Tom¡¯s eyes were filled with disgust. ¡°Jacqueline, we were finished when you decided to go abroad. I hope you understand that.¡±
With that, he threw her to the floor and left without a trace of emotion.
If it weren¡¯t for Charlotte pleading with him and leveraging the past favor of saving him, Tom would have been even harsher than N.
As soon as N left the hotel, she received a call from the hospital saying that Vrie had woken up. Her eyes shed with disbelief and joy, and it took her several seconds to regain herposure.
¡°I¡¯ming right over!¡± she answered and turned to Spencer. ¡°Mr. Hogg, thank you. Please also thank Uncle Damon on my behalf. If it weren¡¯t for his help, we wouldn¡¯t have found the truth so quickly. I¡¯ll find a chance to thank him personally another day.
Spencer shook his head. ¡°No need, it¡¯s my duty. But are you really going to let Jacqueline off just like that?¡±
N¡¯s gaze turned icy. ¡°Of course not. But now that Vrie has woken up, I¡¯ll check on her condition first before deciding what to do next.
CHAPTER 205
hapter 205
¡°Okay, I¡¯ll take you there,¡± Spencer offered.
¡°No need. I drove myself,¡± N declined.
Less than half an hourter, N arrived at the hos 1. Seeing that Vrie had truly woken up, she let out a deep sigh of relief, and her eyes misted over.
When Phoebe saw her, her expression darkened. ¡°Ms. Jayston, you¡¯re not wee here.¡±
Vrie frowned and looked at her mother. ¡°Mom, what are you doing?¡±
Phoebe snorted. ¡°If it weren¡¯t for her birthday, you wouldn¡¯t have ended up in this situation.¡±
¡°These two things have nothing to do with each other,¡± Vrie retorted. ¡°Just because I had an ident on my way to dinner doesn¡¯t mean it¡¯s my fault for going to that restaurant.¡±
¡°Well, I don¡¯t want you to have any more contact with her,¡± Phoebe insisted.
¡°Whether or not I stay friends with someone is none of your business!¡± Vrie asserted.
¡°You!¡± Phoebe was furious, her face turning pale. She mmed the bowl she was holding onto the table and barked, ¡°Fine! You¡¯re all grown up now, and I can¡¯t control you. I¡¯m leaving!¡±
As Phoebe stood up to leave, N quickly said, ¡°Mrs. Weir, I just came to check if Vrie was really awake. You don¡¯t have to leave. I¡¯ll go now.¡±
N then turned to Vrie. ¡°Vrie, I¡¯lle see you another day.¡±Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
¡°N-¡± Before Vrie could finish her sentence, N turned and quickly walked out of the room.
Vrie looked at Phoebe with dissatisfaction. ¡°Are you happy now?¡±
Phoebe pursed her lips. ¡°I just don¡¯t like her. You should stay away from her.¡±
Seeing that her mother wouldn¡¯t change her mind, Vrie decided to ignore her.
As soon as N stepped out of the hospital, a ck Cayenne sped toward her. Just as the car was about to hit her, a screeching brake sound echoed, and the vehicle stopped just ten centimeters away from her.
The driver¡¯s door opened, and rk stepped out with a cold expression.
¡°What are you doing here?¡± he asked.
¡°You were supposed to return in three days. Why are you here today?¡± N back.
rk questioned her sharply, ¡°What are you doing at the hospital?*
N frowned, her tone growing colder. ¡°What¡¯s with the interrogative tone?¡±
ked
rk huffed. ¡°What does it mean? You don¡¯t get it? I still haven¡¯t had a chance to ask you about what happened when you stayed over at my uncle¡¯s house that night.¡±
Seeing that he was already convinced she had done something wrong with Damon, N decided not to exin further. ¡°Think what you want. You wouldn¡¯t believe me
anyway.¡±
rk sneered. ¡°I want to believe you, but you stayed overnight at a man¡¯s house who clearly has ulterior motives for you. How am I supposed to believe you?¡±
*So what do you want now?¡± N asked.
He grabbed her chin, forcing her to look up at him. ¡°Of course, you need to be punished so you¡¯ll listen in the future.¡±
With that, he yanked N¡¯s hand and pulled her toward the car.
¡°What are you doing? Let me go!¡± N cried out.
rk ignored her, locked the car doors, quickly started the engine, and drove off.
In less than an hour, they arrived at the vi.
¡°Get out,¡± rk ordered.
¡°I¡¯m not getting out. What exactly are you going to do?¡± N refused, questioning him.
rk opened the car door and dragged N out.
She stumbled, nearly falling and twisting her ankle in her high heels.
A sharp pain shot through her, causing her to cry out.
rk, however, acted as if he hadn¡¯t heard her and dragged her into the vi, throwing her roughly onto the sofa.
¡°Lock her in the basement. Don¡¯t let her have any food without my permission!¡± he instructed.
CHAPTER 206
The servant didn¡¯t give Nya a chance to resist and tossed her directly into the
Desement
The basement, usually reserved for rarely used items, was cold and dark
After locking her in, the servant let
Nya took out her phone but found there was no signal, so she had to abandon the idea of calling for help. As soon as her phone¡¯s light went out, the basement was plunged into darkness once more.
Around 10:00 pm, the basement door operied, and rk walked in with a grim
Do you realize your mistake now?¡± he asked
Nya looked at him, her eyes devoid of warmth. rk, I¡¯ve already exined everything. You refuse to listen, and I don¡¯t think I¡¯ve done anything wrong.¡±
Carr¡¯s face darkened, and his gaze turned icy. ¡®Since you won¡¯t admit your mistake, you can stay here tonight and reflect on it
With that he turned and lef
The basement door was shut again, cutting off all light from the outside.
The next day, Damon came looking for N
Where is Nya?¡± he asked.
rk regarded him cody Uncle Damon, even if you hadn¡¯te looking for me, I would havee to you soon. Sneaking my wife away to your house while I¡¯m away on business¨Cthat¡¯s a at shameless, don¡¯t you think?
Damor frowned and said sterly. ¡°I¡¯m asking you where N is.¡±
Why should I tell you? She¡¯s my wife, and it¡¯s none of your concem,¡± rk retorted. Contestesalso
she¡¯s also an employee of Prospectus Technology now,¡± Damon
rk smirked. ¡°Not for long I¡¯m resigning har on her behalf
Damon¡¯s eyes grew colder ¡°She should tell me that herselfBelonging to N?velDrama.Org.
¡°That might not be possible just got back from my business trip We¡¯ve been inseparable since yesterday, and she¡¯s exhausted and still asleep. As her husband, have the right to resign her position,¡± rk led
Damon¡¯s gaze turned icy. ¡°rk, if I don¡¯t see N within ten minutes, all the shareholders of the Sumner Group will know what you did during your business tro
¡°Uncle Damon, what are you talking about? I don¡¯t understand,¡± rk replied.
Damon didn¡¯t answer. Spencer, who stood behind him, yed a recording from his phone.¡±
rk¡¯s face went pale instantly, his eyes filled with disbelief and anger. ¡°You set me up?!¡±
Damon remained expressionless. ¡°If you weren¡¯t so greedy and wanted everything. I wouldn¡¯t have had the chance to do this, would I?¡±
rk clenched his fists tightly, his eyes burning with resentment.
The recording revealed how he had intentionally cut costs during his business trip by using substandard materials and pocketing kickbacks. If this information leaked, not only would he lose his position as CEO, but he might also face prison time.
His eyes darkened with rage. Damon was ruthless in his tactics¨Cfor a woman!
Seeing rk¡¯s silence, Damon said coldly, ¡°I¡¯m giving you ten seconds. If you don¡¯t tell me where N is, this recording will be sent to every shareholder of the Sumner Group, including your grandfather.¡±
Reluctant but left with no choice, rk called the servants. ¡°Let N out.¡±
N was helped out by the servants. After one day in the basement with no food or water, her face was pale, and she had lost weight.
Upon seeing her in such a state, Damon¡¯s anger red. ¡°You¡¯ve kept her locked up in the basement for a whole day?¡±
rk¡¯s face was grim. ¡°Didn¡¯t you see that yourself, Uncle Damon? Is there a need to ask?¡±
ahi[< s
Damon sneered ¡°You¡¯re not fit to be a husband.¡±
¡°Am not fit? And you. Uncle Damon¨Care you fit? Coveting your own niece¨Cinw. If others knew, the Summers might not know whether to be embarrassed or ashamed.¡±
Today¡¯s Box Offer
GET
CHAPTER 207
rk looked at mon with denson thing seventhing that has
If happe
Richard and Mane would be disappointed Canon and might reconsider
the Summer Group to him.
¡°rk, if anything happens to her won¡¯t let you off Damon Threemad
He then walked over to N, intending to zvok, her up.
N instinctively took a step back.
Damon¡¯s gaze hardened, ignoring her resistance he lifted her of the four fort of rk.
¡°Uncle Damon, put me down. I can walk on my own, a orchested
Damion nced at her and asked. Are you sure
¡°Yeah,¡± she replied.
Seeing her insistence, Damon rem siert for a few seconds before setting her
down as requested.
¡°Thank you,¡± N said softly.
¡°I¡¯ll help you.¡± Damon offered
¡°Alright,¡± N conceded
With Damon¡¯s support, via sicwly made her way out of the wills.
rk watched them with rage, but he knew he couldn¡¯t stop them.
Once outside the vi, N locked at Damon with gratitude Uncle Damon, thank you for getting me out.¡±
If Damon hadn¡¯te. rk might have kept her locked up indefinitel
Noticing N¡¯s paleplexion, which made her resemble a witting fower Camon frowned. ¡°I¡¯ll take you to the hospital.¡±
¡°No need. Just take me to my apartment,¡± she sac
Due to N¡¯s insistence, Damon ended up taking her back to her apartment
¡°Are you sure you don¡¯t need to get checked out at the hospital¡±¡°¡±¡°¡±¡°¡± he asked.
Nyt shook her head Yes must abi delstated the Damon, you¡¯ve already kad of te pas me You should get back to work
Dame wanted to port her upstairs but seeing that she seemed okay, he nodded.¡± Agh you need anything call me anyting
He paused and added ¡°About the divorce i mentioned earlier think it over carefully
aking with rk will only put you in more danger
Nia¡¯s cracked lips moved slightly, and she finally nodded Okay, Uncle Damon. Ill Think about
After Damon left, N tumed and slowly walked toward her apartment, reying his words as her mind
Divorce The idea had been on her mind for a while She had nned to use rk to get closer to Cyrus to uncover clues about the Hams Pharmaceuticals incident, but
that method now seemed ineffective
Maybe it was time to decide whether to sever ties with rk for good.
Back in the vi
rk went wild after Damon and N had left, smashing everything in the living
room
The service staff cowered in theers, waiting until rk finally stopped and stood still before approaching him
Mr. Sumber, you¡¯re hurt Let me call a doctor to bandage your hand!¡± one of the maids said
rk nced at his hand, seeing blood dripping from it. His expression remained nk as he replied, ¡°No need. I won¡¯t die from it¡±
The maid tried to say more, but rk¡¯s cold, terrifying gaze silenced her immediately.
At that moment, rk¡¯s phone rang. Upon seeing it was Michael, his face darkened as he answeredThis content is ? N?velDrama.Org.
¡°Mr. Sum We¡¯ve found out that on Mrs. Summer¡¯s birthday, Ms Weir jumped from Hyphen Hotel and fell right in front of Mrs. Sumner Later, your uncle happened to pass by saw what happened, and went to the hospital with her. They stayed at the hospital untilte at night before leaving
¡°Ms. Weir¡¯s hospital was far from your vi but close to your uncle¡¯s ce. He probably didn¡¯t send Mrs. Sumner back because it was toote.¡±
CHAPTER 208
#25 Bonus
rk glowered immediately. ¡°Why are you only finding this out now?!¡±
Michael, sounding innocent, replied, ¡°Mr. Sumner, I wanted to investigate earlier, but you told me not to. I decided to look into it again only after I ran into Ms. Weir¡¯s parents at the hospitalst night when I went to visit a friend.
Realizing he had been too angry and might have overreacted, rk took a deep breath. ¡°From now on, make sure to investigate these matters as quickly as possible!¡±
¡°Understood,¡± Michael replied.Please check at N/?vel(D)rama.Org.
Just as rk was about to hang up, he remembered that N had left with Damon earlier. He added sternly, ¡°Find out where N and my uncle are now.¡±
Michael quickly confirmed the information.
After learning that Damon had dropped N off at her apartment before leaving, rk felt a mix of relief and guilt. He had wrongly used N and locked her in the basement for a whole day.
After a moment of hesitation, he decided to wait a few days for N to calm down before apologizing and trying to get her toe back.
Suddenly, he remembered something else and looked extremely grim. He
immediately contacted Michael to arrange for the kidney donation to be reserved for Harrison.
¡°Mr. Sumner, Jordyn¡¯s father had his surgery yesterday,¡± Michael informed him.
rk tightened his grip on the phone, taking a long time to respond. ¡°Continue searching for another kidney. It must be found quickly, and N must not find out about this.¡±
If N learned that he had given the kidney to Jordyn¡¯s father, she would never forgive him.
After hanging up, rk thought for a moment before driving out.
When he arrived, Jordyn was making soup and looked pleasantly surprised to see him. ¡°rko, what are you doing here?¡±
rk¡¯s expression was cold. ¡°I don¡¯t want anyone, especially N, to know that I found a kidney for your father. If word gets to her, I won¡¯t spare you or your family.¡±
His serious tone and cold gaze made Jordy¡¯s smile freeze.
¡°Why?¡± she asked.
¡°You don¡¯t need to know.
Just follow my instructions, or you¡¯ll face the
consequences,¡± rk threatened.
Jordyn¡¯s expression was bitter. ¡°rk¡ Did youe here just to warn me? I thought you were here to see our baby¡¡±
Noticing her distress, rk frowned and spoke softly after a long pause. ¡°As long as you obey, I won¡¯t mistreat you or the child.¡±
Jordyn lowered her eyes and nodded. ¡°I understand.¡±
After rk left, Jordyn¡¯s expression gradually turned cold. She was determined not to keep this from N. After all, if N didn¡¯t divorce rk, Jordyn and her baby would always be in an illegitimate situation, which Jordyn would never ept.
Once N had taken a shower and eaten, she went to bed.
When she awoke, twilight had fallen.
The room was almostpletely dark, silent as if the world had shut out any noise.
N pressed her lips together and turned on the bedsidemp. The light illuminated the room instantly, and she squinted as she sat up.
Once her eyes adjusted to the light, she picked up her phone from the bedside. Seeing several missed calls from Vrie, she called back.
The call connected quickly. Learning that Phoebe wasn¡¯t at the hospital, N nned to visit Vrie and was instructed to bring fried chicken.
N couldn¡¯t help but smile. ¡°Forget about the fried chicken. You shouldn¡¯t have greasy food right now. I¡¯ll bring you some soup instead.¡±
CHAPTER 209
It was over an hourter when N finally arrived at the hospital.
Upon seeing that N had only brought soup, Vrie¡¯s face fell with disa, intment.
N sat down beside her, opened the container, and said, ¡°Alright, just hang in there. a few more days. Once you¡¯re out of the hospital, you can eat whatever you want.¡±
Vrie sighed and resignedly took the spoon. ¡°By the way, I heard that the two. people who forced me to jump were hired by Jacqueline?¡±
Recalling the nightmare that had unfolded when those men barged in, Vrie felt as though it had been a terrible dream. If she hadn¡¯t jumped, who knew what might have happened next?
N nodded, her expression darkening. ¡°Yeah. She said she only intended for them. to take some indecent photos of you, not to force you to jump.¡±
Vrie scoffed. ¡°Am I supposed to believe that nonsense? If I hadn¡¯t jumped, who knows what those men would have done to me?¡±
¡°I also took some pictures of her. If she ever tries to leak your photos, she¡¯ll face the same public disgrace,¡± N added.
Vrie looked at N in disbelief. ¡°How did you manage that?¡±
¡°rk¡¯s uncle helped me,¡± N answered.
Since it was Damon, it made sense¨Che Indeed had that capability.
¡°N, thank you,¡± Vrie said.
For Vrle, those photos weren¡¯t a big deal. She never cared much about what others thought of her. Even if those indecent photos were leaked, she wouldn¡¯t feel embarrassed since she was not at fault.
N shook her head. ¡°If it weren¡¯t for helping me celebrate my birthday, you might not have faced this.¡±
Vrie¡¯s frown deepened at N¡¯s guilty expression. ¡°N, this isn¡¯t your fault. If Jacqueline wanted to target me, she would have done it regardless of timing. She not only ruined your birthday but also pushed me to jump. I won¡¯t let her get away with it!¡±Please check at N/?vel(D)rama.Org.
Seeing Vrie¡¯s anger, N hesitated for a moment before telling her how she had tried to get revenge on Jacqueline but was stopped by Tom.
¡°From Tom¡¯s attitude toward Jacqueline that day, he¡¯ll probably try to stop you if you go after Jacqueline,¡± N guessed.
Vrie¡¯s eyes shed with disgust. ¡°The thought that I used to like such a scumbag for years makes me sick.¡±
If Tom truly cared for Jacqueline, he should have waited for her wholeheartedly, rather than juggling his feelings while dating her. It was absolutely revolting!
¡°I¡¯m telling you this just to prepare you. The most important thing now is to focus on your recovery. Once you¡¯re better, we can figure out how to deal with Jacqueline,¡± N coaxed.
Vrie nodded. ¡°Okay.¡±
N lowered her gaze, hesitated for a moment, and decided not to mention that Jacqueline had been instigated by Erin.
She had no concrete evidence, andpared to the Hulles, the Weirs were at a disadvantage. If Vrie stubbornly sought revenge against Erin, it might not be worthwhile.
Nevertheless, N wasn¡¯t going to let it go. Erin was maniptive and would likely try to attack her and Vrie again. Rather than waiting to be targeted, it was better to take the initiative.
N¡¯s gaze darkened as she thought about this. Damon had helped her so much, and she didn¡¯t want to use him as a pawn in her ns.
CHAPTER 210
Chapter 210 Please check at N/?vel(D)rama.Org.
N spent some time with Vrie and left after Phoebe arrived.
The next morning, as N was heading to work, she saw Michael standing a short distance away and frowned. Initially, she nned to ignore him, but he quickly approached her and stopped right in front of her.
¡°Mrs. Sumner, this is a gift from Mr. Sumner, Michael said.
N nced at the jewelry box in his hand, her face expressionless. ¡°What does rk mean by this? Is it a p in the face followed by a prize?¡±
Michael shook his head, trying to stay calm. No. This is Mr. Sumner¡¯s apology gift. He¡¯s too afraid toe himself, so he sent me to give it to you.¡±
N took the box, opened it, and found an expensive diamond ne inside.
Just as Michael let out a sigh of relief, N tossed both the box and the ne into a nearby trash can.
¡°Mrs. Sumner!¡± Michael eximed.
N looked at him, her voice cold and deliberate. ¡°Go back and tell him that I won¡¯t ept such a half¨Chearted apology.¡±
With that, she got into her car and drove away, leaving Michael behind.
When rk learned that N had thrown the ne away, his expression
darkened. Considering that he had locked her in the basement for a whole day and left her hungry, it was understandable that she was still angry.
¡°Understood. You can go back to work now, rk said, dismissing Michael.
Michael, relieved, responded softly. ¡°Okay.¡±
In the evening, after N bought groceries and returned home, she saw rk standing by her door as she exited the elevator. Her brow furrowed involuntarily. ¡°What are you doing here?¡± she asked.
Seeing the wantness in her eyes, rk fall apang His gaze grew senus yle.f came to take you home!
¡°Go back with you and be locked away in a dark basement again? She looked at him coldly, her toneced with sarcasm
rk avoided her gaze ¡®H, it was wrong of me to lock you in the busement
without knowing the full story. But you didn exin everything to me sather, did you?
N sneered ¡°When you called me that day, I sent you messages about Valene¡¯s fall Did you believe them?¡±
rk was taken aback. He remembered the incident but had been so angry at the time that he had deleted her messages without opening them so her messages had already exined everything.
Realizing this, he felt even quiltier. ¡°N, I¡¯m sorry I was so angry that I didn¡¯t read your messages. I didn¡¯t know
¡°So not knowing the truth and not trusting basement?¡± N felt revulsion every time she had endured in the darkness for a whole day
gave you the right to lock me in a saw rk, recalling the torment she
A simple apology after causing such harm? Was his apology worth anything?
¡°N, I know you¡¯re furious right now, but I really understand my mistake Juste back with me. You can punish me however you want, alright? rk pleaded
¡°rk, stop pretending I won¡¯t believe a single word you say anymore!¡± Fl spat
Seeing her stubbornness, rk fell silent for few seconds before speaking quietly Alright, if you won¡¯te back, then I¡¯ll move in with you.¡±
¡°You¡¯re absolutely shameless!¡± N eximed
¡°N, I just want to be with you. We¡¯re married Living together is only natural and legal,¡± rk emphasized
N knew very well that it rk insisted on moving in, there was nothing she could do about it. Even if she moved elsewhere, he would follow. Plus, since they were married, the police wouldn¡¯t intervene if she called them.
The thought filled her with
with an un edente sence or anger and helplessness.
CHAPTER 211
Was Nyle really just going to let rk have his way it seemed than the only way to distance herself from him was to get a divorce
Before she could do that, Harrison¡¯s kidney surgery needed to beplete Otherwise, rk would continue to use the situation to threaten te freales solely on herself, she would have to wait in line for a kidney, not knowing how long t
might take
N looked up at rk and said coldly, if you want me to move back, fire¡±
rk¡¯s face lit up with hope, but her next words made his smile freeze
¡°I will move back in after my father¡¯s kidney transnt ispleted,¡± she said.
A heavy silence fell over the hallway.
rk clenched his fists. If he hadn¡¯t rashly given the kidney to Jordi¡¯s father, he would have agreed immediately. With no new kidney donation avable now, he couldn¡¯t make that promise.
Seeing his silence, N assumed he intended to use the kidney donation to keep threatening her and grew even colder in her gaze.
¡°If you¡¯re not willing, then don¡¯te looking for me. I won¡¯t agree to move back, though you could always just force me. After all, you¡¯ve done that before, haven¡¯t you?¡± she said.
¡°N¡ I promise I won¡¯t treat you like this again,¡± rk said earnestly.
N¡¯s expression remained scornful. ¡°You¡¯ve made countless promises before, and it seems you¡¯ve broken every single one.¡±
rk¡¯s face fell, and he opened his mouth but couldn¡¯t find a defense.
After a tense moment, he said quietly, ¡°Give me some time regarding the surgery.¡±
¡°Sure. Then don¡¯te looking for me during this time. I don¡¯t want to see you.¡± N made herself clear.
Seeing N¡¯s icy demeanor, rk felt a pang of sorrow but ultimately conceded. ¡± Alright. I understand.¡±
Only after rk took the elevator and te
open her door and go inside.
As soon as rk got downstairs, he called Michael. ¡°¡®Find a kidney donation that matches my father¨Cinw within a month.¡±
After hanging up, rk left with a dark expression.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
Soon, it was Marie¡¯s birthday.
As soon as N got off work, she saw rk¡¯s car parked on the side of the road. She considered pretending not to see him, but he quickly got out of the car and approached her.
¡°N, it¡¯s Grandma¡¯s birthday today. Come with me to her party,¡± rk said.
N didn¡¯t have much affection for Marie, but she was an elder, and N¡¯s presence was expected. Not attending might lead toments about the Jaystons¡® manners.
Have you prepared a birthday gift?¡± N asked.
rk nodded. ¡°Yes. Grandma likes antiques. I bought an antique vase at an auction recently.¡±
¡°Let¡¯s go then,¡± N agreed and headed toward rk¡¯s car.
Noticing he hadn¡¯t followed, she turned back, puzzled. ¡°Why aren¡¯t youing?¡±
rk snapped out of his reverie and hurried to her. ¡°Oh, I was lost in thought. By the way, you should change into something more formal.¡±
He had assumed it would take some effort to persuade N to attend the party, but it had gone surprisingly smoothly.
N was dressed casually, and given that the party would be quite grand, formal attire was indeed more appropriate. Thus, she nodded. ¡°Alright.¡±
In less than half an hour, rk¡¯s car stopped in front of the vi.
¡°I¡¯ve had the service staff prepare a formal dress for you. It¡¯s on your bed. Just change into it,¡± rk informed her.
N nodded and got out of the car, heading into the vi. Once inside the bedroom, she picked up the dress from the bed and tried it on, only to find it was very loose and clearly not her size.
She nced down at the dress, her expression turning cold.
CHAPTER 212
Chapter 212
It seemed someone was already getting impatient.
After tossing the dress aside, N found a white V¨Cneck slit dress in the closet and put it on. She removed the hair tie, letting her hair cascade down. She then
straightened her hair with a t iron and spent five minutes on a light makeup look before she was ready to leave.
As soon as she got into the car and was about to fasten her seatbelt, rk¡¯s deep voice suddenly came from beside her. ¡°Why aren¡¯t you wearing the dress I had prepared for you?¡±
N raised an eyebrow and looked at him coldly. ¡°That dress isn¡¯t my size.¡±
rk, perceptive as ever, quickly understood, and his expression darkened. ¡°I¡¯ll look into this.¡±
N offered a slight smile. ¡°Let¡¯s go to the party first.¡±
Her face was small and delicate, perfectly made up with light makeup. Her long hair flowed like silk behind her. In her white dress, she looked like a fragrant gardenia, so beautiful it was almost impossible to look away.
rk¡¯s gaze lingered on N with deeper intensity. He knew she didn¡¯t trust him, so he sighed and fell silent, starting the car.
When rk¡¯s ck Cayenne arrived at the Sumner residence, it was already surrounded by luxury cars.
The Sumner Group and Prospectus Technology were top¨Ctier conglomerates in the city, and many from the upper echelons of society hade to the birthday party, eager to make connections.
After rk and N got out of the car, rk retrieved the prepared gift from the trunk and handed it to a maid at the door.
They walked through the garden and finally entered the main hall.
The main hall was filled with lively chatter and peals ofughter. Prominent figures who were usually seen only on TV were mingling, while high societydies and socialites chatted among themselves. Everyone wore smiles, though the authenticity of those smiles was questionable.
+25
In the center of the hall, Marie sat in the main seat with a beaming smile, nked by Cindy and Anne.
¡°Let¡¯s go greet Grandma first,¡± rk said, reaching to take N¡¯s hand.
N subtly pulled away.
rk¡¯s eyes dimmed, but he didn¡¯t press the issue and walked over to Marie first.Please check at N/?vel(D)rama.Org.
¡°Grandma,¡± he greeted.
N followed and greeted her as well.
Upon seeing rk, Marie¡¯s face lit up with a kind smile, though she didn¡¯t nce at N.
¡°rk, you¡¯re back!¡± Marie eximed.
¡°Yes, it¡¯s your birthday. If I didn¡¯te, Grandpa would punish me,¡± rk joked.
Marie¡¯s smile widened. ¡°Enough with the jokes. Go and entertain the guests.¡±
rk nodded. ¡°Alright.¡±
As rk prepared to lead N away, Marie said, ¡°Let your wife stay here. I¡¯ll introduce her to some people.¡±
rk¡¯s eyes brightened with pleasure. Ignoring N¡¯s reluctance, he said, ¡°N, I¡¯ll go ahead. You stay here with Grandma.¡±
N¡¯s eyes shed with impatience, but rk didn¡¯t give her a chance to refuse. After issuing his instruction, he quickly turned and left.
Marie regarded N with a neutral expression. ¡°Alright, stand behind me.¡±
N hesitated for a moment but then moved to stand behind Marie.
Anne¡¯s expression was sarcastic. ¡°Mom, don¡¯t bother introducing someone from a minor family like hers to those high societydies. After all, she¡¯s been married to rk for so long and hasn¡¯t had a child. Who knows if they¡¯ll divorce one day? It¡¯ll just create more trouble and require more exnations.¡±
N ew that the Sumners had always looked down on her. Over the years, she had reful around them, making every effort not to upset them in any way.
CHAPTER 213
+25
This had only caused the Sumners to treat N with even more disregard.
N had endured their behavior before because she had expectations for rk. Now that her love for him was gone, tolerating it would reduce her to nothing more than a doormat.
She smiled and replied, ¡°Getting a divorce is still better than never get What do you think, Aunt Anne?¡±
married.
Anne¡¯s face immediately darkened, her gaze sharp as daggers. ¡°Say that again?!¡±
Anne had once been in a rtionship and waited for that man after their breakup. Now, approaching 40 and still unmarried, it had be a sore spot for her. No one dared to mention it in her presence.Property belongs to N?vel(D)r/ama.Org.
M¨¢rie also felt offended. Since N had previously confronted her, Marie had
harbored resentment. She had hoped N would eventually apologize, but instead of showing remorse, N had begun criticizing Anne!
Cindy looked at N with surprise and suspicion. Was N out of her mind to say something like that?
N maintained a calm smile. ¡°Aunt Anne, repeating it won¡¯t change anything. Besides, I adhere to the principle of not offending others unless they offend me first. As a Sumner, you should understand that well
¡°Enough!¡± Marie¡¯s voice turned cold. ¡°It¡¯s my birthday party today. Do you have to cause trouble and make things unpleasant?¡±
N remained indifferent. Was she really the one making the family ufortable, or was it Anne¡¯s provocativement?
¡°Grandma, you¡¯re right. Since Aunt Anne doesn¡¯t like me, I¡¯ll leave and not trouble her further. It would be embarrassing for the Sumners if a scene were to ur in front of the guests,¡± N said as she excused herself.
With that, she turned and walked away. She had no patience to stay and endure the harassment from these women, as ttering them offered her no benefit.
On the second floor, Cyrus watched N leave with a calcting gaze. He turned to
a nearby attendant and asked coldly, ¡°How are the preparations going?¡±
¡°They¡¯re all set, but¡ doing so might¡¡± the attendant murmured.
¡°No might Cyrus out him off sharply, emphasizing each word ¡°Tonight¡¯s n must seed. Follow my instructions, or you know the consequences.¡±
The threat in his tone made the attendant trembles slightly. He quickly nodded and hurried away
After walling for over half an hour, Damon finally arrived.
Cyrus smirked as he descended the stairs.
After Damon spoke with Marie and turned to find a ce to rest, a ss of red wine was handed to him.
¡°Damon, what have you been up totely? I¡¯ve had my secretary trying to set up a meeting with you, but we haven¡¯t managed to connect,¡± Cyrus greeted
A glint appeared in Damon¡¯s eyes upon seeing Cyrus. He took the ss with a neutral expression.
¡°It¡¯s Mom¡¯s birthday party tonight, Cyrus. Let¡¯s not discuss business,¡± Damen replied. Cyrus¡® grip on the wine ss lightened, and his smile grew wider. ¡°Anything you say. As your elder brother, I¡¯m just concerned about you.¡±
Damon remained silent, his face impassive and revealing no emotion.
However, Cyrus had no intention of leaving and continued to chat idly.
Suddenly, Damon¡¯s gaze shifted to the northwest corner of the main hall, and his brow furrowed slightly.
Following Damon¡¯s gaze, Cyrus saw a man talking to N, and his expression turned understanding
Just as Damon was about to approach N a few business associates blocked his way
CHAPTER 214
¡°Mr. Sumner, long time no see. I heard Prospectus Technology recently invested in the government project in the east suburb.¡±
¡°I¡¯m also interested in that project. I wonder if you could give me a chance to get a piece of the action, Mr. Sumner?¡±
Damon, whocked the patience for idle chat, reluctantly paused to acknowledge the men speaking as it was Marie¡¯s birthday party. He greeted them with little enthusiasm.
¡°Good evening, Mr. Lowe.¡±
While Damon was being cornered by business associates, N had already dismissed the man she was speaking with and was seeking a quiet ce to rest.
Suddenly, a maid from the Sumners rushed up to her. ¡°Ms. Jayston, Ms. Cindy has asked to see you. She¡¯s waiting for you at the pavilion in the garden.¡±
N nced toward Marie. Seeing that Cindy was indeed absent, she frowned slightly. ¡°Did she say what it¡¯s about?¡±
¡°No, but it seemed quite urgent. Ms. Jayston, you should go quickly,¡± the maid urged.
Noting the urgency in the maid¡¯s gaze, N lowered her eyes to hide the suspicion flickering in them.
¡°Understood. I¡¯ll go right away,¡± she replied.
The maid had yet to leave, so N said coolly, ¡°Tonight¡¯s the party, and there are many guests. You should return to your duties.¡±
¡°Ms. Jayston, Ms. Cindy insisted that I bring you there personally. If you¡¯re not seen, I¡¯ll be punished¡¡± the maid borated.
N acknowledged the fear in the maid¡¯s eyes with a nod. ¡°Alright. Let¡¯s go.¡±
She didn¡¯t miss the brief sh of triumph in the maid¡¯s eyes.
The direction the maid led her was indeed toward the garden, but it wasn¡¯t the path to the pavilion.
After walking for a while, N stopped and questioned, ¡°Where are you taking me?¡±
The maid halted and turned back to face N. ¡°Ms. Jayston, I¡¯m sorry.¡±
The moment the words left her mouth, two more maids suddenly appeared behind. N and grabbed her arms.
Feigning panic, N shouted, ¡°What are you trying to do-¡±
Before she could finish, a sharp pain shot through the back of her neck, and everything went ck as she lost consciousness.
In the hall¡This content is ? N?velDrama.Org.
Cyrus smiled as he felt his phone vibrate twice. He gave a discreet signal to those surrounding Damon, who then made some partingments and found an excuse to leave.
Upon seeing Damon¡¯s empty wine ss, Cyrus¡® smile grew colder.
¡°Damon, Mom told me yesterday that tonight¡¯s guests are all prominent people from the city. If you¡¯re interested in any of the youngdies, just let her know, and she¡¯ll arrange it,¡± Cyrus said.
Having been hassled by the guests and now finding N missing, Damon was already in a bad mood. He replied coolly, ¡°Not interested.¡±
Cyrus sneered inwardly. It wasn¡¯t that Damon wasn¡¯t interested¨Cit was just that the woman he was interested in was his niece¨Cinw.
¡°You¡¯re not getting any younger. Mom is so worried about your marriage that her hair is turning gray,¡± Cyrus nagged.
Damon¡¯s expression remained neutral to Cyrus¡® feigned concern.
¡°Mom¡¯s gray hair is just a sign of age. Besides, you and Cindy have been married, and that marriage certificate only proves you¡¯re legally married. The mistresses you¡¯ve kept over the years are probably too many to count on both hands,¡± Damon deadpanned.
Cyrus was taken aback, scowling. His younger brother had a sharp tongue!
Publicly revealing his shorings was quite embarrassing. Fortunately, there weren¡¯t many people around, and Damon¡¯s voice wasn¡¯t loud, so not many would have heard.
Cyrus sighed. ¡°Fine¡ I admit I have no right to criticize you. I won¡¯t bring it up again.¡±
Damon set down his wine ss and left without another nce at Cyrus.
+25
Cyrus¡® eyes were filled with anger as he watched Damon¡¯s retreating figure.
After tonight, he would see if Damon still dared to show him such disrespect!
Damon walked out onto the terrace, and the cold breeze made him feel a bit dizzy.
CHAPTER 215
Just then, a maid hurried over to Damon, ¡°Mr. Damon, Ms. Jayston suddenly fainted. I couldn¡¯t find Mr. rk.¡°¡±
Hearing this, Damon looked up, his voice cold. ¡°Where is she?¡±
¡°She¡¯s upstairs now. Madam Summer and the others are busy with the gues You should go and check on her,¡± the maid replied.
If it were any other time, Damon would have noticed something was off. N had fainted, so why hadn¡¯t a doctor been called? Instead, they were asking him to check. on her.
However, having drunk the spiked ss of wine Cyrus had given him earlier, Damon felt dizzy and sluggish. He didn¡¯t immediately realize something was amiss.
By the time he noticed, he was already in rk¡¯s room.
¡°Mr. Damon, Ms. Jayston is inside,¡± the maid said.
Damon stopped abruptly, his eyes narrowing with suspicion. ¡°I¡¯ll wait here for the doctor.¡±
Entering without knowing what was happening could lead to unforeseen consequences.
It was bing clear to Damon that this was a trap set by Cyrus. He hadn¡¯t anticipated that his elder brother would drug him, especially at their mother¡¯s birthday party.Please check at N/?vel(D)rama.Org.
It seemed Cyrus had bepletely ruthless in pursuing his own goals.
The maid, frightened by Damon¡¯s intense gaze, turned pale. ¡°Mr. Damon, Ms. Jayston has been sweating profusely. Maybe you should go in and check on her. The doctor will be here soon¡¡±
Damon sneered and grabbed her by the neck. ¡°Daring to scheme against me in the Sumner household? Do you have a death wish?¡±
He tightened his grip, making the maid¡¯s face turn ashen. She knew that admitting the truth would not only anger Damon but also bring repercussions from Cyrus.
¡°Mr¨CMr. Damon, what are you saying? I don¡¯t. I don¡¯t understand¡¡± she stammered.
You don¡¯t? Then go and get Cyrus. He should understand! Damon hissed.
Feeling increasingly hot and his wind growing hazy, Damon cursed inwardly.
How much of this drug had Cyrus given him if he stayed here any longer, he might lose all rationality, and who knew what would happen next?
Thinking of this, he shoved the maid aside and tumed toward the stairs
Just as he took a few steps a sharp pain short through his neck.
Cyrus¡® face was icy as he watched Damon copse. ¡°Get him into the room.¡±
Cyrus had used thetest aphrodisiac on Damon, one so potent that even the most restrained person wouldn¡¯t be able to resist. Since N was someone Damon had feelings for, Cyrus was confident Damon wouldn¡¯t be able to control himself.
The service staff hurriedly carried Damon into the room and locked the door from the outside
Alright. Go back to work,¡± Cyrus dismissed them.
With a final nce at the locked door, Cyrus smiled in satisfaction. It was as if he could already see hundreds of millions of dorsing his way.
Inside the room¡..
As soon as N heard the door lock, she opened her eyes.
Turning her head, she saw Damon lying beside her, his face flushed. She was taken
aback
She had originally assumed Cindy had sent the maid, so she had yed along to see what was going on. She hadn¡¯t expected that her father¨Cinw was trying to put her in Damon¡¯s bed!
This realization made her feel nauseous.
Cyrus and rk were truly despicable!
While she was processing this, Damon woke up early due to the drug. He reached out to touch N s face when he saw her. His usually cold, deep eyes were now burning with a heat that seemed to sear.
As his hot hand was about to touch N¡¯s face, she suddenly reached out and grabbed his wrist.
CHAPTER 216
¡°Uncle Damon, wake up,¡± N said, pushing him away.
She quickly got out of bed and watched him warily, gripping the bedsidemp tightly, ready to use it for self¨Cdefense if he charged at her.
Damon nearly fell off the bed from her push.
After a few seconds, he looked at her in confusion, his usually cold face now flushed. His eyes burned with a fierce intensity, as if a fire were scorching right through one¡¯s heart.
¡°Come here,¡± hemanded.
N frowned but stayed where she was.
Damon looked dangerous. His gaze was filled with a predatory desire as if he might devour her at any moment.
N¡¯s mind raced, trying to understand Cyrus¡® motive.
Tonight was Marie¡¯s party. Had Cyrus chosen this moment to create a scandal, intending to make it look like she and Damon were having an affair?
No, this would not only embarrass the Sumners but also severely offend Damon. It was more likely that Cyrus wanted Damon to have rtions with her and then use this as leverage to ckmail him.
N narrowed her eyes at that thought.
Cyrus¡® ruthlessness knew no bounds. After bankrupting Harris Pharmaceuticals, he was now willing to put his daughter¨Cinw into his younger brother¡¯s bed for personal gain.
While she was thinking, a faint pine scent suddenly filled her nostrils. She widened her eyes, and before she could react, Damon grabbed the back of her head, snatched themp from her hand, and tossed it behind the door.
In the next moment, a shadow fell over N, and she felt a warm, moist touch on her lips.
¡°Mmph!¡±
N¡¯s eyes widened in disbelief as she found herself inches from Damon¡¯s face. His
usually cold and deep eyes now burned with an intense heat. His hand, still gripping her firmly, felt like a zing fire that spread from her neck throughout her entire body, causing her to shudder.
When she realized Damon was kissing her, she tried to push him away, but it was futile. His solid chest felt like an imprable wall, unyielding to her efforts.
In desperation, she bit his lip hard.
Damon winced in pain and released N, his gaze darkening with a predatory intensity, like a lion awakened to its prey.
The sight of his bleeding lip made him appear even more feral, but the pain seemed to bring him back to some semnce of sanity. He gripped N¡¯s chin, his eyes shadowed with an intensity that unnerved her.
N¡¯s hand tightened around a needle hidden behind her. If Damon forced himself on her, she would have no choice but to use it.
After a tense few seconds, Damon suddenly released her and strode quickly into the bathroom.
The door mmed shut.
N trembled as she copsed onto the bed. It felt like she had narrowly escaped disaster.
Not daring to waste time, she quickly scanned the room for any hidden cameras. She turned off the lights and soon spotted a pinhole camera on the TV across from the bed, its red light blinking.
With a stoic expression, she unplugged the camera and sat on the bed, contemting her next move.
Although Damon was drugged and unlikely to pose an immediate threat, staying there was still dangerous.
N moved to the window. They were on the second floor, and the gardeny just outside. The drop wasn¡¯t too high. With proper control, she should be able to jump without injury.
She nced at the osed bathroom door, removed her shoes, and climbed over the railing, jumping down. She rolled on the grass to cushion her fall.
Apart from some pain from thending, she was unhurt.
ire
Relieved. N put her shoes back on and was about to stand when she suddenly heard footsteps from the bushes, followed by a soft, seductive voiceThis content is ? N?velDrama.Org.
¡°rk¡ I¡¯m just here to bring a gift for your grandmother. 11 leave soon, Pl
be mad okay?
don¡¯t
CHAPTER 217
Nyle froze upon hearing Jordyn¡¯s voice
¡°Jordyn, Ive warned you before. I have no intention of marrying you. And what right do you have to bring a gift to my grandmother? Are you some mistress I¡¯m keeping on the side? rk demanded.
After a brief silence Jordyn¡¯s voice trembled as she responded, ¡°Cl. I¡¯m not foolish enough to think you¡¯ll marry me. I just wanted to deliver a gift to your grandmother to thank you for finding a kidney for my father
¡°Shut up!¡± rk¡¯s voice was cold and cutting Jordyn, if you mention this again, I won¡¯t let it slide!
¡°rk Jordyn pleaded
¡°Get out, now!¡± rk¡¯s voice was filled with anger
Jordyn seemed frightened. After a moment, she replied softly, ¡°rk. Please don¡¯t be angry. I leave right away
The sound of her high heels faded, signaling her departure. Soon after, rk also left.
N remained seated on the grass, her head lowered, her body hidden in the darkness. It was as if the night bad swallowed her whole, merging her with the shadows.
After an unknown amount of time, she looked up, her red eyes filled with derision. It made sense now why rk had reacted the way he had when she asked about getting her father a kidney transnt
The kidney meant for Harrison had been given to Jordyn¡¯s father. rk had known that Harrison had been waiting for this kidney for two years, yet he had given it away so easy Clearly, N meant nothing to him
The Summer father and son had ruined her family¡¯spany, schemed to send her to Damon¡¯s bed, and now, rk had betrayed their rtionship by giving away the most in portant thing to her¨Cto his mistress father.
It was just perfect!
N bit her lip hard enough to taste blood, keeping it mped between her teeth even as the metallic taste filled her mouth. She had initially nned to gather evidence and d
- d.
rk, but now she regretted that decision
Cyrus and rk had made her life a living hell. She couldn¡¯t let them get away with in so easily.
Given her own limitations, dealing with rk and Cyrus alone would be impossible. The simplest solution was to align herself with Damon.
N¡¯s eyes shed with conflict.
Damon had helped her a lot, and she had feelings for him, so she didn¡¯t want to hum him. But it seemed there was no other way now.
Taking a deep breath and gaining a resolute look in her eyes, she straightened her dress and slowly walked back to the main hall.
As soon as she entered, rk approached her with a frown. ¡°Where have you been?¡±
Meeting his questioning gaze, N kept her expression neutral. ¡°I felt a bit ustrophobic, so I stepped outside for some fresh air. Why?¡±This content is ? N?velDrama.Org.
¡°Did you run into anyone?¡± rk asked.
N chuckled. ¡°Should I have run into anyone?¡±
rk visibly rxed and lowered his voice. No. There are many guests today, and was worried someone might trouble you.¡±
¡°Got it,¡± N replied.
Her indifference brought a scowl to rk¡¯s face, but since it was Marie¡¯s birthday party, he set his displeasure aside. ¡°If you¡¯re fine, go talk to Grandma and Mom-*
Before he could finish, Cyrus¡® cold voice came from the side. ¡°rk, your grandmother is calling for you.¡±
N turned to look at Cyrus, noticing the anger and surprise in his eyes. She raised an eyebrow and smiled but said nothing.
To Cyrus, N¡¯s smile was nothing short of a tant provocation. He hadn¡¯t expected her to escape and ruin the hidden camera he had set up.
Cyrus¡® anger red since his ns were thwarted, and killing intent shed in his
eyes.
CHAPTER 218
Chapter 218
When rk saw Cyrus, his scowl deepened
¡°Got it. I¡¯ll go over right away,¡± he said in a deep voice.
After rk left, Cyrus looked at N with a smile that didn¡¯t reach his eyes. ¡°How did you manage to escape?¡±
¡°Dad, what are you talking about? I don¡¯t understand,¡± N replied, her face disying apparent confusion as if she genuinely didn¡¯t know.
Cyrus sneered, his eyes growing colder. ¡°You¡¯d better truly not understand.¡±
Only after Cyrus turned and walked away did N finally release her tightly clenched hands. Her palms ached, but her expression remained unchanged.
As the evening approached its end, Damon finally made an appearance. He had changed into a different outfit, his hair slightly damp, and hisplexion pale. His chiseled features were as cold as a cier, radiating an icy aura.
Noticing his mood, those who had intended to approach him quickly backed off. No one wanted to be on the receiving end of his displeasure.
Marie noticed him and looked slightly displeased. ¡°Damon, where have you been? I had people looking for you everywhere.
¡°I was a bit tired earlier and found a quiet ce to rest for a while,¡± Damon replied calmly.
¡°The party¡¯s almost over. Don¡¯t wander off again. By the way, this is Ms. Chilton Lara. You¡¯ve met her before.¡±
Damon nced at the woman Marie was referring to. She met his gaze with a shy, hesitant expression before quickly lowering her eyes, her cheeks tinged with a blush.
He withdrew his gaze and replied indifferently. ¡°No impression.
The woman¡¯s smile faltered, and she nervously twisted her hands
¡°Get to know her better, and you¡¯ll have an impression. See Ms. Chilton home this evening.¡± Marie instructed.
¡°I don¡¯t have the time.¡± Damon refused without a second thought, his expression showing no emotion.
Chapter ore she could speak, Lara stood up and said, ¡°Mrs. Sumner, I suddenly remembered I have something to do. I¡¯ll excuse myself now.¡±
Without waiting for Marie¡¯s response, Lara turned and left.
¡°Look what you¡¯ve done. Now¡® you¡¯ve offended Ms. Chilton. Are you happy?
tone was sharp.
Ignoring the usation, Damon remained unperturbed.
rie¡¯s
¡°If you don¡¯t want to offend every prominent family in the city, stop introducing me to Ms. Hulle, Ms. Chilton, and the others,¡± Damon replied calmly.
¡°You!¡± Marie red at him. ¡°Are you trying to drive me mad?¡±
¡°As long as you stop setting me up on these blind dates, you won¡¯t have to be upset,¡± Damon retorted.
Marie was choked with frustration. ¡°With so many women your age here tonight, didn¡¯t any of them catch your eye?¡±
¡°No,¡± Damon answered tly.
¡°Fine, just stay away from me. I¡¯m tired of seeing you!¡± Marie snapped, waving him off.
Without another word, Damon turned and walked out.
As he left, Cindy tried to soothe Marie, but her gaze followed Damon¡¯s retreating figure with a hint of mockery.
It wasn¡¯t that he wasn¡¯t interested in anyone. It was just that the person he was interested in was impossible to have. Even if N wasn¡¯t married to rk, Richard and Marie would never approve of her.
Outside the main hall, Damon called over the butler and said coldly, ¡°Get me a copy of tonight¡¯s surveince footage.¡±
The butler looked confused but didn¡¯t dare ask questions upon seeing Damon¡¯s icy demeanor. He immediately went to make the copy.Property belongs to N?vel(D)r/ama.Org.
¡°Mr. Damon, some of the cameras in the house malfunctioned tonight, so there are al few areas without footage,¡± the butler informed him hesitantly.
trason¡¯s hips pressed into a thin line, his expression menacing
Malfunctioning? What a coincidence.
Understood. You can go back to your work, he dismissed the butler c
frathon held the USB drive tightly with a smirk. Did they think breaking the cameras would prevent far from finding evidence?
Mane¡¯s tarthday party continued until just before midnight.
Today Homes Offer
CHAPTER 219
Before leaving Damon ordered that the service staff who had followed Cyrus¡® orders. be bound and brought directly before Marie and Richard.
These traitorous servants need to be dealt with sooner rather thanter,¡± he said.
Richard¡¯s face darkened. ¡°What¡¯s going on here?
¡°You should ask my dear older brother about that,¡± Damon replied.
Richard turned his cold gaze to Cyrus. ¡°You exin.¡±
Cyrus grimaced. He hadn¡¯t expected Damon to expose the matter so publicly.
The living room fell silent as everyone¡¯s eyes focused on Cyrus, who remained. unwilling to speak.
¡°if you don¡¯t exin, I¡¯ll investigate it myself Richard mmed the table, his eyes. burning with anger.
It was clear that Damon¡¯s dramatic disy meant Cyrus¡® actions were anything but. simple
Under Richard¡¯s icy stare, Cyrus felt the mounting pressure. He was about to reveal everything when he looked up and met Damon¡¯s smirking gaze.
¡°Cyrus, you should understand the gravity of the situation,¡± Damon reminded him.
Hearing the threat in Damon¡¯s tone, Cyrus gritted his teeth and said coldly, ¡°I drugged Damon and arranged for a woman to be sent to his bed for the sake of an investment in thepany.¡±
He didn¡¯t mention that the woman was N, knowing that not only Damon woulde after him, but also that rk would likely despise him even more.
¡°Preposterous!¡± Richard was both enraged and disappointed as he looked at Cyrus.
Marie, too, was in disbelief. ¡°Cyrus, have you gone mad? Damon is your brother, your own flesh and blood. How could you drug your own family? Do you want to drive me and your father to our graves?¡±
¡°Dad, Mom, I¡¯m sorry¡ I had no other choice, Cyrus apologized, lowering his head, his eyes filled with anger and resentment.
If only Damo ha invested in hispany as requested, Cyrus wouldn¡¯t have been
anven to each desperate measures, not would Damon have exposed him
¡°We char*¡± you say? If you had no choice hit to drug Damon, would you find
mself with no choice but to harm your own family in the future? Mane demanded.
Os to the old wing and stay there until your brother is willie
growled
two maids escorted Cyrus away in silence.
Anght, everyone You can go now. We need to rest, Richard and Mare dismissed the remaining quests
As Damon was about to get into his car outside the house, rk suddenly asked,¡± Uncle Damon, my dad mentioned preparing to send a woman to your bed. Who is stary
Damion raised an eyebrow. ¡°Why the sudden interest?
Im just curious. Who is this woman rk pressed.
Since they had been so tight¨Clipped about the woman¡¯s identity, rk had a bad feeding it seemed too coincidental that N had also disappeared for a while.
¡°You don¡¯t know her, so there¡¯s no need to be curious, Damon said before getting into the car and driving off
As Damon¡¯s car disappeared from view, rk turned to N and, as if casually, asked, ¡®ti, why do you think my dad chose tonight to drug Uncle Damon?
if Cyrus goal was simply to find a woman, there would have been no need to do it during Mane¡¯s birthday party. Such an action, if discovered, would embarrass the Summers and would not be forgiven by Marie or Richard. There must have been a specfic reason for choosing this night.Property belongs to N?vel(D)r/ama.Org.
Hips looked up, her expression indifferent. If you¡¯re so curicus, your dad is currently in the old wing Why don¡¯t you go ask hart yourself?
CHAPTER 220
rk frowned, displeasure evident in his eyes
N didn¡¯t even nce at him as she opened the car door and got in
During the drive back, they remained silent. At traffic lights, rk nced at tylk several times, as if he wanted to say something.
Nevertheless, N kept her gaze fixed out the window, offering no indicatiean that she wanted to talk
When they reached N¡¯s building and she was about to get out of the car, rk finally spoke up. ¡°N, does Dad¡¯s scheme against Uncle Demon tonight have anything to do with you?¡±
N turned to him, her eyes cold. ¡°Why would you think it¡¯s rted to me?
rk¡¯s gaze grew heavy. After a long pause, he shook his head. No reason I just noticed you disappeared for a while earlier, so I thought I¡¯d askBelonging to N?velDrama.Org.
¡°If you really want to know the truth, you should ask your dad, H said and then pushed the car door open to leave.
At home, N sat on the sofa and pulled out her phone to find Damon¡¯s contact information. After a moment¡¯s hesitation, she called him.
The phone rang a few times before Damon answered. He didn¡¯t say anything, and the line was filled with their breathing.
N lowered her gaze and said slowly, ¡°Uncle Damon, you once said that if i wanted a divorce, I could contact you anytime. I want to divorce rk now. Can you help me?
As she spoke, she could clearly hear Damon¡¯s breathing be heavier on the other end of the line.
¡°Why the sudden decision to divorce? Is it because of what happened tonight with Cyrus? Damon asked.
¡°Partly,¡± N admitted, though she didn¡¯t want to exin further
Damon was silent for a few seconds before responding in a low voice ¡°Come to my
?
office tomorrow moming¡±
After hanging up, N set her phone down, covered her eyes with her hands, and sighed softly.
If Damon ever found out she was using him, he might never forgive her. Yet, as she thought about what rk and Cyrus had done to her and the Jaystons, her expression hardened.
Furthermore, being close to Damon would make investigating Cyrus eas
Ultimately, she was just being selfish.
The next morning, N got up an hour early, spent half an hour on her makeup, and chose a fitted dress to wear.
When she arrived at thepany, she went straight to the top floor.
As she entered Damon¡¯s office, he was preparing to review documents. An inscrutable emotion flickered in his eyes upon seeing her.
¡°You¡¯re wearing makeup today?¡± Damon asked.
N paused momentarily before nodding. ¡°Yes.¡±
Damon didn¡¯t pursue the matter further. He was pleased that she had put effort into her appearance for him.
She took a seat across from him, and he finally spoke. ¡°You were serious about wanting a divorce from rk?¡±
¡°Yes. There¡¯s no need to continue this marriage,¡± N replied.
She knew that if she asked for a divorce, rk would not agree. Only with Damon¡¯s help could she ensure a smooth divorce.
¡°How much do you want in terms of asset division?¡± Damon asked.
N looked up in surprise, her gaze confused. She had expected Damon to only help with the divorce, not to negotiate for her share of the assets.
*50% would be ideal, but if not, it¡¯s fine. I just want the divorce,¡± she rified.
¡°Alright, I understand. You can go back for now,¡± Damon said.
Seeing Damon¡¯s calm demeanor, N hesitated for a moment before speaking softly. ¡°Uncle Damon, I¡¯ve tried to discuss the divorce with him before, and he was very resistant¡
Damon chuckled, raising an eyebrow as he looked at her. ¡°Are you doubting my ability to get you that divorce?¡±
CHAPTER 221
N shook her head. ¡°That¡¯s not what I meant I just want to say that, whether or not the divorce goes through, I¡¯m very grateful to you, Uncle Damon.¡±This content is ? N?velDrama.Org.
¡°I don¡¯t need your gratitude in words,¡± Damon replied.
N looked up, meeting Damon¡¯s deep, prating gaze. Unease washed over her, and she quickly averted her eyes.
¡°Then¡ what do you want?¡± she asked.
I
¡°Once you¡¯ve divorced him, I¡¯ll tell you what I want,¡± Damon answered.
N bit her lower lip. ¡°Alright.¡±
It wasn¡¯t until she left Damon¡¯s office that she finally felt the weight of his intense, probing gaze lift.
N let out a breath of relief. A vague idea of what Damon might want lingered in her mind, but since she had already.made up her mind, she wouldn¡¯t regret whatever she had to sacrifice.
As she reached the elevator, she ran into Erining out.
Upon seeing her, Erin¡¯s eyes narrowed, and the smile on her face vanished instantly. ¡°Ms. N, if I¡¯m not mistaken, this is the CEO¡¯s office, not yourb,¡± Erin remarked. Erin, being a woman herself, could easily tell that N had put extra effort into her appearance today. The thought that it might be to seduce Damon made her grip her documents tighter, her knuckles turning white as she red at N.
N remained calm. ¡°Ms. Hulle, I don¡¯t believe I¡¯m your subordinate, so where I go isn¡¯t your concern.¡±
Erin sneered. ¡°I just wanted to remind you that you¡¯re rk¡¯s wife, Damon¡¯s niece¨Cin-w. You¡¯d do well to remember your ce.¡±
¡°There¡¯s no need for you to remind me of that,¡± N retorted.
As N stepped into the elevator, she looked back at Erin and said, ¡°Ms. Hulle, don¡¯t think that hiding behind others and scheming won¡¯t eventually catch up with you. Walk the path long enough, and you¡¯ll run into something nasty.¡±
What did she mean by that?
Erin¡¯s expression shifted as she realized that H was referring to Jacqueline¡¯s plot against Vrie,
The elevator doors closed, cutting off N¡¯s cold stare.
Erin took a deep breath to steady herself, No matter what suspicions N harbored, she couldn¡¯t possibly have any evidence.
Erin needed only to focus on making Damon fall in love with her. Once she married him, dealing with N would be as simple as saying the word.
That evening, after work, N drove to the hospital to visit Harrison.
As she reached the door of his hospital room, she heard the sound of an argument inside. She quickly pushed the door open and was shocked to see Jordyn standing there.
¡°Jordyn, what are you doing here?!¡± N demanded, her eyes narrowing.
Everyone in the room turned to look at her.
Jordyn¡¯s smile deepened.
¡°Ms. Jayston, I just came to check on Mr. Jayston, but it seems I¡¯m not very wee here,¡± Jordyn replied sarcastically.
¡°Get out of here right now!¡± N roared.
She had never encountered someone as shameless as Jordyn, who dared to show up at her father¡¯s hospital room and cause trouble.
Jordyn looked at her mockingly. ¡°If I were you, N, I¡¯d divorce rk. After all, I¡¯m carrying his child,¡±
¡°Get out!¡± N yelled again.
¡°Fine, I¡¯m leaving. It¡¯s not like I want to stay here anyway. This ce smells so cheap, it¡¯s suffocating,¡± Jordyn sang as she waved her hand in front of her nose, pretending to fan away the smell.
Without another word, she walked past N and left.
N turned to Harrison, whoy in the hospital bed. She couldn¡¯t meet his eyes, afraid she would see disappointment there.
SINCERCO
¡°Dad, Wren, I¡¯m sorry¡ I didn¡¯t know she woulde and make a scene¡ Dad, please don¡¯t be upset. Your health is what matters most,¡± she pleaded.
Harrison sighed. ¡°N, when I saw her and rk getting cozy at the hospitalst
time, I had my suspicions. I¡¯m not disappointed, I just feel that this is all so unfair to you¡¡±
CHAPTER 222
N forced a bitter smile. She had always tried to maintain the illusion that her marriage was fine in front of Harrison, but now she realized how foolish she had been.
¡°Dad, this was the path I chose. I can ept the consequences,¡± she replied.
Before marrying rk, Harrison had warned her that life with the Sumners might not be easy, especially since the Jaystons were bankrupt.This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
N had believed that as long as she and rk loved each other, they could ovee anything. Now, she understood how naive she had been.
Harrison sighed softly, his voice gentle. ¡°N, don¡¯t worry about me. If you feel like you can¡¯t stay with him anymore, I¡¯ll support whatever decision you make.¡±
N¡¯s nose tingled as tears threatened to fall. She replied, ¡°Dad, I know. But right now, the most important thing is for you to focus on getting better.¡±
Harrison wanted to mention his n to discharge himself from the hospital, but seeing N¡¯s red¨Crimmed eyes, he held back, He decided to wait for a better time to bring it up.
After spending some time in the hospital room, Wren walked N out.
At the hospital entrance, Wren looked at her with concern and said, ¡°N, I know staying with rk is hard on you, but if you¡¯re thinking about divorce, I just ask that you wait until after your dad¡¯s kidney transnt. I¡¯m begging you¡¡±
The plea in Wren¡¯s gaze made N¡¯s expression darken. She hesitated for a moment before deciding to tell Wren the truth. ¡°Wren, the kidney we found before¡ rk gave it to someone else.¡±
Wren¡¯s eyes widened in disbelief, and she staggered back a step.
¡°What did you say?¡± she asked, her voice trembling.
¡°Wren, will find another kidney for my dad, but it might take some time,¡± N assured her.
Wren didn¡¯t espond, her face turning ashen
They had been waiting for that kidney for years, and now N was telling her that
someone else. Anyone would find that hard to ont
rk had gi
long since When quietly turned and started walking back toward the Hospital. Her steps were unsteady, and N quickly moved to support her Nted tofort her Wren, MI find a way to get the kidney-¡±
you find?
Before she could finish, Wren pushed her away. ¡°Find a way? What way rk¡¯s people searched for over two years before they found that kidney. How many years will it take you? Your dad can¡¯t wait that long!¡±
Wren¡¯s eyes were filled with anger and despair. It was as if someone who had been wandering in darkness suddenly saw a ray of light, only for that light to be abruptly snuffed out
Seeing Wren so agitated, N pressed her lips together. ¡°Wren, I know this is hard to ept right now. We can talk about it when you¡¯ve calmed down.
¡°Nyta, does rk giving the kidney to someone else have anything to do with you?¡± Wren demanded.
Her gaze was usatory. rk had assured them that the kidney would go to Harrison, so why had he suddenly changed his mind?
N¡¯s hands clenched at her sides. After a moment, she finally uttered, ¡°Yes.¡±
¡°I knew it,¡± Wren said, walking away without looking back.
N didn¡¯t try to stop her. She knew Wren was ming her. While she could understand Wren¡¯s feelings, she didn¡¯t believe she was at fault. The mey with rk
After watching Wren disappear into the hospital, N turned and left.
Late at night, in the Prospectus Technology CEO¡¯s office¡
Spencer handed a document to Damon, his expression hesitant as he asked, ¡°Mr. Sumner, are you sure you want to give these documents to Ms. Jayston?¡±
CHAPTER 223
Inside the folder were all the pieces of evidence showing how Cyrus had conspired with Clement to sabotage Harris Pharmaceuticals. If this folder were given to N, it would likely send Cyrus to prison.
No matter how terrible Cyrus was, he was still Damon¡¯s older brother.
Damon took the file, his expression cold. ¡°I know what I need to do. You can go now.¡±
his icy
Spencer hesitated. He wanted to persuade Damon further, but see demeanor, he decided to leave without saying more.
Once the office was quiet again, Damon opened the file and examined its contents. After a moment, he ced it in the bottom drawer of his desk.
Giving this evidence to N would certainly lead to her divorce from rk, but it would also mean Cyrus¡® downfall. Despite all the despicable things Cyrus had done, he was still family.
After a moment of thought, Damon called Spencer back into the office and quietly gave him a few instructions.
The next morning¡
N had just woken up when she received a call from Vrie.
¡°N, you need to check the trending topics right now!¡± Vrie eximed.
N quickly opened her phone and was shocked to see photos of rk and Jordyn kissing all over the Inte.
Before she could process what was happening, rk called her.
¡°I¡¯m outside your door. Open up,¡± he said.
His voice was cold, and N frowned, a sense of unease washing over her.
¡°What are you doing at my door? You think I¡¯m the one who leaked those photos online, don¡¯t you?¡± she asked.
There was a moment of silence on the other end before rk spoke again. ¡°My grandparent know about it. They want us to go to their residence together.¡±
¡°Fine. Give me five minutes,¡± N said.
She quickly got dressed and ready, stepping out of her apartment within five minutes
To her surprise, rk was already waiting at her door. He looked exhausted, with dark circles under his eyes, clearly having not slept well.
¡°Let¡¯s go,¡± she said curtly.
As they waited for the elevator, rk asked in a low voice, ¡°Are you sure you had nothing to do with this?¡±
N shot him a cold look. ¡°If you think I did it, then show me the evidence. If you don¡¯t have any, then shut up.¡±
Ever since she discovered that rk had given the kidney intended for Harrison to Jordyn¡¯s father, she could barely stand the sight of him. She wished he would disappear and had no interest in pretending otherwise.
rk took a deep breath, trying to keep hisposure. ¡°N, I just need to know. When we face my grandparentster, I need you to cooperate with me.¡±
N¡¯s expression remained icy. ¡°Why should I cooperate with you? To help you lie to your grandparents about not cheating? Do you really think they¡¯re that stupid?¡±
The moment those photos of him and Jordyn were posted online, his infidelity became impossible to hide.
Given rk¡¯s high status in the city, a reporter who had taken pictures of him cheating would typically have tried to sell the photos to him first, rather than expose them immediately.
N recalled her conversation with Damon about wanting a divorce and had a gut feeling he might have been involved in leaking the photos. But with rk standing right next to her, she couldn¡¯t confirm her suspicions.
rk warned, ¡°N, don¡¯t forget about your father¡¯s kidney-¡±
N cut him off with a bitterugh. ¡°rk, are you seriously trying to ckmail me with that kidney again? Do you really think I¡¯m that gullible?¡±Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
rk¡¯s eyes shed with guilt as he asked coldly, ¡°When did I ever lie to you?¡±
¡°Haven¡¯t you already given the kidney to Jordyn¡¯s father? Now you¡¯re trying to use it to ckmail me into helping you lie? You¡¯re truly shameless!¡± N retorted.
CHAPTER 224
rk¡¯s eyes widened in shock, his expression darkening. ¡°How did you-¡±
¡°Does it really matter how I found out?¡± N interrupted.
rk fell silent, his face tense as he stared at her.
H
When the elevator doors opened, N walked in without hesitation. Set rk still standing at the entrance, she asked coldly, ¡°Aren¡¯t we going to the family home?¡±Property belongs to N?vel(D)r/ama.Org.
rk took a deep breath and stepped into the elevator. He looked at N and said, N, Jordyn¡¯s father was in a car ident, and it was an emergency-¡±
N, clearly fed up, cut him off sharply. ¡°Don¡¯t bother making excuses. The fact is, you¡¯ve already made your choice between me and Jordyn.¡±
rk attempted to exin, ¡°It¡¯s not like that-
¡°Enough. The more you exin, the more disgusted I get!¡± N snapped.
rk¡¯s face froze, and the elevator fell into silence, the only sound being its soft hum as it descended.
Soon, they reached the ground floor.
N walked out of the elevator and headed straight to her car.
¡°I¡¯ll see you at the family home,¡± she said curtly.
rk frowned and replied, ¡°N, my grandparents are going to be furious. There are some things we need to discuss on the way. You should ride with me.¡±
N turned to him, her voice devoid of warmth. ¡°There¡¯s nothing to discuss. I¡¯ll tell them the truth.¡±
Now that rk had given away the kidney that could have saved Harrison, she had no reason to cover for him. In fact, she nned to use this opportunity to push for a divorce.
Without another nce at him, she got into her car and drove off.
It wasn¡¯t unul rk¡¯s figure disappeared from her rearview mirror that she picked up her phone and called Damon.
The phone rang a few times before he answered. ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡±
+25
Damon¡¯s deep voice sounded distant, almost echoing In N¡¯s ear.
She bit her lip before asking softly, ¡°Are you in a meeting? Am I Interrupting?¡±
Damon sat at the head of the table in the conference room at Prospectus Technology, surrounded by thepany¡¯s board members. His cold expression andmanding presence made him an intimidating figure to everyone in the room.
¡°It¡¯s fine. Go ahead,¡± Damon replied.
¡°Uncle Damon, I just wanted to ask if you arranged for rk¡¯s affair photos to be leaked online?¡±
Damon¡¯s gaze hardened.
¡°Yes,¡± he answered.
¡°Got it. Thank you, Uncle Damon,¡± N replied.
¡°Is there anything else?¡± Damon asked.
¡°No, that¡¯s all,¡± N answered.
After hanging up, Damon¡¯s voice returned to its usual icy tone. ¡°Let¡¯s resume the meeting.¡±
The board members kept their heads down, but their minds were racing.
They
ey couldn¡¯t help but wonder who was important enough for Damon to take a call in the middle of a meeting¨Ca rarity, as he had never done so before.
An hourter, N arrived at the Sumner residence.
rk was already there.
Without exchanging any words with him, N walked straight into the house.
As soon as they stepped into the living room, Richard¡¯s angry voice greeted rk.¡± Get over here and kneel!¡±
rk¡¯s face pulud. I he took a deep breath and walked over to kneel in front of Richard and Marie.
On the nearby sofa, Cindy and Cyrus sat with equally grim expressions.
Chapta) 234
N halted a few steps behind rk, ignoring the icy re Cindy directed at her. She found it ironic that Cindy, whose son had been the one to engage
to look at her with such disdain.
ffair, dared
Richard turned to rk, his expression filled with deep disappointment: ¡°rk, have you forgotten the Sumners¡® code of conduct?
It was hard for him to grasp that the grandson he had raised with such care was now following in his father¡¯s footsteps, entangled in an affair just like Cyrus had been
CHAPTER 225
Chapter 225
The disappointment in Richard¡¯s eyes made rk¡¯s heart sink. ¡°Grandpa, I just couldn¡¯t resist the temptation for a moment. I know I was wrong.¡±
Richard¡¯s anger deepened. ¡°If you can¡¯t resist even a small temptation, how will you handle greater ones in the future? I can¡¯t trust you with the Sumner G
should resign.*
rk was appalled.
- You
Just as he was about to speak, Cindy¡¯s voice, filled with indignation, cut him off.¡± Dad, aren¡¯t you being too harsh on rk? He only strayed because N can¡¯t have children. Do you really expect rk to spend his whole life with a woman who won¡¯t give him children?¡±
N let out a coldugh. Cindy was really grasping at excuses for rk¡¯s affair. It was as if hisck of self¨Ccontrol was somehow her fault.
¡°Don¡¯t you think that¡¯s ridiculous? Before Jordyn got pregnant, did he even know that would happen?¡± N countered.
¡°What? That woman is pregnant?¡± Marie asked, looking at rk with a mix of frustration and disappointment. ¡°rk, how could you be so foolish?¡±
If this got out, the Sumners¡® reputation would be in tatters.
rk kept his head down, unable to meet Marie¡¯s gaze. He knew she was his only hope now.
¡°Grandma, I¡¯m sorry. I really know I was wrong. I promise it won¡¯t happen again, and I¡¯ve worked at the Sumner Group for so long. I don¡¯t want to leave,¡± he pleaded.
N¡¯s expression was full of disdain. ¡°rk, you really want to have it all, don¡¯t you?¡± ¡°Shut up!¡± Cindy snapped. ¡°If you had kept rk under control, he wouldn¡¯t have gotten involved with that other woman. You¡¯re just as much to me for this mess!¡± N wanted to roll her eyes but knew Cindy wasn¡¯t the one who had the final say there, so she didn¡¯t bother arguing. Instead, she turned to Richard and said calmly, Grandpa, now that rk¡¯s affair is known to everyone, I have no interest in maintaining is marriage. I¡¯m nning to divorce him.¡±
Everyone in the room turned their eyes to her, especially rk, who stared at her with a mix of ange
fisbelief.
- Q)
N was bringing up divorce at this critical moment?!
¡°No! I won¡¯t divorce you!¡± rk blurted out.
Richard glowered, lowering his gaze as he sank into deep thought. Although he was in his 70s, his authoritative presence stillmanded respect and fear.
N ignored rk and kept her eyes on Richard, waiting for his response.
After a tense silence, Richard finally spoke, his voice heavy. ¡°I understand how you feel, but you can¡¯t divorce rk right now.¡±This content is ? N?velDrama.Org.
At this point, the only evidence avable online was photos, with no substantial proof. If N divorced rk now, it would be akin to indirectly admitting that he had indeed had an affair.
Although Richard was deeply disappointed by rk¡¯s actions, rk was still someone he had personally groomed for the family business. He couldn¡¯t just abandon him over one mistake.
His harsh words earlier were intended to teach rk a lesson, ensuring he wouldn¡¯t repeat such behavior.
N¡¯s hands clenched at her sides, and her gaze grew cold as she looked at Richard. She hadn¡¯t expected that, even with Jordyn pregnant, the Sumners would still side with rk.
¡°And what if I insist on getting a divorce?¡± she asked.
CHAPTER 226
Chapter 226
Richard looked at her with a gaze full of superiority. ¡°You don¡¯t have a choice.¡±
N¡¯s gaze was resolute as she replied, ¡°I have a recording of rk¡¯s affair. If you don¡¯t agree, I¡¯ll make it public.¡±
Her determination was clear¨Cshe intended to use this opportunity to
divorce rk.
Richard¡¯s expression remained cold, unaffected by her threat. ¡°Don¡¯t forget, your father is still in the hospital. I don¡¯t want to make things ugly, so I hope you¡¯ll be smart about this. Once this scandal dies down, I¡¯ll arrange for a quiet divorce.¡± TH
¡°Why should I believe that you¡¯ll actually let us divorce?¡± N pressed.
¡°You have no choice but to trust me. Right now, you don¡¯t have the leverage to negotiate,¡± Richard stated bluntly.
N¡¯s hands clenched tightly. For a moment, she considered revealing Cyrus¡® plot against Harris Pharmaceuticals, but she held back at thest second. Until she had solid evidence that could send Cyrus to prison, she couldn¡¯t let the Sumners know what she was aware of.
She took a deep breath and told Richard, ¡°One month. If we¡¯re not divorced by then, I¡¯ll go public with rk¡¯s affair!¡±
¡°Fine. Now, let¡¯s discuss how to handle this situation,¡± Richard replied.
Half an hourter, N and rk walked out of the Sumner residence.
As soon as they reached the door, rk grabbed N¡¯s wrist, gritting his teeth. ¡°N, no matter what, I won¡¯t divorce you!¡±
N pulled her hand away, her expression mocking. ¡°rk, you will divorce me¨Cunless you don¡¯t care about losing the Sumner Group.¡±
With that, she turned and got into her car, driving away.
Midway through her drive, she received a call from Vrie, asking about the Sumner Group¡¯s statement.
Earlier at the Sumner residence, Richard had mentioned that the Sumner Group would issue a statement iming the photos were just a matter of misleading angles, downying the situation.
They nned to wait until the scandal lost traction and then have N and rk attend a few events together to show that their marriage was still intact.
¡°It¡¯s exactly what you saw. The Sumners are sweeping it under the rug,¡± N said.
Vrie was furious. ¡°The Sumners are really pushing it too far!¡±
¡°Getting angry isn¡¯t worth it. rk¡¯s grandfather has already agreed that once this blows over, I¡¯ll be able to divorce rk quietly,¡± N said.
¡°Really? If you can finally get that divorce, it¡¯ll be a relief. What rk and Jordyn have done is disgusting,¡± Vrie remarked.
N wasn¡¯t entirely convinced, but she knew she had to gather enough evidence to put Cyrus behind bars. That was the only way to ensure the divorce would go through without any issues.
¡°Yeah. Vrie, I¡¯m driving right now. Let¡¯s talkter,¡± N said.
After hanging up, she turned her car around and headed straight to the police station to meet Lucia. She spent over half an hour there. Whatever their discussion entailed, N signed a letter of leniency before leaving.
Not long after she got home, Damon called her.
¡°Things didn¡¯t go well back home?¡± he asked.
N lowered her gaze and replied softly, ¡°No. Your father promised that he would arrange for rk and me to divorce quietly once this scandal has passed.¡±
There was a brief pause on the other end before Damon¡¯s deep voice came through. ¡°Did rk agree to that?¡±Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
¡°If he doesn¡¯t agree, your father probably won¡¯t pass the Sumner Group to him,¡± N said.
¡°Alright,¡± Damon answered.
They fell into silence. Given their current rtionship, there wasn¡¯t much more to say.
¡°I have some things to take care of¡ I¡¯ll go now,¡± N said, excusing herself.
¡°Yeah. If you need anything from me, don¡¯t hesitate to call,¡± Damon said.
After hanging up, N set her phone aside and opened herptop. She entered the ount and password Lucia had given her into the cloud drive.
Soon, she opened an encrypted file.
As she read through the contents, her expression grew icy.
The encrypted file contained not only evidence of Cyrus¡® plot against Harris Pharmaceuticals but also a wealth of incriminating information about Clement¡¯s illegal activities over the years.
CHAPTER 227
If these pieces of evidence were exposed, they would ensure that both Cyrus and Clement spent the rest of their lives in prison,
N made several copies of the files and stored them in different locations before finally shutting down herputer.
With this evidence in hand, she had the power to fight back if the Sumners failed to keep their promises.This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
Regardless of whether they honored their word, she was determined to hand over these files to the police eventually, ensuring that Clement and Cyrus would face the consequences of their actions.
The next morning, as N arrived at the office, Melody greeted her excitedly. ¡°N! I can¡¯t believe it¨Cyou¡¯re married to rk Sumner, the CEO of the Sumner Group! Doesn¡¯t that mean Mr. Damon Sumner of Prospectus Technology is your uncle?¡±
It was no wonder she had always felt that Damon treated N with a certain level of care¨Cit turned out they were family.
N frowned slightly. ¡°How do you know about this?¡±
This exined why she had sensed odd looks from the employees of Prospectus Technology when she arrived this morning.
Before N and rk got married, they announced the wedding but kept her identity private, so only a few people knew about it.
Melody paused, momentarily startled, then said, ¡°Didn¡¯t a gossip ount post a picture yesterday of Mr. rk supposedly having an affair with his secretary? This morning, he released a statement saying that you¡¯re his wife and that your rtionship is strong¡¡±
+25
N quickly pulled out her phone and went online, where she indeed found rk¡¯s statement.
Not only had he released a statement, but he had also shared numerous details about their married life, portraying himself as a devoted husband who would never betray his wife.
N¡¯s hands trembled as she gripped the phone, stunned by rk¡¯s shamelessness. He had chosen this moment to reveal their marriage, just to clear his name.
Seeing N¡¯s dark expression andck of any joy, Melody realized she might have said the wrong thing. ¡°N¡¡±
N took a deep breath and looked at her. ¡°Let¡¯s focus on the
experiment. I¡¯ll be back in a moment.¡±
She walked out of theb and immediately called rk.
¡°rk, what¡¯s the meaning of that statement?¡± she demanded.
¡°Ms. Jayston, rk is busy making me fresh juice right now. If you have something to say, I can ry the message.¡± Jordyn¡¯s sweet voice echoed from the other end of the line.
N frowned, her tone cold. ¡°Put him on the phone.¡±
¡°I¡¯m afraid that¡¯s not possible. He¡¯s a bit too upied to take your call,¡± Jordyn replied, her tone dripping with glee and provocation.
N scoffed and ended the call without another word.
When she returned to theb and saw Melody nervously avoiding her gaze, N felt a pang of helplessness. ¡°Melody, I¡¯m not upset with you. I was just surprised, that¡¯s all.¡±
Melody let out a sigh of relief. ¡°That¡¯s good. I was worried I had said something wrong.¡±
*
¡°No. This has nothing to do with you. Let¡¯s focus on the experiment,¡± N said.
Melody nodded. ¡°Right. By the way, N, Mr. Hogg delivered an invitation earlier this morning. I left it on your desk, so don¡¯t forget to check it.¡±
N walked over to her desk and picked up the envelope.
Spencer had sent an invitation to a pharmaceutical research
symposium in Saintornia, hosted by the Sumner Group and attended by several pharmaceuticalpanies. The focus of the symposium was closely rted to her current research, so attending could be very beneficial for her work.
She checked the date¨CFriday evening.
With no other ns at that time, she asked Melody to clear her
schedule so they could attend the symposium together.
Just as N was about to start the experiment, her phone buzzed with a message from Damon, inviting her to dinner that evening.
CHAPTER 228
Chapter 228
Surprise shed in N¡¯s eyes. Why would Damon suddenly invite her to dinner?
As she hesitated, another message from him appeared on her phone.
Damon: [I¡¯ll be waiting in the parking lot at 6:30 p.m.]
It seemed he wasn¡¯t giving her a chance to refuse.
Considering that he had helped persuade Richard to agree to her divorce from rk, she felt she owed him a meal as a thank you.
N replied with a simple ¡°Okay¡°. She then put her phone away and focused on her experiment.
¡°N, our recent experiments have been going really well. In a little while, we should be able to start testing onb mice,¡± Melody said excitedly.
N shook her head. ¡°It¡¯s not that simple. Before we move to trials, we need to go through countless experiments and trial and error to find the best solution. It can take years, even over a decade, for a drug to go from research to market.¡±
Melody looked shocked, momentarily pausing her work with the test tubes. ¡°It takes that long?¡±
¡°Yes, and even during trials, there can be many unpredictable factors that require constant adjustments,¡± N borated.
If onecked patience, this line of work could be really tough. The early stages of experimentation were often filled with repeated failures, and it was difficult to pinpoint why things weren¡¯t working. The daily repetition could be exhausting and monotonous.
¡°I see.¡± Melody sighed, clearly disappointed. She had assumed the
experiment might wrap up in six months, not realizing it could take years. With her lively personality, such a slow¨Cpaced and demanding process was particrly challenging
N tried tofort her. ¡°But don¡¯t worry too much. Who knows? Maybe we¡¯ll get incredibly lucky, and every experiment will seed. In that case, we could move to trials pretty quickly.¡±
Knowing N was trying tofort her, Melody forced a smile and nodded.
N didn¡¯t say anything more. She knew that research could be tedious, and if Melody couldn¡¯t stick it out, it might be better for her to find a different path sooner rather thanter.
That evening, N took the elevator down to the basement level.
Damon¡¯s car was parked not far from the elevator.
After getting in, she looked at him, her expression serious.
¡°Uncle Damon, let me treat you to dinner tonight,¡± she offered.
Damon nced at her with a slight smile. ¡°Why?¡±
¡°To thank you for leaking the news about rk¡¯s affair,¡± N replied. Damon raised an eyebrow, nodding with a hint of amusement. ¡°Alright.¡± There was an unreadable emotion in his dark eyes that made N feel uneasy. She looked away, her ears turning slightly red.
The car grew quiet as Damon picked up a file to continue reading.
The scent of gardenias from N filled the car, distracting him. He found himself staring at the same line of text for several minutes before finally closing the file with a sigh.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
+25
¡°I¡¯m nning to send your father abroad for treatment,¡± he said in a low voice,
N was taken aback and instinctively refused, ¡°That won¡¯t be
necessary. I¡¯ll find a way to take care of my father¡¯s treatment myself.¡±
¡°You wouldn¡¯t want any surprises to derail your divorce from rk, would you?¡± Damon asked.
N lowered her gaze, her hands slowly clenching in herp. She knew the Sumners might continue to use Harrison to threaten her. Sending him abroad for treatment would indeed be better. At least she wouldn¡¯t have to worry about him being used against her.
However, Harrison was weak, and she worried he wouldn¡¯t survive a long flight. Moreover, if he were overseas, she wouldn¡¯t be able to reach him quickly if something happened.
After a moment of silence, she still declined. ¡°Uncle Damon, I
appreciate your thoughtfulness, but I don¡¯t want to send my father abroad.¡±
CHAPTER 229
Chapter 229
N¡¯s voice was gentle yet resolute.
Damon knew her well enough to understand that once she made up her mind, no one could change it. Thus, he didn¡¯t press the matter further.
As they arrived at the restaurant entrance, they ran into rk and Jordyn.
The moment rk saw N and Damon together, his expression turned cold.
¡°Uncle Damon, why are you here alone with N?¡± rk asked icily.
¡°Thelped her out with something, and she¡¯s treating me to dinner to thank me. Is that a problem? Or are you just eager to provide the tabloids with more material? Perhaps you want to give the paparazzi more evidence of your affair?¡± Damon retorted.
rk sneered. This restaurant was one of the most private in the city- only the wealthy and influential dined there. The paparazzi wouldn¡¯t
dare to invade this space.
¡°Since we¡¯ve run into each other, why don¡¯t we all have dinner together?¡± rk suggested.
Damon shot him a frosty nce. ¡°Sitting your pregnant mistress at the same table as your wife¨Conly you would think of that.¡±
rk¡¯s expression darkened. He wouldn¡¯t have suggested it if he wasn¡¯t so keen on preventing them from spending time alone together.
Before he could say anything, Jordyn jumped in.
¡°Ms. Jayston, I don¡¯t mind joining you for dinner. After all, I¡¯m not that petty,¡± she said.
N hadn¡¯t intended to engage with Jordyn, but
+
causing trouble, she couldn¡¯t let it slide.
¡°And what right do you have to be petty? Is it your shamelessness?¡± N shot back.
Jordyn¡¯s face paled, and she red at N with icy eyes..
Not wanting to waste any more time on them, N turned to Damon.¡± Uncle Damon, shall we go inside?¡±
¡°Sure,¡± Damon replied.
rk moved to stop them, but Jordyn held him back. ¡°rk, making a scene here won¡¯t do us any good.¡±Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
Everyone dining there held significant status in the city. Given that rk and N were still married, a public confrontation could easily turn Jordyn into a target of public scorn.
rk took a deep breath, suppressing his anger, and leered at her. ¡°If you hadn¡¯t insisted oning here, we wouldn¡¯t be in this mess!¡±
Jordyn sighed. ¡°But if we hadn¡¯te, would N have told you she was dining with your uncle alone?¡±
rk¡¯s expression darkened further, fury flickering in his eyes.
Throughout the meal, rk remained distracted, barely engaging in Jordyn¡¯s attempts at conversation. When they finally finished, he arranged for the driver to take Jordyn home while he waited outside the restaurant for N and Damon.
After half an hour, just as his patience was wearing thin, N and Damon finally emerged, side by side.
N wore a white dress, her long hair tied back, entuating her delicate and beautiful features. Standing next to the impably
+25
dressed Damon, they looked like a couple straight out of a fairytale- perfectly matched.
The sight pierced rk¡¯s heart. He quickly strode over, blocking their path, his face a mask of irritation.
¡°I¡¯ll take you home,¡± he told N.
¡°That¡¯s not necessary. I¡¯m riding with Uncle Damon,¡± she replied calmly.
rk¡¯s anger bubbled like a volcano on the verge of eruption. He seemed ready to lose control.
¡°N, don¡¯t forget¨Cyou¡¯re still my wife!¡± he snapped.
Ny?a chuckled, her gaze clear and piercing.
¡°And I don¡¯t recall anyw that says just because you¡¯re my husband, I
have to listen to everything you say,¡± she retorted.
C
CHAPTER 230
rk let out a coldugh. ¡°If you dare get in the car with Uncle Damon,
I¡¯ll call my grandparents and tell them he has feelings for you!¡±
N frowned, shocked at how low rk was willing to go.
The air around Damon instantly turned icy. He fixed rk with a piercing stare, his presence overwhelming. ¡°If you think you can handle the consequences, go ahead and make the call.¡±
¡°Uncle Damon, all you ever do is threaten me with the Sumner Group. But guess what? I don¡¯t care about the Sumner Group anymore,¡± rk said, attempting to sound confident.
To Damon, it was almostughable. He sneered. ¡°You don¡¯t care about the Sumner Group? Or is it because your affair photos went viral and your grandfather is so disappointed in you that he¡¯s nning to demote you to one of the subsidiarypanies? Soon, you won¡¯t even be the CEO of the Sumner Group.¡±
rk¡¯s face flushed with embarrassment as Damon exposed the truth. ¡°It¡¯s just a temporary demotion. It doesn¡¯t mean I won¡¯t have the chance to return to the Sumner Group,¡± rk said, clinging to his pride.
¡°You¡¯re right. You might get another chance. But if you keep pestering N, that chance might just go to your cousin instead,¡± Damon replied calmly.Property belongs to N?vel(D)r/ama.Org.
rk¡¯s hands clenched into fists at his sides, frustration and hesitation warring in his eyes. He knew he couldn¡¯t go head¨Cto¨Chead with Damon right now. Doing so would only make things worse.
But he was done holding back.
Raising his head, he met Damon¡¯s gaze without flinching. ¡°Uncle Damon, do whatever you want. But right now, I¡¯m taking N with me.¡±
Chapter 230.
A tense silence fell over the restaurant entrance, so quiet one could hear a pin drop, as his words hung in the air.
N took a deep breath and spoke calmly. ¡°rk, we¡¯re getting divorced soon. There¡¯s no point in you continuing to pester me.¡±
He had already paraded Jordyn around in public, clearly signaling that she mattered to him. N didn¡¯t see the point in dragging out this argument.
¡°I told you! I¡¯m not divorcing you,¡± rk insisted.
N frowned, unwilling to continue the conversation. She turned to Damon. ¡°Uncle Damon, I¡¯ll just take a cab home.¡±
With that, she walked toward the street.
rk moved to stop her, but Damon blocked his path. ¡°Clinging to her like this will only make her hate you more.¡±
rk red at Damon with disdain. ¡°Uncle Damon, there are so many women in the world. Why do you have to make me a cuckold?¡±
Damon¡¯s expression remained neutral. ¡°You¡¯re the one who cheated first. Instead of reflecting on your own mistakes, what right do you have to question me?¡±
¡°Even if N and I do get divorced, you¡¯ll never be with her. Grandpa and Grandma would never approve,¡± rk said, convinced that Damon¡¯s interest in N was just a passing fancy and that he¡¯d never actually marry her.
¡°That¡¯s none of your concern,¡± Damon replied, noticing out of the corner of his eye that N had already gotten into a taxi.
Not interested in continuing the pointless conversation with rk, he got into his car and left.
Back at home, N rested on the couch for a while. Just as she was about to get ready for bed, her phone rang.
Surprise flickered in her eyes when she saw that it was Wren, but she answered. ¡°Wren, is something the matter?¡±
Wren¡¯s voice came through,ced with guilt. ¡°N, I was wrong the other day at the hospital. I said some harsh things, and I hope you can forgive me.¡±
Wren was an elder. Since she had already apologized, N couldn¡¯t hold a grudge, even if she still felt uneasy about it.
¡°Wren, I¡¯m not angry. I understand that you were worried about my father¡¯s condition,¡± she replied.
Wren seemed relieved, her tone softening. ¡°N, I know you¡¯ve been through a lot with rk¡¯s affair¡ but what¡¯s done is done. I wanted to discuss something with you. How about waiting until rk finds a kidney donor for your father before you two finalize the divorce? Would that be okay?¡±
CHAPTER 231
Wren¡¯s voice was pleading, but a chill ran down N¡¯s spine. This must be the real reason she had called.This content is ? N?velDrama.Org.
N had already been ckmailed by rk numerous times with the promise of a kidney donation for her father, only to be betrayed when the kidney was given to Jordyn¡¯s father instead.
¡°Wren, I can¡¯t agree to this,¡± N replied firmly. ¡°A person can¡¯t live without bottom lines. If Ipromise this time, I¡¯ll be letting rk control me forever.¡±
She hadpromised too many times before, each instance leading to more pain and betrayal from rk. She wouldn¡¯t trust him again, nor would shepromise.
There was a long silence on the other end of the line, followed by the sound of the call being disconnected.
N had no intention of calling back. She simply put down her phone and went to take a shower.
The next few days passed quietly.
rk didn¡¯t reach out, and N¡¯s life returned to its calm routine.
Just when she thought she could approach Richard in about a week to quietly discuss divorcing rk, news broke out that Jordyn was pregnant. Photos of rk and Jordyn kissing resurfaced and began trending once more.
Unaware that Jordyn¡¯s pregnancy had been exposed, N noticed people giving her sympathetic looks as she walked into the office, leaving her puzzled.
Did she have something on her face?
She had no idea that people were now assuming she would soon be abandoned by rk. After all, it had only been a few days since their hidden marriage was made public.
Now, news of Jordyn¡¯s pregnancy had leaked, along with the recent photos of her kissing rk. It was hard not to assume that the child was rk¡¯s.
When N entered theb, she noticed that even Melody was sneaking nces at her, her expression a mix of sympathy and hesitation.
N frowned. ¡°Melody, did something happen? Why is everyone looking at me so strangely?¡±
¡°You really don¡¯t know?¡± Melody¡¯s gaze filled with even more pity as she looked at N.
¡°What¡¯s going on? Don¡¯t just stand there. Tell me!¡± N demanded.
¡°Well¡ just look for yourself,¡± Melody muttered, thrusting a phone screen in front of N.
N took a closer look, and her expression darkened instantly.
She quickly pulled out her phone and called rk, but despite several attempts, he didn¡¯t pick up. With each unanswered call, her expression grew increasingly grim.
Meanwhile, rk was ordering Michael to find out who had leaked the news about Jordyn¡¯s pregnancy
online.
¡°Mr. Sumner, it was first posted on a foreign website, and we can¡¯t trace the specific IP address,¡± Michael reported.
rk¡¯s expression turned icy. ¡°So you¡¯re telling me you can¡¯t find out who did this?¡±
¡°¡Yes,¡± Michael replied.
¡°Useless!¡± rk angrily mmed a folder to the floor. ¡°There are only a handful of people who know about Jordyn¡¯s pregnancy. Investigate every single one! I refuse to believe we can¡¯t uncover the truth!¡±
He had just publicly announced his marriage to N, and now, someone had deliberately leaked Jordyn¡¯s pregnancy. It had to be intentional!
rk suspected that Damon might be behind it.
¡°Focus the investigation on my uncle!¡± rk ordered.
¡°Yes, sir!¡± Michael responded promptly.
As Michael left, rk¡¯s phone rang. He assumed it was N again and was about to hang up, but when he saw it was Richard, his expression turned grim.
CHAPTER 232
Chapter 232
Richard¡¯s call at that moment filled rk with dread.
¡°Grandpa¡¡± he began hesitantly.
Richard¡¯s voice crackled with anger. ¡°Don¡¯t call me Grandpa! I don¡¯t have such a foolish grandson! The news about that woman¡¯s pregnancy has caused a huge scandal, and it¡¯s already affecting the Sumner Group¡¯s stock prices. You need to resign and leave thepany immediately!¡±
rk¡¯s face drained of color. ¡°Grandpa¡ what about my transfer to the subsidiary?¡±
¡°Don¡¯t even think about it. The board is extremely dissatisfied with you right now. You need to handle this scandal. If you can¡¯t clean up this mess, don¡¯t bothering back to thepany!¡± Richard bellowed.
The words struck rk like a bolt of lightning, and panic washed over him. ¡°Grandpa, I promise I¡¯ll resolve this as quickly as possible. There won¡¯t be a next time. If the board members have concerns, I¡¯m willing to start from the bottom at the subsidiary.¡±
If he was expelled from the Sumner Group altogether and barred from the subsidiary, it would be nearly impossible to return to thepany in the future.
A long silence followed before Richard¡¯s cold voice broke through. ¡°We¡¯ll discuss thister. For now, you should take a break and think carefully about what you should and shouldn¡¯t do.¡±
With that, Richard hung up.
Despair flickered in rk¡¯s eyes. He knew his grandfather was truly disappointed in him. His cousin, Brandon, had always been eyeing his position. Now that he was leaving the Sumner Group, Brandon would surely seize the opportunity to climb thedder.
By the time rk resolved the situation with Jordyn and tried to return, would there even be a ce for him at the Sumner Group?
Resentment and frustration churned inside rk, but he was powerless to change anything.
As he brooded, his phone rang again.
He picked it up and asked coldly, ¡°What is it?¡±
¡°rk¡ I don¡¯t know how, but the news about my pregnancy got out, and now reporters are swarming outside my apartment. What should I do?¡± Jordyn¡¯s voice trembled with panic.
¡°Lock the door,¡± rk ordered, his tone firm. ¡°I¡¯ll send someone over to deal with the reporters.¡±
¡°But even if you get rid of them, they¡¯ll juste back. Someone even sshed paint on my door and threatened me¡ I¡¯m scared¡¡± Jordyn sobbed.
rk frowned. ¡°I understand. I¡¯lle get you soon. We¡¯ll find a new ce for you to stay temporarily.¡±
He hung up, ready to leave, when the office door suddenly flew open with a loud bang. Six board members stormed in, their faces dark with anger.
The lead board member mmed a document onto rk¡¯s desk. ¡°Mr. Sumner, look at what you¡¯ve done! The Sumner Group¡¯s stock price dropped by a point today! Do you have any idea how much money the
rk looked up, his gaze cold. ¡°Mr. Colton, next time, please knock before you enter.¡±
Hugo Colton sneered. ¡°We just held a board meeting and unanimously decided to terminate you. Starting tomorrow, you won¡¯t need toe in anymore.¡±
¡°As long as I¡¯m still the CEO of the Sumner Group, you knock before entering my office,¡± rk insisted, his voice steely.
¡°I¡¯ve said what I came to say. I hope you¡¯ll have your things packed by the end of the day. The new CEO will be taking over tomorrow,¡± Hugo warned.
rk¡¯s expression darkened. ¡°Who is the new CEO?¡±
Before Hugo could answer, a cold voice came from the doorway. ¡°It¡¯s me.¡±
rk turned to see Brandon standing there with a smile.
rk¡¯s hands clenched into fists.
It had taken rk two years to earn the respect of the board members, and now, their grandfather was appointing Brandon¨Cwho had been with thepany for only a short time¨Cas CEO?
A surge of bitterness and rage rose within rk. No matter how hard he worked, he could never measure up to Damon in Richard¡¯s eyes. Now, he couldn¡¯t evenpete with Brandon. How could he ept this?This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
¡°rk, you look surprised to see me,¡± Brandon said, smirking.
rk¡¯s face was icy. ¡°You¡¯ve only been with thepany for a short time. What makes you qualified for this position?¡±
CHAPTER 233
Brandon didn¡¯t get angry. He calmly replied, ¡°At least I won¡¯t cause a scandal that tanks thepany¡¯s stock price by getting a mistress pregnant. Don¡¯t you agree?¡± 1
rk red at him, an intense and menacing aura surrounding him. ¡°Get out!¡±
¡°I¡¯ll wait for you to pack up your office so that I can move in tomorrow,¡± Brandon taunted.
Soon, everyone left the office, leaving rk alone. He swept the documents off his desk in a fit of rage and stormed out.
An hourter, Jordyn entered rk¡¯s car with a small suitcase through the back gate of her apartmentplex.
¡°rk, thank goodness for you. I really don¡¯t know what I would¡¯ve done without you¡¡± she said.This content is ? N?velDrama.Org.
rk drove in silence, his face dark and stormy.
Sensing his foul mood, Jordyn bit her lip. ¡°rk¡ Shouldn¡¯t we try to suppress the news about my pregnancy?¡±
rk¡¯s grip on the steering wheel tightened. ¡°You don¡¯t need to worry about that. Your priority now is to make sure the baby is born.¡±
A glint appeared in Jordyn¡¯s eyes as she suggested, ¡°I suspect Ms. Jayston is behind this¡¡±
rk¡¯s ck Cayenne came to an abrupt stop with a screech. He turned to her with a chilling expression. You think it was her? Tell me, what would she gain from this?¡±
Jordyn flinched under his icy gaze, fear creeping into her voice. ¡°Hasn¡¯t she been wanting a divorce? If my pregnancy is all over the news, she can use it to take the moral high ground and pressure you into divorcing her¡¡±
¡°A few days ago, my grandfather promised her that once the scandal of our photos blew over, he¡¯d allow us to divorce in secret. Leaking this wouldn¡¯t benefit her in any way,¡± rk countered.
Jordyn lowered her eyes and said slowly, ¡°I still think it was her. After all, blowing this up might help her get a bigger settlement when you divorce.¡±
A bigger settlement?
rk suddenly remembered that when N first discovered his affair, she had demanded half of his assets. If that was her motivation, it wouldn¡¯t be entirely impossible that she was behind this.
Moreover, only a few people knew about Jordyn¡¯s pregnancy. It was highly likely that N, eager to expedite the divorce, had leaked the information to force his hand.
The thought of being expelled from the Sumner Group because of this filled rk with a cold, simmering
anger.
After dropping Jordyn off at one of his properties and arranging for a housekeeper to look after her, rk left.
11
CHAPTER 234
When N saw the so¨Ccalled ¡°evidence¡± on rk¡¯s phone, her eyes filled with sarcasm. ¡°So, based on this chat screenshot, you¡¯ve decided it was me?¡±
¡°That¡¯s not all,¡± rk replied, his tone cold. ¡°There¡¯s also a recording.¡±
He yed the recording right in front of N.
As she listened, she finally understood¨Cit was all a setup, specifically designed to frame her. She couldn¡¯t figure out what the person behind this stood to gain.
¡°This voice does sound a lot like mine,¡± N said calmly. ¡°However, if you take it to a forensicb, you¡¯ll see it¡¯s been fabricated.¡±
rk¡¯s gaze was full of disappointment as he looked at her. ¡°I gave you the evidence you asked for, but you¡¯re still denying it? N, when did you be so malicious?¡±
¡°Is it that I¡¯m malicious, or that you want to believe I am? You didn¡¯t even bother to have this recording or the chat logs authenticated, yet you¡¯ve decided it was me. If I really wanted to leak Jordyn¡¯s pregnancy, would I leave such obvious evidence for you to find?¡± N retorted.
Anyone with a bit ofmon sense could see she was being framed, but rk was determined to believe she was the culprit.
He was silent for a few moments. When Michael first sent him the evidence, he had his doubts too. The problem was that someone had to take the fall for this.
¡°N, I¡¯ve already promised you that Jordyn won¡¯t threaten your position. Because of this, my grandfather has lost all faith in me. If I don¡¯t handle this properly, I will lose my inheritance and my right to the Sumner Group,¡± rk said.
¡°So?¡± N asked coldly, waiting to hear just how shameless he could be.
¡°If you tell my grandparents that you can¡¯t have children and wanted a child, and that¡¯s why I turned to Jordyn¡¡± rk borated.
N pped him hard across the face, trembling with rage. ¡°rk, you¡¯re utterly despicable!¡±
She was shaking with fury, unable to believe he would make such an outrageous suggestion.
A handprint bloomed on rk¡¯s face, and his gaze turned icy. ¡°Did I say something wrong? If it weren¡¯t for your infertility, would I have strayed?¡±
As his words hung in the air, the hallway fell into a heavy silence. Hurt shed across N¡¯s eyes, and rk felt a pang of guilt.
¡°N, I didn¡¯t mean-¡± he began.
¡°Enough!¡± she interrupted, her voice cold and indifferent. ¡°I don¡¯t want to hear any more.¡±
rk looked down, his tone subdued. ¡°We¡¯re both a bit emotional right now. I¡¯lle back to discuss this When you¡¯ve calmed down.¡±Property belongs to N?vel(D)r/ama.Org.
N didn¡¯t respond or look at him. She just stared at the floor, her face expressionless.
With a sigh, rk turned and left.
Back home, N called Damon. ¡°Uncle Damon, was it you who leaked the news about Jordyn¡¯s pregnancy?¡±
There was a brief pause on the other end before Damon¡¯s deep voice responded. ¡°No. Why do you ask?¡±
¡°No reason, just curious. You¡¯re probably busy, so I won¡¯t keep you.¡± She quickly ended the call, realizing that if Damon had been responsible, he wouldn¡¯t have bothered to create fake evidence. In her haste, she had overlooked this detail.
The only people who knew about Jordyn¡¯s pregnancy and would go to such lengths to frame her were Jordyn and Cindy.
Cindy was aware of rk¡¯s precarious position in the Sumner Group and wouldn¡¯t have leaked the news herself.
That left only one suspect.
CHAPTER 235
Chapter 235
N had not yet confronted Jordyn about bribing the maid to swap her dressst time. Just dayster, Jordyn was already pushing her luck again.
Considering the so¨Ccalled evidence against her, N found itughable. The fact that rk believed it without even verifying it showed just how blind and foolish he had be.
After a moment¡¯s thought, N called Michael. She obtained the audio being used as evidence from him and immediately sent it to a reputable forensic agency in Saintornia. Given the money involved, they promised results within three days.
N then packed a few changes of clothes and checked into a hotel, knowing rk would likelye looking for her the next day. Until the results arrived, she had no intention of engaging in any pointless arguments with him.
As expected, as soon as she arrived at the office the next morning, she received a call from rk. His voice was agitated, almost frantic. ¡°Where are you? You didn¡¯te home against night?! Were you with Damon?¡±
N frowned and hung up on him. He called back multiple times, but she simply declined each call until she finally blocked his number out of sheer annoyance.
Realizing he had been blocked, rk decided to wait outside Prospectus Technology. Now that he had been ousted from the Sumner Group, he had plenty of time and was determined to force N to apany him to the Summer residence.
As N left the office that evening, rk immediately confronted her. His face was dark, and his eyes zed with anger. ¡°N, have you thought about what said yesterday?¡±
¡°You really think I¡¯d consider something like that?¡± N retorted.
She moved to walk past him, but he grabbed her arm. ¡°How does ruining me benefit you? You used to say you loved me, but now you can¡¯t even do this one small thing to help me. Were all your feelings for me a lie?¡±
rk¡¯s aggressive stance made Nugh in disbelief. It took a special kind of nerve to say something like that with a straight face.
¡°Are you seriously ming me for this? You¡¯re the one who couldn¡¯t keep it in your pants and got someone else pregnant. That¡¯s why you¡¯re in this mess,¡± N said.
rk gnashed his teeth, his voice cold. ¡°No matter what, you¡¯reing with me to the Summer residence to exin this.¡±This content is ? N?velDrama.Org.
N yanked her arm free, her voice firm. ¡°Sorry, but I¡¯m not in the habit of taking the me for others.¡±
In their three years of marriage, she hadn¡¯t be pregnant. If rk had desired a child so desperately, he could have divorced her and pursued a rtionship with someone else.
If he genuinely believed their marriage was failing, she would have let him go without protest. Instead, he chose to cheat.
Now, he had the audacity to demand that she go to his family and im that her desire for a child drove him to be with Jordyn.
rk¡¯s shamelessness knew no bounds.
¡°Are you really this heartless?¡± rk red at N, his eyes bloodshot and his expression terrifying.
His entire demeanor radiated a chilling menace, and N felt a pang of unease, instinctively taking a few steps back.
rk reached out to grab her.
Just as his hand was about to touch her, a cold voice echoed from the side, ¡°Touch her, and you can kiss that hand goodbye.¡±
rk froze, then slowly turned to see Damon approaching with a poker face.
rk snorted and narrowed his eyes dangerously. ¡°Uncle Damon, I¡¯ve already been kicked out of the Sumner Group. Do you really think you can still use it to threaten me
CHAPTER 236
¡°I don¡¯t need the Sumner Group to deal with you,¡± Damon said, his voice cold.
rk¡¯s expression darkened. He scoffed. ¡°N and I are married. Whatever happens between us is none of your business.¡±
¡°Even as her husband, you have no right to force her into something she doesn¡¯t want to do,¡± Damon replied, his tone unwavering.
Besides, it wouldn¡¯t be long before rk and N were divorced.
The two men locked eyes, and the tension between them was palpable, the air around them seeming to drop in temperature.
¡°rk, stop harassing me. I¡¯m not going to agree with what you just proposed, no matter what,¡± N said coldly.
rk felt a chill in his heart. N knew how important the Sumner Group was to him, yet she still refused to help.
With Damon standing there, he realized that trying to reason with her was futile.
¡°N, I¡¯lle back another time,¡± rk said.
N frowned. No matter how many times he came, she knew she wouldn¡¯t change her mind. Before she could respond, he turned and left.
¡°If hees back to bother you, just call security and have him thrown out,¡± Damon advised N.
N nodded. ¡°I will. Thank you, Uncle Damon.¡±
¡°I¡¯ll drive you home,¡± Damon offered, his usually cold eyes softened with a touch of warmth.
N felt a bit flustered and looked away, tucking a strand of hair behind her ear. ¡°No need. I have my car.¡±
¡°Alright, drive safely,¡± Damon said.
After N left, Damon called Spencer. ¡°Arrange for two people to keep an eye on N from the shadows.¡±
When rk had left, his eyes had been filled with resentment. If N continued to refuse his demands, who knew what he might do to her?
Back at the hotel, N turned on her phone and was immediately greeted by a flood of messages from Vrie.
More photos and details of rk¡¯s affair with Jordyn had been leaked online, and Jordyn¡¯s social media ount had been exposed.
An angry mob of users had swarmed herments, cursing her so viciously that she ended up trending.
N wasn¡¯t particrly interested in the drama. She sent a few casual replies to Vrie before opening a food delivery app to order dinner.
As rk approached the vi, he noticed a swarm of reporters gathered outside. His expression darkened. He could handle those at the door, but he knew that many more paparazzi were likely hiding nearby, waiting for a chance to pounce.
With that in mind, he turned his car around and headed for Jordyn¡¯s ce.
When Jordyn saw him, her face lit up with joy. ¡°rk, what are you doing here?¡±
rk brushed past her, his expression icy as he walked into the living room. ¡°Jordyn, did you have anything to do with this?¡±
He suspected that something was amiss with the exposure of her pregnancy.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
The only person who could help him now was N. So, when Michael found the so¨Ccalled evidence, he didn¡¯t ask anyone else to investigate further. There was only a chance to turn things around if N was
behind it.
Jordyn¡¯s eyes filled with tears, and she looked at him with a wounded expression. ¡°rk, what good would it do me to expose this? Didn¡¯t you see the reporters outside my house? If you had been anyter, they would have broken down the door.¡±
She looked pitiful as she cried, but rk remained unmoved.
¡°Because of this, I¡¯ve been kicked out of the Sumner Group. This better have nothing to do with you, or you¡¯ll wish you were never born!¡± rk hissed.
His icy stare made Jordyn shudder. She shook her head quickly. ¡°It really has nothing to do with me.¡±
CHAPTER 237
rk didn¡¯t believe Jordyn¡¯s words, but he chose not to respond. Suddenly, his phone rang.
¡°Mr. Sumner, more photos and details about your affair with Jordyn have been exposed. The online bacsh is intense, and¡ the Sumner Group just released a statement saying you¡¯ve been dismissed,¡± Michael informed him.
The statement from the Sumner Group didn¡¯t mention rk¡¯s resignation. It stated that he had been fired, indicating that Richard was genuinely furious.
rk clenched his phone and took a deep breath before replying, ¡°I understand. Let me know if there¡¯s anything else.¡±
¡°Okay,¡± Michael replied.
After hanging up, rk took a moment to collect his thoughts, grabbed his coat, and left.
Jordyn called after him, but he ignored herpletely.This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
He drove to the Sumner residence and, upon arriving, did not go inside. Instead, he knelt at the entrance. Richard and Marie were taking a walk in the garden when they were informed of the situation.
Richard snorted. ¡°If he wants to kneel, let him! It¡¯s a good chance for him to reflect on his foolish actions!¡± Marie couldn¡¯t bear it. ¡°No matter what, the situation has happened. Forcing him out of the Sumner Group like this is a bit excessive.¡±
¡°If we don¡¯t teach him a lesson this time, he¡¯ll just keep making foolish mistakes. We don¡¯t need to worry about him,¡± Richard said firmly.
Seeing Richard¡¯s determination to punish rk, Marie sighed and stopped arguing. After all, this incident had not only harmed the Sumner Group but also embarrassed the entire Sumners.
Prominent families in Saintornia were already taking pleasure in the Sumners¡® misfortune.
After dinner, N was about to read some documents when her phone began buzzing incessantly. As soon as she unlocked it, she was met with a flood of messages from Cindy, each one probing her. Cindy: [Do you know rk has been kneeling at the Summer residence¡¯s entrance for hours? Where are you?]
Cindy: [Is this how a wife behaves? I heard you¡¯re the one behind this mess. How could you be so ruthless?
Cindy: [You¡¯re the one who can¡¯t have children. How dare you expose this?]
Cindy: [Go to the Summer residence and kneel with him, or I won¡¯t let you off the hook!]
Cindy continued to send messages.
N skimmed through a few and then blocked Cindy, instantly restoring peace to her world.
Soon after, Cindy began bombarding N with phone calls, but N persistently hung up and blocked her number.
If rk ended up left at the Sumners¡® door, it would be none of her concern. No one forced him to kneel there.
Frustrated by being blocked, Cindy threw her phone. ¡°This wretched woman! I should never have let her into the family. She¡¯s a disaster, ruining rk¡¯s life!¡±
Nearby, Cyrus frowned and said coldly, ¡°What good doesining do now? The most important thing is to get rk reinstated in the Sumner Group. Otherwise, Brandon will rece him soon.¡±
¡°No way! I¡¯m going to the estate right now. I¡¯ll kneel with him. I don¡¯t believe Mom and Dad won¡¯t see us!¡± Cindy dered as she stood up to leave.
¡°Can¡¯t you stop making things worse?¡± Cyrus snapped.
Cindy turned to look at him, her eyes filled with anger. ¡°Making things worse? You¡¯re not exactly helping. I don¡¯t see youing up with any solutions. It¡¯s your failure as a father that¡¯s forcing rk to depend on your father¡¯s favor!¡±
CHAPTER 238
Chapter 238
Cyrus was livid. ¡°How dare you me me? You raised such a worthless son who can¡¯t even manage one mistress properly!¡±
¡°Shut up!¡± Cindy retorted, her chest heaving with anger. ¡°If you hadn¡¯t been out of the house all the time with your string of mistresses, rk wouldn¡¯t have turned out like this. He learned it all from you!¡±
Cyrus sneered. ¡°I¡¯m not going to argue about old grievances. It¡¯s pointless now. You¡¯d better not make things worse. If you really anger the old man, rk might never get back into the Sumner Group.¡±
After all, the Sumners had more than one heir.
As Cyrus was about to leave, Cindy tried to stop him but was shoved aside, nearly falling. When she managed to steady herself and looked around, Cyrus had already disappeared.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
rk had been kneeling at the Sumner residence entrance all night. When it started pouring rain in the middle of the night, he stayed put, enduring the downpour until he copsed.
The next morning, a maid found him unconscious at the door.
Marie quickly called the family doctor and had rk carried back to his room.
After a hectic morning, rk finally woke up.
Seeing the familiar bedroom, he managed a faint smile. His n had worked¨Cthe strategy of using his suffering had paid off. The rain hade just in time. Otherwise, he might still be outside the mansion. When rk saw that the IV drip was almost empty, he pulled it out and went downstairs.
Seeing Richard and Marie sitting in the living room, he walked up to them and knelt.
¡°Grandpa, Grandma, I know I¡¯ve disappointed you greatly. I hope you can eventually forgive me, but more than anything, I hope you don¡¯t let this affect your health,¡± he said.
Richard maintained a stern expression, well aware that rk¡¯s suffering was a calcted move. With years of business experience, he was not easily fooled by such tactics.
Marie sighed and said, ¡°You¡¯re still ill. Get up for now.¡±
rk shook his head. ¡°Grandma, I¡¯ve made mistakes, so I should kneel.¡±
¡°Now you realize you were wrong? What do you n to do about it?¡± Richard asked.
rk straightened up and said, ¡°This incident was orchestrated by N, but I¡¯m also at fault. I don¡¯t me her. I¡¯ll face all the consequences alone.¡±
Richard¡¯s face darkened with anger. ¡°What will you use to take responsibility? The Sumner Group has lost billions because of this scandal. It has grown sorge that even if we rify things now, no one will
believe it.¡±
rk paused as if finally making up his mind. ¡°Grandpa, I will send Jordyn abroad and ensure she doesn¡¯t appear in Saintornia again.¡±
Richard looked at him coldly, clearly disappointed. He hadn¡¯t expected rk toe up with such a half- baked solution after days of contemtion.
¡°And what about the child she¡¯s carrying?¡± Richard asked.
¡°She¡¯s in poor health, and an abortion could be life¨Cthreatening. Besides, it¡¯s my child, so I n to let her have it,¡± rk replied.
¡°Foolish!¡± Richard¡¯s eyes zed with anger. ¡°If you do this, don¡¯t ever call me Grandpa again!¡±
Marie¡¯s expression was also grim as she looked at rk. ¡°rk, you¡¯ve been married to N for three years without getting her pregnant. Now you¡¯re bringing a child from a mistress into the mix. Are you trying to ruin the Sumners¡® reputationpletely?¡±
¡°Grandma, the reason we haven¡¯t had a child in three years is that she can¡¯t conceive. No matter how hard we try, it won¡¯t work.¡± rk threw N under the bus.
¡°What?!¡± Marie looked at him in shock. ¡°Are you sure it¡¯s her problem?¡±
CHAPTER 239
Chapter 239
¡°Yeah. We did tests before. Her body has a hard time conceiving, so I n to have Jordyn carry the baby and then let N raise it as her own,¡± rk informed.
Marie was infuriated. ¡°Why are you only mentioning this now?!¡±
Had she known earlier that N couldn¡¯t have children, she would never have allowed rk to marry her, no matter how long he had knelt.
rk lowered his head, his voicecking confidence. ¡°I thought with some time and treatment, we¡¯d eventually seed¡¡±
Marie forced herself to stay calm and said coldly, ¡°Call N back immediately. You must divorce her!¡± Given N¡¯s previous disrespect toward her, Marie was already dissatisfied. Now that she knew N couldn¡¯t bear children, she would never allow her to remain married to rk.
rk looked up at Marie. ¡°Grandma, I won¡¯t divorce her. Even if she can¡¯t have children, I don¡¯t care.¡± ¡°You¡¯re truly insane. If you don¡¯t divorce her, you¡¯re no longer my grandson!¡± With that, Marie stormed off. Richard looked at rk with a cold gaze. ¡°I agree with your grandmother. Besides, N ns to divorce you. Do you really want to spend your life with a woman who can¡¯t bear children?¡±
They had been married for only three years, and rk had already cheated. What would happen in the future?
Unlike before, rk was unusually stubborn this time as he said, ¡°Grandpa, no matter what you say, I won¡¯t divorce her.¡±
¡°If you don¡¯t, I won¡¯t let you return to the Sumner Group!¡± Richard snapped.
rk smiled bitterly and said, ¡°I have already been kicked out of the Sumner Group and am too ashamed to go back. After this, I¡¯ve realized that relying on others isn¡¯t dependable. I¡¯m nning to start my own business.¡±
Richard turned icy. ¡°Do you think you¡¯re as talented as Damon and can seed in business just like that?¡±
Over the years, rk had endured Richard¡¯s belittlement, but at this moment, he could no longer hold back.
He had tolerated so much over the years, and now, because of a single scandal, Richard had easily abandoned him. If Damon had been the one to cheat, Richard would not have expelled him so swiftly.Property belongs to N?vel(D)r/ama.Org.
In the end, it was nothing more than favoritism.
¡°Grandpa, I may not be as clever as Uncle Damon, but at least I will work hard on my own. And I won¡¯t covet someone else¡¯s wife!¡±
Richard¡¯s eyes widened in shock. ¡°What did you say? Coveting someone else¡¯s wife?¡±
rk stood up straight, gazing at Richard with a mocking expression. ¡°Ask him about it yourself. I also want to see if he has the nerve to confess to you!¡±
With that, rk turned and left without looking back.
Richard¡¯s angry shouts followed him, but he ignored them.
Outside the Sumner residence, rk gazed up at the clear blue sky, his eyes burning with resentment and anger. He was determined to carve out his own path and never be threatened by anyone again.
Damon was in a meeting at Prospectus Technology when his phone on the table suddenly vibrated. Seeing Richard¡¯s name on the screen, he looked surprised and said, ¡°Let¡¯s take a ten¨Cminute break.¡± He picked up the phone and walked to the window. As soon as he answered, Richard¡¯s furious voice came through. ¡°Damon, rk just used you of coveting someone else¡¯s wife. What¡¯s going on?¡±
CHAPTER 240
Damon narrowed his eyes. It seemed rk really didn¡¯t want to return to the Sumner Group.
¡°I¡¯m in a meeting right now. I¡¯ll exin everything to you tonight,¡± Damon said.
Since N and rk weren¡¯t divorced yet, Damon didn¡¯t want the Sumners to know about his feelings for N. Although he had fallen for her first, the Sumners would likely think she was the one who had seduced him.
Richard didn¡¯t respond and just hung up.
Damon called Spencer over and instructed quietly, ¡°Find out where rk is and bring him to see me after the meeting.¡±
The meeting dragged on for over two hours before it finally ended.
When Damon announced it was over, the department managers visibly rxed.
Back in Damon¡¯s office, his gaze turned cold when he saw rk sitting on the couch.
The atmosphere was tense and oppressive.
Damon sat down across from rk and said coldly, ¡°No matter what you tell your grandfather, I won¡¯t give up on N.¡±
rk smiled. ¡°Uncle Damon, whether you give up or not doesn¡¯t matter to me. I¡¯m not divorcing her, so you¡¯ll never be with her.¡±
Damon¡¯s gaze hardened. ¡°Whether you divorce or not isn¡¯t up to you.¡±
rk¡¯s eyes shed with sarcasm. ¡°If it¡¯s not up to me, then it¡¯s not up to you either. Now that I¡¯m out of the Sumner Group, you can¡¯t use it to threaten me. What can you do to make me divorce her?¡±
rk had no intention of divorcing N and nned to unt his rtionship with her in front of Damon, making thetter suffer.
¡°You acting this way only makes me think she must have been blind before,¡± Damon said.
rk sneered. ¡°Uncle Damon, provoking me won¡¯t help, As long as I¡¯m alive, I won¡¯t let you be with her!¡± With that, rk got up and left.
Once the office door mmed shut, Damon sat down at his desk, opened the bottom drawer, and retrieved the file he had stashed away earlier. After a moment¡¯s thought, he made a phone call.
In the evening, Vrie arrived at the restaurant.
As she sat down across from Damon, she was still somewhat surprised that he had asked to meet her. ¡°Damon¡ I mean, Mr. Sumner, what do you need to see me about?¡± she asked.
Damon pushed a file across the table to her and said in a serious tone, ¡°Please give this file to N. She¡¯ll
+25 BO
know what to do with it.¡±
Vrie¡¯s eyes widened in surprise, and she frowned. ¡°Mr. Sumner, if I remember correctly, N is now working at Prospectus Technology. Wouldn¡¯t it be easier for you to give it to her directly?¡±
Damon nodded. ¡°Yes, but I have reasons for not being able to hand it to her myself. I hope you can keep this confidential.¡±
¡°Can I ask why?¡± Vrie was curious about why Damon needed her to deliver the file.
¡°Ms. Weir, I can¡¯t disclose the specific reasons. However, if she chooses to tell you, you¡¯ll understand when you hand over the file. If you agree to help, I¡¯ll owe you a favor,¡± Damon said.
Vrie took the file and smiled. ¡°Forget about the favor. I heard that when I was in aa after falling from the hotel, it was you who called for the ambnce and sent me to the hospital. You also helped find out that it was Jacqueline behind it. Consider this a way to repay you for that.¡±
¡°Thank you, Ms. Weir,¡± Damon replied.Property belongs to N?vel(D)r/ama.Org.
¡°However, this file must be important. If N asks where I got it, what should I say?¡± Vrie asked.
CHAPTER 241
¡°Just say it was sent to you by someone named Pete,¡± Damon replied.
If Pete hadn¡¯t suddenly disappeared, Damon wouldn¡¯t have needed to find Vrie.
¡°Got it,¡± Vrie said.
After their discussion, Vrie decided not to stay for dinner with Damon, as they weren¡¯t close.
¡°If there¡¯s nothing else, I¡¯ll head out now,¡± she said.
Damon looked at her seriously. ¡°Ms. Weir, please keep this matter confidential. I don¡¯t want anyone to know that I handed you this file.¡±
¡°Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ll keep it to myself,¡± Vrie assured him
Once Vrie left the restaurant, she went directly to N¡¯s ce.This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
When N saw Vrie, she was pleasantly surprised. ¡°Vrie, what are you doing here?¡±
Vrie smiled. ¡°I missed you, so I came by. Let me in first.¡±
N stepped aside to let her in. Once they were seated in the living room, Vrie took the file from her bag and handed it to N.
N took it with a puzzled expression. ¡°What¡¯s this?¡±
As soon as N opened it and read a few lines, her expression changed drastically. ¡°Vrie, how do you have this?¡±
Seeing N¡¯s serious demeanor, Vrie said casually, ¡°Someone named Pete sent it to me and asked me to give it to you. Do you know him? What¡¯s in the file?¡±
Vrie leaned in to take a look, but N quickly closed the file and asked, ¡°Did you read this?¡±
Noticing N¡¯s reluctance to share the contents, Vrie shook her head. ¡°No, I haven¡¯t read it. But why are you being so secretive? Is it ssified?¡±
N took a deep breath and replied, ¡°Vrie, I can¡¯t tell you what¡¯s in the file right now. I¡¯ll exin it to you when the time is right.¡±
Vrie, who generally didn¡¯t like prying into others¡® private matters, chose not to press further.
¡°Alright. I have other things to do. I¡¯ll visit you again next time,¡± she said.
¡°Okay. Let me see you out,¡± N replied.
At the door, N looked at Vrie with gratitude. ¡°Vrie, thank you. This file is very important to me.¡±
Seeing N¡¯s serious expression, Vrie couldn¡¯t help but smile. ¡°No need to thank me. We¡¯re friends, after all. Take care
After Vrie left, N immediately called Pete, but his phone was off. She also sent him a message but received no reply. Suspecting he might be in trouble, she transferred some money to him and expressed
+25
her thank
before opening the file to review it.
The file contained evidence not only of Cyrus coborating with Clement to scheme against Harris Pharmaceuticals but also of other criminal activities involving both of them.
As N read, her frown deepened. She didn¡¯t hear the faint sound of the door lock turning.
It wasn¡¯t until she heard soft footsteps that she looked up in shock, her face turning pale when she saw rk. Instinctively, she closed the file and coldly asked, ¡°What are you doing here?¡±
Seeing her reach for her phone on the table, rk said calmly, ¡°N, whether you contact Damon or call the police won¡¯t make a difference. I¡¯m your husband. It¡¯s only natural for me to be here.¡±
Ignoring his words, N¨Cquickly unlocked her phone.
rk was quicker. The moment she unlocked it, he snatched her phone away.
N tried to grab it back, and the file fell to the floor. As it opened, rk nced down at it.
CHAPTER 242
N panicked and lunged at rk. ¡°Give me back my phone!¡±
rk stumbled backward from her sudden attack, struggling to regain his bnce. He grabbed her hand and said coldly, ¡°I came here today to discuss something with you.¡±
N wrenched her hand away. ¡°I have nothing to discuss with you.¡±
She looked up at him with a cold, unyielding gaze, her demeanor starkly different from the gentle woman he once knew.
¡°N, I¡¯ve informed my grandparents that I won¡¯t be returning to the Sumner Group. I¡¯m nning to start my own business,¡± rk said.
N¡¯s expression remained unmoved. ¡°What you do has nothing to do with me.¡±
rk¡¯s gaze darkened. ¡°N, we¡¯re married. We¡¯re supposed to spend our lives together. Do you really want to make our rtionship so strained?¡±
His words struck N as somewhat amusing. How could he still be dreaming that she would spend her life with him?
N¡¯s silence caused rk¡¯s grip on the phone to tighten, his knuckles turning white.
He took a deep breath and said softly. ¡°It was wrong of me to ask you to tell my grandparents that you wanted a child. I apologize. I won¡¯t force you to do things you don¡¯t want to do in the future.¡±
¡°If that¡¯s all you wanted to say, you can leave now,¡± N said curtly.
¡°N, I need your help to start my business. You¡¯re working for someone else at Prospectus Technology.
¡°Why not join me? You¡¯ll only need to focus on drug research in theb. I¡¯ll handle everything else and give you shares in thepany. You¡¯ll be a shareholder. What do you think? rk offered.
Nughed softly. ¡°So you¡¯ve finally revealed your true intentions. But it¡¯s a pity. I don¡¯t have a second patent right now. Even if I did, I wouldn¡¯t give it to you.
In the end, it was clear that rk was clinging to her only because she was useful to him.
rk frowned, ¡°How can you not have one? Aren¡¯t you developing drugs at Prospectus Technology? You could bring that project over.¡±
Seeing his presumptuous attitude, N felt a growing sense of estrangement. The once¨Cspirited young man had transformed into a maniptive and hypocritical figure.
¡°You really have no limits,¡± N spat.
Noticing the mockery in her eyes, rk gnashed his teeth and said coldly, ¡°If you hadn¡¯t exposed Jordyn¡¯s pregnancy, I wouldn¡¯t have been kicked out of the Sumner Group. You need to take responsibility for that.¡±
¡°I¡¯ve already had someone authenticate that so¨Ccalled recording. The results should be out tomorrow. You really don¡¯t know who leaked this information?¡± N asked.
Faced with N¡¯s clear, unwavering gaze, rk suddenly felt uneasy and looked away.This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
¡°Even if this isn¡¯t your fault, as my wife, you should support me. Only if my business seeds will the Sumners value you,¡± rk insisted.
The Sumners¡® approval? N once desired it, but now she didn¡¯t care at all.
However, if she didn¡¯t find a way to get rk to leave, there was a risk he would discover the file.
When N realized this, she pursed her lips, her gaze reflecting her internal struggle. ¡°I need to think about it. If thepany finds out, I could end up in prison.¡±
Upon seeing her hesitation, rk¡¯s expression softened slightly. ¡°Alright. I¡¯ll give you time to think it over.¡±
¡°I need to rest now. You should go,¡± N said.
rk understood N¡¯s nature, so he didn¡¯t push further and handed her back the phone.
CHAPTER 243
Chapter 243
¡°Call me when you¡¯ve made up your mind,¡± rk said.
N took her phone, her gaze lowered in silence. After rk left, she quickly locked the door and propped a chair against it, finally feeling a bit of safety.
After a moment of reflection, she called Damon.
In the Sumner residence¡¯s living room¡
Richard and Marie sat on the sofa with grim expressions, while Damon stood nearby.
¡°rk says you have feelings for a married woman. Is that true? Richard asked, his gaze stern and scrutinizing
As Richard¡¯s most distinguished son, Damon was expected to uphold the family¡¯s reputation. Richard could not¨Ctolerate any scandal involving Damon and a married woman.
Marie also looked displeased. Despite introducing Damon to many eligible young women, he hadn¡¯t shown interest in any of them. If it turned out he was interested in a married woman, it would be a major embarrassment.
Realizing the matter couldn¡¯t be hidden for long, Damon decided to be straightforward. ¡°Yes.¡±
Richard mmed his hand on the table, his face dark with anger. ¡°I don¡¯t care who you¡¯re interested in! You need to end this immediately!¡±
Marie clutched her chest, unable to believe what she was hearing. ¡°Damon, you¡¯ve never caused us any trouble. With your status, you can have any woman you want. Why on earth are you fixated on a married woman?¡±
Damon met their gaze steadily and replied, ¡°She¡¯ll be divorced soon.¡±
Marie was so distressed she could barely speak. ¡°Even if she divorces, it¡¯s uneptable! If you¡¯re involved with a divorced woman, what will people say about you? They¡¯ll say you¡¯ve lowered yourself to pick up someone else¡¯s leftovers!¡±
Damon¡¯s expression remained impassive. ¡°I don¡¯t care what people say. A woman¡¯s worth isn¡¯t defined by how many times she¡¯s been married.¡±
Hearing this, Richard threw his mug in frustration and stood up angrily. ¡°I¡¯m not going to waste any time talking to you. If you continue to pursue that woman, we¡¯ll cut off our father¨Cson rtionship!¡±
With that, he stormed out.
more
Damon was his pride, and he would not tolerate any blemishes in his life. As for the woman, he would investigate her background. If she was reasonable, he¡¯d offer her money to stay away. If not, he¡¯d ensure she disappeared from his life.
Marie looked at Damon with disappointment. ¡°Damon, are you really going to turn the Sumners upside down for a divorced woman?¡±
Damon¡¯s expression remained calm, showing no sign of retreat orpromise. ¡°Mom, it¡¯s not me causing trouble for the Sumners. It¡¯s you. Who I choose to be with is a personal matter.
+25
¡°You can offer advice, but whether I take it is up to me. If you try tomand me, the oue will only disappoint you.¡±
¡°You!¡± Marie was stunned by his resolve, her face flushed with anger as she struggled to find words.
¡°It¡¯s gettingte. I¡¯m leaving now. If you¡¯re willing to ept her, I¡¯ll bring her to meet you once we confirm our rtionship. If not, I won¡¯t make you meet her,¡± Damon said.
With that, he turned and left.
Behind him, Marie¡¯s angry voice called out, ¡°Stop right there!¡±
Damon ignored her and quickly walked out of the Sumner residence.
As soon as he got into the car, his phone buzzed. Seeing it was N, he was momentarily surprised and answered the call. ¡°What¡¯s up?¡±
¡°Uncle Damon, can youe over for a moment?¡± N asked.Property belongs to N?vel(D)r/ama.Org.
CHAPTER 244
When Damon arrived at N¡¯s ce, it was already an hourter.
¡°What¡¯s going on?¡± he asked,
N looked up at him with reddened eyes. ¡°Uncle Damon, can you help me find a ce to stay? If I look for one myself, rk might continue to harass me.¡±
Upon seeing the hint of vulnerability in her eyes, Damon¡¯s gaze hardened. ¡°Did rke by earlier?¡±
N nodded. ¡°Yes. I don¡¯t know where he got the keys, but he just walked in.¡±
¡°Alright. I¡¯ll handle the rental. Do you need help with the divorce?¡± Damon asked.
N looked down. ¡°The divorce should be happening soon.
¡°Got it,¡± Damon replied.
Noticing Damon¡¯s gaze resting on her, N nervously clenched her hands and mustered the courage to look up at him. ¡°If that¡¯s all, and since it¡¯s gettingte, I see you out.¡±
Damon stood up. ¡°No need. Get some rest.¡±
After leaving the neighborhood, Damon called Spencer ¡°rk broke into N¡¯s ce tonight. Did the two people I asked you to arrange not notice anything?¡±
The thought of rk being alone with N made Damon frown. With rk expelled from the Sumner Group, who knew what he might do next?
¡°Mr. Sumner, I¡¯ll find out what happened right away,¡± Spencer answered.
¡°Whatever the reason, rece them with new ones. Also, find a ce to rent under your name,¡± Damon instructed.
¡°Understood. I¡¯ll handle it immediately,¡± Spencer replied
After hanging up, Damon put his phone down and drummed his fingers absently on the steering wheel. The dim light in the car made his stern face appear half¨Chidden, giving off an intimidating aura.
The n next morning, N received a call from the authentication center. After reviewing the report, she immediately sent a copy to rk.
It wasn¡¯t long before rk called her, sounding somewhat resigned. ¡°N, it¡¯s all in the past. Why bring it up again?¡±
N snorted. ¡®In the past? You wronged me. Don¡¯t you think you owe me an apology?¡±
There was silence on the other end of the line.
After a few seconds, rk spoke quietly. ¡°I already apologizedst night. You used to never be so aggressive. I barely recognize you now.¡±
¡°It¡¯s because I was too easygoing that you felt you could hurt me repeatedly. But I don¡¯t want to dwell on
??
the past. Bring your ID, and we¡¯ll get divorced today,¡± N said.
rk¡¯s voice turned cold. ¡°N, I¡¯m not divorcing you. Besides, you saidst night you¡¯d think about what I proposed. Why the sudden change? Did Damon put you up to this?¡±
¡°Last night was just a temporary measure to get you to leave. I¡¯ll send you a document shortly. Meet me at the courthouse at 10:00 a.m. If you don¡¯t show up, I¡¯ll take the document to the police,¡± N stated.This belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
With that, she hung up and sent rk the file she had prepared the night before.
Shortly after, he called again, but she ignored it and blocked his number before heading to the courthouse with her ID.
She was certain rk woulde.
rk stared at the photos N had sent, his eyes red.
Could the incident with Harris Pharmaceuticals six years ago really be connected to Cyrus?
If these documents were authentic and N turned them over to the police, Cyrus would surely end up in prison.
After a moment¡¯s reflection, rk forwarded the photos to Cyrus.
It wasn¡¯t long before Cyrus called him.
CHAPTER 245
¡°Who gave you those documents?¡± Cyrus questioned.
rk¡¯s voice was icy. ¡°N sent these documents to me. Dad, did you really have something to do with the Harris Pharmaceuticals incident six years ago?¡±
Cyrus¡¯s voice roared with anger. ¡°How can you believe a woman over me?¡±
¡°It doesn¡¯t matter whether I believe you or not,¡± rk replied. ¡°What matters is that N is using these documents to force me into a divorce. She said if I don¡¯t agree, she¡¯ll turn them in to the police.¡±
¡°What?!¡± Cyrus ground his teeth, his voice filled with fury. ¡°She must not be allowed to take those documents to the police!¡±
rk smiled bitterly. He had hoped, even if just a little, that the documents were fabricated by N to pressure him into a divorce. Cyrus¡® reaction made it clear that everything in those documents was true.
¡°Dad, why did you do this? How am I supposed to face N now?¡± rk asked.
¡°I did it all for the Sumner Group. If I hadn¡¯t brought down Harris Pharmaceuticals, do you think the Sumner Group would be where it is today? Do you think you¡¯d be the CEO?¡± Cyrus retorted.
¡°My position as CEO was earned because N transferred her patent to me. It has nothing to do with you!
rk hissed.
N must have known about this incident long ago, which was why she was so determined to divorce him. Her hatred for him and the Sumners must run deep.
After all, if it weren¡¯t for that ident, she would still be the Jayston heiress, and her father wouldn¡¯t be living in the hospital, dependent on medication.
Cyrus roared, ¡°If she wants a divorce, then let her have one! Those documents must not reach the police!¡±This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
rk tightened his grip on his phone and abruptly hung up.
When Cyrus called back, he immediately turned off his phone.
rk despised Cyrus, but no matter what, Cyrus was still his biological father. He couldn¡¯t bear to see him go to prison. However, he also didn¡¯t want to divorce N¡..
It seemed there was no other choice now.
In Cyrus¡® office¡
Cyrus¡® expression darkened severely when rk¡¯s phone was turned off. He walked to the window, his cold eyes shing with a hint of cruelty, and dialed a number on his phone.
At 9:50 a.m., N was waiting at the courthouse for rk.
She knew rk well. Although he resented Cyrus, he had always longed for his father¡¯s approval. After seeing those photos, he would surelye to get divorced.
Her phone suddenly vibrated with a message from Vrie. As N looked down to reply, she didn¡¯t
notice a van speeding toward her, drawing nearer and nearer.
¡°Watch out!¡±
At the sound of a terrified shout, N looked up and saw the van barreling toward her, her eyes widening in shock. The van was moving too fast for her to avoid.
Just as the van was about to hit her, a ck Cayenne suddenly appeared, crashing into the van.
The collision was deafening.
The van was pushed off course and mmed into a pir at the courthouse entrance. The Cayenne rolled once on the ground before bursting into mes.
Screams erupted around N. Some people were calling for ambnces, while others were calling the police.
Recognizing the Cayenne as rk¡¯s car, N was momentarily stunned and quickly ran toward the burning vehicle. Just as she reached the car, she was yanked back.
CHAPTER 246
When Damon arrived at the hospital an hourter, he found N sitting in a chair outside the emergency room, her clothes stained with blood. She exuded a grim, lifeless aura.
He frowned and quickly approached her, crouching down.
Upon seeing her pale face, his gaze darkened. ¡°Are you hurt?¡±
Hearing Damon¡¯s voice, N seemed to snap back to reality. Her red¨Crimmed eyes slowly focused. When she realized it was Damon, she suddenly reached out and hugged him, her voice trembling.
¡°U¨CUncle Damon, rk had an ident trying to save me¡ He¡¯s lost a lot of blood..¡± she stuttered.
Noticing her unstable emotions, Damon gently patted her back and spoke softly. ¡°It¡¯s going to be alright. Don¡¯t worry. He¡¯ll be fine.¡±
¡°What are you doing here?!¡± A sharp voice came from around the corner.
N instinctively pulled away from Damon and turned to see Cindy approaching them angrily, followed by Cyrus, who also looked grim.
Cindy¡¯s gaze was like a knife, filled with murderous rage. Her son was in the emergency room fighting for his life, and there N was, appearing to seekfort from another man!
Cindy reached out to p N, but her hand was caught by a strong grip.
¡°This is a hospital. Please show some decency,¡± Damon warned.
Cindy sneered and shook off Damon¡¯s hand, her eyes zing with anger. ¡°Damon, how dare you lecture me? You¡¯re the onecking decency!
¡°Don¡¯t forget, N is your niece¨Cinw. The man inside is her husband. He had an ident trying to save her, and here she is, already in your arms. What a shameless woman!¡±
Damon¡¯s face darkened, his aura bing menacing. ¡°If you can¡¯t keep yourments in check, don¡¯t me me for being rude.¡±
¡°Oh, really? Let¡¯s see how rude you can be! You¡¯re making such a disgusting scene in public and don¡¯t want anyone toment?¡± Cindy retorted.
Before she could finish, Cyrus coldly interrupted, ¡°Enough! The most important thing right now is to wait for rk¡¯s surgery to be over. We can discuss the restter.¡±
With that, Cyrus¡® icy gaze fell on N, his eyes shing with hostility.
Cindy, already seething with anger, turned to Cyrus. ¡°Why wait? This woman has already made a fool of your son. How can you stand it? Cyrus, are you still a man?¡±
N lowered her gaze and remained silent. She didn¡¯t want to argue with Cindy at this moment. Even if she exined, Cindy wouldn¡¯t believe her.This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
Moreover, she had developed feelings for Damon and couldn¡¯t im to be entirely innocent.
Cindy¡¯s usations turned Cyrus¡® face ashen. He pped her hard. ¡°If you can¡¯t see what¡¯s important right now, get out of here! Stop making a scene while rk is in surgery!¡±
Cindy covered her face with her hand, staring at Cyrus in disbelief. Her eyes were filled with disappointment and resentment. ¡°Cyrus, I must have been blind to marry you!¡±
Cyrus looked at her, his eyes devoid of warmth.
Seeing that he wouldn¡¯t support her, Cindy shot a venomous look at N and said through gritted teeth, If anything happens to rk, I will never forgive you!¡±
Damon stepped in front of N, his gaze icy. ¡°Then it depends on whether you have the ability to do anything to her.¡±
Facing Damon¡¯s sharp gaze, Cindy scoffed and fell silent.
CHAPTER 247
The corridor fell silent. Even the drop of a needle would have been audible.
After an indeterminate amount of time, the emergency room door finally swung open.
Cindy rushed forward to intercept the doctor. ¡°Doctor, how is my son?¡±
¡°There¡¯s no immediate danger to his life, but he may never be able to walk again. Please be prepared for that,¡± the doctor replied.
¡°What?¡± Cindy staggered back, her eyes wide with disbelief and fear. She grabbed the doctor¡¯s hand desperately. ¡°Doctor, he¡¯s my only son. You have to save him!¡±
If rk were to be disabled, he¡¯d lose any chance of inheriting the Sumner Group. Richard would never hand over thepany to someone unable to walk.
The doctor pushed her hand away and shook his head. ¡°I¡¯ve done all I can. The patient will be moved to a regr ward soon, You can visit him there.¡±
Cindy spun around to face N and charged at her. ¡°N, you wretched woman! You¡¯ve done this to my son. I won¡¯t let you get away with it!¡±
Before she could reach N, Damon stepped in and blocked her path. He stood between them, preventing any harm froming to N.
Cindy was so agitated that sheshed out at Damon, trying to p him.
Cyrus¡® face turned pale as he quickly grabbed her.
¡°Are yo
re you out of your mind?¡± Cyrus demanded.
Cindy shook him off, her eyes red. ¡°Yes, I¡¯m mad! My son is crippled, and I can¡¯t even vent my frustration? It¡¯s all N¡¯s fault. I should never have let her marry rk. I regret it so much!¡±
She copsed onto the floor, tears streaming down her face. She cried and pounded her chest like a mad woman. rk was her only child, herst hope for the future. Seeing him turned into a cripple was more painful than death.
Cyrus grabbed her and pulled her up, his voice stern. ¡°Go see rk in the ward first. We¡¯ll deal with the leg issueter.¡±
With that, he dragged Cindy away.
Damon turned to N, who had remained silent, and said softly, ¡°Don¡¯t me yourself too much. This isn¡¯t your fault.¡±
N took a deep breath and looked up at Damon. ¡°Uncle Damon, this wasn¡¯t an ident. Someone tried to kill me.¡±
When the van charged at her, it had shown no signs of slowing down. If anything, it had elerated. The intention was clear.
¡°I¡¯ll look into it. If it turns out to be deliberate, I¡¯ll find out who¡¯s behind it,¡± Damon assured her.
¡°Thank you, Uncle Damon,¡± N replied.
¡°Let¡¯s go to the ward,¡± Damon said.
As they reached the ward, they saw two police officers standing at the door. When they noticed N and Damon, they approached them.
¡°Ms. Jayston, we need to take your statement regarding this morning¡¯s ident. Is this a good time for you?¡± one of the officers asked.
N pressed her lips together, her voice hoarse. ¡°Yes. Is it alright to do it here?¡±
¡°That¡¯s fine,¡± the officer answered.
The officers and N took a seat on a bench outside the ward, and the questioning began.
No one noticed that Cyrus¡® face momentarily darkened
After the statement was taken, which took about half ah hour, N couldn¡¯t help but ask, ¡°By the way, was the driver who caused the ident arrested?¡±
¡°The driver died on the spot. Tests showed that he had alcohol in his system, so he was likely driving under the influence, which caused him to lose control of the vehicle,¡± the officer replied.
Property belongs to N?vel(D)r/ama.Org.
CHAPTER 248
N suggested, ¡°I think he almed the van at me deliberately. This might not have been an ident.¡± The two officers exchanged a nce before one of them addressed her. ¡°That¡¯s a possibility we can¡¯t rule out, but we¡¯ll need to wait for the investigation results: From what we know now, the most likely cause is drunk driving. Have you had any recent conflicts with anyone?¡±
N thought for a moment, then shook her head. ¡°Not that I can think of.¡±
¡°Understood. We¡¯ll investigate that possibility further. If you remember anything else, please let us know,¡± the officer replied.
¡°Alright, thank you,¡± N said.
After the officers left, N couldn¡¯t help but rey the details of the van charging at her;
Could this really have been an ident? But¡ who would drink in the early morning?
After waiting outside the ward for a while and confirming that rk¡¯s condition had stabilized, Damon wanted to take N home to rest.
However, she refused, ¡°I¡¯m not tired, I want to stay here and wait for him to wake up.¡±
rk had lost his legs saving her. There was no way she could think of resting now.
Damon frowned and said coldly, ¡°You¡¯re in no condition to stay here. I¡¯ll have someone guard the ward door and notify you as soon as he wakes up.¡±
¡°No. I can manage myself,¡± N declined.
Her detached and distant expression made Damon¡¯s heart sink. He crouched down to her level and spoke firmly. ¡°Even if you stay here, you can¡¯t do anything. You should go back-¡±
N interrupted. ¡°Uncle Damon, rk lost his legs saving me. Even if I went back, I wouldn¡¯t be able to sleep. Besides, I¡¯m feeling very unsettled right now. Can you let me stay here quietly for a while?¡±
Damon was silent for a few seconds, then said, ¡°Alright. I¡¯ll stay here with you.¡±
With that, Damon sat down next to her. The familiar scent of pine from him filled the air as N leaned against the cold wall. Her eyes were half¨Cclosed, lost in thought.
Cindy, watching from the side, was infuriated by the sight.
These two were unbelievably shameless!
It wasn¡¯t until after 11:00 p.m. that rk finally woke up.
Cindy was the first to notice. Her face lit up with excitement as she rushed over. ¡®rk, you¡¯re awake! Is there anywhere you feel difort?¡±
Her voice choked up as she spoke. Just thinking about rk never walking again felt like having her heart sliced with a knife, sending waves of dull pain through her.
¡°Mom, how is N? Is she alright?¡± rk asked.
+25
When rk¡¯s first concern was N, Cindy¡¯s expression darkened. ¡°You care about her? Don¡¯t you know that-¡±
¡°Enough! rk has just woken up. Don¡¯t start with these Irrelevant matters!¡± Cyrus interrupted, his gaze
cold.
He didn¡¯t want to add to rk¡¯s stress by bringing up his disability so soon after waking up.
N and Damon approached the bedside.
N looked down at rk and said softly, ¡°I¡¯m fine.¡± This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
Worry shed in rk¡¯s eyes when he saw her clothes stained with blood. ¡°Are you injured? Why is there so much blood on your clothes?¡±
¡°All the blood is from you. I¡¯m not injured,¡± N answered.
rk visibly rxed. ¡°That¡¯s good.¡±
Noting Damon standing beside N, rk said, ¡°Uncle Damon, thank you foring to see me, I know you¡¯re busy with work, so you don¡¯t need to stay.¡±
Damon¡¯s expression remained neutral. ¡°It¡¯s fine. I¡¯ll take her hometer.¡±
rk¡¯s already pale face turned even darker. ¡°Uncle Damon, N is my wife. I¡¯ll arrange for someone to take her home. You don¡¯t need to worry about it.¡±
Before Damon could respond, Cindy sneered. ¡°Damon, even though rk is bedridden, Cyrus and I are here. It¡¯s not your ce to interfere in our family matters.¡±
¡°Are you sure you want to argue in the hospital room?¡± Damon¡¯s gaze was devoid of any warmth.
Cindy ground her teeth. Considering rk¡¯s condition, she refrained from saying more, but her anger was still evident.
CHAPTER 249
Dad, Mom, it¡¯s gettingte. N can stay here with me. You should head home and get some rest. Come back tomorrow morning.¡± rk said,
Cindy had initially wanted to stay and care for rk, but upon realizing that his condition was caused by N, she agreed to rk¡¯s request. ¡°Alright. I¡¯lle back tomorrow.¡±
After they left, N turned to Damon: ¡°Uncle Damon, thank you for today. You should go home and rest. Let me walk you out.¡±
Damon frowned, his demeanor growing colder. ¡°You¡¯re exhausted too. I¡¯ll arrange for a caregiver toe soon. I¡¯ll take you home.¡±
¡°No. I¡¯ll stay here to take care of him tonight,¡± N insisted.
Understanding her stubbornness, Damon nodded after a few seconds of silence. ¡°Alright.¡±
He turned and walked toward the door, and N got up to see him off.
When she returned, she noticed rk¡¯s expression had changed slightly. Pretending not to notice, she sat down by the bedside.
After a long silence, rk finally spoke. ¡°N, can you stop being so cold toward me?¡±
N looked at him calmly. ¡°rk, I¡¯m grateful for what you did, but things can¡¯t go back to how they were.¡± rk¡¯s face fell, and he forced a smile. ¡°You still want a divorce, don¡¯t you?¡±
N nodded. ¡°Yes. I¡¯m not giving up on the idea of divorce, but I¡¯ll take care of you until you recover.¡±
¡°You know that¡¯s not what I want,¡± rk said.
¡°After learning about your infidelity and what your father did to my family, how can I just ignore everything and stay with you?¡± N asked.
rk lowered his gaze, his face as pale as a ghost. He had hoped that N would soften because he had saved her, but he was mistaken. She had always been indifferent to those she didn¡¯t care about.
He closed his eyes and spent a sleepless night.
The next morning, Cindy arrived with chicken soup.
Seeing her, N got up and said, ¡°I¡¯m going to rest at home now. I¡¯lle back in the evening to take care of you.¡±
Before she could finish, Cindy sneered. ¡°How can you sleep knowing that rk is like this because of you?!¡±
N ignored her and walked out of the room after informing rk. As she left, she could still hear Cindy cursing her.
N didn¡¯t slow down, acting as if she didn¡¯t hear anything.
Outside the hospital, she saw Damon¡¯s car parked nearby. She tried to ignore it, but he got out and stopped her.
¡°I¡¯ll give you a ride home,¡± Damon offered.
¡°Uncle Damon, there¡¯s no need. I can take a cab, N refused.
¡°You choose¨Ceither you get in the car yourself, or I¡¯ll help you into it. It¡¯s up to you,¡± Damon insisted.
N bit her lip. After a few seconds of silence, she opened the passenger door and got in.
On the way home, neither of them spoke.
When the car stopped at the entrance of the apartmentplex, Damon turned to find N still lost in thought. His brow furrowed slightly.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
¡°What are you thinking about?¡± he asked.
N snapped back to reality and, after a moment¡¯s hesitation, said, ¡°Uncle Damon, I still feel that this incident wasn¡¯t an ident.¡±
Damon looked at her. Her hair was disheveled, her face pale, and her eyes were tired, but her gaze betrayed determination that made him feel a pang of sympathy.
¡°You¡¯re exhausted. Go home, take a shower, and get some rest. Leave the rest to me. Don¡¯t think about it for now,¡± Damon coaxed.
N bit her lip. ¡°Uncle Damon, you don¡¯t believe me, do you?¡±
¡°I do believe you, but the most important thing is for you to rest right now,¡± Damon reassured.
His expression was serious, and there was no trace of insincerity. He truly believed in her.
For some reason, N felt a lump in her throat. She looked away, trying to hold back her tears.
¡°Thank you, Uncle Damon,¡± she thanked him.
After the ident, she had felt lost and helpless until Damon¡¯s assurance that he believed her. It was the first time she felt a sense of relief. Even if she wasn¡¯t sure herself, Damon was willing to trust her.
¡°Go home and rest. Don¡¯t worry about anything else for now. There will be a solution,¡± Damonforted:
CHAPTER 250
After watching N enter the apartmentplex, Damon left.
On his way back to thepany, he was deep in thought about how to ensure that rk and N would divorce smoothly.
Since rk¡¯s legs were now disabled from saving N, he might use this as leverage to keep her with him. Damon¡¯s gaze grew colder as he considered this possibility.
Meanwhile, in Cyrus¡® study¡
¡°Make sure that driver keeps his mouth shut. If this leads back to me, I won¡¯t let you off!¡± he barked.
A man in his 30s, with his head lowered, stood before Cyrus¡® desk and replied, ¡°Mr. Sumner, don¡¯t worry He was dying anyway. He¡¯ll definitely keep quiet for the sake of his family.¡±
Cyrus nodded, his eyes filled with calction. ¡°Good. Make sure the money for his family is in cash. Leave no evidence.¡±
¡°Understood!¡± the man answered.
After his subordinate left, Cyrus leaned back in his chair with a cold smirk.
In the evening, N arrived at the hospital with a thermos of soup, only to hear rk¡¯s furious shouts from inside the room.
¡°Get out! I don¡¯t believe this! I can¡¯t be disabled! Get everyone out!¡±This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
The door to the room was flung open, and Cindy and Jordyn walked out with red, swollen eyes.
Upon seeing N, Jordyn¡¯s eyes shed with hatred.
¡°N, because of you, rk will never walk again. Are you happy now?¡± she demanded.
N found it strange that a mistress would have the audacity to question her. Not wanting to argue in the hospital hallway and give others a show, she ignored Jordyn and walked into the room.
As soon as she stepped inside, a cup shattered at her feet.
¡°I said, get out! I don¡¯t want to see anyone right now!¡± rk growled.
When rk saw that it was N, his angry expression momentarily froze. He then turned his head away and said coldly, ¡°I don¡¯t want to see you either. Can you leave me alone for a while?¡±
N pursed her lips, carefully avoided the broken pieces, and sat down by the bedside.
¡°I understand that it¡¯s hard for you to ept this right now and that you might regret saving me. But nothing can be changed now. Once your injuries improve, we can go abroad and see if there¡¯s any hope for treatment,¡± N assured him.
rk smiled bitterly and said slowly, ¡°N, I¡¯ll never regret saving you. To me, you¡¯re more important than these legs. I even feel fortunate that I was able to save you that day. It¡¯s just that I need time to ept the fact that I might never walk again.
N looked down, her hands clenching Involuntarily, her gaze filled with struggle.
With resignation, rk continued. ¡°You¡¯ve always disliked me and wanted a divorce. Now that I¡¯m disabled, I don¡¯t have the right to keep you with me, and I don¡¯t want to burden you. Once I¡¯m a bit better, we¡¯ll go through with the divorce.¡±
N was silent for a moment before responding. ¡°Alright.¡±
Disbelief flickered in rk¡¯s eyes at her response, and he gripped the bedclothes tightly. He hadn¡¯t expected that even after losing the use of his legs for N, she still wanted a divorce.
¡°About the document you sent me earlier¡ Can you, for the sake of me saving you, not send it to the police?¡± rk asked.
When N looked up at him, he hesitated but added, ¡°I know my father did some terrible things to the Jaystons, but he¡¯s still my biological father. I can¡¯t just let him go to prison.¡±
N opened the thermos and poured a bowl of chicken soup for rk.
CHAPTER 251
¡°Drink the soup first. I¡¯ll think about what you said,¡± N replied.
¡°N, my dad said that as long as you don¡¯t hand the evidence over to the police, you can ask for whateverpensation you want,¡± rk said.
N ced the bowl on the table, her expression unreadable as she looked at rk. ¡°I said I would consider it. Focus on your recovery. I¡¯ll visit you again tomorrow.¡±
After N left, rk called Cyrus, frustration evident in his voice. ¡°She still hasn¡¯t agreed.¡±
Cyrus sneered, ¡°I told you the self¨Cpity trick wouldn¡¯t work, but you wouldn¡¯t listen. Are you finally giving up?¡±
Earlier, Cyrus had nned to kill N outright, but rk suggested staging a self¨Cpity act, pretending that he had been disabled while saving her. This was supposed to soften her heart and persuade her to destroy the evidence. But it had all been for nothing.
¡°I didn¡¯t expect her to be so heartless. Even with my legs ruined, she won¡¯t relent. She wants a divorce and won¡¯t destroy the evidence,¡± rkined.
He was filled with anger and couldn¡¯t understand why N¡¯s reaction was so different from what he had anticipated.
¡°It¡¯s because you were too indecisive. I¡¯ve already got someone watching her. If she really intends to turn the evidence over to the police, I¡¯ll make sure she disappearspletely,¡± Cyrus stated.
rk took a deep breath, his eyes shing with a hint of ruthlessness.
If the evidence was handed over to the police, not only would Cyrus face jail time, but he would also be Implicated. Since N was so merciless, showing no sentiment, he had to think about himself.
¡°Alright,¡± rk said.
After leaving the hospital, N made a call as soon as she got into the car.
¡°Mr. Monaghan, how¡¯s the investigation going?¡± she asked.
A raspy voice replied on the other end, ¡°Ms. Jayston, the driver was terminally ill and had only three months left to live. Yesterday, his mother took his children and left Saintornia. Now, only his wife remains in the city. I also found out that their lease expires next month, but she hasn¡¯t renewed it, as if she ns to leave once his case is settled.¡±
Contemtion shed in N¡¯s eyes as she said, ¡°The fact that his family left and didn¡¯t renew the lease is not surprising. With no ie, it¡¯s normal for them to return to their hometown. What¡¯s crucial is to find out if there has been any significant influx of money recently.¡±
*That will take some time. If someone is backing him, they¡¯re likely paying in cash rather than through transfers,¡± Pete replied.
¡°Alright. I suspect this incident might be connected to rk and Cyrus. It would be best to check for any unusual expenses on their part as well,¡± N reminded him.
Given that she had just threatened rk with evidence to force a divorce and then the ident
happened so conveniently with rk arriving right on time, it seemed too coincidental.
Moreover, after rk became paralyzed, instead of using his condition to coerce her into staying, he surprisingly agreed to the divorce. He wasn¡¯t the type to selflessly sacrifice like that.
That was why, when rk agreed to the divorce so readily, N decided to go along with his suggestion. If this was connected to rk, he would likely reveal his true intentions soon.
*Understood. I¡¯ll notify you as soon as I have any updates,¡± Pete answered.
After hanging up. N tightened her grip on the phone slightly.This belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
Besides the ident, there was also the matter of the evidence. She had asked Pete, who confirmed it wasn¡¯t him who sent it to Vrie.
Who else could be helping her from behind? Could it be Damon?
CHAPTER 252
However, Cyrus was Damon¡¯s older brother. If Damon knew about this, he probably wouldn¡¯t help her. After thinking for a while withouting up with any clear answers, N decided not to dwell on it any further and nned to find an opportunity to ask Damon directly.
The next morning, N went to the hospital to visit rk.
When she opened the door to the ward, she saw Jordyn sitting by rk¡¯s bedside, feeding him chicken soup.
She paused and said indifferently, ¡°Looks like I¡¯m interrupting.¡±
There was a hint of provocation in Jordyn¡¯s eyes, but she quickly set the bowl down, stood up, and said awkwardly, ¡°No, no. Since you¡¯re here, I¡¯ll leave now. I¡¯lle back to see rk after you¡¯re gone¡¡±
Before N could respond, rk spoke up. ¡°Jordyn, please step outside. I need to talk to her.¡±
Jordyn nodded. ¡°Alright. I¡¯ll be right outside. Call me if you need anything.
As she passed by N, she whispered, ¡°N, you won¡¯t win against me.¡±
N smiled. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ve never intended topete with you.¡±
A man who cheated should be considered a treasure only by someone like her.
Once Jordyn left, the room fell into silence.
After a while, rk spoke in a detached tone. ¡°N, I know you don¡¯t want to be here and you¡¯re busy with work. From now on, Jordyn can take care of me.¡±
N frowned. If rk hadn¡¯t been injured while saving her, she wouldn¡¯t havee. Besides, she had toe to take care of him to avoid how Cindy might twist things.
¡°I¡¯m your wife, and you saved me this time.¡±
¡°Hah.¡± rk let out a lightugh, with a hint of sarcasm in his eyes. ¡°Even if I saved you and lost my legs because of it, your attitude toward me hasn¡¯t changed, has it?¡±
¡°You did save me, but that doesn¡¯t erase what you did by cheating. I¡¯ve given you chances before, but you never handled things with Jordyn and her child properly. Instead, you let her continue to unt herself in front of me, didn¡¯t you?¡± N retorted.
What was more important was whether rk genuinely wanted to save her or if it was all part of his scheme N hadn¡¯t figured that out yet.
If this was truly an ident, she would stay and take care of him. If it was a scheme, she wouldn¡¯t be so merciful.
rk was rendered speechless by her words.
After a long pause, he finally said, ¡°I don¡¯t expect you to stay with me now. I just hope you¡¯ll spare my father. But you won¡¯t agree. You want a man in his 50s to go to prison. How can you be so heartless?¡±
His tone carried a hint of usation.
N sneered. ¡°Heartless? Why don¡¯t you ask your father why he used such underhanded tactics against Harris Pharmaceuticals?¡±
¡°I know this is hard for you to ept right now, but we can¡¯t go back to the past. Compensation is what matters most for you and your father, I can keep looking for a kidney donation for him. He¡¯ll recover and be discharged soon.This belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
¡°Then, I¡¯ll give him some money to start a new business. Maybe he can create another Harris
Pharmaceuticals. Handing over the evidence to the police will only lead to mutual destruction. You won¡¯t get anypensation,¡± rk coaxed.
¡°rk, you¡¯ve threatened me with the kidney donation so many times. In the end, you gave it to someone else. As forpensation, I don¡¯t need it!¡± N snapped.
rk looked at her with a hint of resignation as he said, ¡°N, maybe I¡¯ve protected you too well over the years, which is why you¡¯re still so naive.¡±
CHAPTER 253
¡°Only what you can actually get is truly important. Do you understand? There are so many injustices in this world. Not everyone receives an apology or justice. Justice doesn¡¯t align with the truth¨Cit aligns with power,¡± rk said.
N looked at him with cold eyes and replied, ¡°So, ording to you, I should just ept your so¨Ccalledpensation as if it were charity and act like nothing ever happened?¡±
¡°I hope you understand what¡¯s most important for you right now. Be realistic. Pursuing fairness has little real meaning,¡± rk borated.
N took a deep breath: ¡°As long as I believe it¡¯s meaningful, that¡¯s enough.¡±
Upon seeing her firm expression, rk¡¯s gaze darkened. ¡°So you¡¯re determined to hand over that evidence to the police, no matter what?¡±
¡°I said I need time to think,¡± N insisted.
Finally, thest trace of warmth left rk¡¯s eyes. He looked at N with a nk expression and said, ¡± Understood. You can go now.¡±
Seeing him like this made N feel uneasy.
¡°Take care of yourself. If you really can¡¯t stand up in the future, I will stay by your side and take care of you, ¡± she said.
rk didn¡¯t say anything, his expression as cold as ever.This belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
N said nothing more and left the room.
Once she got into the car, she thought for a while and decided to call Vrie to meet.
In the ward¡
rk stared out the window for a while before picking up his phone to call Cyrus. ¡°Dad, let¡¯s proceed with what you suggested.¡±
After finishing the call, he hung up quickly, fearing he would regret it if he waited even a second longer.
From this incident, he had already seen that N had no feelings for him. He wouldn¡¯t hesitate any longer.
Jordyn walked into the ward and noticed rk¡¯s gloomy expression. She paused momentarily.
¡°rk¡ What¡¯s wrong? Did you have a fight with Ms. Jayston?¡± she asked.
¡°Stay out of things that don¡¯t concern you!¡± rk snapped.
Jordyn stiffened. ¡®Alright. I understand.¡±
She sat down by the bedside, her voice soft. ¡°The chicken soup will get cold if you don¡¯t drink it. Let me feed you.¡±
rk nced at her impatiently. ¡°I¡¯m not in the mood to eat. You can go now.¡±
¡°But I spent hours making this soup¡ You- Jordyn began.
¡°Get out!¡± rk¡¯s expression suddenly darkened, bing terrifying.
Frightened, Jordyn instinctively took a few steps back, her face pale. She bit her lip, eyes filled with hurt. Alright. If you don¡¯t want me here, I¡¯ll leave¡.¡±
With that, she turned and ran out of the room in tears.
rk¡¯s expression remained unchanged, showing no concern for Jordyn¡¯s feelings.
Vrie had been waiting in the agreed¨Cupon restaurant for over an hour, but N still hadn¡¯t shown up. Unable to wait any longer, she called N, only to find that N¡¯s phone was turned off.
Frowning, Vrie felt an uneasy premonition. N shouldn¡¯t have turned off her phone while she was en
route.
Over the next few minutes, Vrie made several more calls, all of which went straight to voicemail. Her heart sank as she feared something might have happened to N.
Just as she was about to call the police, she remembered that she would need to wait 24 hours before reporting a missing person.
After a moment of hesitation, she decided to call Damon instead.
Since Damon had previously asked her about something N needed, reaching out to him might be more effective than contacting rk.
As soon as the call connected, Vrie said quickly, ¡°Mr. Summer, N was supposed to meet me earlier! I waited for over an hour, and she still hasn¡¯t arrived. Can you have your people help look for her?¡±
CHAPTER 254
Damon was in a meeting when he suddenly stood up, his voice low and urgent. ¡°I understand. I¡¯ll have people look into it right away.¡±
Spencer, who was nearby, immediately approached him. ¡°Mr. Sumner, what¡¯s going on?¡±
¡°Dismiss the meeting. We¡¯ll continue tomorrow. Contact the two people I asked you to arrange to protect N immediately. She¡¯s missing.¡± Damon instructed.
Spencer was astonished, realizing the seriousness of the situation. ¡°I¡¯ll handle it right away.¡±
As soon as Damon returned to his office, Spencer knocked on the door with a grim expression and said,¡± Mr. Sumner, the two guards reported that Ms. Jayston¡¯s car has been heading out of town. I¡¯ve already asked them to try and intercept it.¡±
¡°Alright. Send me her current location,¡± Damon requested.
¡°Got it,¡± Spencer answered.
After sending the location, Spencer¡¯s phone rang. He answered it, and his face turned ashen as he listened.
¡°Mr. Sumner¡ the person in the car¡ isn¡¯t Ms. Jayston..¡± he said.
Damon¡¯s eyes widened sharply, and he exuded a chilling aura. ¡°Who is it then?¡±
¡°It¡¯s a taxi driver. When Ms. Jayston was paying at a gas station, someone gave him money to drive off in her car. Ms. Jayston is now missing.¡± Spencer replied.
¡®Useless! You couldn¡¯t even keep track of one person! Get the gas station¡¯s surveince footage right now! *Damon barked.
Meanwhile, in an abandoned warehouse on the outskirts of the city¡.
N regained consciousness. She found herself tied to a chair with tape over her mouth and struggled instinctively.
The warehouse door opened, and Cyrus walked in with four bodyguards.
One of them approached N and ripped the tape from her mouth.
¡°Cyrus Summer, what are you trying to do?¡± N asked
Cyrus smirked coldly, skipping pleasantries and going straight to the point. ¡°Give me the documents you sent to rk, and I¡¯ll let you go.¡±
¡°Do you think that¡¯s possible?¡± N looked at him coldly, her eyes showing no fear.
¡°N, you and rk were once married, and you even called me ¡®Dad¡®. I don¡¯t want to kill you. Just give me the documents, and we can still be a family,¡± Cyrus coaxed.
¡°A family?¡± N¡¯s expression was filled with disdain. ¡°You caused the bankruptcy of Harris Pharmaceuticals and left my father waiting for a kidney transnt in the hospital. Do you really think I can act like nothing happened and be part of your family?¡±
Upon seeing that N wouldn¡¯t cooperate, Cyrus¡® smile turned icy. ¡°Since you refuse to cooperate, I¡¯ll have to ensure you disappearpletely.
N¡¯s eyes shed with panic. She raised her voice. ¡°Are you trying to kill me to cover your tracks?¡±Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
Cyrus nodded. ¡°Yes, I¡¯m going to kill you. Even if you die, I¡¯ll still find the documents. It was your refusal to cooperate that forced this situation. We could have settled this peacefully, but you insist on opposing me.
¡°Do you realize you¡¯remitting kidnapping and murder? You¡¯re breaking thew!¡± N eximed.
Cyrus¡® eyes showed no fear, only pity. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. You¡¯ll simply disappear. No one will know you¡¯re dead, and no one will find your body.¡±
With that, Cyrus¡® men moved forward, dragging N from the chair and pulling her toward the door.
¡°You¡¯ll get what¡¯sing to you!¡± N cried.
Cyrus sneered. ¡°Hahaha! ¡®Getting what¡¯sing to me? If that were true, I would have been caught when I dealt with Harrison. You¡¯re so naive to believe in such things. I suggest you pray for a better fate in your next life and avoid such misfortune!¡±
Unnoticed by everyone, a small, square object inside N¡¯s clothes blinked faintly.
CHAPTER 255
As soon as they reached the door, a dozen police officers surged in.
The situation unfolded so quickly that Cyrus was still in shock, his face reflecting fear and anger, when he was pinned to the ground.
¡°Let me go! Do you know who I am?!¡± Cyrus growled.
¡°No matter who you are, you¡¯re under arrest for kidnapping. We are taking you into custody!¡± one of the officers dered.
Cyrus red at N with a look of deep hatred. ¡°N, you set me up!¡±
He had been very discreet, keeping his ns to kidnap N a secret from everyone except his trusted associates. The swift arrival of the police meant that N must have known about the kidnapping in advance and set a trap for him.
His eyes burned with rage. It was as if he wanted to tear her apart.
N, pale and frightened, looked at him with wide eyes. ¡°You¡¯re insane! You¡¯re the one who kidnapped me. How could I possibly force you to do anything?¡±
Yet, Cyrus caught a fleeting glint of satisfaction and coldness in her eyes.
¡°Just wait! I won¡¯t let you get away with this!¡± he snarled.
N hid behind one of the officers, looking innocent and fearful.
Furious and realizing he had been caught off guard, Cyrus was soon taken away with his men.
As N exited the warehouse, Pete hurried over to her. ¡°Ms. Jayston, are you alright?¡±
N shook her head. ¡°I¡¯m fine. Mr. Monaghan, please take me to the police station. I need to give my statement.¡±
Pete nodded. ¡°Of course.¡±
Once they were in the car, Pete expressed his concern. ¡°Ms. Jayston, we were fortunate that the police arrived in time. Otherwise, things could have turned out very differently¡¡±
N smiled, no longer disying the fear and anxiety she had shown earlier when the police arrived.
¡°Mr. Monaghan, I trust you and appreciate that you warned me about Cyrus ns to kidnap me,¡± she replied.
Pete looked somewhat resigned. He had intended to advise her to be cautious of Cyrus, not to encourage her to set a trap that would add kidnapping charges to Cyrus¡® crimes.
¡°Ms. Jayston, is it really worth risking your life like this? If you had just handed over the evidence to the police, Cyrus would have ended up in prison anyway.¡± Pete asked.
N nced down for a moment before responding softly. ¡°It¡¯s worth it to me. I consulted awyer, and the evidence would only lead to an economic crime charge. With some influence from the Sumners, Cyrus might have avoided jail time altogether. I want to ensure that he faces absolute certainty.¡±
Pete sighed. ¡°You were lucky this time. I hope you won¡¯t risk your life like this again. Your life is the most important thing.¡±
¡°I understand. Thank you, Mr. Monaghan,¡± N said.
As Pete started the car, he added, ¡°I¡¯m still investigating who sent you that document and will let you know once I find out.¡±
¡°Thank you for your hard work,¡± N said.
¡°Anytime,¡± Pete replied.
Pete left after taking N to the police station.
The Sumners quickly learned of Cyrus¡® arrest and arrived at the station while N was still giving her statement. They attempted to bail Cyrus out but were unsessful.
As N finished her statement and walked out of the room, she saw Richard, Marie, and Cindy among others.This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
The moment they saw her, their faces turned grim.
Cindy, in particr, rushed up and pped N. ¡°You jinx! You called the police and had your father arrested! Are you crazy?! You¡¯d better exin to the police that this is all a misunderstanding!¡±
CHAPTER 256
N intercepted Cindy¡¯s hand in mid¨Cair, preventing the p. She fixed Cindy with an icy stare and spoke slowly. ¡°I have only one father. He¡¯s in the hospital now, waiting for a kidney because of your husband¡¯s scheming, which led to hispany¡¯s bankruptcy.¡±
Cindy felt a pang of guilt under N¡¯s cold gaze. She pulled her hand away and snapped, ¡°I¡¯ve never seen anyone send their own father¨Cinw to the police! You¡¯d better clear things up with them right now, or i won¡¯t let you off the hook!¡±
N had always known Cindy was unreasonable, but she hadn¡¯t expected her to be this thoughtless. ¡°Do you realize kidnapping is a crime? And he even nned to kill me. I¡¯ve already given the police the recordings. Do you think this is just a child¡¯s game?¡±
Cindy froze. Before she could respond, Richard, who had been silent, spoke up. ¡°Enough of thismotion at the police station!¡±
Cindy bit her lip in frustration. With a final venomous nce at N, she retreated to stand behind Richard and Marie..
Richard turned his prating gaze on N. ¡°As expected of Harrison¡¯s daughter. I misjudged you before.
N wasn¡¯t intimidated. She smiled. ¡°I should be the one saying that. I misjudged the Sumners.¡± She was disgusted by the fact that she had married rk after Cyrus caused the downfall of the Jaystons. She refused to believe the Sumners were unaware of Cyrus¡® actions against Harris Pharmaceuticals.
Richard sneered. ¡°Young and impulsive. You¡¯re bound to suffer the consequences.¡±
With that, he turned and left.
N took a deep breath, knowing this was just the beginning and more challenges were ahead.
After leaving the police station, Richard immediately instructed hiswyer to discuss how to bail Cyrus
out.
Upon reviewing the case, thewyer looked concerned. The part about using underhanded methods to bankrupt Harris Pharmaceuticals is rtively easy to handle. The main issue is Ms. Jayston¡¯s kidnapping. If the victim refuses to forgive, it can result in a severe sentence.¡±
Cindy gnashed her teeth in anger. ¡°From her behavior at the police station, she clearly has no intention of forgiving him!¡±
Richard shot her a stern look. ¡°Be quiet!¡±
After consulting with thewyer for a while, Richard decided that thewyer should speak with N. If she agreed to sign a letter of forgiveness, it would be ideal. If not, they might have to resort to -unconventional methods.
Just as thewyer left, Damon returned.
Marie¡¯s eyes were red when she saw him.
¡°Damon, you must help your brother. He¡¯s never faced anything like this in his life! If he¡¯s really sentenced, I won¡¯t be able to go on,¡± Marie cried.
On the way to the Sumner residence, Damon had already heard about Cyrus¡® arrest for kidnapping N. His expression remained indifferent, revealing nothing of his thoughts.
¡°Dad, Mom, did you know about Cyrus¡® scheme to bankrupt Harris Pharmaceuticals? Damon asked.This belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
Marie was taken aback by the question and then frowned. ¡°Does it matter whether we knew or not? The most important thing now is to find a way to get your brother out.¡±
Damon had connections with the police and might be able to secure Cyrus¡® release.
¡°Mom, he¡¯s now implicated in kidnapping. The police won¡¯t release him,¡® Damon stated.
Seeing Damon¡¯s indifference, Marie looked at him in disbelief. ¡°He¡¯s your elder brother. Are you really going to just watch him get arrested?¡±
CHAPTER 257
¡°Even if he¡¯s my older brother, it doesn¡¯t change the fact that he kidnapped N,¡± Damon replied firmly.
Cindy¡¯s eyes shed with anger due to Damon¡¯s unwavering defense of N. ¡°Damon, you¡¯re defending N because you like her. She¡¯s just a woman¨Chow can she be more important than your own brother?!¡±
¡°What?!¡± Marie turned sharply to look at Cindy, her face a mask of disbelief. ¡°What nonsense are you spouting?! Have you lost your mind?!¡±
How could Damon possibly like N? She was his nephew¡¯s wife!
Richard¡¯s expression grew grim, his gaze toward Cindy sharp.
Cindy, now resolute, bit her lip and continued. ¡°Mom, I overheard Damon confess his feelings for N when I visited her in the hospital once. I didn¡¯t tell you before because I was worried you couldn¡¯t handle it. But seeing Damon now ignoring his brother¡¯s well¨Cbeing for the sake of an outsider, I couldn¡¯t keep it to myself anymore!¡±
Marie took a step back, copsing onto the sofa, her expression dazed.
Damon liked N? How could he like N?
She recalled rk¡¯sment about Damon¡¯s feelings for a married woman. She hadn¡¯t understood it at the time, but now it made sense!
Steadying herself, she looked at Damon with a mix of disappointment and anger. ¡°Do you really like N?¡±
His gaze was steady as he replied seriously, ¡°Yes, I do,
Marie pped Damon across the face, her eyes red with rage, nearly copsing from the effort.
The rmed housekeeper, Catherine Talbot, quickly stepped forward to support her wobbling figure.
¡°Madam, your health is important. The doctor said you shouldn¡¯t get angry,¡± Catherine reminded her gently.
Marie shoved her away. ¡°How can I not be angry?!¡±
She turned to Damon, her body trembling with fury. ¡°Get down on your knees! I introduced you to so many suitable women, but you didn¡¯t show any interest!
¡°If you liked a woman from a good family, even if she wasn¡¯t a perfect match, I might have epted it. But you¡¯re in love with your nephew¡¯s wife. Are you trying to drive your father and me to our graves?!¡±
Damon knelt with a straight back, his expression stoic and unchanging.
His silence only fueled Marie¡¯s anger. She pounded her cane on the tile floor repeatedly.
¡°From now on, you¡¯re not to see that woman again! Even if she weren¡¯t married to rk, I¡¯d never approve of you being with her. Not unless I¡¯m dead!¡± Marie demanded.
Damon looked up, his voice steady. ¡°Mom, I won¡¯t stop pursuing her.¡±
Marie raised her cane and struck him on the back, shouting, ¡°Say it again!¡±
¡°I said, I won¡¯t stop pursuing her!¡± Damon repeated.
The cane came down again, and Damon echoed his deration.This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
After numerous repetitions, Marie¡¯s face grew increasingly pale. Overwhelmed by her emotions, she suddenly cked out and fell backward.
¡°Mom!¡± Cindy screamed, rushing to catch Marie, her eyes filled with worry. ¡°Mom fainted! Call the family doctor!¡±
The living room erupted into chaos as the service staff and Cindy hurried to help Marie into a room and called the family doctor.
Soon, the only ones left in the living room were Damon, still kneeling, and Richard, who remained silent with a grim expression.
CHAPTER 258
¡°Do you really like her?¡± Richard¡¯s voice was authoritative and stern, carrying the weight of his position.
¡°Yes,¡± Damon answered,
Richard¡¯s eyes betrayed his irritation. ¡°Then you¡¯d better stop pursuing her, or the consequences will be more than the Jaystons can handle.¡±
N reporting Cyrus to the police had crossed Richard¡¯s bottom line. He couldn¡¯t allow rk to be associated with her any longer, nor let the Sumners be embarrassed.
Damon¡¯s gaze turned icy as he met Richard¡¯s eyes. ¡°Dad, If you go after the Jaystons, I¡¯ll go after the Sumner Group.¡±
The Sumner Group was Richard¡¯s lifelong achievement¨Chis pride and creation.
Richard¡¯s gaze red with anger. ¡°You really want to go against the Sumners for the sake of a woman?¡±
¡°Dad, it¡¯s not about going against you. It¡¯s about you interfering with my feelings,¡± Damon replied.
¡°If you were with any of the women your mother introduced, we wouldn¡¯t have said a word. But you know N is your nephew¡¯s wife, and you still choose to be involved with her. How can the Sumners hold their head high in the business world?¡± Richard demanded.
¡°I like her for who she is. I don¡¯t care what anyone else says,¡± Damon said inly.
Richard sneered. ¡°You don¡¯t care. You have your ownpany now, and I can¡¯t control you. If you truly want to be with her, then consider your mother and me dead. Never set foot in this house again!¡±
With that, he stood up and left.
After being unconscious for over an hour, Marie gradually regained consciousness. Her gaze swept around the bedroom, and when she didn¡¯t see Damon, disappointment flickered in her eyes.
¡°Where¡¯s Damon?¡± she asked.
Cindy frowned. She had been diligently caring for Marie, but as soon as Marie woke up, she asked for Damon without acknowledging Cindy¡¯s presence. It was as if Cindy hadn¡¯t been there at all.
Cindy snorted. ¡°Mom, don¡¯t bother looking. He left shortly after you fainted.¡±
Marie¡¯s face grew even paler, and she looked as though she might faint again.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
Catherine quickly interjected, ¡°Madam, Mr. Damon had to leave for work after receiving a call.¡±
Seeing Marie¡¯s color improve slightly, Catherine turned to Cindy with a look of dissatisfaction. ¡°Mrs. Summer, I take care of Madam Summer. With everything that¡¯s happened today, you must be exhausted. You should go home and rest.¡±
Cindy had only stayed to keep up appearances anyway. She nodded. ¡°Fine. If there¡¯s anything, just call me
at the vi.¡±
Catherine nodded. ¡°Sure.¡±
After Cindy left, Marle grew sorrowful. She looked at Catherine, her volce choked with emotion. ¡°How
+25
could Damon fall for N? There are so many women in Saintornia. Why would he choose his nephew¡¯s wife? And there were no signs of it before¡¡±
Catherine quickly handed Marie a handkerchief. ¡°Madam, try not to dwell on it right now. This isn¡¯t something that can be resolved quickly. The most important thing is to deal with Mr. Cyrus¡® situation first. After that, we can try to persuade Mr. Damon.¡±
Marie shook her head. ¡°I doubt I can persuade him. Since he was a child, if he wanted to do something. no one could change his mind. But if he really insists on being involved with N, I¡¯ll die in front of him!¡±
¡°Madam, please don¡¯t say such things. Moreover, Mr. Damon and N haven¡¯t done anything yet. There¡¯s still a chance to make things right,¡± Catherineforted.
¡°If she dares to be with Damon, I won¡¯t let her off!¡± Marie eximed.
The idea of N trying to seduce Damon was even harder for Marie to ept than the fact that N had sent Cyrus to the police. After all, Cyrus¡® actions had indeed led to the Jayston family¡¯s bankruptcy. While Marie was angry, she understood there was a reason behind it.
But Damon was her pride, and N¡¯s interest in him was shameless and audacious!
Seeing Marie¡¯s rage, Catherine realized she couldn¡¯t ept Damon¡¯s feelings for N and decided to stop trying to persuade her.
After leaving the Sumner residence, Damon drove directly to find N.
Upon arriving, he remained in the car, hesitant to get out.
He had guessed that N was involved in Cyrus¡® arrest and was somewhat angry about it.
CHAPTER 259
Damon was furious that N had taken such a dangerous action without consulting him.
On top of that, Cyrus had caused the Jaystons¡® bankruptcy, and Damon himself was a Sumner. He wasn¡¯t sure if N might also harbor some resentment toward him,
After sitting in the car for a long time, Damon was about to leave when he saw N walking out of her building in casual clothes, carrying two bags of trash. His gaze automatically settled on her, and his previously cold demeanor softened.
N noticed Damon¡¯s car as well and hesitated for a moment. After tossing the trash into the bin, she walked over to his car.
As she stopped a few steps from the car, the window on the driver¡¯s side rolled down. Their eyes met, and neither of them spoke for a while.
Finally, N bit her lip and spoke slowly. ¡°Uncle Damon, are you here¡ to reprimand me?*
Damon¡¯s gaze darkened, then he smirked. ¡°If I were here to reprimand you, do you think you¡¯d be standing here talking to me?¡±
N turned pale and found it difficult to meet his gaze, instinctively lowering her eyes. ¡°Then what brings you here?¡®
Seeing her evasive reaction, Damon frowned and abruptly opened the car door to get out.
N froze, a wave of panic rising in her chest. She instinctively wanted to step back, but Damon¡¯s deep voice stopped her. ¡°Don¡¯t move!¡±
N stiffened as Damon quickly approached her. His height cast a shadow over her, and the unique scent of pine surrounded her, like a closing in.
Her hands trembled at her sides, feeling an impending danger she couldn¡¯t escape. Damon¡¯s intimidating presence was overwhelming, and just his silence made her want to flee.
¡°Uncle Damon, you¡.¡± N began.
Damon¡¯s touch was cool as he gently lifted her chin,pelling her to meet his gaze. His dark nyes seemed to draw her in, and her eyes flickered with panic. She clutched the hem of her clothes tightly.
¡°You¡¯ve sent my brother to the police. Now everyone in the Sumners despises you, and rk probably won¡¯t help you. Did you ever think about what you¡¯d do if the Sumners retaliated against you and yourBelonging to N?velDrama.Org.
father?¡± Damon asked.
His tone was t, but N¡¯s eyes widened, and her body trembled slightly. She had only wanted to see Cyrus behind bars and hadn¡¯t considered the possibility of retaliation from the Sumners.
In truth, she hadn¡¯t dared to think about it, knowing how easily the Sumners could crush her.
She bit her lip hard and took a deep breath. ¡°No matter what, I need to seek justice.¡±
Upon seeing her determined expression, Damon¡¯s eyes red with anger, and he tightened his grip on her
chin.
could Damon fall for N? There are so many women in Saintornia. Why would he choose his nephew¡¯s wife? And there were no signs of it before¡¡±
Catherine quickly handed Marie a handkerchief. ¡°Madam, try not to dwell on it right now. This isn¡¯t something that can be resolved quickly. The most important thing is to deal with Mr. Cyrus¡® situation first. After that, we can try to persuade Mr. Damon.¡±
Marie shook her head. ¡°I doubt I can persuade him. Since he was a child, if he wanted to do something. no one could change his mind. But if he really insists on being involved with N, I¡¯ll die in front of him!¡±
¡°Madam, please don¡¯t say such things. Moreover, Mr. Damon and N haven¡¯t done anything yet. There¡¯s still a chance to make things right,¡± Catherineforted.
¡°If she dares to be with Damon, I won¡¯t let her off!¡± Marie eximed.
The idea of N trying to seduce Damon was even harder for Marie to ept than the fact that N had sent Cyrus to the police. After all, Cyrus¡® actions had indeed led to the Jayston family¡¯s bankruptcy. While Marie was angry, she understood there was a reason behind it.
But Damon was her pride, and N¡¯s interest in him was shameless and audacious!
Seeing Marie¡¯s rage, Catherine realized she couldn¡¯t ept Damon¡¯s feelings for N and decided to stop trying to persuade her.
After leaving the Sumner residence, Damon drove directly to find N.
Upon arriving, he remained in the car, hesitant to get out.
He had guessed that N was involved in Cyrus¡® arrest and was somewhat angry about it.
CHAPTER 260
¡°Mmph!¡± N¡¯s eyes widened in shock.
Was Damon out of his mind?!
First, he had forced a kiss on her in the private room, and now he was doing it out in the open¡ If someone saw them, she couldn¡¯t even imagine the consequences.
She tried to push him away with her hands against his chest, but his body was like a wall of steel. No matter how hard she pushed, he didn¡¯t budge.
¡°Uncle Damon- Mmph! Let¡ Let go¡¡± She struggled to speak
Damon pressed against her, his eyes zing with anger. She had kept the fact that she had set Cyrus up to kidnap her a secret, and now she wanted to distance herself from him.
As if!
Anger shed in N¡¯s eyes when she saw that Damon had no intention of letting her go. She bit down hard on his lip.
Damon winced and released her, sneering. ¡°Are you a dog?¡±
¡°What does that have to do with you? Don¡¯t forget, I¡¯m your niece¨Cinw!¡± N hissed.
Damon raised an eyebrow at her attempt to use her status to make him let her go. ¡°You sent rk¡¯s father to jail. Do you really think he will stay married to you?¡±
¡°That doesn¡¯t concern you. If you don¡¯t let me go, I¡¯ll call for help,¡± N countered.
Her angry expression, like a cat with its fur bristling, seemed to amuse Damon. He leaned in closer, their lips almost touching.
N¡¯s breath caught. ¡°What are you doing?¡±
¡°If you want to call for help, go ahead. By tomorrow, everyone will know about this,¡± Damon said.
Damon¡¯s indifference to N¡¯s threat made her look away coldly. ¡°Don¡¯t forget, Cyrus is not only rk¡¯s father but also your older brother. How is it appropriate to be entangled with the woman who sent your brother to jail?¡±
Damon chuckled softly. ¡°You don¡¯t need to use these words to provoke me. Now that you¡¯ve angered everyone in the Sumners, your only choice to avoid retaliation is to be with me.¡±
N turned to him sharply. ¡°Do you even hear yourself?
Damon wanted to be with her despite her having sent Cyrus to jail and her opposition to his family?
Think it over, and let me know once you¡¯ve decided,¡± Damon said.
N frowned and replied coldly, ¡°There¡¯s no need to think it over. I won¡¯t agree. I don¡¯t want to be involved with the Sumners any further.¡±
If the Sumners found out she was involved with Damon, they¡¯d never let her go. She didn¡¯t want to get involved with Damon either.
+25
Damon remained patient. ¡°I have plenty of time.¡±
N looked up at him, her face expressionless. ¡°Uncle Damon, many women would want to be with you if you¡¯re willing. Why can¡¯t you just let me go?¡±
¡°Because none of those women are you,¡± he replied.
The sincerity and tenderness In Damon¡¯s eyes made N look away. She couldn¡¯t bear the intensity of his feelings or the process of falling for someone only to be disappointed.This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
¡°I¡¯m nothing special, and I¡¯m still married to rk. Even if I divor260ce him, I won¡¯t be with you because ! don¡¯t like you,¡± she stated.
Damon¡¯s gaze darkened. ¡°Not liking me now doesn¡¯t matter. You will eventually.¡±
N was about to argue back when Damon suddenly released her and said, ¡°It¡¯s gettingte. You should go. If you change your mind, contact me anytime.¡±
N lowered her gaze and didn¡¯t continue the argument. As long as she didn¡¯t give in, Damon couldn¡¯t force her to stay with him.
Relieved by this realization, she quickly left without saying goodbye, her heart still racing.
Damon smirked as he watched her retreating figure, his eyes narrowing dangerously.
Back home, N¡¯s heart finally began to calm down.
When Damon had suggested they be together, she had felt a momentary thrill and almost agreed. In the end, though, reason prevailed.
CHAPTER 261
N and Damon came from entirely different worlds. At present, his interest in her seemed like just a fleeting impulse. He would eventually grow tired of her
It was better to avoid the pain of abandonment than to start something that would inevitably end in disappointment.
After all, she wasn¡¯t an 18¨Cyear¨Cold girl who might naively believe that Damon would marry her. Given his background, he would surely choose a partner of equal standing in the future.
N didn¡¯t want the stigma of having seduced her husband¡¯s uncle, nor did she want to suffer another blow to her love life..
She pushed her inappropriate thoughts aside and headed to the bathroom for a shower.
Just as she was about to go to bed, her phone suddenly rang. Seeing it was rk, she hesitated for a moment before answering.This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
¡°N, I heard you called the police and had Dad arrested?¡± rk¡¯s voice was filled with disbelief as if N hadmitted a heinous crime.
She let out a lightugh, her eyes shing with mockery, ¡°Yes.¡±
¡°Why did you do that? You know Dad only had you abducted to get that document, not to actually harm you!¡± rk eximed.
¡°I¡¯m really curious how you can say such shameless things with such confidence. Are actually want me dead?¡± N retorted.
sure he didn¡¯t
If Pete hadn¡¯t discovered Cyrus¡® ns to harm her first, she might already be dead at the bottom of a cliff,
¡°Of course, You¡¯re my wife and his daughter¨Cinw. How could he really want to hurt you? Besides, I¡¯m dis il I now because I tried to save you. Considering my condition, you should go exin things to the police and get Dad released!¡± rk demanded.
¡°But as far as I know, your legs don¡¯t seem to be disabled. Why don¡¯t you go ahead and cripple yourself, and then I¡¯ll consider whether or not to let him go?¡± N suggested sarcastically.
There was a pause on the other end of the line before rk¡¯s disappointed voice came through ¡°N, 1 became like this trying to save you, and now you doubt me. I¡¯m starting to regret saving you that day,¡± N sneered, no longer interested in arguing. She cut to the chase. ¡°Don¡¯t pretend to be so noble. The car ident at the courthouse was arranged by you and your dad. Your dad kidnapped me because you urged me several times to delete those pieces of evidence. When I refused, you decided to eliminate me.
¡°You don¡¯t need to refute. The fact that I¡¯m saying this means I have evidence. If you don¡¯t want to end up in trouble with your dad,e to the courthouse tomorrow morning to get the divorce.
¡°Let¡¯s hope you don¡¯t try any more tricks this time,¡± N said, delivering her ultimatum.
Without waiting for rk¡¯s reaction, she hung up.
rk nearly hurled his phone, his face dark with fury. He couldn¡¯t believe that N knew everything. Was he really just a fool in her eyes these past few days?
Beside him, Jordyn was startled by his terrifying expression and trembled as she asked, ¡°rk What¡¯s wrong? Is it that N won¡¯t let your father go?¡±
¡°Get out!¡± rk shouted.
Jordyn turned pale and left the room in fear. rk was too frightening at the moment.
Once the room fell silent, rk suddenly burst intoughter. His eyes were bloodshot as he crushed his phone screen from gripping it too tightly.
All these years, he had never truly seen N for who she was. It wasn¡¯t toote to understand now.
Divorce¡ Hah! Did she think a divorce would free her from him?
Laughing madly, he vowed to make her suffer just as he had. She had made him suffer so much¨Chow could he possibly let her off easily?
CHAPTER 262
Cindy immediately intervened when she learned that N wanted a divorce from rk.
¡°Your dad is still in the police station. If you divorce her now, it will only make it harder for her to relent Inter. As long as she¡¯s still your wife, we can at least mitigate the sentence with a letter of forgiveness if your
dad is convicted. If you divorce her now, things will only get worse,¡± she said.
rk¡¯s face was grim. ¡°She has evidence of my involvement in the kidnapping. If I don¡¯t go along with her demands, she¡¯ll turn that evidence over to the police.¡±
Cindy frowned, anger shing in her eyes. ¡°That scheming woman! She really came prepared! But the more she acts like this, the more you can¡¯t divorce her right now. Otherwise, who knows what she¡¯ll do to the Sumners.¡±
¡°Mom, do you still naively believe that if I dy the divorce, she¡¯ll let the Sumners off the hook?¡± rk asked
N was determined to sever ties with the Sumners by sending Cyrus to jail.
After this incident, neither Richard nor Marie would ever ept her again. If rk stayed with her, he would only disappoint them further and ruin his chances with the Sumner Group.
cindy was furious, but with N holding evidence, she felt powerless. Moreover, considering Damon¡¯s attitude, he was likely to protect N.
The more she thought about it, the more she hated N. She regretted ever letting N into their family. Now, the Sumners were in chaos.
¡°Make sure she gets nothing in the divorce. She must leave with nothing!¡± Cindy demanded.
rk sneered. ¡°She hasn¡¯t worked for years and hasn¡¯t had any children. There¡¯s no way I¡¯m giving her anyt
¡°Just make sure you follow through,¡± Cindy reminded him.
The next morning¡
rk arrived precisely at 10:00a.m., seated in a wheelchair with Jordyn pushing him from behind.
His eyes shed with anger and hatred upon seeing N. The thought of her having Cyrus arrested and now demanding a divorce made him want to strangle her and confront her ruthlessness.
In stark contrast to his agitation, N remained remarkably calm. She harbored no lingering feelings for rk and was determined to sever ties as swiftly as possible.
She handed him the prepared divorce agreement. ¡°Sign this, and then we can proceed with the paperwork.
rk flipped through a few pages, noting their famirity. The agreement was identical to the one she had presented when she first discovered his infidelity.
When he reached the asset division section and saw that N was iming half of his assets, his eyes grew cold.
¡°I won¡¯t sign this divorce agreement. If you want a divorce, you¡¯ll have to leave with nothing. Otherwise, I won¡¯t agree to it,¡± he dered.
N calmly handed him another document. ¡°Take a look at this before you decide.¡±
rk took it and opened it. His face darkened as he saw evidence of some of his unsavory activities at the Sumner Group over the years.
How had she gotten this?
rk¡¯s eyes years!
burned with killing intent as he red at her. She had been keeping tabs on him all these
N smiled and said slowly, ¡°Don¡¯t worry. Once you sign, I¡¯ll give you the original documents.¡±
¡°How can I trust you?¡± rk asked.
He had been deceived by N too many times recently. How could he be sure she wasn¡¯t just lying about providing the originals while keeping copies for herself?
¡°Destroying each other is not beneficial for me, and I have no intention of going up against the Sumners.
¡°I¡¯m only dealing with your father because he was responsible for the bankruptcy of the Jaystons. As for you, aside from your infidelity, you haven¡¯t caused me any substantial harm. I just want to clear my name and move on,¡± N exined.
Seeing her serious expression, rk snortd. ¡°You¡¯d better not try any tricks. I won¡¯t be lenient with you.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I won¡¯t,¡± N assured him.
As rk prepared to sign, Jordyn spoke up from behind him, her voice filled with dissatisfaction. ¡°rk, do you really trust her? What if she¡¯s plotting against you again?¡±
Clurk ignored Jordynpletely, continuing his signing without pause. He signed his name and threw the document back to N.
¡°Can we proceed with the divorce now?¡± he asked.
He had stubbornly refused to divorce her before, but now he was eager to finalize it. Once the signature was confirmed, N tossed a USB drive onto hisp and walked briskly into the courthouse.
In less than an hour, the divorce certificates were processed.Property belongs to N?vel(D)r/ama.Org.
N¡¯s eyes were a little red as she looked at the hard¨Cearned divorce certificate. When she married rk, she had never imagined it would end like this.
CHAPTER 263
The past eight years felt like a dream.
Fortunately, it was over now, and there would be no more entanglements in the future.
rk¡¯s eyes shed with anger upon seeing N¡¯s relieved expression. He turned to Jordyn and said coldly, ¡°Did you bring your ID card?¡±
Jordyn was momentarily stunned, but then her eyes lit up with excitement. ¡°Yes! rk, you¡¡±
¡°Give it to me. We¡¯re registering our marriage now,¡± rk said curtly.
Jordyn quickly pulled out her ID card from her bag and handed it to rk, her face alight with anticipation. She had been waiting for this day!
Last night, upon learning that rk would be divorcing N today, she had rushed to bring her ID card. She nned to use their child as leverage to see if rk would marry her after the divorce.
To her surprise, he proposed marriage to her first!
rk took her ID card with a stony expression and handed it, along with his own, to the staff. ¡°Get us registered!¡±
His face was stern, and his tone was rigid, showing no trace of joy.
The staff hesitated for a moment before advising, ¡°Sir, marriage is a significant matter. You¡¯ve just divorced. Perhaps you should reconsider.¡±
Jordyn shot a disdainful look at the staff and said arrogantly, ¡°What does it matter to you if we¡¯re getting married? Just do your job and stay out of it! Besides, I¡¯m carrying his child. Are you going to let my baby be born without a father?¡±
Contempt flickered in the staff¡¯s eyes. She thought Jordyn was quite pretty, yet she had be a misless¨Csuch a shame. She took the documents and started processing the marriage papers.
rk looked at N with a dark expression and said, ¡°You may not care, but others do. I¡¯m not dependent
on you.
u
N nodded and smiled. ¡°Well, then I wish you both a lifetime of happiness. Make sure to stay together. forever and note back into the market.¡±
Ignoring rk¡¯s displeasure, she ced the divorce certificate into her bag and walked away. Today was
her fresh start, and she didn¡¯t want those scumbags to ruin her mood.
After leaving the courthouse, N went directly to a topw firm in Saintornia, where she found a hour, and thewyer, William Harwell, personally saw N out of the firm.
¡°Mr. Harwell, I¡¯ll leave the asset division in your hands.¡± N said.
William nodded. ¡®Ms. Jayston, don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ll handle it as soon as possible.¡±
After leaving the firm, N was about to head home when she received a call from Wren.
172
+25 This belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
¡°N,e to the hospital right away. Your mother¨Cinw just arrived with a group of people, causing a scene in the ward and using you of having your father¨Cinw arrested. Your father has fainted from anger!¡± Wren informed.
N looked rmed. ¡°I¡¯ll be there immediately!¡±
When N arrived at the hospital over an hourter, the ward was in chaos. Fragments of cups, fruits¨Ceverything was scattered around the room.
toiletries,
Harrison was lying on the bed with his eyes closed, while Wren, with red eyes, sat beside him, constantly wiping her tears.
Seeing N, Wren looked displeased. ¡°N, what¡¯s going on? Why did the Sumners send people to cause
trouble?¡±
¡°How¡¯s my father?¡± N asked instead.
¡°He fainted from anger. The doctor just checked him and said he might not wake up for a while. What exactly did you do?¡± Wren asked.
N briefly exined her recent actions.
Wren scowled and could no longer contain her fury. ¡°Why did you do this? What if the Sumners retaliate against us? Just like today, we have no ability to fight back!¡±
N bit her lip and lowered her gaze. ¡°I admit I didn¡¯t think this through. I¡¯ll find someone to protect you and Dad.¡±
¡°Protect us? Do you think you¡¯re more powerful than the Sumners? You¡¯vepletely offended them, and with your divorce from rk, they won¡¯t let you or us off the hook!¡± Wren eximed, ring at N.
¡°W., didn¡¯t you discuss this with us before taking action? Our lives were just starting to calm down. What right do you have to make decisions for your father?
¡°Even if you did get your father¨Cinw arrested, no one will admire you. People will only mock the Jaystons for raising a daughter who sent her father¨Cinw to prison!¡± Wren scolded.
Before she could finish, Harrison¡¯s angry voice came from the bed. ¡°Enough! Stop talking!¡±
CHAPTER 264
Both N and Wren turned their heads simultaneously, realizing that Harrison had woken up.
N hurried over to help him, but he pushed her away.This belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
¡°N, you¡¯ve disappointed me greatly,¡± he said,
Confronted with her father¡¯s disappointed gaze, N felt hurt. ¡°Dad even you don¡¯t understand me?¡±
She had done it to seek justice for him, hoping that, even if no one else understood her, he would.
¡°What good does understanding you do? The matter is over now. Digging it up only affects your life. You still have a long way to go. If you send Cyrus to prison, what if the Sumners retaliate against you?¡± Harrison asked.
He was no longer in a position to protect her. By pursuing this, she was risking her entire future.
¡°Should I just pretend nothing happened and continue living in mutual disdain with rk for the rest of my life?¡± N retorted.
¡°Whether you stay with him or not doesn¡¯t change the fact that Harris Pharmaceuticals is bankrupt. Is there any way to remedy this situation now?¡± Harrison asked.
N
took a deep breath. ¡°No. I¡¯ve already given the evidence to the police. Even if there were a way to fix it, I wouldn¡¯t go back.¡±
Harrison looked angry. He raised his hand to hit N but, at thest moment, his resolve softened. He lowered his trembling hand and turned his gaze away. ¡°Just go. You don¡¯t need to worry about this. I¡¯ll handle it. Pretend you never knew about it.¡±
N was appalled. ¡°Dad, what are you going to do? Cyrus has done so much harm to you, and you¡¯re still nning to let him go?!¡±
¡°It¡¯s us about letting him go. It¡¯s about asking the Sumners to spare you,¡± Harrison replied.
¡°I haven¡¯t done anything wrong. Cyrus and the Sumners, who covered for him, are at fault!¡± N insiste..
Harrison sighed and said slowly, ¡°Right or wrong doesn¡¯t matter. When you¡¯re in a higher position, even if you¡¯re wrong. it can seem right. But now, opposing the Sumners will only harm yourself. So even if you¡¯re right, it¡¯s still wrong. Do you understand?¡±
N shook her head stubbornly. ¡°I don¡¯t understand. Dad, I just want fairness.¡±
¡°Fairnesses at a price, a price that neither you nor I can afford,¡± Harrison countered.
As his words settled, the room fell silent.
N looked at Harrison, After a long moment, she spoke slowly. ¡°So, Cyrus¡® actions that ruined the Jaystons and the ident he orchestrated that shattered dozens of families don¡¯t require any price? But if I seek justice, I have to pay the price, which I can¡¯t afford, right?¡±
¡°Yes! If you can¡¯t bear the Summers¡® retaliation, then you shouldn¡¯t have brought this up,¡± Harrison affirmed.
His expression remained indifferent, revealing the numbness of someone who had epted reality.
He also wanted justice but knew he couldn¡¯t afford it. He took pride and foundfort in his daughter¡¯s courage to challenge the Sumners with evidence.
However, he also understood that the world respected power and that standing up for faimess when one was weak could be seen as a mistake
He had once been able to protect her, and although the Jaystons had gone bankrupt, N had married rk, who could safeguard her. Therefore, he had not taught her these lessons. Now, he felt it was time for her to learn from this experience
¡°Dad, since fairnesses at a price, and my future and life are the price, I¡¯m willing to gamble my future and life for it,¡± N asserted
Hamson¡¯s pnded on N¡¯s face. He withdrew his trembling hand, seething with anger. think jeopardizing your future and your life will bring you justice?
to you really
This
¡°I¡¯m telling you now, even if you risk everything. Cyrus will not face the punishment he deserves. world operates on the survival of the fittest. If you insist on going your own way, we will sever our father- daughter rtionship!¡±
Nyle stepped back, her gaze at Harrison filled with disappointment. ¡°Dad, you¡¯ve changed. You¡¯ve be Someone I don¡¯t recognize.¡±
With that, she turned and ran out of the room.
Wren, who had been silent, finally spoke with a frown. ¡°Harrison, you spoiled N too much before, which led to her reckless behavior without considering the consequences-¡±
¡°Wren, no matter what, N is my daughter. If she¡¯s done something wrong, I apologize, but I don¡¯t want you to criticize her in front of me,¡± Harrison cut her off
CHAPTER 265
When stiffened. Throwing up her hands, she said, ¡°Fine I won¡¯t say anything more. I finally understand what it¡¯s like to be a stepmother¨Cwhatever you do, you¡¯re never right. I get it now!¡±
Harrison frowned, looking somewhat helpless. ¡°That¡¯s not what I meant ¡±
¡°Then what do you mean? I¡¯ve taken care of you diligently these past two years, and I haven¡¯t mistreated your daughter. Now, just because I mention the trouble she has caused, it¡¯s too much?¡± Wren questioned.
Seeing Wren¡¯s confrontational expression, Harrison felt imitated. He turned his head away and fell silent.
When even more enraged, beganining about how difficult it had been to care for Harrison over t
years
the
After a few minutes Harrison could no longer tolerate it and barked, ¡°Yes, it¡¯s been hard taking care of me. but didn¡¯t I provide you with enough before Harris Pharmaceuticals¡® bankruptcy? No matter how she is you have no right to criticize her!¡±
When sneered. ¡°Then ask her to take care of you from now on! And stop making me do it!¡±
With that, she angrily turned and stormed out of the room.
As the door mmed shut, the room fell silent once again.
Hamson sighed and picked up his phone, dialing a number.
After leaving the hospital, N went straight to meet Vrie for a drink.
Vne¡¯s eyes widened when she heard that N had divorced rk.
¡°Really?! He agreed to the divorce?!¡± Vrie asked, her voice tinged with disbelief.
N took the divorce certificate out of her bag and handed it to Vrie. ¡°Do you believe me now?¡±
with Val e examined the certificate, confirming N¡¯s im. She handed it back and clinked ss her. Here¡¯s to celebrating your sessful divorce! Let¡¯s not stop drinking until we¡¯repletely wasted!¡± N drank her ss in one gulp and poured herself another full one.
¡°What¡¯s wrong? Isn¡¯t divorce supposed to be a good thing? You seem a bit down.¡± Vrie inquired. N took a sip of her drink and briefly recounted the argument she had had with her father.
After listening. Vrie fell silent for a moment before speaking. ¡°I¡¯ve heard about you sending rk¡¯s father to jail too. From your dad¡¯s perspective, he was just trying to protect you. None of you are at fault. The Sumners are.¡±
N smiled wryly, her eyes reddening. ¡°I¡¯m not ming him. I just feel sad. He¡¯s endured so much, and I can¡¯t make things right for him.¡±
Vrie gently patted her back and said softly, ¡°You¡¯ve done well. If it were me, I don¡¯t think I¡¯d have your courage. But what your dad said is also true.¡±
.
Wren stiffened. Throwing up her hands, she said, ¡°Fine. I won¡¯t say anything more. I finally understand what it¡¯s like to be a stepmother¨Cwhatever you do, you¡¯re never right. I get it now!¡±
Harrison frowned, looking somewhat helpless. ¡°That¡¯s not what I meant.¡±
¡°Then what do you mean? I¡¯ve taken care of you diligently these past two years, and I haven¡¯t mistreated your daughter. Now, just because I mention the trouble she has caused, It¡¯s too much?¡± Wren questioned.
Seeing Wren¡¯s confrontational expression, Harrison felt irritated. He turned his head away and fell silent.
Wren, even more enraged, beganining about how difficult it had been to care for Harrison over tThis belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
the
years.
After a few minutes, Harrison could no longer tolerate it and barked, ¡°Yes, it¡¯s been hard taking care of me, but didn¡¯t I provide you with enough before Harris Pharmaceuticals¡® bankruptcy? No matter how she is, you have no right to criticize her!¡±
Wren sneered. ¡°Then ask her to take care of you from now on! And stop making me do it!¡±
With that, she angrily turned and stormed out of the room.
As the door mmed shut, the room fell silent once again.
Harrison sighed and picked up his phone, dialing a number.
After leaving the hospital, N went straight to meet Vrie for a drink.
Vrie¡¯s eyes widened when she heard that N had divorced rk.
¡°Really?! He agreed to the divorce?!¡± Vrie asked, her voice tinged with disbelief.
N took the divorce certificate out of her bag and handed it to Vrie. ¡°Do you believe me now?¡±
Vrie examined the certificate, confirming N¡¯s im. She handed it back and clinked sses with ner. ¡°Here¡¯s to celebrating your sessful divorce! Let¡¯s not stop drinking until we¡¯repletely waster
N drank her ss in one gulp and poured herself another full one.
¡°Wwrong? Isn¡¯t divorce supposed to be a good thing? You seem a bit down,¡± Vrie inquired.
N took a sip of her drink and briefly recounted the argument she had had with her father.
After listening. Vrie fell silent for a moment before speaking. ¡°I¡¯ve heard about you sending rk¡¯s father to jail too. From your dad¡¯s perspective, he was just trying to protect you. None of you are at fault. The Sumners are.¡±
N smiled wryly, her eyes reddening. ¡°I¡¯m not ming him. I just feel sad. He¡¯s endured so much, and I can¡¯t make things right for him.¡±
Vrie gently patted her back and said softly, ¡°You¡¯ve done well. If it were me, I don¡¯t think I¡¯d have your courage. But what your dad said is also true.¡±
Given N¡¯s current situation, seeking justice was extremely difficult. It was unfair to her and the Jaystons, but what could be done about it? The world was full of injustices.
To receive fair treatment, one must strive to be stronger.
Noticing N¡¯s silence, Vrie encouraged her, ¡°Apologize to your dad tomorrow and discuss how to resolve this issue. If you stubbornly pursue Cyrus, the Summers might retaliate against you.
¡°And for you and your dad right now, getting him treated and focusing on living well is the most Important thing.¡± Vrie advised.
N closed her eyes, feeling a sense of helplessness. Everyone said she shouldn¡¯t have gone after Cyrus- had she really made a mistake?
But all she wanted was justice¡
After a while, she spoke. ¡°Vrie, I understand. I¡¯ll go apologize to my dad tomorrow.¡±
She didn¡¯t think she had done anything wrong, but she didn¡¯t want to cause her father any more worry, especially with his deteriorating health.
¡°That¡¯s the right attitude. Cheers! Here¡¯s to shedding the bad rtionship and starting anew!¡± Vrie cheered.
They drank heavily, and by the end of the night, they ended up sleeping in the private room.
When N woke up the next morning, it was already past 8:00 a.m. As soon as she checked her phone, she saw a dozen missed calls from Wren. rmed, she quickly called back.
CHAPTER 266
#
As soon as the call connected, Wren¡¯s frantic voice came through. ¡°Where are you right now? Your dad went to the Summers on your behalf and got into trouble. He ended up in the emergency room after drinking excessively to make amends!¡±
N¡¯s mind went nk, and her body froze in ce. It took her several seconds to react. ¡°I¡¯ll be there right away!¡±
Her voice trembled as she spoke.
Vrie, who had just woken up, noticed N¡¯s distress and quickly got up. ¡°N, what¡¯s wrong?¡±
N looked up, her eyes red and tears streaming down her face. ¡°My dad is in trouble. I can¡¯t drive¡¡±
Vrie¡¯s expression turned serious. She grabbed N¡¯s hand and said firmly, ¡°We can¡¯t drive after drinking so muchst night. We¡¯ll take a cab.¡±
She led N out of the bar and hailed a cab to the hospital.
When they arrived at the emergency room, the surgery had just ended.
Dr. Leslie Knapp, looking exhausted and irritated, addressed N and Wren with frustration ¡°Tve wamed you repeatedly that the patient¡¯s condition can¡¯t handle smoking or drinking. You let him drink excessively. If he had been anyter, not even a god could have saved him!¡±
¡°Dr. Knapp, I¡¯m sorry. I¡¯ll be more careful in the future and ensure this never happens again. Thank you for saving my dad,¡± N said, bowing deeply.
Tears continued to fall.
She was overwhelmed with panic, fearing that if Harrison didn¡¯t pull through, she would never forgive
herself.
I slie¡¯s face remained stern. ¡°A sincere apology means nothing now. Instead, focus on ensuring the pient doesn¡¯t engage in activities harmful to his health.¡±
with that he turned and left.
Back in the hospital room¡
Hron had not yet woken up.
Wren sat by the bed, crying.
¡°Wren, what exactly happened?¡± N asked, her voice trembling.
She had thought that Harrison would visit the Sumners in a few days, not the very next day.
wren looked at her with evident displeasure. ¡°After you left yesterday, your dad secretly contacted the Sumners to apologize and ask them to spare you. Richard made him wait outside for over two hours. before finally agreeing to see him.
¡°After that, I don¡¯t know what happened. All I know is that your dad suddenly vomited blood and copsed. The hospital called me toe.¡±
N took a deep breath, her anger barely contained. The Sumners had gone too far!
¡°I understand,¡± she replied.
Wren hesitated before speaking. ¡°N, you saw for yourself that you can¡¯t fight the Sumners. Your dad¡¯s health can¡¯t handle any more stress. Please, I¡¯m begging you, don¡¯t continue this fight, okay?¡±
N¡¯s hands clenched at her sides as she looked down. ¡°Wren, I will handle this. Please take care of my
dad.¡±
After leaving the hospital room, Vrie looked at N with concern. ¡°N, what are you nning to do next?¡±
¡°Thank you for everything today, Vrie. You should head home now,¡± N said tly.
Noting N¡¯s detached demeanor, Vrie frowned. ¡°N, don¡¯t do anything rash. You need to stay calm.¡± Vrie was worried that N might act out due to her father¡¯s situation.
N forced a smile. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯m very calm.¡±Property belongs to N?vel(D)r/ama.Org.
She had never been so clear¨Cheaded and knew exactly what she needed to do.
¡°Maybe I should stay with you,¡± Vrie suggested.
¡°Really, don¡¯t worry. I promise not to go to the Sumners and cause a scene. You can trust me on that,¡± N said.
Seeing that N seemed genuinely calm, Vrie finally nodded. ¡°If you need any help, just let me know.¡±
¡°Okay,¡± N agreed.
After Vrie disappeared down the hallway, N¡¯s smile slowly faded, her expression turning cold as she headed toward Leslie¡¯s office.
Leslie¡¯s expression was still somewhat grim when he saw N. ¡°Ms. Jayston, are you here for something?¡± Nyia nodded and sat down opposite him. ¡°Dr. Knapp, I¡¯m nning to take my dad abroad for treatment.¡± Afteraving the doctor¡¯s office, N didn¡¯t return to the hospital room but went home instead.
As soon as she stepped out of the elevator, she noticed that her apartment door was wide open, and the living room was in disarray.
Her expression remained nk as she walked inside, finding the ce turned upside down, with even the kitchen and bathroom ransacked.
She sat down in the living room, about to call the police, but hesitated. Instead, she dialed a different number.
CHAPTER 267
When Damon arrived, N was sitting on the sofa, staring nkly. Hearing the footsteps, she looked up toward the door. Her eyes were red and filled with helplessness and fear, like a frightened little rabbit.
¡°Uncle Damon, you¡¯re here,¡± she called out.
Damon approached her and asked in a low voice, ¡°Are you hurt?¡±
N shook her head. ¡°I¡¯m okay. I was at the bar with Vrie. I wasn¡¯t home¡ When I came back, this is what I found¡¡±
Damon frowned. ¡°Have you called the police?¡±
¡°Yes, I did. They should be arriving soon,¡± she replied.
¡°Alright. You can¡¯t stay here. I¡¯ll have Spencer find you a new ce,¡± Damon said.
¡°Can I stay with you for the next few days?¡± N asked.
As soon as she finished speaking, the living room fell silent, so quiet that they could almost hear each other¡¯s breathing.
Damon¡¯s eyes narrowed dangerously as he spoke, each word deliberate. ¡°Do you know what you¡¯re saying?¡±
His direct gaze seemed to prate everything, making N feel as if she had nowhere to hide. It was as though all her thoughts were exposed to him.
She forced herself to meet his gaze and nodded. ¡°I do.¡±
Damon looked at her and chuckled. ¡°I thought it would take you a while longer to make up your mind.¡±
He knew that N was with him primarily to use him, but that was alright. There woulde a day when she would fall in love with him.
N pressed her lips together, about to speak, when footsteps came from the doorway¨Cthe police had arrived.
Aside from taking statements, Damon mostly handled the discussions with the police, while N oned questions asionally.
After the police left, Damon turned to N. ¡°I have to go to the officeter. Do you want toe with me, or should I pick you up after work?¡±
¡°I need to clean up the house and prepare some clothes,¡± N answered.
Damon nodded. ¡°Alright, I¡¯ll arrange for someone to protect you. Call me if you need anything.¡±
His expression remained cool, but his gaze held a hint of warmth. It was like snow melting away, creating ripples in N¡¯s heart.
She turned her gaze away and nodded. ¡°Okay.¡±This belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
In the next moment, she found herself enveloped in a warm embrace.
Damon¡¯s dry, warm hand stroked her head, his voice low and gentle ¡°Dont be afraid I¡¯m here¡±
N stiffened for a moment, then wrapped her arms around his waist closing her eyes and stently apologizing in her heart.
She didn¡¯t want to use Damon, but being with him was her only way to confront the Summers right now.
She felt too selfish and didn¡¯t deserve Damon¡¯s feelings
Sensing her response, Damon tightened his hold slightly
After a long moment, he finally released her. I¡¯lle to pick you upter¡±
His gaze was much warmer than before, causing N¡¯s face to flush slightly. She lowered her head and said, ¡°Alright.¡±
Her shy and hesitant demeanor made Damon¡¯s eyes darran a little. It took him several seconds to regain hisposure. He suddenly understood why people kept their mistresses hidden in the pce in the olden days.
After Damon left, N patted her flushed cheeks and calmed herself down to start toying up the disheveled living room.
By the time N finished organizing, it was already past 3:00 pm. She brewed a cup of tea and sat on the sofa, absently tapping her fingers on the cup.
Since rk had done this to her home, she needed to get back at him.
After thinking for a moment, she dialed a number for an entertainment news outlet
By evening, a breaking news story had taken over the headlines of major extensinment publications:
[Shocking! rk Sumner, former CEO of the Sumner Group, remamies his mistress on the very day of his divorce!]
During the eveningmute, a typically dull time, this entertainment headine immediately gred
eryone¡¯s attention, and people eagerly discussed it.
It wont long before the news reached Richard and Marie.
Richard immediately called rk, berating and ordering him to suppress the news within an hour.
When rk called N, she was preparing dinner. Expecting his call, she had taken him off her blocked
list
As soon as the call connected, rk¡¯s nearly shouting voice came through ¡°N, how can you be so malicious?! The biggest mistake of my life was loving you and marrying you against everyone¡¯s opposition!
N sprinkled some coriander into the soup, thinking that rk¡¯s voice had never sounded so pleasing
Sheughed softly and replied slowly, ¡°Don¡¯t be in a hurry. You¡¯ll have plenty more chances to regret it. Today won¡¯t be thest time you do.¡±
CHAPTER 268
After H finished speaking, she hung up and blocked rk without giving him another chance to speak
Soon, an unfamiliar number called her again, but she ignored it.
After several attempts, the calls stopped.
N served the meal she had prepared on the table. Just as she finished tidying up the kitchen, the doorbell rang
When she checked and confirmed that it was Damon at the door, she opened it.
Noticing the aroma of food, Damon looked surprised. ¡°You cooked?¡±
N nodded and stepped aside to let him in ¡°Yes. Let¡¯s have dinner before we head out¡±
As they walked into the living room, Damon saw the table set with three dishes and a soup. They looked appetizing, and the tableware was neatly arranged.
After sitting down, Damon suddenly asked, ¡°Did you use to cook often?¡±
N smiled. ¡°No. Before my divorce from rk, we mostly had a housekeeper who cooked.¡±
Damon hummed but said nothing more. He picked up his cutlery and took a bite.
After a moment of silence, he set down his cutlery and took a sip of water.
He tried the other two dishes, his hope finally diminishing
He asked N, ¡°Has anyone ever told you that your cooking is good?¡±
¡°No, why?¡± N asked.
¡°Then why do you still cook?¡± Damon asked in return.
The dishes looked nice, but the amount of salt was overwhelming, enough to make someone choke.
Damon suddenly regretted agreeing to stay for dinner.
¡°Is it not good?¡± N asked, concerned.
e had followed the recipes and assumed the dishes were decent. They shouldn¡¯t be that bad.
Damon raised an eyebrow. ¡°Try them yourself.¡±
N picked up a piece of asparagus, put it in her mouth, and spat it out immediately.
Was this truly her cooking? She couldn¡¯t bear to try the other dishes.
The atmosphere grew awkward, and N deeply regretted her decision to cook for Damon today
After a moment¡¯s hesitation, she served him a bowl of soup. ¡°The dishes probably have too much salt. The soup has no salt. Try it.¡±
Damon took the bowl, noticed an eggshell floating in the soup, and set it down. ¡°Let¡¯s eat out.¡±
N realized her cooking was barely edible and stood up. ¡°Let me clean up.¡±
¡°No need. I¡¯ll have someonee to clean up,¡± Damon said firmly.Property belongs to N?vel(D)r/ama.Org.
¡°Alright¡ I¡¯ll go change,¡± N conceded.
After changing clothes, she grabbed her packed luggage, preparing to head to Damon¡¯s ce directly
after dinner.
As she left the bedroom, she saw Damon standing by the dining table with his back to her, absorbed in his phone.
¡°Uncle Damon, I¡¯m ready. Let¡¯s go,¡± she announced.
Damon turned around, tucked his phone into his pocket, and naturally took her suitcase.
By the time they reached the restaurant, it was almost 7:00p.m.
As they entered, they didn¡¯t notice a camera hidden in the shadows capturing the scene.
The person taking the photos was a well¨Cknown paparazzo in the entertainment industry. Sky Iverson. He was notorious for exposing celebrities. Everyone in the Industry feared him because his reports were always urate.
Originally, he was there to snap photos of a popr young star on a secret date with his non¨Ccelebrity girlfriend but unexpectedly caught Damon and N instead.
However, seeing that the two looked normal, Sky didn¡¯t pay them much attention and quickly returned to tracking the young star.
After dinner, N prepared to pay, but Damon stopped her. ¡°I don¡¯t let women pay for things, and besides, you¡¯re my girlfriend now.¡±
N was taken aback, not quite used to the term. It had been a long time since she had heard that word.
After paying with a card, Damon noticed N still seemed distracted and couldn¡¯t help but smile. ¡°Let¡¯s
go.¡±
As they left the restaurant, just as they were descending the steps, a panicked voice called out from I hind, ¡°Excuse me, make way!¡±
Before N could react, she was pushed, causing her to slip and nearly fall.
At that moment, Damon grabbed her by the waist and pulled her into his arms.
N instinctively clutched his shirt. They were pressed tightly against each other, almost without any gap. even feeling each other¡¯s heartbeats.
¡°Are you okay?¡± Damon¡¯s deep, gentle voice came from above.
N nodded and stepped out of his embrace, her heart racing.
Seeing that she was only a little pale but otherwise fine, Damon turned his gaze to the figure running away toward the parking lot. The figure¡¯s face was covered, and they did not look back.
Damon¡¯s eyes narrowed dangerously.
CHAPTER 269
Back at the vi, Damon instructed the housekeeper to show N to a guest room while he retreated to his study. He needed Spencer to investigate the man who had bumped into N that evening.
¡°Mr. Sumner, we¡¯ve identified the man. He¡¯s the popr actor Malcolm Underwood. He was at the restaurant tonight with his non¨Ccelebrity girlfriend. He bumped into Ms. Jayston while rushing out after spotting a paparazzo,¡± Spencer reported.
Damon¡¯s expression remained icy, and his voice was devoid of emotion. ¡°Give him a lesson.¡±
Spencer was taken aback, realizing he had underestimated N¡¯s importance to Damon.
After a moment of reflection, he suggested, ¡°Should we leak the fact that he has a non¨Ccelebrity girlfriend?
Malcolm had a new romantic dramaing out soon and was currently promoting his on¨Cscreen romance. If news of his real¨Clife rtionship emerged, it could severely damage his public image.
Damon hummed in agreement.
Meanwhile, Sky returned to his studio and reviewed the photos from his camera, frowning as he did. He had only managed to capture Malcolm hastily leaving the restaurant. There were no clear shots of his non¨Ccelebrity girlfriend.
t any more photos. This
After tonight, Malcolm would likely be more cautious, making it harder to get any would render the past few months of work seemingly pointless.
Suddenly, one photo caught Sky¡¯s attention.
In the photo, Malcolm was descending the steps while Damon held N in his arms, his eyes soft with
affection.
Although N was only partially visible, her fair skin and striking beauty were captivating. The presence of Damon and N made Malcolm appear as a mere background figure.
Sky stroked his chin, contemting.
I didn¡¯t usually like to pry into high society, as they were far more dangerous than celebrities. Offending a high¨Csociety family could be perilous.
Despite his initial instinct to delete the photo, he ultimately decided to keep it because of its quality.
In the middle of the night¡
News about Malcolm¡¯s rtionship with a non¨Ccelebrity girlfriend went viral online.
Within half an hour, the post attracted hundreds of thousands ofments, and the site briefly crashed.
Malcolm was woken up by his manager, who questioned him about the situation.
Malcolm was confused.
¡°Sophy, I swear I wasn¡¯t photographed dining with Nichole. I don¡¯t know how it was found out. The photos. are unclear, so we¡¯ll deny it and issue a rification and awyer¡¯s letter. That should fix it,¡± Malcolm exined
Sophy Baird, furning, replied coldly, ¡°That¡¯s not what I¡¯m asking. I¡¯m asking if you¡¯ve crossed anyone recently. When I contacted the higher¨Cups at thepany to suppress this, they said no PR efforts or rifications are allowed!¡±
Malcolm was stunned, his face darkening with anger. ¡°I¡¯ve been busy with filming and only had dinner with Nichole tonight. I haven¡¯t had the chance to offend anyone.¡±
He suddenly remembered bumping into a woman while leaving the restaurant. Even if he had offended her, he had been bundled up so well that she couldn¡¯t have known who he was.
Sophy considered this and agreed. She had been with Malcolm recently and didn¡¯t know of any major
conflictsProperty belongs to N?vel(D)r/ama.Org.
Taking a deep breath, she said coldly, ¡°For now, you and Nichole are not to see each other. I¡¯ll investigate further at thepany tomorrow morning¡±
Malcolm¡¯s face was grim. ¡°What about the leak? I¡¯m currently promoting my new drama with the female lead. This will definitely cost me a lot of fans!¡±
¡°Losing fans is better than being cklisted. We¡¯ll deal with it tomorrow,¡± Sophy said.
After Sophy left, Malcolm slumped onto the sofa, his expression dark and brooding.
At 7:00 am, N woke up on time and went downstairs after getting ready.
Damon was reading the news at the dining table. When N sat down, he looked at her and asked, ¡°How did you sleepst night?¡±
¡°Quite well, Uncle Damon, could I possibly ride with you to thepanyter?¡±
Her car was still at the bar and wouldn¡¯t be retrieved until tonight.
¡°Mm. And from now on, don¡¯t call me Uncle Damon,¡± Damon said.
CHAPTER 270
N lowered her gaze and nodded. ¡°Okay.¡±
As they neared thepany, N asked Damon to drop her off at the corner.
He frowned, clearly displeased. ¡°Am I so embarrassing to you?¡±
¡°It¡¯s not that,¡± N replied. ¡°I just got divorced from rk. If people from thepany see us together now, it will negatively affect you.¡±
¡°I don¡¯t mind,¡± Damon said tly.
¡°But I do. I need some time to adjust to our rtionship, so let¡¯s keep it private for now, okay?¡± she asked, her voice tinged with hope and a hint of hesitation.
Damon covered her eyes with his hand, his voice low and husky. ¡°Alright, but I¡¯ll need to collect some interest.¡±
N was startled, her eyes widening ¡°What kind of interest?¡±
Hershes brushed against Damon¡¯s hand, tickling him slightly. He held her waist and leaned in to kiss
her.
¡°Mmph.¡± N stiffened, instinctively trying to pull away. As she moved back, she found herself pressed against the car door, unable to escape. She could only surrender to Damon
After what felt like an eternity, Damon finally pulled away.
N was breathing heavily, her normally pale cheeks flushed red. She leered at him, her anger apparent but not fully scathing
Damon¡¯s gaze darkened. ¡°Are you sure you want to look at me like that?¡±
His eyes narrowed dangerously.Property belongs to N?vel(D)r/ama.Org.
N took a moment to calm herself and said softly, ¡°You don¡¯t have to wait for me tonight. I¡¯ll head back on my own.¡±
¡°Okay,¡± Damon replied.
¡°Then I¡¯ll get out now,¡± N said.
Seeing her avoiding eye contact, Damon smiled. ¡°If you don¡¯t want to get out, that¡¯s fine too. I¡¯ll just consider it a small loss on my part.¡±
N was rendered speechless. She quickly opened the car door, stepped out, and walked briskly into the crowd without looking back.
Damon¡¯s smile widened as he watched her annoyed figure.
Upon arriving at thepany, he saw a familiar face standing at the entrance.
¡°Stop the car,¡± he ordered but remained inside, staring icily at rk
rk had not yet noticed him and was scanning the crowd for N. When he spotted her, he hurried over and blocked her path.
¡°N!¡± he called out.
Startled by rk¡¯s sudden appearance, N instinctively took a step back. She noticed the fiery anger in his eyes and frowned, feeling defensive.
¡°What do you want?¡± she asked.
Her wariness only fueled rk¡¯s sneer. After she exposed his marriage to Jordyn, Richard had pped him twice, and Cindy had expressed severe disappointment.
¡°Now you¡¯re scared? Why weren¡¯t you afraid when you spread news about my marriage to Jordyn?¡± he demanded.
His eyes were bloodshot, filled with disgust and hatred. If he hadn¡¯t fallen for N, he wouldn¡¯t be in this mess! It was all her fault!
¡°It¡¯s not like you didn¡¯t send people to ransack my house!¡± N shot back.
¡°If I hadn¡¯t, how would I know if you were hiding backups to use against meter?¡± rk retorted as if his actions werepletely justified.
N was at a loss for words, wondering how she had been so blind to his true nature before.
Not wanting to argue further, she tried to push past him.
rk grabbed her arm, gritting his teeth. ¡°N, you¡¯ve done this to me. Are you just going to walk away?¡±
As N was about to shake him off, a cold voice came from behind. ¡°Let her go!¡±
Both turned to see Damon.
N¡¯s eyes widened in surprise. Shouldn¡¯t Damon have been at thepany already?
rk sneered. ¡°Uncle Damon, this is between me and her. Why are you interfering?¡±
Damon¡¯s gaze was icy. ¡°She¡¯s my girlfriend now.¡°¨C
¡°What?!¡± rk stared at Damon and N in disbelief. It was as though he had just heard something absurd.
CHAPTER 271
rk sneered. ¡°I was wondering why you were so eager to divorce me. Turns out you¡¯vetched onto my uncle. N, you¡¯re no different from those cheap women out there.¡±
N pped him hard across the face, drawing the attention of everyone around them.
rk had never felt so humiliated. His eyes zed with fury as he reached out to choke N.
Before he could touch her, a powerful kick sent him crashing to the ground.
Damon pulled N into his arms, looking down at rk with cold, piercing eyes. ¡°She¡¯s your future aunt Show some respect when you speak, or next time it won¡¯t just be a kick.¡±
Upon hearing the words ¡°future aunt¡°, rk¡¯s face flushed with rage.
¡°Uncle Damon, Grandpa and Grandma will never allow you to marry a divorced woman. Being with her will only make you aughingstock in Saintornia!¡± rk spat
The more he spoke, the more smug he became.
Richard and Marie had always been so picky about the women they wanted for Damon. Yet here Damon was, falling for a woman who had been married before!
¡°Why don¡¯t you worry about yourself? Do you really think marrying Jordyn will give you a shot at inheriting the Sumner Group?¡± Damon shot back.
rk¡¯s triumphant expression froze, and his hands clenched into fists at his sides. If N hadn¡¯t exposed his marriage, Richard wouldn¡¯t have been so disappointed in him.
rk wanted nothing more than to strangle N. The love he once felt for her had twisted into pure hatred.
¡°Uncle Damon, you¡¯ll regret this. Just wait,¡± rk warned.
Damon didn¡¯t spare him another nce. He simply took N¡¯s hand and walked away.
N tried to pull her hand back, but he didn¡¯t let go.
¡°There are so many people watching¨Cjust let go of me for now!¡± N whispered harshly.
Noticing the shocked stares from those around her, she wished she could disappear. She had hoped to
eep things low¨Ckey, but now everyone knew on the very first day.
¡°What¡¯s there to be afraid of? The people in thepany aren¡¯t stupid. After what just happened, do you really think we can keep this a secret?¡± Damon asked.
Realizing he was right, N stopped struggling.
When they reached theb door, Damon told her, ¡°Come to my office at noon.¡±
¡°For what?¡± she asked.
Lunch,¡± he answered.
Seeing that N was about to refuse, Damon raised an eyebrow. ¡°I just drove you here. A lot of people
saw us together. Do you really want to eat in the cafeteria with everyone staring at you?¡±
T pressed her lips together. ¡°I could order takeout.
¡°It¡¯s unhealthy. I¡¯ll eithere down and eat with you, or you cane to my office. Your choice,¡± Damon replied
His eyes exuded domineering determination, leaving Fl no room to refuse. After a few seconds of silence, she finally relented. Tll go to your office¡±
Soon, Damon left, and H sighed. As she turned around, she saw Melody standing a few steps away, her eyes wide with shock and admiration.
¡°N, you¡¯re really with Mr. Sumner? I saw the discussion in thepany group chat earlier and thought it was just a misunderstanding. Melody gushed.
Having been married to rk and now being with his uncle, N knew people would talk. She could already imagine the gossip that would follow.
However, when she decided to be with Damon, she had mentally prepared herself for this. It simply happened sooner than expected.
¡°Let¡¯s get back to work,¡± she said.
Melody wanted to ask more questions, but seeing that N wasn¡¯t in the mood to talk, she held back her curiosity.
News of Damon and N¡¯s rtionship quickly reached Richard and Marie.
Marie was so furious that she fainted, while Richard immediately called Damon, demanding hee
home.
Damon¡¯s tone was cold. ¡°Dad, if you¡¯re calling about me and N, then there¡¯s no need-¡±
Richard cut him off, his voice full of anger. ¡°Are youing back yourself, or should I go to Prospectus Technology and have a talk with that woman? You decide!¡±
Toys Bonus OfferThis is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
CHAPTER 272
Chapter 272
After a few moments of silence, Damon answered coldly, head over right after my meeting¡±
N arrived at the top floor at noon, only to be stopped by Spencer.
¡°Ms. Jayston, Mr. Sumner isn¡¯t in his office right now,¡± he informed her.
Ish
she still in a meeting?¡± she asked.
Spencer shook his head, his gaze fixed on her. ¡°No. He got a call from Mr. Richard this morning. He went back to the Summer residence and hasn¡¯t returned yet.¡±
N¡¯s heart sank. She didn¡¯t need to guess¨Cit was clearly about what had happened earlier that morning
¡°I see. Thank you for letting me know, Mr. Hogg,¡± she replied.
Noticing that her expression remained unchanged, Spencer frowned. ¡°Ms. Jayston, aren¡¯t you going to go over there?¡±
¡°Even if I did, it wouldn¡¯t help. Besides, seeing me would only make the Sumners more upset,¡± N answered calmly.
¡°This whole situation started because of you. Shouldn¡¯t you stand by Mr. Sumner and face it together?¡± Spencer¡¯s gaze was filled with disapproval, his tone turning cold.
It wasn¡¯t his ce to meddle in Damon¡¯s personal life, but N¡¯s attitude made him feel that Damon¡¯s efforts were going unappreciated. Damon was standing up to his entire family for her, yet she seemed content to hide behind him rather than share the burden.
¡°Mr. Hogg, if he wanted me by his side, he would¡¯ve asked me himself¨Cnot had you deliver the message. N replied.
Already frustrated, Spencer¡¯s response grew more blunt. ¡°If that¡¯s how you feel, then there¡¯s nothing more
to say.¡±
With that, he turned and walked away.
N wasn¡¯t angry. She understood Spencer¡¯s protective instincts toward Damon after working with him
for so many years.
As N stepped out of the elevator, she bumped into Melody, who was on her way to lunch.
¡°N, weren¡¯t you supposed to have lunch with Mr. Sumner? Howe you¡¯re back so soon?¡± Melody asked, surprised.
¡°Something came upst minute. I¡¯ll just order takeout,¡± N replied.
Melody smiled and looped her arm through N¡¯s. ¡°Why order takeout? Let¡¯s go to the cafeteria together!¡±
N wanted to refuse, but before she could say anything, Melody had already pulled her back into the
elevator.
ww
N
Meanwhile, Damon was kneeling in the Sumner residence¡¯s living room as Richard struck his back with a
thick cane
¡°I¡¯ll ask you one more time¨Care you going to break things off with that woman or not?¡± Richard demanded.This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
Damon kept his back straight, his expression defiant as he met Richard¡¯s eyes without flinching. ¡°Dad, no matter how many times you ask, my answer will be the same.¡±
Richard raised the cane again and brought it down hard on Damon¡¯s back, opening up yet another wound among the many that already marked his skin.
Sitting nearby, rk watched with a smug look, feeling deeply satisfied. His side still ached from the kick Damon had given him that morning, and he was itching to grab the cane from Richard and strike Damon himself.
This moment was too good to waste. It would be a shame if N didn¡¯t see it.
With that thought, rk sneered, snapped a photo, and sent it to her.
N felt all eyes on her as soon as she walked into Prospectus Technology¡¯s employee cafeteria. Almost everyone was sneaking nces at her, most of them filled with malice.
¡°Tsk, I wondered what was so special about her. She¡¯s not even that pretty. Must be really good at ying her cards, though, getting not one but two Sumner men to fall for her,¡± someonemented.
¡°Please, Mr. Sumner¡¯s just having some fun. You think he¡¯d actually marry a divorced woman? He¡¯ll get bored soon and dump her,¡± another said.
¡°Some women just don¡¯t know their ce. They think just because they¡¯ve climbed up once, they can do it again. But they¡¯re only setting themselves up for a big fall!¡± another chimed in.
CHAPTER 273
Melody was furious after hearing the gossip and stormed over to the women who were talking.
She
sneered. ¡°I was wondering where that foul smell wasing from. Turns out someone¡¯s just jealous!¡±
One of the women red at Melody. ¡°We¡¯re just telling the truth. Unless the person involved has something to say, who are you to butt in? Don¡¯t be someone¡¯s puppet. Who knows what dirty tricks she pulled to get close to Mr. Sumner!¡±
¡°If you¡¯ve got what it takes, gond yourself a Sumner not, shut up! And if you think N isn¡¯t that pretty, why don¡¯t I buy you a mirror so you can see what you look like?¡± Melody shot back.
¡°You!¡± the woman snapped,
Melody tilted her chin up defiantly. ¡°You what? Why don¡¯t you go repeat every word you just said to Mr. Sumner¡¯s face and see if he still lets you loudmouths keep your jobs?¡±
The woman opened her mouth to retort, but her friend pulled her back. ¡°Forget it. Let¡¯s go.¡±
The woman shot Melody a cold look. ¡°You¡¯ll regret this!
Melody crossed her arms and rolled her eyes. ¡°Oh, I¡¯m so scared. What, you gonna bite me?¡±
Seeing the woman¡¯s anger re up again, her friend quickly dragged her out of the cafeteria.
Only after they were out of sight did Melody turn back to N. ¡°Don¡¯t let them get to you, N. They¡¯re just jealous.¡±
N¡¯s expression remained calm as she replied, ¡°Let¡¯s just eat.¡±
They had barely sat down with their food when N¡¯s phone buzzed.
She looked down to see a photo from an unknown number, but she immediately recognized the person in
the picture¨CDamon
His back was a mess of blood and raw wounds, and the sight made her gasp in shock. She jumped to her
feet.
Melody, startled by the sudden movement, looked up at her. ¡°N, what¡¯s wrong?¡±
¡°I have to go,¡± N said hurriedly.
Half an hourter, N arrived at the Sumner residence.
The maid¡¯s face darkened when she saw her. ¡°Ms. Jayston, you need to leave. You¡¯re not wee here.¡±
¡°I need to see Mr. Richard,¡± N said firmly.
¡°He won¡¯t see you,¡± the maid replied.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
N¡¯s expression turned icy, and she let out a cold 274
A sh of pity crossed Richard¡¯s eyes. ¡°Do you really think you can marry into the Sumners again?¡±
Damon was defying him now only because he still had feelings for her.
It wouldn¡¯t be long before he realized the difference between marrying a wife who could help him and one who couldn¡¯t. When that time came, he wouldn¡¯t choose N.
If N were smart, she¡¯d leave him now..
N replied calmly, ¡°I know a lot of people want to marry into the Sumners, but I¡¯m not one of them. When I married rk, it was because of who he was, not because of the Sumners behind him. Now, I¡¯m with Damon for the same reason¨Cbecause he¡¯s Damon.¡±This belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
Richard snorted. ¡°Are you willing to swear that you¡¯re with him with no ulterior motives? That it¡¯s purely because you like him as a person?¡±
N¡¯s hands tightened at her sides. She was about to respond when Damon interrupted coldly, ¡°Dad, enough. Stop pressuring her!¡±
Richard red at him. ¡°Shut up! If you don¡¯t break up with her today, we¡¯ll sever our father¨Cson rtionship!
The room fell into heavy silence as his words hung in the air.
At Richard¡¯s fury, Damon remained silent for a moment before slowly straightening up. ¡°Dad, if you can¡¯t ept her, I won¡¯t force it. Whether you choose to disown me or never speak to me again, I won¡¯t leave her.¡±
¡°What?!¡± Richard looked at him in disbelief, his gaze filled with disappointment. ¡°You¡¯d give up your family for this woman?¡±
¡°Dad, I¡¯ve said before that who I choose to be with is my decision. No one has the right to interfere.¡± Damon¡¯s expression was calm, but his tone was resolute.
He had chosen to start his own business rather than take over the Sumner Group because he wanted control over his own life, not to be bound by others. Even his parents had no right to dictate his choices. After all, he wasn¡¯t living his life for anyone else.
Pichard said ¡°fine¡± three times in a row, his gaze on Damon growing colder with each word. ¡°If you¡¯re su determined, then get out!¡±
He turned his back on Damon, clearly too disappointed to look at him any longer.
Damon stared at Richard¡¯s back for a moment before taking N¡¯s hand and leaving
rk¡¯s eyes flickered with anger and resentment.
When he had wanted to marry N, he had had to kneel outside the Summer residence for three days. Yet now, all Richard did to Damon was to give him a single round of punishment. The favoritism was painfully obvious!
Upon seeing Richard¡¯s frail body trembling with emotion, rk¡¯s gaze darkened.
Dunoon is just confu
chard closed eyes and waved He¡¯s so setamines is set that woman, let¡¯s see if they can say front for inte
wly added. ¡°They wont
fchard opened has eyes and ses pour ma fall fhmIAS AND THAT THAs to many a
:
He stepped forward to help Richard sit down, speaking in a low voice. ¡®Grandpa, don¡¯t be too upset. Uncle Damon is just confused right now. I¡¯ll talk to him.¡±
Richard closed his eyes and waved his hand dismissively. ¡°No need. If he¡¯s so determined to be with that woman, let¡¯s see if they can stay together for a lifetime.¡±
rk quickly added, ¡°They won¡¯t. Once enough time passes, Uncle Damon will realize N isn¡¯t worth it.¡±
Disgust red in rk¡¯s eyes as he remembered all the ways N had manipted him recently. He couldn¡¯t believe he had once thought of her as gentle and understanding.
Richard opened his eyes and snorted. ¡°And you¡¯re one to talk? You divorced and then rushed to marry a woman from a powerless, ordinary family. What right do you have to criticize your uncle?¡±
CHAPTER 275
rk gnashed his teeth, feeling a surge of anger. It was clear that Richard was favoring Damon.This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
Unlike Damon, however, rk didn¡¯t have his ownpany and couldn¡¯t afford to defy Richard.
He quickly lowered his head and spoke in a guilty tone. ¡°You¡¯re right, Grandpa¡ I acted on impulse. Besides, Jordyn is carrying my child¡¡±
¡°Enough. I don¡¯t want to hear about your rtionship problems anymore. You can go now,¡± Richard cut him off sharply.
Seeing the irritation in Richard¡¯s expression, rk took a deep breath and forced a smile. ¡°Alright.¡±
As soon as Damon and N left the Sumner residence, Damon finally released N¡¯s hand.
¡°Why did youe here, knowing you¡¯d be put through the wringer?¡± Damon¡¯s voice carried a hint of anger, making N bite her lip nervously.
She looked up at him, her gaze filled with concern. ¡°I didn¡¯t want you to keep getting hurt because of me.¡±
Richard was Damon¡¯s father, so she knew Damon wouldn¡¯t fight back.
Originally, she had only nned to use Damon and hadn¡¯t intended toe over. But when she saw the photo rk had sent, her heart clenched painfully. At that moment, she realized she had truly fallen for Damon and couldn¡¯t just stand by while he got hurt.
Damon was silent for a moment before speaking in a low voice. ¡°I¡¯ll let it slide this time, but don¡¯t be so impulsive in the future.¡±
He was there today to protect her, but if he hadn¡¯t been, she might have been bullied.
¡°Well, it depends on the situation,¡± N replied honestly.
If he was hurt, there was no way she could just ignore it.
Damon frowned, about to say something, but N cut him off, ¡°Alright, enough lecturing. Your back is seriously injured. I¡¯m taking you to get it treated.¡±
She grabbed his hand and led him to the car.
The warmth of her touch seemed to melt the coldness in his heart.
Just as they reached the car, rk¡¯s mocking voice echoed behind them. ¡°N, are you happy now that you¡¯ve driven a wedge between Uncle Damon and my grandfather?¡±
N frowned, a wave of disgust washing over her. rk was like a cockroach¨Cimpossible to kill or get cd of, always there to make things worse.
She turned to face him. ¡°I¡¯ll be happy when you¡¯re finally kicked out of the Summers and struggling at every
turn.¡±
rk¡¯s expression froze, but then he let out a coldugh. ¡°Too bad, that day will nevere.¡±
¡°Don¡¯t be so sure. You¡¯ve already been kicked out of the Sumner Group, and Jordyn doesn¡¯t have the skills toe up with a patent that could get you back in, does she? fi retorted.
She stared at rk coldly, not noticing the dangerous gleam in Damon¡¯s eyes when she mentioned the patent.
Panic shed in rk¡¯s eyes. Afraid N would reveal the truth about the patent in front of Damon, he gritted his teeth and said, ¡°We¡¯ll see about that!¡±
He quickly turned and walked away.
N watched rk¡¯s retreating figure before turning back to see Damon staring at her. She blinked, surprised. ¡°What is it? Why are you looking at me like that?¡±
¡°Nothing.¡± Damon replied coolly and got into the car without another word.
N stood there, staring through the window at Damon, who was deliberately avoiding her gaze. Confusion swirled in her mind.
Was he angry? But why?
As she settled into the driver¡¯s seat, she hesitated for a moment before asking, ¡°Are you mad at me?
CHAPTER 276
¡°No, I¡¯m not,¡± Damon replied.
N raised an eyebrow. His tone was so stiff, and yet he imed he wasn¡¯t angry?
¡°Then why are you upset? Because I talked to rk?¡± she asked.
Damon¡¯s gaze darkened. ¡°I¡¯m not that childish.¡±
¡°Then what are you angry about?¡± N pressed.
Aside from exchanging a few words with rk, she couldn¡¯t think of anything she had done that might have upset Damon. Besides, she and rk were divorced now, and the conversation had happened right in front of Damon.
What was there to be angry about?
After a few seconds of silence, Damon spoke in a low voice.¡± Was the heart medication patent he presented back then something you gave him?¡±
N paused for a moment before nodding. ¡°Yes. He had just started working at the Sumner Group at the time, and the shareholders didn¡¯t respect him. We were married then, and I knew that if he seeded, it would benefit me too. So, I gave it to him.¡±
Damon smiled, but his tone was sarcastic. ¡°You really did treat him well.¡±
Back then, rk had used that patent to snatch away several
major partnerships from Prospectus Technology and had even undermined thepany in the process.
If rk hadn¡¯t been Damon¡¯s nephew and if the Sumner Group hadn¡¯t been a family business, Damon wouldn¡¯t have let him. off so easily.
He hadn¡¯t realized that the heart medication patent was actually N¡¯s work!
He knew he shouldn¡¯t let the past affect their current rtionship, but the thought of how deeply she had once loved rk made him feel uneasy.
N couldn¡¯t help butugh. ¡°Are you jealous, Mr. Sumner?¡±
¡°No,¡± Damon answered.
¡°Really?¡± N asked again.
¡°Of course. I¡¯m not that childish!¡± Damon eximed.
N held back herughter and nodded. ¡°Okay, okay, you¡¯re not childish. I¡¯m the one being childish. If you¡¯re not jealous, then we won¡¯t talk about it anymore.¡±
As soon as she said that, the temperature inside the car seemed to drop dramatically. Damon¡¯s face was tense, and his entire demeanor screamed, ¡°Keep away.¡±
N pretended not to notice and started the car.
After taking Damon to the hospital for treatment, N wanted to take him home, but he insisted on going to the office.
She pulled over to the side of the road and red at him. ¡± You¡¯re injured, and you think you can still work?¡±
¡°There¡¯s a very important international meeting this afternoon. I have to be there,¡± Damon exined.
¡°Can¡¯t you attend from home?¡± N asked.
¡°No,¡± Damon answered. This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
They stared at each other for a moment before N reluctantly restarted the car.
Although she was annoyed that Damon wasn¡¯t taking care of his health, she understood that as the CEO of Prospectus Technology, he was responsible for the entire corporation. His schedule was set, and changing it wasn¡¯t easy.
They drove in silence until they reached thepany. Just as Damon was about to get out of the car, N suddenly stopped
him.
¡°It¡¯s true that I gave rk the patent I developed, but that was back when we were deeply in love. I never imagined we would separate. The past can¡¯t be changed, but what I can promise you is that I don¡¯t love him anymore. The person in my heart. now is you,¡± she said.
She looked at him earnestly, her eyes reflecting his image as if he were the only one who mattered to her at that moment.
Damon hadn¡¯t expected N to exin herself, and his heart softened instantly. The difort he had been feeling
vanished.
It wasn¡¯t her fault she had fallen for the wrong person¨Cit was rk¡¯s.
Besides, if rk hadn¡¯t made those mistakes, Damon wouldn¡¯t have had the chance to be with her.
Seeing Damon¡¯s calm expression and hisck of visible reaction, N couldn¡¯t help but frown. ¡°You don¡¯t believe me?¡±
As soon as she finished speaking, Damon suddenly leaned toward her.
N instinctively backed away, but just as her head was about to hit the window, his hand gently cradled the back of her head.
CHAPTER 277
The next moment, N felt a soft touch on her forehead, like a feather gently brushing against her skin, tickling her heart.
Damon pressed a light kiss to her forehead before pulling back, his gaze betraying a hint of guilt.
¡°N, I¡¯m sorry. Thinking about how much you were willing to give up for rk made me ufortable, but that wasn¡¯t fair to you,¡± he apologized.
When he decided to be with her, he knew he should ept her -past and not hold it against her.
N was momentarily stunned. Then, she wrapped her arms around his waist and leaned against his chest as she murmured, ¡°Okay.¡±
Her body felt soft in his arms, and her fragrance was intoxicating.
Damon¡¯s gaze darkened with desire. ¡°N, if you keep holding me like this, I can¡¯t guarantee what will happen next.¡±
The restrained desire in his voice sent a shiver through N, a warm tingle spreading across her body as her cheeks flushed. slightly.
She quickly pushed him away, her eyes shing with a mix of mock anger and embarrassment. ¡°I just hugged you for a
moment.¡±
Damon awkwardly rubbed his nose and said in a low voice, ¡°I
277
have a meeting to attend. Let¡¯s go.¡±
He quickly opened the car door and got out.
N patted her slightly warm cheeks and followed him out of the car, walking together to the elevator.
Damon wanted to escort her to theb, but she refused.
¡°You dropping me off at theb this morning already caused enough of a stir. I don¡¯t want to go through that again. Besides, you¡¯re injured. You should sit and rest as much as possible,¡± she said.
¡°Alright,¡± Damon agreed, looking at her with a soft expression and a faint smile.
His gaze made N feel a familiar warmth spreading across her face. She shot him a re. ¡°Stop looking at me like that!¡±
Her tonecked any real threat and sounded more like teasing.
Damon chuckled. ¡°Why? You¡¯re my girlfriend. Can¡¯t I look at my girlfriend?¡±
¡°Who stares at someone like that all the time?¡± N shot back.
¡°But you¡¯re beautiful. I can never get enough,¡± Damon replied.
N¡¯s eyes widened in surprise. Was this really the same man she knew, the one who was so ruthless in the business world? How could he say something like that with a straight face?
Unbeknownst to her, the way she stared at Damon, with her lips slightly parted and eyes wide in shock, was incredibly alluring to him.
Unfortunately, there wasn¡¯t much he could do since they were in an elevator with surveince cameras. This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
Instead, he leaned close to her ear and whispered, ¡°If you keep looking at me like that, I¡¯m going to kiss you.¡±
His voice was low, and his warm breath brushed against N¡¯s ear, sending a shiver down her spine. The sensation was so intense that she quickly stepped back, creating distance between them.
N looked at him with caution, as if fearing he might actually follow through on his threat.
After all, they were in an elevator, and someone could walk in at any moment.
¡°Alright. I won¡¯t tease you anymore. Come here,¡± Damon said.
N didn¡¯t move. ¡°Why?¡±
She had a sense that nothing good woulde fromplying with his request.
Damon sighed. ¡°You¡¯re standing too far away from me.¡±
Although he wanted to do many things with her, he knew it was better to take things slowly. He didn¡¯t want to scare her off.
¡°This distance is fine, and I¡¯ll be out of the elevator soon-¡± Before N could finish, Damon reached out with his long arm, pulling her into his embrace.
She instinctively tried to break free, but his arm tightened around her waist, leaving her no chance to escape.
As she thought about the surveince cameras capturing this scene and the possibility of the elevator stopping at any moment, she felt a mix of embarrassment and frustration.
¡°Damon! Don¡¯t push your luck!¡± she scolded.
CHAPTER 278
Hearing the annoyance in N¡¯s voice, Damon chuckled and let her go. If he kept teasing her, she might actually get mad.
N took a few steps back, smoothing her hair that had be tousled during their yful scuffle. She shot Damon an irritated look.
¡°Alright, don¡¯t be mad. I might have to workte tonight, so I¡¯ll have the driver take you home first,¡± Damon said.
N frowned. ¡°Your wounds need to be dressed. Howte are you nning to work?¡±
¡°Not sure yet. As for the dressing, I¡¯ll have Spencer take care of it,¡± he replied.
N grew more frustrated due to Damon¡¯s casual demeanor, her face turning cold as she remained silent.
Damon sighed. ¡°It¡¯s really nothing, just minor wounds. They¡¯ll heal in a few days.¡±
¡°I¡¯lle by after work to change your bandages, and then I¡¯ll head home,¡± N said.
When the elevator doors opened, she stepped out, leaving no room for Damon to protest.
Watching her hurry away, Damon couldn¡¯t help but smile.
Meanwhile, rk returned home with a dark expression.
???
Chester 270
Jordyn, sitting in the living room with an acai bowl, noticed his frown and put down her bowl. ¡°What¡¯s wrong? Did Grandpa still refuse to let you back into the Sumner Group?¡±
rk sneered. ¡°I expected that before I even went.¡±
¡°Then who upset you?¡± Jordyn asked.
rk¡¯s eyes shed with irritation as he took in Jordyn¡¯s pregnant figure and slightly fuller body.
¡°It¡¯s none of your business!¡± he snapped. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
He turned and walked briskly toward the study, not wanting to look at her any longer.
The more rk thought about N standing up for Damon and his uncle¡¯s willingness to cut ties with Richard to be with her, the more agitated he became.
When he had wanted to marry her, he had knelt outside the Sumner residence for three days, and she hadn¡¯t shown him
the same concern.
Now, just a few days after their divorce, she was already involved with Damon!
The more rk thought about it, the darker his expression became. He was determined to make N regret her actions.
After a moment of contemtion, rk smirked and called
Michael.
¡°Didn¡¯t Uncle Damon have an old me overseas? Find out where she is now and get me her contact information,¡± rk
Chaida 270
Instructed.
After hanging up, he set his phone down, his expression icy. Once that woman returned to the country, he was certain. Damon wouldn¡¯t stay with N.
175 BOARJE
Back in theb, N found Melody still napping and quietly walked over to herputer. Seeing that it was almost time to start the afternoon¡¯s work, she decided to forgo a nap and picked up a book to read instead.
At 1:55 p.m., Melody was jolted awake by her rm. Noticing N sitting across from her reading, she groggily asked, ¡°N, when did you get back?¡±
¡°Not too long ago. Go wash your face. We¡¯ll start the afternoon¡¯s experiments soon,¡± N replied.
¡°Okay,¡± Melody said.
Once N began working, she becamepletely absorbed in the experiment. It wasn¡¯t until Melody reminded her that it was time to go home that she realized howte it was.
Noticing Melody¡¯s hesitant expression, N asked, ¡°What¡¯s wrong? Do you have something to do? If you need to leave, I can finish up here.¡±
Melody shook her head and subtly motioned toward the door.
N turned and saw Damon standing at the entrance¨Ctall and imposing, with an air of elegance that made him impossible to ignore.
+25
While removing her gloves, N told Melody, ¡°You can finish up here.¡±
N then led Damon to a nearby office before finally asking why he hade to see her.
¡°Didn¡¯t you say you¡¯d change my bandages after work?¡± Damon asked.
CHAPTER 279
Damon¡¯s tone carried a hint of grievance. Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
N looked up, startled. ¡°I was nning to finish up the experiment and thene to you.¡±
¡°Since I¡¯m already here, why don¡¯t you do it now? I¡¯ve got another meeting soon,¡± Damon said.
¡°Alright, take off your shirt,¡± N instructed.
As she prepared the fresh bandages and medication, she nced up to find Damon¡¯s bare torso before her. Her grip on the bandages tightened involuntarily.
His upper body was defined with perfectly sculpted ab¡¯s, and his muscr back appeared both raw and masculine.
Noticing N¡¯s gaze fixed on his abs, Damon cleared his throat. ¡°If you want to look, I can take it all off for you tonight. You can admire it all you want.¡±
His teasing tone made N¡¯s face flush instantly.
How embarrassing! She had actually zoned out while looking at his abs!
There was no way she was going to admit to something so mortifying, so she denied, ¡°I was just thinking about something. I¡¯ve seen plenty of men with abs. I wouldn¡¯t get distracted by a few muscles.¡±
Damon raised an eyebrow. ¡°Oh? And whose abs have you seen?¡±
¡°Too many to count. I¡¯ve forgotten,¡± N lied.
¡°Have you really forgotten, or are you just pretending?¡± Damon asked.
His eyes sparkled with amusement. He had clearly seen through her lie but chose to y along, teasing her like a cat toying with a mouse.
N red at him. ¡°Are you going to let me change the bandages, or should I get back to my experiment?¡±
¡°Of course, go ahead,¡± Damon replied.
As she carefully cut away the old bandages, the raw, bloody wounds on Damon¡¯s back were exposed once more. She hesitated for a moment, her gaze flickering with concern.
¡°This must hurt, doesn¡¯t it?¡± she asked.
Richard hadn¡¯t held back at all while beating Damon. The deep welts left by the cane would take at least two weeks to heal, assuming Damon took proper care of them.
Damon couldn¡¯t see her expression, but he could hear the worry in her voice.
¡°It doesn¡¯t hurt,¡± he told her.
N took a deep breath, remaining silent as she began changing his bandages.
Halfway through, the office door suddenly swung open, and Melody¡¯s voice came from the doorway. ¡°N, the experiment is¡.¡±
Upon seeing Damon shirtless with N leaning over his back, Melody¡¯s eyes widened in shock. She quickly covered her face with her hands.
¡°I didn¡¯t see anything! You guys carry on!¡± she eximed.
¡°Melody, it¡¯s not what you think¡ N began to exin.
However, Melody cut her off, ¡°It¡¯s fine, it¡¯s fine! I didn¡¯t misunderstand. You two continue. I¡¯ll just head home.¡±
She hurriedly closed the office door and left as quickly as she could.
N was speechless.
She looked at Damon, gritting her teeth. ¡°This is your fault! Now she definitely thinks we were doing something
inappropriate.¡±
¡°How was I supposed to know she¡¯d suddenly burst in? Should I go exin things to her?¡± Damon offered.
Him exining to Melody? That would only make Melody¡¯s imagination run wild.
¡°Just turn around. I¡¯m almost done with the bandages,¡± N
said.
Once she had finished wrapping and securing the bandages, she started cleaning up the used materials. ¡°Don¡¯t bother sending the driver for meter. I have something to take care
of.¡±
¡°Okay. Just be safe and let me know when you¡¯re home,¡±
#
Damon replied.
After Damon left, N tidied up the office, double¨Cchecked the experiment, and then locked up for the day.
Instead of heading back to the vi, she took a taxi to the bar to pick up her car and then drove straight to the hospital.
When N walked into the hospital room, Wren was feeding Harrison dinner.
Wren¡¯s smile immediately vanished upon seeing her, and she pretended not to notice.
CHAPTER 280
N pursed her lips and entered the hospital room.
¡°Dad, I¡¯m nning to send you abroad for treatment. The doctor has already agreed. Once your health improves and everything is arranged overseas, I¡¯ll buy tickets for you and Wren to go,¡± N announced.
Harrison interrupted her, ¡°I¡¯m not going. I¡¯m staying in the country.¡±
N frowned. ¡°Dad, the medical facilities abroad are better, and you need time to recover¡¡±
Harrison cut her off, ¡°After you send me and Wren abroad, what are you nning to do next? Are you going to fight the Sumners alone?¡±
N lowered her gaze and replied tly, ¡°No. Didn¡¯t you tell me before not to continue?¡±
¡°Then why are you still involved with the Sumners?¡± Harrison mmed his hand on the table, his eyes filled with anger as he stared at N.
¡°When have I been involved with the Sumners?¡± N asked, bewildered.
¡°Don¡¯t lie to me! You just divorced rk, and now you¡¯re entangled with his uncle. What exactly are you trying to do?!¡± Harrison demanded.
N widened her eyes, her gaze turning icy. ¡°Who told you
that?¡±
¡°Does it matter who told me? What matters is whether it¡¯s true! Tell me honestly, are you with Damon or not?¡± Harrison
pressed.
The room fell silent.
Wren looked at N with disdain, shocked that N could be involved in such actions. If N had been her own daughter, Wren would have been furious beyond belief.
Who would divorce their husband and then get involved with his uncle? It wasughable.
N was silent for a few seconds before admitting directly, ¡± Yes, I¡¯m with him.¡±
Disappointment shed in Harrison¡¯s eyes. He looked tired as he said, ¡°I failed to raise you properly. I¡¯ve done your mother wrong.¡±
When rk had first brought this up, Harrison hadn¡¯t believed it, thinking N wouldn¡¯t do something like this. Now that she had admitted it, he couldn¡¯t deceive himself any longer. N?velDrama.Org holds ? this.
¡°Dad, I know you can¡¯t understand this right now. Just focus on your recovery. Don¡¯t worry about me,¡± N said.
Seeing her unrepentant attitude, Harrison gritted his teeth and said, ¡°Break off with him immediately. Otherwise, I won¡¯t go. abroad or see you again!¡±
Disbelief clouded N¡¯s eyes as she instinctively took a step back.
¡°Dad, I thought you¡¯d be different from the others, but I was wrong. You¡¯re just the same as the Sumners,¡± she cried.
Wren sneered. ¡°N, don¡¯t me me for speaking harshly. What good cane from your involvement with Damon? You¡¯re only setting yourself up for pain. You wouldn¡¯t think he-¡±
N interrupted coldly, ¡°If you know it¡¯s harsh, then don¡¯t say it. After all, you¡¯re not my mother, and you don¡¯t have the right to control me.¡±
Harrison pped her, and the room fell silent instantly.
His hand trembled slightly as he spoke with deep
disappointment. ¡°Wren is only looking out for you. Even if she¡¯s not your mother, she¡¯s still an elder. How can you speak to her like that?¡±
N lowered her head, her long hair concealing her face and emotions. The stinging pain on her cheek was nothingpared to the hurt caused by Harrison¡¯s words.
She looked up at him and said slowly, ¡°I¡¯ll arrange the tickets for you to go abroad. Whether you choose to go or not is up to you. Since you don¡¯t want to see me, I won¡¯te back again.¡±
CHAPTER 281
Chapter 281
After saying that, N turned and quickly left the room.
Harrison wanted to call after her but ultimately couldn¡¯t make a sound. He covered his face in anguish, regretting everything. he had done and said. He had intended to protect her, but his words had caused so much pain
Wren sighed and said softly, ¡°Harrison, don¡¯t me yourself. This isn¡¯t your fault¡ It¡¯s mine. If I hadn¡¯t said those things, your rtionship with N wouldn¡¯t be like this¡¡±
Harrison hung his head in silence, unsure of how to respond.
Outside the hospital, N wiped the tears from her eyes, questioning her actions for the first time.
Why was everyone against her? Should she really give up?
But when she thought of Cyrus and rk¡¯s schemes against her, and what Cyrus had done to her family, she couldn¡¯t bring herself to let it go. There was no turning back now¨Cshe had to stay with Damon and use him to deal with the Sumners.
When N returned to the vi, it was already past 9:00 p.m.
Damon was home, sitting on the sofa and reading documents.
¡°Where have you been? Why are you back sote?¡± he asked.
N shook her head. ¡°It¡¯s nothing. I¡¯m a bit tired. I¡¯m going to
rest now.¡±
As she walked past the sofa, Damon suddenly spoke up. ¡°Wait, what happened to your face?¡±
N bit her lip and was about to respond when Damon approached her, brushing the hair from her face.
Upon seeing the mark of a p on her cheek, his demeanor turned cold. ¡°Who did this?¡±
¡°No one. Don¡¯t ask. I¡¯m tired and just want to rest,¡± she replied.
Damon frowned. Noting her pale face, he didn¡¯t press further but firmly guided her to the sofa and made her sit down. ¡°Wait here.¡±
He entered the kitchen, and soon there was the sound of clinking and ttering. He returned shortly with a bag of ice.
As soon as the ice touched N¡¯s face, she winced.
¡°If it hurts, let me know,¡± Damon said.
¡°It¡¯s fine,¡± N replied.
Damon didn¡¯t say anything more, and the room fell silent. He watched N closely.
If it had been someone from the Sumners who had hurt her, she would have told him. Thus, the incident must have involved her own family.
Upon realizing this, Damon¡¯s eyes grew colder. She was his now, and he wouldn¡¯t let anyone, whether from the Sumners or the Jaystons, hurt her.
After about ten minutes of icing, N felt the pain in her face
ease.
She looked up at Damon and said, ¡°It doesn¡¯t hurt anymore. Thank you.¡±
Damon removed the ice pack and replied, ¡°I told you, don¡¯t keep saying thank you. We¡¯re a couple. If you¡¯re upset, you can tell me. I won¡¯t let anyone bully you.¡±
A warmth spread through N¡¯s chest, and her eyes grew a bit misty. ¡°I understand.¡±
Seeing her struggle to hold back tears despite her attempt to stay strong, Damon felt a pang of sympathy and pulled her into his embrace.
¡°Did you have dinner?¡± he asked.
¡°I ate.¡± Just as N said that, her stomach growled loudly, betraying her.
Damon chuckled and said, ¡°I¡¯ll make you a sandwich.¡± N?velDrama.Org holds ? this.
CHAPTER 282
Just as N was about to get up, Damon¡¯s hands gently pressed down on her shoulders.
¡°Don¡¯t move. Wait here,¡± Damon instructed.
Meeting his firm gaze, N bit her lip and instinctively nodded.
Damon patted her head with a smile. ¡°Good girl.¡±
N was left speechless.
Damon worked quickly, and soon the kitchen was filled with the aroma of food.
N couldn¡¯t help but swallow as she headed to the kitchen. She hadn¡¯t eaten dinner and was now quite hungry.
Just as she reached the kitchen door, Damon emerged, carrying a te of sandwiches.
¡°Why did youe over?¡± he asked.
N was captivated by the sandwiches in his hand. It was a simple creation¨Cvegetables and eggs topped with melted cheese. The green vegetables and crispy¨Cedged fried eggs. looked especially appetizing under the light. This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
Noticing that all her attention was on the sandwiches and she hadpletely ignored him, Damon couldn¡¯t help but smile. ¡± Go get your cutlery.¡±
At his words, N quickly went into the kitchen, grabbed her cutlery, and returned to the table.
SANDH SE
¡°Thank you, Uncle Damon,¡± she said.
Damon didn¡¯t correct her habitual way of addressing him and simply nodded. ¡°Eat up.¡±
N picked up a sandwich, and as soon as she took a bite, her eyes involuntarily closed in delight.
¡°So delicious!¡± she eximed.
¡°Eat slowly. No one¡¯s going to take it from you. Don¡¯t burn yourself,¡± Damon warned.
N nodded but showed no sign of slowing down.
In less than ten minutes, she had finished the entire te of sandwiches, leaving not a crumb behind. As she put down her cutlery, she still felt a bit unsatisfied.
¡°Uncle Damon, how can you cook so well?¡± she asked.
She had expected something unappetizing, but his cooking was surprisingly good. She could easily have eaten another te.
¡°I only know how to make simple things like this,¡± he answered.
Before N could respond, Damon¡¯s phone vibrated on the
table.
He picked it up, answered the call, and frowned slightly as he spoke coldly. ¡°I¡¯ll be there soon.¡±
After hanging up, he turned to N. ¡°There¡¯s a problem at thepany. I need to step out for a bit. Rest early and don¡¯t wait
Chatter 202
up for me.¡±
¡°But your back¡¡± N began.
¡°I¡¯ll be careful,¡± he assured her.
As Damon hurried out, N bit her lip, a trace of concern in her
eyes.
She got up, washed and dried the dishes in the kitchen, then returned to her bedroom. Just as she was about to shower and go to bed, she received a message from Wren.
Wren: [N, your dad was just acting out of impulse today. -Don¡¯t take it to heart. I support the idea of going abroad. Let me know when things are ready, and your dad and I can go anytime.]
N stared at the screen, her face expressionless.
Wren¡¯s eagerness to go abroad likely stemmed from a fear of retaliation from the Sumners.
It was understandable. After all, N was only her
stepdaughter, and Wren wouldn¡¯t want to be dragged into trouble.
After a long pause, N replied with a simple ¡°Okay¡± and then.
deleted the chat.
Meanwhile, relieved by N¡¯s response, Wren quickly dialed another number.
¡°Gabriel, Harrison and I will be going to Meristate soon,¡± she
?
announced.
A deep, youthful voice answered from the other end of the line. ¡°Mom, why are you suddenlying over?¡±
¡°Harrison needs treatment abroad. I¡¯ll have Nylu find a hospital close to where you live so I can take care of both you and Harrison,¡± she replied.
There was a brief silence before Gabriel Hackett¡¯s voice came through again. ¡°How is N¡ doing these days?¡±
CHAPTER 283
Wren sighed. ¡°Don¡¯t even mention it. She divorced rk, and on top of that-¡±
Before she could finish, Gabriel interrupted, ¡°She got divorced?¡±
Wren, oblivious to his agitation, continued with a frown. ¡°Yes, it¡¯splicated. I¡¯ll exin everything once I get to Meristate.¡±
¡°Alright¡ Gabriel replied.
After a few more words, Wren ended the call. Thinking about. reuniting with her son in Meristate, she couldn¡¯t help but smile.
Once she and Harrison were in Meristate, whatever N did here wouldn¡¯t affect them. All she needed to do was focus on taking good care of Harrison and Gabriel.
As for N, Wren had never considered her part of the family. The courtesy Wren had shown in the past was merely out of respect for Harrison. Now that N no longer respected her, Wren felt no need to curry favor with her.
At the Sumner residence¡
Damon¡¯s decision to move N into his vi had left Richard fuming.
¡°Outrageous! Does he really want to drag the Sumner name through the mud?!¡± Richard bellowed.
Thewyer, Parker Frampton, sat nearby in silence, his gaze
lowered.
He had met with Cyrus at the police station earlier and knew that the police had gathered substantial evidence, making it impossible to bail him out anytime soon.
Richard had ordered his people to find N and nned to confront her tonight. However, discovering she had moved into Damon¡¯s vi meant he couldn¡¯t meet her without Damon knowing, which only added to his frustration.
Cindy, her eyes red from crying, looked at Richard. ¡°Dad, when has Cyrus ever been through this kind of suffering? We need to find a way to get him out. The longer he stays in there, the worse it is for the Sumners.¡±
Richard shot her a cold look. ¡°I don¡¯t need you to remind me.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
His face darkened with frustration. The situation wasn¡¯t just affecting the Sumners¨Cit was threatening the Sumner Group¡¯s business rtionships as well.
Although the Sumners had managed to contain the scandal, there was no guarantee it wouldn¡¯t spread further. If their business partners found out, they might sever ties with the Sumner Group, leading to significant losses.
¡°Find a way to get N to meet with us,¡± Richard ordered.
Parker sighed. ¡°Mr. Summer, my assistant tried to approach. her but was warned off by Mr. Damon¡¯s people. We haven¡¯t been able to see her, and there¡¯s nothing more we can do.¡±
The living room fell into a heavy silence, the atmosphere thick with tension.
?
Richard¡¯s expression grew even darker. Damon was clearly determined to oppose the family over a woman. His son had turned out to be a huge disappointment.
Cindy¡¯s eyes shed with hatred as she gritted her teeth. ¡°That little wretch thinks she can get away with anything just because she¡¯s with Damon?! If anything happens to Cyrus, I swear I¡¯ll make her pay, even if it costs me my life!¡±
¡°Rather than wasting time on empty threats, we should focus on how to meet with her,¡± Richard retorted.
¡°Meeting her is all? I¡¯ll go myself. I don¡¯t believe I can¡¯t find a chance to see her if I camp outside Prospectus Technology!¡± Cindy dered.
Richard, having just shed with Damon, was eager to avoid further escting their conflict. Cindy stepping in as the ¡°bad guy¡± was actually ideal. After all, it was her duty to do something for her husband.
¡°Then do as you said. Find a way to get her to sign the forgiveness letter when you meet her,¡± Richard said.
T
CHAPTER 284
Noticing that Richard hadn¡¯t assigned him the task, Parker stood up and said, ¡°Mr. Richard, I need to find more.
information to see if there¡¯s a way to bail out Mr. Cyrus. I¡¯ll be going now.¡±
Richard nodded. ¡°Go ahead.¡±
After Parker left, Richard turned to Cindy. ¡°You should go too. Whether Cyrus can be released depends on whether you can convince N.¡±
With that, Richard left the room.
As Cindy watched him leave, she couldn¡¯t help but grit her teeth, her eyes filled with resentment. It seemed Richard wasn¡¯t reliable either, and only she cared about Cyrus¡® fate.
After leaving the Sumner residence, Cindy called rk and recounted the night¡¯s events in detail.
¡°rk, if we want to get your father out, it¡¯s up to us now. I¡¯ll wait downstairs at Prospectus Technology tomorrow. I refuse to believe I can¡¯t find a way to see her!¡± Cindy dered.
There was a brief silence before rk¡¯s cold voice came through. ¡°Alright. I¡¯ll also find a way to create some trouble for Uncle Damon¡¯spany so he won¡¯t have time to deal with N.¡±
¡°Good, we¡¯ll rely on ourselves¡¡± Cindy replied.
rk frowned. If Cyrus weren¡¯t his biological father and still
useful to him, he wouldn¡¯t care at all.
¡°Okay, I have other matters to attend to. Goodbye,¡± he said, dismissing the conversation.
After hanging up, rk sent a message to Michael, instructing him to find Reba Austen within three days.
Noticing rk¡¯s troubled expression, Jordyn approached and began massaging his temples. ¡°rk, try not to worry too. much. We¡¯ll do our best with this. If N really doesn¡¯t n to let Dad off, you must take over thepany as soon as possible.¡±
rk closed his eyes and remained silent, contemting Jordyn¡¯s words.
If Cyrus were truly facing sentencing, securing control of thepany quickly was indeed a priority. With that in mind, he decided to visit Cyrus the next day.
The next morning, while having breakfast, N realized that Damon hadn¡¯t returned all night.
Concerned about his back wounds, she lost her appetite, set down her bread, and headed straight to thepany with medicine and bandages in hand.
As she parked downstairs, Cindy intercepted her. ¡°N, we need to talk!¡±
Cindy¡¯s expression was icy, her gaze filled with disdain, and her tone as haughty as ever.
13
N ignored her and attempted to walk past, but Cindy stubbornly followed her to the elevator. N?velDrama.Org holds ? this.
¡°Are you ignoring me? Are you deaf? Or have you climbed too high to care about me, your former mother¨Cinw?¡± Cindy demanded. ¡°Forget it. It¡¯s not surprising that you¡¯re rude. I¡¯m here today to get you to sign this forgiveness letter. If you sign, I¡¯ll leave right away!¡±
She thrust a document toward N.
N nced at it before looking back at her. ¡°Do I look like a fool to you?¡±
¡°What do you mean?!¡± Cindy growled.
Seeing Cindy¡¯s angry eyes, N smirked. ¡°What do I mean? You really have the nerve toe here asking me to sign a forgiveness letter!¡±
¡°You!¡± Cindy pointed at her, trembling with anger. ¡°Don¡¯t forget, I¡¯m your elder!¡±
¡°Elder?¡± N¡¯s smile wasced with irony. ¡°I¡¯m no longer married to rk. How are you an elder to me? Besides, I¡¯m now Damon¡¯s girlfriend. If I¡¯m not mistaken, you¡¯re just his sister¨Cinw. Do you want to be my elder? Are you trying to be his mother?¡±
CHAPTER 285
Chapter 285
Cindy was furious and raised her hand to p N. However, before her hand could make contact, N had already grabbed her wrist.
¡°Let go!¡± Cindy shrieked.
N smiled. ¡°I suggest you adjust your attitude before asking for favors next time. Otherwise, you¡¯ll just end up looking foolish.¡±
With that, she released Cindy¡¯s wrist.
Still struggling, Cindy didn¡¯t expect N to suddenly let go. She lost her bnce and fell awkwardly to the ground.
As the elevator doors opened, N walked in without looking back.
Cindy tried to stop her, but the pain from her twisted ankle prevented her from getting up to chase after N.
¡°Stop right there! You bitch! I won¡¯t let this go!¡± Cindy screeched.
An icy glint crossed N¡¯s eyes.
Once the elevator doors closed and reached the first floor, she headed straight to the surveince room. After copying the security footage of the argument with Cindy in front of the elevator, she left.
N then went to the top floor to find Damon but was told he was currently in a meeting. She handed the medicine and
13
bandages to Spencer.
¡°Mr. Hogg, please help him change the bandages once he¡¯s done with the meeting,¡± she requested.
Spencer took the items and hesitated before speaking. ¡°Ms. Jayston, if you don¡¯t have anything urgent, it would be best to avoiding to the top floor to see Mr. Sumner. Many shareholders of Prospectus Technology are aware of what happened yesterday, and they¡¯re quite upset about the unclear rtionship between you and Mr. Sumner.¡±
If news of Damon being with his nephew¡¯s ex¨Cwife got out online, it could negatively impact Prospectus Technology¡¯s reputation.
While shareholders might not care about Damon¡¯s personal life, they would be the first to protest if his personal affairs started affecting their interests.
Seeing that N didn¡¯t respond, Spencer sighed and
continued. ¡°Ms. Jayston, Mr. Sumner wouldn¡¯t tell you this directly, but if you truly care about him, you wouldn¡¯t want to put him in a difficult position.¡±
N nodded. ¡°I understand. I¡¯ll try to avoid meeting him at thepany.¡±
Spencer¡¯s expression rxed a bit due to her agreement. ¡± Thank you. Please don¡¯t mention this to Mr. Sumner.¡±
¡°Don¡¯t worry, I won¡¯t. I know it¡¯s almost work time, so I won¡¯t keep you any longer,¡± N said.
Back in her office, N sat at her desk, staring nkly at herputer.
¡°N, are you okay?¡± Melody asked.
N turned her head and forced a smile. ¡°It¡¯s nothing. I didn¡¯t sleep wellst night. Let¡¯s start working.¡±
¡°Oh, okay¡¡± Melody replied, unsure of what else to say.
Just as theypleted a stage of their experiment, Damon arrived with the medicine and bandages N had given to Spencer.
N asked him to wait in the office while she finished¡® recording the experiment data. She handed thepleted data to Melody before leaving. This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
When N walked into the office, she saw Damon sleeping in her chair. She tiptoed closer and noticed the dark circles under his eyes and the exhaustion etched on his face. It seemed he had been working all night.
She intended to let him rest a bit longer, but just as she turned. to leave, he wrapped his arms around her waist and rested his
chin on her shoulder.
¡°Why didn¡¯t you wake me?¡± Damon asked.
N gently pushed him away and looked down. ¡°I saw your sleeping so deeply in my chair and figured you must be exhausted. I wanted you to get a few more minutes of rest.¡±
CHAPTER 286
Chapter 286
Noticing N¡¯s cold attitude, Damon frowned and asked softly, ¡°Did something happen?¡±
N looked up, confused. ¡°No, why do you ask?¡±
¡°You seem a bit down today,¡± he replied.
N shook her head. ¡°No, I¡¯m fine. Sit down. I¡¯ll change your bandages.¡±
Damon studied her for a moment but chose not to press further. ¡°Okay.¡±
As N finished changing his bandages and tidying up the used items, she said, ¡°You can go now. I need to get back to work.¡±
Damon stared at her for several seconds before asking, ¡°Did you get upset because I didn¡¯te homest night?¡±
N was taken aback. ¡°No, why would you think that?¡±
¡°Because you seem distant. I must have done something to upset you,¡± he suggested.
N couldn¡¯t meet Damon¡¯s gentle gaze and looked away. ¡°No, it might just be that I didn¡¯t sleep well because of the bed changest night.¡±
¡°Really?¡± he asked.
¡°Yeah. You worked all night at thepany and must be very busy. It¡¯s not ideal for you to stay in theb for too long. We
should keep a low profile, N exined
Damon raised an eyebrow. ¡°Why should we keep a low profile? We¡¯re dating now¡±
¡°I got divorced from rk a few days ago, andst time you were quite high profile at thepany entrance. I don¡¯t like being the center of attention,¡± N said.
Damon wanted to point out that being with him would naturally attract attention, but seeing her serious expression, he agreed. ¡°I can give you time to adjust, but I don¡¯t want to wait too long.¡±
Hearing his assertive tone, N hesitated before nodding. Alright, let¡¯s try to keep our interactions at thepany to a minimum. I won¡¯te to your office for lunch. I¡¯ll eat in the cafeteria with Melody.¡±
Damon¡¯s eyes narrowed, a dangerous glint shing in them. Are you having second thoughts?¡±
N¡¯s attempt to avoid having lunch with him made it clear that she was trying to distance herself.
N looked puzzled. ¡°Second thoughts about what?¡±
¡°You tell me!¡± Damon¡¯s face darkened. ¡°First you say we should keep a low profile, and now you¡¯re avoiding lunch with me. It seems like you¡¯re trying to avoid me.¡±
Caught off guard, N felt a pang of guilt and instinctively replied, ¡°It¡¯s not that. It¡¯s just that so much has happened recently, and our rtionship has changed. I need time to adjust.¡± This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
¡°Then give me a timeline,¡± he demanded.
N hesitated before meeting his gaze. ¡°How about three months?¡±
Damon immediately rejected the idea. ¡°No, that¡¯s too long.¡±
¡°Then one month. It can¡¯t be any shorter,¡± N countered.
¡°Fine, one month,¡± Damon agreed.
¡°Okay. I need to get back to my experiments now. You should go,¡± N said.
As she turned to leave, Damon grabbed her wrist and pulled her into his embrace. Before she could react, his lips were on
hers.
N¡¯s eyes widened in shock. Just as she was about to push him away, he released her and took a step back.
¡°What are you doing?! This is the office, and someone coulde in at any moment!¡± N hissed.
Seeing her embarrassed reaction, Damon smiled and said, ¡°It¡¯s a good morning kiss.¡±
He gently pinched her reddened cheek, which was filled with displeasure, and added, ¡°I promised to give you a month, so you¡¯ll have to give a little in return.¡±
¡°I¡¯m just not used to being so intimate¡¡± N muttered.
CHAPTER 288
Erin walked into Damon¡¯s office with anticipation and smiled as she looked at him.
Damon was handling documents bathed in the sunlight
streaming through the window. The radiant glow enhanced his handsome features, making them even more striking.
¡°Mr. Damon, I have the contract ready. When would be a good time for us to sign it?¡± she chirped.
Damon set aside the document he was working on and regarded her with an emotionless gaze.
¡°Ms. Hulle, you may have misunderstood. I asked to see you today to inform you that Prospectus Technology has decided to pursue other partnership opportunities. You no longer need toe by,¡± he said.
Erin¡¯s smile froze as she stared at Damon in disbelief. ¡°What did you say?¡±
After so many discussions and being on the verge of signing the contract, he was now backing out?
Despite her anger, Erin tried to maintain herposure and asked, ¡°May I know why?¡±
¡°Your unsolicited harassment of my girlfriend indicates ack of professional integrity on your part. After careful consideration, I¡¯ve decided to suspend our coboration,¡± Damon exined.
It was N again!
Erin red at Damon. ¡°Mr. Damon, are you really going to forfeit a ready¨Cmade partnership and go against the Hulles just because of a woman?¡±
¡°Ms. Hulle, you¡¯re overreacting. It¡¯s simply that you¡¯ve failed to present yourself as a suitable partner,¡± Damon replied.
Erin sneered. ¡°Don¡¯t try to sound so noble. You¡¯re just doing this to get back at N, aren¡¯t you?¡±
Damon remained impassive. ¡°If that¡¯s what you believe will make you feel better, I have no objections.¡±
¡°Fine! Damon, don¡¯t regret this!¡± Erin shouted.
Fuming, she mmed the door on her way out and
identally bumped into Spencer, who was holding a coffee. She marched straight to the elevator without sparing him a nce and left.
Once in her car, her anger still seethed. She pounded the steering wheel in frustration, her eyes shing with resentment. She was determined not to give up so easily.
Before the end of the workday, Melody abruptly handed her phone to N, her face a picture of fury.
¡°N, someone just posted in thepany¡¯s main group chat using you of assaulting your ex¨Cmother¨Cinw. The entirepany is talking about it!¡± she eximed.
N took the phone and saw that the group chat was
overflowing with discussions about her and Cindy, the majority of which were critical of her.
[I¡¯m done. I can¡¯t believe Mr. Sumner would be interested in Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
such a woman. She actually physically attacked an elder¨Conly she could do that!]
[No wonder rk divorced her. It must be unbearable to have such a woman around all the time!]
[Stop talking about it. If someone leaks this to her, she mightin to Mr. Sumner, and we¡¯ll be the ones in trouble.]
N¡¯s gaze turned icy while watching the stream of messages, Cindy had not disappointed her at all.
She handed the phone back to Melody, her expression calm. Don¡¯t worry about it.¡±
Melody looked concerned. ¡°Should we inform Mr. Sumner so he can handle it?¡±
If Damon issued a statement prohibiting any discussion, the issue might be contained.
N lowered her eyes, recalling what Spencer had said earlier that morning, and shook her head.
¡°No, I can handle it myself,¡± she said.
¡°Are you sure?¡± Melody asked.
¡°Yes, let¡¯s focus on work,¡± N confirmed.
Seeing N¡¯s calm demeanor, Melody reluctantly agreed. If N couldn¡¯t resolve the issue, she would seek Damon¡¯s help.
Due to a problem with some experimental data that dyed them for over two hours in the afternoon, N
CHAPTER 289
Chapter 289
By the time they finished the experiment and were ready to leave, it was already past 8:00 p.m.
Knowing that Melody lived quite far, N offered her a ride home.
Melody¡¯s eyes lit up. ¡°Really? Thank you so much, N!¡±
¡°It¡¯s no problem. It¡¯s not safe for a girl to go home alone at night,¡± N said.
As they chatted, they put away theb equipment and ensured everything was in order before heading downstairs together.
N sent a message to Damon, letting him know she would be dropping off Melody. He didn¡¯t seem to mind.
When Melody saw Damon, she was a bit flustered.
Sitting in the back seat and seeing Damon in the driver¡¯s seat, she was even more surprised. Having thepany CEO as a chauffeur was something she could barely have dreamed of.
¡°Mr. Sumner, thank you for this,¡± she said.
Damon responded with a brief acknowledgment and turned to N. ¡°Can you set the navigation?¡±
¡°Sure,¡± N agreed.
Melody¡¯s home was in the opposite direction of Damon¡¯s vi, so they dropped her off first.
During the drive, Damon remained mostly silent, speaking only
+25. BONUS
asionally to N.
In the back seat, Melody was hidden in the shadows, stealing nces at Damon. His profile alone was enough to captivate
anyone.
However, she dared not entertain any fantasies and simply admired him from afar. Damon and she were from different worlds, and without N, she likely wouldn¡¯t have had the chance to speak with him at all.
After dropping off Melody, they returned to the vi around 10: 00 p.m.
As N was about to head to her room, Damon called her. Don¡¯t you have anything to say to me?¡±
N looked puzzled. What did he want to discuss?
After a moment of thought, she guessed that Damon might be unhappy about her asking him to drive Melody home. After all, he was the CEO of Prospectus Technology, and asking him to drive an employee might have felt like an imposition.
¡°I¡¯m sorry for the trouble tonight. I didn¡¯t expect to workte. Next time, I¡¯ll handle it myself,¡± she said.
Damon frowned. ¡°That¡¯s not what I¡¯m referring to.¡±
N realized she hadn¡¯t had much interaction with him today except for that moment.
Seeing her confusion, Damon suppressed his frustration and
035
asked coldly, ¡°Did nothing else happen at thepany today?¡±
¡°Are you talking about Erining to see me?¡± N asked.
Damon¡¯s expression darkened. ¡°If I hadn¡¯t asked, would you have kept this from me?¡±
¡°To me, it wasn¡¯t a big deal. She just came over and said some strange things. If I let every little thing bother me, you might think I¡¯m too sensitive,¡± N exined.
Damon stared at her in silence for a few seconds before speaking quietly. ¡°I wouldn¡¯t think that. Moreover, this issue arose because of me. You could have told me and let me This belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
handle it.¡±
He was more concerned about the fact that N seemed to be managing things on her own without relying on him.
¡°If I felt the situation was beyond my ability to handle, I would have told you immediately. Just because we¡¯re together doesn¡¯t mean I want to be a woman who depends on you for everything,¡± N said.
She had trusted rk without reservation and had ended up hurt badly. She was determined not to make the same mistake again.
Damon looked at her, his tone cold. ¡°Did you act the same way with rk?¡±
Noticing his anger, N met his gaze. ¡°You¡¯re you, and he was him. I¡¯m not the same person I was before, so my rtionship with you won¡¯t be like how it was with him.¡±
CHAPTER 290
Chapter 290
In the end, it seemed N didn¡¯t Bike Damon that much.
However, they had a lifetime ahead of them. Damon had
enough patience to make her eventually depend on him just as she once depended on rk.
¡°Yeah, but I still hope that if someone bothers you in the future, you¡¯ll think ofing to me for help instead of handling
everything on your own,¡± Damon said.
His serious demeanor made N¡¯s heart soften.
¡°Okay,¡± she agreed.
Back in her room, N was about to remove her makeup when her phone rang. It was Vrie.
¡°N, your ex¨Cmother¨Cinw is spreading rumors that you¡¯ve been violent with her. The upper crust of Saintornia is already talking about it,¡± Vrie informed her.
N looked down. ¡°Don¡¯t worry about it. She¡¯ll get what¡¯sing to her soon enough.¡±
Vrie¡¯s tone was filled with frustration. ¡°You don¡¯t know how horrible the things she¡¯s saying are. I¡¯m so angry.¡±
N¡¯s heart warmed a little. She replied gently, ¡°You haven¡¯t fully recovered yet. Don¡¯t let someone like her ruin your mood.¡±
¡°I¡¯m just worried about you,¡± Vrie confessed.
Chapb¨¦c 290
+25
¡°The hardest times have already passed. I don¡¯t care what she and rk do now,¡± N stated.
To her, Cindy and rk were nothing more than clowns. They weren¡¯t worth wasting her emotions over. If they wanted to bring trouble on themselves, though, she wouldn¡¯t hold back.
Vrie sighed, feeling a bit sentimental. ¡°It¡¯s good if you don¡¯t care. I didn¡¯t expect rk, who used to treat you so well, to end up like this¡ Anyway, let¡¯s not talk about this.¡±
N pressed her lips together, her expression unchanged. Nothing stays the same forever, not even feelings, so it¡¯s not surprising.¡±
Vrie dropped the topic, and after chatting about a few other things, ended the call.
N set her phone down.
Thinking about what Damon had said earlier, she frowned. She hadn¡¯t thought much of it at the time, but now she realized his words had been driven by insecurity.
Their rtionship was like walking a tightrope¨Cone misstep could lead to disaster.
Both of themcked security. If he discovered she was with him solely for personal gain, their already fragile rtionship mighte to an abrupt end.
The thought of this oue caused N a pang in her chest. Forcing herself to ignore the ache, she got up to shower.
When she emerged, she found several missed calls from rk and multiple messages asking to meet. She frowned.
Initially, she didn¡¯t want to respond, but she feared that he might go to Prospectus Technology and create a scene the next day if she ignored him.
After a moment¡¯s consideration, she called him back.
¡°What do you want?¡± she asked.
Her tone was nearly indifferent, making rk frown on the other end of the line.
¡°N, many people in Saintornia now know about your alleged violence against my mom. She said if you don¡¯t apologize in person, she¡¯ll call the police,¡± rk warned.
Nughed in anger. She couldn¡¯t believe how ridiculous. Cindy and rk were being. N?velDrama.Org holds ? this.
¡°If your brain¡¯s malfunctioning, you should get it checked before it¡¯s toote,¡± N retorted.
There was a brief silence on the other end before rk¡¯s voice, now filled with anger, came through. ¡°N, I¡¯m doing this for your own good. If she reports it and causes a scene at
Prospectus Technology, it¡¯ll be bad for both you and my uncle. Don¡¯t you think?¡±
N raised an eyebrow. Was he trying to threaten her?
She didn¡¯t want rk and Cindy to create a scene at Prospectus Technology and affect Damon, but that didn¡¯t
mean they could control her.
CHAPTER 291
¡°If you¡¯re going to report it, do it quickly. If you don¡¯t, I¡¯ll handle it for you.¡± With that, N hung up.
The next moment, she sent the surveince footage she had copied earlier to William, along with a brief exnation of Cindy¡¯s actions.
William confirmed that they could sue Cindy for defamation.
N smiled and sent a reply.
N: [Let¡¯s proceed with thewsuit.]
Although defamation might notnd Cindy in prison, the embarrassment of being sued for it would be severe. After all, annoying people was something everyone could do.
William agreed and asked if N was avable for a meeting the next day to discuss the division of assets with rk.
After agreeing to meet at a restaurant near the office, N dried her hair and went to bed.
Meanwhile, rk sat in his study, his expression filled with anger.
¡°She refuses to meet with us,¡± he said.
Cindy gnashed her teeth. ¡°Then I¡¯ll go see her tomorrow. She has to sign the forgiveness letter!¡±
She had been spreading rumors that N was violent toward
her, hoping to force N into meeting her and then pressuring her to sign a forgiveness letter under duress from the Sumners.
She hadn¡¯t expected N to remain soposed.
¡°Mom, with your foot injury, it won¡¯t do any good to go now,¡± rk reminded her.
During this time, rk had witnessed N¡¯s cold and unfeeling side. After all these years together, she now showed
absolutely nopassion, which was truly disheartening.
¡°Even if it¡¯s futile, I have to go. Otherwise, your father is truly finished,¡± Cindy insisted.
After a moment of silence, rk looked at Cindy and said. somberly, ¡°Mom, I visited Dad today. He agreed to transfer hispany to me.¡±
Cindy was taken aback but quickly caught on. ¡°What do you mean by that? You¡¯re not nning to care about him anymore?¡±
rk looked resigned. ¡°It¡¯s not that I don¡¯t want to help him. Given the current situation, I can¡¯t save him, so I might as well take over hispany. Once I have the power to confront Damon, I¡¯ll find a way to help Dad.¡±
Cindy¡¯s gaze was filled with disappointment. ¡°In the end, you¡¯re only thinking of yourself. Even now, you want to take over hispany instead of actually saving him, right?¡±
Her usatory tone made rk¡¯s voice grow colder, ¡°If you¡¯re going to think like that, there¡¯s nothing I can do.¡±
¡°He¡¯s your biological father! If you don¡¯t help him, then who will?
¡°Cindy demanded.
¡°I¡¯ve said I can¡¯t help him. I need to take over thepany tomorrow morning. You should go home,¡± rk said dismissively.
Seeing his indifferent expression, Cindy realized that no matter what she said, he would not care about Cyrus anymore.
She stood up, sneering. ¡°rk, no matter how bad he is, he¡¯s still your biological father. You¡¯ll definitely regret being so heartless in the future!¡±
St¨²ng by her words, rk replied sarcastically, ¡°You go to so much trouble to help him, but do you really think he won¡¯t end up spending his time with other women and living
extravagantly?¡±
To him, it was both pitiful andughable that Cindy was putting so much effort into a man who no longer loved her. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
¡°Those women won¡¯t shake my position. I will always be his wife!¡± Cindy eximed.
¡°Then handle it yourself. I have more important things to do,¡± rk said.
He was now focused on strengthening thepany Cyrus had left him and seeking revenge against Damon and N, hoping to make N regret leaving him.
CHAPTER 292
¡°Y You! Cindy was so enraged that she nearly fainted. She shook violently, unable to say a word as she pointed at him.
In the end, she stormed out in fufy
The next day at noon, N arrived at the restaurant, where William was already waiting.
She quickly walked over and sat down across from him, looking apologetic. ¡°Sorry, I was dyed at theb.¡±
¡°It¡¯s alright, Ms. Jayston. Please take a look at this document,¡± William said. This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
N took the document from William and skimmed through it, her brow furrowing in concern. Since rk¡¯s affair, he had deliberately transferred assets, with most now under Jordyn¡¯s
name.
¡°Ms. Jayston, the main issue is that rk and Jordyn are married. He likely consulted awyer when transferring the assets. It was done meticulously, so it¡¯s very difficult to reim them,¡± William exined,
¡°So, how much can I expect to get?¡± N asked.
¡°700,000 dors,¡± William replied.
N wasn¡¯t particrly surprised by this amount¨Cshe had suspected it from the document.
+25
¡°Alright, I understand. You can negotiate with hiswyer,¡± she agreed.
William looked surprised. ¡°Ms. Jayston, aren¡¯t you going to contest this further?¡±
N shook her head. ¡°I don¡¯t want to waste more time on him, and anotherwsuit would drag on for at least a year or more.¡±
More importantly, now that she was with Damon, remaining entangled with rk might affect Damon.
William nodded. ¡°Okay, I understand.¡±
¡°Thank you for your hard work,¡± N said.
¡°It¡¯s no trouble,¡± William replied.
Back at thepany¡
As N was about to take her lunch break, her phone rang.
Seeing that it was her father¡¯s primary doctor, she quickly answered, ¡°Doctor, what¡¯s the update?¡±
¡°Ms. Jayston, I¡¯ve arranged for your father to be transferred to a hospital abroad at any time,¡± the doctor said.
N¡¯s grip on the phone tightened as she looked down. ¡°Okay, I understand. Thank you!¡±
After hanging up, N called Wren to share the news.
Wren¡¯s voice was filled with excitement. ¡°I¡¯ll pack up, and we can leave tomorrow morning.¡±
¡°What about my dad¡¡± N began.
¡°Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ll persuade him,¡± Wren assured.
N decided not to press further and was about to hang up when Wren spoke again. ¡°N, don¡¯t hold it against me. What I said before was for your own good.¡±
N hadn¡¯t taken her words to heart. She could tell whether Wren was genuinely concerned for her or just worried about being implicated.
Still, she wasn¡¯t going to confront Wren. Doing so would onlyplicate things for her father and was unnecessary.
¡°Wren, I¡¯m not ming you. I did act impulsively before. After you go abroad, I¡¯ll leave everything to you. With the distance, I won¡¯t be able to get there quickly if anything happens. Thank you for your help,¡± N said.
¡°I¡¯m d you understand,¡± Wren answered.
After hanging up, Wren immediately called Gabriel to inform him of her ns to go to Meristate the next day.
¡°Gabriel, unless something unexpected happens, I¡¯ll fly to Meristate with Harrison tomorrow. Will you be avable to pick us up?¡± she asked.
There was a brief silence on the other end before Gabriel replied, ¡°Mom, I¡¯ll being back next week.¡±
¡°Returning here for a work¨Crted matter?¡± Wren asked, then smiled. ¡°In that case, we¡¯ll wait for you toe back before
+25
going to Meristate together. A few days wouldn¡¯t make much of a difference.¡±
¡°No, I¡¯ming back for work. I probably won¡¯t return to Meristate,¡± Gabriel replied.
Wren¡¯s smile froze. ¡°What do you mean? You were doing well in Meristate. Why the sudden decision toe back? And you never mentioned this before when I called.¡±
CHAPTER 293
Just a moment ago, Wren had been thrilled about the uing reunion with her son. Now, she felt as if she had been struck by a hammer.
¡°I was actually nning to returnst year,¡± Gabriel exined. ¡± I just hadn¡¯t found a suitable job untilst month when I began talks with apany in Saintornia. I¡¯m signing the contract. tomorrow.¡±
¡°Why didn¡¯t you tell me sooner?¡± Wren asked.
If she had known earlier, she wouldn¡¯t have agreed to take Harrison abroad for treatment. Being unfamiliar with life abroad, both she and Harrison would face many inconveniencespared to staying in the country.
¡°I wanted to finalize everything before telling you,¡± Gabriel said.
Wren frowned, still feeling some frustration. She had already promised N, and backing out now seemed unreasonable. Plus, staying in Saintornia might expose them to potential
retaliation from the Sumners.
After weighing her options, going abroad still seemed best.
¡°Gabriel, there¡¯s something I need to tell you,¡± Wren said.
She exined N¡¯s conflicts with the Sumners, concluding with a serious tone, ¡°Since you haven¡¯t signed the contract yet, I suggest you don¡¯te back to avoid being dragged into this mess. N isn¡¯t listening to anyone right now, so who knows what she might do next?¡±
Unbeknownst to her, her words only reinforced Gabriel¡¯s determination to return.
¡°Mom, I think N is doing the right thing. And I¡¯m not afraid of what the Sumners might do to me,¡± he said.
¡°Are you out of your mind?! You¡¯re my only son. If something happens to you, how will I live? I forbid you froming back. If you do, I¡¯ll send you back personally!¡± Wren huffed.
With that, she hung up.
Across the ocean, Gabriel¨Csharp features framed by gold- rimmed sses¨Cset down his phone, removed his sses,
and rubbed his brow.
His expression was indifferent. Regardless of Wren¡¯s opinion, he was determined to return to his home country.
In the evening, as N got into the car, her phone rang.
Seeing the name on the screen, she was a bit surprised.
Gabriel had rarely contacted her since moving abroad, except when absolutely necessary. Today, his call made her wonder if he had heard about Harrison¡¯s treatment abroad.
Noticing that N wasn¡¯t answering, Damon nced over.
When he saw ¡°Gabriel¡± shing on the screen, his expression darkened, and his voice dropped a few notches. ¡°Why aren¡¯t. you answering?¡± N?velDrama.Org holds ? this.
W
+25
Snapping out of her thoughts, N quickly answered the call, oblivious to Damon¡¯s dark expression.
¡°Hello? Gabriel, what¡¯s up? I didn¡¯t expect you to call today,¡±
she said.
Her tone was somewhat distant as if she were speaking to a
distant rtive.
Although they had gotten along well for a time, Gabriel had suddenly be distant during her university years, leaving them as strangers living under the same roof.
¡°I heard from Mom that your dad¡¯s going abroad for treatment?
Gabriel asked.
¡°Yes, and I might need your help with them once they¡¯re there,¡± N replied.
Gabriel¡¯s voice was cool. ¡°I¡¯ming back next week and n to develop my career here.¡±
N was momentarily taken aback and replied softly, ¡°I¡¯ll find an interpreter for them then. There might be a lot of inconveniences at first.¡±
¡°I¡¯ll handle it,¡± Gabriel offered.
As they wrapped up their conversation, Damon leaned in and quietly asked, ¡°What do you feel like eatingter? I saw a nice restaurant earlier. How about dinner there tonight?¡±
His voice was low but just audible enough for the person on
the other end to hear.
CHAPTER 294
Gabriel paused on the other end of the line and asked, ¡®is
someone with you?¡±
¡°Yes,¡± N replied.
¡°Then that¡¯s all for now,¡± Gabriel said.
After hanging up, N turned to Damon and asked, ¡°Why did you suddenly ask what I want for dinner tonight?¡±
Damon¡¯s expression remained calm. ¡°I just happened to see it and thought I¡¯d ask. Did I interrupt your call?¡±
¡°No,¡± N replied, though she found it a bit odd that he would speak up while she was still on the phone.
Damon seemed to disregard her puzzled look and asked, ¡°Who
was on the line?¡± N?velDrama.Org owns this text.
¡°Wren¡¯s son. He went abroad when I was in university. We don¡¯t stay in touch very often, so I haven¡¯t mentioned him to you,¡± N exined.
Damon narrowed his eyes slightly but did not press further.
The two of them ended up going to the restaurant Damon had suggested for dinner.
rk, who had just wrapped up a meeting with a client, spotted them as they were finishing up. His gaze hardened, and after seeing off his client, he walked directly toward them.
¡°Uncle Damon, N, what a coincidence to see you here,¡± he said.
N¡¯s appetite soured at the sound of rk¡¯s voice, and she remained silent, her face cold.
Damon¡¯s expression was indifferent. ¡°You¡¯re interrupting us.¡±
rk chuckled. ¡°Uncle Damon, I just wanted to say hello. I was afraid that if I didn¡¯te over, people might think I am rude. It¡¯s just that N and I have recently divorced. Don¡¯t you think it¡¯s a bit too soon for you two to be having dinner together?¡±
N frowned and finally looked up at him. ¡°No matter how soon it seems, it¡¯s not sooner than you. After all, you were already involved with Jordyn while we were still married.¡±
Her disgust and impatience were evident, and rk¡¯s face darkened as if he had been stung.
¡°N, we¡¯re divorced now. It¡¯s pointless to keep bringing up the past. Or do you still have feelings for me?¡± rk asked.
Sarcasm flickered in N¡¯s eyes. ¡°You should probably look in the mirror.¡±
If she still had feelings for him after everything, it would be a clear sign of insanity.
Just as rk was about to respond, his phone rang.
After answering, he hung up with an icy expression, his teeth clenched as he red at N. ¡°Did you file awsuit against Mom for spreading rumors?¡±
N was surprised at how quickly William had acted.
She smiled slightly and tilted her chin. ¡°That¡¯s your mother, not mine. Don¡¯t get it mixed up. Besides, she did spread rumors that I harmed her. What¡¯s wrong with filing awsuit?¡±
¡°She¡¯s an elder. How can you treat an elder like this?¡± rk questioned.
Before rk could continue, Damon raised an eyebrow and interjected, ¡°What elder? N¡¯s my girlfriend now, so by seniority, she¡¯d be your aunt. Maybe you should reflect on how you¡¯re speaking to your aunt.¡±
rk¡¯s expression was one of someone who had swallowed a fly. He clenched his jaw and forced out, ¡°Uncle Damon, you¡¯re not even married to her yet.¡±
¡°So this is how you speak to an elder?¡± Damon asked.
Seeing Damon use his own words against him, rk was enraged. ¡°Uncle Damon, you¡¯ve been entangled with my ex¨Cwife and have embarrassed the Sumners. What kind of attitude do you expect me to have?¡±
¡°The one who embarrassed the Sumners is you,¡± Damon stated tly.
Gritting his teeth, rk sneered. ¡°I¡¯m heading to the police
station. I don¡¯t want to argue with you, but you will regret this!¡±
CHAPTER 295
After rk¡¯s outburst, he turned and left in a hurry.
N felt a mix of emotions. It was clear that rk was trying. to avoid offending Damon while still preserving his pride. She couldn¡¯t understand why she had ever fallen for such a
spineless man.
Once he was gone, she resumed eating her steak as if nothing. had happened.
Before long, she noticed Damon¡¯s gaze fixed intently on her face. She looked up and asked, puzzled, ¡°Is there something on my face? Why do you keep staring at me?¡±
¡°It¡¯s nothing,¡± Damon replied. ¡°I just thought you might be affected by what he said.¡±
¡°Why would I let him affect my mood? He¡¯s a stranger to me. now. It¡¯s not worth getting upset over him,¡± N said.
¡°That¡¯s good to hear,¡± Damon remarked.
After dinner, they returned directly to the vi.
Meanwhile, it took over an hour at the police station for rk to bail out Cindy.
Cindy¡¯s eyes were red with anger. ¡°That bitch N! How dare she sue me? I won¡¯t let her get away with this!¡±
Thewyer beside her said sternly, ¡°Ms. Sharrock, the evidence.
for the defamationwsuit has already been submitted. Not only will you need to apologize, but you¡¯ll also have to pay a certain amount inpensation¡±
¡°What?! I have to apologize? I refuse to do that!¡± Cindy huffed.
Thewyer replied somewhat helplessly, ¡°If you don¡¯t cooperate, the penalties might increase, which could end up being worse for you.¡±
¡°I can pay more, but I will never apologize to her!¡± Cindy insisted.
Seeing Cindy¡¯s firm stance, thewyer turned to rk, who wore a gloomy expression. ¡°Mr. Sumner¡¡±
rk took a deep breath and said coldly, ¡°Tell herwyer that we¡¯re willing to negotiate thepensation but that an apology is not on the table.¡±
He understood Cindy¡¯s feelings. Even if it were him, he wouldn¡¯t be able to ept apologizing to N.
¡°Understood. I¡¯ll handle it,¡± thewyer replied.
After thewyer left, rk shot a cold nce at Cindy before heading to his car.
Cindy hesitated momentarily but then followed him.
Once they were in the car, Cindy could no longer contain her anger. ¡°N is absolutely outrageous! Does she think that just because she¡¯s with Damon now, she can look down on us?¡±
rk turned to her, his eyes devoid of warmth. ¡°She can look
down on us because we can¡¯tpete with Damon. Next time, before you act, use your brain and avoid these foolish schemes that only make us look bad in front of N.¡±
Cindy was taken aback and about to retort when her phone suddenly buzzed with a flood of notifications.
She found dozens of messages, not in private chats, but in several group chats of Saintornia¡¯s high¨Csociety wives. This is the property of N?-velDrama.Org.
[I heard Cindy falsely used N of assault, and now she¡¯s been sued and ended up at the police station tonight!]
[Yes, I heard the same. How could Mrs. Sumner do something like this¨Cmaking false usations against her ex¨Cdaughter¨Cin-w? It¡¯s disgraceful!]
[She always acted so high and mighty, unting her marriage to Cyrus. I heard she looked so embarrassed when she left the police station. Hahaha!]
Seeing those mocking messages, Cindy was irritated. She recorded a voice message and began arguing with the people in the group, only to be ridiculed further
As Cindy shook with intense emotions and was about to continue the argument, rk¡¯s cold voice cut in. ¡°That¡¯s enough. Haven¡¯t you embarrassed yourself enough already?!¡±
CHAPTER 296
Chapter 296
Cindy turned to him in disbelief, her body trembling with rage.¡± Are you saying I¡¯m embarrassing?¡±
¡°Isn¡¯t it true? Look at everything you¡¯ve done recently¨Cnone of
it has worked out. If you¡¯re incapable, stop making things worse!¡± rk snapped.
His anger was palpable, and his words were harsh and unforgiving.
Tears streamed down Cindy¡¯s face as she choked out, ¡°If it weren¡¯t for my useless husband and son, would I have to do all this? Now youin that I¡¯m making things worse. Why aren¡¯t you capable of bailing your dad out? rk, I am so disappointed in you!¡±
With that, she shoved the car door open and stormed off.
rk didn¡¯t follow her, his expression dark and stormy.
Why couldn¡¯t Cindy understand him? N?velDrama.Org holds ? this.
With his current capabilities, he couldn¡¯t possibly get Cyrus out of the police station.
Moreover, what Cyrus had done was a fact. The immediate priority was to take over thepany from him and then figure out other ways to help, even if it meant just making his life a bit easier inside.
The more rk thought about it, the colder his expression became.
He pulled out his phone and dialed a number. ¡°Have you found the person yet?¡±
¡°Don¡¯t worry. It¡¯s a matter of a couple of days,¡± the person on the other end replied.
¡°If you find them by tomorrow, I¡¯ll double the previously agreed- upon reward!¡± rk promised..
In the pitch¨Cdark car, the faint light from rk¡¯s phone illuminated his features, casting a strange and unsettling glow.
¡°I¡¯ll contact you tomorrow,¡± the other party replied.
After ending the call, rk smirked. He was eager to see whether Damon loved N or the other woman more.
That night, N went to bed early and was unaware that, not long after she fell asleep, Spencer arrived to meet Damon with
a document in hand.
¡°Mr. Sumner, I¡¯ve discovered that Gabriel Hackett is N¡¯s stepbrother. He¡¯s been abroad for six years and has only returned once, but Ms. Jayston was traveling at the time, so they didn¡¯t meet. ording to the information we¡¯ve gathered, their rtionship isn¡¯t very good,¡± Spencer reported.
Damon briefly nced at the document and then said, ¡°You can leave now.¡±
After reviewing Gabriel¡¯s information, Damon called Spencer. Have HR contact him and offer him a position at Prospectus
Technology.¡±
The next morning, N arrived at the office and received a call from William.
William informed her that Cindy was willing to settle but was unwilling to apologize personally. However, she was open to negotiatingpensation for emotional distress.
This didn¡¯t surprise N.
Getting an apology from Cindy was likely as difficult as reaching the stars. However, that wasn¡¯t her concern.
¡°Tell her I only want an apology,¡± N replied.
After hanging up, N entered the elevator.
People around her kept ncing in her direction, but she ignored them and calmly pressed the close door button.
The morning passed quickly, and around noon, Wren unexpectedly came to the office to see her.
N took her to the cafe downstairs and asked, ¡°Wren, did youe to see me about something?¡±
Wren rarely visited in person unless it was absolutely
necessary.
Wren¡¯s expression was cold. The thought of Gabriel ignoring her objections and returning to the country made her resent
N. If N hadn¡¯t offended the Sumners, Gabriel¡¯s return wouldn¡¯t be such a concern.
¡°I talked to your fatherst night. He doesn¡¯t want to go abroad. After thinking it over, it¡¯s indeed inconvenient with thenguage barrier. It might be better for him to continue treatment domestically. The medical standards here aren¡¯t much worse than those abroad,¡± Wren said.
CHAPTER 297
Chapter 297
N frowned. ¡°Wren, you agreed to this yesterday. Why are you suddenly changing your mind?¡±
N had arranged for them to go abroad with their safety in mind.
She wouldn¡¯t let Cyrus off, and once Damon learned she had been using him, he wouldn¡¯t protect her anymore. She wouldn¡¯t have the energy to properly arrange for them by then.
Wren looked helpless. ¡°It¡¯s not that I don¡¯t want to go abroad, but your father is worried about you. He refuses to go ¨C overseas, no matter what.¡±
After a moment of silence, N said firmly, ¡°I¡¯ll go to the hospital tonight and persuade him myself.¡±
Wren¡¯s gaze was evasive. ¡°Your father is still upset with you. It might be better to wait a few days. I¡¯m worried that if you go tonight, you two might end up arguing again.¡±
¡°I need to go, even if it means arguing. Wren, I have work to doter, so I¡¯ll head back to the office now.¡± With that, N stood up and left.
When Damon found out that N was going to the hospital that evening, he offered to apany her.
Her first instinct was to refuse. Her father was already unhappy about her rtionship with Damon, and bringing
Damon along would only provoke him further.
¡°Maybe you should wait a little longer?¡± N suggested.
Damon looked displeased. ¡°How long is a little longer?¡±
It was one thing for her to avoid him at the office, but now she didn¡¯t want him to meet her family, which clearly showed she wasn¡¯t nning for a future with him.
¡°My dad is still angry about us being together. We should at least wait until he¡¯s not so upset,¡± N tried.
¡°No. Since he already knows and is upset, he¡¯ll think I¡¯m not sincere and don¡¯t genuinely want to be with you if I keep hiding, * Damon insisted.
N sighed. Did she need to mention her father hoped that Damon would stay away?
Seeing Damon¡¯s determined gaze, N hesitated but
eventually nodded. ¡°Alright, but be prepared for him to ask you to leave.¡±
As soon as N and Damon entered the hospital room that evening, Harrison¡¯s expression hardened. His demeanor was icy. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
¡°Mr. Sumner, you¡¯re not wee here. Please leave!¡± he bellowed.
N sighed inwardly¨Cthis was exactly what she had anticipated.
She turned to Damon, intending to ask him to wait outside, but he didn¡¯t even nce at her. Instead, he addressed Harrison directly, ¡°Mr. Jayston, I know you¡¯re not fond of me, and I
understand that my rtionship with N angers you. But I am sincere about her.¡±
Harrison sneered. ¡°Sincere? What¡¯s sincerity worth from the Sumners? A few years ago, rk said the same thing to me, and look what happened¨Che ended up cheating. Just leave! The Sumners are too good for N!¡±
N frowned, fearing that Harrison might say something to further provoke Damon. She was about to speak when. Harrison turned his cold gaze on her.
¡°You can leave too. I don¡¯t want to see you until you¡¯ve sorted out your rtionship with him!¡± he scolded.
¡°Dad¡¡± N began.
Damon gently lowered his gaze to her and said softly, ¡°I¡¯d like to speak with your father alone. Please wait outside.¡±
¡°No!¡± N protested.
She was concerned that Harrison might say even harsher things to Damon if she left.
Harrison looked at Damon with anger and disdain.
¡°Fine. Wren, take N out. I want to hear what he has to say,¡± he ordered.
Wren hesitated for a moment before moving to N¡¯s side.
¡°N, let¡¯s step outside and wait,¡± she urged.
CHAPTER 298
Chapter 298
Seeing N¡¯s hesitation, Wren whispered, ¡°Staying here won¡¯t help. It¡¯ll only make your father more upset.¡±
Damon also looked at her with a reassuring smile. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I can handle it.¡±
After a moment¡¯s pause, N finally nodded. ¡°Alright then.¡±
She followed Wren out of the room, and the two sat down on a bench in the corridor. For a while, neither of them spoke.
Wren turned to N and broke the silence. ¡°N, staying in the country isn¡¯t so bad. The medical facilities here are quite good,
and I-¡±
Before she could finish, N interrupted coldly, ¡°Wren, did you suddenly decide not to go abroad because Gabriel is nning toe back?¡±
Wren was momentarily taken aback, a hint of guilt shing in her eyes. ¡°How did you find out about that?¡±
¡°He told me on the phone yesterday,¡± N replied.
Wren frowned, surprised that Gabriel had informed N so
soon.
¡°Since you know, I won¡¯t beat around the bush. I really don¡¯t want to leave the country because he¡¯sing back,¡± Wren confessed.
¡°Going abroad with my dad would be safer than staying here,¡± N stated.
¡°I know, but I don¡¯t want your issues with the Sumners to affect Gabriel now that he¡¯sing back. If we stay, you¡¯ll be more cautious about how you handle the Sumners,¡± Wren replied.
N smiled slightly. ¡°Wren, it¡¯s good to finally hear the truth from you.¡±
When Wren had visited N before, N had sensed something was off. Despite Harrison always following Wren¡¯s lead, he had suddenly refused to go abroad.
It turned out it was Wren who didn¡¯t want to leave.
¡°I understand it¡¯s unfair to you, but if your issues with the Sumners end up affecting Gabriel, that¡¯s also unfair to him. He¡¯s my only son, and I hope you can understand,¡± Wren stated inly.
¡°Since you don¡¯t want to go abroad, I can¡¯t force you. But I won¡¯t abandon what I need to do just because you and my dad are staying here. I hope you can understand that too,¡± N replied.
Wren frowned, anger shing in her eyes. ¡°Why do you always have to make things so chaotic before you¡¯re satisfied? That ident led to Harris Pharmaceuticals¡® bankruptcy, and your dad isn¡¯t pursuing it. Why do you have to be so stubborn?¡±
If N¡¯s actions didn¡¯t affect her, Harrison, and Gabriel, it would be one thing. But continuing to oppose the Sumners would certainly lead them to retaliate against her family.
N looked at her, uttering each word with rity. ¡°Is it that he
sn¡¯t pursuing it because he doesn¡¯t want to, or because he¡¯s unable to and is just trying to convince himself to let it go?¡±
Wren sneered. ¡°So, you think you have the ability to change things? People should know their limits. If you keep being stubborn, you¡¯ll end up regretting it.¡±
N¡¯s hands, resting at her sides, clenched subconsciously, and her eyes grew colder.
Seeing N remain silent, Wren continued. ¡°I don¡¯t care what you do, but I won¡¯t let you off the hook if your actions end up harming Gabriel!¡±
At that moment, Damon¡¯s icy voice cut through the tension. Mrs. Jayston, my girlfriend isn¡¯t someone you get to lecture!¡± Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
Wren turned to face Damon, and his cold gaze made her shiver involuntarily.
She quicklyposed herself and retorted, ¡°Mr. Sumner, you and N are just dating, not married yet. Our family matters don¡¯t seem to be any of your business.¡±
Damon narrowed his eyes, his expression darkening with anger,
Noticing his rising fury, N stood up and approached him.
CHAPTER 299
Chapter 299
¡°Did you finish talking with my dad?¡± N asked.
Damon nced down at her and replied, ¡°Yes.¡±
¡°I¡¯ll go in and say a few words to him, and then we¡¯ll head back, ¡°N said.
¡°Alright,¡± Damon agreed. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
N entered the hospital room. To her surprise, Harrison¡¯s expression was less distressed than before. Though still stern, he seemed to have softened considerably.
¡°Dad, please reconsider going abroad for treatment. If you really don¡¯t want to go, I won¡¯t force you,¡± N said.
Harrison looked up at her and said coldly, ¡°No need to reconsider. I know what I want. As for you and Damon¡ I suggest you think it through. After all, he¡¯s rk¡¯s uncle.
¡°If you¡¯re with him, you¡¯ll face not only public gossip but also opposition from the Sumners. The path with him will be much harder than it was with rk.¡±
N was taken aback by his response. She wondered what Damon had said to change Harrison¡¯s attitude so drastically.
¡°I¡¯ve thought it through, Dad,¡± she replied.
¡°As long as you¡¯ve thought it through. I won¡¯t say anything more. I can¡¯t offer you any help now. The path you choose is yours alone. Whether it brings you happiness or distress, you¡¯ll have to face it on your own,¡± Harrison said.
N nodded. ¡°I understand.¡±
+25
On the way back to the vi, N couldn¡¯t help but ask Damon what he had told Harrison.
Damon smiled. ¡°It¡¯s a secret.¡±
Despite her persistent questioning, he didn¡¯t reveal anything, so she had to let it go.
When they arrived back at the vi, they saw rk¡¯s car parked out front.
Damon¡¯s smile faded, and he exuded a dangerous aura.
As they got out of the car, rk and Cindy emerged.
Cindy¡¯s face was a mask of anger and resentment as she looked at N.
rk spoke first. ¡°Uncle Damon, I need to talk to N alone. Could we have some privacy?¡±
¡°No,¡± Damon replied tly.
rk frowned at the immediate refusal. Remembering their purpose was to apologize, he managed to suppress his frustration.
He turned to N and tried to keep his tone calm. ¡°N, my mother and I came here today to apologize for what she said about you. We hope you can let it go and not pursue the matter further.¡±
Since N had refused to reconcile, the incident had spread widely among the elite circles in Saintornia. If it wasn¡¯t resolved soon, it would make its way to thepany, a situation rk couldn¡¯t afford.
Having just taken over thepany from Cyrus, rk couldn¡¯t let this issue be a point of contention, especially with shareholders already dissatisfied. He needed to address this before it caused further trouble.
N raised an eyebrow, ncing at the unwilling Cindy, and smiled slightly. ¡°You¡¯re here to apologize, but I don¡¯t see any remorse from Mrs. Sumner. Instead, she seems to despise me.
Cindy, already reluctant toe, was nearly enraged by N¡¯s sarcastic remark. With a warning nce from rk, she bit back her retort.
Cindy took a deep breath and forced a smile. ¡°N, I admit I went too far this time¡ I apologize. Since we were once family, it¡¯s not beneficial for either of us to make this public. Will you ask yourwyer to drop thewsuit?¡±
CHAPTER 300
N nced at Cindy, who was clearly struggling to maintain. herposure while attempting to apologize. The scene struck N as somewhat amusing.
¡°Mrs. Sumner, did you really expect toe here, apologize, and ask me to drop thewsuit after publicly using me of assault?¡± she asked.
Cindy¡¯s expression faltered for a moment as she clenched her fists to suppress her anger.
¡°N, I admit I was wrong. I¡¯m apologizing now. Can¡¯t we just put this behind us?¡± Cindy asked.
¡°Sure,¡± N said, nodding. ¡°But you need to issue a public statement rifying that I didn¡¯t assault you and that it was you trying to tarnish my reputation. I¡¯ll drop thewsuit if your do that.¡±
Cindy froze. They hade to resolve this privately, not to make it public. Releasing a statement would only highlight her attempt to malign her former daughter¨Cinw.
¡°N, can we find another way to resolve this? We can negotiate,¡± Cindy suggested.
¡°Embarrassed, are we?¡± N¡¯s smile remained, but her eyes. were cold. ¡°You shouldn¡¯t have tried to nder me and create problems for yourself if you find this embarrassing. If you don¡¯t want to make a statement, fine. Once I get the court ruling, I¡¯ll issue a statement using that.¡±
149
* This belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
At that point, Cindy would only look worse.
Cindy gritted her teeth, her frustration boiling over. ¡°N, you¡¯re going too far. I won¡¯t issue a statement. Do you think just because you¡¯re with Damon you can do whatever you want? Don¡¯t push your luck!¡±
N didn¡¯t flinch at Cindy¡¯s outburst. ¡°If you¡¯re unwilling, don¡¯t waste my time in the future.¡±
With that, N walked past Cindy, leaving with Damon.
rk quickly caught up. ¡°N, if that statement goes public, it will embarrass the Sumners and even Uncle Damon. If you¡¯re willing to settle privately, we can discusspensation.¡±
N chuckled. ¡°How much are you offering?¡±
¡°150,000 dors!¡± rk replied.
N¡¯s eyes widened slightly in surprise. It seemed rk was very eager to keep this matter from escting. Otherwise, he wouldn¡¯t be offering such a sum.
11
It would be a waste not to ept that amount, so she replied, Sure. But I hope you¡¯re not nning to take the money from the remaining assets mywyer is investigating.¡±
rk¡¯s eyes flickered with uncertainty. ¡°No, of course not!¡±
¡°Alright, I¡¯ll ept your apology. Make sure the money is transferred to my ount,¡± N agreed.
After N and Damon left, Cindy muttered resentfully, ¡°I have to pay her 150,000 dors just for some gossip? Does she
even deserve that?¡±
rk sneered. ¡°If we don¡¯t pay, the situation will only get worse and cost us even more.¡±
Under his fierce gaze, Cindy involuntarily took a step back, feeling a pang of guilt. ¡°I¡ I¡¯m just trying to help your father¡¡±
¡°I don¡¯t want to hear any more excuses. I¡¯ll arrange a flight for you to go abroad and take a break. Come back when you¡¯ve calmed down,¡± rk said.
Cindy¡¯s eyes widened in shock. ¡°You¡¯re sending me away?¡±
rk looked at her with a cold expression. ¡°Staying here won¡¯t help in rescuing my father and will only hinder me. It¡¯s better if you leave for a while.¡±
¡°No! I¡¯m not going! How dare you send me away? I absolutely refuse to leave!¡± Cindy cried.
¡°This isn¡¯t up for discussion!¡± rk dered
CHAPTER 301
As they walked into the living room, Damon broke the silence. ¡°Why did you ept the money instead of insisting on a public apology?¡±
N replied, ¡°Even if she apologized, it wouldn¡¯t be sincere. rk managed to persuade her to apologize privately because he doesn¡¯t want this to go public. If I had kept insisting, it would have only backfired.¡±
Damon studied her. ¡°So, your goal was always just the money?¡±
N nodded. ¡°Yes. If I had asked for the money myself, rk might have used me of extortion through hiswyers.¡±
Damon fell silent, his gaze distant as he pondered this. When he didn¡¯t speak again, N turned to head
back to her room.
After a few steps, Damon¡¯s voice, tinged with resignation, came from behind her. ¡°N, if you just wanted the money, you didn¡¯t have to scheme like that. You could have told me directly. I could have helped you.¡±
N paused and looked back at him, her eyes filled with an unreadable emotion. ¡°I¡¯m scheming against rk. He¡¯s your family. Don¡¯t you feel ufortable about that?¡±
She had deliberately agreed to rk¡¯s terms before Damon to make him aware of her calctions. against rk.
If Damon couldn¡¯t ept it, it would be better to part ways before she fell deeply in love with him.
Damon frowned, his gaze intense. ¡°Do you think I¡¯m someone who can¡¯t discern right from wrong?¡±
N bit her lip. ¡°I don¡¯t think that. It¡¯s just that, ultimately, rk is your family¡
¡°You are the one I care about. Never mind that rk was at fault. Even if it were your mistake, I would still stand by you,¡± Damon dered.
Seeing his serious expression, N blinked, her heart overwhelmed. She looked down and smiled bitterly. ¡°But¡ you might one day find that I¡¯m not worth this.¡±
¡°That day will nevere,¡± Damon said as he moved closer, leaning in to look her in the eyes. ¡°I care about you, so whatever I do for you, I won¡¯t regret it. It¡¯s not about whether it¡¯s worth it because it¡¯s what I choose to do.¡±
N¡¯s hands tightened subconsciously at her sides, and she instinctively looked away, unable to meet his intense gaze. Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
¡°N, why can¡¯t you be a little braver?¡± Damon asked.
He wasn¡¯t like rk. Once he decided on her, he wouldn¡¯t look at another woman.
N closed her eyes, feeling a pang of sorrow.
She wanted to be brave and love Damon wholeheartedly, but she had outgrown the reckless optimism of youth. She no longer believed that love could ovee all obstacles.
To her, love had be something she dared not hope for.
Despite this, Damon¡¯s words stirred a desire within her a longing to love someone fully again.
Seeing her so distressed and lost, Damon didn¡¯t want to pressure her any further. He pulled her into his embrace. ¡°It¡¯s okay if you can¡¯t now. I can wait.¡±
N wrapped her arms around him, her voice hushed and rough. ¡°I¡¯m sorry.¡±
Although she no longer loved rk, the pain from his betrayal still lingered. She was afraid to open her heart again, fearing more hurt.
¡°I¡¯m not ming you. It¡¯s not your fault. I just didn¡¯t do well enough,¡± Damon said.
N shook her head, tears almost falling. ¡°No, you¡¯ve done well.¡±
The truth was, she was too afraid and hesitant. She feared getting hurt again and worried that Damon would discover she was no different from other women.
CHAPTER 302
Damon patted her head and said softly, ¡°If I haven¡¯t earned yourplete trust, then I still haven¡¯t done well enough.¡±
N looked up at him, about to speak, when his phone suddenly rang.
¡°Did you change your ringtone?¡± she asked, noticing that Damon¡¯s phone sounded different from usual.
Damon didn¡¯t answer. He picked up his phone and walked aside to take the call.
For some reason, N felt a wave of unease wash over her, and she couldn¡¯t help but frown.
Soon, Damon ended the call and returned to her.
¡°I have to go out for a bit. You should go to sleep,¡± he said.
He turned to leave, but N instinctively grabbed his hand. ¡°Is it something important? Can you stay and keep mepany? I¡¡±
She struggled to find a reason to keep him around.
Was it just her inexplicable anxiety?
The reason seemed a bit absurd even to her.
Damon¡¯s gaze softened, and he nodded. ¡°If you¡¯re scared, I can have the driver pick up Vrie to keep youpany.¡±
N opened her mouth, then slowly shook her head. ¡°No, it¡¯s fine. Juste back as soon as you can.¡±
Noticing something was wrong with her, Damon suddenly hugged her tightly, as if trying to her.
¡°Don¡¯t overthink it. Get some rest,¡± he coaxed.
¡°Okay,¡± N replied.
Damon didn¡¯t linger and quickly left.
It wasn¡¯t until his figure disappeared through the door that N bit her lip and looked away.
merge w
The new ringtone had made her unountably uneasy Damon¡¯s previous ringtone had been the default one from his phone, but tonight it was a piano piece. Usually, only someone important would have a special ringtone.
N took a deep breath, trying to push her thoughts aside. She patted her face and turned on the TV, searching for a drama to pass the time.
N waited until after midnight, but Damon still hadn¡¯t returned. Eventually, she fell asleep on the sofa.
She woke up again around 6:00 a.m. N?velDrama.Org owns this text.
As she sat up, she noticed the nket covering her and wondered whether Damon hade back.
As she was pondering this, ¨¤ mald approached. ¡°Ms. Jayston, you¡¯re awake?¡±
N nodded. ¡°Where¡¯s Damon?¡±
¡°He didn¡¯te backst night,¡± the maid replied.
N¡¯s eyes flickered with disappointment. She forced a smile and asked, ¡°So, did you put the nket on me?¡±
The maid nodded. ¡°Yes. I saw the living room light was on when I got up in the middle of the night. I saw you sleeping on the sofa and didn¡¯t want to wake you. I was worried you might catch a cold, so I covered you with a nket.¡±
N lowered her eyes, her voice a bit downcast. ¡°I see. Thank you.¡±
¡°It was no trouble,¡± the maid said.
N went upstairs to freshen up, feeling unsettled.
After a quick breakfast, she drove to the office.
Just as she arrived downstairs, she received a call from William.
Knowing she had agreed to settle, William said, ¡°Got it. I¡¯ll handle the follow¨Cup.¡±
¡°Thank you,¡± N replied.
After hanging up, she held her phone, debating whether to call Damon.
She hesitated momentarily before dialing his number.
However, the call went unanswered and eventually ended automatically. She tried a couple more times. without sess and decided not to try further.
It wasn¡¯t until noon that Damon returned her call. ¡°N, did you call me this morning? Is something wrong?¡±
CHAPTER 303
N looked down and said slowly, ¡°It¡¯s nothing. I just wanted to check on how things are going since you didn¡¯te backst night.¡±
There was a brief pause on the other end before Damon¡¯s deep voice came through. ¡°I¡¯m almost done with everything. I¡¯ll be back tonight.¡±
N subconsciously tightened her grip on the phone. ¡°Alright, then let¡¯s have dinner together tonight.¡±
¡°Okay, I¡¯ll see you then,¡± Damon replied.
After ending the call, Damon looked at the woman sitting across from him with tears in her eyes. He said coldly, ¡°Reba, it¡¯s over between us. I¡¯ll book a flight for you shortly.¡±
Reba paused in wiping her tears and looked up at Damon. ¡°I don¡¯t want to leave! I wasn¡¯t nning to leave when I came back to the country.¡±
Damon¡¯s frown deepened, and his entire demeanor turned cold. ¡°Do as you wish, but we¡¯re done.¡±
¡°If you didn¡¯t care about me, you wouldn¡¯t havee to see mest night. You still love me, don¡¯t you?¡± Reba asked, her eyes filled with love and regret as she looked at Damon.
She believed that if she hadn¡¯t insisted on going abroad, she wouldn¡¯t have separated from him and that woman wouldn¡¯t have had a chance.
Now that she had what she wanted, she intended to win Damon back. N?velDrama.Org owns this text.
¡°I camest night just to make sure you wouldn¡¯t harm yourself. We once loved each other, but the moment you said we should break up, it was over,¡± Damon exined.
¡°No!¡± Reba cried as she threw herself into Damon¡¯s arms, choking on her sobs. ¡°We never truly ended. I just wanted to be a better person, someone worthy of you. You knew that too. And when I asked you to wait, you didn¡¯t refuse, did you?¡±
Damon pushed her away, his expression cold. ¡°It¡¯s all in the past.¡±
With that, he turned and walked away.
Reba jumped up and ran after him, wrapping her arms around his waist and crying out, ¡°Damon, don¡¯t go!¡±
Damon looked down at the arms wrapped around his waist, his emotions churning.
Just as he was about to push Reba away, her next words stopped him in his tracks.
In the evening. N returned to the vi and was surprised to find that Damon still hadn¡¯te back. She was about to call him but hesitated, recalling that he had said he¡¯d be back tonight.
In the end, she put her phone down.
A maid approached and said, ¡°Ms. Jayston, dinner is ready.¡±
N nodded. ¡°Alright, Damon will be back tonight. We¡¯ll wait for him to have dinner.¡±
¡°Understood,¡± the maid replied.
They waited until after 8:00 p.m.
N¡¯s phone suddenly vibrated, and her eyes lit up. She quickly picked it up, but her excitement faded when she saw that the caller wasn¡¯t Damon.
As soon as she answered, Vrie¡¯s voice came through. ¡°N, I saw Damon tonight. He was having dinner at a couple¡¯s restaurant with another woman.¡±
N¡¯s heart sank. She bit her lip. ¡°Are you sure you didn¡¯t mistake someone else for him?¡±
Vrie sighed. ¡°I took a photo. I¡¯ll send it to you shortly. Once you see it, you¡¯ll know for sure if it was him.¡±
After hanging up, Vrie quickly sent the photo.
N¡¯s hands trembled as she opened it.
She recognized Damon in the picture, and her knuckles turned white from gripping the phone. She could no longer deceive herself.
The unease she had felt after he left the night before had solidified into a harsh reality. Her heart felt like it was being squeezed, and her breathing grew heavier.
CHAPTER 304
If they hadn¡¯t been at a couple¡¯s restaurant, sitting on the same side of the table, and if Damon hadn¡¯t been serving her food, N might have convinced herself that the woman was merely a business partner of Prospectus Technology.
She p
put down her phone and lowered her head, her expression somber.
The moment she saw the photo, she had the urge to call Damon and confront him, but she managed to
calm herself at thest moment.
N was merely using Damon. Even if he was involved with another woman, what right did she have to question him?
After all, she hadn¡¯t nned on being with him forever, had she?
Her phone buzzed again, with Vrie sending several more messages.
Vrie: [I looked into it. The woman¡¯s name is Reba Austen, Damon¡¯s first love. After receiving a full schrship, she went abroad, and they lost touch.]
Vrie: [Not many people knew about their rtionship back then. After she went abroad, no one dared to mention her in front of Damon. If I hadn¡¯t investigated, I wouldn¡¯t have known he had a past rtionship.]
Vrie: [N, if Damon really did something wrong to you, what are you going to do?]
As N read Vrie¡¯s messages, her face grew paler. Even after all these years, Damon had set a special ringtone for Reba, indicating that she was still important to him.
N closed her eyes, trying to push away the troubling thoughts. It was a relief she hadn¡¯t fallen for Damon. Otherwise, this would be even more painful.
She stood up and headed back to her room.
The maid hurried over. ¡°Ms. Jayston, since Mr. Sumner hasn¡¯t returned yet, would you like to have a bite
to eat first?¡±
¡°No, just clear away the food. He won¡¯t be back tonight,¡± N replied.
The maid was momentarily stunned. By the time she reacted, N had already started up the stairs.
Back in her bedroom, Ny on her bed, contemting her next move. If Damon nned to rekindle his rtionship with Reba, he would likely end things with her first.
While she was lost in thought, her phone suddenly rang
Upon seeing Damon¡¯s name, her expression dimmed. It took her a moment to answer.
¡°N, I¡¯m sorry, I haven¡¯t finished dealing with things yet. I won¡¯t be able toe back anytime soon,¡± Damon said.
¡°Okay,¡± N replied curtly.
Noticing the chill in her tone, Damon hesitated and asked, ¡°Did something happen?¡±
N wanted to retort that he should know better than she did what was happening, but she held her
tongue.
¡°It¡¯s nothing. I¡¯m just a bit tired. Carry on with your work. I need to rest,¡± she said.
Without giving Damon a chance to respond, she ended the call.
Damon¡¯s expression darkened as he heard the busy tone. His grip on the phone tightened as he stood at the restaurant entrance.
When Reba emerged from the restroom, she noticed Damon staring at his phone with a sullen look. She frowned.
Since he hade to see her the night before, she had felt he was distracted. Even when he spoke to her, he seemed absent¨Cminded.
Upon recalling what rk had said before she returned, a cold resolve shed in her eyes. Damon was hers alone, and she wouldn¡¯t let anyone take him away!
She approached him and asked sweetly, ¡°Damon, what are you looking at?¡±
Damon put away his phone and looked at her with a neutral expression. ¡°Nothing. I¡¯ll take you back.¡±
On the way back, Reba made several attempts to start a conversation, hoping to bridge the gap between them.
However, Damon¡¯s attitude remained distant,cking the warmth and consideration he had previously shown.
When they reached her hotel, she turned to him and asked, ¡°Do you want toe up and hang out for a while?¡± Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
CHAPTER 305
Between adults, the meaning of such a statement was often implied,
Damon was indifferent. ¡°It¡¯s toote to go up now. Get some
e rest.
Reba was a bit disappointed but forced a smile. ¡°Alright. Be safe going back.¡±
When Damon returned to the vi, it was already past 10:00 p.m.
After changing his shoes and entering the living room, the maid approached him. N?velDrama.Org holds ? this.
¡°Mr. Sumner, Ms. Jayston waited a long time for you to return for dinner. In the end, she went upstairs without eating.¡± she reported.
¡°Okay, I understand. You can go rest,¡± Damon replied.
¡°Alright,¡± the maid said and left.
Damon rolled up his sleeves and went to the kitchen to prepare a te of sandwiches, which he took upstairs.
When N heard the knock on the door, she assumed it was the maid and got up to answer it.
Seeing the tall, familiar figure at the door, she was momentarily stunned and almost shut the door.
Damon used his foot to block the door, looking apologetic. ¡°N, I¡¯m sorry I came back sote.¡±
N looked at him and saw no sign of guilt on his face, which only made her more disappointed.
Did men who had wronged their girlfriends or wives always act as if nothing had happened?
She looked down and replied coldly, ¡°It¡¯s fine. I don¡¯t mind. I need to rest,¡±
¡°I heard you didn¡¯t have dinner tonight, so I made you some sandwiches,¡± Damon offered.
¡°No need, I¡¯m not hungry,¡± N declined.
¡°Even if you¡¯re not hungry, you should eat a little,¡± Damon insisted.
N looked up at him, struggling to keep herposure. She couldn¡¯t resist asking, ¡°Can+ask who were talking to on the phonest night?¡±
As soon as she finished speaking, she noticed Damon¡¯s eyes widen slightly.
¡°Why the sudden question?¡± he asked.
¡°I¡¯m just curious,¡± she replied.
¡°A business partner,¡± he said.
you
Seeing him lying with a straight face, N briefly considered showing him the photo Vrie had sent and asking why a business partner would need him to spend an entire day with her at a couples¡® restaurant and even serve her food.
¡°Alright, I understand. If there¡¯s nothing else, I need to rest,¡± she said firmly.
¡°Eat something first¡¡± Damon began.
Before he could finish, N interrupted, ¡°I¡¯m not hungry and can¡¯t eat. I had a long day at work. Can you please leave me alone for a bit?¡±
Noting her impatient gaze, Damon fell silent for a moment before finally conceding. ¡°Alright. If you get hungryter, just let me know.¡±
¡°Sure.¡± N gave a perfunctory nod and closed the door.
The next morning, while Damon was having breakfast, the maid informed him that N had left for work early.
He frowned and asked, ¡°When did she leave?¡±
¡°About an hour ago,¡± the maid replied.
Damon fell silent, sensing that N was deliberately avoiding him.
As he pondered this, his phone rang.
Seeing that it was Reba, he hesitated for a moment before answering.
¡°What¡¯s up?¡± he asked.
¡°Damon, I identally fell and now I¡¯m at the hospital. Can you-
Damon interrupted with a frown, ¡°Which hospital?¡±
¡°Pinnacle Hospital,¡± Reba replied.
¡°I¡¯ll be there right away,¡± Damon said.
By the time Damon arrived at the hospital, 30 minutes had passed.
Reba was sitting in the hospital corridor, looking at Damon with a mixture of grievance and pain. ¡°It hurts so much!¡± she cried.
Damon nced at her bandaged knee, his expression remaining indifferent. ¡°I¡¯ll take you home.¡± Seeing no sign of concern in his eyes, Reba instinctively tightened her grip on his arm. ¡°Okay,¡± she said and reached out to Damon. ¡°My leg hurts and I can¡¯t walk. Can you help me?¡±
CHAPTER 306
Damon stared at her nkly. ¡°Reba, you never used to y these petty games.¡±
Reba hesitated for a moment before slowly withdrawing her hand. She replied calmly, ¡°You used to never refuse me.¡±
¡°I told you, I have a girlfriend now,¡± Damon stated firmly.
Reba looked up at him and asked, ¡°Do you love her?¡±
Damon remained silent.
Reba felt a glimmer of confidence and said, ¡°If you really loved her, you would admit it without hesitation.¡±
Damon frowned. ¡°Reba, I didn¡¯t admit it because I don¡¯t want to hurt you.¡±
Reba¡¯s smile faltered. After a moment, she softly said, ¡°It¡¯s fine if you love her. You¡¯ll fall in love with me again.¡±
Damon wanted to tell her that he wouldn¡¯t fall for her again¨Cthat for him, they were long over. But seeing the sadness on her face, he couldn¡¯t bring himself to say it.
¡°Let¡¯s go,¡± he said, turning toward the hospital exit. N?velDrama.Org owns this text.
Reba caught up with him, trying to walk beside him as she used to. He stepped back slightly.
¡°Reba, while I¡¯ve agreed to take care of you during this time, I hope you can keep your distance,¡± Damon said, his tone cold.
The warmth that once filled his eyes was gone.
Reba looked at him with a bitter expression. ¡®Have lost even the right to be close to you now?¡±
Damon didn¡¯t answer, his gaze detached.
Finally, Reba forced a bitter smile. ¡°Alright, I understand.¡±
After dropping Reba off at her ce, Damon drove directly to the office.
As soon as he arrived on the top floor, Spencer approached him cautiously and said in a low voice, ¡°Mr. Sumner, your father is here. He¡¯s in your office.¡±
Damon¡¯s gaze hardened as he replied coldly, ¡°Got it.¡±
Upon entering the office, Damon found Richard sitting on the sofa..
Seeing Damon, Richard snorted. ¡°Are you really nning to sever ties with us?¡±
Damon sat down across from him, his expression neutral. ¡°You were the one who wanted to cut ties. I never said anything like that.¡±
¡®Damn it! I said that in anger! Richard huffed.
Damon looked at him steadily. ¡°So, what brings you here today?¡±
Richard took a deep breath, his tone softening slightly. Although Cyrus made some mistakes, he¡¯s still your brother. Are you really not going to help him?¡±
¡°You should know that I¡¯m with N now. I haven¡¯t helped her precisely because she¡¯s dealing with my brother,¡± Damon replied.
Richard¡¯s face darkened. ¡°Are you really going to disregard your family just for a woman?!¡±
¡°She might be my wife in the future, and she will be my family too,¡± Damon countered.
¡°Are you out of your mind?! If you really marry her, everyone in the city willugh at the Sumners!¡± Richard growled.
¡°I don¡¯t care what others think. I won¡¯t let their opinions influence the decisions I make,¡± Damon stated firmly.
Richard pointed at him, wanting to yell but finding himself at a loss for words. He had already exhausted all his arguments.
¡°You¡¯re hopeless!¡± he cried in frustration before storming out.
Since Damon was so unreasonable, Richard decided to approach N instead.
N was somewhat surprised that Richard hade to see her. After all, theirst encounter at the Sumner residence had ended badly, and she had assumed he wouldn¡¯t lower himself toe to her.
CHAPTER 307
Chapter 307
¡°Mr. Sumner, what brings you here?¡± N asked.
Seeing N¡¯sposed demeanor, Richard frowned, his tone condescending. ¡°Name your price, as long as you agree to let Cyrus go.¡±
N remained calm. ¡°And how much are you offering?
¡°That depends on your demand. The incident happened so many years ago. Even if you send Cyrus to prison, I can still find a way to get him out. Stubbornness won¡¯t benefit you,¡± Richard stated.
N stood up, her tone t. ¡°Since you¡¯ve put it that way, there¡¯s no point in continuing this conversation.¡± Richard¡¯s expression turned icy. ¡°What do you mean by that?¡±
¡°I mean, I don¡¯t think we cane to an agreement. I have work to do, so I¡¯ll take my leave now.¡± With that, N turned and walked out.
Watching her leave, Richard felt his frustration reaching a boiling point. If she wouldn¡¯t ept his offer, he wouldn¡¯t hold back any longer.
He called one of his subordinates, gritting his teeth. ¡°Investigate Harris Pharmaceuticals. I refuse to believe Harrison has never been involved in anything shady!¡±
Back at theb, Melody noticed N¡¯s pale face and asked with concern, ¡°N, are you alright? Did something happen?¡±
N shook her head. ¡°It¡¯s nothing. Just focus on your work.¡±
That evening, N received a call from Gabriel.
¡°Are you free tonight? Let¡¯s have dinner together,¡± he invited.
Surprised, N paused for a moment before replying, ¡°Sure, where are you? I¡¯ll book the restaurant.¡±
Gabriel, who hadn¡¯t returned to Saintornia for years, was unfamiliar with the area. He didn¡¯t insist on choosing a ce himself and gave N the name of his hotel.
After hanging up, N made a reservation and pondered why Gabriel had suddenly returned to the city. Given his career prospects abroad, it seemed he would have better opportunities elsewhere.
Unable to reach a clear conclusion, she decided to set the thought aside.
Later, as N was about to leave work, she received a text from Damon asking her to wait for him so they could go home together.
N stared at the text for a moment before replying that she had ns for dinner.
Momentster, Damon called her directly. ¡°Who are you having dinner with?¡±
¡°A friend,¡± she replied.
Damon frowned. He knew N¡¯s close friend in the city was likely Valorie. If it were her, N would have
¡°Mr. Sumner, what brings you here?¡± N asked.
Seeing N¡¯sposed demeanor, Richard frowned, his tone condescending. ¡°Name your price, as long as you agree to let Cyrus go.¡±
N remained calm. ¡°And how much are you offering?
¡°That depends on your demand. The incident happened so many years ago. Even if you send Cyrus to prison, I can still find a way to get him out. Stubbornness won¡¯t benefit you,¡± Richard stated.
N stood up, her tone t. ¡°Since you¡¯ve put it that way, there¡¯s no point in continuing this conversation.¡±
Richard¡¯s expression turned icy. ¡°What do you mean by that?¡±
¡°I mean, I don¡¯t think we cane to an agreement. I have work to do, so I¡¯ll take my leave now.¡± With that, N turned and walked out.
Watching her leave, Richard felt his frustration reaching a boiling point. If she wouldn¡¯t ept his offer, he wouldn¡¯t hold back any longer. Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
He called one of his subordinates, gritting his teeth. ¡°Investigate Harris Pharmaceuticals. I refuse to believe Harrison has never been involved in anything shady!¡±
Back at theb, Melody noticed N¡¯s pale face and asked with concern, ¡°N, are you alright? Did something happen?¡±
N shook her head. ¡°It¡¯s nothing. Just focus on your work.¡±
That evening. N received a call from Gabriel.
¡°Are you free tonight? Let¡¯s have dinner together,¡± he invited.
Surprised, N paused for a moment before replying, ¡°Sure, where are you? I¡¯ll book the restaurant.¡±
Gabriel, who hadn¡¯t returned to Saintomnia for years, was unfamiliar with the area. He didn¡¯t insist on choosing a ce himself and gave N the name of his hotel.
After hanging up, N made a reservation and pondered why Gabriel had suddenly returned to the city. Given his career prospects abroad, it seemed he would have better opportunities elsewhere.
Unable to reach a clear conclusion, she decided to set the thought aside.
Later, as N was about to leave work, she received a text from Damon asking her to wait for him so they could go home together.
N stared at the text for a moment before replying that she had ns for dinner.
Momentster, Damon called her directly. ¡°Who are you having dinner with?¡±
¡°A friend,¡± she replied.
Damon frowned. He knew N¡¯s close friend in the city was likely Vrie. If it were her, N would have
CHAPTER 308
¡°Long time no see,¡± N greeted.
Gabriel approached her with a smile. ¡°Yeah, it¡¯s been a while.¡±
It had been five to six years since theyst met, and they hadn¡¯t kept in touch much, so N felt a bit awkward.
¡°Let¡¯s head inside,¡± she said.
Once they were seated and had ordered their food, N turned to Gabriel and asked, ¡°What made you decide to return and develop your career locally? Wren mentioned that your sry abroad was quite high. If you had stayed a few more years, you could probably have settled down there.¡±
Gabriel was momentarily distracted by seeing her face up close again, but he quicklyposed himself. I¡¯ve gotten used to the food here.¡±
N looked surprised and seemed skeptical. ¡°Is it really that simple?¡±
¡°Yeah,¡± Gabriel replied.
¡°Alright, so have you already found a job, or are you nning to take some time off?¡± she asked.
Gabriel took a sip of his water, lightly tapping the ss, and said, ¡°Actually, I had an interview with Prospectus Technology today.¡±
N almost spat out her drink, her eyes widening with disbelief. ¡°You¡¯re joining Prospectus Technology?¡± ¡°What¡¯s wrong with that?¡± Gabriel asked.
N quickly shook her head. ¡°It¡¯s just that Prospectus Technology is such arge conglomerate with many industries. I thought, given your background, you¡¯d prefer to work for apany that focuses on drug research or pharmaceuticals.¡±
Before Harris Pharmaceuticals went bankrupt, Harrison had nned for N to focus on drug research and eventually take over thepany.
Gabriel, ording to Wren, also had a passion for drug research, and both he and N had applied to universities together.
Harrison had initially nned to allocate part of the shares to Gabriel so he could assist N in thepany, but Gabriel had declined. Instead, he had applied for a full schrship to study abroad during his junior year and had returned only twice over the years.
Moreover, after going abroad, he had be distant.
N wondered if she had done something to offend him. After starting her rtionship with rk, she focused more on him and lost touch with Gabriel.
¡°Originally, Prospectus Technology wasn¡¯t on my radar, but since they invited me for an interview, I decided to check it out,¡± Gabriel exined.
N couldn¡¯t help but feel a bit nostalgic. ¡°It seems that a talented person is always in demand wherever they go.¡±
Gabriel¡¯s gaze remained cool as he looked at her. ¡°Enough about me. How about you? How have you beentely?¡±
N gave a bittersweet smile. ¡°Wren must have told you about my divorce. My life¡¯s a bit of a mess right
now.¡±
Gabriel paused for a moment, his voice softening. ¡°It¡¯s not your fault. As long as you follow what you believe is right, I support you.¡± This belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
N looked up at him, a mix of disbelief and gratitude in her eyes.
Since her divorce from rk and Cyrus¡® arrest, the Surriners and her family had pressured her to give up, urging her to stop.
She hadn¡¯t expected Gabriel to support her.
¡°Aren¡¯t you worried about being dragged into my problems?¡± she asked.
¡°What you¡¯re doing is right. Why should I be worried? Besides, if the Sumners want to make a move against me, they¡¯ll have to think twice,¡± Gabriel said.
Seeing his calm demeanor andck of fear toward the Sumners, N wondered if he was aware of how powerful they were in the city.
Given the Sumners¡® capabilities, dealing with them would be as easy as squashing an ant.
As N was about to respond, her gaze suddenly froze as she looked past Gabriel toward the restaurant
entrance.
CHAPTER 309
Damon approached them with a smile, but N could sense his bad mood.
Gabriel followed her gaze and noticed Damon, his eyes narrowing slightly as he perceived the hostility. Damon walked directly to N and sat down beside her. With a smile, he said, ¡°N, I didn¡¯t know you were having dinner with your brother, I would¡¯ve joined you if I had known.¡±
Gabriel looked at N, his expression questioning. ¡®This is?¡±
Feeling the weight of both men¡¯s gazes, N frowned.
Just as she was about to introduce them, Damon interjected with a smile, ¡°Mr. Hackett, it¡¯s nice to meet you. I¡¯m Damon Sumner, N¡¯s boyfriend and the CEO of Prospectus Technology.¡±
Gabriel¡¯s eyes flickered as he shook hands with Damon. ¡°Hello, I¡¯m Gabriel Hackett.¡±
In that brief exchange, only the two men understood the underlying tension.
N asked Damon, ¡°What are you doing here?¡±
Damon released Gabriel¡¯s hand and turned to her. ¡°What¡¯s wrong? Can¡¯t I join you? It seems like you didn¡¯t want me here.¡±
N replied, ¡°I thought you might be busy.¡±
¡°No matter how busy I am, I can always find time to have dinner with your family, Damon said.
Gabriel¡¯s grip on the table tightened as Damon¡¯s words reminded him of his role as N¡¯s stepbrother. His gaze toward Damon began to show a hint of hostility.
He had hoped that with N¡¯s divorce from rk, he might have a chance. It now seemed that Damon had beaten him to it.
¡°Then have a look at what you want. We just ordered for two,¡± N said.
Damon handed her the menu with a smile. ¡°You pick. You know what I like.¡±
Since they hadn¡¯t been together long, N wasn¡¯t sure of his preferences. She didn¡¯t want to embarrass him in front of Gabriel either, so she took the menu and ordered a few dishes.
As she was ordering, the two men began talking, leaving her little chance to join in.
After finishing dinner, Damon remained enthusiastic and said, ¡°Mr. Hackett, it was a pleasure meeting you tonight. I enjoyed our conversation and hope we can have another dinner together soon.¡±
Gabriel nced at N, who had her head down, and remarked, ¡°We¡¯ll have another chance.¡±
Damon took N¡¯s hand and smiled. ¡°Let us give you a ride back to the hotel.¡±
¡°No need. My friend ising to pick me up, and I have some things to doter,¡± Gabriel declined. Damon nodded. ¡°Alright. We¡¯ll head back then. See you
+25
Chapter 309
Gabriel looked at N with a softer expression. ¡°I¡¯m going to visit your father tomorrow. Would you like toe along?¡±
¡°No, I¡¯ll go another time,¡± N replied.
¡°Okay, be safe on your way back,¡± Gabriel said.
¡°You too,¡± N said.
Once they were out of Gabriel¡¯s sight, N pulled her hand away from Damon and walked directly to her
car.
As she reached the vehicle, Damon stopped her. ¡°Are you upset?¡±
N looked up at him, her expression tinged with anger. ¡°Shouldn¡¯t I be? Why did you suddenly show up tonight?¡±
Damon¡¯s smile faded slightly. ¡°Do you not want me to meet Gabriel?¡±
¡°That¡¯s not the point,¡± N said. N?velDrama.Org owns this text.
¡°What do you mean? If you didn¡¯t want me toe, it means you didn¡¯t want to introduce me to your family or acknowledge my status, right?¡± Damon insisted.
Facing his somewhat aggressive gaze, N sneered. ¡°If an ex can make you disappear for a whole day, how could I possibly introduce you to my family or acknowledge you?¡±
CHAPTER 310
Damon¡¯s expression momentarily froze. ¡°When did you find out?¡± N?velDrama.Org holds ? this.
N¡¯s tone was icy. ¡°When you went to a couples¡® restaurant with her for dinner.¡±
The two fell into silence, and the only sound was their breathing.
After a long pause, seeing that he wasn¡¯t going to speak. N turned to open the car door, ready to leave.
Suddenly, Damon grabbed her wrist. ¡°N, not telling you was my mistake. I¡¯m sorry.¡±
N nced back at him. His features were blurred by the dim night, making it hard to read his expression. She pulled her hand away. ¡°If you want to get back with her, I can move out tonight.¡±
Damon frowned. ¡°I don¡¯t want to get back with her. I didn¡¯t tell you because I was afraid you¡¯d misunderstand. I¡¯m very clear that the person I care about now is you.¡±
N found his words somewhat amusing and looked at him with anger. ¡°Afraid of me misunderstanding, so you spent an entire day with your ex? Afraid of me misunderstanding, so you made me wait for dinner while you went to a couples¡® restaurant with her? I¡¯d like to know, what woman wouldn¡¯t misunderstand these things?!¡±
As N spoke, her eyes grew red. She had assumed she had no expectations and could walk away at any time, but now she realized she had already fallen for him.
It hurt deeply to see him entangled with his ex.
Damon¡¯s face grew pained, his eyes filled with guilt. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, but I can assure you, I never intended to get back with her.¡±
N looked up with tearful eyes and said slowly, ¡°If you never intended to get back with her, can youpletely cut ties with her?¡±
Damon¡¯s expression froze.
N wasn¡¯t surprised andughed bitterly. ¡°If you can¡¯t, then let¡¯s end it here.¡±
She had originally nned to use Damon to deter the Sumners from targeting her, but now she realized that doing so also meant getting hurt. She didn¡¯t want to experience the pain of hopeful anticipation turning into disappointment again.
¡°N, I absolutely won¡¯t get back with her, but I can¡¯t cut ties with her right now, Can you give me some time?¡± Damon pleaded.
¡°Why not?¡± N demanded.
¡°I can¡¯t tell you why right now. Please, give me some time,¡± Damon insisted.
N¡¯s disappointment was evident, her gaze growing cold. ¡°You know how rk betrayed me, and you should understand that what I hate most is a man involved with another woman.
Yet now, not only are you entangled with Reba, but you also expect me to give you time. Do you think that¡¯s reasonable?*
Seeing Damon¡¯s hesitant expression, N lowered her gaze. ¡°Let¡¯s leave it at that. I¡¯ll take a leave
tomorrow to move my things.¡±
With that, she pushed past him and got into her car, driving away.
Later, N checked into a hotel, nning to stay there for a few days and search for a new ce over the weekend. With some money on hand, she considered finding a well¨Csecured neighborhood to avoid any further disturbances.
The next morning, N took a leave from work and went straight to Damon¡¯s vi. To her surprise, she found him sitting on the living room sofa, going through documents.
N frowned slightly and said, ¡°I¡¯m here to collect my things.¡±
With that, she headed upstairs.
As she was packing, Damon entered the room and said softly, ¡°N, let¡¯s talk.¡±
¡°We already covered the things we needed to talk aboutst night,¡± N replied.
CHAPTER 311
+25
As N spoke, she packed her things quickly, preparing to leave.
Damon stopped her. ¡°Are you really leaving?¡±
¡°If I don¡¯t leave now, am I supposed to wait until you get back together with Reba and then get kicked out? I¡¯m not that blind or foolish,¡± N countered.
¡°I won¡¯t get back with her,¡± Damon repeated.
N looked up at him, her expression serious. ¡°Do you know? rk used to tell me he wouldn¡¯t continue to be entangled with Jordyn, and look what happened.
A trace of coldness flickered across Damon¡¯s face, and his voice grew somber. ¡°I¡¯m not like him.¡±
¡°What¡¯s the difference? You¡¯re both involved with other women and seem to lie. I¡¯m not going through this again,¡± N stated tly.
Damon was at a loss for words. His actions had certainly made her feel insecure.
¡°N, give me three months. I¡¯ll resolve this issue,¡± he promised.
N pushed him aside. ¡°I won¡¯t wait for you.¡±
With that, she left.
It wasn¡¯t until she was outside the vi that the tears began to fall. She wiped them away, forced herself to pull it together, and drove off after putting her suitcase in the car.
After N left, Damon spent the entire afternoon in his study.
When dinner time came, a nervous maid knocked on the door. ¡°Mr. Sumner, it¡¯s time for dinner.
¡°I¡¯m not hungry,¡± Damon replied.
There was a brief silence before the maid¡¯s voice came again. ¡°Even if you¡¯re not hungry, you should eat something. Ms. Jayston wille back once she¡¯s
thought things through.¡±
Although the maid said this, she knew that N would never return as long as Damon remained entangled with Reba.
When no response came from the room, the maid sighed. ¡°I¡¯ve left the food in the warmer. If you get hungry, you can help yourself.¡±
As her footsteps faded away, Damon stared at the documents in his hand for several minutes but couldn¡¯t focus on a single word. His mind was upied by the image of N leaving resolutely.
Frustrated, he tossed the documents onto the table, grabbed his car keys, and left.
At the club¡
Damon downed drink after drink, his dark expression creating a frightening aura around him.
¡°Damon, what¡¯s wrong? Heartbroken?¡± Nathaniel teased.
Damon red at him, noting his apparent delight. ¡°Can¡¯t you keep your mouth shut?¡±
Realizing Damon was genuinely angry, Nathaniel quickly wiped the smirk off his face. ¡°Did I hit the nail on the head?¡±
Damon didn¡¯t respond, and the atmosphere in the room grew even heavier.
Just as Nathaniel was trying to think of something to lighten the mood, Damon¡¯s phone rang.
At the sound of the ringtone, Nathaniel¡¯s expression changed. He abruptly looked up at Damon. This belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
Damon hung up with a neutral expression, but the caller tried again. As he prepared to hang up once more, Nathaniel snatched the phone from him, his , Nathaniel snatched the phone from him, his hand tightening when he saw the name on the screen.
¡°Reba¡ Why is she contacting you all of a sudden?¡± Nathanjel asked.
Since leaving the country, Reba had cut off all contact with them. Nathaniel
had tried to find her but was told not to contact her again, as she hadn¡¯t wanted to see anyone rted to Damon.
Damon¡¯s expression remained indifferent. ¡°She¡¯s back in the country.¡±
Nathaniel¡¯s eyes widened in shock. ¡°When did this happen? Why didn¡¯t you tell me?!¡±
CHAPTER 312
¡°A few days ago,¡± Damon replied.
Nathaniel quickly asked, ¡°Where is she now?¡±
Noticing Nathaniel¡¯s agitation, Damon took his phone back, ended the call, and turned it off. With an indifferent expression, he provided the name of a hotel.
Nathaniel immediately got up and left in a hurry, his steps slightly erratic.
Caleb looked at Damon, who remained expressionless. A hint of surprise shed in his eyes. ¡°You really don¡¯t have any feelings left for Reba?¡±
Back in university, Damon had been aware that Nathaniel liked Reba and had always kept her close, not giving Nathaniel any chance to get near her.
Could it really be that Damon had moved on sopletely?
Damon took a sip of his drink and replied calmly, ¡°The moment she left for abroad and proposed breaking up, there was no more chance for us.
Caleb couldn¡¯t help butugh, shaking his head. ¡°That¡¯s just like you.¡±
He had expected Damon to be despondent when Reba left, but surprisingly, Damon had returned to his old self within three days, showing no signs of heartbreak.
Caleb and Nathaniel had both assumed he kept everything bottled up, but seeing him so nonchnt today, Caleb realized that Reba might not hold a candle to N in his heart.
¡°Are you serious about N?¡± Caleb asked.
At the mention of N, Damon paused, then downed his drink in one gulp.
Caleb, understanding the situation, raised an eyebrow. ¡°You should know that being with her will be much harder than being with Reba.¡±
Reba had only poor family conditions, and even then, Richard and Marie had opposed their rtionship. Not to mention, N not only had poor conditions but had also been married to rk.
¡°Who I¡¯m with is my own business. Others have no say in it,¡± Damon stated. N?velDrama.Org owns this text.
Caleb was a bit startled. When Richard and Marie had made things difficult for Reba, Damon had defended her, but he hadn¡¯t been as resolute as he was
now.
¡°Just make sure you¡¯re clear about what you want,¡± Caleb advised.
Damon remained silent, his expression still grim.
Nathaniel arrived at Reba¡¯s hotel. He had already discovered her room number on the way, but once he reached the lobby, he hesitated about whether
to go up.
While he was contemting, a sweet voice called out from nearby, ¡°Nathaniel?¡±
Nathaniel stiffened and turned to see Reba standing a few steps away in a white dress. His eyes widened in disbelief.
She was really back!
Seeing Nathaniel frozen in ce, Reba walked up to him, her smile as pure and beautiful as it had been in university.
¡°Why aren¡¯t you saying anything?¡± she asked.
As she approached, the subtle fragrance of her perfume enveloped him.
Nathaniel gathered his thoughts and forced a smile. ¡°Reba, what a surprise to see you here. It¡¯s been years since west met¡¡±
Reba didn¡¯tment on his surprise. Instead, she softly said, ¡°Yes, after so many years abroad, it was time toe back. There¡¯s no ce like home.¡±
Nathaniel paused before asking seriously, ¡°Are you back because you want to get back together with Damon?¡±
¡°I originally thought about it, but since he already has a girlfriend, it seems impossible now,¡± she replied.
Seeing the disappointment and sadness on her face, Nathaniel frowned. ¡°With
your two years of rtionship with Damon, if you want to fight for him, it¡¯s not impossible to win him back.¡±
¡°Really?¡± Reba looked at him with hopeful eyes. ¡°Do you really think so?¡±
Nathaniel¡¯s heart was heavy, but he managed a smile. ¡°Yes.¡±
CHAPTER 313
¡°Will you help me then?¡± Reba asked.
Nathaniel regretted his words. He should have taken advantage of the opportunity instead of advising her to fight for Damon. Now, he wasmitted and had to stick to his promise.
¡°If you need it,¡± he replied.
Reba finally smiled. She was about to respond when Nathaniel¡¯s phone rang suddenly. Relieved, he quickly answered the call and stepped aside.
After finishing the call, he returned to Reba and said, ¡°Reba, I¡¯m sorry, but something urgent just came up. Let¡¯s exchange contact details and discuss this further next time.¡±
¡°Alright,¡± Reba agreed.
They exchanged contact information, and Nathaniel left.
Reba watched him go with a smirk, her eyes narrowing slightly.
N had anticipated trouble sleeping after leaving Damon¡¯s vi, but to her surprise, she fell asleep quickly once she returned to her hotel room.
She didn¡¯t dream all night and woke up early the next morning, around 6:00 a.m.
After washing up, tying her hair back, and applying light makeup, she slipped into a T¨Cshirt and jeans and headed out for work.
Upon arriving at Prospectus Technology, she ran into Melody.
¡°Good morning, N!¡± Melody greeted.
¡°Good morning,¡± N replied.
As they walked toward the office together, they didn¡¯t notice the ck Maybach parked by the side of the road.
The rear window of the car lowered, revealing Damon¡¯s cold eyes fixed on N. N?velDrama.Org holds ? this.
She walked toward the office with Melody chatting and smiling, looking radiant in her casual outfit. The simplicity of her T¨Cshirt and jeans made her appear youthful as if she were a fresh college graduate.
After a night of drinking due to their breakup, Damon still had a splitting headache. Meanwhile, N seemed unaffected and even looked better than she had the day before.
Noticing the rising tension in the car, Spencer cautiously spoke up. ¡°Mr. Sumner, the morning meeting is approaching.¡±
Damon withdrew his gaze, his voice icy. ¡°Let¡¯s go.¡±
All day, the atmosphere in the CEO¡¯s office on the top floor of Prospectus Technology was heavy with tension.
Every secretary seemed on edge, dreading being called into Damon¡¯s office.
The product department manager walked out of Damon¡¯s office looking dejected after being reprimanded.
¡°Mr. Hogg, what¡¯s wrong with Mr. Sumner today? He seems to be in a terrible mood.¡± Although he had been reprimanded before, it had never felt this oppressive.
Spencer nodded. ¡°Be prepared. Mr. Sumner might be in a bad mood for quite some time.¡±
The product department manager was rendered speechless.
As Spencer was about to offer some words offort, Damon¡¯s voice came from the office. ¡°Mr. Hogg,e in.¡±
The manager gave Spencer a sympathetic look before quickly making his exit. He didn¡¯t want to risk being called back in for another scolding.
Spencer entered the office to find Damon going through some documents with a stern expression.
¡°Mr. Sumner, you wanted to see me?¡± he asked.
¡°Yes. What¡¯s going on with the Sr Enterprise deal? Why hasn¡¯t it progressed?
Damon demanded.
¡°I was nning to update you on that at the afternoon meeting. This morning, I contacted Sr Enterprise, and they were vague. Upon further investigation, I discovered they had already signed the contract with Mr. rk the night before, ¡°Spencer exined.
Damon¡¯s eyes shifted from the documents to Spencer, intensifying the pressure on him. ¡°So you¡¯re telling me that rk stole Prospectus Technology¡¯s client, and you only found out a day after the contract was signed?¡±
CHAPTER 314
Spencer lowered his head, hesitant to speak. The loss of the major deal was significant, and he was puzzled as to why the other party would risk offending Prospectus Technology by working with rk¡¯s smallpany.
Damon¡¯s eyes were filled with anger. ¡°Go get the person in charge of this deal!¡±
¡°Understood, I¡¯ll go right away!¡± Spencer hurriedly left, eager not to be stopped by Damon.
Since breaking up with N, Damon had be quite fearsome.
Near noon, N and Melody went to the cafeteria for lunch.
Melody noticed something odd and couldn¡¯t help but ask, ¡°N, aren¡¯t you having lunch with Mr. Sumner?¡±
They had only recently gotten together, so it seemed strange that N was acting as if nothing had changed. Just a few days ago, she would asionally check her phone for messages, but today she hadn¡¯t looked at it at all.
N pursed her lips and replied calmly, ¡°We¡¯ve broken up.¡±
¡°What?! You guys broke-¡± Melody quickly covered her mouth with her hand, her eyes wide with shock.
It wasn¡¯t until they had sat down with their food that she recovered from her surprise and leaned in to whisper, ¡°How did you guys break up so suddenly? Did Mr. Sumner initiate it?¡±
N picked up a piece of vegetable and said expressionlessly, ¡°It doesn¡¯t matter who initiated it. Let¡¯s eat before the food gets cold.¡±
Seeing that N didn¡¯t want to borate, Melody suppressed her curiosity. She pretended to focus on her meal while specting about the reason for their breakup.
Halfway through their lunch, an HR representative came into the cafeteria to find N. ¡°N, this is your new colleague. He¡¯s responsible for another
project, but his office is next to yours. Please get along well.¡±
N frowned when she saw the man standing next to HR. It was Gabriel.
¡°Why didn¡¯t you mention that you epted Prospectus Technology¡¯s offer when west had dinner?¡± N asked.
Gabriel smiled. ¡°I interviewed with severalpanies, but I felt Prospectus Technology was the best fit for me in the end.¡± N?velDrama.Org holds ? this.
Observing their interaction, the representative smiled and asked, ¡°Oh, you two know each other?¡±
Gabriel nodded. ¡°Yes.¡±
¡°That¡¯s great. I won¡¯t introduce him further. N, I have other matters to attend to. His desk is right next to yours, so please show him to his officeter,¡± the representative requested.
¡°Alright,¡± N agreed.
After the representative left, Melody¡¯s inquisitive eyes darted between N and Gabriel, a mischievous smile on her face. ¡°N, I didn¡¯t know you had such a handsome friend!¡±
N nced at her and replied without much enthusiasm, ¡°This is my brother. Gabriel, this is Melody Sorley, my colleague.¡±
Upon hearing N introduce him as her brother, Gabriel smiled. ¡°Ms. Sorley, nice to meet you. I¡¯m Gabriel Hackett.¡±
Melody quickly shook his hand and said, ¡°Nice to meet you too. I¡¯m Melody. Since you¡¯re siblings, why do you have differentst names? Is it because one of you takes after your father and the other after your mother?¡±
Gabriel¡¯s smile widened. ¡°No. Wee from a blended family.¡±
Melody understood immediately and nodded. ¡°Oh.¡±
N, not wanting to continue the topic, turned to Gabriel. ¡°Have you had lunch yet?¡±
¡°Not yet. I¡¯m not familiar with what¡¯s good here. Can you rmend
445300US
something?¡± Gabriel asked.
N thought for a moment and said, ¡°I remember you don¡¯t like spicy food. There¡¯s probably something you might like upstairs.¡±
¡°Great,¡± Gabriel said.
After Gabriel left, Melody whispered, ¡°N, your brother is so good¨Clooking! If
he doesn¡¯t have a girlfriend, I¡¯m definitely going to try to win him over!¡±
CHAPTER 315
N turned and noticed Melody¡¯s starry¨Ceyed expression, her surprise evident. She knew Gabriel was good¨Clooking.
Back in high school, when people found out she was his sister, many girls had asked her to pass love letters to him.
Initially, Gabriel would just toss the letters in the trash with a scowl. Eventually, he became so fed up that he warned N to stop collecting them or he would
tell Harrison.
N hadn¡¯t heard from Wren about any rtionships he might have had while being abroad these years.
N shook her head. ¡°I don¡¯t know about that. If you¡¯re curious, though, I can try to find out for you.¡±
Melody hugged N excitedly. ¡°N, you¡¯re the best! If I end up with him, I¡¯ll definitely owe you one!¡±
While they were talking, Gabriel returned with his food. He sat down next to N and began eating quietly.
On the other side of the table, Melody gazed at him with starry eyes, almost
drooling.
Noticing Melody¡¯s obvious infatuation, N cleared her throat softly to remind her not to go overboard. Gabriel had always disliked fangirls, and she suspected he hadn¡¯t changed much.
None of them noticed a tall figure walking into the dining area.
As soon as Damon entered, he spotted N and Gabriel, who was beside her. His frown deepened, looking like it could crush a fly.
Spencer, following behind, felt the temperature in the room drop several degrees and shivered involuntarily.
As he wondered about the sudden chill, Damon¡¯s cold voice echoed. ¡°Send a notice that from now on, no men and women are allowed to sit together in the dining hall.¡±
*25 BOMUS
Spencer was taken aback. What kind of strange rule was that?
However, seeing N and Gabriel chatting happy and then looking at Damon¡¯s dark face, he finally understood.
Damon wasn¡¯t just making a general rule about men and women eating together¨Che was clearly jealous that N was sitting with another man. N?velDrama.Org owns this text.
¡°Mr. Sumner, the person next to Ms. Jayston is her stepbrother,¡± Spencer informed.
Damon turned and shot him an icy re. ¡°Who she¡¯s sitting with is none of my business. Stop talking¡±
Seeing Damon¡¯s stubborn demeanor, Spencer managed to suppress a smile. He nodded and said, ¡°Understood. Gabriel is also a new drug researcher at ourpany, just so you know.¡±
¡°Don¡¯t bother me with these small matters in the future,¡± Damon retorted.
¡°Got it,¡± Spencer replied
As Damon walked past N, he ignored herpletely and left quickly.
Although N was smiling and talking to Gabriel, her grip on her cutlery tightened, her knuckles turning white, as Damon passed by.
She lowered her gaze to her te,pletely losing her appetite. She had hoped to remain indifferent upon seeing Damon again, but his presence stirred her emotions
Noticing her change in demeanor, Gabriel asked gently, ¡°Why aren¡¯t you eating more?*
¡®T¡¯m full,¡± N replied
¡°You¡¯re too thin. You should eat more,¡± Gabriel advised.
N frowned. ¡°I¡¯m really full.¡±
She picked up her te and stood up. ¡°I need to get some fresh air. I¡¯ll wait for you outside.¡±
Chapter $15
As N was about to leave after clearing her te, she suddenly found herself staring into a pair of deep, dark eyes.
CHAPTER 316
N clenched her hands at her sides and looked down, pretending not to see Damon. As she walked past him, her heart raced, fearing he might do
something to draw attention.
His gaze had been unsettling, after all.
It wasn¡¯t until she exited the dining hall that she felt the weight of his stare lift. With a sigh of relief, she frowned. They were no longer together, so why did he
still look at her like that?
Taking a deep breath, she forced herself to stop thinking about it. They no longer had any connection, and it was best to treat future encounters as if they
were strangers.
Soon, Melody and Gabriel left the dining hall and headed back to theb building with N.
N showed Gabriel to his desk and briefly exined the storage of experimental drugs before retreating to her own space for a nap.
The afternoon passed quickly, and just before the end of the workday, Melody came over to N and whispered, ¡°N, remember to ask your brother if he has a girlfriend! Whether I can find someone depends on you!¡±
N couldn¡¯t help butugh and nodded. ¡°Got it.¡±
¡°Alright, I¡¯m heading out now. Let me know if you find anything out,¡± Melody chirped.
After Melody left, N continued tidying up theb equipment.
By the time she finished, it was already several minutes past the hour. As she turned to leave, she saw Gabriel standing by the door.
¡°What¡¯s up?¡± N asked.
Gabriel smiled. ¡°I need a favor.¡±
N looked curious. ¡°What¡¯s the matter?
She had assumed Gabriel would keep a respectful distance even after returning to the country, but now he was asking her for help.
Gabriel sighed, looking a bit frustrated. ¡°My mother just asked me to go on a blind date now that I¡¯m back. I refused, but it didn¡¯t work. Could you pretend to be my girlfriend tonight and help me turn down the person?¡±
N was about to refuse but then considered that this might be a chance for Melody and Gabriel to interact. She said, ¡°I have ns tonight, so I can¡¯t help. but Melody might be avable. Let me check with her.¡±
Gabriel¡¯s expression faltered for a moment, and he hesitated before speaking.¡± Is that okay? We just met today, and asking her to do this might be a bit much¡¡±
¡°She¡¯s very helpful. I¡¯ll call her now,¡± N said.
Before Gabriel could object, she had already dialed Melody¡¯s number.
After hanging up, she looked at him and said, ¡°She agreed. Did you drive today?¡±
Gabriel nodded, ¡°Yes.¡±
¡°Great. Then you can pick her up and go to the blind date together,¡± N said.
Gabriel¡¯s gaze dimmed slightly as he replied, ¡°Alright.¡±
¡°Unless there¡¯s anything else, I¡¯ll head out now.¡± With that, N turned and left before he had a chance to respond. Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
Watching her go, Gabriel smiled slowly. It was fine¨Che had plenty of time.
Not long after arriving home, N received a call from Melody.
¡°N, I feel like your brother was a bit cold to me. Does he dislike me?¡± Melody asked.
N remembered that Gabriel had always been indifferent toward girls. ¡°No, don¡¯t worry. It¡¯s just his personality.¡±
Melody sighed in relief. ¡°That¡¯s good. I was worried he might not like me.¡±
CHAPTER 317
Hearing the anxiety in Melody¡¯s voice, N couldn¡¯t help but smile. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. If he really dislikes someone, he won¡¯t even speak to them.¡±
Melody said, ¡°He¡¯s my first crush, so naturally, I¡¯m a bit anxious. I hope I didn¡¯t disturb you.¡±
¡°No, don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ll try to create opportunities for you two to be alone,¡± N reassured her.
Melody was deeply touched. ¡°Oh, N, you¡¯re the best!¡±
After exchanging a few moreforting words, N ended the call. She set her phone down and reflected on how even someone as carefree as Melody could feel insecure about matters of the heart.
Upon thinking about her own recent breakup with Damon, N¡¯s expression grew somber. She took a deep breath, forced herself to move on, and prepared for bed.
The next morning, as N walked into the office, she felt the eyes of her colleagues on her.
Once she reached her office, Melody hurried over, her tone filled with anger.¡± N, did you break up with Mr. Sumner because of his ex?¡±
N was taken aback. ¡°How do you know about this?¡±
¡°I knew it!¡± Melody eximed indignantly. ¡°Last night, someone took photos of him helping his ex into a car. Now everyone in the office is saying he dumped you!¡±
N was silent for a moment before quietly uttering, ¡°Oh.¡±
¡°You¡¯re just going to ept this? Aren¡¯t you angry about what they¡¯re saying? It¡¯s so infuriating!¡± Melodyined.
Seeing Melody¡¯s upset expression, N found it somewhat endearing. She couldn¡¯t help but pinch her cheek, smiling. ¡°It¡¯s alright, don¡¯t get too worked up.
17
People will say what they want, and there¡¯s nothing we can do about it. Just ignore them.¡±
¡°Don¡¯t you want to set the record straight?¡± Melody asked.
N shook her head. ¡°There¡¯s nothing to rify. Whatever I say, they won¡¯t believe it and will only criticize me more. It¡¯s best to let it blow over.¡±
¡°Okay, I couldn¡¯t stay this calm. If I were you, I¡¯d make a huge fuss,¡± Melody
huffed.
Nughed softly but chose not toment further.
If the situation escted, the only person who would end up embarrassed was her. People often only saw what they wanted to see, not the truth.
The atmosphere in the CEO¡¯s office at Prospectus Technology was stifling as Damon learned that employees were gossiping about his breakup with N, specting it was because of Reba. N?velDrama.Org holds ? this.
¡°These employees must have too much idle time!¡± Damon said, his voice icy.
Spencer, keeping his gaze lowered, replied cautiously, ¡°Mr. Sumner, it¡¯s best to let this situation blow over. In a few days, people will stop talking about it.¡±
¡°Make a statement. Announce that I am not getting back together with Reba and that N ended the rtionship, not the other way around. I want them to stop talking!¡± Damon ordered.
Spencer hesitated. ¡°Mr. Sumner, if we issue a statement, it might just fuel more spection.¡±
¡°Let them specte all they want. They¡¯ll only focus on how N dumped me, not the other way around,¡± Damon retorted.
He was adamant about not letting anyone speak ill of her.
Spencer couldn¡¯t help but think that if Damon cared this much, he should distance himself from Reba rather than appear in suggestive photographs,
CHAPTER 318
+23
Noticing Spencer¡¯s silence, Damon frowned. ¡°Is there something else?¡±
After a moment of hesitation, Spencer spoke up. ¡°Mr. Sumner, I think you should reconsider. The rumors circting in thepany are just hearsay. You could issue a statement prohibiting discussions about your personal life, but there¡¯s no need to rify your rtionship with Ms. Austen.¡±
If all the employees learned that N had dumped Damon, it might cause an even bigger stir.
Damon was silent for a few seconds before replying in a deep voice, ¡°Fine, we¡¯ll handle it your way.¡±
Soon after, the CEO¡¯s office issued a statement banning employees from discussing Damon¡¯s personal life. Anyone caught doing so would be terminated.
N and Melody were busy with experiments all morning and didn¡¯t check their phones until lunchtime. It was then that Gabriel informed them of the
situation
As Gabriel spoke, he kept a close eye on N. When he saw that N¡¯s expression remained calm and indifferent, he looked away, trying to appear casual.
Melody was fuming ¡°I really misjudged Mr. Sumner. I thought he was
someone reliable, but now it seems he¡¯s not. He must be getting back together with his ex. Otherwise, he wouldn¡¯t have issued a ban on discussing it instead of denying the rumors?
Even Melody felt that Damon¡¯s statement was meant to protect Reba, let alone N herself. She looked down at the documents on her desk, a hint of self¨Cmockery in her eyes.
At least she hadn¡¯t deluded herself into thinking Damon would choose her Otherwise, she¡¯d really be a joke now
Upon seeing Melody¡¯s feaction, Gabriel¡¯s gaze softened ¡°Melody, let¡¯s not talk
***BONUS
about this anymore.¡±
Under Gabriel¡¯s gentle gaze, Melody¡¯s face flushed red. She quickly averted her eyes and stammered, ¡°O¨COkay¡¡±
As the office fell silent, N felt an unspoken tension. She took a deep breath and decided to step into the hallway for some fresh air.
As soon as she stepped out of the office, Gabriel followed her. N?velDrama.Org owns this text.
¡°N, are you still having a hard time letting go?¡± Gabriel asked, standing beside her with concern in his eyes.
N pursed her lips and shook her head, ¡°No, it¡¯s just a bit stuffy in the office.¡±
¡°Even if you¡¯re still struggling, that¡¯s alright. Feelings aren¡¯t something you can control. It takes time to get over them,¡± Gabriel said soothingly.
N looked at Gabriel in surprise. ¡°You weren¡¯t always theforting type before.¡±
She felt he had changed significantly since returning from abroad. The once sharp and distant young man had be much gentler and more approachable.
¡°People change. After not seeing each other for so many years, we might need to get to know each other again,¡± Gabriel suggested.
Seeing his sincere expression, N couldn¡¯t help but chuckle. She was about to reply when a cold voice interrupted from nearby, ¡°I didn¡¯t hire you for idle chit -chat. Have you finished your work?¡±
Both of them turned to see Damon and Spencer standing a short distance away, their presence unexpected.
Damon¡¯s cold gaze lingered on them, his brow furrowed. A heavy, oppressive aura surrounded him.
Spencer, standing behind Damon, couldn¡¯t help but remind him, ¡°Mr. Sumner, it¡¯s lunchtime¡¡±
Damon¡¯s expression darkened, his voice growing even colder. ¡°Do I need you
to remind me?¡±
Spencer fell silent, regretting his words.
CHAPTER 319
Gabriel smiled. ¡°Mr. Sumner, what brings you here un pectedly?¡±
I¡¯m here to check on your uing work ns,¡± Damon replied This belongs to N?velDrama.Org.
Gabriel was momentarily taken aback. ¡°Mr. Sumner, you don¡¯t need toe in person for something so minor next time. Just have Mr. Hogg give me a call, and I¡¯ll report to your office.¡±
Spencer looked down, pretending not to hear and wondering whether Gabriel was genuinely that oblivious.
Damon hade personally to see N, How could he be concerned about a researcher¡¯s work progress otherwise?
Damon¡¯s expression darkened. ¡°So, you n to report here?¡±
¡°Of course not. Our office is over here. Let me take you there,¡± Gabriel said, leading Damon toward his office.
As Damon passed by N, the air seemed to freeze with his icy demeanor.
N pursed her lips and turned her gaze away.
Damon¡¯s footsteps halted. He turned coldly toward her. ¡°Do you not want to see me, Ms. Jayston?¡±
Not wanting to stir up trouble, N shook her head. ¡°No.¡±
¡°Then why don¡¯t you greet me?¡± Damon demanded.
Spencer, trailing behind Damon, mused that Damon had clearlye to see N but was nowplicating matters for her. He even wondered whether Damon¡¯s love had turned into hatred after their breakup.
N took a deep breath, turned to Damon, and said slowly, ¡°Hello, Mr. Sumner. Is this eptable?¡±
¡°Do you think I¡¯m looking for trouble?¡± Damon¡¯s gaze was intense as if he would continue to make things difficult until he received a satisfactory answer.
Feeling a surge of frustration, N forced a smile and replied, ¡°You¡¯re the CEO,
so naturally, whatever you say goes.¡±
Damon narrowed his eyes, and his aura became more menacing.
Gabriel quickly stepped in, pulling N behind him. ¡°Mr. Sumner, she didn¡¯t mean it that way. She¡¯s just having a rough time with the experiments this morning, so her attitude might not be the best. I¡¯m sure you understand.¡±
There seemed to be frost in Damon¡¯s eyes when he saw Gabriel grab N¡¯s hand.
Although others didn¡¯t notice, Spencer knew that Damon was genuinely angry.
¡°Does she need you to speak for her?¡± Damon questioned.
Gabriel¡¯s smile faltered slightly.
Just as he was about to respond, N spoke up. ¡°Gabriel, you don¡¯t need to defend me. I meant exactly what Mr. Sumner thinks I meant.¡±
¡°N! Stop it!¡± Gabriel shot her a look, signaling her to stop provoking Damon.
N, however, ignored him and pushed him aside. She looked at Damon and said coldly, ¡°I don¡¯t know what I did to upset you enough to make youe all the way from the top floor to hassle me, Mr. Sumner. But you¡¯re right about one thing¨CI don¡¯t want to see you.¡±
As soon as she finished speaking, the temperature around them seemed to drop sharply.
Damon¡¯s gaze remained fixed on N, his presence oppressive.
N met his gaze without flinching, and the air seemed to grow heavy.
Gabriel decided not to intervene. This was exactly the scenario he had hoped for, after all.
Spencer thought that the next person who had to deliver documents to the top floor this afternoon was in for a rough time.
After a moment of hesitation, Spencer spoke up to break the silence. ¡°Mr. Sumner, weren¡¯t you here to discuss Mr. Hackett¡¯s uing project? There¡¯s a meeting at 1:30 p.m. If we dy any longer, we might miss it.¡±
CHAPTER 320
Finally, Damon shifted his icy gaze from N and turned to Gabriel. ¡°Let¡¯s go.¡±
Gabriel nodded and led Damon toward the office, leaving Spencer behind.
Once the two men had entered, Spencer turned to N. ¡°Ms. Jayston, don¡¯t take Mr. Sumner¡¯s words to heart. He actually-¡± Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
Before he could finish, N interrupted, ¡°Mr. Hogg, I won¡¯t take it to heart. I¡¯m just working at Prospectus Technology, not one of its employees. Besides, aside from any mistakes in my work, Mr. Sumner has no right to dictate how I should act.¡±
Spencer was at a loss for words and could only sigh in response.
A few minutester, Gabriel and Damon emerged from the office.
N ignored thempletely and walked straight to her own office.
Damon¡¯s expression darkened, but he remained silent.
After Damon left, Gabriel returned to N¡¯s desk. ¡°N, I¡¯d like to talk to you.¡±
Without looking up, N replied, ¡°If it¡¯s about what just happened, there¡¯s no need to discuss it. I don¡¯t think I did anything wrong.¡±
Nearby, Melody couldn¡¯t help but eavesdrop, her curiosity piqued. Her instincts told her the conversation was rted to Damon.
Gabriel smiled with a hint of helplessness. ¡°You¡¯re still as stubborn as ever. I¡¯m not trying to lecture you. I just wanted to say that you don¡¯t have to be so strong all the time. I can protect you.¡±
N found his words a bit strange but couldn¡¯t quite pinpoint why. She frowned and looked up at him. ¡°No need. I can handle things on my own without troubling others.¡±
Gabriel¡¯s hands clenched involuntarily as he smiled. ¡°I¡¯m not just anyone. I¡¯m your brother.¡±
¡°Even so, I don¡¯t need it. I¡¯m going to take a nap now, so you should rest too,¡± N said.
Cape To
Without waiting for Gabriel¡¯s reaction, she pulled out a pillow andy down
Gabriel stood by her desk for a few seconds before turning and heading back to his desk
The entire afternoon passed with Gabriel unable to find an opportunity to talk to N, so he eventually gave up.
As work was ending. N received a text from Damon.
Damon: Come to my office. I have something to discuss with you. It¡¯s work- rted
After reading it, N responded with a cold, indifferent message and left the office
Damon had been waiting for her reply.
When his phone buzzed within a minute, he quickly checked it, and his expression darkened immediately
N: [Mr. Sumner, it¡¯s after working hours. If it¡¯s work¨Crted, please contact me during office hours tomorrow]
Spencer walked in with documents and couldn¡¯t help shuddering when he saw Damon¡¯s grim face
Since the breakup. Damon¡¯s mood had been as unpredictable as the weather in
Saintornia
¡°Mr. Sumner, these are the documents that need your signature today.¡± Spencer said.
Seeing Damon¡¯s silence, Spencer carefully ced the documents on the desk
and turned to leave
A momentter, Damon¡¯s cold voice came from behind. ¡°Important documents should be sent to my vi. Leave the rest until tomorrow.¡±
*
Spencer hadn¡¯t even turned around before Damon stormed out of the office, leaving him to guess that Damon was heading straight to find N.
While driving swiftly to the hotel where N was staying, Damon called her.
After several rings, the call was answered, and N¡¯s voice came through, cold and distant. ¡°Mr. Sumner, it¡¯s after working hours.¡±
CHAPTER 321
N¡¯s voice was impatient, indicating she didn¡¯t want any contact with him.
Damon¡¯s gaze dimmed. ¡°I understand. I¡¯m here for personal matters. I¡¯m currently downstairs at your hotel.¡±
N let out a sarcasticugh. ¡°If it¡¯s personal, then we have even less to discuss. I¡¯m noting down, so please leave.¡±
With that, she hung up.
When Damon tried calling back, he found himself blocked, and his expression darkened. Since she wouldn¡¯te down, he decided to find her himself.
As he was about to get out of the car, his phone suddenly rang. When he saw it was Reba, his grip on the phone tightened.
After a moment¡¯s hesitation, he answered.
Momentster, Damon¡¯s ck Maybach pulled away from the hotel.
By 8:00 p.m., N was watching a drama when a photo message from Melody popped up on her phone.
N paused the video and opened the message. After seeing the photo, she involuntarily frowned.
Melody: [N, Mr. Sumner is outrageous. Just a few days after breaking up with you, he¡¯s already out with his ex¨Cgirlfriend, and the paparazzi caught them. Everyone at thepany is secretlyughing at you. It¡¯s infuriating!]
The photo was taken at a famous shopping mall in Saintornia.
Damon was carrying several shopping bags¨Call from high¨Cend women¡¯s brands- while Reba walked beside him, smiling happily.
N thought Damon¡¯s time management was starting to rival rk¡¯s. Just aftering to the hotel to find her, he was already out shopping with Reba.
N: [I¡¯m not interested in such news, so don¡¯t send me updates like this.]
After sending the reply, N resumed watching the drama, but she was distracted.
Realizing she couldn¡¯t focus, she turned off the video and got up. She went to the window, taking deep breaths to try and shake off her frustration, but it didn¡¯t work.
Damon reconciling with Reba and still waiting downstairs at N¡¯s hotel only made N more irritated. What did he want?
After some thought, N decided to treat him as if he didn¡¯t exist, just like before. Any further entanglement would onlyplicate matters.
Early the next morning, Damon was already waiting for N at the hotel entrance as she headed down.
¡°N, let¡¯s talk,¡± he said. N?velDrama.Org owns this text.
N¡¯s reply was cold. ¡°I have nothing to discuss with you. Please don¡¯t harass me again.¡±
Damon frowned, his tone serious. ¡°As long as you stay away from Gabriel, I won¡¯t bother you for the next three months.¡±
N sneered. ¡°He¡¯s my brother and my colleague. Why should I stay away from him? You¡¯re the one who should stay away from me.¡±
Her indifferent gaze cut through Damon like a sharp knife, causing him pain.
¡°N, even though he¡¯s your brother, you don¡¯t share any blood rtion,¡± he stated.
¡°What do you mean?¡± N looked at him, her eyes filled with disbelief and anger. ¡°Do you suspect something between Gabriel and me?¡±
Gabriel was her stepbrother. How could Damon think so poorly of them?!
¡°I just don¡¯t want you getting too close to other men,¡± Damon said.
N found itughable. ¡°Damon, do I need to remind you that we have no rtionship now? On what grounds and with what right do you tell me to stay away from other men?¡±
CHAPTER 322
Chapter 322
Damon¡¯s gaze hardened. ¡°N, I know I have no right to ask anything of you right now. In three months, I¡¯ll tell you everything.¡±
¡°There¡¯s no need. I¡¯m not interested. I just hope you¡¯ll stop looking for me,¡± N said, then walked past him and left.
In the following days, Damon did note looking for N again, but gossip about him and Reba spread like wildfire throughout thepany. Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
At first, Melody would get upset, but seeing that N genuinely didn¡¯t care, she stopped bringing it up in front of her.
N¡¯s life gradually returned to normal. Besides going to work, she spent her time having real estate agents show her apartments. Staying in a hotel long¨Cterm wasn¡¯t convenient.
After work on Friday, N was about to leave when Gabriel stopped her.
¡°N, have you been looking for a ce recently?¡± he asked.
It wasn¡¯t surprising that Gabriel knew. N often browsed through listings from real estate agents during lunch breaks and used apps to search for ces on her phone.
¡°Yeah, what about it?¡± she asked.
¡°I¡¯ve been looking for a ce too. Why don¡¯t we look together? If we live close by, we can look out for each other,¡± Gabriel suggested.
N frowned, about to refuse, but Gabriel continued. ¡°I visited your dadst night. He and my mom don¡¯t want to move abroad. They¡¯d rather stay here where we can look after them. Moving to a foreign country where they don¡¯t know anyone would be too. inconvenient.
¡°My mom¡¯s lease is almost up, so I¡¯m nning to rent a bigger ce and have her move in with me. Then, when your dad is feeling better, he coulde and stay with us for a while too.
¡°But if you don¡¯t want to live too close, we can find separate ces. Don¡¯t worry about your dad¨CI¡¯ll take care of him.¡±
N pressed her lips together. ¡°Okay, let¡¯s look together then.¡±
Gabriel smiled. ¡°Alright.¡±
He knew well that N wouldn¡¯t have agreed to look for a ce together if he hadn¡¯t mentioned thest part.
Over the next two days, they continued viewing apartments..
By Sunday afternoon, they finally settled on a more upscaleplex near Prospectus Technology. They rented apartments in the same building, though not on the same floor.
After signing the lease, Gabriel suggested they grab dinner together, and they chose. a nearby restaurant.
Midway through their meal, they ran into rk, who had just finished a business meeting with a client.
When rk saw N, his eyes glinted with a cold edge. After bidding farewell to his client with a smile, he turned and approached their table.
¡°N, I heard Uncle Damon dumped you?¡± he asked.
Annoyance shed in N¡¯s eyes. She said nothing, clearly uninterested in engaging with him.
rk¡¯s smile faltered, his hands clenching at his sides. How dare she ignore him, especially after Damon had discarded her?!
Taking a deep breath, rk looked at N and spoke slowly. ¡°N, I didn¡¯t expect. you to be so stubborn. Are you still mad at me?¡±
N hadn¡¯t wanted to engage with him, but having a pesky fly buzzing around while she ate was irritating.
She looked at rk and said, ¡°Could you do me a favor and buzz off? You¡¯re ruining my appetite.¡±
rk¡¯s face darkened instantly.
After a few moments, he sneer Fine. I came over to offerfort, but it seems
you don¡¯t appreciate the gesture.¡±
you can do is stay away from me. That
e, caught off guard.
CHAPTER 323
Chapter 323
When rk finally processed what N had said, he scowled.
¡°You¡¯ll regret this!¡± he spat before storming off.
N remained unfazed, calmly continuing to eat.
Seeing that she showed no signs of distress, Gabriel lowered his eyes with a smile. Looks like you¡¯re really over him.¡±
N¡¯s tone was even. ¡°He¡¯s just a scumbag. Not worth my time.¡±
Gabriel nodded, his expression serious. ¡°Yeah, you¡¯ll find someone better.¡±
N didn¡¯t reply.
At this point, she felt that spending time on a rtionship wasn¡¯t nearly as productive as focusing on her career.
After they finished eating, Gabriel drove N back to her hotel before heading home.
As soon as he walked in, he saw Wren sitting on the sofa with an angry expression.
Surprised, he asked as he took off his shoes, ¡°Mom, you¡¯re not going to the hospital tonight?¡±
¡°What happened at that blind date the other day? I heard you brought another woman with you,¡± Wren questioned.
Gabriel hummed in response.
¡°Who was she? Was it N?¡± Wren asked.
The girl Gabriel had gone on a blind date with was the daughter of Wren¡¯s friend.
Wren had initially thought it was simply a case of them not hitting it off, but her friend had called today and mocked her. She revealed that Gabriel had brought another woman along, infuriating her daughter.
Wren had had to apologize profusely to calm her friend down. N?vel(D)rama.Org''s content.
After hanging up, Wren reflected and figured that Gabriel had just returned to the country, so he could hardly find a woman to pretend to be his girlfriend other than N.
The idea that N was involved made her even angrier. N¡¯s own marriage was a mess¨Cdid she want Gabriel¡¯s life to turn out the same way?
Sensing the dissatisfaction in Wren¡¯s voice, Gabriel frowned and replied coldly, ¡°No, it was a colleague.¡±
¡°You just started working. Which colleague of yours is so eager to help you lie?¡± Wren demanded.
Gabriel¡¯s patience was wearing thin as he faced Wren¡¯s aggressive questioning.¡± What¡¯s the point of digging into this? I told you from the start I wasn¡¯t interested in your blind dates, but you insisted. Now that you¡¯ve brought this up, let me make it clear once and for all¨Cdon¡¯t set me up on any more dates.¡±
Wren shot up from the couch, shouting, ¡°If you could find someone, I wouldn¡¯t have to worry! You are almost 30 and are not even thinking about settling down. Do you n on being alone forever?¡±
¡°Being alone is better than being with someone I don¡¯t love. If you arrange another date without my consent, I won¡¯t go,¡± Gabriel dered.
¡°You¡¯re trying to drive me to my grave, aren¡¯t you?!¡± Wren fumed.
Gabriel ignored her and went straight to his bedroom.
The next morning, Wren headed directly to Prospectus Technology. Instead of looking for Gabriel, she contacted N.
They met at the caf¨¦ downstairs.
¡°Is there something you need me for?¡± N asked.
Wren¡¯s expression was icy, her tone dripping with sarcasm. ¡°N, you¡¯re my stepdaughter. I wouldn¡¯t normally interfere, but your actions are affecting Gabriel, and I have to say something.¡±
N felt lost but anticipated that Wren¡¯s words wouldn¡¯t be favorable, so her expression darkened. ¡°Wren, how have I affected him?¡±
Wren snorted, her voice full of certainty. ¡°The blind date I arranged for Gabriel¨Cyou ruined it, didn¡¯t you?¡±
N frowned. ¡°Is that what Gabriel told you?¡±
CHAPTER 324
¡°Gabriel sees you as a sister, so of course, he wouldn¡¯t say it directly,¡± Wren said with
a sneer.
¡°But the girl he was on a date with did. She said he brought another woman along, iming she was his girlfriend. He¡¯s just returned to the country and doesn¡¯t know many people in Saintornia. If you weren¡¯t the one he brought, who else could it be?¡± she demanded.
N looked at Wren intently. ¡°Wren, shouldn¡¯t you consider why you¡¯re pushing him to go on dates when he¡¯s just back and hasn¡¯t even settled into his job yet?¡±
Wrenughed coldly, her tone sharp. ¡°Gabriel isn¡¯t like you, already married once and willing to settle for any divorced man. I have to be concerned about his future. If you have nothing to do, you should stay away from him and not ruin his rtionships!¡±
N¡¯s gaze turned icy.
Just as she was about to respond, the chair next to her was abruptly pulled out. She turned instinctively and saw Damon sitting down beside her.
He wore a smile, but his eyes were devoid of warmth, sending a chill down one¡¯s spine. ¡°Mrs. Jayston, I didn¡¯t quite catch what you just said. Why don¡¯t you repeat it?¡±
Facing Damon¡¯s cold gaze, Wren lost all her earlier arrogance. She forced a smile,¡± trying to cate him. After all, with Gabriel working at Prospectus Technology, offending Damon could spell trouble for him.
¡°Mr. Sumner, I was just chatting casually with N,¡± she said.
Damon looked at her icily. ¡°What kind of casual chat makes you suggest that she should settle for any divorced man in the future? Have you forgotten that you¡¯re also divorced and even brought a son into your second marriage?¡±
Wren¡¯s smile froze, her face paling. She hadn¡¯t expected Damon to be so blunt.
The atmosphere grew tense and awkward.
After a few seconds of silence, Wren forced another smile. ¡°Mr. Sumner, that¡¯s not what I meant. It¡¯s just that having been through a divorce myself, I know how difficul it is for divorced women. That¡¯s why-¡±
¡°So you decided to kick someone when they¡¯re down?¡± Damon interrupted.
Wren was rendered speechless. She nced at N, who remained indifferent, and felt embarrassed. ¡°N, please tell Mr. Sumner he¡¯s misunderstood me.¡±
N smiled, stood up, and replied, ¡°Wren, we both know exactly what you meant. Unless it¡¯s something important, please don¡¯te looking for me. I wouldn¡¯t want to make your life any harder.¡±
With
that, she turned and walked away.
¡°Mr. Sumner, 1-¡± Wren began.
Damon cut her off, ¡°Mrs. Jayston, if I ever see or hear about you doing anything to hurt N again, your son can forget about having a career in Saintornia.¡± N?velDrama.Org owns this text.
His icy stare made Wren shiver, draining the color from her face and leaving her speechless.
Noting her fear, Damon lost interest in staying any longer. He rose and went after N.
He caught up with her in front of the elevator and warned sternly, ¡°From now on, keep your distance from Gabriel.¡±
N watched the floor numbers change as the elevator descended, saying nothing as if she hadn¡¯t heard him.
Damon frowned, his voice growing colder. ¡°Did you hear me?¡±
Hismanding tone made N frown, but she remained silent.
Damon¡¯s anger morphed into a snicker. ¡°Do you think ignoring me will make me go away?¡±
He grabbed N¡¯s hand and pulled her into the stairwell.
¡°What are you doing?! Let go of me!¡± N eximed angrily, her gaze filled with repulsion.
CHAPTER 325
¡°I thought you were nning to never speak to me again,¡± Damon said, gripping N¡¯s chin and forcing her to look at him.
N pped his hand away, her voice icy. ¡°Mr. Sumner, there¡¯s nothing to discuss between us. What you¡¯re doing now is sexual harassment. If you don¡¯t want me to call the police, let me go right- Mmph!¡±
Before she could finish, Damon kissed her.
N froze for a moment, then bit him hard, the taste of blood filling her mouth.
Damon let her go, his expression darkening. ¡°Are you part dog?¡±
Seeing his lower lip bleeding, N sneered. ¡°If you darey a hand on me again, this will just be the beginning.¡±
Damon wiped the blood from his mouth and raised an eyebrow. ¡°You just used me of sexual harassment. I thought I should live up to the charge. Otherwise, what¡¯s the point?¡±
¡°Can you
let me go now?¡± N asked.
¡°I will, as long as you promise to stay away from Gabriel,¡± Damon replied.
N nodded. ¡°Fine. I¡¯ll agree as long as you keep your distance from Reba.¡±
Damon¡¯s smile froze, and he frowned. ¡°N, told you, give me three months.¡±
¡°And I told you, no. I won¡¯t wait for you. From the moment you lied to me, it was over between us,¡± N insisted.
¡°You heard how nasty your stepmother was today. If I hadn¡¯t stepped in, you-¡± Damon began.
N cut him off, her tone indifferent, ¡°Speaking of that, if you hadn¡¯t meddled today, I could have handled it myself. Next time something like this happens, do me a favor and pretend you didn¡¯t see it. I don¡¯t want people to think we¡¯re still entangled. I won¡¯t be ¡®the other woman¡®.¡±
Damon scowled, his grip on N¡¯s wrist tightening involuntarily.
Feeling the pain in her wrist, N red at him. ¡°Are you trying to break my wrist?¡± ¡°Sorry, I didn¡¯t mean to,¡± Damon apologized.
Taking advantage of the moment Damon¡¯s grip loosened, N pulled her hand free and walked away.
She stepped into the elevator, relieved that Damon hadn¡¯t followed her. Upon looking down at her reddened wrist, her mood soured even further.
Flirting with Reba on one hand and asking N to wait on the other¨Cdid all the Sumner men think they were so irreceable?
After rk¡¯s betrayal, love no longer held the same significance for N. She could weigh the pros and cons and walk away as soon as she was hurt.
Back at theb building, she ran into Gabriel, who was hurrying out.
Seeing her, he heaved a sigh of relief. ¡°What did my mom want with you?¡±
N¡¯s expression turned cold as she thought about Wren and herments.
¡°She said that since I¡¯ve been divorced, I should keep my distance from you so I don¡¯t mess up your rtionships as well. I think she has a point. We should cut down on unnecessary interactions,¡± N said. N?velDrama.Org holds ? this.
Gabriel stiffened and frowned. ¡°I didn¡¯t know she would say that. Don¡¯t take it to heart. I¡¯ll talk to her.¡±
N didn¡¯t respond and entered her office with a stony expression.
Chapter 326.
CHAPTER 326
Chapter 326.
In the evening, N received a call from Vrie, inviting her out for dinner.
When N arrived at the restaurant, Vrie hadn¡¯t yet arrived. She had just taken a seat when a familiar figure appeared at the entrance. Her gazended on the woman standing beside Damon.
The woman was dressed in a white strapless gown with subtle makeup and a serene smile. Her delicate features and elegant demeanor marked her as a striking beauty.
Although N had never met Reba, the way she intimately held Damon¡¯s arm revealed her identity.
N quickly looked away, pretending not to have noticed them.
What she did not realize was that Damon¡¯s gaze had also settled on her as she averted her eyes.
Reba sensed Damon had stopped walking and nced up, her curiosity piqued. Noting his gaze fixed on a particr spot, she tightened her grip on his arm.
Before returning to the country, Reba had seen photos of N.
The N in the photos was already strikingly beautiful¨Cso much so that even Reba, despite being a woman herself, felt drawn to her.
Her intuition had told her that if she didn¡¯t return soon, Damon might be taken by N, prompting her return.
What Reba hadn¡¯t anticipated was that N in person was even more captivating than in the photos¨Cfair¨Cskinned, stunningly attractive, with delicate features thatmanded attention even while seated quietly.
Reba took a deep breath, suppressing her rising jealousy, and forced a gentle smile.
¡°Damon, why did you stop? Nathaniel and the others are waiting for us in the private room,¡± she said softly.
Damon withdrew his gaze and replied coolly ¡°Let¡¯s go.¡±
Shortly after they walked away, Vrie hurried into the restaurant. She took a seat across from N, grabbed the ss of water in front of her, and took a sip.
¡°The traffic was a bit heavy, so I¡¯mte. You didn¡¯t wait too long, did you?¡± she asked.
N shook her head. ¡°No, I just arrived.¡±
¡°Good,¡± Vrie replied with a sigh of relief.
¡°So, why did you suddenly ask me out for dinner today?¡± N asked.
Vrie put down her ss and smiled. ¡°I have some good news to share.¡±
A hint of curiosity shed in N¡¯s eyes. ¡°What good news?¡±
¡°I found a new job!¡± Vrie gushed. Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
¡°Really? Congrattions! But don¡¯t you need more time to recover?¡± N asked.
¡°No need. When I went for myst check¨Cup, the doctor said I had almost fully recovered. Besides, staying at home all day is driving me crazy.
¡°My mom keeps nagging me about going on blind dates. If I don¡¯t get a job and move out soon, she might just pack me off to get married!¡± Vrie eximed.
Her exaggeration made Nugh.
¡°Alright, enough about that. Let¡¯s order. I¡¯m starving,¡± Vrie said.
N nodded. ¡°Okay. Dinner¡¯s on me tonight to celebrate your new job.¡±
Vrie chuckled. ¡°Then I won¡¯t hold back.
After ordering, the two of them began chatting about thetest gossip.
Meanwhile, when Damon walked into the private room with Reba, everyone inside started teasing them.
¡°Reba, impressive! Who would¡¯ve thought that after all these years abroad, you¡¯d get back together with Damon as soon as you returned? The allure of first love is truly irresistible.¡±
¡°Tell me about it. Everyone knows how Damon went to the airport to stop Reba from leaving and then waited all these years He¡¯s finally getting what he wished for.¡±
¡°Seeing you two makes me believe in love again.¡±
Most of the people in the room were from Damon and Nathaniel¡¯s circle.
ught Reba to a few gatherings. Over
t Reba spoke softly. ¡°Damon, they¡¯re hree months from now, you can go back ree months, okay?¡±
CHAPTER 327
Damon¡¯s gaze instantly darkened, but he remained silent. Instead, he withdrew his arm from Reba¡¯s grasp and pulled out the chair closest to her. ¡°Have a seat.¡±
Afterward, he avoided looking at Reba and sat in the chair beside her.
Reba¡¯s smile faltered momentarily, but she quickly regained herposure and sat next to him as if nothing had happened.
Most people probably didn¡¯t notice, but Nathaniel could sense Damon¡¯s indifference toward Reba.
Their behavior suggested that they had not reconciled, yet if they hadn¡¯t, Damon, likely wouldn¡¯t have brought her along like this.
Pushing aside the strange feeling in his heart, Nathaniel smiled and said, ¡°Alright, it¡¯s Reba¡¯s wee¨Cback party tonight. I¡¯m d everyone could make time toe.¡± N?vel(D)rama.Org''s content.
The room buzzed with conversation, with most attention focused on Reba.
For a moment, she felt as if she were back when she was with Damon¨Cbeing the center of attention.
She was well aware that if Damon hadn¡¯te with her tonight, these people wouldn¡¯t be so enthusiastic.
That didn¡¯t matter, though. Her ultimate goal in returning to the country was to marry Damon and be Mrs. Sumner.
Amidst all the praise, a sarcastic voice suddenly cut through the chatter. ¡°If I¡¯m not mistaken, Mr. Sumner was recently seen with N Jayston. How is it that, in less than two weeks, he¡¯s back with Ms. Austen? Could it be that Ms. Austen is the other woman?¡±
The room fell silent instantly, and Reba¡¯s smile froze.
All eyes turned to Erin, many silently admiring her boldness. After all, hardly anyone in Saintornia dared to cross Damon, let alone use his partner of being a homewrecker to his face.
Reba looked at Erin, feigning confusion. What are you talking about? I don¡¯t understand.¡±
Erin sneered. ¡°Are you really that clueless, or are you just pretending?¡±
#
Sensing the awkward tension in the room, the girl next to Erin gently nudged her.¡± Erin, stop it.¡±
If Erin offended Damon, she would likely face repercussions as well.
Originally, Nathaniel hadn¡¯t invited Erin to the gathering. When she heard about the event while shopping with Erin and mentioned it to her, Erin insisted oning along.
After checking with Nathaniel, Erin was included.
Nathaniel¡¯s expression turned icy. ¡°Erin, if you don¡¯t have anything nice to say, keep your mouth shut. This gathering is to wee Reba back, not for you to stir up trouble,¡±
Enn smiled and turned to Nathaniel. ¡°There¡¯s no need to be angry, Mr. Preston. I¡¯m simply stating the truth. If the truth is so hard to hear, maybe you shouldn¡¯t be engaging in actions that are shameful in the first ce.¡±
Reba turned pale, her eyes welling up with tears as she looked at Erin. ¡°Ms. Hulle, we just met tonight. Why are you being so hostile toward me?¡±
A man nearby raised his eyebrows and said in a teasing tone, ¡°Reba, since you¡¯ve just returned, you might not know.
¡°Erin went on a blind date with Damon before, but he wasn¡¯t interested. She kept pursuing him, but he rejected her each time. She¡¯s probably just bitter, which is why she¡¯s targeting you
Erin¡¯s eyes shed with anger, and she gritted her teeth. ¡°Connor, be quiet!¡±
CHAPTER 328
Mockery shed in Connor Bambra¡¯s eyes. ¡°Why is it that you can dish it out, but you can¡¯t take it?¡±
Erin stood up, sneering. ¡°You think standing up for Reba will get you a partnership with Prospectus Technology? Idiot!¡±
Although Connor had been thinking along those lines, being called out by Erin before everyone made his face darken with anger.
¡°I think you¡¯re just bitter because you can¡¯t get the man you want, and now you¡¯reshing out at everyone,¡± he taunted.
¡°You-¡± Erin was livid. She shot to her feet and said coldly, ¡°You¡¯ll regret this!¡±
With that, she spun around and stormed out of the room.
Throughout the ordeal, Damon watched the scene unfold with an indifferent expression, not a hint of emotion on his face.
The room quickly returned to its lively atmosphere, as if nothing had happened.
Despite the apparent calm, Reba couldn¡¯t shake her unease.
In the past, even if someone spoke ill of her behind her back, Damon would never have let it slide if he found out. Yet just now, Erin had called her a homewrecker to her face, and Damon hadn¡¯t even reacted.
It seemed he truly didn¡¯t love her anymore. If it weren¡¯t for the favor of saving his life, which she used to ckmail him, he probably wouldn¡¯t even let her near him. The thought made her chest tighten.
Reba stood up and told everyone with a forced smile, ¡°You all keep chatting. I need to use the restroom.¡±
After stepping out of the room, she took a deep breath, hoping to release her frustration with the exhale, but it didn¡¯t help.
She walked to the window at the end of the hallway, pulled out a cigarette, and lit it. Her expression was full of irritation.
Whether Damon loved her or not, she had to marry him.
Meanwhile, the enraged Erin was about to leave after storming out of the room when she spotted N. Her eyes narrowed as she changed course and headed straight for her.
N was talking with Vrie when a voice interrupted them. She turned her head and saw Erin, her expression immediately turning cold.
There was no point in pretending to be friendly¨Cthey had already fallen out.
Erin didn¡¯t care about N¡¯s frosty demeanor. Smirking, she said slowly, ¡°Ms. N, I really admire how calm you are.¡±
N remained impassive. ¡°Ms. Hulle, haven¡¯t you learned that it¡¯s rude to interrupt people when they¡¯re eating?¡±
Erin¡¯s tone was dripping with sarcasm, her gaze full of disdain. ¡°Is it because Damon kicked you to the curb without hesitation as soon as Reba returned that you¡¯re in such a bad mood, Ms. Jayston?¡±
She had assumed Damon was truly into N, but apparently not. Otherwise, her wouldn¡¯t have gotten back together with Reba.
N frowned, about to respond, but Vrie couldn¡¯t hold back any longer. ¡°Erin, are you insane? You came over here just to ruin our meal?
¡°Even if N and Damon broke up, at least they were together. You¡¯ve been trying everything to get with Damon, and he doesn¡¯t even give you a second nce, does he?¡± N?velDrama.Org owns this text.
That hit a sore spot.
Erin sneered. ¡°So what if they were together? He dumped her in no time. To Damon, she was just a distraction while Reba was away!¡±
Vrie mmed her cutlery onto the table, ring at Erin. ¡°Keep spewing your nonsense, and I¡¯ll tear your mouth off!¡±
Erin scoffed. ¡°I¡¯m just telling the truth. Oh, by the way, Damon is hosting a wee- back party for Reba in Room 1. If you don¡¯t want to embarrass yourselves, I suggest you finish eating and leave.¡±
With that, she walked away with a smile and her chin held high.
Vrie, shaking with anger, stood up and started toward Room 1.
N quickly got up and grabbed her arm. ¡°Vrie, don¡¯t go.¡±
¡°Let me go! I¡¯m going to crash that party! Reba just got back, and Damon¡¯s already broken up with you. This is too much!¡± Vrie hissed.
¡°I was the one who ended things, and I don¡¯t want anything more to do with them,¡± N said.
CHAPTER 329
¡°Even if you were the one who ended things, he wronged you first! Are you just going to take it lying down?¡± Vrie looked at N, her expression a mix of anger and sympathy.
¡°What else can I do? He doesn¡¯t like me anymore. Am I supposed to hold a knife to his throat and force him to change his mind?¡± N¡¯s voice was calm as if discussing something unrted to her life.
Her naivety had led her to believe Damon genuinely liked her, that he wouldn¡¯t hurt her as rk had done.
Vrie nced down at N¡¯s hands, clenched so tightly that her knuckles had turned white. With a sigh, she said, ¡°Let me go. I¡¯m not going to cause a scene.
¡°Really?¡± N asked, unsure.
Vrie nodded. ¡°Yeah.¡±
People always kicked those who were down. Even if they confronted them now, the others wouldugh at N¡¯s expense.
N released Vrie and said softly, ¡°Don¡¯t dwell on this. I¡¯ve made peace with it.¡±
Sometimes, she still felt sad when she thought about him.
¡°Okay, let¡¯s not talk about it anymore. Let¡¯s find something happier to chat about,¡± Vrie suggested, trying tofort her.
They changed the subject. Although N continued to respond to Vrie, her mind was elsewhere.
So, Damon had brought Reba here tonight to throw her a wee¨Cback party. It seemed he truly did love her. Otherwise, he wouldn¡¯t have kept thinking about her all these years, seizing the chance to be with her the moment she returned.
In a way, this was good. Reba was a better match for him than she ever was.
Vrie noticed N¡¯s distraction but chose not to mention it, feeling only pity for her.
After spacing out for the third time and missing what Vrie had said, N took a deep breath and stood up. ¡°Vrie, I¡¯m going to the restroom.¡±
N turned and walked quickly to the restroom.
Sshing her face with cold water, she finally felt a bit more clear¨Cheaded.
Just as she straightened up and began wiping her face, the restroom stall¡¯s door opened, and Reba walked out.
A glint appeared in Reba¡¯s eyes when she saw N. She moved to the sink and turned on the faucet to wash her hands.
N tossed the damp paper towel into the trash and was about to leave when Reba suddenly spoke up. ¡°Hello, Ms. Jayston. I¡¯m Reba Austen. You¡¯ve probably heard my name.¡±
¡°Is there something you need?¡± N asked, her expression cold as she looked at Reba.
Reba shut off the faucet, lightly shook the water from her hands, and smiled.
¡°Not much. I just heard you were seeing Damon, so I was curious. But now that I¡¯m back, I hope you can keep your distance from him. After all, I don¡¯t like other women hanging around Damon. If I get angry, the consequences could be severe,¡± she warned.
N huffed an annoyedugh. ¡°Save your breath for Damon. Unlike you, I have no interest in stealing other people¡¯s boyfriends.¡±
Initially, N didn¡¯t have much of an opinion about Reba. If Damon hadn¡¯t given Reba the chance, it wouldn¡¯t have affected N¡¯s rtionship with Damon, no matter what Reba did. N?vel(D)rama.Org''s content.
However, the way Reba spoke just now sparked a strong sense of dislike in N. She could tell Reba had known about her from the start and had purposely timed her return.
Reba¡¯s expression changed briefly before she burst intoughter. ¡°Ms. Jayston, Damon and I have known each other for ten years. You didn¡¯t even exist to him back then. We¡¯re just picking up where we left off. There¡¯s no stealing involved.¡±
¡°You could know him for a hundred years, but when you came back, he and I were still dating,¡± N retorted.
Reba raised an eyebrow, her confidence unwavering. ¡°You were just a stepping stone in our rtionship. You¡¯d better know your ce, or you¡¯ll only get hurt.¡±
¡°And what if I refuse to know my ce?¡± N challenged.
¡°If you don¡¯t¡ This is the consequence!¡± Reba¡¯s expression turned icy, and she suddenly grabbed N, mming herself hard against the wall.
¡°N, what do you think you¡¯re doing?!¡± The sound of a head hitting the wall was apanied by an angry voice behind N.
Before N could react, someone yanked her away.
CHAPTER 330
N wasn¡¯t prepared for what happened next. Her lower back mmed against the edge of the marble sink, sending a sharp pain shooting through her body. Her face turned pale.
Nathaniel quickly rushed over, to support a swaying Reba, his expression anxious. ¡°Reba, are you alright?¡±
A bruise was already forming on Reba¡¯s forehead, but she managed a weak smile. ¡°Nathaniel, I¡¯m fine. Ms. Jayston didn¡¯t do it on purpose¡ Besides, I just got back, and Damon broke up with her. It¡¯s only natural for her to be angry with me¡¡±
Nathaniel¡¯s expression darkened as he red at N. ¡°Reba and Damon were together before. They¡¯re just getting back together now. No matter how unhappy you are, there¡¯s nothing you can do about it. If I see youy a hand on Reba again, I won¡¯t let you off easy!¡±
N had been caught off guard by Reba¡¯s little stunt, and her back still throbbed from when Nathaniel had shoved her into the sink.
Already irritated, she couldn¡¯t help but sneer at his words. ¡°Mr. Preston, by your logic, since Reba and Damon are a couple, it should be Damon saying this to me, not you. Anyone who doesn¡¯t know better would think you were her boyfriend.¡±
Nathaniel¡¯s expression darkened further, his eyes cold. ¡°Considering you were with Damon before, I¡¯ll let this slide if you apologize now. Otherwise, when Damon shows. up, you won¡¯t be able to handle the consequences!¡±
Before he could finish speaking, a cold voice came from the side. ¡°Apologize for what?¡±
Nathaniel turned to see Damon and said coldly, ¡°Damon, you¡¯re just in time. Ms. Jayston pushed Reba on purpose. Who knows what could have happened if I hadn¡¯t stepped in?¡±
He pushed Reba toward Damon, his anger still evident.
Damon looked down and saw the bruise on Reba¡¯s forehead, his gaze hardening.
Tears of grievance welled up in Reba¡¯s eyes as she looked pitifully at Damon. Even so, she tugged at his arm, pleading on N¡¯s behalf, ¡°Damon, Ms. Jayston didn¡¯t do it on purpose. And¡ I did take you away from her right after I got back, so, understandably, she¡¯d resent me¡¡± Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
Damon pulled his arm away and looked at N. ¡°Did you push her?¡±
N¡¯s expression remained impassive. ¡°What do you think, Mr. Sumner?¡±
Nathaniel¡¯s anger deepened as he saw N¡¯s attitude. ¡°N, even Reba is pleading for you. Don¡¯t push it. This won¡¯t end with just a simple apology if you keep this up!¡±
Damon frowned slightly as he looked at Nathaniel. ¡°So, how do you propose we resolve this?¡±
Nathaniel was about to respond but hesitated under Damon¡¯s cold gaze. Suddenly, he remembered how Damon hadn¡¯t defended Reba when Erin insulted her earlier.
Could it be¡
The thought that crossed his mind made him uneasy.
Pushing aside those unsettling thoughts, he spoke in a low voice. ¡°Damon, you saw Reba¡¯s injury. All I¡¯m asking is for N to apologize. Is that unreasonable? Are you really going to protect her in front of Reba?¡±
Reba suddenly panicked and looked at Nathaniel with teary eyes. ¡°Nathaniel, please stop. Let¡¯s just pretend none of this happened today. Ms. Jayston pushed me, and now we¡¯re even. I don¡¯t owe her anything anymore.¡±
After saying that, she reached out to take Damon¡¯s hand, intending to leave.
Before she could touch him, though, he walked straight past her, heading toward N.
Reba froze. By the time she realized what was happening and tried to stop him, it was toote.
CHAPTER 331
As Damon approached, N frowned and instinctively stepped back, a wary look in her eyes. Was he nning to confront her because of Reba?
When they were just a few steps apart, N watched as he suddenly raised his hand. toward her.
Gritting her teeth, she warned, ¡°Damon, if you darey a hand on me,
Before she could finish, Damon pulled her close and asked, ¡°Are you hurt?¡±
N¡¯s eyes widened in surprise, but she quickly masked it with a cold reply: ¡°No, let go of me!¡± N?velDrama.Org owns this text.
Even if she was injured, it was none of his business.
As she tried to push him away, he gently pressed a hand on her lower back where she had collided with the sink.
¡°Ow¡¡± N gasped in pain, ring at Damon. ¡°What are you doing? Let go-¡±
Before she could finish, he scooped her up. Startled, she wrapped her arms around his neck, her face paling even more.
Once the shock wore off, her anger red. ¡°Damon, what on earth are you doing? We¡¯ve broken up! Put me down!¡±
Damon¡¯s expression remained impassive as if he hadn¡¯t heard her. He simply carried her and turned to leave.
Nathaniel, who had been watching in shock, quickly became angry. He stepped forward to block Damon. ¡°Damon, are you out of your mind? What do you think you¡¯re doing? And what about Reba?¡±
Damon looked at him coldly. ¡°She¡¯s just my ex. What do you want me to think of her?¡±
¡°Aren¡¯t you two back together?¡± Nathaniel pressed.
Damon¡¯s gaze turned icy. ¡°You should ask her if we¡¯re back together.¡±
With that, he ignored the stunned Nathaniel and walked away.
Nathaniel turned to Reba, who had her head down. His eyes were filled with confusion. ¡°Reba, what¡¯s going on with you and Damon?¡±
Meanwhile, Vrie, who had been sipping her soup, nced up and saw Damon carrying N toward the restaurant door. She nearly spat out her soup in shock.
Her eyes widened as she quickly swallowed the soup and got up to follow them. By the time she reached the door, Damon had already driven away.
Vrie hurriedly called N, but the call went unanswered, heightening her concern.
In the car¡
N had calmed down, staring at Damon with a nk expression. ¡°Where are you taking me?¡±
¡°To the hospital.¡± Damon¡¯s voice was cold, his jaw clenched tightly, eyes fixed straight ahead. He seemed to be in a bad mood.
N frowned. ¡°I¡¯m fine. I¡¯ll be okay in a few days. And we¡¯ve broken up, so my well- being is none of your concern.¡±
The atmosphere in the car grew even colder as she spoke.
N¡¯s impatience grew with Damon¡¯s silence and hisck of intention to stop the car. ¡°Are you even listening to me?¡±
Since he had chosen Reba, he shouldn¡¯t be giving her any false hope. She had finally managed to regain some peace in her life and didn¡¯t want to be entangled with him again.
When the car stopped at a red light, Damon finally turned to look at her. ¡°Go to the hospital for an examination. If everything¡¯s fine, I¡¯ll take you back and won¡¯t bother you again.¡±
N felt as if they were talking past each other. ¡°Don¡¯t you realize that what you¡¯re doing now is precisely the kind of interference I¡¯m trying to avoid?¡±
¡°Go to the hospital to get checked, or I can call a doctor to your home. It¡¯s your choice,¡± Damon stated.
CHAPTER 332
¡°I don¡¯t want to choose either. Just stop the car now. I want to get out,¡± N said. Damon calmly resumed driving. ¡°Since you don¡¯t want to choose, I¡¯ll do it for you.¡±
N was so frustrated she almostughed. She knew that no matter what she said, Damon wouldn¡¯t let her out of the car. Resigned, she turned her gaze coldly toward the window.
In less than half an hour, they arrived at the hospital.
Damon carried N inside. Resisting was pointless, so she remained silent¨Cand expressionless.
After the examination, the doctor assured them there were no major issues and prescribed some medication for internal and external use.
As they were leaving the hospital, Damon tried to carry N again, but she stepped back to avoid him.
¡°Thanks for tonight, but I¡¯ll take a taxi home, she said coldly.
With that, she picked up her medication and turned to leave the hospital.
Damon followed her silently. As they approached his car, he stopped her and said, I¡¯ll take you home.¡± N?velDrama.Org holds ? this.
¡±
N looked up at him, feeling a bit helpless. ¡°We¡¯ve broken up, so what you¡¯re doing now is pointless. I won¡¯t reconsider and don¡¯t want to be involved in your rtionship with Reba.¡±
¡°I¡¯m not back with her, and I won¡¯t be,¡± Damon rified.
N nodded. ¡°Okay, got it.¡±
She tried to move past him, but he grabbed her hand. His expression was tense, his eyes dark and serious.
¡°Don¡¯t you believe me?¡± he asked.
¡°I do, but whether you¡¯re with her or not doesn¡¯t concern me. I¡¯m not interested. It¡¯ste, and I¡¯ve had a long night. Can you let me go now?¡± N asked.
Damon looked at her, trying to detect any hint of deceit in her eyes, but saw none. She seemed to have truly given up on him.
¡°N, whether you believe it or not, you¡¯re the only one on my mind right now,¡± he confessed.
N pulled her hand away, dismissing his words.
The screeching of brakes nearby made them both turn.
A red Lamborghini came to a halt a meter away from them.
Vrie stepped out of the car and quickly positioned herself between N¨Cand Damon.
¡°Mr. Sumner, since you¡¯re no longer together, please stop harassing N. Unlike you, she doesn¡¯t have an ex who might return at any time.¡± Vrie¡¯s tone was scornful, and she spoke without concern for offending him.
Damon¡¯s gaze darkened as he looked at Vrie. ¡°Ms. Weir, I haven¡¯t broken up with her. We¡¯re just having an argument.¡±
Vrie sneered. ¡°Mr. Sumner, you and N are broken up, not divorced. You don¡¯t need to give your approval.¡±
Damon narrowed his eyes, clearly deep in thought.
N tugged at Vrie¡¯s sleeve. ¡°Vrie, let¡¯s go. I¡¯m tired.¡±
¡°Okay,¡± Vrie agreed.
Seeing they were about to leave, Damon didn¡¯t stop them. ¡°Thanks for taking her. home tonight, Ms. Weir.¡±
Vrie rolled her eyes. ¡°Mr. Sumner, N is my good friend. It¡¯s no hassle for me to take her home, and it¡¯s not your ce to ask me to do it.¡±
Damon said nothing more. He watched them get into the car and drive away before heading back to his vehicle.
On the way home, Vrie couldn¡¯t help butment, ¡°Even after breaking up, Damon is still clinging to you. He¡¯s just as bad as rk!¡±
N lowered her gaze, her expression indifferent. ¡°Don¡¯t mention him. Did you get
Chapter 332
my phone from the restaurant?¡±
¡°I did. It¡¯s in the bag in the back,¡± Vrie replied.
N retrieved her phone and unlocked it, receiving a message from Gabriel as she did.
Gabriel: [I came by to bring you some food earlier, but no one answered the door. Are you not back yet?]
CHAPTER 333
N pressed her lips together and called him. ¡°I¡¯m still out. There¡¯s no need to bring me anything next time.¡±
After a few seconds of silence on the other end, Gabriel¡¯s gentle voice came through. ¡°Alright. It¡¯s already past 10:00 p.m. Do you need me to pick you up?¡±
Because of what Wren had said, N wasn¡¯t eager to have too much contact with Gabriel. She declined, ¡°No, my friend is giving me a ride. If there¡¯s nothing else, that¡¯s it.¡±
She hung up, and Vrie looked at her with curiosity. ¡°Who were you talking to?¡±
¡°My stepbrother,¡± N answered.
Vrie¡¯s eyes widened in surprise. ¡°He¡¯s back? When did that happen?¡±
Since Vrie used to visit N¡¯s home often, she had met Gabriel several times.
¡°Just a few days ago,¡± N replied.
¡°Oh, he seems to be quite concerned about you now. I remember when I used to visit you. He was pretty aloof,¡± Vrie remarked.
¡°Yeah. By the way¡ I said I¡¯d cover the bill tonight, but you ended up doing it. Send me the bill, and I¡¯ll reimburse you,¡± N said.
Vrie red at her. ¡°Keeping tabs like that? Just cover it next time. By the way, how did you end up at the hospital with Damon tonight? Were you injured?¡± Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
N briefly exined what had happened in the restroom, and by the end of it, Vrie was fuming.
¡°I knew she was a scheming little bitch! Are you just going to let this go?¡± Vrie demanded.
The thought of Nathaniel making N apologize to Reba made Vrie want to confront him.
¡°There were no cameras in the restroom, and only Nathaniel saw what happened. He won¡¯t back me up,¡± N said.
¡°Nathaniel ispletely under Reba¡¯s spell, so he¡¯ll definitely side with her.¡± The more Vrie spoke, the angrier she became
It felt like having a fly stuck in her throat¨Cnauseating to swallow but impossible to spit out.
It was no wonder Reba had managed to make Damon and N break up as soon as she returned to the country. Most people wouldn¡¯t have the heart to harm themselves to get what they wanted.
¡°Consider today a lesson learned. I¡¯ll keep my distance from her in the future,¡± N said.
Vrie snorted. ¡°I¡¯m just worried that you might want to keep your distance, but she won¡¯t let you.
N frowned, her expression growing cold. ¡°I won¡¯t give her a chance to scheme against me a second time.¡±
¡°I see Damon seems quite concerned about you. If you really wanted topete with Reba, you might not necessarily lose,¡± Vrie remarked.
N smiled wryly. ¡°If a rtionship requires constant scheming and fighting with another woman, then it¡¯s better off without it.¡±
She might like Damon but wouldn¡¯t sacrifice her dignity for him.
¡°True, there are plenty of men out there. If this one doesn¡¯t work out, just move on to the next, Vrie remarked.
N was a bit surprised. ¡°You didn¡¯t use to think that way.¡±
¡°It just means I was too naive before. If men can fall for someone new so easily, why can¡¯t I?¡± Vrie countered.
N was somewhat speechless. ¡°Alright¡¡±
There might be some truth to that.
Anyway, she wasn¡¯t interested in rtionships right now. She just wanted to focus on work and earn more money.
Vrie dropped N off downstairs and then left.
As N took the elevator to her floor and stepped out, she saw Gabriel¨Cstanding at her door.
When he saw her, he quickly approached and handed her a bag. ¡°I thought you
wouldn¡¯t be back so soon.
The bag contained some packed meals.
N didn¡¯t take it.
¡°I made this myself. I noticed you¡¯ve been ordering takeout every night, and it¡¯s not good for your health,¡± Gabriel exined.
CHAPTER 334
Chapter 334
¡°Thanks, but there¡¯s no need. In the future, let¡¯s try to keep our interactions to a minimum. I don¡¯t want to be insulted anymore,¡± N requested coldly.
She was about to walk past Gabriel when he stopped her.
¡°N, I apologize on behalf of my mother for what she said. I¡¯ve spoken to her, and she promises not to contact you again. Please don¡¯t be angry, okay?¡± Gabriel asked.
¡°If she truly believes she was wrong, then you wouldn¡¯t be the one showing up here tonight,¡± N replied.
Gabriel frowned and asked softly, ¡°If she came to apologize in person, would you forgive her?¡±
N¡¯s displeasure was evident. She didn¡¯t understand why Gabriel was so insistent that she forgive Wren.
Wren was just her stepmother¨Ctheir interactions had been minimal, and there was no need to force a reconciliation.
¡°I won¡¯t forget what she said to me, and I can¡¯t forgive her. If there¡¯s nothing else, don¡¯te looking for me again,¡± she said.
Without giving Gabriel a chance to respond, N opened the door and went inside.
Gabriel stood at the door for a moment before leaving. When he got home, he encountered Wren returning for clothes.
Seeing the bag in his hand, Wren frowned. ¡°Where did you go just now?¡±
Gabriel replied calmly, ¡°I went to deliver some food to N.¡±
Wren¡¯s expression darkened, and her tone became sharp. ¡°Didn¡¯t I tell you to keep your distance from her?¡±
¡°I didn¡¯t agree to that, and she¡¯s my sister,¡± Gabriel answered.
¡°Sister?¡± Wren scoffed. ¡°You have no blood rtion to her. Continuing to associate with her will only drag you down. You¡¯ve just returned to the country. Offending the Sumners won¡¯t be good for you. I¡¯m doing this for your own good!¡±
said, I don¡¯t care,¡± Gabriel insisted.
¡°You don¡¯t care?¡± Wren angrily threw the clothes she was holding onto the sofa and
+25
stood up, gritting her teeth. ¡°Even if you don¡¯t care, can¡¯t you think about me? I raised you with great difficulty, sent you abroad to study, and now that there¡¯s finally some hope, you¡¯re about to ruin your future over someone irrelevant!¡±
Gabriel¡¯s expression turned icy. ¡°Mom, don¡¯t forget that I was able to go abroad because of Harrison. Otherwise, I might not have been able to afford university.¡±
¡°He did provide financial support, but I¡¯ve been by his side, taking care of him while he was sick all these years. You don¡¯t owe the Jaystons anything,¡± Wren argued.
¡°Do you think your care over these years is worth so much money?¡± Gabriel questioned.
Wren was at a loss for words.
After a long silence, she said coldly, ¡°Regardless, if you continue to associate with her, I will create a scene at Prospectus Technology until you-¡±
Before she could finish, Gabriel interrupted her sharply, ¡°If you make a scene, I¡¯ll resign and go abroad immediately, and we won¡¯t see each other again.¡±
Wren staggered and took a few steps back to steady herself.
¡°Gabriel, in your heart, is someone with no blood rtion to you more important than me?¡± she asked.
¡°Mom, you¡¯re forcing me. I¡¯m an adult now. I hope you can let me make my own decisions about my life,¡± Gabriel retorted.
The living room fell silent.
After what seemed like an eternity, Wren finally spoke dejectedly. ¡°You¡¯re right. You¡¯re grown up now, and I can¡¯t control you anymore. Do as you wish.¡±
She then picked up her clothes and left.
Watching Wren¡¯s slightly stooped figure, Gabriel felt a pang in his heart.
Despite this, he knew that if he didn¡¯t resolve things with Wren, there would never be a chance for him and N to be together.
When Damon returned to his vi, he saw Nathaniel¡¯s car parked at the entrance. His expression darkened as he parked next to it.
Hearing the car door open, Nathaniel looked up at Damon with red eyes. N?velDrama.Org holds ? this.
¡°When did you find out that Reba was sick?¡± Nathaniel asked.
CHAPTER 335
Damon¡¯s expression remained indifferent. ¡°The day she returned to the country and contacted me.¡±
Nathaniel¡¯s body trembled slightly. He took a deep breath and said slowly, ¡°Is it because Reba only has three months left that you broke up with N and got back together with her?¡±
Damon frowned. ¡°I haven¡¯t reconciled with her.¡±
He had only promised to spend these three months with Reba, but he had no intention of resuming their rtionship.
¡°So, you don¡¯t have feelings for her anymore?¡± Nathaniel asked.
¡°From the moment she chose to go abroad, there was no chance for us anymore,¡± Damon replied.
Nathaniel¡¯s hands clenched at his sides, and his expression grew intense. ¡°But she still loves you. That hasn¡¯t changed. And she only has three months left to live. Can¡¯t you at least give her some false hope?¡±
¡°No. That wouldn¡¯t be fair to N,¡± Damon said.
He had asked N to wait for three months and had promised not to reconcile with Reba. Even if N didn¡¯t believe him, he wouldn¡¯t break his promise.
¡°What¡¯s unfair about it? Reba only needs three months. After that, you could get back together with N. This is Reba¡¯sst wish. Even if you don¡¯t love her anymore, can you really bear to see her leave with regrets?¡± Nathaniel demanded. Thinking about Reba crying earlier and saying she had only three months left, Nathaniel felt as though his heart were being squeezed tightly, making it hard to breathe.
¡°She was the one who initiated the breakup. If it weren¡¯t for the fact that she once saved me, I wouldn¡¯t have agreed to keep herpany even if she had only three days left,¡± Damon stated.
¡°She broke up with you because the pressure was too much and she wanted to prove herself, which is why she went abroad, Nathaniel exined.
Impatience shed across Damon¡¯s eyes. ¡°Regardless, it¡¯s all in the past. The I care about now is N. I won¡¯t betray her.¡±
person
With that, he bypassed Nathaniel and left.
¡°Wait.¡± Nathaniel stopped him, his expression hardening as if he had made up his mind.
¡°There¡¯s something Reba asked me to keep from you, but I think you should know, ¡± he said.
The vi was pitch ck in the dead of night.
Damon sat motionless on the sofa as if he were a statue. Nathaniel¡¯s words echoed in his mind, and his expression grew darker.
When a maid got up to use the bathroom and passed the living room, she was startled by the shadow on the sofa and quickly turned on the light.
Seeing it was Damon, she sighed with relief and patted her chest. ¡°Mr. Sumner, why aren¡¯t you asleep yet?¡±
The sudden light was a bit harsh, causing Damon to squint ufortably, his gaze inscrutable.
¡°It¡¯s nothing. I¡¯m just thinking about some things,¡± he answered.
¡°It¡¯s already past 2:00 a.m. You should think about it tomorrow,¡± the maid advised.
¡°I understand. You should go back to bed,¡± Damon said dismissively.
Noticing Damon¡¯s unusual mood, the maid didn¡¯t press further.
After using the bathroom, she returned to her room, unaware of when Damon finally went to bed. By the next morning, he had already left. N?velDrama.Org owns this text.
Seeing the crystal ashtray on the coffee table filled with cigarette butts, the maid sighed.
It seemed that the issue Damon was dealing with was quite troublesome.
Even during the early days of his business, when thepany was on the verge of bankruptcy, she had never seen him smoke so many cigarettes in one night.
N was on her way to work around 8:00 a.m. when she received a call from Vrie.
I
¡°N, I have something to tell you,¡± Vrie said.
¡°What?¡± N asked.
Vrie delivered the news. ¡°Damon and Reba have officially announced their reconciliation.¡±
N¡¯s phone slipped from her hand. She couldn¡¯t hear what Vrie said next. Her world seemed to blur behind a veil of tears.
CHAPTER 336
The ring car horns from the back snapped N back to reality. She quickly pulled over to the side of the road.
Her hands were shaking as she picked up her phone.
The call was still connected, and Vrie¡¯s anxious voice came through. ¡°N, what happened? Are you okay? Are you on your way to work? I shouldn¡¯t have told you this now!¡±
N wiped her misty eyes and replied quietly, ¡°I¡¯m fine. My phone. just fell.¡±
¡°I¡¯m d you¡¯re okay¡ I really shouldn¡¯t have called you now¡¡± Vrie¡¯s voice was filled with regret.
In her anger upon seeing the news, she had called N impulsively.. She deeply regretted it now, fearing she would never forgive herself if something happened to N.
¡°Yeah, I need to get back to driving. Talk to youter.¡± With that, N ended the call.
Taking a deep breath, she opened a web browser to search for news about Damon and Reba. Every link was about their official reconciliation.
[Prospectus Technology¡¯s CEO Damon Sumner Finally Gets Hist Happy Ending After Waiting Five Years for His Ex!]
[The Reason Damon Sumner Stayed Single for Years Revealed: He Was Waiting for His Ex Who Studied Abroad!]
Damon Sumner and His Ex Are Back Together¨CThey Were Seen in Matching Outfits at a Hotel!]
Each headline was like a stab to N¡¯s heart, and she felt a suffocating pain.
Indeed, all men were the same.
Justst night, Damon had promised her at the hospital that he wouldn¡¯t get back together with Reba and asked her to wait for three months. N?velDrama.Org holds ? this.
Thankfully, she hadn¡¯t waited, or she would have been aughingstock now.
N put her phone away, her eyes downcast, and started the car.
The news of Damon and Reba¡¯s reconciliation led to even more gossip among Prospectus Technology¡¯s employees. They used to talk behind N¡¯s back¨Cnow they mocked her openly.
¡°It¡¯sughable. She was dumped by Mr. Sumner after only a few days. I don¡¯t understand how a divorced woman has the nerve to pursue him!¡±
I
¡°Haha, I told you, Mr. Sumner was just ying around. None of you believed me!¡±
¡°I wonder if she can still make Mr. Sumner look at her after this, especially in front of his true love!¡±
N stood in front of the elevator, ignoring thements around her.
Seeing her unresponsive, the gossipers grew bolder, and their remarks became increasingly harsh.
Soon, the elevator doors opened.
As N was about to step in, someone shoved her roughly.
Unprepared for the forceful push, she lost her bnce and fell hard onto the floor.
The impact with the floor was followed by a sharp, intense pain. She grimaced, and her face turned pale.
Around her, mockingughter erupted.
Some people even took out their phones to film her humiliation, ready to post it online.
N bit her lower lip and slowly got up. She looked coldly at the person who had pushed her, her eyes zing with anger.
The woman was momentarily startled by N¡¯s icy gaze. Regaining herposure, she sneered and said without remorse, ¡°Sorry, I didn¡¯t do it on purpose.¡±
Before she could say more, N pped her across the face.
The sharp sound of the p silenced the entire elevator area.
The woman quickly reacted, her face flushing with anger. She raised her hand to strike N back.
Before her hand coulde down, it was intercepted mid¨Cair.
Gabriel stood in front of N, his voice was icy as he said, ¡°I don¡¯t hit women, but if you dare touch her, you¡¯ll be the first.¡±
CHAPTER 337
¡°Who are you to stand up for her?¡± the woman demanded, struggling to free her arm from Gabriel¡¯s grip but failing.
¡°I don¡¯t need to exin my rtionship with her to you,¡± Gabriel replied coldly. ¡°What you did to her was caught on surveince. I¡¯ll take her to get checked out, and then thewyer will discuss medical and emotionalpensation with you.¡±
¡°Oh, she hit me too! I can get checked out too. It¡¯s no big deal!¡± the woman retorted defiantly.
Gabriel¡¯s eyes grew colder. He leaned in close, his voice a
threatening whisper meant only for her ears. ¡°You¡¯d better pray she¡¯s okay. If she¡¯s hurt, I¡¯ll make sure you regret this.¡±
The woman shivered at the genuine menace in his tone, sensing he wasn¡¯t merely making empty threats.
Frozen in fear, she watched as Gabriel released her and swiftly picked up N in a bridal carry, heading toward the door.
N was surprised by Gabriel¡¯s assistance, especially after their conversation the previous night.
As they reached the door, she protested, ¡°You can put me down. I can walk on my own, and there¡¯s no need for a hospital check.¡±
Despite the hard fall, she didn¡¯t believe she had any serious injuries. A few days of rest should be sufficient.
¡°No, we¡¯re going to get you checked out,¡± Gabriel insisted.
N frowned. The fall might not even qualify as a minor injury.
As she was about to argue, she noticed a cold gaze fixed on her.
Looking up, she saw Damon standing not far away, his entire demeanor radiating icy anger.
Seeing Damon approach, N tightened her grip slightly and murmured, ¡°Aren¡¯t we going to the hospita? Let¡¯s go.¡±
Gabriel nced down and smiled almost imperceptibly when he saw her pale face.
¡°Alright,¡± he replied, turning toward the parking lot and acting as though Damon¡¯s murderous re didn¡¯t exist.
Gabriel owed Damon a debt of gratitude. Had Damon not reconciled with Reba, the employees at Prospectus Technology wouldn¡¯t have mistreated N, and Gabriel would never have had the opportunity to be a hero at that crucial moment.
Damon had personally sent N to Gabriel¡¯s side.
Damon¡¯s anger was palpable, his eyes fixed on Gabriel with an intense re.
As he moved to confront him, Spencer intervened, ¡°Mr. Sumner, now that you¡¯ve reconciled with Ms. Austen, it¡¯s best not to involve yourself with Ms. Jayston any further. Your actions will only worsen her situation.¡±
Damon¡¯s steps faltered. After a few seconds of wrestling with his swirling jealousy and anger, he turned and walked back into the building with a stony expression.
Once on the top floor, Spencer opened hisputer and was briefed by another secretary on the morning¡¯s events, ¡°Mr. Hogg, should we inform Mr. Sumner about what happened?¡±
Spencer frowned. ¡°Just go back to work for now.¡±
After dismissing the secretary, Spencer contemted whether to inform Damon about the targeting of N. With Damon already reconciled with Reba, intervening could only exacerbate the situation.
As he hesitated, the internal phone rang. Damon wanted him toe in. Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
Upon entering Damon¡¯s office, Damon coldly instructed, ¡°Find out why Gabriel was carrying N out of thepany.¡±
CHAPTER 338
Soon, Spencer returned with a report. ¡°Mr. Sumner, this morning Ms. Jayston had a confrontation with one of Prospectus Technology¡¯s employees at the elevator. She was pushed and fell. Gabriel took her to the hospital.¡±
Damon frowned. ¡°What happened? Why was there a confrontation?¡±
Spencer hesitated before cautiously replying, ¡°It seems rted to your reconciliation with Ms. Austen¡ Here is the surveince footage. You can take a look.¡±
Damon took the tablet and watched the video. His face darkened with anger.
¡°Fire the employee who caused the trouble,¡± he ordered.
¡°Mr. Sumner, wouldn¡¯t that be too harsh? After all, Ms. Jayston also pped the employee,¡± Spencer pointed out.
Damon¡¯s expression remained icy. ¡°If I recall correctly, I issued a statement previously prohibiting discussions of my private life.¡±
Seeing the fury in Damon¡¯s eyes, Spencer quickly agreed, ¡± Understood. I¡¯ll take care of it immediately.¡±
News of the employee¡¯s termination soon spread throughout thepany, apanied by a statement:
¡°Attention all Prospectus Technology employees: Anyone who discusses the CEO¡¯s personal life or causes any disturbance rted to it will be terminated immediately!¡±
The remaining employees, previously engaged in gossip, fell silent.
No one dared to discuss the matter openly anymore.
However, some were disgruntled, questioning why N didn¡¯t face. any punishment despite hitting the employee, while only that employee was fired.
When Spencer learned of these sentiments, he informed Damon.
¡°Post the surveince footage on thepany¡¯s internal forum,¡±
Damon instructed.
Once the video was shared, almost no one discussed the incident
anymore.
Although some employees remained dissatisfied, they knew Damon clearly supported N and avoided further public discussion.
Meanwhile, Gabriel, respecting N¡¯s insistence, finally ceased. pressing her to go to the hospital. Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
¡°Are you sure you¡¯re alright?¡± he asked.
Meeting Gabriel¡¯s concerned gaze, N nodded. ¡°Yes, I¡¯m fine. It¡¯s almost time for work. Thanks for your help earlier.¡±
¡°Now that I¡¯m back, I won¡¯t let anyone bully you,¡± Gabriel assured.
N pressed her lips together, her expression serious. ¡°I appreciate your help, but we should keep our distance from now on. Also, I¡¯m sorry for taking advantage of you just now.¡±
Without giving Gabriel a chance to respor she opened the car door and got out.
Gabriel narrowed his eyes while watching her retreating figure, his expression growing cold and menacing.
212
Che TA
Back in the office, N showed little reaction to the news of the employee¡¯s firing.
Melody, who had hesitated, finally spoke up. ¡°N, I heard Mr. Sumner decided to fire that employee. You two¡¡±
N¡¯s expression remained neutral as she looked at Melody. ¡°Let not discuss this. I have no rtionship with him anymore. Others might misunderstand if they overhear us. I¡¯d prefer to focus on my work.
Melody was taken aback. Before she could respond, N had
already picked up herb notebook and changed into herb coat t head to theb.
As lunchtime approached, N was about to head out for lunch when she received a message from a senior she hadn¡¯t been in touch with for a long time.
Caroline Lovell: [N, I¡¯m in Saintornia for a conference. If I remember correctly, you¡¯re based here. Would you be free for dinner? It¡¯s been a while since west met.]
N and Caroline had a good rtionship back in university, and it was Caroline who initially guided her when she joined theb.
CHAPTER 339
After graduating from university, Caroline went to Northornia for further studies, while N returned to Saintornia. It had been over four years since theyst met.
N responded warmly and asked for the hotel¡¯s location before. finding a nearby restaurant known for its specialty dishes.
When N entered the restaurant around 6:00 p.m., she spotted a short¨Chaired woman with a youthful face waving at her from a window seat. ¡°N, over here!¡± N?velDrama.Org holds ? this.
Seeing Caroline¡¯s smile, N felt as if she had been transported back to her university days and couldn¡¯t help but smile in return.
Caroline had been a top student who continued her studies directly after earning her master¡¯s degree. She hade to Saintornia with
her advisor for a conference.
After N took her seat, Caroline smiled and said, ¡°N, you haven¡¯t changed much since university.¡±
¡°It¡¯s you who haven¡¯t changed. Seeing you reminds me of the days. you used to help me with experiments,¡± N replied.
¡°Don¡¯t mention it. You were the one helping me after that. By the way, where¡¯s your husband? Why didn¡¯t hee with you?¡± Caroline asked.
N lowered her gaze and replied indifferently, ¡°We¡¯re divorced.¡±
Caroline looked surprised, and a hint of guilt shed in her eyes. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, I didn¡¯t know.¡±
#
In university, N would often workte in theb. No matter howte it was, rk woulde to pick her up and sometimes bring food for everyone in theb.
The two of them, one handsome and the other beautiful, were considered the golden couple of the university.
When N got married after graduation, Caroline had regretted not being able to attend their wedding. She never expected that the two would end up divorced.
N shook her head. ¡°It¡¯s fine. It¡¯s all in the past.¡±
¡°Alright, let¡¯s not dwell on it.¡± Caroline changed the subject, expressing some regret that N hadn¡¯t worked in the pharmaceutical industry.
Given N¡¯s talent and hard work in theb during university, Caroline felt that if N hadn¡¯t given up on continuing her studies and returned to Saintornia, her future would have been promising.
N didn¡¯t feel particrly regretful. This was the path she had chosen, and she didn¡¯t need to romanticize the path she hadn¡¯t taken.
As dinner was ending, Caroline pulled an invitation from her bag and handed it to N.
¡°N, part of the conference is about the research I¡¯m currently working on. If you¡¯re free, I¡¯d love for you toe and listen,¡± she said.
N took the invitation. ¡°Sure. Thank you, Caroline.¡±
Caroline sighed and continued. ¡°N, there¡¯s something I wasn¡¯t
going to say, but now that you¡¯re divorced, I think you should reconsider your future. You¡¯re still young and could look into further studies, such as pursuing a master¡¯s or a Ph.D.
¡°The environment atpanies can be quiteplex, and I believe focusing on research at an institute would be the best choice for you.
Seeing Caroline¡¯s serious expression, N nodded. ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll think about it.¡±
After settling the bill and heading toward the door, N ran into rk and Jordyn, who wereing out of the restaurant next door.
Upon seeing N, Jordyn subconsciously tightened her grip on rk¡¯s arm and looked at her warily
Caroline noticed the situation and quickly understood what was happening.
N didn¡¯t want to acknowledge them. She looked away and continued toward the parking lot with Caroline.
However, rk felt a surge of frustration seeing her ignore them.
He stepped forward and blocked their path. ¡°N, even though we¡¯re divorced, you don¡¯t have to act like you¡¯re avoiding a gue
whenever you see me.¡±
CHAPTER 340
Impatience flickered in N¡¯s eyes. ¡°I do. t have anything to say to you, and I don¡¯t see you as a gue. To me, you¡¯re just a stranger.¡±
rk looked somewhat helpless. ¡°Why be so stubborn? We used to love each other. Even though we¡¯re apart now, I still want the best for you. It¡¯s just that my uncle isn¡¯t right for you.¡±
N frowned and said coldly, ¡°I don¡¯t want to hear your nonsense. Move aside!¡±
Her good mood, which had brightened after meeting Caroline, waspletely ruined by her encounter with rk.
Jordyn sneered. ¡°rk, stop talking. If she wants to be the third wheel, let her. It¡¯s not like you¡¯ll be the one embarrassed in the end.¡±
N had initially tried to ignore them, but couldn¡¯t help ncing at Jordyn upon hearing this.
¡°Speaking of being a third wheel, Ms. Cheatham, you must have a lot of experience since you moved up from being a third wheel yourself, right?¡± she retorted.
Jordyn¡¯s face turned ugly. ¡°N, what are you babbling about? rk and I are legally married now. I¡¯m the legitimate Mrs. Sumner. Unlike you, who was just a temporary fling for Damon. Now that his ex is back, he¡¯s eager to get rid of you. It¡¯s reallyughable!¡±
N¡¯s expression remained indifferent. ¡°Just because you have a marriage certificate doesn¡¯t mean you didn¡¯t start as a third wheel. Do you want me to post those disgusting videos of you and rk online so people can see what kind of people you are?¡±
Jordyn¡¯s anger red, and she was about to retort when Caroline,
who had been watching, couldn¡¯t hold back any longer.
¡°rk, I saw you and N together back in university. You were so good to her then. I never thought you¡¯d turn out like this,¡± she said.
rk just noticed Caroline, recognizing her as N¡¯s senior from university. They had dined together a few times.
Suddenly, the fond memories he had tried to forget resurfaced.
Back in university, he had been very good to N. At that time, he was entirely devoted to her and couldn¡¯t bear to see her cry. Whenever her eyes reddened, he would feel as if the world were ending and would clumsily try tofort her.
Eight years was a long time, and he had forgotten when he had gradually stopped caring as much. Perhaps he had assumed she would never leave him, so he had begun to hurt her recklessly.
Seeing rk lost in thought, Jordyn clutched her stomach and cried out, ¡°Oh, rk¡ My stomach hurts¡¡±
Jordyn¡¯s distress broke through rk¡¯s thoughts. He turned to her.¡± What¡¯s wrong?¡±
¡°I don¡¯t know. It just suddenly hurts¡¡± Jordyn cried.
Jordyn¡¯s brows were furrowed, her face pale and genuinely distressed.
rk ignored N and Caroline, quickly helping, Jordyn away.
As their figures disappeared, Caroline finally turned to N with concern. ¡°N¡ Are you okay?¡± N?velDrama.Org owns this text.
N smiled. ¡°I¡¯m fine. I¡¯m no longer unset. I¡¯ll take you back to your hotel.¡±
On the way back to the hotel, Caroline seemed hesitant, wanting to say something but struggling to find the right moment.
When the car stopped at the hotel entrance, she finally gathered the courage to speak. ¡°N, I hope you¡¯ll seriously consider what I
mentioned earlier. It¡¯s only been four years, and you still have many years ahead of you.¡±
N nodded, her gaze soft. ¡°I know, Caroline.¡±
CHAPTER 341
Caroline didn¡¯t say anything more, merely reminding N to be careful on her way back before heading into the hotel.
N got home and sat on the sofa. She was about to rest when she noticed a corner of the invitation peeking out of her bag. She pulled it out and opened it. As she read through the conference details, her grip on the invitation tightened.
Maybe Caroline was right. She should reconsider her future ns. She couldn¡¯t have children, and even without Reba¡¯s interference, she and Damon wouldn¡¯t havested.
Besides, having already been burned once by rk, she shouldn¡¯t make the same mistake again. N?vel(D)rama.Org''s content.
With that thought, a determined glint appeared in her eyes.
The next morning, as soon as N arrived at Prospectus Technology, she ran into Reba.
To be precise, Reba was deliberately waiting for her.
¡°Ms. Jayston, good morning! I came to deliver breakfast to Damon. He has a sensitive stomach and doesn¡¯t like eating breakfast made by others, so I made it myself,¡± Reba said.
N frowned and replied coldly, ¡°Ms. Austen, if you enjoy showing off so much, you might as well bring along a couple of photographers next time to capture, ou delivering breakfast and send the photos to some entertainment news outlets. Let everyone
see how ¡®virtuous and considerate¡® you are.¡±
Reba smirked and brushed her hair back. ¡°There¡¯s no need for that. As long as Damon understands my intentions, that¡¯s enough.¡±
¡°Then don¡¯t unt it in front of me. I¡¯m not interested.¡± With that, N walked past her and left.
Reba watched her retreating figure, her smile widening. She hoped N had really given up on Damon. Otherwise, she would ensure N couldn¡¯t stay in Saintornia.
Once on the top floor, Reba walked straight into Damon¡¯s office.
¡°Damon, I heard you didn¡¯t have breakfast beforeing to work. I brought you breakfast. I made it myself. Please have it before you start working,¡± she said.
Damon remained impassive, his eyes still on the documents. ¡°Just leave it on the desk. You¡¯re not well. There¡¯s no need for you to cook or bring food in person.¡±
Reba bit her lip, disappointment shing in her eyes. ¡°But you have a sensitive stomach because you skipped breakfast at university. You should-¡±
Before she could finish, the office door swung open, and Spencer rushed in.
Seeing Reba, he paused before saying, ¡°Mr. Sumner, I have an important report.¡±
Damon finally looked up at Reba, ¡°You can go now. I need to get back to work.¡±
¡°But the breakfast-¡± Reba began.
Damon didn¡¯t respond, his impatience evident.
Reluctantly, Reba set the thermos down. ¡°Remember to eat itter.¡±
She left, ncing back several times.
¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± Damon asked Spencer.
¡°Mr. rk has stolen another partnership from us,¡± Spencer reported.
Damon tossed the document onto the desk, his expression
tightening and growing colder. ¡°It seems he¡¯s determined to go head- to¨Chead with Prospectus Technology.¡±
Spencer kept his head down, hesitant to speak. After all, rk was Damon¡¯s nephew¨Cone of their own.
¡°Find out whichpanies he¡¯s been working with recently. If he wants to y games, I¡¯ll y along!¡± Damon huffed.
¡°Yes, sir!¡± Spencer replied.
Once Spencer left, Damon picked up the documents again, ignoring the breakfast on his desk.
CHAPTER 342
Before long, Spencer discovered that rk was secry meeting with a representative from thepany Prospectus Technology intended to partner with next month.
He quickly reported, ¡°Mr. Sumner, Mr. rk is meeting with Mr. Maddock at Pineer for lunch today.¡±
Damon¡¯s gaze turned icy. ¡°Book a table.¡±
¡°Understood,¡± Spencer replied.
At noon¡.
When rk arrived at Pineer, he ran into Damon, and his expression. shifted slightly.
¡°Uncle Damon, what are you doing here?¡± he asked.
Damon raised an eyebrow and replied with a faint smile, ¡°What¡¯s the matter? Just because you¡¯re here, does that mean I can¡¯t be?¡±
rk¡¯s gaze hardened slightly, but he managed a smile. ¡°It¡¯s just unexpected to run into you while having lunch.¡±
¡°Quite a coincidence,¡± Damon said, ying along.
They walked into the restaurant together.
As rk watched Damon head toward Room 8, which he had
reserved, his expression darkened. Just as Damon was about to reach the door, rk stepped in front of him.
¡°Uncle Damon, what¡¯s the meaning of this?¡± he asked.
Noting the flicker of unease in rk¡¯s eyes, Damon remained
indifferent. ¡°What¡¯s the problem?¡±
rk gnashed his teeth. ¡°I have a meeting with a client. It¡¯s not ide for you to follow me. If you want to join mer lunch, we can reschedule.¡±
¡°Are you overthinking this? I don¡¯t n to have lunch with you,¡± Damon rified. N?velDrama.Org owns this text.
¡°Then why are you heading toward the room I reserved?¡± rk questioned.
His suspicion and wariness were evident, clearly not believing Damon¡¯s words.
¡°Is Room 9 your reservation?¡± Damon asked.
rk was taken aback and instinctively shook his head. ¡°No¡ Y¨CYou reserved Room 9?¡±
¡°Otherwise? Are you hiding something you shouldn¡¯t?¡± Damon¡¯s cold prating gaze made rk ufortable, prompting him to touch his nose subconsciously.
¡°No, I just overthink things since my reserved room is next to yours. Please don¡¯t take it the wrong way,¡± rk exined.
Damon didn¡¯t look at him again and walked past him into Room 9.
rk breathed a sigh of relief but couldn¡¯t shake the feeling that something was off.
What a coincidence! He was meeting Peter Maddock there, and Damon happened to be dining in the next room.
Whether it was a coincidence or Damon¡¯s intention, rk was determined to secure the deal with Peter today.
Chanter 342
+25
He called Michael and said quietly, ¡°Uncle Damon is in Room 9 right now. Keep a close watch and let me know when he leaves.¡±
After hanging up, rk entered Room 8 and spent an hour discussing matters with Peter.
By the end of their meeting, he still hadn¡¯t heard from Michael about Damon leaving, and his anxiety grew.
After all, the deal might fall through if he encountered Damon while escorting Peter out.
Despite his anxiety, he maintained a calm facade and continued discussing the partnership with Peter.
Peter was about to leave, but rk kept talking, so Peter patiently continued the discussion for a while longer.
After about ten more minutes, Peter finally spoke up. ¡°Mr. Sumner, I have a flight at 4:00 p.m. It¡¯s gettingte, so let¡¯s wrap up for today. My secretary will follow up on the details of the partnership.¡±
¡°What about signing the contract¡¡± rk began.
¡°I¡¯m heading to Meristate for a business trip today, so there won¡¯t be time to sign the contract. Please make any necessary changes and send the revised contract to my secretary¡¯s email. If everything looks good, I¡¯ll sign it online. I really need to go now. Otherwise, I¡¯ll miss my flight,¡± Peter said.
CHAPTER 343
¡°Mr. Maddock, my secretary has already revised the contract and should be arriving in about five minutes,rk replied.
Peter¡¯s frown deepened, and he looked visibly displeased. ¡°Mr. Sumner, we¡¯ve already agreed on the partnership. Why the rush? Do you think I¡¯m going to back out?¡±
Noticing Peter¡¯s displeasure, rk quickly attempted to exin, ¡°No, Mr. Maddock, that¡¯s not what I meant. N?velDrama.Org holds ? this.
¡°Then what do you mean? I¡¯ve told you I need to catch a flight, yet you¡¯re holding me up. Mr. Sumner, Thave other options too!¡± With that, Peter stood up and left.
As he opened the door, Damon emerged from the adjacent Room
rk hurried after Peter. ¡°Mr. Maddock¡ I can arrange a car to take you¡¡±
Before he could finish, he noticed Damon standing by the door, and his expression soured.
Peter also noticed Damon and was taken aback. He quickly
approached Damon. ¡°Mr. Damon, what are you doing here? Mr. rk said you were too busy to handle the negotiations, which is why he¡¯s doing it with me.
Damon raised an eyebrow, finally understanding how rk had. managed to secure some deals from Prospectus Technology. He looked at rk with a cold smile.
didn¡¯t realize I was too busy to meet with clients,¡± Damon remarked.
rk froze
After a few seconds, he said, ¡®Uncle Damon, I¡¯ve already settled the partnership with Mr. Maddock, and he needs to catch a flight. I need. to take him to the airport.¡±
Damon maintained his smile but said nothing.
Peter, not easily fooled, quickly grasped that rk had tried to deceive him and red at him. ¡°You dared to lie to me! I wondered why you were so eager for your secretary to bring the revised contract. It turns out you were afraid of being exposed!¡±
rk turned pale. ¡°Mr. Maddock, please let me exin-
Peter sneered. ¡°Exin what? I¡¯m busy catching a flight and don¡¯t want to waste more time with you, but this isn¡¯t over!¡±
With that, Peter ignored rk and turned to Damon. ¡°Mr. Damon, I need to get to the airport. We¡¯ll discuss the partnership in person when I return.¡±
Damon replied indifferently, ¡°Mr. Maddock, I¡¯ll take you to the airport.
Peter paused to consider, then nodded. ¡°Thank you, Mr. Damon.¡±
As Damon and Peter left, rk¡¯s face turned ashen; he didn¡¯t dare to stop them.
On the way to the airport, Damon and Peter discussed the broad terms of their cooperation.
Peter assured Damon that he woulde to Saintornia to sign the contract once his business trip was over.
Chapter 18)
After seeing Peter off, Damon returned to Prospectus Technology.
As he reached the top floor, Spencer hurried over. ¡°Mr. Damon, Mr. rk has arrived and is waiting for you in the reception room.¡±
Damon¡¯s gaze turned cold. ¡°Understood.¡±
In the reception room, rk sat on the sofa, lost in thought. When he heard footsteps, he looked up, his expression nervous.
¡°Uncle Damon, I¡¯m really sorry about this. I hope you can forgive me. I promise it won¡¯t happen again!¡± he apologized hastily.
Damon sat down opposite him, his gaze icy.
It felt like sharp needles piercing rk, making him squirm in his seat as his face turned pale.
¡°Uncle Damon-¡± he began.
Damon cut him off, ¡°Did you use the same method to snatch those Prospectus Technology deals before?¡±
CHAPTER 344
Avoiding eye contact with Damon, rk lowered his head. ¡°Uncle. Damon, I realize I was wrong¡¡±
Damon¡¯s anger morphed into a chuckle. ¡°Realize you were wrong? Do you understand that what you did is a crime? You used Prospectus Technology¡¯s name to deceive otherpanies intor signing contracts with yours. If this gets out, you could be taken to court!¡±
He was astonished by rk¡¯s audacity.
rk, now genuinely terrified, looked up at Damon with fear. ¡°Uncle Damon, I understand my mistake. When my dad handed over thepany to me, the funds were nearly depleted. If I didn¡¯t secure partnerships with some majorpanies, thepany would soon. go bankrupt.
¡°Please, just give me one chance. I promise I won¡¯t make the same mistake again!¡±
Upon seeing rk¡¯s frightened and guilty demeanor, Damon¡¯s anger intensified. ¡°Realizing your mistake doesn¡¯t excuse the fact that youmitted it in the first ce.¡±
The room fell into silence.
After a long pause, rk finally looked up at Damon. ¡°Uncle Damon, what do you want me to do to make this right? Do you really want me to beg?¡±
Before Damon could respond, his phone on the table rang. Seeing it was Reba, he moved aside to answer the call. ¡°What is it?¡±
Noticing the coldness in his tone, R N?velDrama.Org holds ? this.
Damon, I wanted to ask if you¡¯ll being home for dinner tonight. I¡¯m making your favorite fish. Would you like that?¡±
Damon rubbed his temples and replied quietly, ¡°I¡¯m not sure yet. Just take care of yourself. You don¡¯t need to cook. Let the service staff handle it.¡±
¡°But¡ I don¡¯t know how many more meals I¡¯ll get to make for you. I don¡¯t want you to remember me only as someone frail. I want you to have some good memories of me,¡± Reba said.
Damon¡¯s patience was wearing thin, but he remembered her illness. and softened his tone. ¡°Don¡¯t overexert yourself.¡±
After hanging up, Damon turned back to rk with a cold voice. ¡°I¡¯ll inform your grandfather about this. You need to resolve the issues with thepanies you deceived on your own. I won¡¯t help you.¡±
Relief shed in rk¡¯s eyes. As long as Damon didn¡¯t pursue it further, there was still a chance to fix things. ¡°Thank you, Uncle Damon!¡±
¡°No need to thank me. My decision not to pursue it doesn¡¯t mean thosepanies won¡¯t,¡± Damon warned.
rk¡¯s smile faltered, and he replied awkwardly, ¡°I understand.¡±
Noticing rk still seated on the sofa, Damon said sternly, ¡°Aren¡¯t you leaving?¡±
¡°I¡¯m leaving now¡¡± rk replied.
It wasn¡¯t until rk left Prospectus Technology that his expression darkened considerably.
Even though rk was Damon¡¯s nephew and Damon had ended up with N, Damon still refused to help rk in this situation. The
more rk thought about it, the more he loathed Damon.
Suddenly, his phone buzzed.
Seeing it was Richard, rk tightened his grip on the phone and took a moment before answering.
An angry voice came through the line.
rk apologized submissively and, after ending the call, drove back to the Summer residence.
As the workday wound down that evening, N took out the invitation to the conference that Caroline had given her, hesitating about whether to attend.
Melody, who noticed the invitation, looked surprised. ¡°N, how did you get an invitation to this conference?¡±
The invitation was for the ¡°Next¨CGeneration Cancer Drug Research and Application¡± conference, which would be held in the city center.
The event would bring together top medical experts and
pharmaceutical researchers from around the world to discuss thetest advancements in cancer drug development and share clinical trial results.
CHAPTER 345
Many researchers were eager to attend the conference, but the entry requirements were stringent, and invitations were difficult to
obtain.
¡°My senior gave it to me. This conference aligns perfectly with her research focus,¡± N exined.
¡°Wow, your senior sounds amazing! N¡ I¡¯m really interested in this conference. Could you take me with you?¡± Melody asked.
eagerly.
N hesitated but then said, ¡°I¡¯ll ask my senior if I can bring an extra person.¡±
¡°Great!¡± Melody eximed.
N sent a message to Caroline and soon received a reply that it was okay.
When she learned she could attend the conference with N, Melody¡¯s face lit up with excitement. ¡°N, thank you so much! I¡¯m really grateful!¡±
¡°Alright. Let¡¯s clean up theb and get ready to leave for the day,¡± N suggested.
With that, she got up and headed toward theb, with Melody quickly
following.
After they left, Gabriel nced at the invitation N had left on the desk, his eyes flickering with unspoken thoughts.
Meanwhile, Damon was dealing with documents when he suddenly
received a call from Nathaniel.
¡°Damon, there¡¯s a ¡®Next¨CGeneration Cancer Drug Research and Application¡® conference here in Saintornia. One of the researchers is working on a project rted to Reba¡¯s condition. Should we take Reba to the conference?¡± Nathaniel asked.
Damon was silent for a few seconds before replying, ¡°Just arrange a meeting with the researcher instead.¡±
¡°If it were that easy, I would have done it already. The researcher is very busy and hasn¡¯t been avabletely. Besides, she¡¯s flying out of the country right after the conference to attend another seminar. The only way to meet her is by attending the conference,¡± Nathaniel exined.
¡°Understood. Send me the time and location,¡± Damon replied.
After hanging up, Damon put his phone down and resumed working.
It wasn¡¯t long before his phone buzzed with messages from Reba. Without even opening them, he knew they were likely about checking if he was tired or reminding him toe home for dinner.
He had no desire to read the messages or return to the vi. His reconciliation with Reba had been driven by guilt. The thought of pretending for another three months left him feeling drained.
When Spencer entered the office, he ced a stack of documents on the desk. ¡°Mr. Sumner, you can sign these tomorrow.¡± Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
¡°Okay, you can leave for the day,¡± Damon replied dismissively.
After Spencer left, Damon nced at the documents but was unable to focus. He set them aside and picked up his phone, opening his
chat with N.
He wanted to send her a message to exin, but he wasn¡¯t sure what to say. He had broken his promises numerous times. She must. be thoroughly disappointed in him by now.
After hesitating for a long time, he put his phone away and got up to leave.
Damon had intended to return to the vi but found himself, almost subconsciously, outside N¡¯s building.
He had been keeping track of her and knew she had moved into the same building as Gabriel. He wanted her to stay away from Gabriel, but what right did he have to make such demands now?
Damon¡¯s ck Maybach remained parked downstairs for a long time as he watched the entrance to her building. Finally, a familiar figure appeared.
N came downstairs to take out the trash.
When she saw Damon¡¯s car parked nearby, she was surprised. Quickly regaining herposure, she turned her gaze away, tossed the trash into the bin, and headed back inside.
Damon watched her retreating figure, hesitating for a long time. Just as she was about to enter the building, he opened the car door and walked toward N.
CHAPTER 346
As soon as Damon stepped out of the car, som one else appeared at the entrance of the apartment building.
Damon¡¯s stride faltered, and his expression immediately hardened..
Gabriel positioned himself in front of N.
N¡¯s face, though free of makeup, remained strikingly beautiful, causing Gabriel¡¯s heart to stir as he gazed at her.
¡°Do you need something?¡± she asked, her tone frosty.
Sensing her coldness, Gabriel looked somewhat disappointed but managed a forced smile. ¡°N, I just returned from visiting your dad. He misses you. If you¡¯re free tomorrow night, let¡¯s go see him. together.¡±
N pressed her lips together. ¡°Okay. If I¡¯m free, I¡¯ll go.¡±
Eager to avoid further interaction with Gabriel, she turned to leave.
Just as Gabriel was about to call after her, he felt a cold stare. Turning, he saw Damon approaching, his face stormy.
N noticed Damon too. Her gaze flickered with confusion. He had publicly reconciled with Reba¨Cwhy was he there?
With that thought in mind, she walked to the elevator and pressed the up button, pretending not to see Damon.
Gabriel smirked. ¡°Mr. Sumner, what brings you here?¡±
¡°I¡¯m here to see her. It has nothing to do with you,¡± Damon replied.
¡°Of course it does. I¡¯m N¡¯s brother, and you¡¯re a man with a
girlfriend. It¡¯s inappropriate for you to be seeking her out privately, don¡¯t you think?¡± Gabriel countered.
Damon¡¯s gaze grew colder. ¡°This is between her and me. It¡¯s not your ce to interfere.¡±
¡°But it seems N doesn¡¯t want to see you,¡± Gabriel retorted.
The chill in Damon¡¯s eyes deepened, his cold aura almost palpable.
Gabriel, however, maintained a faint smile, showing no fear as he met Damon¡¯s gaze.
While they were locked in their standoff, the elevator doors opened.
N, exhausted from dealing with the two of them, walked straight into the elevator.
Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
Just as the doors were about to close, a hand suddenly blocked the gap, causing the doors to open once more.
N looked at Damon standing outside the elevator with cold eyes. Mr. Sumner, do you need something?¡±
¡°We need to talk,¡± Damon replied.
Meeting his cool gaze, N paused for a moment. She acknowledged that some matters needed to be resolved.
¡°Alright,¡± she said, stepping out of the elevator to follow Damon.
¡°N¡¡± Gabriel called after her in a low voice. ¡°I¡¯ll wait here. If anything happens, just call me.¡±
¡°Nothing¡¯s going to happen. Go home,¡± N said.
For a moment, Gabriel¡¯s smile wavered, and his hands clenched tightly at his sides.
Soon, N and Damon found a quiet spot outside the apartment building. Her expression remained frosty as she looked at him.
¡°What do you want to talk about?¡± she asked.
¡°N, about me getting back together with Reba-¡± Damon began.
N cut him off, ¡°I¡¯m not interested in that. You don¡¯t need to exin. I agreed to talk with you to clear things up once and for all.
¡°Since you¡¯ve reconciled with her, there is no possibility for us. I hope you¡¯ll keep your distance from now on. Don¡¯te to my building again. I don¡¯t want people to misunderstand and think I¡¯m a homewrecker.¡±
Damon frowned, and his demeanor grew even colder. ¡°I know you won¡¯t believe anything I say right now, but I¡¯ll exin everything in three months.¡±
¡°That¡¯s not necessary. It doesn¡¯t matter anymore,¡± N shot back.
Damon¡¯s gaze hardened due to N¡¯s indifference. ¡°N, the one I love is you.¡±
N looked up at him. He was still as handsome as ever, stirring her heart, but she had had enough of the emotional turmoil.
She had thought she could endure it, but now she realized that truly loving someone meant she couldn¡¯t tolerate any other woman being in his life.
CHAPTER 347
¡°rk said he loved me, but that didn¡¯t stop him from cheating with Jordyn. You say you love me, but that doesn¡¯t stop you from getting back together with Reba. I guess, in your minds, your feelings are worth a lot. Just because you like me, I¡¯m supposed to be grateful and ept whatever you do,¡± N said.
Damon frowned. ¡°That¡¯s not what I mean¡¡±
N smiled. ¡°It doesn¡¯t matter what you mean. Since you chose Reba over me, there¡¯s no chance for us. It¡¯s that simple.¡±
The calmness in her gaze stirred a sense of panic in Damon. He felt like he was really losing her.
¡°N¡¡± he started.
¡°We¡¯ve already said everything that needs to be said. There¡¯s no point in dragging this out. Let¡¯s end it here,¡± N concluded.
Their love had always been unequal, never truly bnced. She¡¯d rather not have such love at all.
Back home, N had just sat on the couch when her phone rang. It was a call from William.
¡°Ms. Jayston, your assets with Mr. Sumner have been divided. Your share amounts to 786,398 dors. Also, we¡¯ve made some progress on Cyrus¡® case. Are you avable tomorrow? We can meet and go over the details,¡± William proposed.
¡°Sure, I¡¯m free after work tomorrow evening,¡± N replied.
After setting a time and ce, N hung up and went to grab some
clothes for a shower, pondering what to do about Cyrus.
Now that she had broken up with Damon, the Sumners wouldn¡¯t hesitate toe after her. Continuing to oppose them wouldn¡¯t benefit her.
Despite this, she wasn¡¯t ready to give up. It had been so hard to get Cyrus into jail. If she let him get away this time, it would be even harder to catch him in the future.
After thinking it over for a while without reaching a conclusion, she decided to stop worrying and wait until she met with William the next day.
The next evening arrived quickly.
William came with the asset division agreement.
¡°Ms. Jayston, Mr. Sumner has already signed. If everything looks good, please sign here,¡± he said.
N reviewed the agreement, confirming there were no issues, and then signed her name.
With that signature, she and rk were finished. They had no more ties to each other.
N handed the agreement back to William and inquired about Cyrus¡® case.
William¡¯s expression grew serious. Ms. Jayston, the Sumners are already intervening. There¡¯s a strong possibility that Cyrus won¡¯t be sentenced. You should be prepared for that.¡±
N lowered her gaze, remaining silent. She was aware of the
Sumners¡® considerable influence in Saintornia. She had only
managed to secure Cyrus¡¯s police custody because she had caught them off guard.
¡°I understand. We¡¯ll do our best and leave the rest to fate,¡± she replied.
William nodded. ¡°Yes, I¡¯ll do everything I can with this case, but the oue might-¡±
N cut him off, ¡°I understand. Even if things don¡¯t turn out well, I won¡¯t me you.¡±
They discussed the case a bit more before William left to return to his firm.
Back home, N¡¯s ordered books had arrived¨Ctwo thick stacks, all study materials for her graduate exam.
She carried the books inside, organized them, and noted that it was still early. Deciding to study for an hour that night, she made the most of every minute, knowing there were less than two months until the exam registration. She hoped to pass on her first attempt.
In the following days, N devoted every spare moment to studying.
Soon, it was Saturday.
Early in the morning, she received a call from Melody, who said she was already downstairs. N?velDrama.Org owns this text.
CHAPTER 348
N checked the time¨Cit was only 7:00 a.m., and the conference didn¡¯t start until 9:00a.m.
¡°Isn¡¯t it a little early for you to be here?¡± she asked groggily, still not fully awake.
Melody¡¯s voice was filled with excitement. ¡°I couldn¡¯t sleep, so I got up early. I brought breakfast for you, but don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ll just walk around outside until you¡¯re ready.¡±
N sighed, feeling a bit helpless. She told Melody which floor she lived on so she coulde up and wait inside.
By the time N finished getting ready, it was just past 8:00 a.m. The two of them arrived at the conference venue before 8:30 a.m.
As they approached the entrance, a ck Maybach and a Rolls- Royce pulled up beside them.
The doors of the Maybach opened, and Reba and Damon stepped out. From the Rolls¨CRoyce behind them emerged Nathaniel.
As soon as they exited their cars, conference staff members. enthusiastically greeted them. ¡°Mr. Sumner, Mr. Preston, Ms. Austen, wee to the conference. Please allow me to show you to the VIP entrance.¡±
Reba wore a white dress today, her long hair flowing down to her waist. With light makeup, she looked delicate and sweet. As she stayed close to Damon¡¯s side, she exuded an air of vulnerability that invited protectiveness from those around her.
Damon¡¯s indifferent gaze briefly lingered on N before he looked away as if he hadn¡¯t seen her at all.
N lowered her eyes, forcing herself to ignore the disas
intment
that swelled in her heart Damon treating her like a stranger was far better than dragging out their unresolved feelings
The group quickly followed the staff through the VIP entrance,
causing Melody to watch enviously
However, remembering that N and Damon had broken up because of Reba, she quickly suppressed her envy. N?vel(D)rama.Org''s content.
¡°N, let¡¯s go in too,¡± she said.
Meanwhile, Nathaniel nced at Damon teasingly as they settled
into a private room.
¡°Damon, if I¡¯m not mistaken, I just saw N outside. Why didn¡¯t you say hi? Nathaniel asked.
Damon¡¯s expression was icy, and he remained silent.
Next to him, Reba¡¯s expression changed slightly. Although Damon hadn¡¯t spoken to N earlier, Reba knew his eyes had been on N the entire time.
¡°Nathaniel, stop teasing Damon. He and Ms. Jayston are the real couple: 1l find a chance to exin everything to her. In three months, I¡¯ll give Damon back to her, Reba said.
Nathaniel¡¯s face fell. ¡°Reba, there will be a way to treat your
illness. Don¡¯t speak like that again.
Reba smiled sorrowfully and did not say anything more
Seeing her like this made Nathaniel ufortable. He stood up and walked over to the window, looking down
The conference hall was arranged with rows of seats in the center
Chapter 348.
and private rooms on both sides for those of higher status. Each room had arge one¨Cway mirror, allowing those inside to see out, while those outside could only see darkness.
Noticing N and Melody sitting toward the back in the middle, Nathaniel smirked mockingly. Without Damon, N was insignificant.
N was unaware of Nathaniel¡¯s thoughts. Even if she knew, she wouldn¡¯t care. She was there to listen to the conference and determine a direction for her future career.
The conference soon began.
Under the spotlight of the tech conference, Dr. Brendan Oakley, a leading figure in drug research, slowly stood up. He cleared his throat and began his opening remarks.
¡°Good day, everyone. In the path of drug development, we constantly strive for breakthroughs and innovation. Today, I am honored to share with you a significant advancement in cancer drug research.¡±
Brendan¡¯s voice was firm, each word reflecting his passion and respect for science.
CHAPTER 349
¡°In the past year, our team has worked tirelessly, delving deep into the mechanisms of cancer and exploring new treatment strategies. Today, I am proud to announce that we¡¯ve developed a ¡®Long¨Cacting Drug¡°,¡± Brendan said, his voice brimming with pride.
¡°This ¡®Long¨Cacting Drug¡® not only exhibits a high level of specificity, precisely targeting cancer cells, but it also maintains therapeutic effects in the body for an extended period. This means cancer patients can expect longer survival times and an improved quality of life.¡±
Brendan¡¯s announcement was met with enthusiastic apuse and
cheers from the audience.
As Brendan finished his speech, other researchers began presenting their findings.
Caroline was the fifth speaker. Dressed in a simple whiteb coat with her hair neatly tied back, she projected a professional and capable image.
She started by disying a series of detailed experimental data charts.
Pointing to the data on the screen, she exined, ¡°These are the results of the in vitro and in vivo experiments we¡¯ve conducted over the past few months on the ¡®Long¨Cacting Drug¡®.
¡°From this data, we can see that the ¡®Long¨Cacting Drug¡®
demonstrates significant effectiveness in inhibiting the growth and spread of cancer cells.¡±
Caroline then presented photos and videos of theb animals.
¡°After treatment with the ¡®Long¨Cacting Drug¡®, the tumors in these animals have significantly reduced in size, and no major side effects. have been observed. This further confirms the drug¡¯s safety and efficacy. However, it will still be some time before this drug can be brought to market,¡± she concluded.
Caroline¡¯s presentation generated great interest among the audience, with many people eager to learn more about the ¡°Long-
acting Drug¡°.
She patiently answered each question.
As the conference progressed, discussions about the ¡°Long¨Cacting Drug¡± became increasingly intense. Even after the conference concluded, the audience seemed eager for more information.
The conference was not solely focused on drug research. advancements. High¨Cprofile figures from Saintornia were also in attendance. Drug development required significant funding, and potential sponsors could greatly alleviate the financial burden of
research.
After the conference ended, Caroline walked over to N with a smile and asked, ¡°N, how did I do? Did I seem too nervous?¡±
N shook her head and answered seriously, ¡°Not at all, Caroline. You did great.¡±
A brief sh of regret appeared in N¡¯s eyes. If she hadn¡¯t abandoned her rmendation to stay in academia and returned to Saintornia, she might have been among them now.
However, she quickly dismissed that thought¨Cstarting over was still
possible.
Caroline smiled, about to speak, when a gentle female voice called from behind her, ¡®Caroline,e over here. I want to introduce you to a few people.¡±
They all turned to see who had spoken and saw Damon and the others standing next to Caroline¡¯s mentor.
N¡¯s expression remained calm. Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
Melody, standing beside her, couldn¡¯t help but whisper as Caroline walked away, ¡°N, do you think Mr. Sumner is doing this on purpose? He knew you¡¯d be here, so he brought Reba to rub it in your face!¡±
N nced at Melody¡¯s indignant expression and managed a small smile before dismissing the idea. ¡°You¡¯re overthinking it. I¡¯m not that important. One of the purposes of this conference is to attract funding for research. Mr. Sumner was probably invited for that reason.¡±
CHAPTER 350
¡°Oh, okay,¡± Melody replied.
N looked away, her expression calm. ¡°Let¡¯s go.¡±
Even after they left the venue, Melody remained visibly excited. N, thank you so much for today! After listening to the conference, I¡¯m even more determined to pursue a career in drug research.¡±
Seeing Melody¡¯s flushed cheeks and bright, sparkling eyes, N couldn¡¯t help but smile. ¡°What made you suddenly think of this?¡±
Previously, when their experiments kept failing, Melody had been noticeably down for a few days, feeling frustrated. N had feared she might give up, but Melody persisted and now seemed even moremitted to this path.
¡°I heard Caroline say that their experiments failed over a thousand times, but they still kept going. I think that¡¯s amazing. I want to be like them¨Cstanding up there someday, sharing my experiences,¡± Melody gushed.
She looked a little embarrassed at this point. ¡°I¡¯ve never really stuck with anything before. Now I want tomit to drug research.¡±
N nodded. ¡°As long as you¡¯ve thought it through.¡±
¡°N, let me treat you to lunchter as a thank¨Cyou for bringing me to the conference,¡± Melody offered.
¡°No need. I have another appointment,¡± N declined.
¡°Okay, then,¡± Melody conceded.
After Melody left, N went straight to the parking lot to wait for Caroline in her car.
+25
It took more than half an hour for Caroline and Damon¡¯s group to finish their conversation at the venue.
As Caroline walked to the parking lot, texting N, she unexpectedly ran into Damon¡¯s group again at the elevator.
Reba spoke gently with a smile. ¡°Ms. Lovell, we¡¯re heading out for lunch. If you¡¯re free, would you like to join us?¡±
After reading N¡¯s message, Caroline put away her phone and looked at Reba. ¡°Thanks for the invitation, Ms. Austen, but I already have ns for lunch.¡±
A sh of disappointment crossed Reba¡¯s face, as if she regretted missing out. ¡°Oh, that¡¯s too bad. I was hoping to chat with you more. I feel like we get along and would like to be friends.¡±
Caroline didn¡¯t believe Reba genuinely wanted to be friends. Her real motive was likely that Caroline¡¯s drug research might help with
her illness.
¡°I¡¯m usually busy with experiments, but if you need anything, you can always message me. I¡¯ll reply when I can,¡± Caroline said.
¡°I will, as long as I¡¯m not bothering you,¡± Reba replied.
¡°Not at all,¡± Caroline assured her.
As they spoke, the elevator arrived. They all stepped inside, and Caroline pressed the button for the basement level.
Reba continued chatting with Caroline about drug development.
Soon, the elevator doors opened again.
Reba¡¯s smile froze when she saw the person standing outside. N?velDrama.Org owns this text.
N hadn¡¯t expected Caroline to be with Damon and the others, and surprise shed in her eyes. However, she quickly regained herposure.
Damon, who had been wearing an indifferent expression, was about to say something when Caroline walked over to N.
¡°N, have you been waiting long?¡± Caroline asked.
N smiled and shook her head. ¡°Not at all. Shall we go?¡±
¡°Sure,¡± Caroline said, turning back to Damon and his group. ¡°Mr. Sumner, Mr. Preston, Ms. Austen, I¡¯ll be going now. Maybe we can have lunch together some other time.¡±
Before Damon could respond, Reba spoke slowly. ¡°Ms. Lovell, I didn¡¯t know you knew Ms. Jayston.
Caroline paused for a moment. ¡°N is my junior from university. We¡¯re pretty close. Why? Do you know each other?¡±
Reba¡¯s smile was slightly forced, her gaze holding a hint of something unreadable. ¡°Well¡ not really.¡±
CHAPTER 351
Chapter 351
Caroline couldn¡¯t shake the feeling that something was off. She turned back to N with a questioning look, but N showed no reaction.
N simply said, ¡°Let¡¯s go. We¡¯re going to bete for our reservation.¡±
With that, N took Caroline by the arm and headed toward the parking lot, offering no further exnation.
Reba bit her lip, unable to resist ncing at Damon.
When she saw his gaze fixed on N¡¯s departing figure, she dug her nails into her palms. Jealousy bloomed like wild grass in her heart, intensifying her dislike for N.
She lowered her eyes, masking her emotions perfectly.
¡°Damon¡ Ms. Lovell is good friends with Ms. Jayston. Ms. Jayston doesn¡¯t like me. Do you think she¡¯ll speak poorly of me to Ms. Lovell? If Ms. Lovell starts to dislike me too¡¡± she muttered.
Her hesitant tone caused Damon to frown.
¡°I¡¯ve already agreed to invest in theirb. Whether she likes you or not, theirtest anti¨Ccancer drug will still be avable to you,¡± Damon replied.
Reba¡¯s gaze darkened due to Damon¡¯s attempt to defend N, her weak smile betraying her emotions.
¡°I understand,¡± she said. N?velDrama.Org holds ? this.
Nathaniel, who disliked seeing Reba so submissive, spoke up coldly. ¡°If N speaks poorly of you to Caroline, it just shows she¡¯s not a good person.¡±
As soon as he said that, he felt the temperature drop. He looked up to see Damon¡¯s dark, stormy eyes and
frowned.
¡°Damon, did I say something wrong?¡± Nathaniel asked,
Damon replied, ¡°You have no right to judge her. Besides, I¡¯m the one who wronged her.¡±
Nathaniel found thisughable. ¡°What do you mean you wronged her? Don¡¯t forget, she¡¯s the one who got your brother thrown in jail. If you weren¡¯t protecting her, given your father¡¯s methods, do you think she¡¯d still be alive?¡±
¡°This is between her and me. It¡¯s not your ce to judge. Don¡¯t let me hear you speak ill of her again,¡± Damon dered.
Realizing that Damon was genuinely angry, Nathaniel felt his anger re up. Was their friendship over the years worth less than N?
¡°And if I insist?¡± he demanded.
¡°Then we have nothing more to do with each other.¡± With these cold words, Damon turned and walked
away.
His voice wasn¡¯t loud, but Nathaniel knew he was serious.
¡°Fine, Damon. If you value some woman over our years of brotherhood, then I have nothing more to say!¡± Nathaniel eximed.
Seeing Nathaniel about to leave, Reba quickly stepped in front of him. ¡°Nathaniel, don¡¯t act rashly.¡±
Nathaniel snickered, his voiceced with anger. ¡°Who¡¯s acting rashly?¡±
Reba sighed and lowered her voice. ¡°It¡¯s not worth ruining your friendship over N. Do it for me, please. I don¡¯t want my return to cause a rift between you two.¡±
¡°What does this have to do with you? This is all because of that woman!¡± Nathaniel huffed.
¡°But it¡¯s because I returned and Damon and I got back together that he broke up with N. That¡¯s why you two are fighting.¡± Reba reasoned.
Seeing the guilt and remorse in Reba¡¯s eyes, Nathaniel felt both heartache and helplessness.
¡°Reba, you¡¯re always thinking of others. You and Damon were meant to be together. Getting back together is only natural. You have nothing to feel guilty about,¡± he said.
CHAPTER 352
Chapter 352
Reba smiled bitterly. ¡°I¡¯ve got less than three months left. There¡¯s no point in fighting over these things. After three months, I¡¯ll give Damon back to her
As soon as she finished speaking, Nathaniel grabbed her hand and said seriously, ¡°Reba, don¡¯t talk like that. Damon has already invested in Caroline¡¯s researchb, and the drug is close to being developed. You¡¯re going to be okay!¡±
Reba¡¯s gaze was wry. ¡°The drug is still in the trial phase. No one can be sure if it will work, and there might be side effects.¡±
Seeing her so pessimistic, Nathaniel felt a pang in his heart, his eyes instantly filling with pain.
¡°Reba, you used to be so optimistic. Now you¡¯ve be so negative, which isn¡¯t like you. You should be strong and resilient, never letting anything get you down. And I believe that drug will work!¡± he encouraged.
Reba lowered her eyes and said softly, ¡°I want to be strong, but I just can¡¯t. Besides¡ Damon doesn¡¯t love me anymore. He only agreed to get back together with me out of guilt. Even if I get better, he won¡¯t fall back in love with me. Surviving wouldn¡¯t mean much.¡±
Nathaniel¡¯s gaze turned cold. He looked at her and said slowly, ¡°As long as you get better, I¡¯ll help you. I won¡¯t let anyone stand in the way of you and Damon being together!¡±
By ¡°anyone¡°, he clearly meant N.
A strange look shed in Reba¡¯s eyes at Nathaniel¡¯s ruthless gaze. She asked softly, ¡°Really?¡±
¡°Really,¡± Nathaniel assured.
If N tried to stop Reba from being with Damon, he wouldn¡¯t hesitate to deal with her.
¡°Thank you, Nathaniel!¡± Reba threw herself into his arms and hugged him tightly, her body trembling slightly with emotion.
Nathaniel stiffened. It took him a long time to finally raise his hand and gently pat her back. As he felt Reba¡¯s soft body pressed against him, his heart was filled with both sweetness and pain.
He wanted to hold her but couldn¡¯t. It was all because she was his best friend¡¯s girlfriend, and¡ she didn¡¯t love him.
On the way to the restaurant, Caroline couldn¡¯t help but ask N, ¡°Why was Ms. Austen acting so weird toward you earlier in the parking lot? Did you two have some sort of falling out?¡±
N¡¯s expression remained calm. ¡°No. It¡¯s just that I work at Mr. Sumner¡¯spany now.¡±
Caroline¡¯s eyes widened in surprise. ¡°You never mentioned that before. But Mr. Sumner is impressive. I heard he built Prospectus Technology from the ground up into the giantpany it is today. And he¡¯s so handsome. It¡¯s a shame he has a girlfriend. Although¡ even if he didn¡¯t have a girlfriend, he wouldn¡¯t be
someone we could reach.¡±
She continued talking to herself, unaware that N¡¯s grip on the steering wheel had tightened
$75 RCANUS
subconsciously.
It was so obvious to everyone else, yet Caroline was only now beginning to see it clearly, N?vel(D)rama.Org''s content.
Stopping at a red light, N turned to Caroline. ¡°Caroline, let¡¯s not talk about irrelevant people. Tell me more about what your life has been like doing experiments these past few years, I¡¯m more interested in that.¡±
Caroline smiled. ¡°Okay. My life these past few years hasn¡¯t been much different from when we were in university. It¡¯s just been a cycle of sses, meals,b work, and sleep. But doing experiments is a lot harder than it was in university. Things go wrong all the time¡¡±
N listened intently, asionally asking Caroline questions.
By the time they finished lunch, it was already 2:00 p.m.
Caroline¡¯s flight back to Capitarnia was at 8:00 p.m., and she still needed to return to the hotel to pack. N drove her straight there.
As Caroline exited the car, she couldn¡¯t hold back and asked the question she had been keeping in her heart, ¡°N, about what I mentioned before¡ Have you made up your mind?¡±
N nodded. ¡°Yeah, I¡¯m nning to go to grad school.¡±
CHAPTER 353
Chapter 353
Caroline paused before smiling. ¡°Alright. I¡¯ll be waiting for you in Capitarnia.¡±
¡°Sure,¡± N promised.
After Caroline entered the hotel, N drove off.
Halfway home, her phone suddenly rang.
Seeing that it was an unknown number, she decided not to answer. The caller didn¡¯t try again but sent a text message instead.
It wasn¡¯t until N parked downstairs that she checked the message.
[Ms. Jayston, my father was one of the victims of the Harris Pharmaceuticals incident six years ago. I saw in the news that you found evidence and sent Cyrus Sumner to the police. I also have some evidence and would like to give it to you. Please contact me if you see this message.]
After reading the text, N tightened her grip on her phone but didn¡¯t rush to reply.
Cyrus had been in custody for a while, and this person was just now reaching out. It seemed a bit suspicious.
After a moment of consideration, she decided to ignore it for the time being.
If the other party was genuinely desperate, they would reach out again. No matter their intention, it was better to be cautious.
For the rest of the weekend, N stayed at home studying.
Gabriel sent her several messages inviting her to join him for a meal. Initially, she responded, but eventually, she began to ignore them.
On Monday morning, just as N was leaving her apartment, she found Gabriel waiting by the elevator.
She greeted him coolly and was about to leave when he stepped before her. ¡°N, am I bothering you?¡±
Understanding he was referring to herck of response to his messages, she nodded. ¡°A little.¡±
Gabriel looked momentarily taken aback, then his eyes softened with a hint of indulgence and helplessness. ¡°I understand. I won¡¯t bother you again.¡±
¡°Thank you.¡± With that, N turned and left without another word.
After she drove away, Gabriel made a phone call, his voice as gentle as ever. ¡°How did it go with what I asked you to do?¡±
A gruff, low voice answered from the other end, ¡°I called her, but she didn¡¯t pick up. Then I sent a text, but it¡¯s been more than a day, and she still hasn¡¯t responded.¡±
Gabriel narrowed his eyes. ¡°Keep trying to contact her. Once this is over, I¡¯ll send your daughter abroad for treatment.¡±
Gabriel hung up, put away his phone, and smirked.
On her way to the office, N received a call from Vrie.
¡°N, you won¡¯t believe this!¡± Vrie eximed.
Curious, N raised an eyebrow. ¡°What is it?¡±
¡°After rk took over his father¡¯spany, he used his connection as Damon¡¯s nephew to trick severalpanies into signing contracts. The executives thought they were signing deals with Prospectus Technology, but it turns out it was just rk¡¯s smallpany. Now people are starting to realize something¡¯s off, and some are threatening to sue him,¡± Vrie exined.
N frowned. ¡°How could those executives be so careless? Didn¡¯t they notice the contracts were with the wrongpany?¡±
Vrie borated, ¡°He forged the contracts. The paperwork said Prospectus Technology, but all the dealings were actually handled by people from hispany.¡±
¡°Isn¡¯t he afraid of getting caught?¡± N asked, surprised that rk would dare to pull off something like
this.
It was eye¨Copening.
¡°I guess he didn¡¯t think he¡¯d get caught. Who knows how this will y out now? I¡¯ll let you know if I hear anything new,¡± Vrie offered.
wasn¡¯t particrly concerned about what happened to rk. After all, they had nothing to do with
other anymore. N?velDrama.Org holds ? this.
What N hadn¡¯t expected was that rk woulde to her for help.
¡°N, for the sake of what we had, can you please help me? Talk to Uncle Damon for me and ask him to assist me this one time?¡± he pleaded.
CHAPTER 354
Chapter 354
+25
Seeing rk¡¯s pleading look, N wondered how he had the nerve to seek her out. And to ask her to help for the sake of the love they once shared?
If she could go back in time, she would have thrown the flowers right back at him and told him to get lost when he confessed his feelings.
¡°I can¡¯t help you. You caused this, and you should face the consequences,¡± she said.
She brushed past him and headed for the elevator.
N had barely taken two steps when he grabbed her hand.
rk¡¯s eyes were bloodshot, and his once¨Chandsome face was contorted with rage, making him look somewhat terrifying.
¡°N, are you really this heartless? When we divorced, you took over 700,000 dors from me, and now you won¡¯t even ask Damon for help? I¡¯ll ask you one more time: Are you going to help me or not?!¡± rk¡¯s eyes were wide with resentment, and his breathing was ragged.
N¡¯s heart sank.
rk was clearly agitated. Who knew what he might do if she refused?
¡°Fine¡ I¡¯ll talk to him for you. Just calm down¡¡± she coaxed.
rk hesitated, skeptical. ¡°Really?¡±
N nodded, trying to keep him calm.
¡°Really, I¡¯ll go see him right now,¡± she said.
rk seemed to rx a little, but then he remembered how she had tricked him before, and his anger red up again. ¡°You¡¯re lying! You¡¯ve lied to me before!
Seeing the dangerous look in his eyes, N involuntarily trembled.
¡°I¡¯m telling the truth. If you don¡¯t believe me, you cane with me,¡± she said.
rk smirked. ¡°Yeah, I think I should go with you.¡±
N thought she had him calmed down. Just as she was about to breathe a sigh of relief, she felt the cold edge of a knife against her waist. N?vel(D)rama.Org''s content.
It was chilly that morning, so she had thrown on a coat before leaving. Now, with rk holding the knife against her waist, it looked as though he was simply putting his arm around her.
N cursed inwardly. rk was truly insane!
¡°What are you doing?¡± she asked.
¡°I don¡¯t trust you. And how do I know what you¡¯ll do when you see Damon? This way, I can make sure you¡¯ll really plead for me,¡± rk exined.
N¡¯s palms were sweaty with nerves.
12
With rk already threatening her with a knife, there was no telling what else he might do.
¡°I can only ask him to help you, but we¡¯re not together anymore. He¡¯s involved with Reba now, so he probably won¡¯t listen to me,¡± N rified.
¡°Don¡¯t worry. He will listen to you. Stop talking and move!¡± rk ordered, pulling her toward the elevator.
From a distance, they appeared to be a couple walking closely together.
In the basement, several Prospectus Technology employees discreetly took photos while waiting for the elevator and shared them in thepany group chat. Soon, gossip began to spread.
[No way, is N really that shady? She just broke up with Mr. Damon, and now she¡¯s back with her ex- husband¡]
[If I remember correctly, her ex¨Chusband is already remarried. So, does that mean she¡¯s willingly being the other woman?]
[She sure has some tricks, huh? ying both Sumner men like this.]
Before long, the photo reached Damon¡¯s phone.
Seeing the two of them looking so close, his face darkened immediately.
He stood up, about to go downstairs and confront N, when Spencer knocked and entered the office.
¡°Mr. Damon¡ Ms. Jayston and Mr. rk are here¡¡± Spencer informed cautiously.
Damon frowned and said coldly, ¡°Let them in!¡±
As N and rk entered the office, Damon immediately sensed something was off.
CHAPTER 355
Chapter 355
Although rk was holding N, her displeasure was evident.
Clearly, she was unhappy with the situation. Additionally, his hand was concealed inside her coat, which seemed highly suspicious.
¡°What are you doing here?¡± Damon demanded.
His cold gaze settled on rk as he tapped lightly on the desk, emanating an oppressive aura.
rk leaned closer to N and whispered, ¡°Speak.¡±
His hand, hidden behind N, shifted slightly, causing her to go rigid. N?velDrama.Org holds ? this.
At that moment, Damon finally realized what felt so off
His eyes turned icy as he fixed his sharp gaze on rk. It was as if it could cut through him at any
moment.
*rk, it seems you really want to join your father!¡± Damon threatened.
Intimidated by Damon¡¯s aura, rk¡¯s hand on N¡¯s waist trembled.
He took a deep breath and forced himself to meet Damon¡¯s eyes. ¡°Uncle Damon, if I hadn¡¯t done this, you wouldn¡¯t have agreed to see me, right?¡±
¡°I¡¯m giving you three seconds to let her go. Otherwise, I¡¯ll ensure you understand the meaning of regret!¡±
Damon warned.
Instead ofplying, rk merely smirked. ¡°Uncle Damon, the worst mistake you can make in a
negotiation is acting rashly. Revealing your hand too early only puts you at a disadvantage.¡±
¡°What do you want?¡± Damon demanded.
¡°You should already know what I want. Why bother asking rk retorted.
Damon picked up the internal line. ¡°Contact the individuals in charge of the contracts rk stole. Tell them that if they agree to drop the matter, Prospectus Technology will continue to work with them and increase their profit margin by 10%.*
N froze. She hadn¡¯t expected Damon to make such a decisive move on her behalf. She was overwhelmed with mixed emotions.
After hanging up, Damon looked up at rk with a steely gaze. ¡°Now, will you let her go?¡±
*Don¡¯t be in such a rush, Uncle Damon. My secretary will call me when everything is settled. I¡¯ll release her then, rk replied.
Damon remained silent, his gaze chillingly cold. If rk weren¡¯t his nephew, and if anyone else dared to threaten him like this, Damon would ensure they didn¡¯t live to see another day.
Soon enough, rk¡¯s phone rang. He did not answer it, merely smiling at Damon. ¡°Uncle Damon, you really keep your word. It seems N is very important to you.¡±
Although he was smiling, there was no warmth in his eyes.
¡°I don¡¯t want to hear any of this nonsense,¡± Damon retorted.
rk chuckled and removed his hand from N¡¯s waist.
In the next moment, Damon¡¯s expression darkened. ¡°You yed me!¡±
What rk had been holding wasn¡¯t a knife or anything dangerous¨Cit was merely a stic cake knife.
N was stunned, her frown deepening. The sensation she had felt against her waist shouldn¡¯t havee from a stic knife.
However, if rk had truly been holding a knife, she still couldn¡¯t have acted rashly. Who knew what he might do in a fit of madness?
¡°Uncle Damon, I didn¡¯t have a choice. If you had been willing to help me, none of this would have happened today,¡± rk insisted.
Damon sneered, unwilling to waste any more words on him. ¡°Get out!¡±
He would ensure rk learned the cost of ying games with him.
rk¡¯s expression remained calm as he said slowly, ¡°Uncle Damon, my dad¡¯spany is all I have left. If you go after it, I can¡¯t promise I won¡¯t do something drastic.¡±
¡°Are you threatening me?¡± Damon¡¯s voice was low.
CHAPTER 356
rk shook his head. ¡°How could that be? I just hope you understand that someone with nothing can be fearless.¡±
He turned and left after speaking.
Back in the car, rk shook his sleeve, and a knife fell out, its de glinting coldly.
He picked it up and sneered. If Damon hadn¡¯t agreed earlier, this knife would have been pressed against N¡¯s neck.
He wouldn¡¯t have done that unless absolutely necessary, though. After all, N was once his wife.
Only N and Damon remained in the office.
The room fell into silence, with neither of them speaking.
N took a deep breath and looked at Damon. ¡°Mr. Sumner, I¡¯m really sorry about this morning. I didn¡¯t expect him to show up and use me to threaten you.¡±
Damon frowned. ¡°You don¡¯t need to apologize for what rk did.¡±
Her pale face clearly indicated rk¡¯s actions had shaken her..
¡°I also caused you trouble, and I appreciate you saving me. If there¡¯s nothing else, I¡¯ll get back to work now,¡± N added.
As she turned to leave, Damon¡¯s cold voice stopped her. ¡°Wait!¡±
N tightened her grip on the door handle, her heart racing as she heard his footsteps behind her. When she turned to speak, her chin was grabbed.
She frowned and instinctively tried to push Damon away. But her wrist was caught, and she was pressed against the door.
¡°Mr. Sumner¡ please let me go¡¡± she requested.
Damonughed bitterly at her distant gaze. ¡°Try calling me ¡®Mr. Sumner¡® one more time.¡±
N¡¯s eyes shed with anger. Her voice turned icy. ¡°Mr. Sumner, I¡ª¡±
Before she could finish, Damon¡¯s kiss came.
She instinctively turned her face away, his lips brushing against her cheek.
Anger sparked in her eyes. The humiliation was overwhelming. Damon clearly saw her resistance but still showed no respect.
N pressed her lips together and looked up at him, her voice steady. ¡°Damon, do you see me as just a ything?
¡°Even if I¡¯ve broken up with you and want nothing more to do with you, you still do whatever you want with me, and I have no choice but to ept?¡±
Despite N¡¯s deep hurt, her tears swirled in her eyes, stubbornly refusing to fall.
Damon suddenly felt a wave of regret and pain, more intense than when she had broken up with him.
¡°N, I¡¯m sorry,¡± he said. N?velDrama.Org owns this text.
He reached out to wipe the tears from her eyes, but she pulled away.
¡°If you really felt sorry, you wouldn¡¯t keep bothering me,¡± N said.
Damon sighed. He had intended to keep his distance for the next three months, but seeing rk¡¯s hand on her waist earlier had nearly driven him mad with jealousy.
He realized he was truly in love with her.
¡°My rtionship with her isn¡¯t real,¡± he tried to exin.
Upon seeing the sincerity in his eyes, N¡¯s expression turned cynical. She coldly looked away. ¡°Whether it¡¯s real or not doesn¡¯t concern me. Please let me go.¡±
Damon leaned in slowly and rested his forehead against hers, his tone coaxing. ¡°N, don¡¯t be so cold. I¡¯l tell you everything, okay? The reason I got back with her is that-¡±
¡°Stop!¡± N interrupted. ¡°No matter the reason, the fact that you¡¯re getting back with her is the reality. Whether it¡¯s real or not doesn¡¯t matter to me. I don¡¯t want to be involved in your rtionship. If you keep bothering me, I¡¯ll have to resign.¡±
Damon¡¯s expression darkened. ¡°I won¡¯t agree to that!¡±
¡°I¡¯m not an employee of Prospectus Technology. As long as Park Pharmaceuticals agrees, it¡¯s fine,¡± N stated.
Seeing her resolute expression, Damon felt as though he was truly losing her.
¡°If I stop bothering you, will you not resign?¡± he asked.
N had intended to say she would still resign once she got into a graduate program in Capitarnia, but that was her matter and not something she needed to share.
CHAPTER 357
Chapter 357
¡°Maybe,¡± N answered.
Damon released her and stepped back, his expression returning to its usual coldness. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only
¡°Alright. I won¡¯t bother you again until I¡¯ve sorted things out with Reba,¡± he promised.
After N left, Damon dialed an international number. How¡¯s the investigation progressing?¡±
¡°Mr. Sumner, we¡¯re still looking into it. However, Ms. Austen¡¯s previous hospital was a private facility with strict privacy protections, so I haven¡¯t been able to ess her medical records yet,¡± the other party reported.
¡°I want results within three days!¡± Damon barked.
After ending the call, Damon set his phone down, his eyes icy with frustration. Reba had better not be lying to him!
Spencer knocked and entered the office with several documents. ¡°Mr. Sumner, these are the files for this afternoon¡¯s meeting.¡±
¡°Mm.¡± Damon nced up and said in a low voice, ¡°Send someone to keep an eye on rk. Make sure he doesn¡¯t get a chance to approach N again.¡±
Spencer hesitated for a moment before speaking cautiously. ¡°Mr. Sumner, what about today¡¯s events? If Prospectus Technology offers a 10% discount, there will be no profit at all.¡±
Damon¡¯s expression remained frosty. ¡°Of course, this matter isn¡¯t over.¡±
¡°Understood,¡± Spencer replied.
As he left the office, he immediately dispatched someone to monitor rk.
Reba was sitting on the sofa, knitting a scarf in the living room of Damon¡¯s vi when her phone rang.
Upon seeing the number, her expression darkened. She picked up the phone and walked to the end of the hallway.
¡°What¡¯s the matter? Didn¡¯t I tell you not to contact me again? I¡¯m back in the country. I will not return to Meristate, nor will I be threatened by you!¡± She deliberately lowered her voice, but her disgust and impatience were unmistakable.
A low, mockingugh came from the other end. ¡°Someone¡¯s checking your medical records. If I weren¡¯t keeping things under control, do you know what would be happening right now?¡±
Reba¡¯s face turned pale. ¡°Who¡¯s checking on me?¡±
Upon hearing her panic, the man¡¯s amusement grew. ¡°I don¡¯t know, but it¡¯s probably someone from here. I¡¯m covering for you this time because of our past. Next time, who knows?¡±
Revulsion shed in Reba¡¯s eyes. If he hadn¡¯t filmed that video while she was under anesthesia, she wouldn¡¯t be threatened intoplying with his demands.
The thought of that dark experience made her feel sick If she could, she would love to end the person on the other end of the line.
¡°Don¡¯t forget, you once promised me-¡±
Before she could finish, the man interrupted, ¡°You said once¡®, but now you¡¯re back in the country. Otherwise, we could have discussed things ¡®deeper¡®. If I¡¯m in a good mood, I may continue to keep your secret.¡±
Reba bit her lip hard and said coldly, ¡°I¡¯m not going back!¡±
¡°Hahaha, I know. After all, you¡¯d do anything to escape from me. Now that you¡¯ve finally managed to get away, why would youe back?¡± the man replied.
¡°What do you want from me?¡± Reba asked.
¡°Send me a video daily, and I¡¯ll keep your medical records hidden. If you ever stop, the records will be made public,¡± the man demanded.
The videos he wanted were far from ordinary.
Reba suppressed her nausea and said through gritted teeth, ¡°Fine.¡±
¡°Send one now. You know I don¡¯t have much patience. You have ten minutes,¡± the man ordered.
Enduring humiliation and disgust, Reba recorded and sent the video.
The man quickly responded with a satisfied emoji.
Reba stared at the emoji with cold eyes. It was clear that this problem needed to be dealt with once and for all.
After a moment of thought, her mind shed with the image
CHAPTER 358
Chapter 358
When N arrived at theb, it was close to the start of her shift.
She had just changed into her whiteb coat and walked in when she saw Melody with her head down, furiously typing on her phone, her face flushed.
Hearing footsteps, Melody suddenly looked up. Upon seeing N, she quickly hid her phone behind her, looking somewhat guilty.
¡°N¡¡± she said.
¡°Mm, let¡¯s get ready for the experiment,¡± N replied.
Noticing N¡¯s nonchnce, Melody couldn¡¯t help but think about the harshments she had seen in the group chat about N, which made her blood pressure rise.
They hadn¡¯t interacted with N personally, so why were they speaking about her like that? Moreover, Melody was certain N wouldn¡¯t get involved with someone like rk again.
However, the leaked photo did seem to show rk hugging N, and they did appear quite intimate.
Melody wanted to ask N about it but feared N might think she didn¡¯t believe her, like those others. Her preupation with the issue made her slow in her work, often causing N to call her several times before she would respond.
After several attempts, N frowned, put down her equipment, and looked at Melody.
¡°Melody, what¡¯s wrong with you today? You seem distracted. If you¡¯re tired, you can rest in the office for a while and return when you¡¯re feeling better,¡± she suggested.
Focus was crucial for experiments, and Melody¡¯s current state would only slow down the process and increase the chance of errors.
Meeting N¡¯s calm eyes, Melody bit her lip and looked down. ¡°N, I¡¯m sorry, I¡¡±
¡°It¡¯s okay. If you¡¯re tired, just let me know next time. Don¡¯t push yourself. Go take a break,¡± N said gently, her tone showing no sign of me for the slowed progress.
Melody felt warmed by N¡¯s understanding and became even more determined about her thoughts. She looked up at N and said, ¡°N, I¡¯m so distracted today because of this photo¡¡±
Melody opened the photo from the group chat and handed her phone to N.
When N saw the photo, she frowned.
Before she could say anything, Melody interjected angrily, ¡°Someone from the PR department took this photo and posted it in thepany¡¯s group chat. Now, a lot of people in thepany¡¯s gossip group are bad¨Cmouthing you.
¡°They¡¯re iming you¡¯re trying to rekindle things with rk after being dumped by Mr. Damon and even calling you shameless. I was so upset that I ended up arguing with them. N?vel(D)rama.Org''s content.
¡°This issue has spread beyond thepany, and many people probably know about it by now.
+25
¡°N, what¡¯s really going on between you and rk? I believe you wouldn¡¯t get back together with him, but every time I try to exin, they just point to this photo¡¡±
Seeing Melody¡¯s anxious attempt to defend her, N felt a bit touched.
¡°Melody, thank you. You don¡¯t need to worry about this. I¡¯ll handle it,¡± N assured her.
Melody asked, ¡°So what¡¯s the real story behind this photo?¡±
N hesitated momentarily before replying, ¡°I can¡¯t tell you the full details right now. I¡¯m sorry.¡±
She couldn¡¯t be sure if the knife rk had pressed against her waist was real. She had been too nervous at the time, and it was possible she could have mistaken it.
If rk had used a stic knife for cutting cakes, it would have been apletely different situationpared to a real knife.
If N revealed the specifics now and it got out, rk might turn things around and make false usations, especially since no one had seen for sure whether the knife was real.
Upon seeing that N wasn¡¯t willing to speak, a trace of disappointment crossed Melody¡¯s eyes. Still, she forced a smile. ¡°Okay, no matter what, I believe in you.¡±
CHAPTER 359
Chapter 359
The two of them didn¡¯t discuss the matter further, and Melody quickly refocused on her experiments.
On his way back to thepany, rk received a call from Jordyn.
¡°rk, did you go see N?¡± Jordyn¡¯s tone was usatory and filled with anger.
rk frowned and replied coldly, ¡°Jordyn, have you forgotten your ce? You have no right to question me.¡±
¡°No right? Don¡¯t forget we¡¯re married now, and I¡¯m carrying your child! You were out in public hugging N -how can you treat me like this?¡± Jordyn cried.
rk let out a coldugh. ¡°You really think that just because we registered our marriage, you get to control my life? I can get a divorce just as easily as I got married. If you don¡¯t know your ce, feel free to leave!¡±
He ended the call without giving Jordyn a chance to respond, threw his phone onto the passenger seat, and drove the car with a scowl.
He was already regretting marrying Jordyn on impulse and the trouble it had caused.
As rk was contemting when to file for divorce, a sudden loud bang came from beneath his car. He was startled and mmed on the brakes.
Getting out, he saw that the tire had blown and frowned.
He was about to call for roadside assistance when a van pulled up beside him. Two burly men wearing masks got out and towered over him.
As they approached, rk felt a surge of unease. ¡°Who are you? What do you want-¡±
Before he could finish, the men grabbed him and shoved him into the van. The doors mmed shut, and the vehicle sped away.
Soon, Spencer reported the incident to Damon. ¡°Mr. Damon, Grand Azure¡¯s people took Mr. rk. They¡¯re likely still angry about being deceived and want to teach him a lesson.¡±
Spencer hesitated, ncing at Damon.
Despite his dislike for rk, Spencer knew Damon had already shed with Richard over N. If Richard learned that Damon didn¡¯t help rk, he might be even more disappointed.
¡°What do you want to say?¡± Damon asked.
¡°Since Mr. rk is your nephew, should we contact Grand Azure and ask them to issue just a warning?¡± Spencer suggested.
Damon¡¯s expression turned icy. ¡°Tell them to leave him breathing.¡±
Spencer said, ¡°Mr. Damon, if Mr. Richard finds out about this-¡± N?velDrama.Org owns this text.
*
¡°When did you be so talkative?¡± Damon interrupted.
Under Damon¡¯s cold stare, Spencer shuddered involuntarily and quickly lowered his head. ¡°I understand.¡±
After rk hung up, Jordyn tried calling him over a dozen times, but none of the calls went through. Just as she was about to throw her phone in frustration, it suddenly vibrated.
Her face brightened, but she frowned when she saw an unknown number. She hung up immediately. The unknown number kept calling, disrupting Jordyn¡¯s attempts to reach rk.
Finally, she answered in irritation. ¡°Are you crazy? I¡¯m not buying insurance or enrolling in any sses!¡±
There was a brief pause on the other end before a deep voice replied, ¡°Ms. Cheatham, if you don¡¯t want the truth about your baby not being rk¡¯s to get out,e to Room 1 at Pte Royale in one hour.¡±
CHAPTER 360
Chapter 360
Jordyn¡¯s eyes widened in shock.
¡°Who are you?! What nonsense are you talking about?¡± she cried out.
A lightugh came through on the other end of the line. ¡°Whether it¡¯s nonsense or not, you know in your heart. If I don¡¯t see you in an hour, be prepared to face the consequences.¡±
The call ended with a click, snapping Jordyn out of her daze. Her mind raced as she paced anxiously in the living room.
She had already dealt with Holden Vance, so there shouldn¡¯t be anyone else who knew about this. How could the caller possibly know?
If rk discovered that the child wasn¡¯t his he would certainly not let her off easily.
The more she thought about it, the more anxious she became.
There was no time to dwell on it. Pte Royale was at least a half¨Chour drive away. Regardless of whether the caller had real evidence, she had no choice but to go there.
Taking a deep breath to steady herself, Jordyn grabbed her car keys and headed out.
Forty minutester, Jordyn pulled up to the entrance of Pte Royale. As soon as she approached the door, a server came over.
¡°Ms. Cheatham, let me show you in,¡± the server said with a polite smile.
In a well¨Ctailored suit, the server kept his hands neatly sped in front of him.
Pte Royale was a high¨Cend restaurant in Saintornia.
rk had brought Jordyn there once for a business meeting. Back then, when they were just superior and subordinate, she had been stunned by the price of a single appetizer¨Cit was equivalent to several months of her sry.
Having just graduated and never been to a high¨Cend restaurant before, she had beenpletely unfamiliar with dining etiquette. The meal had been a disaster for her.
She had felt the disdainful nces from thepany¡¯s client and wished she could sink through the floor. Some had even suggested to rk, in front of her, that he should get a morepetent secretary. She had never been so embarrassed and had been certain rk would fire her the next day.
When the business deal fell through, Jordyn had felt it had been entirely her fault and kept apologizing to rk on their way back, pleading with him not to fire her.
Seeing her on the verge of tears, rk had gently assured her she wouldn¡¯t be fired and that the failed deal hadn¡¯t been her fault. He had urged her not to me herself.
Jordyn had never been treated so kindly before, and at that moment, she found herself falling in love with rk.
If it weren¡¯t for her being with rk for a year and still not getting pregnant, she wouldn¡¯t have¡ N?vel(D)rama.Org''s content.
Her thoughts darkened as she pondered this.
The person who had invited her must have been someone of considerable status. She couldn¡¯t understand why they hadn¡¯t simply informed rk about this matter directly.
After passing through a long corridor and a screen, Jordyn finally reached Room 1.
¡°Ms. Cheatham, we¡¯ve arrived,¡± the server announced.
Jordyn nodded and pushed the door open to enter.
The room¡¯s decor was simple, yet each piece of furniture was invaluable. The dining table and chairs, crafted from high¨Cquality wood, were worth hundreds of thousands.
Jordyn¡¯s gaze fell on the person seated in the center of the room, and her eyes widened in disbelief. ¡°It¡¯s you!¡±
Reba smiled. ¡°You seem quite surprised to see me, Ms. Cheatham.¡±
Jordyn sneered. ¡°Reba, if I remember correctly, I have nothing to do with you. Why have you called me here?¡±
Noting Jordyn¡¯s anger, Reba raised an eyebrow. ¡°You¡¯re already here, so why don¡¯t you have a seat? But I advise you to keep your temper in check. Otherwise, you¡¯ll be the one who suffers if I be upset.¡±
Jordyn gritted her teeth, considered her options, and finally took a seat.
CHAPTER 361
¡°What exactly are you trying to do?¡± Jordyn demanded.
Reba smiled with satisfaction. ¡°Ms. Cheatham, don¡¯t be upset. I¡¯m here to help you.
¡°Help me?¡± Jordyn looked at Reba as if she had just heard a bad joke, her gaze tinged with sarcasm. ¡°What exactly can you do to help me?¡±
¡°Help you be Mrs. Jordyn Sumner, of course,¡± Reba replied.
¡°We¡¯re already married. Do you want to see the marriage certificate? ¡°Jordyn shot back.
Reba regarded her indifferently, her tone light and airy. ¡°Aside from that piece of paper, what else do you have? As far as I know, none of the Sumners, including rk, seem to take you seriously.¡±
Jordyn clenched her hands tightly, her expression falling.
¡°Ms. Austen, perhaps you should focus on your issues. I¡¯ve heard your family background isn¡¯t exactly impressive. Whether you can secure that piece of paper is another matter entirely!¡± Rebal hissed.
Reba¡¯s calm demeanor faltered slightly, her gaze growing colder. ¡°It seems you¡¯re not interested in polite conversation.¡±
¡°I have nothing to say to you,¡± Jordyn retorted.
Reba nodded. ¡°Fine. Then let¡¯s discuss Holden Vance.¡± N?vel(D)rama.Org''s content.
Jordyn¡¯s face went pale at the mention of Holden. Her gaze shifted. to Reba, filled with disbelief. She knew about Holden!
Jordyn¡¯s hands trembled uncontrobly in fear.
Reba smiled with satisfaction. ¡°Don¡¯t be scared, Ms. Cheatham. As long as you listen to me, I can not only get the Sumners to acknowledge you but also keep your secret hidden.¡±
Jordyn remained silent, her gaze lowered as she appeared lost in thought.
Reba waited patiently, sipping her tea with a hint of mockery.
After some time, Jordyn finally looked up, clearly tempted. She craved the Sumners¡® recognition.
Although she was married to rk, the Sumners had never
requested to meet her, and rk didn¡¯t seem to care about her either.
Jordyn wasn¡¯t na?ve. She knew that rk might cast her aside once she had the baby. She needed to n for herself.
¡°Can you really help me?¡± she asked.
Reba nodded. ¡°Of course.¡±
After a moment of hesitation, Jordyn relented. ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll do it. What do I need to do?¡±
¡°You saw the photo of rk with N this morning, right? Use your status as rk¡¯s wife to make this public, showing that Nt deliberately interfered in your marriage with him,¡± Rebal instructed.
Jordyn¡¯s eyes turned icy. ¡°Blowing this up won¡¯t benefit me at all.¡±
Even though she was married to rk, many people remembered her previous role as his mistress, and N had evidence.
If this situation became widely known, she wouldn¡¯t be pitied¨Cshe¡¯d be publicly criticized.
¡°No wonder you¡¯ve been with rk for so long and still can¡¯t even get into the Sumners¡® circle,¡± Reba remarked.
Her sarcastic tone made Jordyn scowl. ¡°You think this idea of yours is so brilliant?¡±
Reba looked impatient. If it weren¡¯t for her own constraints, she wouldn¡¯t want to waste time on this self¨Cimportant fool.
¡°Very few people know about your marriage to rk, so the Sumners haven¡¯t acknowledged you. But once everyone knows about your marriage and your pregnancy with rk¡¯s child, the Sumners will have no choice but to acknowledge you, no matter how unhappy they might be,¡± Reba coaxed.
¡°And if things blow up, the Sumners will be embarrassed too. Do you really think they¡¯ll let me off the hook?¡± Jordyn shot back.
CHAPTER 362
¡°That¡¯s something to considerter, but whether you want to or not, you have to do it.¡± Reba¡¯s tone was charged with threats and audacity. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only
If Jordyn didn¡¯t follow her instructions, everything she had could be
at risk.
Seething with anger, Jordyn took a tense ten seconds before she coldly replied, ¡°Fine, I¡¯ll do what you say. But if you fail, I¡¯ll ensure Damon knows what you¡¯re really like!¡±
Jordyn was not fooled by Reba¡¯s innocent and fragile facade in front of Damon. If Damon knew how ruthless Reba was behind the scenes, would he still have feelings for her?
Reba¡¯s face hardened momentarily before she smirked again. Don¡¯t worry. As long as you follow my instructions, you¡¯ll get everything you want.¡±
That evening, a video from a million¨Cfollower influencer quickly soared to the top of the trending list.
In the video, Jordyn, with red eyes and tear¨Cstreaked cheeks, revealed that she was two months pregnant and pleaded with N to let rk go and stop bothering him.
The video ended with a paparazzi photo of rk ¡°embracing¡± N.
The video incited outrage, and many confusedizens in thements began attacking N.
[The mistress should just disappear People who destroy families
an hit flushing
Tsaw by some Maent Dat ]) samo ti trosati. ¡°They were intent tugong B
PHAN THY WS: Tistaken this formats amstress who
Simbed up the ranks How dare the make the vo
THE COOMERENDEs were chaotic Tiles with
ANENT
SOON JOITAT POStad te manage cenficate with Dari in ta
Sony but I¡¯m married to Dans. Regardless of the past Nas
actions now are destroying my family. Wyreationship with Dark is proached tw ave!]
Hetment received considerable summor our even more were mooking her for bem a mistress and still acing so arrogantly
The situation escted quickly, and Richard soon discovered the ful extent of the problem.
He was furious upon learning that Jordyn was causing trouble online and unting her and rk¡¯s manage certificate
Richard smashed his cup in frustration snaring Contact rk mmediately and have him bring that fool over
Despre his dissatisfaction with rk¡¯s previous marriage to N, at least N had never made such a public spectacle. Now, with Jordyn publicly arguing as rk¡¯s wife, it was a disgrace to the Summers!
The main evlily tried to reach rk, but he did not answer any of
Sur, Mr rk isn¡¯t picking up the mid reported
fichan¡¯s expression was stommy Go to thepany and bring him here by force if necessary And for the online situation, get Damon
Understood, the maid replied
As the maid contacted Damon, fichard helded several calls inquiring about the ordine scandal e answered briefly before hanging up, his anger mounting
These callers were merely feigning concern Behind the scenes, they were likely mocking him
Since founding the Summer Group, s had never felt so humiliated rk was proving to be a real disappointmentt
Meanziale, Melody, who was tidying up her squipment and
preparing to leave theboratory, sew the trending news and quickly informed Hyls
CHAPTER 363
H, kondyn is bangpletely obaratess the mayAG MED JAA
marriage and fresh
berbed
people are still supporting her ori
you The word art is the
sunning Weldy buffed
Sewing Metody¡¯s furious expression is reached out w ged her cheek. It¡¯s not worth getting upset over She¡¯ll regret it soon enough
Aren¡¯t you going to rify things Melody asked
Of course I will Don¡¯t worry about the just get ready to leple work,
Myle replied
After Melody left, Hyls checked everything one more time to contes there were no issues before locking up theb and heading out
As she turned around, she saw Gabbel standing a short distance away, obviously waiting for her
Noticing that H didn¡¯t seem inclined to speak with him, Gabriel took a few steps closer and asked, ¡°Did you see what¡¯s happening online?
N nodded. ¡®Yes What about it?¡±
Do you need me to help you deal with it?¡± he offered.
No. I can handle it myself, H sat
Gabriel sighed, about to say something, when footsteps echoed from the end of the hallway
Spencer approached H briskly Ms. Jayston, Mr. Sumner wants to see you¡®
Realizing it was likely about the video posted Jordyn, N paused for a moment before replying, ¡°I understand.¡±
She didn¡¯t look back at Gabriel and walked straight to the elevator.
When N entered Damon¡¯s office, he was reading through some documents.
¡°Give me two minutes,¡± he said.
N sat quietly on the sofa, waiting for him.
Damon signed thest document and then sat down across from
her.
¡°I¡¯ve already had the video Jordyn posted removed, and the trending topic has been suppressed. There won¡¯t be any more news online, so you don¡¯t need to worry about it affecting your life,¡± he said.
¡°Thank you, Mr. Sumner,¡± N replied.
Damon frowned. ¡°Must you be so formal with me?¡± Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
N didn¡¯t want to argue with him about this. She looked at him calmly. ¡°Mr. Sumner, do you need anything else?¡±
Damon remained silent, clearly annoyed. N ignored him, stood up. and turned to leave.
Just as she took a few steps, her wrist was suddenly grabbed.
Instinctively, she tried to pull away, but Damon pulled her into his embrace.
Coincidentally, the office door opened at that moment.
ww
We ce at han kam
????? ???? ??
Marco y de
dad de R
** Heat day
??? ?? ?
+25 BOWLS
As soon as N reached the ground floor, Reba stopped her. Her eyes were red, and it was clear she had been crying.
¡°Ms. Jayston, let¡¯s talk,¡± she requested.
CHAPTER 364
A looked at her indifferently. ¡°I don¡¯t have anything to talk to you
Resexow smiled bitterly. ¡°I know you hate me. After all, I returned to the country and took Damon away from you.¡±
¡°Ms. Austen, you¡¯re overthinking it. I don¡¯t like you, but it¡¯s not to the oint of hatred. If it¡¯s just your unrequited feelings, it wouldn¡¯t affect my rtionship with Damon N replied.
meel it was Damon who gave Reba the chance to interfere in their rtionship
Reber¡¯s face turned a bit pale. ¡°Ms. Jayston, you¡¯ll have a lifetime with Damon, but I only have three months. Can you let him be with me for these three months? After that I promise I¡¯ll leave and won¡¯t bother you again.¡±
Ne frowned. ¡°What you¡¯re saying now doesn¡¯t matter. I¡¯ve already broken up with him. Whether you¡¯re with him for three months or
ree years is no longer my concer
With that she walked past Reba and left.
scuss out to stop her when her phone rang.
Seeing it was Jordyn she frowned in annoyance but answered the call Wets going on?
Reba ste poing to get me killed! The Summers have sp
7 Video, and the buzz is gone. The Summers won¡¯t let ne off Jordyn oned
Whasreebbe afraid of? Everyone in Santoria knows youhe
married to rk now. If something happens to you, everyone will think the Summers are behind it,¡± Reba retorted.
Jordyn sneered. ¡°It¡¯s easy for you to say. If something happens to me, I won¡¯t let you off either!¡±
Before Reba could respond, Jordyn hung up.
Not long after the call ended, a strange noise came from the door.
Startled, Jordyn slowly approached the door and peered through the peephole but saw nothing.
Just as she was about to dismiss the sound as her imagination, something thudded heavily against the door.
¡°Who¡¯s there? Who¡¯s outside?!¡± Jordyn called out.
She was panic¨Cstricken and received no response.
As she hesitated over whether to call the police, a weak voice came through. ¡°Jordyn, open the door¡¡±
Recognizing rk¡¯s voice, Jordyn hurriedly opened the door.
¡°Ah!¡± Seeing the scene outside, Jordyn screamed in shock and instinctively took a few steps back.
rky on the ground, his suit in tatters, his face swollen and bruised. He looked nothing like the well¨Cdressed man he usually was.
At that moment, he could easily be mistaken for a homeless person.
Realizing the severity of the situation, Jordyn rushed to help him, tears streaming down her face.
125 US
¡®rk¡ who did this to you? Did you call the police?¡± she asked.
rk was barely conscious. Hearing her, he struggled to open his eyes and weakly said, ¡°Don¡¯t call the police¡ Use my phone to call Dr. Knox¡ Have hime over¡
¡°You¡¯re seriously injured! Why not call the police?!¡± Jordyn cried.
rk tried to respond, but as he opened his mouth, he coughed up a mouthful of blood.
Jordyn was horrified. ¡°Stop talking¡ I won¡¯t call the police¡ Let me help you to the sofa first¡¡±
After helping rk onto the sofa, Jordyn quickly grabbed his phone and called the doctor.
¡°Dr. Knox,e quickly¡ rk is seriously injured¡¡±
On her way home, N received another call from the unknown number she had been receiving earlier.
what the UR
ww
TMK faker at the het Neims,
by ve sang ge
The most wo AKG 10 MKM pin person to feedforable
AR NEKIKUTE VRYA¡¯S 1902 WG filed with
need to thank the meetings said
Orey, be
only be in Santors for three days, if you haven¡¯t
If N?vel(D)rama.Org''s content.
contacted me by then, Fil leave, Ryan informed her
Fine/ H replied
After hanging up, she immediately contacted Pete to check on ityan She wasn¡¯t going to trust him easily aftering this far
Pete got back to her quickly Ms stone found out that Pan Davey is currently at Saintoria Central Hospital His daughters
and he¡¯s here with her for a checkup He has a ticket to leave in
three days.¡±
N
CHAPTER 365
lowered her gaze s his father named Vincent Davey
sur
¡°Yes. His father was one of the victims in that ident six years ag ¡°Pete confirmed
¡°Alright, thank you for your help. Nyle said
Hanging up, she considered whether to meet Ryan. Although he was indeed the son of a victim, she couldn¡¯t be sure if he truly had evidence
After much deliberation, she decided against meeting him and sent him a text message
N: [Mr. Davey, I understand your concerns. However, now that the Sumners are involved, even if I receive the evidence, it won¡¯t be enough to put Cyrus behind bars. Ne decided not to meet with you. I hope you understand]
Upon receiving the message, Ryan swore angrily and called Gabriel directly. ¡°That woman is extremely cautious and refuses to meet with me. *
Gabriel frowned and replied coldly. ¡°She has a name.¡±
Ryan scoffed. ¡°ying the good guy now? Didn¡¯t you ask me to scheme against her?¡±
Gabriel¡¯s eyes shed with displeasure. ¡°Since she won¡¯t meet with
you find her at Prospectus Technolboy yourself.¡±
¡°Got it.¡± Pianrepied
By the time we went to bed trang, she still hadn¡¯t received a red from Pyan. She didn¡¯t dwell on it further, turned off her phone and went to see
The next moming as We parked her car, she heard TWD ACTOCKs on fer window.
Looking over, she saw an unfamiliar man outside. She cautiously rolled down the window just a bit
¡°Is there something you need?¡± she asked. R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only
¡°Ms. Jayston, I¡¯m Ryan Davey Since you wouldn¡¯t meet with me, I had toe find you in person, Ryan announced.
As they spoke, Damon¡¯s car entered the underground parking lot
Seeing the man leaning against W¡¯s car window, Damon fet a vague sense of familiarity, as if he had seen him somewhere before He frowned and said, ¡°Stop the car!
CHAPTER 366
Damon¡¯s ck Maybach pulled up next to N¡¯s car, drawing their
attention
N frowned slightly, while Ryan looked at the car with a puzzled expression
A momentter, Damon stepped out and walked toward them
Ryan was startled. He had met Damon once before, back when i worked for Cyrus. Although he doubted Damon would remember him, he feared that all his previous efforts might be in vain and that his ns for his daughter¡¯s treatment abroad could unravel if Damon recognized him in front of N
With this in mind, he quickly turned to N and said in a low voice, Ms. Jayston, let¡¯s stay in touch.¡±
Without waiting for her response, he swiftly turned and left. N?vel(D)rama.Org''s content.
As Ryan hurried away, Damon frowned but chose not to follow
Instead, he stopped beside N¡¯s car and asked, ¡°Who was that man standing by your car?¡±
He was certain he had seen that man somewhere before
N replied coolly, ¡°Just someone asking for directions.¡±
Damon didn¡¯t believe her. Who woulde into an underground parking lot just to ask for directions?
Unfazed by his skepticism, N headed toward the elevator
Ryan¡¯s behavior today had been noticeably strange. He had insisted on meeting in person to hand over evidence.
When the refused to hade to eat her humanit which armed
tos father but she needed to dracanja hea true mbentiuma
While Nys was lost in thought an ausblenty grabbed her wat
The actively pulled away n have a golvend. Please don¡¯t grab and asses me of being a mustres
at him colly M Summer you tushme fummume aada na I won¡¯t be able to shear my
Her indifference made Damon¡¯s gas darken it was clear the truly wanted to distance herself from hud
N I feel like I¡¯ve seen that pers before Are you sure you don¡¯t know him?¡± he pressed
don¡¯t know him if you don¡¯t bebe me, you can check for yourself. I don¡¯t want to exin it again¡® H replied
She then turned and walked towane elevator, focusing on a game on her phone clearly uninterested in continuing the conversation with Damon
As he watched her colt beautiful pastile, Damon subconsciously olenched that
Once side the elevator N couill feel Damen¡¯s gaze lingering
She frowned feeling ritated Since had chosen Reba, he shouldn¡¯t be acting so clingy toward her. It was his much he want both
The elevator¡¯s four indicator seem to be moving shower than ever
When the doors finally opened, she quickly walked out and disappeared around the corner.
Damon¡¯s expression turned icy as she left without a backward nce.
When Damon reached his office, he immediately called his
secretary, who was investigating in Meristate.
¡°How¡¯s the investigation into Reba¡¯s conditioning along?¡± he asked.
¡°Mr. Sumner, it¡¯s almostplete. I¡¯ve obtained Ms. Austen¡¯s medical records, and she was indeed diagnosed with a terminal illness a year ago. However, I found something unusual¨Cher ie is insufficient to cover her medical expenses, yet she has no debt. Investigating this will take a few more days,¡± the secretary answered.
¡°Understood. Please expedite,¡± Damon urged.
After hanging up, his expression darkened.
Reba had used the life¨Csaving favor she once did for him to rekindle their rtionship, asking him to spend herst three months with her.
He had proposed other ways to repay her, but she insisted that, with only three months left, things like houses or money no longer mattered to her. He could only agree, fully aware that this would hurt N.
CHAPTER 367
Damon¡¯s heart ached as he thought about Nya¡¯s indifference tovento
him today
Guift gnawed at him, apanied by a napomp sense that he might lose N for good if he didn¡¯t set clear boundaries with Reba
soon.
Pushing his turbulent thoughts aside, he picked up the intera ime and instructed, ¡°Find out who the man talking to Nye in the parking lot this morning was.¡±
After reviewing the surveince footage, Spencer quickly brought Ryan¡¯s information to Damon¡¯s office.
¡°Mr. Sumner, Ryan has had no prior interactions with Ms. Jayston, but his father was a victim in the Harris Pharmaceuticals incident he reported
Damon skimmed through Ryan¡¯s details, his brows knitting together as he paused on Ryan¡¯s photo.
Ryan had a distinctive appearance, marked by a mole at the left corner of his mouth¨Can easily recognizable feature for anyone who had seen him before.
Damon was certain he had encountered him somewhere before, though he couldn¡¯t recall where.
Setting the file aside, he instructed, ¡°Keep an eye on him. If he has any contact with N, notify me immediately.¡±
¡°Understood, Mr. Sumner,¡± Spencer replied.
After Spencer left, Damon tried to push his unease aside and
refocused on his work.
rk finally regained consciousness after being out for over ten
hours.
Jordyn, her eyes red and filled with tears, rushed to his bedside to help him sit up
¡°rk, you¡¯re finally awake. I was so worried¡ Who did this to you?¡±
she cried.
rk sat up slowly, wincing at the intense pain still radiating from his bandaged injuries. His eyes were filled with anger and
resentment.
Damon knew who had abducted him but had chosen to ignore it.
rk wouldn¡¯t forget that. Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
Seeing Jordyn¡¯s tear¨Cstreaked, anguished face softened rk¡¯s cold demeanor slightly.
¡°Jordyn, you must have been terrified yesterday,¡± he said, his voice tinged with concern.
Jordyn shook her head, tears continuing to flow. ¡°I¡¯m fine¡¡ I just want to know who did this to you. Why didn¡¯t you let me call the police?¡±
rk¡¯s eyes darkened with menace, ¡°Who did it doesn¡¯t matter. What matters is that this can¡¯t get out.¡±
He had illegally signed a contract with Grand Azure under
Prospectus Technology¡¯s name. Getting beaten up by Grand Azure¡¯s people was a fair trade¨Coff.
it be reported the incident, it could provoke them into investigating the fake contract, and he might end up in prison.
What rk resented most was that Damon could have easily intervened to prevent the attack but had instead chosen to let Grand Azure¡¯s people inflict just enough harm.
Damon didn¡¯t deserve to be a Summer after treating his own nephew so heartlessly!
Jordyn wanted to ask more questions but didn¡¯t dare to upon seeing rk¡¯s dark expression.
She wiped her tears and replied with a sob, ¡°Alright, I understand. Other than Dr. Knox, no one knows about you being injured. I¡¯ve also told Dr. Knox not to tell anyone.¡±
rk¡¯s gaze softened as he looked at her. ¡°Jordyn, I know you¡¯ve been through a lot
Jordyn shook her head. ¡°Were married. Don¡¯t say that. Ive made chicken soup. Let me get it for you
¡°Okay, rk agreed
As Jordyn left the bedroom to fetch the soup, rk¡¯s phone rang on the bedside table.
By the time Jordyn returned with the soup, she was met with rk¡¯s cold piercing gaze
He demanded. ¡°Jordyn what have you been up to these past few days N
CHAPTER 368
rk¡¯s gaze was so intense it felt like it could burn a hole throught Jordyn.
Jordyn¡¯s hand trembled uncontrobly as she held the soup, nearly causing the bowl to fall to the floor. She was certain that if rk weren¡¯t so badly injured, he would have gotten out of bed to strangle her and demand answers,
¡°C¨Crk, I was just so scared¡ You used to love N so much¡ I was afraid you might rekindle that old me¡¡± she stammered.
rk sneered. ¡°So, you decided to spill everything online without my permission? You went ahead and made our marriage public?¡±
His gaze, once tender, turned icy.
A wave of unfairness swelled inside Jordyn. If he hadn¡¯t been photographed hugging N, she might not have been threatened by Reba or insulted as a mistress online.
The more she thought about it, the more wronged she felt.
She looked at him with tearful eyes and said, ¡°If you weren¡¯t still involved with N and had answered my calls, none of this would have happened! Besides, is there something shameful about us getting married? Why can¡¯t I make it public?¡±
rk¡¯s fury boiled over. He had never regretted anything more than marrying Jordyn right after divorcing N, just to provoke her.
¡°I just divorced N and then married you. Now you¡¯ve made it public. Do you know how the board members and the Sumners will view me? You¡¯re such an idiot!¡± he growled.
His rage frightened Jordyn, causing her face to pale as she took an involuntary step back.
rk couldn¡¯t stand looking at her any longer and yelled, ¡°Get out!¡±
As the workday ended, N received another message from Ryan, asking her to meet near Prospectus Technology.
She was taken aback. Ryan¡¯s eagerness seemed unusual.
Previously, he had insisted on meeting her in person to provide evidence. However, if he truly had evidence, it would be safer to use email or another method to avoid detection by the Sumners.
Given that she had sent Cyrus to the police, it was logical to suspect she might be under the Sumners¡® surveince, making a face¨Cto¨Cface meeting risky.
The more N thought about it, the more something felt off about Ryan.
What could his real motive be for reaching out now?
Suddenly, she remembered his daughter¡¯s illness and
hospitalization. She quickly called Pete to inquire about Ryan¡¯s financial situation.
Pete confirmed that Ryan was likely approaching her for money, but not for thepensation from Vincent¡¯s ident.
The case hadn¡¯t even gone to trial yet¨Cit might not even go to trial, and it would be a long process. His daughter couldn¡¯t afford to wait that long.
N realized he must be working for someone else. With this rity,
she looked at Ryan¡¯s message coldly. A few minutester, she replied to him.
On the other end, Ryan was thrilled to receive N¡¯s response. She had finally taken the bait.
After work, N drove directly to the restaurant where she had arranged to meet Ryan.
The restaurant was near Prospectus Technology and was usually busy. Still, she wasn¡¯t taking any chances. She bought a stun gun for self¨Cdefense and contacted Pete to follow her.
When she arrived at the restaurant, Ryan was already waiting. Upon seeing N, he waved at her. N?vel(D)rama.Org''s content.
N approached Ryan calmly.
As soon as she sat down, he became visibly emotional and eximed, ¡°Ms. Jayston, you finally agreed to meet with me!¡±
Spencer knocked and entered Damon¡¯s office, speaking softly. ¡°Mr. Sumner, the person we sent to keep an eye on Ryan just reported that Ryan and Ms, Jayston are meeting at Nine Stream right now.¡±
CHAPTER 369
Demons expression dathered as he immediately not up
matructing coldly. Weep watching them and have the driver bring the car downstairs
He had an ominous feeling and his nincs were usually section
At the restaurant ways was dire hand over the evidence if we then
Ryan nodded. ¡°Of course
Me Davey you said you¡¯d only person. Can you gue it to me
He pulled a file from the tag and handed it to Wyle his expression som Vs Jayston, I hope you can use this evidence wisely and secure justice for my father
if ya hadn¡¯t suspected that Ryan fed uter or moves, she might have been deceived. He was ying the role of a mebless man seeking justice for the father perfectly¨Chis eyes red and full of frustation
Ang if the evidence is useful, i will give it to mywyer as soon as possible, Nyle replied
As she flipped through the file, her face turned pale, and her hands sembled
Are you sure this evidence is rear she asked
1 swear on my life that it is But if you don¡¯t believe me, there¡¯s nothing more I can do Ryan confreed
Nyle closed the file and looked up at tum
will hand it over to mywyer.¡±
Thank you, Ms. Jayston,¡± Ryan said R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only
On the way to the restaurant, Dame¡¯s anxiety grew stranger, his brows furrowing deeply
The moment the car stopped at Nin stream, he suddenly remembered where he had seen Ryan before
It was Ryan who had apanied Cyrus when he came to barrow money to deal with Harris Pharmaceuticals six years agel
Damon scowled and hurriedly exited the ear, heading inte the restaurant
As he walked in, he saw N sitting by the window, but she was alone. His gaze hardened as he approached her
He sat down across from her, his valce low. ¡°Where is Ryan Davey?¡±
N was not surprised to see Damen. When he had asked about Ryan in the parking lot that morning, she had suspected he would investigate him. His presence here was not unexpected
¡°He left,¡± she answered.
Meeting N¡¯s Indifferent gaze, Dahon swallowed, his nerves evident.
¡°What did he tell you?¡± he asked.
N lowered her eyes and spoke slowly. ¡°Not much. He just teld me that the ident with Harris Pharmaceuticals six years 888 was rted to you.¡±
beke Mang the wuth Other
wave of rebel that she
endest things with Baman she want are how she would
are Mach
me for that Money, I didn¡¯t know he was
Meme
**** Mars Pharmaceuals Damon nted
Are You now has using it against Harris
Dad you also not know he¡¯s someone who deeant
*** means to achieve his goals
Chres had asked Bank for one more than once and had
********* shady dealings
AAT Pere at Pantshaware of how the money was
probed Burther and didn¡¯t seem to care
Dessed on the table N, I admit this was my
Ak
the
*** W**ust pat
washatase
test t you were wrong. The mistake
for
in the west she has right to me an After all, Cyrus was his other and he should have often the money when asked
Daar¡¯s eyes d his breath grow heavier W-
A
We Her meant to be together Even whout be out have extually parted was Letsend wees
CHAPTER 370
Damon clenched his jaw, and angreffared
he we
one who started this. When it ends is up to me.¡±
N locked at him coldly Damon, don¡¯t you think you¡¯re temp unreasonable if you really cared about me you wouldnt tere reconciled with Reba. Now you¡¯reing back to bothere you want me to be your mistress¡±
Damon¡¯s gaze was icy said it need three months.¡±
I¡¯ve also said that I¡¯m not willing you we even a stred of guilt, then stop bothering me.¡± Naetorted
She grabbed her bag and tumed to leave
Only after she got into the car did her enctions sente
Back at the restaurant, Damon sat stiffy, his presence radiating coldness
Suddenly his phone rang
As soon as he answered, a panicked voice came through. ¡°Wh Damon, you need toe back to ate Summer residence immediately N?vel(D)rama.Org''s content.
By the time Demon arrived at the residence over an hour had passed
Walking into the living room, he saw rk sprawled on the floor¨Cs hair a mess, clothes soaked and his back marked with boded
Damon¡¯s gaze shifted indifferently to the enraged Richard, who was sitting in the main seat
¡°What¡¯s going on?¡± he asked.
Richard threw the bloodstained cane to the floor and said coldly,¡± Don¡¯t you know? You and rk are both making me furious. One¡¯s involved with his former niece¨Cinw, and the other¡¯s marrying a woman of low status. It seems youre determined to drive me to my grave!¡°
¡°You knew about this already, didn¡¯t you? Damon asked.
Richard¡¯s face flushed with frustration. He calmed his anger and looked at Damon coldly. ¡°I called you here to discuss something else
Damon sat down across from him, lounging casually. ¡°What¡¯s that?¡±
¡°I heard from rk that you knew Grand Azure¡¯s people had him kidnapped. Instead of helping him you told them to just leave him a breath of life? Richard asked
Damon nced at rk, who was pale, avoiding eye contact and wore a guilty expression. He smirked and replied indifferently, ¡°Yes
07
¡°He¡¯s your nephew! Even if you¡¯re angry with him, you shouldn¡¯t just watch him diel Richard huffed.
Damon raised an eyebrow. ¡°If I remember correctly, you said you¡¯d cut ties with me and kick me out of the Summers. Since I¡¯m no longer a member of the family isn¡¯t he no longer my nephew either?
Richard was taken aback, his anger Haring up again. ¡°That was just a
ANTUN
******
LANES
sat
with
INCONA ted
wal Rtpark thing
Vera weuit the race Carson but told also
En rembest under Schers has core he voice quaking as he excez Sanding know was wrang I was momentarily blinded Please tave me this one.
Yule mate so many mistakes only. Every time you say it¡¯s a moment of mattress How die beque raising such a fool Richard
He was genuinely disheartened. He had previously considered eting rk return to the Summer Group, but now he had no
tention of doing so
??
Nowad
Shape me the
amsted to
vehe 2
suggest you stat with your scheme cows you love
inse the cargas your the
Cak tuned ho heal his eyes
CHAPTER 371
pumpachten, make sure to like ve 2000 425 296 290) PRAIR
Damon sneered. ¡°I¡¯m not interested in yourpanies. I can¡¯t be
bothered.¡±
rk wouldn¡¯t have a good ending if he crossed the wrong people without the Sumners to back him up. Grand Azure hadn¡¯t killed him this time partly because they feared the Sumners.
After Damon left, the service staff escorted rk out of the mansion.
rk knelt at the gate for several hours before fainting from. exhaustion, but Richard still paid him no mind.
When he woke again, it was already dark. The
lights at the entrance of the Sumner residence were on, but the gate remained tightly shut. N?velDrama.Org owns this text.
It was clear that even if he knelt here until he died, Richard would never see him.
rk¡¯s eyes grew cold as he stood to leave.
Just then, a ck Land Rover pulled up in front of him.
Brandon stepped out of the car with a smirk as he took in rk¡¯s disheveled appearance.
¡°rk, how did you end up like this?¡± he asked, his tone dripping with mockery.
Seeing the satisfaction in Brandon¡¯s eyes, rk gritted his teeth.¡± Brandon, don¡¯t get too cocky. With your skills, you¡¯re not even fit to be CEO of the Sumner Group!¡±
Brandon remained unfazed by the taunt. ¡°You should worry about yourself. After this, Grandpa will never let you back into the Sumner Group. Focus on running the two littlepanies Uncle Cyrus left
you. If you¡¯re not careful and they go bankrupt, you¡¯ll have nothing you. If you¡¯re not careful
left.¡±
rk snarled, ¡°Just wait!¡±
Brandon raised an eyebrow, still smiling. ¡°I¡¯ve got dinner with Grandpa and a report on my recent work, so I don¡¯t have time to waste on you.¡±
He brushed past rk and headed toward the gate. The service staff immediately opened it for him.
rk clenched his fists, his eyes burning with resentment and anger as he watched Brandon disappear behind the slowly closing gate.
But he didn¡¯t try to follow. Instead, he turned and left.
One day, they would have to invite him back¨Cjust as they had thrown him out today!
When rk arrived home, Jordyn greeted him with delight. ¡°rk, you¡¯re back! Your wounds-¡±
Before she could finish, rk pped her. ¡°Jordyn, if it weren¡¯t for you, I wouldn¡¯t be in this mess. My biggest regret is falling for your tricks in the first ce, you bitch!¡±
Chapter 372
?Chapter 372
Jordyn hadn''t expected rk to hit her. Too stunned to react, she stumbled back several steps. If she hadn''t grabbed onto the cab by the entrance, she would have fallen.
Her face turned pale as she clutched her stomach, tears welling up in her eyes. "rk... I''m pregnant... How could you hit me?"
rk sneered. "Why couldn''t I? I warned you to take care of yourself and rest, but you stabbed me in the back the first chance you got. You''re just a liability. We''re getting the divorce papers tomorrow!"
Shock shed across Jordyn''s face as she stared at rk, taking a few moments to process his words.
"No! I don''t agree to a divorce! I won''t divorce you!" Jordyn cried.
She had worked so hard to marry rk, and she would rather die than leave him.
"You don''t get a say in this! After the divorce, you can keep the baby or get rid of it. I don''t care!" rk shouted.
Realizing he wasn''t bluffing, Jordyn panicked. She grabbed his arm, sobbing. ''rk, you can''t do this to me! If you divorce me, I''ll kill myself!"
rk shook her off, his eyes cold and indifferent. "You think you can threaten me? If you really want to die, then go ahead."
With that, he pushed the door open and left.
Jordyn copsed onto the floor, her face streaked with tears. How had ite to this? Why had things ended up like this?
Suddenly, a cold glint shed in her eyes. She scrambled to her feet and called Reba.
"Reba, rk is divorcing me tomorrow! This is all your fault! If it weren''t for you, I wouldn''t be in this mess!" she cried.
There was silence on the other end of the line for a few seconds before Reba''s mocking voice came through." You''re an idiot. Who else can you me for that?"
Jordyn gritted her teeth. "If I really get divorced, I''ll tell Damon everything you made me do. Let''s see if you''ll still be so smug then."
Reba''s grip on the phone tightened, her tone turning icy. "Don''t forget, that child you''re carrying isn''t rk''s. If he finds out, do you think he''ll let you off easily?"
Before returning to the country, she had thoroughly investigated Jordyn. rk''s divorce from N was entirely linked to her. If rk discovered the child wasn''t his, it would devastate him.
"You wouldn''t dare!" Jordyn hissed.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
Hearing the panic in Jordyn''s voice, Reba smiled. "As long as you keep quiet, no one will ever know."
"Just wait!" Jordyn growled, angrily hanging up. She nced down at her slightly rounded belly, malice flickering in her eyes.
It seemed this baby had to go.
When N got home, she organized the documents Ryan had given her and sent them to William.
Just as she finished, the doorbell rang. Seeing rk outside, she frowned and chose not to answer.
Upon recalling how rk had threatened her with a knifest time, a chill ran down her spine. Without hesitation, she called the police.
The police arrived quickly, and only then did N open the door.
"N..." rk''s voice was agitated as he tried to approach, but the police restrained him.
"N, I just want to see you. I won''t hurt you," rk pleaded.
He appeared drunk, his face unnaturally flushed, his eyes unfocused as they struggled to meet hers.
CHAPTER 373
Chauter 373
NES EXCESSOT Tarteret. We rearready divorced. If you show up ter agam 11 call the police apan.
Dak addeared hurt on Ter words, ang at her sorrowfully didn¡¯t HOW YOU T?et me this much now
Na Tumer Ter read avay unwiling to look at his seemingly affectionate face¨Cton
made her feel scx.
Afer gathering al the necessary mormation, the police took rk
the station for questioning he was eventualy called out by
JOONTL
As soon as rk exted the police station, he began to walk away.
Du Jandy Bucky grabbed his arm Cark, I know I acted
mouswey this ime, but we already have a child. Even if you don¡¯t care for me, you should think aboutthe child. Besides, if you divorce THE TOW DEDE will assume you¡¯re quity, and your reputation will suffer even more
Cack coldly shrugged her off. 1 cont need your fake kindness. My reputations already ruined¨Chow much worse can it get? Staying with you will only drag me down further.¡±
the this inodent, he finally saw Jordyn for what she was¨Ca Thoughtless woman who acted out of jealousy without considering The consequences
He must have been out of his mind to marry her. Now, she clung to turm like a leach, and it disgusted hith
¡°rk, I really know I was wrong¡ Jordyn pleaded.
f you truly know you were wrong, then be at the courthouse first
grace track tearing for the dives it stand to look at your
Me turned and walked away, his hack radiating indifferenGS
derdu stood there watching him leve, her eyes filled with resentment She wasn¡¯t going to let him get rid of her that easily
sitting in her ear Jordyn paused for a moment, then pulled out her Phone and made a call ¡°Hello, Mr. Qurant, do you have a moment?¡±
the next morning, as soon as N stepped out of her building, she was blocked by rk Holding a bouquet of roses and breakfast, he stood in her way
A wave of disgust swept over her, and she tried to walls past him.
N, I¡¯m sorry I scared youst night This is my way of apologizing Please ept it,¡± rk offered.
N took a cautious step back, her eyes cold and wary. ¡°What do You Want¡±
She kept a close watch on his movements, ready to bolt at the slightest hint of danger. To her, k was nothing more than a lunatic a ticking time bomb
¡°N, I really am just here to apologize. I promise I won¡¯t hurt you again. I was so angry before, Host Control,¡± rk exined.
N remained unmoved. ¡°I don¡¯t need your apology. Just stay away hom me.¡±
Alright, but can you at least take the flowers and breakfast?¡± rk pleaded
Na N said curtly
¡°N, Im divorcing Jordyn today. I now I¡¯ve been stupid and hurt you in so many ways. Can¡¯t you give me another chance to start over? rk asked.
N couldn¡¯t help butugh at his shamelessness. ¡°rk, I can¡¯t believe you have the nerve to say that. Do you think you¡¯re the only man in the world?¡± Belonging to N?velDrama.Org.
rk didn¡¯t get angry. He simply looked at her calmly. ¡°N, I told you before my uncle would never marry you, but you didn¡¯t believe me. The moment Reba returned, he dumped you for her.¡±
¡°Well, I¡¯m not getting back with you either. I don¡¯t have a habit of picking up trash,¡± N retorted.
rk smiled. ¡°N, you¡¯ll see one day that we¡¯re truly meant to be together.¡±
CHAPTER 374
N didn¡¯t pay any attention to rk as she walked right past him.
Unexpectedly, rk followed her to her car. ¡°N, if you just take the flowers and breakfast. I¡¯ll leave.
N frowned, barely holding back the urge to snap at him.
Just as she was about to respond, an angry voice cut through the air. ¡°rk, stay away from N!¡±
Both rk and N turned to see Gabriel approaching.
A flicker of surprise crossed rk¡¯s face before he forced a smile. ¡± Gabriel, what are you doing here?¡±
Gabriel¡¯s expression was cold and unyielding. ¡°You and N are divorced. Stay away from her, or you¡¯ll have to deal with me!¡±
rk¡¯s smile faded slightly, and his tone chilled. ¡°What happens between N and me is none of your business. Don¡¯t forget, you¡¯re just her stepbrother. Don¡¯t think too highly of yourself!¡±
Gabriel¡¯s face darkened immediately.
Before he could reply, the sound of an engine starting broke the tense silence¨CN had driven off without saying another word.
The two men stood there, locked in a dark re.
rk scoffed, then turned and walked away.
Gabriel narrowed his eyes as he watched rk leave.
rk pulled up to the courthouse at 9:00 a.m. sharp.
After waiting over ten minutes without any sign patience began to wear thin.
Jordyn, his
He called her. ¡°When are you getting here? Even if you don¡¯t show up today, I have plenty of ways to make you agree to the divorce!¡±
There was a brief pause before Jordyn¡¯s voice came through. ¡°I¡¯m not going to divorce you.¡±
¡°Jordyn, don¡¯t push your luck while I¡¯m still willing to talk nicely,¡± rk warned.
¡°I met with Mr. Durantst night. He agreed to coborate with yourpany. Are you sure you still want a divorce?¡± Jordyn asked.
Albert Durant, whom she mentioned, was a former client of the Sumner Group. Jordyn had been his point of contact back when she worked as a secretary.
Since rk took over Cyrus¡®pany, he had been trying to secure a partnership with Albert, but thetter had consistently refused to meet him. Securing this partnership could resolve thepany¡¯s current issues.
How could Jordyn, just a lowly secretary, have managed to change
Albert¡¯s mind?
¡°Jordyn, are you making this up because you don¡¯t want a divorce? Do you really think I¡¯ll believe this nonsense?¡± rk questioned.
Jordyn knew rk wouldn¡¯t trust her easily, so she calmly replied, ¡± Mr. Durant has already signed the contract. I have it here. If your don¡¯t believe me, you cane and see it for yourself.¡±
She hung up immediately after.
rk considered the stuction for moment before starting the car
If Jordynt was trying to
make sure she regretted it
Half an hourtes, Cakes by pics
Assourasheetest the wing, Jordyn handed him a folder
rk operest it. As he simmat tough, he expression shifted from conquistele to supus fitaly sathing line joy..
Helocket & Jonty with the forum in his eyes. ¡°Jordyn, raw dit vou pull this off
Tim any willing to her you if we sex maried. If you still want a ivance Content ? N?velDrama.Org.
Jarrara
Ferture she cauit finish, Cak nepted, forget the divorce. I was just angry. I want bring it up again, ever
But Jartiye didn¡¯t believe him. She knew rk too well. He was a man who would do anything to get what he wanted. If he could stay marret for the sake of a contract today, he could just as easily abandon her for something else tonerrew.
CHAPTER 375
However, that didn¡¯t matter anymore All Jordyn wanted was to stay by rk¡¯s side
¡°When I was talking business with Mr. Durant earlier, there was an ident. I saved his life, and he promised me a favor,¡± Jordyn exined.
rk frowned. ¡°Why didn¡¯t you tell me this sooner?¡±
If Jordyn had told him earlier, he wouldn¡¯t have had to forge Prospectus Technology¡¯s name to sign contracts with otherpanies.
Not wanting to continue the topic, Jordyn changed the subject. ¡°Did you go see N this morning?¡±
¡°How did you know?¡± rk asked.
Seeing the usatory look on his face, Jordyn smiled bitterly. ¡°A friend of mine lives nearby. She saw you and sent me a picture. We¡¯re still married, and you¡¯re already chasing after N?¡±
rk rubbed his nose, feeling a little regretful about seeing N earlier. He hadn¡¯t expected Jordyn to convince Albert to sign the contract
Jordyn, let¡¯s not dwell on the past. You helped me through this, and from now on, I¡¯ll be good to you and our child. What matters most is that we live a good life together as a family, rk promised
Jordyn looked down, choosing not to continue the conversation.
After spending some time with Jordyn, rk left in a hurry, clutching the contract
Jordyn walked to the window, watching him drive we g indifferent. She returned to the living room and dialed freba¡¯s number
Thanks for your help with the contest,¡± she said
¡°No need to thank me Just keep doing what I say, Reba feshed
As soon as she hung up, a video call notification appeared Her expression darkened, but she gritted her teeth and answered
¡°Where¡¯s today¡¯s video? You didn¡¯t send it,¡± said the man on the end.
He wore a white coat and sat behind an office desk, his smile disturbingly cold.
Reba took a deep breath, steadying her nerves, ¡°Drake, aren¡¯t you tired of watching me every day?¡±
Drake Mummery raised an eyebrow, waiting for her to continue.
¡°I know a woman who¡¯s just your type,¡± Reba suggested.
Drake chuckled darkly, his gaze turning cold. ¡°Reba, don¡¯t y games with me. I can send your medical records to Damon¡¯s email anytime.
Reba paled, taking a few seconds to respond. ¡°I¡¯ll send you her photo. You¡¯ll see.¡±
After ending the video call, she quickly forwarded the photos she had secretly arranged to be taken to Drake.
Momentster, another video call popped up.
¡°What¡¯s that woman¡¯s name?¡± Drake asked, his face tense, though R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only
Reba could sense the excitement he was trying to hide,
Reba smirked. ¡°I knew you¡¯d be interested. You-¡±
¡°Just tell me her name,¡± Drake interrupted coldly,
¡°N Jayston,¡± Reba answered.
Drake¡¯s eyes widened before he burst intoughter, his face alight with unrestrained excitement and joy.
Reba frowned. She had never seen Drake like this. Still, his interest in N was good news for her.
¡°If you want, I can have someone drug her and get the kind of videos you¡¯d like,¡± she offered.
As soon as the words left her mouth, she was chilled by the icy look in Drake¡¯s eyes. Her hand trembled as she gripped the phone tightly.
¡°D¨CDid I say something wrong?¡± she stammered.
¡°Don¡¯t you dare touch her. If you do, I¡¯ll make sure you have nowhere to hide,¡± Drake warned.
CHAPTER 376
Disbelief shed across Reba¡¯s eves.
¡°Why? Don¡¯t you like her?¡± she asked.
¡°You just need to remember she¡¯s not someone you can mess with I¡¯m returning to the country soon, so you¡¯d better not make any
moves. Otherwise, you won¡¯t be able to handle the consequences!¡± Drake warned.
Reba froze for a moment, but before she could react, the video call ended.
After tossing his phone onto the table, Drake¡¯s expression turned into one of extreme excitement.
Finally, he had found her!
Meanwhile, Reba stared at her now nk phone screen, her gaze cold.
What did Drake mean by saying N was off¨Climits? And his reaction -it didn¡¯t seem like he was romantically interested in her.
After all, if Drake were interested in a woman, he would first have private photos of her taken, then use those to coerce her into sleeping with him.
The more Reba thought about it, the stranger Drake¡¯s attitude seemed. There had to be something more going on!
No matter how hard she tried, she couldn¡¯t pinpoint exactly what was off.
After thinking it over for a while, she decided to let it go for new She¡¯d figure out what Brake was unde once he returned to the
That evening, just as N was getting off works, two men in ck suits stopped her in the undergrout parking lot.
Ms Jayston, Mr. Richard would like to see you,¡± one of them said R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only
N¡¯s expression was cold. ¡°I have bothing to say to him.¡±
The men remained unperturbed. ¡°Mr Richard said if you don¡¯t agree to meet him, he¡¯ll have no choice but to pay a visit to your father¡±
N frowned, her voice toy. ¡°Where?¡±
¡°We¡¯ll take you there,¡± they replied.
¡°I have my own car,¡± N said
After a moment of tense silence, one of the men called Richard.
After a brief exchange, he turned back to her. ¡°He¡¯s waiting for you at Paradine.¡±
It was over an hourter when N finally arrived at Paradine.
A server led her to the private room where Richard was growing impatient.
The moment she sat down, he spoke harshly. ¡°I hear you¡¯ve submitted new evidence with yourwyer?¡±
¡°Your informationwork is impressive.¡± N smiled, meeting.
Bichaid¡¯s gaze without a trace of for
Richard¡¯s eyes were cold. His face, which bore a resemnce to Bamen¡¯s, was deeply lined, yet he will radiated authority. ¡°You won¡¯t win this case, Name your terms.¡±
¡°I just want a fair trial,¡± H replied,
There was a cold glint in Richard¡¯s eyes. ¡°Fair? You need to decide what¡¯s more important falmess or your family. Think about it¡±
H snickered, ¡°Is that a tusat?¡±
¡°Take it however you want. You dont really think Damon is still going to protect you, do you?¡± Richard farted,
Richard¡¯s gaze grew even more disdainful as he recalled how N had seduced Damon and rk. He should never have softened and allowed rk to marry her in the first cel
¡°He¡¯s certainly not protecting me. But I¡¯m not dropping thewsuit,¡± N said firmly
¡°It doesn¡¯t matter whether you do of not. Do you really think a kidnapping charge will put my son to prison?¡± Richard asked,
¡°Don¡¯t forget about the fraud involving Harris Pharmaceuticals,¡± N reminded him.
Richard gestured to the bodyguard standing next to him. The man picked up a file from the table and Ganded it to Nyle.
¡°Harrison has already agreed to drop the charges. He even took 2,000,000 dors from me. If you don¡¯t drop the case, I can turn around and sue him for extortion. You wouldn¡¯t want your father to go to prison at his aus, would you?¡± ichard informed her.
N took the file, her eyes filling with disbelief and anger as she flipped through the pages. Her hands trembled, crumpling the paper.
Thewsuit had been her initiative. Harrison had no authority to drop it. Now that he had taken so much money from the Sumners, their legal team could easily frame it as extortion.
She tossed the file onto the table, her heart growing cold with disappointment.
CHAPTER 377
Chapes 377
pls know there was no way than didn¡¯t realtre she would be at
31
disadvantags once he epted the money But he took it anyway
she had test not to the Sumners. It to Harrison
the fooded up at Richard atout to oak, when the door to the peste room suddenly swung oper
bamen walked in his expression I need as he stared at Richard Dad Fremender telling you not to bother her
Richards spod deepened and he replied tetty. Didict you just say yesterday that we¡¯ve cut ties? What it matter to you if bother
Baran modded You¡¯re right in the case. Prospects Technology
will have taupe with the ner pup for
Hus in outrageous! You¡¯re going to turn against the Sumner Group
but
thu a woman Richard bellowe
Bamun remained silent but his ga spoke volume
From the msmen Bantu entered the tout, N w¨¢N QUALSE OR him once betwre tumaning a conve
the bed hat exes Hichard and a A Richard Devothabas
v?
Hw towel as you requested but ve da
se R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only
justice on ag
With that she turned to leave
As she reached the danced up at the Walks
maysand xlwayst se I dom you saying to do we forgangs
Staning to heroes, baled quay tough get wvolved with you yes the summers GBAJN
Went you part of the Summer
The only offered and the rest of te summEYS was that he did way after
Nyle¡¯s expression was afferen Vr Svane tower the Summers treat me is my bones pcmake my side and won¡¯t help the Summers and mere omty to y both sides Let¡¯s just pretend we¡¯re dragers from now on
Leaving those cold words behind, segamore car and drove
N sped to the hospital and quickly headed to Harrison¡¯s room
Hearing theughter inside, she took a deep breath and pushed the door open.
Everyone in the room froze when they saw her
¡°N, what¡¯s wrong.¡± Sensing something was off, Gabriel stood up and walked toward her
N didn¡¯t even look at him. Her eyes were fixed coldly on Harris who was lying in bed.
Am 1 only worth 7000,000 dors in your eyes? You should¡¯ve asked fachard for more, at least double that amount?¡±
Harrison frowned. ¡°I warned you not to go up against the burners
¡°So, you took Richard¡¯s money behind my back and let him use it to threaten me into dropping thewsuit?¡± N growled.
Wren hurriedly said, ¡°N, your dad¡¯s not in good health. He can¡¯t take any stress. Besides, he used the money to-¡±
¡°I wasn¡¯t talking to you. Can you just keep your mouth shut?¡± N interrupted.
Wren¡¯s face fell. Though she didn¡¯t say anything else, her expression was full of grievance and displeasure.
Harrison looked at N with disappointment. ¡°N, you still don¡¯t realize you¡¯re wrong. Instead, you¡¯re taking your anger out on an elder. You¡¯ve let me down.¡±
N chuckled. ¡°I feel the same. You¡¯ve let me down as a father. I will drop thewsuit, but I won¡¯t see you again. I¡¯ll transfer your medical expenses to your ount each month. I¡¯m leaving Saintornia soon and won¡¯t being back.¡±
CHAPTER 378
Ignoring Harrison¡¯s reaction, N turned and left without another word.
Behind her, Wren eximed, ¡°Harrison, calm down. Take deep breaths. The doctor said you can¡¯t get agitated!¡±
N hesitated briefly but didn¡¯t look back. She took a deep breath and walked straight out of the hospital room.
As she reached the hospital entrance, Gabriel caught up to her.
¡°N¡¡± He blocked her path. ¡°Your father¡¯s not in good health right now. He can¡¯t handle stress. Please, try to understand.¡±
N shot him a cold nce. ¡°Understand him? Who¡¯s going to understand me?¡±
She had risked her life to put Cyrus away, only for Harrison to undo it all.
To him, she probably no longer mattered. Before marrying Wren, he had promised to put her first. Now, it seemed Wren meant more to him than she ever had.
¡°I know you¡¯re upset,¡± Gabriel said gently. ¡°But your father did this to protect you. You can¡¯t take on the Sumners by yourself. You¡¯d only end up in danger.¡±
N¡¯s expression remained icy. ¡°Whether there¡¯s danger or not is my choice to make. No one else has the right to decide for me.¡±
Gabriel sighed. ¡°One day, you¡¯ll understand why your dad did what he did.¡±
¡°Save your breath until that dayes,¡± N retorted.
She shoved him aside, opened her dar door, got in, and drove off
Gabriel frowned as he watched her car disappear into the distance.
Back in the hospital room, Harrison still hadn¡¯t calmed down, his face twisted in anger.
Wren gently patted his back and nced at Gabriel. ¡°How did it go? Is N still mad?¡±
Gabriel pressed his lips together, speaking in a low voice, ¡°I¡¯ll talk to her again when I get home.¡±
¡°No need!¡± Harrison snapped. ¡°If she doesn¡¯t want to acknowledge me as her father anymore, fine. I won¡¯t go after her. She can do whatever she wants!¡± N?vel(D)rama.Org''s content.
Seeing Harrison getting worked up again, Wren quickly interjected. Harrison, don¡¯t get upset. N is still a child, she
¡°Child? She¡¯s nearly 30! When is she going to grow up?!¡± Harrison huffed.
¡°Alright, alright, calm down. If you pass out again, you¡¯ll end up back in the ER,¡± Wren coaxed gently.
Gabriel¡¯s expression remained indifferent as he nced at Harrison ¡°It¡¯s gettingte. I should head back¡±
¡°Go ahead, and be careful on your way home,¡± Harrison replied
After leaving the hospital, Gabriel got into his car and drove home, determined to speak with N again.
Meanwhile, Myle hed just arrived at her building when she received a call from Willer
Ms. Jayston, regarding Cyrus¡® case, I heard you¡¯re nning to drop the charges? William inquired.
N lowered her gaze, pausing for a few seconds before quietly replying, ¡°Yes, Mr. Harwell. Thank you for your help. Please proceed with withdrawing the charges. I¡¯ll transfer the legal fees shortly.¡±
¡°Ms. Jayston, why are you dropping the charges? With the evidence you¡¯ve provided, our chances of winning are much stronger now. It would be a shame to give up at this point,¡± William urged.
¡°No, I¡¯ve made up my mind. I don¡¯t want to pursue this anymore. Please help me withdraw the charges,¡± N insisted.
She ended the call and immediately transferred the legal fees to William.
Tossing her phone onto the passenger seat, she slumped forward against the steering wheel, consumed by despair and an
overwhelming sense of helpless rage.
CHAPTER 379
N had expected Harrison to support her, but instead, he sided with the Sumners.
After a while, she slowly lifted her head and wiped the tears from the corners of her eyes. Her gaze hardened with determination. She was resolute¨Cshe would leave Saintornia.
Not long after N returned home, the doorbell rang. Seeing Gabriel outside, she didn¡¯t open the door. Instead, she told him coldly to
leave.
Gabriel stood at the door for a moment. When it became clear N had no intention of letting him in, he said softly, ¡°N, we¡¯ll talk when you¡¯ve calmed down.¡±
N felt there was nothing left to discuss and had no desire to engage. She remained silent.
Gabriel stared at the closed door, sighed, and then turned to leave.
In the days that followed, N¡¯s life resumed its familiar rhythm¡ª working and studying at home.
Gabriel tried reaching out several times, but her cold demeanor discouraged him from pushing further.
A weekter, N received a call from Vrie, inviting her to her birthday party.
Vrie¡¯s father, the CEO of the Weir Group, always made sure her birthday was a grand affair.
¡°Of course, I¡¯ll be there on time,¡± N assured her. ¡°Do you have any
kler king for tantom shity from a desa she head
Har sales desmats fragment singh Henty theym Hurst Pad
art sand Miss this has w var les tones
whe
Jonymssaffes Twan his one test mater who picked it frst
Samends now, so it¡¯s mine.¡±
The sales assicae pairena wa unsure of what to do.
Stewartet ogive the tress to Wwe out forms aggressive demeanor mate ter estate Everyone who stopped here was westry or influential, and inseting anyone could cost her job.
We em ndifferent. If she wants it let her have it
Lord was caught off guard, clearly not expecting N to give up Speesiy
Eanier she had noticed now much N seemed to like the dress, butter calm reaction now made Jorcyn feel like she was striking at nothing which left her somewhat frustrated.
Sensing Jordyn¡¯s hesitation, the sales associate quickly took the dress and card with a smile. ¡°Miss, please follow me this way.¡±
N raised an eyebrow. ¡°What¡¯s the matter? Don¡¯t tell me your card doesn¡¯t have enough money?¡±
Chapter WW
Sexy the mwkery wyls eyes, stones the
is associate in two
chin raised, eyes brimming withp
body then sneered this card is om rk
has no limit. Don¡¯t
tank barying this dress is a big deal could buy the entire store and shill have money left ovet Upstodatee from Novel(D)ra/m/a.O(r)g
Hyle nodded thoughtfully immm, he wonder if buying the store
banlyn¡¯s expression faltered for a roment, but she quickly recovered and replied coldly, ¡°What does it matter to you? Whether ia rk on this dress, they have nothing to do with you anymore.¡±
You not interested. This dress is the smallest size it won¡¯t fit your hgure anyway And Find your torch repulsive Even if you hadn¡¯t bought it, I wouldn¡¯t want it anymore Hyle shot back
LUMA¡¯N
The thought of dandyn touching the gift intended for Vrie made
day¡¯s eyes Hard with anger, becuase murderous. She realized
At the point the dress wasn¡¯t just use it had be a symbol
Her fungera Hghtonest around her hug, kouckles turing white
with you
Nyle raised an eyebrow about to report when rk appeared at the entrance
His eyes widened, and he looked awkward upon seeing her Just 4 few days ago, he had promised Nyle he would divorce Jordin but DOW¡
Not only could he not divorce her, but hispany might also need Jordyn¡¯s support.
He approached Jordve and asked. ¡°What are you doing here? Didn¡¯t you say you were going shopping for the baby?
Seeing rk, Jordyn immediately linked arms with him and resumed her haughty demeanor. ¡°rk, I saw this dress as we passed by the store. I didn¡¯t expect Ms. Jayston to try to take it from me I told her t saw it first, and she mocked me, saying I wanted to steel everything from her. But I clearly saw it first¡
She looked aggrieved, ying the part of the victim
Had N not known the full story, she might have believed Jordre¡¯s lies
rk nced at the dress in Jordy¡¯s hands and said quiety. Since you¡¯ve bought the dress, let¡¯s go. I have a meeting soon.¡±
Jordyn pulled away from him, her eyes brimming with tears. ¡°Are you still in love with N? Is that why you¡¯re letting her bully me without doing anything
Her voice was loud, drawing the attention of those around them
rk felt a surge of embarrassment, his anger rising as he looked at her ¡°I just don¡¯t want to waste time on such trivial matters Let¡¯s leave now.¡±
MAN
the wire.
T
hockery and
washing Nyta¡¯s reputation was
he poth
CHAPTER 380
If you hadn¡¯t refused to help me, would I have made such a fuss?¡± denlyn ddeallenged, her gaze filled with usation.
rk wine rendered speechless.
After a moment of ellenes, he turned to H. ¡°N, perhaps you should apologize to Jordyn and put his matter to rest.¡±
H sneered ¡°Are you out of your find? Apologize to her? Why
¡°Why
y not? You were seen hugging my husband not long ago, ember 21 still have photos. Would you like me to show them to
Jordyn tainted
B¡¯s uns immed tey Jordyn, stop pretending. You were the one whe interfered in my marriage with rk. Now that you¡¯re married to him, have you forgotten what you d did?
As for that photo, you can ask rk about it yourself. I¡¯m not
Ale, vou mentioned I was fighting will you over the dress. Did you forget there are emity cameras in the mall? Should I get the hustage to see who was really fighting over it?
Asgarden of whether it¡¯s a dress or a man, I wouldn¡¯t want anything from you because I find it disgusting!
Jorders anger Hared, and she instigetively retorted, ¡°You¡¯re talking
Thave videos of rk cheating with you. Are you sure you want me
ebon them in front of everyone N asked
Jordyn grashed her death. She certainly adet werd how wen revealed, but N¡¯s confident derneator only made her fory bos
over
The crowd, which had previously looked at tyle with disdain, now turned their scornful gaze toward Ardyn
Just as she was about to respond, Dark grabbed her and solled her aside
¡°Let go of met Jordynored Upstodatee from Novel(D)ra/m/a.O(r)g
rk ignored her protests, releasing her only when they
corner.
¡°rk, didn¡¯t you see how everyone was looking at tage away like this makes it seem like we¡¯re guilty¡± she protested
rk¡¯s expression was loy. ¡°It¡¯s better to look guilty than to risk har exposing our intimate video to the subier
But I¡¯m not satisfied¡± Jordyndained
What are you dissatisfied with? We¡¯re married now She¡¯s just a stranger to us. Why do you keep provoking her? rk snapped
His eyes zed with fury as if he might strangle Jordyn at any moment. His gaze was menacing and interise
Jordyn took a step back, tears welling in her eyes. ¡°Why am provoking her? Don¡¯t you know? if you didn¡¯t have any feedings for her, I wouldn¡¯t care about her But can you honestly say you have no feelings for her at all?
¡°We¡¯re over rk said firmly
¡°As long as you still have feelings for her, it¡¯s not over; Jordyn
argued,
rk¡¯s patience wore thin. ¡°If you want to keep arguing, go ahead, I¡¯m going back to my meeting.¡±
He turned and walked away.
Jordyn red at his retreating figure, frustration and anger bubbling inside her.
After a moment of hesitation, she stomped her foot and ran after him.
Once Jordyn and rk had left, N continued browsing but found no dresses that appealed to her. She decided to go home.
Upon arriving, she saw Gabriel standing at her door. She frowned and approached him. ¡°What¡¯s going on?¡±
Gabriel¡¯s expression darkened at her indifference. ¡°I received two invitations to a jewelry auction from a friend today. I thought you might be interested. Would you like to join me?¡±
CHAPTER 381
Chapter 381If you hadn¡¯t refused to help me, would I have made such a fuss?¡± denlyn ddeallenged, her gaze filled with usation.
rk wine rendered speechless.
After a moment of ellenes, he turned to H. ¡°N, perhaps you should apologize to Jordyn and put his matter to rest.¡±
H sneered ¡°Are you out of your find? Apologize to her? Why
¡°Why
y not? You were seen hugging my husband not long ago, ember 21 still have photos. Would you like me to show them to
Jordyn tainted
B¡¯s uns immed tey Jordyn, stop pretending. You were the one whe interfered in my marriage with rk. Now that you¡¯re married to him, have you forgotten what you d did?
As for that photo, you can ask rk about it yourself. I¡¯m not
Ale, vou mentioned I was fighting will you over the dress. Did you forget there are emity cameras in the mall? Should I get the hustage to see who was really fighting over it?
Asgarden of whether it¡¯s a dress or a man, I wouldn¡¯t want anything from you because I find it disgusting!
Jorders anger Hared, and she instigetively retorted, ¡°You¡¯re talking
Thave videos of rk cheating with you. Are you sure you want me
ebon them in front of everyone N asked
Jordyn grashed her death. She certainly adet werd how wen revealed, but N¡¯s confident derneator only made her fory bos
over
The crowd, which had previously looked at tyle with disdain, now turned their scornful gaze toward Ardyn
Just as she was about to respond, Dark grabbed her and solled her aside
¡°Let go of met Jordynored
rk ignored her protests, releasing her only when they
corner.
¡°rk, didn¡¯t you see how everyone was looking at tage away like this makes it seem like we¡¯re guilty¡± she protested
rk¡¯s expression was loy. ¡°It¡¯s better to look guilty than to risk har exposing our intimate video to the subier
But I¡¯m not satisfied¡± Jordyndained
What are you dissatisfied with? We¡¯re married now She¡¯s just a stranger to us. Why do you keep provoking her? rk snapped
His eyes zed with fury as if he might strangle Jordyn at any moment. His gaze was menacing and interise
Jordyn took a step back, tears welling in her eyes. ¡°Why am provoking her? Don¡¯t you know? if you didn¡¯t have any feedings for her, I wouldn¡¯t care about her But can you honestly say you have no feelings for her at all?
¡°We¡¯re over rk said firmly
¡°As long as you still have feelings for her, it¡¯s not over; Jordyn
argued,
rk¡¯s patience wore thin. ¡°If you want to keep arguing, go ahead, I¡¯m going back to my meeting.¡±
He turned and walked away.
Jordyn red at his retreating figure, frustration and anger bubbling inside her.
After a moment of hesitation, she stomped her foot and ran after him.
Once Jordyn and rk had left, N continued browsing but found no dresses that appealed to her. She decided to go home.
Upon arriving, she saw Gabriel standing at her door. She frowned and approached him. ¡°What¡¯s going on?¡±
Gabriel¡¯s expression darkened at her indifference. ¡°I received two invitations to a jewelry auction from a friend today. I thought you might be interested. Would you like to join me?¡± N?vel(D)rama.Org''s content.
CHAPTER 382
Nyta nced at the invitation in Gathie¡¯s hand. She hadn¡¯t bought a birthday gift yet, so attending the jewelry auction could be a nice alternative.
However, she didn¡¯t want to feel obligated to him. N?vel(D)rama.Org''s content.
¡°No, thanks. I¡¯m not interested, she declined.
Gabriel looked a bit helpless. ¡°Nya,are you still upset about what happened with your dad?¡±
N met his gaze calmly. ¡°This is between me and him. It has nothing to do with you¡±
Gabriel seemed hurt by her response. ¡°But we¡¯re family
To your mom, I¡¯ve never been considered part of the family. In her eyes, the three of you are the family Nyle retorted.
¡®She¡¯s her, and I¡¯m mel To me, you are family,¡± Gabriel insisted, his expression earnest and passionatel
Nyle paused before replying, ¡°But we¡¯re not destined to be a family.¡±
The hallway fell into a heavy silence, their breathing the only sound breaking it.
Ceonel¡¯s emotions flickered in his eyes. He seemed on the verge of saying something but thenposed himself.
As if nothing had happened, he looked down and said, ¡°I know you don¡¯t want any contact with me. I¡¯ll give the invitation to Melody. If you¡¯re interested, you can go with her.¡±
He then walked past her and left.
L
The next morning, as soon as N entered theb, Melody approached her.
¡°N, your brother gave me two tickets to a jewelry auction this morning. Do you want to go with me?¡± Melody asked.
N was surprised that Gabriel had actually done that. She shook her head. ¡°No, I have other ns.¡±
¡°I haven¡¯t even told you the date yet. How do you know you have ns? You don¡¯t want to go with me, do you?¡± Melody pouted, clearly disappointed.
¡°No. It¡¯s just that you could use this opportunity to get closer to him. Don¡¯t you want to pursue him?¡± N asked.
¡°I do¡¡± Melody murmured.
Conflict shed in her eyes. Gabriel had mentioned earlier that morning that N was feeling down and suggested she take N to the auction to cheer her up.
¡°But I still want to go with you. Men don¡¯t understand things like jewelry. Pleasee with me!¡± Melody pleaded.
N hesitated but ultimately refused, ¡°Melody, let him apany you. I really don¡¯t want to go.¡±
Seeing her firm stance, Melody knew she wouldn¡¯t change her mind. What N had decided wouldn¡¯t change because of others.
¡°Okay, then,¡± Melody relented.
***
yogening
Nyta nced at the invitation in Gathie¡¯s hand. She hadn¡¯t bought a birthday gift yet, so attending the jewelry auction could be a nice alternative.
However, she didn¡¯t want to feel obligated to him.
¡°No, thanks. I¡¯m not interested, she declined.
Gabriel looked a bit helpless. ¡°Nya,are you still upset about what happened with your dad?¡±
N met his gaze calmly. ¡°This is between me and him. It has nothing to do with you¡±
Gabriel seemed hurt by her response. ¡°But we¡¯re family
To your mom, I¡¯ve never been considered part of the family. In her eyes, the three of you are the family Nyle retorted.
¡®She¡¯s her, and I¡¯m mel To me, you are family,¡± Gabriel insisted, his expression earnest and passionatel
Nyle paused before replying, ¡°But we¡¯re not destined to be a family.¡±
The hallway fell into a heavy silence, their breathing the only sound breaking it.
Ceonel¡¯s emotions flickered in his eyes. He seemed on the verge of saying something but thenposed himself.
As if nothing had happened, he looked down and said, ¡°I know you don¡¯t want any contact with me. I¡¯ll give the invitation to Melody. If you¡¯re interested, you can go with her.¡±
He then walked past her and left.
L
The next morning, as soon as N entered theb, Melody approached her.
¡°N, your brother gave me two tickets to a jewelry auction this morning. Do you want to go with me?¡± Melody asked.
N was surprised that Gabriel had actually done that. She shook her head. ¡°No, I have other ns.¡±
¡°I haven¡¯t even told you the date yet. How do you know you have ns? You don¡¯t want to go with me, do you?¡± Melody pouted, clearly disappointed.
¡°No. It¡¯s just that you could use this opportunity to get closer to him. Don¡¯t you want to pursue him?¡± N asked.
¡°I do¡¡± Melody murmured.
Conflict shed in her eyes. Gabriel had mentioned earlier that morning that N was feeling down and suggested she take N to the auction to cheer her up.
¡°But I still want to go with you. Men don¡¯t understand things like jewelry. Pleasee with me!¡± Melody pleaded.
N hesitated but ultimately refused, ¡°Melody, let him apany you. I really don¡¯t want to go.¡±
Seeing her firm stance, Melody knew she wouldn¡¯t change her mind. What N had decided wouldn¡¯t change because of others.
¡°Okay, then,¡± Melody relented.
***
CHAPTER 383
Soon, Melody returned, looking departed it was m she was still upset about Gabriel¡¯s refusal to emmpany her to the jewelry Action
Gabriel smiled gently and said, ¡°Melody, I¡¯ve been thinking about it Since I¡¯m free that day too, I¡¯ll go with you after all.¡±
Melody¡¯s eyes lit up with a hint of disbelief. ¡°Really?¡±
¡°Yes¡± Gabriel replied, his gaze Wang and soft. ¡°Since I get the tickets for you, it¡¯s only fan I apany you if N ten¡¯t going
¡°That¡¯s great! I¡¯ll see you at the auction then!¡± Melody eximed
¡°I pick you up from your ce,¡± Gabriel said.
Melody was momentarily taken aback.
Gabriel¡¯s change in attitude seemed a bit sudden, but she didn¡¯t dwell on it. She was confident that spending time alone with him would increase her chances of winning his affection.
¡°Okay, I¡¯ll send you the addresste¡± she agreed.
The entire afternoon, Melody chatted with N about Gabriel, asking about his past and his preferences in women.
¡°N, what kind of outfit do you think I should wear to the auction?¡± she asked.
N thought for a moment. Since the auction was a rtively
private event, she said, ¡°Just wear something casual. You don¡¯t need to dress too formally.¡±
Private, smaller auctions typically weren¡¯t as grand asrger onee,
and ahendees usually dressedfortably.
¡°Got it. What color does your brother like? Melody continued.
N sighed and handed her a reagent tube. ¡°How would I know? If you really want to know, you can ask him directly. Focus on your work¡ªthese next steps are important, so don¡¯t get distracted.¡±
Melody nodded. ¡°Okay.¡±
After N¡¯s reminder, Melody diligently worked until the end of the day, not mentioning Gabriel again.
In the evening, as they finished their experiments and left theb, they saw Gabriel standing nearby.
When he spotted Melody, he smiled and asked, ¡°Melody, do you have time tonight? Let¡¯s have dinner together.¡±
¡°Oh? Y¨CYes, I do! Give me a moment to change!¡± she replied, her excitement evident.
Sure, take your time,¡± Gabriel said. N?vel(D)rama.Org''s content.
Melody hurried to her office, leaving N and Gabriel alone at theb door.
N gave Gabriel a casual nod before heading to her office. As soon as she stepped inside, Melody pulled her aside.
¡°How do I look, N? Is my makeup okay?¡± Melody asked, her eyes wide with anticipation.
She had applied light makeup that made her skin appear fresh, her eyes sparkling, and her lips glossy.
¡°You look great. Your makeup is fine.¡± N assured her.
¡°Fantastic! I¡¯m off now. See you tomorrow!¡± Melody eximed before rushing out.
Watching her disappear from view, N couldn¡¯t help but smile. As she packed up and prepared to leave, her phone suddenly rang.
When she answered, a cold, menacing voice came through the line N, you¡¯ve had me locked up in the police station for so long. 1 won¡¯t let you off easily!¡±
Upon recognizing Cyrus¡® voice, N¡¯s expression turned icy. ¡°Don¡¯t forget, I have evidence of your crimes. If you touch me or anyone in my family, I¡¯ll make that evidence public. Do you think the Sumners will protect you then?¡±
CHAPTER 384
There was a brief cause on the other end before Cyrus cold voice out through the silence. ¡°You¡¯d better not fall into my hands, or I¡¯ll make sure you wish you were dead!
He hung up immediately after that
Nyta took a deep breath to steady her anger and frustration, vowing that she would get another chance to catch him.
After changing her clothes, she grabbed her bag and headed out. As she approached the elevator, the doors slid open. She hesitated for a moment when she saw the two people inside.
Reba, dressed in a white dress, was clinging to Demon¡¯s arm, her face bright with a smile.
When she saw N, she subconsciously tightened her grip on Damon¡¯s arm, and her smile faltered slightly.
¡°Ms. Jayston, what a coincidence!¡± Reba greeted, her voice tinged with forced cheerfulness.
N considered pretending she hadn¡¯t seen them but decided to acknowledge them with a curt nod. ¡°Mm.¡±
Damon¡¯s gaze briefly skimmed over N¡¯s face with indifference, as if she were a stranger, before he looked away.
N didn¡¯t meet his gaze but could feel the chill of his stare. She pursed her lips and stepped into the elevator, turning her back to
them.
As the doors slowly closed, Reba¡¯s voice, deliberately softened, reached N¡¯s ears. ¡°Damon, what should we have for dinner? I¡¯m
craving Thai food. How about you?
Damon¡¯s voice was devoid of emotion. ¡°Whatever you want.¡±
¡°Ugh, you haven¡¯t changed. You always say whatever.¡± Reba whined.
Damon¡¯s response seemed to be a quietugh. ¡°Isn¡¯t it better to go along with your wishes?¡±
¡°It¡¯s not that bad¡ Fine. I¡¯ll n it then!¡± Reba chirped. N?vel(D)rama.Org''s content.
N kept her expression neutral, staring ahead. The reflection in the elevator doors captured her frosty demeanor and the couple behind her, closely entwined.
Fortunately, the elevator ride was brief.
After a few seconds, the doors opened, and N quickly exited.
Once she was in her car, she started the engine and drove away, unaware of Damon¡¯s gaze lingering faintly on her departing figure.
After N left, Damon withdrew his hand from Reba¡¯s grasp, his expression turning cold. ¡°I have other matters to attend to. I¡¯ll have the driver take you home.¡±
Reba¡¯s eyes widened in disbelief. ¡°What? Damon, you¡¯re not having dinner with me?¡±
¡°I¡¯m busy. If you need someone to apany you, I¡¯ll call Nathaniel,¡± Damon suggested.
His indifferent gaze felt like a knife to Reba¡¯s heart, and tears began to well up in her eyes. ¡°But Nathaniel isn¡¯t my boyfriend. I just want you with me.¡±
A hint of impatience crossed Damon¡¯s face, ¡°I said I¡¯m busy.¡±
C
¡°If it were N asking for yourpany, would you also say you¡¯re busy?¡± Reba asked.
Damon¡¯s expression darkened. ¡°She¡¯s different from you.¡±
Tears slowly fell from Reba¡¯s eyes as she looked at him with a bitter smile. ¡°Yes, of course, she¡¯s different. She doesn¡¯t have to do anything to easily win your love, while even though I have just a few months left to live and am using a life¨Csaving favor to keep you with me, you still don¡¯t feel anything for me.¡±
Damon looked at her with a detached expression. ¡°Reba, it¡¯s over between us. I can¡¯t fall in love with you again.¡±
¡°I know! Damon, how could I not know you won¡¯t love me again? But I can¡¯t ept it! We used to love each other so much¡¡± Reba cried.
After seeing how he loved someone else, how could she ept that he no longer loved her?
¡°It doesn¡¯t matter how you feel. It¡¯s over,¡± Damon repeated.
He wasn¡¯t happy with how things had ended between himself and N either, but what could he do?
CHAPTER 385
N wasn¡¯t ready to forgive Damon, Could he really force her to fall in love with him again?
Damon opened the car door and said calmly, ¡°Get in the car.¡±
After having the driver take Reba home, Damon returned to his office to continue working. Work was the only thing that temporarily distracted him from thoughts of N.
Today, however, for some reason, he couldn¡¯t concentrate on the documents in his hands. Frustrated, he tossed the files onto his desk, grabbed his car keys, and left the office.
Once Melody and Gabriel had finished ordering at the restaurant, she looked up at him across the table andmented, ¡°Gabriel, I¡¯ve never been to such a high¨Cend restaurant before. The food here is so expensive.¡±
Gabriel smiled, his voice gentle. ¡°Then you should get used to it.¡±
He was already handsome, but with his bright smile under the lights, he looked almost glowing¨Cso good¨Clooking that it was hard to look
away,
Melody¡¯s face flushed instantly, and she quickly looked away.
¡°W¨CWhy should I get used to it? My sry¡¡± she stuttered.
¡°Because I might take you out to eat here often in the future,¡± Gabriel replied.
Melody¡¯s heart began to race uncontrobly. She turned back to Gabriel, summoning her courage, and asked, ¡°Gabriel¡ you were
allway¡¯s so distant before. Why are you suddenly so er dead
¡°Surely you can figure that out for yourself, Gabriel countered.
Melody lowered her gaze, remaining silent. Although she liked Gabriel, she wasn¡¯t infatuated to the point of losing her reason. There had to be a reason behind his sudden change in attitude.
¡°Gabriel, is there something you need my help with?¡± she asked.
Gebriel¡¯s smile deepened slightly, and he nodded. ¡°Actually, there is something I¡¯d like to ask of you¡±
¡°It¡¯s about Nyle, right?¡± Melody asked, pressing further.
¡°Yeah, Gabriel answered straightforwardly.
A flicker of disappointment crossed Melody¡¯s face. Although she knew Gabriel and N were siblings, they weren¡¯t biologically rted, She had always felt that Gabriel¡¯s concern for N was a bit GLOSSENG
¡°I might not be able to help with N. She refused to go to that auction, no matter what I said,¡± Melody exined.
Gabriel¡¯s expression grew serious.
After a moment, he said, ¡°I¡¯d like you to keep an eye on her and look out for her. She¡¯s had a falling out with her family recently and doesn¡¯t have many friends. You¡¯re one of her closest female friends.¡±
Melody nodded, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I will.
¡°By the way, you and she are always busy with experiments and barely have any free time. Are you all very busy?¡± Gabriel asked.
¡°Yeah, we¡¯re racing to meet deadlines,¡± Melody replied.
Chapar SAS
¡°If you need any help, feel free to let me know. I¡¯m not that busy at the moment,¡± Gabriel offered.
Melody hesitated momentarily and asked slowly, ¡°Gabriel, I notice that N¡¯s attitude toward you seems quite cold. Why are you still so concerned about her?¡±
¡°Because she¡¯s my sister. What kind of brother would hold a grudge against his sister?¡± Gabriel answered matter¨Cof¨Cfactly. Content ? N?velDrama.Org.
Seeing his sincere expression, Melody finally rxed. ¡°Alright. I¡¯ll try to persuade N to reconcile with you as soon as possible.¡±
¡°Thank you in advance,¡± Gabriel said, then asked her for some details about their experiments.
Melody, without suspicion, answered all his questions.
By the end of the meal, Gabriel had learned quite a bit about their experiments.
After dropping Melody off at home, his smile gradually faded, turning cold.
CHAPTER 386
Gabriel contacted the head of the R&D department at a rivalpany, smiling as he said, ¡°Mr. Palfrey, I have some details about Prospectus Technology¡¯s experimental research. Would you be interested?¡±
As soon as N arrived at the office the next morning, Melody excitedly shared the details of her dinner with Gabriel from the previous night. ¡°N, he¡¯s so gentle and handsome. Afterst night, I think I like him even more!¡±
Seeing Melody¡¯s flushed cheeks and lovestruck expression, N couldn¡¯t help but smile. ¡°Take it slow. You¡¯ve only had one dinner, and you¡¯re already so excited.¡±
¡°You¡¯re right. But I¡¯ll keep trying and aim to win him over soon, so I can be your sister¨Cinw!¡± Melody gushed.
N¡¯s smile brightened. ¡°Go for it. I believe in you!¡± Content ? N?velDrama.Org.
Just then, the office door opened, and Gabriel walked in, smiling.
¡°What are you two so happy about?¡± he asked.
Melody¡¯s cheeks flushed again at the sight of him. She shook her head quickly. ¡°Nothing. We need to start the experiment.¡±
With that, she hurriedly changed into herb coat and left.
Now alone with Gabriel, N pretended not to notice him, reeling in her smile as she turned her focus to her report.
Noticing her cold demeanor, Gabriel lowered his gaze and silently took his seat at hisputer. It was fine. In time, she wouldn¡¯t be so
one o vody there w
Kawy get t
Ky nj fent, & 4
The every stro
N pulled out her phone, opened their chat, and said teasingly Want to see how many reminders you sent me?¡±
Seeing the screen filled with her own messages, Vrie burst outughing. ¡°I just know how absorbed you get in your experiments. I was worried you¡¯d forget. I was only reminding you¡
¡°Did you need to remind me that many times?¡± N teased back
¡°Haha, let¡¯s drop it. We need to hurry. It¡¯s almost time. I brought dinner. You can eat on the way,¡± Vrie said.
They arrived at the auction just before 7:00 p.m.
After parking, Vrie quickly dragged N inside. As they reached the entrance, they bumped into rk and Jordyn
Vrie rolled her eyes. ¡°Just my luck
rk¡¯s expression darkened, but he said nothing. Arguing with a woman in public would only make him look bad.
Although rk stayed silent, Jordyn couldn¡¯t hold back and barked¡± Vrie, watch your mouth!¡±
CHAPTER 387
Vrie sneered. I didn¡¯t name anyone specifically. Why are you so quick to take offense? Have you been a mistress for so long that you¡¯re feeling quilty?
a
¡°You!¡± Jordyn was about to retort, but rk held her back
¡°Enough. The auction is about to start. Let¡¯s go in,¡± he said. Content ? N?velDrama.Org.
If Jordyn and Vrie started arguing at the entrance, it would only reflect poorly on him.
Jordyn shook off his hand, fuming. ¡°rk, I¡¯m your wife, but you always defend others. Are you still thinking about that tramp, N?¡±
The moment the words left her mouth, Vrie pped her.
The sharp sound of the p echoed, leaving a red handprint on Jordyn¡¯s face.
¡°How dare you hit me?!¡± Jordyn hissed, raising her hand to strike Vrie, but thetter grabbed her wrist and pped her again on the other side of her face.
Vrie smirked, ¡°That¡¯s better. If you keep running your mouth about tramps, I won¡¯t let you off the hook!¡±
Jordyn, furious, tried to fight back, but Vrie pushed her into rk¡¯s arms, ¡°rk, keep your rabid bitch in check,¡± she warned. W want to deal with her, I have plenty of ways to do
¡°If you dare touch me again, I won¡¯t let you off easily?¡± Jordyn¡¯s face twisted with anger.
¡°What do I have to be afraid of? Do you think just because yove with rk, you can run fangs in a d Bass
Women like Jordyn, who climbed the socialdder
mistresses, never fit into their circles. Besides, if rk had any¡.ention of integrating her, he¡¯d have brought her to more formal events.
Jordyn¡¯s face turned an unhealthy shade of red, looking as though she might explode with rage.
rk¡¯s expression hardened as he looked at Vrie. ¡°Vrie, don¡¯t think you can bully us just because you¡¯re from the Weirs. Our
problems are none of your concern
¡°You¡¯re mistaken. I have no interest in the two of you,¡± Vrie replied coolly, ¡°But if she can¡¯t control her mouth, I¡¯ll have to step in and
teach her that it¡¯s not just for spewing nonsense.¡±
rk¡¯s eyes shed with anger, but he said nothing further and pulled Jordyn away.
Jordyn¡¯s hateful gaze swept over N, cold and venomous, like a snake ready to strike,
After entering the venue, rk pulled Jordyn aside and whispered, ¡± There are some prominent figures from high society here tonight. Stay close to me, and don¡¯t embarrass me. If you do, I won¡¯t bring you again.¡±
Jordyn had pleaded with rk for days before he finally agreed to bring her to the auction.
Suppressing her anger and frustration, she forced a smile. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, I won¡¯t embarrass you.¡±
As she lowered her gaze, a cruel glint shed in her eyes.
She hadn¡¯t originally nned to use the child in her womb to get back at N so soon, but Vrie¡¯s words had enraged her. Now, she
was determined to make Vrie and N pay for it
Vrie and Nyle found their seats in the venue,
Once seated, Vrie pointed discreetly to the front row and whispered, ¡®Isn¡¯t that Damon and Reba?!
N nced over and saw Damon speaking with Reba. The dim lighting blurred his features, but it seemed as if he was smiling
As Nyls looked his way, Damon appeared to sense it and turned his head. Their eyes met.
CHAPTER 388
N nced away, her expression neutral, and lowered her gaze without saying anything.
Vrie, sounding somewhat aggrieved, remarked, ¡°I really don¡¯t understand what Damon sees in her. She dumped him years ago, and now he¡¯s getting back with her? It¡¯s like he¡¯s begging for humiliation!¡±
Upon thinking about how Damon had left N for Reba, Vrie¡¯s irritation red.
¡°Enough about him. The auction¡¯s about to start, and you don¡¯t want to miss out on the jewelry you¡¯re interested in,¡± N reminded her.
¡°No worries. The piece I want is the final item,¡± Vrie replied.
While they spoke, Jordyn, who sat diagonally behind them, watched with barely concealed resentment. She ced a hand on her lower abdomen and frowned. ¡°rk, my stomach hurts a bit. I¡¯m going to the restroom.¡±
rk¡¯s impatience flickered in his eyes. ¡°What¡¯s the matter? The auction is about to begin.¡±
Jordyn, who had never been to such an event before, noticed that everyone was dressed casually, and it would be troublesome if she identally bumped into someone
She lowered her eyes. ¡°I¡¯m not sure. Maybe it¡¯s just the air conditioning. It feels too cold.¡±
¡°Be back in ten minutes,¡± rk requested. Upstodatee from Novel(D)ra/m/a.O(r)g
If she hadn¡¯t helped him secure a contract with Albert, rk would
CHAPTER 389
never have brought her to such an event, risking embarrassment.
His coldness and impatience made Jordyn feel a pang of disappointment. ¡°Alright.¡±
Jordyn walked toward the restroom. Five minutester, she emerged with a smile, casually washing her hands at the sink.
¡°What did you say to that waiter just now?¡± Reba¡¯s voice suddenly asked.
Startled, Jordyn turned to see Reba, her eyes shing with
coldness.
¡°I don¡¯t know what you¡¯re talking about,¡± she replied.
Reba stepped closer, her tone dripping with sarcasm. ¡°I¡¯m warning you don¡¯t act recklessly. If you mess up my ns, I won¡¯t let you off the hook!¡±
Jordyn sneered. ¡°What do your ns have to do with me? Reba, don¡¯t think that just because you helped me once, I¡¯ll do whatever you say.¡±
She couldn¡¯t forget how N and Vrie had humiliated her earlier. She wasn¡¯t going to let it slide.
¡°If you make a move against N at this auction, you¡¯ll definitely get noticed. Do you really want to risk being dumped by rk again, right after winning him back?¡± Reba asked.
Jordyn bit her lower lip, clenching her hands at her sides, her head lowered in silence.
Missing this opportunity meant she might never get another chance to deal with N. She was reluctant to give up so easily. Just thinking about Vrie pping her brought a wave of nearly
unbearable humiliation.
Seeing the hesitation in Jordyn¡¯s eyes, Reba smirked. ¡°I know
you want N gone. Believe me, I feel the same. But you don¡¯t know anyone here. Even if you bribe a waiter, what¡¯s stopping him from betraying you for more money?¡±
Jordyn¡¯s eyes widened as her face turned pale. She knew Reba was right, but the thought of letting it go was too much to bear.
Noticing her uncertainty, Reba added slowly, ¡°I¡¯ve said my piece. What you do next is up to you. But if you get caught, I hope you can deal with the consequences.¡±
With that, she turned coldly and walked away.
amand was heart shaped, sumanded by 94 monts that sparkhof the stars around the on # was brew,
beaut
His imagined how humutul it wonkook on tyle¡¯s neck wing his business trips, his often bought her Bes, as her corbones were an elegant that any jewelry seemed to enhance her bewy
The bidding for the ne soon Regan
When rk didn¡¯t answer her, Jordin fremmed and was about to repeat her request Just then, rk mised tas bidding paddle
60,000 derel
denlyn¡¯s syse sparkled with delight Even though rk hadn¡¯t spoken, she believed his actions meant he still had feelings for her
As soon as rk towered his paddle, Damon, seated in the front
MONU
100.000 dors!¡±
rk¡¯s displeasure was evident. He felt that Damon was deliberately trying to outbid him.
480.000 dors¡±
200.000 dors
300.000 dore!¡±
At fisk others joined in the bidding war between rk and Damon, But eventually, they backed out. The ne, while undeniably beautiful was worth at most 300,000 dors. Anything higher seemed unreasonable.
44.000.000 dors!¡±
5000.000 dor
G
We are Gased the price to $5,000,000 dors, rk¡¯s grip on Ace paddle ottened, he kickles wie Here were filled WMA
thee to keep Nyka, but he also ARYAWANNA
Note
cekat we see
Jedva looked at rk with a touch expression, surprised that he the CX with Denson for t
free on her be
However, the price lead exceed the nes Ho
at
That Merekce 6807 moth ach the seat ch Content ? N?velDrama.Org.
N
MAKI MAIZE WI
Www XA1 N
CHAPTER 391
Damon remained indifferent, showing no sign that he had heard Reba or intended to respond.
Reba¡¯s smile faltered slightly, her nails digging into her palm After a few seconds, she managed topose herself and looked away casually.
Soon after, Damon bought several more sets of jewelry, drawing even more envious nces from onlookers toward Reba.
Vrie, seated at the back, felt a wave of nausea. She couldn¡¯t believe that Damon was buying so much jewelry for Reba.
When he had been with N, he had never given her anything. Vrie felt a deep sense of injustice on N¡¯s behalf.
Beside her, N remainedposed, showing no sign of emotion.
259
After more than half an hour, the time had finallye for the centerpiece of the auction-¡°The Lone Tear¡°.
As soon as the cover was lifted, a collective gasp rippled through the crowd.
The jewelry was even more breathtaking up close than in the photographs.
The centerpiece was a massive diamond ne with a main stone weighing several dozen carats, resembling a pure, tear- shaped droplet¨Cstunningly beautiful
Each facet of the diamond had been meticulously cut, sparkling brilliantly under the light. The ne¡¯s chain, made of tiny Content ? N?velDrama.Org.
*
diamonds interwoven with tinum, was intricately crafted, cradling the main stone as if protecting it, like angel wings.
The set also included a pair of earrings and a ring. The earrings featured two diamonds, about half the size of the main stone, also in a tear shape. They dazzled in the imagination, swaying gracefully with the wearer¡¯s movements.
The ring had a unique design, with a smaller diamond set on an intricately engraved tinum band, its floral patternsplementing the diamond¡¯s brilliance.
Vrie¡¯s excitement was palpable as she grabbed N¡¯s hand. ¡± N, I have to get this set of jewelry! I¡¯ll wear it to the birthday party!¡±
N was equally impressed by the jewelry.
However, after seeing the price, she quickly realized it was out of her range. The starting bid was 3,000,000 dors, and judging by the reactions around her, it was clear many others were eager to bid.
She should consider carefully what birthday present to give Vrie, as the final bidding price for this set of jewelry would likely be beyond her means.
As the auction price climbed, fewer people were raising their paddles. When the bid reached 7,000,000 dors, the number of bidders dwindled even further.
Vrie remained in the running, but her face was tense. If the price exceeded 9,000,000 dors, it would surpass her budget. The current price was already approaching her limit.
Meanwhile, Reba was captivated by the jewelry. Among all the pieces on disy tonight, this one stirred a strong desire within her. Her hands were clenched tightly, and her eyes reflected her
H
CHAPTER 392
The crowd turned in shock at the sound of the new voice.
They had been expecting a wealthy heir from Saintornia, but instead, a young man stood before them- someone they didn¡¯t recognize.
Murmurs rippled through the room.
¡°Who is that? I¡¯ve never seen him before.¡±
¡°No idea, but anyone bold enough to bid 20,000,000 dors must be important.¡±
Next to Gabriel, Melody was so shocked that her phone slipped from her hand, ttering to the floor.
She whispered, ¡°Gabriel, are you crazy? Where are you getting that kind of money?¡±
¡°Don¡¯t worry. If I¡¯m making an offer, I can afford it,¡± Gabriel replied confidently.
Damon nced over his shoulder at Gabriel, his eyes narrowing dangerously.
Their gazes locked, and for a brief moment, the air between them crackled with unspoken tension.
Vrie, equally stunned, quickly turned to N. ¡°N, your brother¡¯s been abroad for years. When did he get so rich? I should¡¯ve gone abroad too.
N was at a loss for words. She was just as shocked by Gabriel¡¯s sudden bid. After all, he¡¯d only been renting a ce since returning from abroad. He didn¡¯t seem to possess such vast wealth.
Could he be trying to outbid Damon to get back at him for dumping her?
But if Damon stopped bidding, Gabriel would be on the hook for 20,000,000 dors. How would hee up with that kind of money?
Damon raised his paddle once more. ¡°30,000,000 dors!¡±
Without hesitation, Gabriel countered, ¡°40,000,000 dors!¡±
¡°50,000,000 dors!¡±
*60,000,000 dors!¡±
¡°100,000,000 dors!¡± When Gabriel shouted this final figure, the room fell as silent as a tomb. No piece of jewelry was worth that much
The bidding war between Gabriel and Damon had spiraled into madness, driving the price to an astronomical 100,000,000 dors!
Vrie nced at the jewelry and then at the current bidding price, feeling that the piece seemed ordinary inparison. What couldn¡¯t she do with that kind of money?
Unable to contain herself, she turned to N and whispered, ¡°Is your brother insane? Even if he sold himself, he couldn¡¯te up with that kind of money!¡±
12
?
Gabriel had only been studying abroad for a few years how could he possibly have that much money?
N shook her head. ¡°I don¡¯t know.
In truth, she also thought Gabriel had lost his mind. She couldn¡¯t believe he could amass so much money. Was he really willing to jeopardize his future over a moment of anger?
Seeing Damon still intent on bidding, Reba subconsciously grabbed his hand and whispered, ¡°Damon, don¡¯t bid any higher. This jewelry is worth at most 10,000,000 dors, and it¡¯s already far beyond its value. But seeing you bid so much for me, I¡¯m really touched..
Without a word, Damon pulled his hand away and raised his paddle. ¡°200,000,000 dors!¡±
The auctioneer was nearly incoherent with excitement. He had never anticipated the price reaching such heights. This was a career¨Cdefining moment for him!
¡°200,000,000 dors, going once! Any more bids?!¡±
¡°200,000,000 dors, going twice!¡±
Finally, the auctioneer¡¯s gavel came down with a decisive thud.
*200,000,000 dors, going three times! Congrattions to No. 28 for winning the auction at 200,000,000
dors!
As the final word echoed through the room, the atmosphere erupted into lively chatter.
¡°Oh my god! My heart almost stopped. 200,000,000 dors! All this for just a smile from Reba! Why am I not Damon¡¯s girlfriend?¡±
¡°This is the most expensive auction I¡¯ve ever seen. Damon must really adore Reba to spend 200,000,000 dors without a second thought.¡±
¡°I don¡¯t see what¡¯s so special about Reba. How did she manage to get Damon to spend 200,000,000 dors on a piece of jewelry just because she said she liked it?¡±
The surrounding conversations all focused on Damon and Reba.
Overwhelmed with emotion, Reba smiled and looked at Damon with a mix of excitement and admiration. Content ? N?velDrama.Org.
CHAPTER 393
Chapter 393
#25 BONUS
200,000,000 dors! Damon had spent that amount just to buy her a piece of jewelry!
Reba couldn¡¯t help but turn to N with a triumphant smile. It was clear now that Damon¡¯s greatest love was her, and N didn¡¯t even .
She had expected to see resentment or jealousy in N¡¯s eyes but was surprised when N simply met her gaze calmly before looking away
Reba frowned, feeling as though she was hitting a brick wall. N must be pretending to be calm¨Cshe was probably seething with jealousy!
Soon, someone came to collect Damon¡¯s signature and process the payment.
After the transaction, the staff brought over all the jewelry Damon had bid on, with The Lone Tear on top.R¨ºAdt??St chapters at Novel(D)ra/ma.Org Only
When Damon opened the jewelry box, The Lone Tear sparkled brilliantly under the lights, drawing
everyone¡¯s attention.
Although the auction was over, most people stayed behind, their eyes glued to the piece of jewelry in Damon¡¯s hands. Some even wondered if he was going to propose to Reba with it.
Vrie looked extremely displeased to see the jewelry she wanted go to Damon and be given to someone she disliked.
¡°What kind of spell did Reba cast on Damon? 200,000,000 dors just like that! The thought of that jewelry hanging around her neck makes me so mad!¡± Vrie hissed.
If anyone other